Skip to main content

Full text of "Harijan Vol-viii(feb-nov 1940)"

See other formats


II 


PRESaEPENT’S SECRETARIAT 
(LIBRARY) 

Accn. No Class No 

The book should be returned on or before the date 
last stamped below. 





Author Index 


AgrawaL S. 



Seven Days in Bombay 

... 

289 

Rashtrabhasha Adbyapan Mandir, Wardha 

99 

An American s Questions 

... 

298 

Aiyamuthu, C. A. 



More about the Resolution 

... 

300 

Cbarkha v. Takli 

... 

138 

Occasional Notes 

... 

309 

Amrit Kaur (A. K. ) 



‘Come Thou in a Shower of Compassion’ 

314 

The Basic Education Court 


75 

An Acceptable Sacrifice 


325 

Harijan Work in Indore 


77 

The Liberty We Want 

• « • 

326 

A Humble Tribute 

• ■ • 

87 

War Resisters 

... 

331 

A Chinese Visitor 


87 

Desai, V. G. 



An Important Interview 

• •• 

105 

A Bengal Grievance 

... 

16 

A Hideous Evil 

... 

135 

The Beneficent Bee 

... 

152 

“ For He Had Great Possessions ” 

■ • • 

206 

Gandhi, K. C. 



Village Reconstruction in the South 

• •• 

259 

One Aspect of the Cloth Industry 

... 

288 

Handicrafts in America 

... 

275 

Gandhi. M. K. 



Ahimsa, India’s Heritage 

... 

279 

The Old Game? 


1 

A Praiseworthy Endeavour 

... 

286 

Is It War? 


4 

A Righteous Fast 

... 

324 

Banging the Door 


4 

Untouchability in Kotah 

... 

332 

India without the British 


5 

Anonymous and Unsigned 



A Curious Situation 


5 

India and the War 

... 

32 

Adulteration of Ghee 


5 

Candid Comments 

... 

51 

Question Box 7, 9, 24, 29, 

41, 49, *73 

89, 

Gandhiji Absolved 


182 

93, 101, 109, 123, 129, 137, 145, 

159. 161. 

176. 

Working Committee and the Wasiris 


204 

183, 193, 215, 217, 234, 253, 

268. 276. 283 

Andrews Memorial Fund 

... 

267 

Communal Decision 


9 

“ A Seeker’s " Question 


280 

What Is Woman’s Role ? 


12 

A. I. C. C. Resolution 

... 

296 

The Right Step 


20 

Andrews Memorial Fund 

... 

326 

What I Saw in Santiniketan 


21 

Working Committee’s Statement 

... 

332 

My Advice to Noakhali Hindus 


21 

Ashadevi 



Segaon Becomes Sevagram 


28 

Basic Education 

• •• 

130 

When the British Withdraw 


28 

Bardoloi, G. N. 



Clear Injustice 


28 

Planters’ Paradise 


162 

Skimmed Milk 


28 

Bhave, Vinoba 



When? 


32 

Old Mind v. Old Age 

... 

287 

What Resolution Means 


33 

Desai, Mahadev (M. D.) 



For Englishmen 

« • • 

44 

Occasional Notes 2, 10, 47, 54, 133, 

147, 194 

Jaiprakash Narayan 

• » ■ 

48 

Rediscovering Religion — II 


6 

‘ Khadi Banks ’ 


48 

Gandhi Seva Sangh I-III 17, 25, 42 

Women and Voluntary Endeavour 

... 

50 

Ramgarh 


57 

Another Englishman’s Letter 


52 

The Deenabandhu 


81 

A Very Useful Publication 

... 

53 

The Hand of the Devil? 


112 

The London Assassination 

... 

56 

Example Better than Precept 


113 

The National Week 


56 

Our Castes 


122 

An Insane Act 


56 

Unworthy of Wardha! 


127 

Every Congress Committee a 



A Feast for the Eyes 


139 

Satyagraha Committee 

... 

64 

God-speed 


141 

My Answer to Qaid-e-Azam 


65 

Commendable 

*«• 

143 

A Chief Judge Descends 


68 

“Sandhya Meditations” 


158 

The Two Speeches 

. •• 

69 

A Correction 


166 

How to Evoke the Best 


72 

The Eclipse of Faith I-II 

167, 174 

A Baffling Situation 


76 

The Only Cure 


177 

A True Friend of the Poor 


84 

What Led to the Decision 

... 

196 

Andrews’ Legacy 


84 

Mysore Lawyers (A Note) 


205 

How Not to Do It 

. ■ « 

85 

Some Misconceptions 


209 

Charkha — Swaraj — Ahimsa 


85 

A Hot Gospeller 


232 

All on Trial 


86 

War — a Stage Long Outgrown 


237 

Two Questions from America 


90 

The Live Issue 


246 

My Position 


92 

An Interesting Discourse I-II 

261, 

266 

Danger Signal 


% 

Non-violent Crafts 


271 

Jaiprakash’s Picture 


96 

Ahimsa in Daily Life 


273 

Jaipur State and Praja Mandal 

... 

99 

A Village Engineer 

• • • 

278 

Repression in Jodhpur 


100 

Sevagram Notes 

• •• 

281 

Civil Disobedience 


104 



Committee for Preliminary Agreement ? 


104 

Unrepentant 


212 

What Big Employers Can Do 

• •• 

107 

Khansaheb’s Ahimsa 

« • • 

213 

About Zamindars 


103 

The Best Field for Ahimsa 


214 

Of What Avail Is Non-violence ? 

• •• 

114 

The Correspondence 

« V • 

214 

An English Suggestion 

■ • • 

115 

The Annual Spinning Sacrifice 


214 

Wanton Destruction in Bidar 


115 

Travancore 


216 

The Ajmer Trouble 


116 

Servants of India Society 


217 

An Unjudicial Dictum 

• • • 

116 

Not Quite So Bad 


222 

Hindu Muslim Tangle 


117 

A Worthy Educational Effort 


222 

A One-sided Inquiry 

• •• 

121 

Two Just Complaints 

• •• 

223 

■Gandhiji’s Statement 


123 

Travancore 


225 

Ajmer 

■ at 

124 

Impossible 


228 

Eavouritism 


131 

There Is Violence in It 

ccm 

229 

Non-cooperation 

. • • 

132 

Spinning and Character 


231 

An Important Interview 


136 

A Testimony from England 

« • • 

231 

Our Duty 


140 

Sir C. P. Ramaswamy Aiyar’s Extravagances 233 

Non-resistance 

. . . 

144 

Of Civil Disobedience 

... 

234 

Five Questions 


144 

Is It Proper ? 


236 

Andrews’ Influence 

... 

144 

Indore State and Harijans 


236 

Not Yet 


148 

Woman’s Role 


236 

" Will Leave No Stone Unturned ” 

. • ■ 

148 

For Khadi Workers 

• * • 

237 

Bidar 


149 

‘What Else Besides Spinning?’ 


240 

Curse of Untouchability 


149 

What of the “Weak Majority”? 


241 

Deenabandhu Memorial 


150 

Hopeful 


241 

Kerala Congress 

... 

152 

The Biswa Affair 


242 

Peace in Sirohi 


153 

Is Non-violence Impossible? 


244 

Untouchability 


153 

The Test of Non-violence 

... 

245 

Handmade Paper 


153 

Spinning Anniversary 

... 

247 

Red Cross Fund 

... 

153 

Aundh 

... 

248 

■Comilla Municipality and Harijans 


154 

Not a Harijan 

... 

248 

Hindu-Muslim 


156 

Moral Support 

* • ■ 

249 

Panic 

... 

157 

‘One Step Forward’ 


250 

Two Parties 


164 

A Convincing Argument 


250 

Copyright 


164 

Implications of Constructive Programme 


252 

Please Spare Me 


165 

Deeply Distressing 


253 

Andrews Memorial 


165 

Nazism in Its Nakedness 

* • • 

255 

Tribute from South Africa 


165 

Travancore 


256 

Gwalior and Khadi 


165 

Dr. Lohia Again 


257 

Harijans of Garhwal 


165 

Asoka and Non-violence 


259 

A Walking Tour 


166 

Equal Distribution 

* •« 

260 

Missionary Education in Assam 


166 

Debt Bondage of a Hill Tribe 

9mm 

264 

Non-violence and Khadi 


169 

Improper Use 


264 

Spinning Competition in Ramgarh 


171 

My Idea of a Police Force 


265 

How to Combat Hitlerism 

... 

172 

Non-violence of the Brave 


268 

Duty of Indians Overseas 


172 

Andrews Memorial 

... 

270 

Caste Hindu Marries Harijan Girl 


173 

Sindh 


272 

Another Tribute 

... 

173 

Peaceful Methods? 


272 

Adult Literacy 


173 

Biswa Miscarrriage Again 


276 

Both Happy and Unhappy 


180 

How to Quench It ? 


277 

What the Masnavi Says 


183 

Economic Ruin in Sindh 


284 

To Every Briton 


185 

Congress Ahimsa 

o • • 

285 

About Working Committee’s Decision 


186 

Non-violence during Riots 


285 

Some Vital Questions 


188 

How to Universalise Khadi ? 


285 

A Valid Complaint 


189 

Not Quite New 

m m m 

286 

Non-violence and Panic 


192 

I Was Unjust because Weak 

« « • 

292 

‘ Copyright ’ 


193 

Khadi Patrikas 

<« * * 

295 

“ A Cry in the Wilderness ” ? 


200 

I Wonder 


297 

The Delhi Resolution 


201 

Khadi Week 


298 

Congress Membership and Non-violence 


203 

Some Criticism Answered 


302 

About the Waziris 


204 

Gandhiji’s Speech at the A. I. C. C. 


303 

Mysore Lawyers 


205 

Sikhs and the Sword 


306 

The Late Changanacherry Pillai 


207 

Correspondence 

• « « 

307 

Is Islam Inspired? 

• •• 

207 

Sindh Hindus 


309 

Subhasbabu 

... 

208 

Interesting Parallel 

# • • 

311 

Mysore Justice 

• •• 

211 

Disgraceful If True 

... 

312 



'Viceroy-Gandhi Correspondence 

... 313 

'The Breach 

... 315 

To Satyagrahis 

... 315 

Illegal Levy ? 

... 316 

A Christian Student’s Complaint 

... 316 

Two Thought-provoking Letters 

... 317 

-Physical Training and Ahimsa 

... 318 

Hyderabad ' 

... 320 

Thanks 

... 321 

‘ A Scab in the Back ’ ? 

... 321 

Australian Soldiers 

... 321 

Jaipur 

... 321 

Fasting in Satyagraha 

... 322 

More about the Simla Visit 

... 323 

A British Endorsement 

... 328 

Two Points of- View 

... 328 

Civil Disobedience 

... 329 

To the Reader 

... 333 

Why Suspension 

.'jaiprakash Narain 

... 334 

A Brave Statement 

... 65 

.Katju, K. N. 


Non-violence cum Non-cooperation 

... 181 

.Kripalani, J. B. 

Acharya Kripalani’s Inaugural Address 
Linlithgow, Lord 

... 67 

The Correspondence 

... 214 

Viceroy-Gandhi Correspondence 

Lohia, R. M. 

... 313 

Immediate Satyagraha 

iMashruwala, K. G. 

... 151 

Khadi Can 

... 77 

Curious Objections 

... 179 

Our Textile Wants 

... 228 

Drawbacks of Non-violence 

... 242 

“ Representative Capacity ” 

:Naik, G. 

... 280 

Town-dwellers and Village Industries 
..Nayar, Sushila ( S. N. ) 

... 286 

Sevagram Khadi Yatra 

... 79 


Subject 

Classification 

1. Congress 

2. Indian States 

3. Foreign Affairs 


4. Education 


5. Removal of Untouchability and Service of 

Harijans 


•6. Communal Unity 

7. Village Industries 

8. Village Reconstruction 

9. Khadi 


1. Congress 


The Old Game ... M. K. Gandhi 1 

Is It War ? 

4 

Banging the Door 

• 4 

India without the British 

5 

•..Question Box „ 8, 24, 29, 41, 73, 89, 93, 

101, 109, 

129, 137, 145, 161, 176, 183, 217, 

234, 253, 268, 283 

Occasional Notes M. D. 10, 47, 54, 133 

When the British Withdraw ... M. K. Gandhi 28 

When ? ... „ 

32 

Jndia and the War 

32 


Pyarelal 

A Doughty Dewan ... 14 

An Interlude at Santiniketan ... 31 

The Santiniketein Pilgrimage ... 34 

Unconvincing Apologia ... 36 

A Visit to Deenabandhu ... 40 

The Old Game ... 62 

Princely Extravaganza I-III 94, 103, 110 

C. F. A. — the Man ... 98 

Then and Now ... 107 

Occasional Notes 119, 126, 154 

This Picture and That ... 141 

Three Witnesses ... 146 

On the Road to Simla ... 189 

More about Handicrafts ... 202 

The Journey Back ... 226 

Adult Education through Handicrafts 
I-II 251, 263 

Rajagopalachari, C. 

Rajaji’s Postscript ... 308 

Ramachandran, G. 

Travancore ... 279 

Kathiawad Famine Work ... 287 

Shukla, Chandrashanker ( C. S. ) 

A Creditable Record ... 74 

Spinning Wheel in China ... 91 

In the Wake of Mechanisation I-IV 102, 117 

Khadi Work in Tamil Nad I-II 135, 138 

Shyamlal 

Gandhi Scholarships ... 258 

Subedar, Manu 

Rural Humanity ... 170 

Tarasingh, Master 

Correspondence ... 307 

Templin, R. T. 

Open Letter ... 220 

Thakkar, A. V. 

Harijan Sevak Sangh ... 39 

Scholarships for Harijan Girls ... 75 

A Cry from South Orissa ... 131 

Titbits ... 230 


Index 

OF Subjects 

10. Relations of the Sexes 

11. Non-violence 

12. Prohibition 

13. Hindustani 

14. Labour 

15. Obituaries 

16. Personal — by and about Gandhiji 

17. Economics — General 

18. Miscellaneous 

What Resolution Means ... M. K. Gandhi 33 

Unconvincing Apologia ... Pyarelal 36 

For Englishmen ... M. K. Gandhi 44 

Jaiprakash Narain „ 48 

Candid Comments ... 51 

Another Englishman’s Letter ... M. K. Gandhi 52 

The National Week ... . „ 56 

Ramgarh ... M. D. 57 

Every Congress Committee a 
Satyagraha Committee ... M. K, Gandhi 64 

A Brave Statement ... J. Narain 65 

A Chief Judge Descends ' ... M. K. Gandhi 68 



4 


The Tw^o Speeches 

• •• 

69 

How to Evoke the Best 

« » « 

72 

A Baffling Situation 

• • • 

76 

Sevagram Khadi Yatra 


S. N. 79 

How Not to Do It 


M. K. Gandhi 85 

All on Trial 

* > o 

86 

A Chinese Visitor 


A. K. 87 

My Position 


M. K. Gandhi 92 

Danger Signal 

• •• 

96 

Jaiprakash’s Picture 

• • • 

96 

Civil Disobedience 
Committee for Preliminary 

• 94 

, M. K. Gandhi 104 

Agreement ? 

• 09 

104 

An Important Interview 

• 09 

A. K. 105 

Then and Now 


Pyarelal 107 

About Zamindars 

Of What Avail Is 


, M. K. Gandhi 108 

Non-violence ? 

• •• 

114 

The Ajmer Trouble 

ft ft • 

116 

Gandhiji’s Statement 

ft • • 

123 

Ajmer 

ft ft* 

M. K. Gandhi 124 

Occasional Notes 


Pyarelal 126 

Non-cooperation 

ft ftft 

M. K. Gandhi 132 

An Important Interview 

tt • ft 

136 

Our Duty 


140 

Five Questions 


144 

Three Witnesses 

• ftft 

Pyarelal 146 

Occasional Notes 


M. D. 147 

Not Yet 

“ Will Leave No Stone 

... 

M. K. Gandhi 148 

Unturned ” 

• • • 

148 

Immediate Satyagraha ” 


R. M. Lohia 151 

Kerala Congress 


M. K. Gandhi 152 

Red Cross Fund 


„ 153 

Panic 


„ 157 

Two Parties 

• •• 

164 

A Correction 

• • • 

M. D. 166 

The Eclipse of Faith I-II 


„ 167,174 

Both Happy and Unhappy 

• •• 

M. K. Gandhi 180 

Gandhiji Absolved 


182 

Some Vital Questions 

««• 

M. K. Gandhi 188 

What Led to the Decision 

• •• 

M. D. 196 

“ A Cry in the Wilderness ” 


M. K. Gandhi 200 

The Delhi Resolution 
Congress Membership and 

... 

201 

Non-violence 


203 

About the Waziris 


204 

Working Committee and theWaziris 204 

Subhasbabu 

* * ■ 

M. K. Gandhi 208 

Some Misconceptions 

ft *• 

M. D. 209 

The Journey Back 

... 

Pyarelal 226 

There Is Violence in It 


M. K. Gandhi 229 

Of Civil Disobedience 


„ 234 

*What Else besides Spinning 

?’ 

240 

Is Non-violence Impossible? 


244 

The Test of Non-violence 

... 

„ 245 

The Live Issue 

• ft ft 

M. D. 246 

Moral Support 

ft ft ft 

M. K. Gandhi 249 

A Convincing Argument 
Implications of Constructive 

... 

„ 250 

Progromme 


252 

Deeply Distressing 


.. 253 

Dr. Lohia Again 

ft 

257 

An Interesting Discourse I-II 

ftftft 

M. D. 261, 266 

Sindh 

9ftift 

M. K. Gandhi 272 


“Representative Capacity” K. G. Mashruwala 280 
Congress Ahimsa ... M. K. Gandhi 285 

Seven Days in Bombay ... M. D. 289 

I Was Unjust because Weak ... M. K. Gandhi 292 
A. I. C. C. Resolution ... 296 

An American’s Questions ... M. D. 298 

More about the Resolution ... „ 300 

Some Criticism Answered ... M. K. Gandhi 302 
Gandhiji’s Speech at the A. I. C. C. 303 

Sikhs and the Sword ... M. K. Gandhi 306 

Correspondence M. K. Gandhi — Tarasingh 307 
Rajaji’s Postscript ... 308 

Viceroy-Gandhi Correspondence 313 

‘Come Thou in a Shower of 
Compassion’ 


The Breach 
To Satyagrahis 
Two Thought-provoking 
Letters 

‘ A Stab in the Back ’ ? 

More about the Simla Visit 
An Acceptable Sacrifice 
The Liberty We Want 
Civil Disobedience 
Working Committee’s Statement 
2 . 


M. D. 314 

M. K. Gandhi 315 
315 

M K. Gandhi 317 
„ 321 

323 

M. D. 325 

326 

M. K. Gandhi 329 
332 


Indian States 

Occasional Notes ... M. D. 2, 133, 194 

A Doughty Dewan ... Pyarelal 14 

Question Box M. K. Gandhi 49, 89, 283' 

Princely Extravaganza I-III Pyarelal 94, 103, 110 
Jaiprakash’s Picture ... M. K. Gandhi 96 


Jaipur State and Praja Mandal 
Repression in Jodhpur 
A One-sided Inquiry 
Peace in Sirohi 
The Eclipse of Faith — I 

Mysore Lawyeres 

Mysore Justice 


99 

„ 100 

121 
153 

M. D. 167 

M. K. Gandhi one: 
& M. D. 

M. K. Gandhi 211 


Travancore 

1' 

216 

Travancore 

11 

225 

Sir C. P. Ramaswami 

Aiyar’s Extravagances 

1 1 

233 

Aundh 

1 1 

248 

Not a Harijan 

11 

248 

Travancore 

1 1 

256 

Hyderabad 

1 1 

320 

Jaipur 

11 

321 

Fasting in Satyagraha 

11 

322 

3. Foreign Affairs 

Then and Now 

Pyarelal 

107 


Occasional Notes 

This Picture and That 

How to Combat Hitlerism 

To Every Briton 

Unrepentant 

The Correspondence 

Not Quite So Bad 

Hopeful 

Question Box 

Nazism in Its Nakedness 

Occasional Notes 

Interesting Parallel 

The Liberty We Want 

War Resisters 


119, 154 

141 

... M. K. Gandhi 172 

185 

212 ' 

Gandhi-Linlithgow 214 
... M. K. Gandhi 222 
241 

253 

... „ 255 

M. D. 309- 
... M. K. Gandhi 311 
M. D. 326 
331 



o 


4. Education 

What I Saw in Santiniketan ... M. K. Gandhi 21 


Clear Injustice ... ,, 28 

■Question Box „ 29, 49, 159, 193, 283 

Acharya Kripalani’s Inaugural 

Address ... 67 

The Basic Education Court ... A. K. 75 

Sevagram Khadi Yatra ... S. N. 79 
Basic Education ... Ashadevi 130 

Favouritism ... M. K. Gandhi 131 

Missionary Education in Assam „ 166 

Adult Literacy ... „ 173 

A Worthy Educational Effort „ 222 

Spinning -and Character ... „ 231 

‘One Step Forward* ... „ 250 

Adult Education through 

Handicrafts I-II ... Pyarelal 251, 263 

A Praiseworthy Endeavour ... A. K. 286 


A Christian Student’s Complaint M. K. Gandhi 316 

5. Removal of Untouchability and Service 
of Harijans 

A Curious Situation ... M. K. Gandhi 5 

Harijan Sevak Sangh ... A. V. Thakkar 39 


Scholarships for Harijan Girls ... „ 75 

Harijan Work in Indore ... A. K. 77 
Question Box ... M. K. Gandhi 89, 93, 137, 159, 217 
Commendable ... M. D. 143 

Curse of Untouchability ... M. K. Gandhi 149 

Untouchability ... „ 153 

■Comilla Municipality and Harijans „ 154 

Harijans of Garhwal ... „ 165 

A Walking Tour ... „ 166 

Caste Hindu Marries Harijan Girl „ 173 

The Journey Back ... Pyarelal 226 

Titbits ... A. V. Thakkar 230 

Indore State aud Harijans ... M. K. Gandhi 236 

Gandhi Scholarships ... Shyamlal 258 

Fasting in Satyagraha ... M. K. Gandhi 322 

A Righteous Fast ... A. K. 324 

Untouchability in Kotah ... „ 332 

6. Communal Unity 

Communal Decision ... M. K. Gandhi 9 


Question Box „ 9, 29, 41, 49, 101, 109, 123, 129, 


137, 159, 183, 193, 234 

My Advice to Noakhali Hindus „ 

21 

The Old Game 

... Pyarelal 

62 

My Answer to Qaid-e-Azam 

... M. K. Gandhi 

65 

A Baffling Situation 

« •« 

76 

•All on Trial 

• H 

86 

My Position 

••• 

92 

The Hand of the Devil? 

M. D. 

112 

An English Suggestion 

... M. K. Gandhi 115 

Wanton Destruction in Bidar 

... ,1 

115 

Hindu Muslim Tangle 

... 

117 

Occasional Notes 

Pyarelal 

119 

Occasional Notes 

M. D. 

133 

God-speed 


141 

-Non-resistance 

... M. K. Gandhi 144 

Bidar 

••• »i 

149 

Curse of Untouchability 

n 

149 

Hindu-Muslim 

f f 

156 

The Eclipse of Faith — ^II 

M. D. 

174 

What the Masnavi Says 

... M. K. Gandhi 183 

Is Islam Inspired? 

••• « 

207 

The Biswa Affair 


242 


Biswa Miscarriage Again 


276 

Economic Ruin in Sindh 


284 

Seven Days in Bombay 


M. D. 289 

I Wonder 

• •• 

M. K. Gandhi 297 

Sindh Hindus 

• ■ • 

309 

7, Village Industries 

Adulteration of Ghee 

■ « « 

M. K. Gandhi 5 

Skimmed Milk 

o • ■ 

23 

Gandhi Seva Sangh-III 

*«• 

M. D. 42 

What Big Employers Can 

Do 

M. K. Gandhi 107 

The Beneficent Bee 

... 

V. G. D. 152 

Handmade Paper 

... 

M. K. Gandhi 153 

Rural Humanity 


M. Subedar 170 

More about Handicrafts 

• •• 

Pyarelal 202 

Non-violent Crafts 

• •• 

M. D. 271 

Handicrafts in America 
Town-dwellers aad village 

... 

A. K. 275 

Industries 

■ a a 

G. Naik 286 


8. Village Reconstruction 

Village Reconstruction in the 


South ... A. K. 259 

Debt Bondage of a Hill Tribe... M. K. Gandhi 264 
Sevagram Notes ... M. D. 281 

Kathiawad Famine Work G. Ramachandran 287 

9. Khadi 

Question Box ... M. K. Gandhi 30, 

73. 145, 159, 176, 217, 268, 276, 283 


Gandhi Seva Sangh I-III 
‘ Khadi Banks ’ 

Women and Voluntary 
Endeavour 
Ramgarh 

A Creditable Record 
Khadi Can 
Sevagram Khadi Yatra 
Charkha — Swaraj — Ahimsa 
Spinning Wheel in China 
What Big Employers Can Do... 
Example Better than Precept... 
Khadi Work in Tamil Nad I-II 


M. D. 17. 25, 42 
M. K. Gandhi 48 


50 

57 

74 


K. 


Charkha v. Takli 
A Feast for the Eyes 
Gwalior and Khadi 
Non-violence and Khadi 
Spinning Competition in 
The Eclipse of Faith — ^II 
Curious Objections 
The Journey Back 
Our Textile Wants 
Spinning and Character 
For Khadi Workers 
Spinning Anniversary 
How to Universalise Khadi ? 
One Aspect of the Cloth 
Industry 
Khadi Patrikas 


M. D. 

C. S. 

G. Mashruwala 77 
S. N. 79 
M. K. Gandhi 85 
C. S. 91 
M. K. Gandhi 107 
M. D. 113 
C. S. 135, 138 
C. A. Aiyamuthu 138 
M. D. 139 
... M. K. Gandhi 165 

169 

Ramgarh „ 171 

... M. D. 174 
K. G. Mashruwala 179 
Pyarelal 226 
K. G. Mashruwala 228 
... M. K. Gandhi 231 
237 

247 

„ 285 


K. C. Gandhi 288 
M. K. Gandhi 295 
298 


Khadi Week ... „ 

10 Relations of the Sexes 
What Is Woman’s Role ... M. K. Gandhi 12 
Question Box ... 29, 41, 145, 159, 176 

A Hideous Evil ... A. K. 135 


11. Non-Violence 

Occasional Notes ... M. D. 2, 194, 309 

Question Box ... M. K. Gandhi 7, 

102, 129, 193, 215, 217, 234, 253, 268, 276, 283 
GEindhi Seva Sangh — ... M. D. 17 
An Interlude at Santiniketan ... Pyarelal 31 



6 


The London Assassination 
An Insane Act 
How to Evoke the Best 
Charkha — S waraj — Ahimsa 
Two Questions from America 
Of What Avial Is Non-violence ? 
Non-violence and Khadi 
How to Combat Hitlerism 
Both Happy and Unhappy 
Non-violence cum Non- 
co-operation 
Gandhiji Absolved 
To Every Briton 
About Working Committee’s 
Decision 

Non-violence and Panic 
What Led to the Decision 
“ A Cry in the Wilderness ? 
The Delhi Resolution 
Congress Membership and 
Non-violence 

“For He Had Great Possessions” 
Some Misconceptions 
Unrepentant 
Khansaheb’s Ahimsa 
The Best Field for Ahimsa 


M. K. Gandhi 56 
56 


72 

85 

90 

114 

169 

172 

180 


K. N. Katju 


181 
182 

M. K. Gandhi 185 


M. D. 

M. K. Gandhi 


186 

192 

196 

200 

201 


203 

206 

209 


A. K. 

M. D. 

M. K. Gandhi 212 
213 

„ 214 


Gandhi-Linlithgow 214 
. R. T. Templin 220 
. M. K. Gandhi 222 
223 

. Pyarelal 
. M. K. Gandhi 


226 

228 

229 

231 

232 

236 

237 
241 
241 


245 

246 

249 

250 
255 
259 

M. D. 261, 266 
K. Gandhi 


M. D. 

K. Gandhi 


The Correspondence 
Open Letter 
Not Quite So Bad 
Two Just Complaints 
The Journey Back 
Impossible 

There Is Violence in It ... ,, 

A Testimony from England ... „ 

A Hot Gospeller ... M. D. 

Woman’s Role ... M. K. Gandhi 

War — a Stage Long Outgrown ... M. D. 

What of the “Weak Majority” ? M. K. Gandhi 
Hopeful ... „ 

Drawbacks of Non-violence K. G. Mashruwala 242 
Is Non-violence Impossible ? ... M. K. Gandhi 244 
The Test of Non-violence 
The Live Issue 

Moral Support ... M, 

A Convincing Argument 
Nazism in Its Nakedness 
Asoka and Non-violence 
An Interesting Discourse I-II ... 

My Idea of a Police Force ... M 
Non-violence of the Brave 
Peaceful Methods ? 

Ahimsa in Daily Life 
How to Quench It ? 

“ A Seeker’s ” Question 
Congress Ahimsa 
Non-violence during Riots 
Not Quite New 
Seven Days in Bombay 
A. I. C. C. Resolution 
An American’s Questions 
Some Criticism Answered 
Gandhiji’s Speech at the A. 1 
Sikhs and the Sw’ord 
Correspondence 

Tarasingh-M. K. Gandhi 
Interesting Parallel ... M. K. Gandhi 311 

Viceroy — Gandhi Correspondence 313 

Physical Training and Ahimsa M. K. Gandhi 318 
A British Endorsement ... „ 328 

War Resisters ... M. D. 331 

12. Prohibition 

A Bengal Grievance ... V. G. D. 16 

13. Hindustani 

Question Box ... M. K. Gandhi 41 

Rashtrabhasha Adhyapan 


M. D. 

M. K. Gandhi 
M. K. Gandhi 


M. D. 

! M. D. 

. M. K. Gandhi 
C C 

. M. k. Gandhi 


265 

268 

272 

273 
277 
280 
285 

285 

286 
289 
296 
298 

302 

303 

306 

307 


Mandir, Wardha 
Two Just Complaints 
Old Mind v. Old Age 
14. 

Question Box 
Planters’ Paradise 


... S. Agrawal 99 
... M. K. Gandhi 223 
... V. Ehave '287 
Labour 

... M. K. Gandhi 93 
... G. Bardoloi 162 


15. Obituaries 

The Deenabandhu ... M. D. 81 

A True Friend of the Poor ... M. K. Gandhi 84 

Andrews’ Legacy ... ,, 84 

A Humble Tribute ... A. K. 87 

C. F. A. — the Man ... Pyarelal 98' 

Andrews’ Influence ... M. K. Gandhi 144 

Tribute from South Afria ... ,, 165 

Another Tribute ... „ 173 

The Late Changanacherry Pillai 207 

16. Personal — ^by and about Gandhiji 

Non-resistance ... M. K. Gandhi 144 

Please Spare Me ... .. 165 

Question Box ... ,, 253' 

Thanks ... „ 321 

Fasting in Satyagraha ... ,. 322 

17. Economics — General 

In the Wake of Mechanisation I-IV C. S. 102,117' 
The Eclipse of Faith-I ... M. D. 167 

The Only Cure ... ,, 177 

Equal Distribution ... M. K. Gandhi 260 


1 8. Miscellaneous 


-II 


M. D. 6 
M. K. Gandhi 7. 73, 159, 
M. D. 17, 25 


M. K. Gandhi 

SI 

Pyarelal 


Rediscovering Religion- 
Question Box 
Gandhi Seva Sangh I-II 
The Right Step 
Segaon Becomes Sevagram 
The Santiniketan Pilgrimage 
A Visit to Deenabandhu 
A Very Useful Publication 
Occasional Notes 
An Unjudicial Dictum 
Our Castes 
Deenabandhu Memorial 

M. K. Gandhi and Others 150 
... M. K. Gandh il65 


M. K. Gandhi 
M. D. 

M. K. Gandhi 116 
M. D. 122 


20 

28. 

34 

40' 

53 

54 


Andrews Memorial 
Unworthy of Wardha ! 
Duty of Indians Overseas 
A Cry from South Orissa 
“ Sandhya Meditations ” 
Copyright 
A Valid Complaint 
On the Road to Simla 
‘ Copyright ’ 

Servants of India Society 
A Hot Gospeller 
Is it Proper ? 

Improper Use 
Andrews Memorial Fund 
Andrews Memorial 
Disgraceful If True 
Illegal Levy? 

Australian Soldiers 
Andrews Memorial Fund 
To the Reader 
Why Suspension 


M. D. 172 
M. K. Gandhi 172 
A. V. Tbakkar 131 
M. D. 158 
M. K. Gandhi 164 
189 

Pyarelal 189 ' 
M. K. Gandhi 193 
217 

m’.’ D. 232 
,M;K. Gandhi 236 
264 
267 
270 

M. K. Gandhi 312 
316 

„ 321 

326 

M. K. Gandhi 333 
334 


Issues of Harijan hitherto published can be had at 
3 As. per issue. per copy, including postage. MANAGER 
Home and Village Doctor 
By Satish Chandra Dasgu^ta 1440 pages, 18. 
chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages. 216 illustrations. 
Price Rs. 5 cloth-bound; Rs. 6. By V. P. P. Rs. 6. 
leather-bound;Rs. 7. By V. P. P. Available at Harijan 
ofBce — Poona 4. 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
Subicriptioo Rates — JXLANP : One year, Bs. i. Six months, Bs. S-8. Foreion ; One year, Rs. 5-8 or, 8 sh. or 2 dollars 



Editor : MAHADEV DESAI 


VoL. VIII, No. 1 ] POONA — SATURDAY, FEBRUARY 17, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


THE OLD GAME ? 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

After my return from Delhi I have had a 
letter redirected from New Delhi. It is from a 
valued co-worker. I must share with all concerned 
the most important paragraphs in it: 

‘‘ Everything that has happened during the last 
month or so confirms me in the belief that there 
is not the slightest ground for hope that the British 
Government will accept our position. In fact many 
things have happened which demonstrate that they 
are following a very definite imperialist policy. You 
must have seen that the British Parliament has just 
passed a Bill amending the Government of India 
Act which limits the powers of Provincial Govern- 
ments in regard* to taxation. This was specially in 
view of the Professional Tax in the U. P. which is 
thus vetoed. Apart from the demerit of such a 
decision which reduces the powers of the Provincial 
Assembly, the time and the method chosen for it are 
eloquent of the- imperialist outlook of the British 
Government and indicate that the outlook has in no 
way changed. 

It is not at all encouraging to find that you are 
going to New Delhi to interview the Viceroy. The 
same old game is played again, the background is the 
same, the various objectives are the same, the actors 
are the same, and the results must be the same. 

There are, however, some unfortunate indirect 
results also. An atmosphere of approaching com- 
promise pervades the country when, in effect* there 
is no ground for it. It is enervating and depressing 
because it does not come out of strength but, in 
the case of many individuals, from the excessive 
desire to avoid conflict at all costs and to get back 
to the shreds of power which we had previously. 
Conflict is undesirable, but obviously conflict cannot 
be avoided at all costs, for sometimes such avoidance 
itself is a more costly and harmful affair- For the 
moment, however, there is no immediate question of 
conflict. The question is of maintaining our position 
with dignity, and not weakening it in any way. I 
fear that the impression is widely prevalent in 
England as well as in India that we are going in 
no event to have any conflict and therefore we are 
going to accept such terms as we can get. This 
kind of impression is demoralising. I have noticed 
during the last fortnight that even our Congress 
delegaites’ elections have been influenced by this. 
Many people who, for fear of possible conflict, were 
keeping in the background, have now pushed them- 
sdves in front again when the possibility of enjoying 
the plums of office and power seems to dangle again 
In front of them. The effort of several months to 


keep undesirables out of the Congress has partly 
failed because of this sudden change in the Indian 
atmosphere which led them to believe that the 
compromise was imminent. 

The British Government is also reacting in a way 
unfavourable to us, though it may use soft language. 
Of course, it wants to come to terms with us 
because it wants our support in the war. But it is 
much more certain that it does not wish to give 
up any shred of real power or change its funda- 
mental imperialist policy in order to come to terms 
with us. It is carrying on and will carry on its old 
intrigue on the communal issue though occasionally 
it uses a few critical words against the Muslim 
League in order to soothe the Congress. So far as 
it is concerned, it will try to win us over, keeping 
its present position intact. If this is possible, well 
and good for it. If this does not take place, as 
seems likely even to .it, then to carry on from time 
to time conversations with Indian leaders, to prolong 
the issue, to make it appear that we are on the 
verge of a compromise, and thus to soothe both 
world opinion and Indian opinion. This second policy 
has the additional advantage, from their point of 
view, of exhausting our energy and toning us down, 
so that, if ultimately a conflict does come, the 
requisite atmosphere is lacking for it. It is the 

general belief among official circles in England that 
their policy of parleys and postponement has had 
this result and the situation in India, which was 
threatening when the Congress ministries resigned, is 
much easier now and no dangers are to be feared. 

It seems to me that while we cannot and must 
not precipitate a conflict, and while we need not 
bang the door to a possible and honourable compro- 
mise, because your methods are never to bang the 
door, still we must make it crystal clear that there 
can be or will be no compromise except on the 

conditions stated by us previously. As a matter of fact 
even these conditions have to be slightly reviewed 
from the point of view of developments in the 

war. We cannot now say, as we then said, that 
we want to know whether this war is imperialist 
or not. The British Government’s answer to us as 
well as their consistent policy in the war and in 
foreign afeirs.has been one of full-blooded imperialism. 
We must, therefore, necessarily proceed on' this 
admitted fact that it is ' an imperialist ' war, any 
profession to the contrary notwithstanding. The war 
and British policy grow more and more sinister 

every day, and 1 would hate to see India entangled 
in any way in this imperialist adventure from which 
India can only lose, not only materially but spiritually. 
This point seems to me of vital importance today. 



2 


HAEIJAN 


[February 17, 1940 


Thus it seems to me that the most important 
thing for us to do is to make our position perfectly 
clear to the world, to the British Government and 
to the Indian people. There is too much misunder- 
standing on this issue of compromise, and this 
misunderstanding is entirely to our disadvantage and 
to the advantage of British imperialism which 
meanwhile is exploiting our resources for the war 
and even pretending to have a large amount of our 
goodwill. Approach by us to the British Government 
or to the Viceroy increases these misunderstandings 
and lead the British Government even further away 
from a right compromise. ” 

The warning is sound. Perhaps I did not 
need it. But such warnings are never superfluous. 
It is unwise to be too sure of one’s Own wisdom. 
It is healthy to be reminded that the strongest 
might weaken and the wisest might err. And 
then, so far as I am concerned, I am so 
ignorant even of current events that I feel 
thankful when co-workers keep me posted with 
things I ought to know. 

But whilst I value the warning given and 
admit the force of the argument advanced, I do 
not repent of my having visited H. E. the 
Viceroy and having had the prolonged talk. It 
has given me added strength. It is of great 
value to an army that its general gains added 
strength. I should therefore repeat the perform- 
ance every time the Viceroy summons me, i. e. 
so long as I have faith in his sincerity. And 
every time I shall come out with greater strength 
than I go with. The method of Satyagraha 
requires that the Satyagrahi should never lose 
hope so long as there is the slightest ground 
left for it. For he never despairs of being able 
to evoke the best in his opponent, his mission 
being to convert the opponent, not humiliate or 
defeat him. He therefore even knocks at his 
opponent’s door if it becomes necessary, as I 
did often with General Smuts. It so happened 
that the last opening, when even I had the 
least hope, proved the prelude to success. 

There ought not to be demoralisation among 
the ranks. It is up to the lieutenants to be in 
constant touch with them and explain to them 
the reason for, and the bearing on the struggle 
of, each step. For whether there is actual 
battle or merely preparation, the education of 
the masses continues without interruption. It is a 
great mistake to suppose that the j revolutionary 
instinct will die. if the garnered energies of the 
people have no outlet. This may be true of 
violent revolution but it is utterly wrong of 
non-violent revolution. I am quite convinced that 
we would put ourselves in the wrong if in out 
impatience we precipitate the battle or, which 
is - the same thing, bang the door on negotia- 
tions. The battle will come at the right time 
when it is clear, beyond doubt that there is no 
escape from it. Misunderstanding created in 
Britain or the world outside need not perturb 
us much for, being foundationless, it is sure to 
disappear in the face of our truth. 


Nor need the prospect worry us, of the nego- 
tiations proving insincere in the sense of their 
being used as a screen to cover Britain’s plans 
to consolidate her strength by misleading world 
opinion and creating and strengthening divisions 
among us. What does matter is our own weak- 
ness for which we alone should be to blaine. 

Segaon, 11-2-40 

OCCASIONAL NOTES 

Pacifism on Trial 

I gave the other day two visitors’ impressions 
of the Conscientious Objectors’ Tribunals in 
England. Their working is not so simple as it 
looked then, and there is plenty of adverse criti- 
cism of their methods. The young men between 
20 and 23 who come before these tribunals mostly 
come from humble homes and most of them 
have had little mote than elementary education. 
They are put through the rack by highly 
educated men of legal and dialectical acumen, 
and it speaks volumes for the strength of faith 
of these young men that stand these judges 
cross-examination. In many cases it becomes an 
obviously unequal game. ‘ What makes you think 
that Christ condemns war ? He .has never said 
so, has He ? ’ are the questions put to every- 
one, and the answers give rise to numerous 
casuistical questions and cross-questions. Whatever 
ma y be Said of this treatment of men with 
honest convictions, there is no doubt that the 
pacifist movement must have brought plenty of 
popular education in its train. Besides, the im- 
plications of pacifism are being discussed thread- 
bare. Evidently the conviction that man ought 
not to kill brother man does demand a high 
price. The very first price to pay is to be, treated 
like a prisoner in the -dock and questioned and 
cross-questioned as though one was an ordinary 
felon. And then there are tribunals and tribu- 
nals. The South Western Tribunal gave 41 per 
cent unconditional exemptions as against 4 per 
cent given by the London Tribunal ! 

To remedy these discrepancies an Appellate 
Tribunal has been appointed with Mr, H. A. L. 
Fisher, Warden of New College, Oxford, as 
Chairman, and Sir Arthur Pugh, a former Trade 
Union Chairman and Sir Leonard Costello, a 
former High Court Judge of Calcutta, as 
members. It is reported that Mr. Fisher asks 
all kinds of questions to establish a man’s 
pacifism, including what sacrifices he has 
made for his pacifism, and often asks a man 
whether he is a teetotaller! The relevance 
of this may not be understood in England, 
but it would be understood here where a 
man’ s pacifism may well be challenged by asking 
him if he is a vegetarian. There is no doubt' 
that pacifism is on its trial and, whatever the 
consequences, all true pacifists must welcome 
the circumstance. 

“ Political ” Pacifists 

The most intriguing case that has come before 
■ the Appellate Tribunal is that of people who 



EebetjarY 17, 1940 ] HARIJAN 


are described as ‘ political ’ pacifists, as distin- 
guished from the type described as religious or 
ethical. There were two cases in which the 
Government were the appellant. Mr. Fisher, the 
Chairman, esplained the distinction between the 
two types. “ The legal point, ” he said, “ is that 
under the terms of this Act protection is given 
to the pacifist, the honest, conscientious paci- 
fist, that is to say, the man who objects to 
war as a thing evil in itself. That was the 
intention of the statute, not to protect every 
form of conscientious objection, ” of which last 
he gave as instances that of a fascist who may 
have “conscientious objection” to fighting for 
parliamentary government, or of a socialist who 
may have an objection to fighting for a capita- 
list State. “The issue,” he added, “is not the 
quality of the conscience, but its character. Does 
a non-pacifist political objector come under this 
Act?” Mr. Fenner Brockway, who appeared for 
one of the objectors, contended that “ the paci- 
fist’s supreme loyalty is to his conception of 
God or of the universe. The socialist’s supreme 
loyalty is to the workers of all lands with whom 
he feels a unity equivalent ter the unity which 
a patriot feels with his nation. To a poli- 
tical objector it would be morally wrong to kill 
his fellow-workers in the interests of the pos- 
sessing class. It is a matter of conscience to him 
no less than to the pacifist.” Moreover he tried 
to show, by quoting from two Cabinet Ministers’ 
speeches, that “it was the intention of those who 
drafted the Act to cover all classes of consci- 
entious objectors. ” The former Calcutta Judge 
in his peremptory manner said : “ The Tribunal 
is not concerned with what some politicians have 
said. It is concerned only with the Act itself.” 
The objection was ruled out, and both the objec- 
tors were ordered to be struck off the register of 
the exemptees. Mr. Brockway has now protested 
against the Tribunal’s refusal to consider the 
Prime Minister’s and Labour Minister’s state- 
ments in the House of Commons, and asked if 
the assurances they gave were scraps of paper. 
The Prime Minister had said that the Act was' 
meant to exclude “only shirkers” and the Labour 
Minister had said that “ conscientious objection 
is not defined in the Act, and local tribunals 
have to use their own judgment in deciding 
whether an application, on whatever ground it 
is based, is or is not of a conscientious nature.” 
In reply to a question: “Can the Minister say 
that he agrees that this House, in giving the 
right to conscientious objectors, meant to do so 
on all those grounds — ethical and political ? ” 
he said: “That is still the idea.” 

If “ conscientious objection” is not defined in 
the Act, the two applicants ought to have been 
•exempted. But taking a detached view, it would 
appear that a pacifist is only he who objects 
to all war as an evil in itself, whether it is 
fought by a Government that has or has 
not his allegiance. 


A Satyagrahi 

There will always be a difference between 
Indian and European Satyagrahis and pacifists. 
An instance which will surprise the West may 
be cited. Even Gandhiji’s fast at Rajkot against 
what he knew to be a grave breach of a 
solemn pledge by the ruler of Rajkot was 
little understood, and when he renounced the 
Gwyer Award many people, especially in the West, 
failed to understand the reason and believed 
that the Award was renounced because Gandhiji 
had realised that his fast was coercive or immoral. 
But Gandhiji had never doubted the purity of 
the fast; only he rejected the Award because he 
felt that his seeking of the Viceroy’s interven- 
tion had vitiated the fast. Shri Shambhushankar, 
a humble worker of Palitana State, is now on 
a similar fast. He underwent a fast of 15 days 
some months ago against what he felt was a 
breach of promise by the Thakore Saheb of Pali- 
tana. The Dewan then persuaded him to 
break the fast on certain assurances. There was 
no allegation of coercion as the Satyagrahi was 
on the best possible terms with the Thakore 
Saheb and the Dewan. Then he was in jail. 
Now he has begun a fast unto death for breach 
of the assurances given to him by the ^ State. 
Today - 11th - is the 21st day of his fast. He is 
perfectly happy and cheerful, his statements are 
free from the slightest expression of anger against 
the State, and his motive is only to rouse the 
conscience of the Thakore Saheb and the Dewan. 
In a letter I have received from him today he 
writes : 

“ After the hammering I received last year at 
Pachhegam and the hammerings received before at 
Dharasna and Rajkot, my body is far from being 
what it used to be. Last time I fasted in the 
Palitana Jail I fainted as early as the third day. 
This time the beautiful spiritual atmosphere about 
me has sustained me, and even ’on this the eighteen- 
th day though I am weak I have enough energy 
in me. Yesterday, for instance, I span two thousand 
yards, and I mean to keep this up so long as God 
vouchsafes the strength to me. Fatiguing as it is, 
it gives me joy. The whole thing has become a 
kind of ritual — spinning and devotional songs- — in which 
young and old, men, women and children join cheer- 
fully. I should be content if, by the time I breathe 
my last, the whole village without a single exception 
pledges itself to spinning and khadi-wearing. It 
would be our humble contribution to Bapu’s great 
task. Please let not Bapu worry about me. His 
silent blessings are enough to lead me on.” 

My heart bows in silent prayer to the intrepid 
spirit of Shambhubhai. Whether he lives or 
dies, he will win, and his victory will have 
blazed a trail that will light the path of many 
a Satyagrahi still to come. 

Segaon, ll-2'-40 M. D. 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radhakrishnan. Rs. 5-10-0. Postage 7 As* 
Available at Harijan Office-Poona 4. 



4 HAEIJAls [ February 17, 1940 


NOTICE 

The Index of Volume VII, covering 10 pages, is 
being given, free of charge, as a supplement to this 
issue. 

Issues of Vol. VII will now be available . at three 
annas per copy, including postage. MANAGER 



4-l(itijcLn 


Feb. 17 


1940 


IS IT WAR? 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

The Builders of the British Indian Erdpire have 
patiently built its four pillars — the European 
Interests, the Army, the Princes and the Com- 
munal Divisions. The last three were to sub- 
serve the first. It is clear to the realist that 
the Builders have to remove the four pillars 
before they can claim to have given up the 
Empire or the Empire spirit. But they say to 
the nationalists or the destroyers of the Empire 
spirit, “ You have to deal with all the four 
pillars yourselves, before we can treat India as 
an Independent Nation instead of being our 
Dependency.” They say in other words, “ Guaran- 
tee the European interests, make your own 
army, treat with the Princes and with the 
.communalists otherwise known as minorities,” 
The Destroyers retort: “ You imposed the Euro- 
pean interests on us, for their defence you 
built an army and kept it a close preserve, you 
saw that you could use the then existing Princes 
for your own purpose, you made them and un- 
made them, you created new ones, you armed 
them with powers they could not enjoy before 
with safety, in fact you partitioned India so 
that it could never rise against you in one mass. 
You saw again that we were cursed with the 
caste spirit, you took advantage of our weak- 
ness and refined it till at last claims are made 
which, if they were satisfied, there would be no 
single Indian nation and no independence. Add to 
all this the fact that by your policy of disarma- 
ment you have emasculated a whole nation. But 
we do not blame you for the past. On the 
contrary we admire your bravery, skill and spirit 
of adventure. You have copied other Empire 
Builders who preceded you. You have improved 
upon them in a variety of ways. But if you pro- 
fess, as you have professed, that you have decided 
to give India her due, then you have to remove 
from our way the obstacles you have created. 
You are entitled to ask us to recognise the 
difficulties in the way of your making delivery 
and even to help you. If you are honest, you 
will leave us to do the best. You must trust 
our sense of justice, not your strong arm, to 
make us do what is right and proper. Hitherto 
you have determined our fate for us. Now if 
you are earnest, you will not only let us 


determine the method and manner of governing 
ourselves but even help us to do so, if we 
want your help.” 

Lord Zetland has given the answer to the 
Destroyers which I paraphrase as follows: “We 
mean to hold on to what we have. Within that 
orbit, we will let you have such freedom as 
we think is good for you. This war that we 
are fighting is to prevent the disruption of our 
Empire. We want your help, if you will give 
it on these terms. It is good for you and us. 
But we will do without your help if you will 
not give it. You are not the only party we 
have to deal with. There are many in India 
who recognise the benefits- of British Rule and 
pax Britannica. We propose to win the war 
with the help we can command from India 
through the loyal agencies. Their services we 
shall recognise by the grant of further reforms 
when the time comes. This is what we mean 
when we say we shall make the world safe for 
democracy. For we are the most democratic 
power in the world. Therefore, if we are safe, 
so are those who are with us. Those like India 
who are under our tutelage will be initiated 
into the art of democracy in gradual stages so 
that their progress may be uninterrupted and 
they might not have to go through the travail 
we had to go through. ” 1 hope the paraphrase 
does no injustice to Lord Zetland. If it is 
fairly correct, the issues are quite clear. Between 
the two — the Nationalist and the Imperialist — 
there is no meeting ground. If, therefore. Lord 
Zetland represents the British Government’s 
considered view, it is a declaration of war 
against nationalist India. For all the four pillars 
stand firm, rock-like. The more the nationalists 
try to deal with them as if they were problems 
for which they were responsible, the firmer they 
must become. I cannot conscientiously pray for 
the success of British arms if it means a further 
lease of life to India’s subjection to foreign 
domination. I write this last sentence with a 
heavy heart. 

Segaon, 13-2-40 

BANGING THE DOOR 

Gandhiji has issued the following statement 
to the press: 

Lord Zetland’s recent pronouncement, if report- 
ed correctly, sets at rest all speculation regarding 
the Government’s attitude towards the national- 
ist demand. I have been taught to believe that 
Dominion Status after the Statute of Westminster 
pattern is akin to Independence and includes 
the right to secede. Therefore I had thought 
there would be no difficulty about Britain allow- 
ing India to determine her own status. But 
Lord Zetland makes it clear that Britain, not 
India, has to determine it. In other words, the 
British hold on India must remain. He also puts 
the burden upon the nationalists of solving the 
minorities question and the like. I have shown 
how impossible this is without previous recogni- 




February 17, 1940 3 HARIJAN 5 


tion of India’s Independence, no doubt subject 
to safeguards. His Lordship thinks that, because 
some Indians have received the boon of English 
education and have learnt ideas of freedom 
from British writers, they will want always to 
be under British tutelage, euphemistically called 
partnership. This is what I call banging the door 
upon the nationalist position. Does it mean a 
pact deadlier than was announced at the last 
Round Table Conference? If it does, it is a 
declaration of war against nationalists who are 
out to destroy the empire spirit. I submit that 
it is wrong to dismiss the Indian claim by 
accusing the nationalists of losing realities 

in idealism. I suggest that it is he who refuses 
to &ce realities and is wandering in a 

forest of unrealities. I cannot accuse him of 

idealism. I assure him that Nationalist India is 

dreadfully in earnest. 

Segaon, 14-2-40 

Notes 

India without the British 

A retired English collector thus cables from 
England : 

“ Please consider that India without British troops 
and the sure shield of the British navy would be 
at the mercy of Pathans, Afghans and Japan. The' 
Constituent Assembly would all be in a concentration 
camp very quickly or killed, Satyagraha only works 
with civilised people who are gentlemen. ” 

These are honest fears of an honest English- 
man. But the fears are only imaginary. The 
English friend gives little credit to Indian 
nationalists when he thinks that they contem- 
plate a Constituent Assembly in a vaccuum 

which can be blown to pieces by any power. 

If there is an honourable settlement, the Consti- 
tuent Assembly will meet in the presence of the 
British but without any interference from them. 
If there is no settlement, it will meet after a 
successful rebellion, in which case India will 

have made herself ready to face any emer- 
gency. There is no other contingency possible 
in which a Constituent Assembly can mekt» 
These fears reflect no credit on the British 

regime in India. Whose fault is it that India 
has no army and navy of her own? But the 
absence of army and navy will not deter an 
awakened people from throwing over domination, 
foreign or indigenous. My friend’s ignorance of 
the working of Satyagraha is quite ezcusable. I 
have no finished example of a nation having 
modelled her life on the basis of Satyagraha. I 
can only assure him that it is not the sob-stuflF 
he believes it to be. It is of little use if it can 
work only among the so-called civilised people. 
The partition separating the civilised from the 
•uncivilised is very thin. Both act almost alike 
’•when their passions are roused. 

Segaon, 12-2-40 


A Curious Situaricn 

The Secretary of the Valmiki Mandai, 
Ludhiana, says in a letter: 

“ Under the Poona Pact, eight seats were allotted 
to the Punjab Hindu Depressed Classes on the 
Punjab Legislative Assembly. These seats were 
deducted from Hindu seats. Sikh and other Depressed 
Class people were counted amongst their own 
co-religionists. The Sikh Harijans are fighting with 
their own high caste Sikh brethren for separate 
seats and we wish them full success- But we also 
wish that they should not encroach upon what has 
been allotted to us." 

Consequently the Mandai has sent a petition 
to the Punjab Government, from which I take 
the relevant extracts: 

“ It has been published in the papers that orders 
have been issued to Deputy Commissioners for the 
preparation of the votor’s lists for the coming elec- 
tions of the Punjab Legislative Assembly. In that 
very connection, we beg to approach you with the 
following : 

1. That, according to the Poona Pact, made 
between the High Caste Hindus and Depressed Class 
Hindus, ratified by the Government, eight seats were 
allotted in the Punjab Legislative Assembly to Hindu 
Depressed Classes or Hindu Scheduled Castes as 
they are called. 

2. That these seats were deducted from the total 
number of Hindu seats. 

3. That the Sikh and Muslim Depressed Classes 
or Scheduled Caste people, for instance Sikh Chamars 
or Sikh Valmikis, having been counted amongst 
their own co-religionists, could not become voters or 
members in the above-named eight constituencies. 

4. That great confusion is prevalent regarding the 
third point. 

5. That to ensure the right interpretation, and to 
avoid objection petitions on a large scale, instructions 
may very kindly be issued, not to enlist Sikhs as 
voters in the above-named constituencies, or a column 
of religion may also be added. " 

The petitioners’ objection is quite sound. But 
why should there be Sikh, Muslim or Christian 
untouchables? Has the bait of power made the 
converts repent of their conversion ? If the 
problem is not carefully and justly handled, with 
all-round growing consciousness it may give rise 
to embarrassing complications. There need be no 
surprise if to be classed among the chosen 
Scheduled Classes becomes a coveted privilege 
instead of being a sign of reproach. Time was 
when those who were regarded by the Govern- 
ment or society as untouchables resented the 
appellation and were trying to avoid it. Now 
the emphasis is the other way. Let it be remem- 
bered in this connection that it is only Hinduism 
that has the dishonour of having untouchables 
legally known as Scheduled Classes. 

Segaon, 12-2-40 

Adulteration of Ghee 

Dr. Kailas Nath Katju writes: 

“ I have read with great interest in Harijan of 
20th January your note on adulteration of ghee. 



6 


HARIJAN 


[Febbuasy 17, 1940 


It may interest you to know that before we 
resigned office in the U. P. this problem had 
engaged our closest consideration. Adulteration is 
rampant and must be stopped. ■ The misfortune is 
that it is -not only the ghee-dealer and the middle- 
man who have taken to adulterations but even the 
ghee producers in the villages are resorting to 
adulteration in their own homes before they bring 
ghee to the market. The cheap vanaspati and other 
vegetable ghee so ^called make adulteration such an 
easy process. We considered the question of com- 
pulsory admixture of vegetable oils with some edible 
colour or flavour, but the difficulty is to discover 
some such harmless colour or flavour. In the hot 
climate of India there is a danger of injury to 
health by the use of such fast colour. 

We had drafted and introduced in the U. P. 
Legislature a comprehensive bill to stop this 
mischief. It was at the committee stage when we 
resigned. The bill confers power on the Provincial 
Government to prescribe colouring or flavouring of 
artificial ghee or vegetable oils. But I think the 
more useful and really important provision in the bill 
for the purpose in hand is that which arms the Pro- 
vincial Government with the power to prohibit sale 
of artificial or vegetable ghee in ghee-producing areas. 
I have known of rural areas where ghee is produced 
on a large scale and where practically no one 
consumes vegetable ghee, yet vegetable ghee is sold in 
huge quantities and purchased by people for purposes 
of adulteration. We thought that in such areas where 
vegetable ghee is really sold for these universal pur- 
poses the only proper method is to prohibit its sale 
altogether, and thus protect and foster the genuine 
ghee industry. 

I hope this measure will meet with your approval. 
Agriculture without dairy industry cannot flourish. In 
the U. P. we also encouraged the formation in large 
numbers of ghee co-operative societies, and I insisted 
that the bye-laws of such societies must have strin- 
gent regulations to stop and check adulteration by its 
members. That was also proving efficacious, 

I am writing this to you in the hope that it 
may interest the readers of Harijan"' 

The suggestion made by Dr. Katju about 
specially dealing with ghee producing areas is 
worthy of consideration. Indeed the question of 
adulteration of this important article of national 
diet is so important that it requires all-India 
treatment. It need not wait for disposal of the 
so-called higher politics. 

On the way to Delhi, 5-2-40 M. K. G. 

To Correspondents and Message-seekers 

In spite of my notice in Harijan of Decem- 
ber 23rd those who can spare me continue to 
write and ask for messages. I would refer them 
to the notice for fuller explanation. I know 
several intimate friends have not received acknow- 
ledgments or messages. They will forgive me, 
I have to harden, my heart, if I am to cope 
with the responsibility I am carrying. And what 
can be better than that I should commence with 
known friends? 

Segaon, 15-1-40 M. K. G, 


EEDISCOVERIG RELIGION 

II 

“ One Fraternity ” 

But what really shall we rediscover ? To 
rediscover Christianity is to rediscover Religion, 
When Gandhiji asks the Hindus to eradicate 
from Hinduism the blot of untouchability he 
appeals to them apparently to rediscover Hindu- 
ism but really to rediscover Religion. It was an 
agreeable surprise to me to find a lay poet like 
John Drinkwater quoted in a Christian manifesto 
the other day : 

“We know the paths wherein our feet should press. 
Across our hearts are written Thy decrees: 

Yet now, O Lord, be merciful to bless 
With more than these. 

Grant us the will to fashion as we feel, 

Grant us the strength to labour as we know, 
Grant us the purpose, ribb’d and edged with steel,. 
To strike the blow. 

Knowledge we ask not — knowledge Thou hast lent,. 
But, Lord, the will — there lies our bitter need. 
Give us to build above the deep intent 
The deed, the deed.” 

That prayer of Drinkwater can be adopted by 
people of all creeds. The poet in these and the 
earlier stanzas expresses the feelings of us all- 
Man is not so much in need of “ a clearer 
vision ”, or of “ a fuller knowledge of the end ”, 
'or of “the high perception” of “ when to re- 
frain and when fulfil” or of “the understanding to- 
sift the good from ill”. All these, men learned 
in religious lore — Christian lore, Hindu lore,, 
Islamic lore, Jewish lore — have in an ample 
measure. What most of us lack, however, is the 
will * to fashion as we feel the ‘ strength to 
labour as we know what most of us lack so 
badly is ‘ the deed, the deed’. 

, And here I am reminded of the story . of 
Rabbi Cohen, whom Woodrow Wilson called the 
first citizen of Texas, told in an issue of the 
American Readers' Digest. At the age of 75 he* 
spends his time scurrying through the streets of 
Galveston intent on errands of goodwill, “pre- 
cisely as he has’ been from morning to night 
for more than 50 years.” His hobby is to help 
people, no matter what their race or creed. He* 
seeks out men released from prison, he seeks* 
out unthrifty people, patients .in hospital, and. 
helps them. He rushes out of his office meeting 
the waifs and strays. He has got their names 
scribbled on the cuff of his sleeve which he 
calls his note-book, and never retires to bed 
until the last name is crossed off. “But Rabbi,” 
his interviewer asks, “ there didn’t seem to be 
many Jews on that list.” The Rabbi looks at 
him and says: “ Why, no. There wasn’t onei 
" What difference does that make? In this town 
there is no such thing as Methodist mumps^ 
Baptist domestic troubles, Presbyterian poverty 
or Catholic broken legs.” If he was in India, 
he might have added : “ Hindu plague, Muslim 
poverty, Jain cholera and so on.” 



FEBEUARY 17, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


7 


A Russian revolutionary, who had escaped 
from Russia as a stowaway and was now in a 
Galveston prison, sent a message to Rabbi Cohen 
to say that he had learnt that his family was 
starving and that he was to be deported on the 
next ship, and that in Russia he would have 
to face a firing squad. The immigration officer in 
Galveston could do nothing, Washington could 
do nothing, and yet something had to be done. 
Rabbi Cohen bikes to the jail to see him, bikes 
back, stops at a friend’s, borrows a hundred dollars 
and catches a train for Washington. He peddles 
down to the Department of Labour, where the 
Secretary politely says nothing could be done. 
He then rushes to President Taft who says to 
him: “No exceptions* You Jews are wonderful. 
I don’t know of any people who will do as 
much for their own race and creed as you do.” 
“My own creed!" exclaims Rabbi Cohen. “What 
-do you mean, Mr. President? This man is not a 
Jew! He is a Greek Catholic!” President Taft 
jumps. “A Greek Catholic! You came all the 
way from Texas to intercrede for a Greek Catho- 
lic ? ’’ “ Certainly,’’ says the Rabbi, “ He is a 
human being, isn’t he ? ’’ Taft is moved, he 
immediately gives orders for the Russian revolu- 
tionary’s release and for his being put in the 
-custody of Rabbi Cohen. The Rabbi gets him a 
pb in a boiler factory, and he eventually gets 
his family out of Russia. 

This humanitarian work to which the Rabbi 
■devotes a third of his time has prompted the 
•citizens of Galveston to build him the Cohen 
Community House at a cost of 100,000 dollars. 
Not that he has neglected his own community. 
He has worked for Jewish refugees as none 
else has done, and “ his refugee work was so 
successful that during the trouble with Mexico 
in 1913, Congress, on the recommendation of 
the American Red Cross, voted 75,000 dollars 
to the care for refugees from Mexico, to be 
administered by Rabbi Cohen entirely at bis 
discretion.” 

He has revolutionised the prison conditions in 
Texas and has even helped in setting aside 
wrong convictions. He investigated the case 
of a man called Sidney Porter, appealed to the 
Governor, and months afterwards a man appeared 
at Cohen’s door saying : “ I am Sidney Porter. 
I can’t do anything now to pay you for what 
you have done for me. But I am a writer. I 
will write things to help your people.” He was 
the distinguished story-writer O’Henry! 

Rabbi Cohen goes to his congregation and 
preaches too. But any great text is good enough 
for him. “ Look at the golden rule in Confu- 
cius,” he says. “ I would as soon preach on 
a text from Confucius as the Talmud if the 
truth is there” And so he is asked to speak in 
the Protestant churches of Galveston, and 
“every Protestant minister, and Catholic priest, 
too, have spoken in the synagogue and the Henry 
Cohen Community House.” And his example has 
been infectious. The Jews are less than two 


per cent in Galveston, and yet hundreds of 
Catholics voted for a Jewish major. This Catholic 
priest said to the writer of the sketch of Rabbi 
Cohen : “ Why is it we judge a man in this 
town not for his race or his creed, but for what 
he is himself ? The answer is Rabbi Cohen." 

That indeed is rediscovering Religion, When 
we have rediscovered Religion by the grace of 
God, then indeed will J. A. Symonds’ dream be 
fulfilled. Then shall arise a loftier race of men 
who 

” Shall be gentle, brave and strong 
To spill no drop of blood, but dare 
All that may plant man’s lordship’s firm 
On earth and fire and sea, and air. 

Nation with nation, land with land 
Unarmed shall live as comrades free; 

In every heart and brain shall throb 
The pulse of one fraternity. 

New arts shall bloom of loftier mould 
And mightier music thrill the skies 
And ev'ery life shall be a song 
When all the earth is paradise." 

Gandhiji did not touch this aspect of the redis- 
covery of Christianity when talking with Mr. 
Smith, but when he asked him and his co- 
workers to help in reconstructing future civilisa- 
tion on surer foundations he meant all this. 

New Delhi, 5-2-40 ' M. D. 

THE QUESTION BOX 
{By M. K. GandhO 
Untruth in Law Courts 

Q. I have followed with interest the contro- 
versy that has grown round your article in • 
Harijan “The Fourfold Ruin”. Whatever one 
may say about the arguments used on either 
side in this controversy, one thing I am in a 
position to . assert without fear of contradiction, 
from my experience as a judicial officer of the 
present system of our law. Courts and the insti- 
tution of lawyers are mainly responsible for the 
moral and spiritual degradation of our village 
peasantry in particular and the public in general. 
Even ‘ respectable ’ people, whom one has learnt 
to regard as the soul of honour in their ordi- 
nary every-day life, will tell barefaced lies’ for 
a trifle in a law court and think nothing of it. 
The canker is eating into the vitals of our 
village life. Would you suggest as to what a 
person in my position ( viz. a judge ), who has 
to record evidence and give judicial decisions, 
can do to check this evil? 

A. What you say is too true. The atmosphere 
round law courts is debasing as any visitor 
passing through them can see. I hold radical 
views about the administration of justice. But 
mine, I know, is a voice in the wilderness.’ 
Vested interests will not allow radical reform 
unless India comes into her own through truthful 
and non-violent means. If that glorious event 
happens, the administration of law and ihedicine 
will be as cheap and healthy as it is today dear 
and unhealthy. The heroic advice will be for 



8 HARIJAN [Februaey 17, 1940 


you to descend from the bench, embrace poverty 
and serve the poor. The prosaic will be for you 
to do the best you can in the very difficult 
circumstances in which you find yourself, 
reduce life to its simplest terms and devote your 
savings for the service of the poor, 

Ahimsa v. Self-respect 

Q. I am a university student. Yesterday 
evening some of us went to a cinema show. 
During the performance two of us went outside 
leaving our handkerchiefs behind on our seats. 
On our return we found that two British sol- 
diers had taken possession of these seats un- 
ceremoniously in spite of the clearest warning 
and entreaty by otir friends. When requested to 
vacate the seats they not only refused but 
showed an inclination to fight. They browbeat 
the cinema manager who, being Indian, was 
easily cowed down. In the end the garrison 
officer was called and they vacated their seats. 
If he had not appeared, there would have been 
only two alternatives before us, either to resort 
to violence and maintain our self-respect, or to 
allow ourselves to be browbeaten and quietly 
occupy some other seat. The latter would 
have been too humiliating. How would you 
apply the principle of non-violence under such 
circumstances ? 

A. I must admit the difficulty of solving the 
riddle. Two ways occur to me of dealing with 
the situation non-violently. First, firmly to stand 
the groimd till the seats are vacated; secondly, 
deliberately so to stand as to obstruct the view 
of the usurpers. In each case you run the risk 
of being beaten by the usurpers. I am not satis- 
fied with my answers. But they meet the special 
circumstances in which we are placed. The ideal 
answer no doubt is not to bother about the 
usurpation of the personal right but to reason 
with the usurpers and, if they do not listen, to 
report such cases to the authorities concerned 
and, in case of failure, take them to the high- 
est tribunal. This is the constitutional method 
which is not taboo in a non-violent conception 
of society. Not to take the law into one’s own 
hands is essentially a non-violent method. But the 
ideal has no relation to reality in this country 
because the index of expectation of justice for 
Indians in cases where white men and specially 
white soldiers are concerned is almost zero. 
Hence it is necessary to resort something like 
what I have st^geseed. But I know that when 
we have real non-violence in us a non-violent 
way out is bound, without effort, to occur to 
us when we find ourselves in a difficult situation. 

Students and the Coming Fight 

Q. Although a college student I am a four 
anna member of the Congress. You say I may 
not take any active part in the coming struggle 
whilst I am studying. What part do you expect 
the student world to take in the freedom 
movement ? 


A. There is a confusion of thought in the. • 
question. The fight is going on now and it will, 
continue till the nation has come to her birth- 
right. Civil disobedience is one of the many 
methods of fighting. So far as I can judge 
today, I have no intention of calling out 

students. Millions will not take part in civil 
disobedience. But millions will help in a variety 
of ways. 

1. Students can, by learning the art of volun- 
tary discipline, fit themselves for leadership in 
the various branches of the nation’s work. 

2. They can aim not at finding lucrative 
careers but at becoming national servants after 
completing their studies. 

3. They can set apart for the national coffers 
a certain sum from their allowances. 

4. They can promote intercommunal, inter- 
provincial and intercaste harmony among them- 
selves and fraternise with Harijans by abolishing 
the least trace of untouchability from their lives, 

5. They can spin regularly and use certified 
khadi to the exclusion of all other cloth as 
well as hawk khadi. 

6. They can set apart a certain time every 
week, if not every day, for service in a village 
or villages nearest to their institutions and, 
during the vacation, devote a certain time daily 
for national service. 

The time may of course come when it may 
be necessary to call out the students as I did 
before. Though the contingency is remote, it 
will never come, if I have any say in the 

matter, unless the students have qualified them- 
selves previously in the manner above described. 

Segaon, 12-2-40 

TO AGENTS 

Agents at times ask [us to send books, paper, 

etc., in book post packets or railway parcels con- 

taining copies of Harijan. This is not possible in 
view of the fact that these packets and parcels, 

being sent undfeir concession rates, can contain nothing 
but copies of a registered newspaper. Agents will, 
therefore, please not repeat this request nor expect 
us to send them individual replies to this effect. 

Manager. 

Swadeshi — True and False 

By Gandhiji & Others 

Articles reprinted from Young India and Harijan. 
Printed on handmade paper. ^ Foolscap 17 pages. 
Price one anna; or two annas including postage. 

Available at Harijan Office-Poona 4 

CONTENTS Page 

The Old Game? ... M. K. Gandhi 1 

Occasional Notes ... M. D. 2 

Is It War? ... M. K. Gandhi 4 

Banging the Door ... M. K. Gandhi 4 

Rediscovering Religion — II... M. D. 6 

The Question Box ... M. K. Gandhi 7 

Notes : 

India without the British... M. K. G. 5 

A Curious Situation ... M. K. G. 5 

Adulteration of Ghee ... M. K. G. 5 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4 
Snbscriptioa Rate» — INLAND : One year, Bs. 4, Six months, Bs. 2-8, Foreign : One year, Bs. 5-8 or, 8 sh. or 2 S. 



Reg. No. B 3092 



Editor ; MAHADEV DESAI 


VoL. VIII, No. 2 ] POONA — SATURDAY, FEBRUARY 24. 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


COMMUNAL DECISION 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

During my brief stay in Bengal I have been 
overwhelmed with questions on the Communal 
Decision. I have been told that neither the 
Working Committee nor I have pronounced 
decisive opinion on it. The Working Com- 
mittee’s decision is written in its records 
and has been published. It has neither accepted 
nor rejected the Decision. There can be neither 
acceptance nor rejection of an imposed thing. A 
prisoner is not required to accept the sentence 
pronounced against him. His rejection would be 
meaningless. For he would soon find himself 
undeceived. The Communal Decision has been 
imposed upon India not for her own good but 
for strengthening the British Imperial hold on 
India. The Working Committee has, therefore, 
as much accepted and as much rejected the 
Decision as Bengal has. There is this difference, 
however, that the Working Committee has not 
agitated against it like Bengal. 

For me, I detest the Decision. It has benefited 
no single party in India but the British. If the 
Muslims flatter themselves with the belief that 
they have profited by it, they will soon find 
that they were sadly mistaken. If I could alter 
the Decision and make it what it should be, I 
should do so this very moment. But I have no 
such power. The power can only come if there 
is unity, Bengal is the most glaring instance of 
injustice. I can conceive of no just reason for 
putting the wedge of the tremendous European 
vote between the two major communities. Their 
number is insignificant. Their interest is pro- 
tected by the British bayonet. Why should that 
interest have added strength given to it by its 
introduction in the legislature? I can understand 
its representation without vote so as to enable 
it to put its case before the legislature. So long 
as it has the protection of the British bayonet, 
its over-representation on the legislature is a 
wholly unjust imposition. The whole face of 
the Bengal legislature would be changed if 
the European vote was withdrawn. Today that 
legislature is - not wholly responsible to the 
people, the real voters. The European bloc 
*gives peace neither to the Muslims nor the 
Hindus. Muslim ministers may flatter themselves 
with the belief that they are safe with the 
European vote. They may be safe as indivi- 
duals, but the national interest cannot be stife if 
a body of persons who are numerically insig- 


nificant are given an artificially decisive voting 
strength in a democratic assembly. It deprives 
the latter of its democratic character. 

Thus the evil contained in the Decision I 
know. But I do not know how to deal with 
it except by patient endeavour. This 1 do know 
that there can be no real Swaraj so long as 
that Decision stands. Bengal is a glaring instance 
of the inequity. Assam is another. A critical 
examination of the Decision would show that 
it has very little to recommend itself from the 
national standpoint. It can be altered either by 
the British Government redressing the wrong or 
by successful rebellion. I was going to add by 
mutual agreement. But that seems an impossi- 
bility even if Hindus and Muslims agreed. Euro- 
peans have also to agree, and they have to agree 
to self-abnegation — an event unknown in politics. 
If there was self-abnegation, there would no 
European interest in India which is hostile to 
the national interest. He will he a bold man 
who will assert and hope to prove that there was 
in India no European interest hostile to the nation. 

On the train to Calcutta, 19-2-40 

QUESTION BOX 

(By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Unity V. Justice 

Q. In your article ‘ Unity v. Justice ’ you say 
that, if you give more than his due to your 
brother, you neither bribe him nor do you do 
an injustice. You say: “ I can disarm suspicion 
only by being generous. Justice without generosity 
is done at the expense of the very cause for 
which it is sought to be done.” I submit that 
justice and generosity cannot go hand in hand. 
As Dryden has rightly observed, “ Justice is 
blind, it knows nobody.” Besides, you can be 
generous to the weak, meek and the humble, 
not to one who in the arrogance of his strength 
seeks to coerce you into submission. To give 
more than his due to such a person is not 
generosity but cowardly surrender. Though Hindus 
are numerically stronger, their majority, as you 
yourself have pointed out, is only fictitious and 
actually they are the weaker party. Besides, if 
generosity is to be shown to the Muslims, the 
only organisation that is. competent to offer it 
is the Hindu Mahasabha. What right has a third 
party to be generous to one of the two parties 
to a dispute at the other party’s expense ? 

A, In my article referred to by you I have 
dealt with general principles, not with particular 
minorities. Even as justice to be justice has to 



10 


HARIJAK 


[ Februaey 24, 1940 


be generous, generosity in order to justify itself 
has got to be strictly just. Therefore it should 
not be at the expense of any single interest. 
Hence there cannot be any question of sacrific- 
ing some minority or minorities, for the benefit 
of any minority. You are right again in con- 
tending that generosity has to be shown to the 
weak and the humble, and not to the bully. 
Nevertheless I would say, on behalf of the bully, 
that even he is entitled to justice, for immediately 
you brush aside the bully and be unjust to him 
you justify his bullying. Thus the only safe — 
not to put it higher — rule of conduct is to do 
generous justice, irrespective of the character of 
the minority. I am quite sure that where there 
is strictest justice the question of majority and 
minority would not arise. The bully is a portent 
and is an answer to some existing circumstance, 
as for instance cowardice. It is often forgotten 
that cowardice can be unjust. The fact is that 
cowards have no sense of justice. They yield 
only to threat, or actual use, of force. I do not 
know that there is any question of choice 
between a coward and a bully. The one is as 
bad as the other, with this difference that the 
bully always follows the coward in point of time. 

In a previous issue I have admitted that the 
proper organisation to enter into settlements is 
the Hindu Mahasabha, so far as Hindus are 
concerned, or any such organisation. The Con- 
gress endeavours to represent all communities. 
It is not by design, but by the accident of 
Hindus being politically more conscious than the 
others, that the Congress contains a majority of 
Hindus. As history proves the Congress is a joint 
creation of Muslims, Christians, Parsis, Hindus, 
led by Englishmen, be it said to the credit of 
the latter. And the Congress, in spite of all 
that may be said to the contrary, retains that 
character. At the present moment a Muslim 
divine is the unquestioned leader of the 
Congress and for the , second time becomes its 
president. The constant endeavour of Congressmen 
has been to have as many members as possible 
drawn from the various communities, and there- 
fore the Congress has entered into pacts for 
the purpose of securing national solidarity. It 
cannot, therefore, divest itself of that function, 
and therefore, although I have made the admis- 
sion that the Hindu Mahasabha or a similar 
Hindu organisation can properly have communal 
settlements, the Congress cannot and must not 
plead incapacity for entering into political pacts 
so long as it commands general confidence. 

On the train to Calcutta, 16-2-40 

To Correspondents and Message-seekers 

In spite of my notice in Harijan of Decem- 
ber 23rd those who can spare me continue to 
write and ask for messages. I would refer them 
to the notice for fuller explanation. I know 
several intimate friends have not received acknow- 
ledgments or messages. They will forgive me. 

I have to harden rny heart if I am to cope 
with the responsibility^ I am carrying. And what 
can be better than that I should commence with 
known friends ? Segaon, 15-1-40 M. K. G. 


OCCASIONAL NOTES 

All for the Empire 

In his recent Mansion House speech the 
British Prime Minister said: 

“ It is becoming increasingly clear that the German 
Government has long planned the successive stages 
of a programme of conquest, and that its appetite 
grows by what it feeds upon. Today the members 
of that Government do not hesitate to say that they 
desire to achieve the ruin of the British Empire, and 
no doubt they would rejoice if they could treat us 
as they are treating the victims already within their 
grip. We, on our side, have no such vindictive 
designs. To put it about that the Allies desire the 
annihilation of the German people is a fantastic and 
malicious invention which could only be put forward 
for home consumption. But, on the other hand, the 
German people must realise that the responsibility 
for the prolongation of this war and all the suffer- 
ing that it may bring in the coming year is theirs 
as well as that of the tyrants who stand over them. 
They must realise that the desire of the Allies for 
a social, human, just, Christian settlement cannot be 
satisfied by assurances which experience has proved 
to be worthless. ” 

Apart from what “the vile” German Govern- 
ment have done, is it not clear from this 
statement that the war is being fought for the 
preservation of the Empire? Germany has deva- 
stated Poland and Russia Finland, but neither 
has yet declared that her intention is to anni- 
hilate Britain or the British people. The British 
Empire is a different propositon altogether. 
Is “ a social, human, just, Christian settlement ” 
compatible with the existence and defence of 
the Empire and the exploitation that it necessarily 
means? Also is such “ a‘ social, human, just, 
Christian settlement” possible while Britain retains 
her Empire and imperialism? Evidently according 
to Lord Zetland it is possible. So long as imperia- 
lism lasts, it must excite the jealousy of the other 
powers. If imperialism was really given up, there 
would be no incentive to war on either side. 
As things are, both the sides are equally to 
blame for the prolongation of the war. For there 
must be Christian conduct before a Christian 
settlement becomes a possibility. 

“ Not Gandhi or Nehru but Hitler ” 

This was the heading of an “ unofficial note ” 
passed for publication by the Information OflEcer: 

In a recent issue the Rheinisch — Westfaelische 
Zeitung of Essen ( Germany ) wrote ; 

* Poor Englishmen ! They still live in . the illusion 
that they can save their Empire. But the Empire 
is crumbling to pieces. 

‘India will soon be free from the yoke of the 
white race. Nehru, the future Gandhi, who went to 
school in Moscow, has said that England will shortly 
see it. The fate of India, the fate of the British 
Empire, will, however, not be decided in the far lands 
overseas, but in Europe — when Germany has won 
the war.” 

It is rather difficult to see the point of this 
note. We know that the British Government do 



Febeuary 24, 1940 ] HAEIJAW li 


not want Hitler to decide the fate of India or 
of the British Empire. But do they not, or must 
they not, want India to decide it? If they will 
permit India to decide her fate, i, e, of the 
Empire, Hitler may be successfully prevented 
from taking the task upon himself. But if they 
will not permit India to do so — Lord Zetland 
has declared that he will not — the war is 
automatically prolonged, and God alone knows 
who will decide the fate of India and the Empire. 
British arms have not availed to prevent the 
devastation of Poland or of Finland. Is there any 
certainty that they will prevail against further 
ruin? On the other hand, is not the certainty 
greater of war ending soon if and when Britain 
has made a voluntary surrender of the Empire? 

"An Infernal Nuisance*' 

But there are all kinds of arguments advanced. 
India's defence, her minority problem, her divi- 
sions, etc., are all obstacles to her being given 
a free hand to determine her constitution. There 
were the same problems with respect to the 
Dominions which now enjoy virtual independence, 
but they were inhabited by people who had the 
same colour of skin as the Britishers and so 
the problems ceased to be regarded as obstacles. 
What they will not voluntarily yield to a non- 
violent India, they had to yield to the rebellious 
whites in the Dominions. But evidently the 
conscience of the British people has been roused, 
and they ,see the justice of India’s case. For 
Mr.. Vernon Bartlett wrote in The News Chronicle 
brushing aside all the pleas that are trotted out: 

“ But the Indian problem is as simple or as 
complicated as you like to make it. There is no 
part of this globe where the religious, racial and 
economic difficulties give more scope to the obstruc- 
tionist. As against that, few facts are simpler to 
understand than that the effort by a few thousand 
white men to keep under control some three 
hundred and fifty million brown men is a lasting 
and dangerous cause of unrest 

How would you feel about it if you were to learn 
from the newspapers that your Government had sud- 
denly involved you in a war at the request of some 
people on the other side of the globe, from whom 
you differed in race, language, religion and even the 
colour of your skin? 

There are* millions of Indians ready to fight for 
India, but why should we expect them all to be 
ready to fight for British rule over India? 

Because so many of them fought in the last war ? 
But' their effort then has not brought them self- 
government, although, while that war was still in 
progress, the other Dominions achieved Home Rule. 

We have — and let us admit it frankly — very 
little more right to demand that the Indians should 
fight for us than Hitler has to demand the self- 
sacrifice of the Czechs. 

And yet we very much need Indian, help, for, 
man power apart, India is among the world’s largest 
producers of a whole range of important . supplies — 
manganese, mica, shellac, jule, cotton, rice, tea are 
only some of them. 


Almost more important is the effect of Indian 
help on the neutrals. The largest meeting I ever 
attended in New York was one to protest against 
British rule in India. 

It may be unfair, but it is undeniable that immense 
harm would be done not only to our military 
strength, but also to our hope of winning ever- 
increasing neutral support in this war if the Chamber- 
lain Government were to put into execution those 
threats of force at which Sir Samuel Hoare so 
unfortunately hinted in his speech from the Treasury 
Bench. 

That Indian help can be obtained. How, it is not 
for me to suggest in detail. But we start off with a 
valuable fact in our favour. The leaders of Congress 
Party claim independence for India on the principle 
of democratic self-determination — that means that 
they are, ipso facto, allied to us against Hitlerism. 

Or they will be as soon as they have any evi- 
dence from the Viceroy’s treatment of their own 
case that the British Government itself believes in 
that principle. There is nothing like a common 
foreign policy for smoothing out domestic differences. 

Congress does not represent all India ? There are 
minorities that must be protected ? But what party 
anywhere represents a whole population ? Where are 
there no minorities ? The Hindu-Moslem disputes 
undoubtedly make the problem much more difficult, 
but the difficulty will never be lessened ' if we in 
Great Britain make Home Rule of India dependent 
upon their disappearance 

The obvious truth about India is that she will be 
an infernal nuisance until she has self-government.. 
She is growing up as a political entity in the 
modern world. She has reached that stage when 
she would rather make a mess of things by govern- 
ing herself than be better governed by others. Any 
people passing through that stage needs sympathy, 
and is grateful for it. 

If our Government would shorten the period of 
strain, then there would be^a million Indians anxious 
to help the British Empire in its gravest struggle.*' 
Why Not Dominion Status? 

No one will accuse Shri Ramananda Chatterji, 
the veteran journalist, of extreme views. This 
is what he says on the issue of Dominion 
Status in The Modern Review for February: - 

“ If any person were to ask the present writer, 

* Would you be satisfied with Dominion Status ?* he 
would be constrained to answer ‘ No ’. For a large 
and ancient country like India with a civilization of 
its own to become the Dominion of another coun- 
try inhabited by a different people with a different 
civilization, culture traditions and history, cannot be 
admitted as a natural, or right development. The 
white people of Australia or New Zealand may 
agree to their countries being Dominions of their 
Mother country. The people of Canada of British 
stock may have similar feelings. As people of Eurp- 
pean extraction the French Canadians may not be 
dissatisfied with being the citizens of a British 

Dominion We who are neither of British nor of 

any other European extraction cannot be accused 
of any unnatural sentiment if we be not satis. 



HARIJAN 


270 


[ September 1, 1940 


ANDREWS MEMORIAL 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

A friend, who is himself trying to collect 
for the Andrews Memorial, has written a letter 
from which I take the following relevant 
paragraphs ; 

‘‘ As I read it there are four objects of the appeal 
( you will kindly ' correct me, if I am wrong ) : 

(i) Ensuring the permanence of the present establi- 
shed work by an endowment to enable Santinikelan 
to fulfil Andrews ’ high hopes for it, unhampered 
by the constant financial anxiety with which it is 
now burdened. 

This is obviously the first need, for it would be 
doubtful wisdom to add new developments to an 
institution which itself is insecure. At the same time 
the amount required for this purpose is nowhere 
specified. 

If there is a sufficiently generous response to the 
appeal, providing more than is required for this first 
need, then it will be possible to go on to the other 
three parts of the scheme, viz. 

( ii ) A small but properly equipped hospital ; 

(iii) The provision of ‘ Deenabandhu wells* in the 
district ; 

( iv ) The provision of the Hall of Christian culture. 

Now, if I am right in this, it must surely occur 

to the reader of the appeal that, if, as seems likely, 
the institution requires a considerable sum for its 
endowment fund, the chances that any contributions 
made now will actually be available for either of the 
second, third or fourth part of the scheme are some- 
what remote. It is not stated whether contributors 
are allowed to earmark their gifts for any of the 
special objects in the scheme; and obviously, if a 
large proportion of contributors did so, the primary 
object of the appeal — the placing of Santinikelan 
on a sound basis financially — may be defeated. 

My second difficulty was about the statement of 
the aims, and I had in view particularly those of 
the proposed hall of Christian culture, in which I am 
naturally interested. 

That is first described as providing for India*s 
thought contact with the Western world, on the 
analogy of the ‘Cheena Bhavan’ and China, This 
suggests a doubtful identification of ‘Christian culture* 
and ‘ W estern culture. ’ 

The statement then goes on to speak of (a) the 
application of the teaching and character of Christ to 
international problems, and (b) the task of interpret- 
‘ing in Eastern modes of thought the spirit and 
mind of Christ. 

What we have, therefore, seems to be three rather 
different aims, all very important and relevant. 
Perhaps it may be necessary to leave it in this 
rather wide form; and yet I cannot help thinking 
that a more careful wording might make clear the 
relation of the other two aspects of the aim to that 
which is described as the ‘central purpose*. 

Thirdly, I raised the question of trustees and a 
sound basis for confidence in the future running of 
the scheme. If I understand your letter rightly, the 
trustees of this special fund are to be the trustees 
^ Santiniketan and Sriniketan, mentioned at the end 


of the appeal. The appeal itself does not seem tc 
make this clear. 

Does this imply that the disposal and allocation of 
the special fund raised is directly in the hands of 
these trustees of Santiniketan, so that, in effect, the 
fund becomes an additional part of the corpus of 
the Trust ? 

It seemed to me that for a scheme of the impor- 
tance and magnitude of that contemplated in the 
appeal there would be a place for some special 
committee or body of trustees related a little more 
definitely both to the special objects and to the 
wider interests to which the appeal will extend. ** 

The enquiry is pertinent and deserves a proper 
answer. As I happen to be one of the signa- 
tories to the appeal for funds, what I write may 
be taken as authoritative. The present trustees 
have made a rough calculation of the expenses 
in connection with the three definite additions 
to Santiniketan. After providing for them, a 
surplus is expected to be available which will 
go into the general funds. But naturally these 
three items will have precedence. Nevertheless . 
it is open to donors to earmark their funds 
for any of the three additions, and the money 
will be so used. Therefore there need be no 
apprehension about the additions, whether dona- 
tions are earmarked or not. If I may let out 
a secret, I may say that the general appeal was 
my idea. Gurudev, who first thought of tlie 
memorial being identified with Santiniketaiii, had 
in mind only two things — the hospital and . the 
hall, the latter being the suggestion of a Christian 
friend. Deenabandhu wells were to be built out 
of Santiniketan funds. Taking the cue from 
Gurudev, I felt there should be no hesitation 
whatsoever in identifying the whole of Santi- 
niketan with Andrews’ memory. The Poet is a 
host in himself. He has an established inter- 
national fame which will grow with time. 
Nevertheless Andrews was its best advertiser. 
Gurudev has no advertising ability. He simply 
works, wishes, and then leaves his wishes 
to fate. Not so the practical Englishman. 
He felt attracted to the Poet, and found his 
peace and permanent abode in Santiniketan. 
England was his birth-place; he never tore 
himself away from her. But his soul found its 
full expression and home in Santiniketan, and 
I know, because I was his co-workcr, that he 
went literally from door to door in order to 
get funds for Santiniketan. And he would often 
say to me : ‘ Never mind Santiniketan, but you 
must get so much money for me. You know 
what Santiniketan means to me and what the 
Poet means to the world.’ And I succumbed tc 
his advance whenever he made it, even though 
I could ill afford the time. His love for Santi- 
niketan was greater — I say this without any 
offence to anyone living in Santiniketan — than 
theirs. It was certainly as great as the Poet’s, 
and Santiniketan, as it is at present, is due 
as much to Andrews as to the Poet. Probably 
Andrews was the more persistent of the two. 



September 1, 1940 ] HAEIJAN 271 


With this knowledge at the back of my 
mind I had no hesitation in suggesting that the 
appeal should be general. Hence I would say 
to would-be donors that they would miss the 
central fact of the memorial if they detached the 
three additions from Santiniketan. For the three 
together would be a poor memorial to Deena- 
bandhu if Santiniketan were no more. And let 
me say at once that Santiniketan wdll never 
owe its permanence to the five lakhs that may 
be collected. It will be permanent because 
the Poet has breathed life into it and the 
spirit of Andrews hovers over it. If it keeps 
up the character imparted to it by its founders, 
including Andrews, it will never die. 

The second difficulty is easily answered. The 
interpretation of Christ in the Hall of Christian 
culture will bear the imprint of the Poet’s all- 
embracing soul, and therefore Christian culture, 
as it will flourish in Santiniketan, will never 
be exclusive. Much will depend upon the Christ- 
ians who might be attracted to Santiniketan. A 
more careful wording in defining the scope of 
the Hall of Christian culture was not possible, 
was not intended. I suggest to my correspondent 
that such matters are better left in a liquid 
state. Who shall say what the future has in 
store for any of the big things of the world ? 

The third difficulty is also easily disposed of. 
It had occurred even to me, but I felt that it 
would not be right to create a new trust for 
the memorial funds. The names of the present 
trustees arc given in the appeal. If they are good 
enough to be made responsible for the manage- 
ment of the vast international Estate, called 
Santiniketan and Sriniketan, they might well be 
entrusted with the additional responsibility of 
dealing with the funds that may be collected 
for the memorial. 

Finally I may mention that the response hither- 
to made through the memorial appeal has been 
very poor. I know that the organisation of the 
fund rests principally upon my shoulders. I have 
done nothing in the hope that Deenabandhu’s 
solid work for submerged humanity would need 
no organised effort, and that it would evoke 
spontaneous response. I have not yet lost that 
hope. I publish the meagre list of donations 
hitherto received. The reader will notice, as I 
have noticed, that as yet there is no collection 
from the student world nor any coppers from 
the labour world. 

Sevagram, 27 8 ‘10 

Wanted Agents 

For selling copies of Harijan in various towns of 
India. For terms apply to the Manager. 

Home and Village Doctor 
By Satish Chandra Dasgnpfa 

1384 pages. 18 chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages. 
216 illustrations. Trice l^s. 5 doth-bound; Cy V. P, 
F. Rs. G. Ks. 6 kathcr-bound; IJy V. 1>, P. Ks, 7. 

Available at 


NON-VIOLENT CRAFTS 

The joint meeting of the A. 1. S. A. and the 
Gandhi Seva Sangh that was held last June discussed 
several questions relating to a wider understand- 
ing of the economics of khadi. At one sitting 
Gandhiji spoke at length about the non-violent 
aspect of the development of handicrafts. ‘‘As,” 
he said, “ a non-violent man’s actions will all 
be coloured by non-violence, his occupational 
activity will necessarily be non-violent. Strictly 
speaking, no activity and no industry is possible 
without a certain amount of violence, no matter 
how little. Even the very process of living is 
impossible without a certain amount of vio- 
lence. What we have to do is to minimise it 
to the greatest extent possible. Indeed the very 
word non-violence, a negative word, means that 
it is an effort to abandon the violence that is 
inevitable in life. Therefore whoever believes 
in ahimsa will engage himself in occupations 
that involve the least possible violence. Thus, 
for instance, one cannot conceive of a man be- 
lieving in non-violence carrying on the occupa- 
tion of a butcher. Not that a meat-eater cannot 
be non-violent — there are many among meat- 
eaters who are better observers of non-violence 
than those who abstain from meat, e. g. Deena- 
bandhu Andrews — but even a meat-eater 
believing in non-violence will not go in for 
shikar, and he will not engage in war or war 
preparations. Thus there are many activities 
and occupations which necessarily ' involve 
violence and must be eschewed by a non- 
violent man. But there is agriculture without 
which life is impossible, and which does involve 
a certain amount of violence. The determining 
factor therefore is — is the occupation founded on 
violence? But since all activity involves some 
measure of violence, all we have to do is to 
minimise the violence involved in it. This is 
not possible without a heart-belief in non- 
violence. Suppose there is a man who docs 
no actual violence, who labours for his bread, 
but who is always consumed with envy at 
other people’s wealth or prosperity. He is not 
non-violent. A non-violent occupation is thus that 
occupation which is fundamentally free from 
violence and which involves no exploitation or 
envy of others. 

“Now I have no historical proof, but I believe 
that there was a time in India when village 
economics were organised on the basis of such 
non-violent occupations, not on the basis of the 
rights of man but on the duties of man. Those 
who engaged themselves in such occupations did 
earn their living, but their labour contributed 
to the good of the community. A carpenter, 
for instance, ministered to the needs of the 
village farmer. He got no cash payment but was 
paid in kind by the villagers. There could be 
injustice even in this system, but it would be 
reduced to a minimum. I speak from personal 
knowledge of tho 



5i68 


HARiJAN 


[ September l, 1940 



NON-VIOLENCE OF THE BRAVE 

{By M* K. Gandhi ) 

A correspondent writes: 

“You say non-violence is for the brave, not for 
cowards. But, in my opinion, in India the brave are 
conspicuous by their absence. Even if we claim to be 
brave, how is the 'world to believe us when it knows 
that India has no arms and is therefore incapable 
of defending herself? What then should we do to 
cultivate non-violence of the brave?” 

The correspondent is wrong in thinking that 
in India the brave are conspicuous by their 
absence. It is a matter for shame that because 
foreigners once labelled us as cowards we should 
accept the label. Man often becomes what he 
believes himself to be. If I keep on saying to 
myself that I cannot do a certain thing, it is 
possible that I may end by really becoming 
incapable of doing it. On the contrary, if I 
have the belief that I can do it, I shall surely 
acquire the capacity to do it even if I may not 
have it at the beginning. Again it is wrong 
to say that the world today believes us to be 
cowards. It has ceased to think so since the 
satyagraha campaign. The Congress prestige has 
risen very high in the West diuring the past 
twenty years. The world is watching with 
astonished interest the fact that although we 
have no arms we are hoping to win Swaraj, 
and have indeed come very near it. Moreover, 
it sees in our non-violent movement rays of 
hope for peace in the world and its salvation 
from the hell of carnage. The bulk of mankind 
has come to believe that, if ever the spirit of 
revenge is to vanish and bloody wars are to 
cease, the happy event can happen only through 
the policy of non-violence adopted by the 
Congress. The correspondent’s fear and suspicion 
are, therefore, unfounded. 

It will now be seen that the fact that India 
is unarmed is no obstacle in the path of ahimsa. 
The forcible disarmament of India by the British 
Government was indeed a grave wrong and a 
cruel injustice. But we can turn even injustice 
to our advantage if God be with us, or if 
you prefer, we have the skill to do so. And 
such a thing has happened in India. 

Arms are surely unnecessary for a training in 
ahimsa. In fact the arms, if any, have to be 
thrown away, as the Khansaheb did in the 
Frontier Province. Those who hold that it is 
essential to learn violence before we can learn 
non-violence, would hold that only sinners can 
be saints. 

Just as one must learn the art of killing in 
the training for violence, so one must learn the 
art of dying in the training for non-violence. 


Violence does not mean emancipation from fear 
but discovering the means of combating the 
cause of fear. Non-violence, on the other hand, 
has no cause for fear. The votary of non- 
violence has to cultivate the capacity for sacrifice 
of the highest type in order to be free from 
fear. He recks not if he should lose his land, 
his wealth, his life. He who has not overcome 
all fear cannot practise ahimsa to perfection. The 
votary of ahimsa has only one fear, that is of 
God. He who seeks refuge in God ought to 
have a glimpse of the Atman that transcends the 
body; and the moment one has a glimpse of the 
Imperishable Atman one sheds the love of the 
perishable body. Training in non-violence is thus 
diametrically opposed to training in violence. 
Violence is needed for the protection of things 
external, non-violence is needed for the protec- 
tion of the Atman, for the protection of one’s 
honour. 

This non-violence cannot be learnt by staying 
at home. It needs enterprise. In order to test 
ourselves we should learn to dare danger and 
death, mortify the flesh and acquire the capacity 
to endure all manner of hardships. He who 
trembles or takes to his heels the moment he 
sees two people fighting is not non-violent, but 
a coward. A non-violent person will lay down 
his life in preventing such quarrels. The bravery 
of the non-violent is vastly superior to that of 
the violent. The badge of the violent is his 
weapon — spear, or sword, or rifle. God is the 
shield of the non-violent. 

This is not a course of training for one in- 
tending to learn non-violence. But it is easy to 
evolve one from the principles I have laid down. 

It will be evident from the foregoing that 
there is no comparison between the two types 
of bravery. The one is limited, the other is 
limitless. There is no such thing as out-daring 
or out-fighting non-violence. Non-violence is 
invincible. There need be no doubt that this 
non-violence can be achieved. The history of 
the past twenty years should be enough to 
reassure us. 

Sevagram, 27-8-40 

( Translated from Gujarati ) 

QUESTION BOX 

{By M. K- Gandhi) 

A. L S. A, Employees 

Q. The Secretary of the Bhiwani Congress 
committee asks : Is there a ban on A. 1. S- A. 
employees as far as signing the satyagraha pledge 
is concerned? They fulfil all the conditions of 
the pledge, but they may not offer themselves 
for jail without the permission of the A. L S. A., 
and therefore they cannot sign the form. Is it 
then permissible for them to retain their 
membership of Congress executive committees, 
or should they resign from them? 

A. Your interpretation of the rule of the 
A. I. S. A. is correct. No one can work in 
two spheres at the same time. The work of 
the A. I. S. A. too is Congress work. None 




September 1, 1940 ] HAEIJAN 




.of its employees can be allowed to court 
imprisonment. His absence must harm khadi. 
Therefore, granted that the rule is necessary, it 
is plain that no A. I. S. A. employee may remain 
, a member of a Congress committee. The entire 
* committee may be arrested, or if the com- 
mittee so desires, it can order any of its 
members to court imprisonment. 

( Translated from Hindustani ) 

Uncertified Khadi 

Q. The Secretary also asks: Members of Con- 
gress local executive committees sometimes sell 
uncertified khadi. They give the same wages to 
spinners and weavers as the A. I. S. A. Only 
their khadi is not certified. According to Con- 
. gress rules are they entitled to remain on 
Congress committees or should they resign from 
. them ? 

A. In my opinion they are not entitled to 
membership of Congress committees. The official 
.answer must be officially secured. If it is correct 
that they give the same wages to spinners and 
weavers, why do they not get the necessary 
■ certificate from the A. I. S. A. ? 

( Translated from Hindustani ) 

How to Convert Atheists 

Q. How can one convert atheists to belief 
in God and religion? 

A. There is only one way. The true servant 
-of God can convert the atheist by means of his 
- own purity and good conduct. It can never be 
done by argument. Innumerable books have been 
written to prove the existence of God, and if 
.argument could have prevailed, there would not 
be a single atheist in the world today. But the 
opposite is the case. In spite of all the literature 
on the subject, atheism is on the increase. Often, 
however, the man who calls himself an atheist 
is not one in reality; and the converse also is 
•equally true. Atheists sometimes say, “If you 
.are believers, then we are unbelievers.” And they 
have a right to say so, for self-styled believers 
.are often not so in reality. Many worship God 
because it is the fashion to do so or in order 
to deceive the world. How can such persons 
have any influence on atheists ? Therefore let 
the believer realise and have the faith that, if 
he is true to God, his neighbours will instinct- 
ively not be atheists. Do not let him be 
troubled about the whole world. Let us 
.remember that atheists exist by the sufferance 
<of God, How truly has it been said that those 
who worship God in name only are not believers 
but those who do His will! 

( Translated from Hindustani ) 

Living Wage 

Q. You once wrote in Harijan to the effect 
that villagers are at liberty to buy yarn spun 
in their own villages without reference to the 
living wage, and that the A. 1. S. A. should 
let them go their way in this matter. Are 
those who wear khadi woven from such yarn 
eligible as Congress delegates ? And what is the 
village worker to do in this regard ? He natur- 


ally does propaganda in favour of a living 
wage. There are always a certain number of 
villagers who buy A. I. S. A. khadi, but at the 
same time there are many who cannot afford to 
do so. And even if they pay less than the 
living wage, there is no doubt that the spinners 
get some relief and khadi finds a certain place 
in village life too. Is the village worker there 
to encourage such khadi ? 

A. If we were always careful enough not to 
read into a writer’s sentences a meaning which 
defeats his very purpose, such questions would 
rarely arise. Where no wages are paid and the 
yarn is self-spun, no ban of any kind can be 
applied. It is of course assumed that the 
A. I. S. A. rule is not broken on a false plea of 
self-sufficiency. The same applies to the village 
worker. 

But there is one important issue raised in 
your questions. The A. L S. A. worker in a 
particular village cannot pay a living wage if 
he is to use the village khadi. Therefore he 
will buy yarn at a lesser rate and give some 
work to the spinners who would otherwise get 
nothing. But he may not become a member of 
the Congress. He will serve the Congress from 
without. Sometimes such persons serve the Con- 
gress far better, and they are moreover saved 
from the ambitions that membership often 
carries with it. It is clear that such khadi 
cannot be sold outside the village. It should 
all be absorbed locally. The moment uncertified 
khadi is put into the market the A. 1. S. A. 
law is broken and real khadi receives a setback. 
The A. I. S. A. is labouring under great stress 
in trying to raise the spinners’ wages. Never 
in the world have I heard of wages being 
increased from one or two pice to 8 or 12 
pice per day without the wage-earners having 
asked for a rise in pay. The A. 1. S. A. has 
done monumental work in this matter. 

(Translated from Hindustani^ 

Will It Fail ? . 

Q. You say that the Congress is not cent 
per cent non-violent today. If that is so, will 
not ’a satyagraha movement launched by it be 
unsuccessful ? 

A. It is not possible for a large popular 
organisation like the Congress to be wholly non- 
violent, for the simple reason that all its members 
cannot have attained a standard level of non- 
violence. But it is perfectly possible for some 
of its members, who truly understand the impli- 
cations of pure ahimsa and observe its law in 
their lives, to lead a successful satyagraha move- 
ment. This truth has even been demonstrated 
so far by the Congress. 

Sevagram, 27-8-40 ( Translated from Gujarati). 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radhakrishnan. (New Edition) Rs. 5-10-0 
Postage 8 As, Available at Harijan office-Poona 4. 

Empire or Democracy ? by L. Barnes. 

Price Rs. 5-10 + Postage 4 Annas. 



270 


HAEIJAN 


[ September 1, 1940 


ANDREWS MEMORIAL 

( By M, K. Gandhi ) 

A friend, who is himself trying to collect 
for the Andrews Memorial, has written a letter 
from which I take the following relevant 
paragraphs : 

As I read it there are four objects of the appeal 
(you will kindly correct me, if I am wrong): 

(i) Ensuring the permanence of the present establi- 
shed work by an endowment to enable Santinikelan 
to fulfil Andrews’ high hopes for it, unhampered 
by the constant financial anxiety with which it is 
now burdened. 

This is obviously the first need, for it would be 
doubtful w^isdoin to add new developments to an 
institution which itself is insecure. At the same time 
the amount required for this purpose is nowhere 
specified. 

If there is a sufficiently generous response to the 
appeal, providing more than is required for this first 
need, then it will be possible to go on to the other 
three parts of the scheme, viz. 

f ii ) A small but properly equipped hospital ; 

{ iii ) The provision of * Deenabandhu wells ’ in the 
district ; 

{ iv ) The provision of the Hall of Christian culture. 

Now, if I am right in this, it must surely occur 
to the reader of the appeal that, if, as seems likely, 
the institution requires a considerable sum for its 
endowment fund, the chances that any contributions 
made now will actually be available for either of the 
second, third or fourth part of the scheme are some- 
what remote. It' is not stated whether contributors 
are allow'ed to earmark tlieir gifts for any of the 
special objects in the scheme; and obviously, if a 
large proportion of contributors did so, the primary 
object of the appeal — the placing of Santiniketan 
on a sound basis financially — may be defeated. 

My second difficulty was about the statement of 
the aims, and I had in view particularly those of 
the proposed hall of Christian culture, in which I am 
naturally interested. 

That is first described as providing for India’s 
thought contact with the Western world, on the 

analogy of the ‘Cheena Bhavan’ and China. This 
suggests a doubtful identification of ‘Christian culture’ 
and ‘Western culture.’ 

The statement then goes on to speak of ( a ) the 
application of the teaching and character of Christ to 
international problems, and (b) the task of interpret- 
ing in Eastern modes of thought the spirit and 

mind of Christ. 

What we have, therefore, seems to be three rather 
different aims, all very important and relevant. 
Perhaps it may be necessary to leave it in this 
rather wide form; and yet I cannot help thinking 
that a more careful wording might make clear the 
relation of the other two aspects of the aim to that 
which is described as the ‘central purpose’. 

Thirdly, I raised the question of trustees and a 
sound basis for confidence in the future running of 

the scheme. If I understand your letter rightly, the 

trustees of this special fund are to be the trustees 
Santiniketan and Sriniketan, mentioned at the end 


of the appeal. The appeal itself does not seem tc 
make this clear. 

Does this imply that the disposal and allocation of 
the special fund raised is directly in the hands of 
these trustees of Santiniketan, so that, in effect, the 
fund becomes an additional part of the corpus of 
the Trust ? 

It seemed to me that for a scheme of the import 
tance and magnitude of that contemplated in the 
appeal there would be a place for some special 
committee or body of trustees related a little more 
definitely both to the special objects and to the 
wider interests to which the appeal will extend. ” 

The enquiry is pertinent and deserves a proper 
answer. As I happen to be one of the signa- 
tories to the appeal for funds, what I write may 
be taken as authoritative. The present trustees 
have made a rough calculation of the expenses 
in connection with the three definite additions 
to Santiniketan. After providing for them, a 
surplus is expected to be available which will 
go into the general funds. But naturally these 
three items will have precedence. Nevertheless 
it is open to donors to earmark their funds 
for any of the three additions, and the money 
will be so used. Therefore there need be no 
apprehension about the additions, whether dona- 
tions are earmarked or not. If I may let out 
a secret, I may say that the general appeal was 
my idea. Gurudev, who first thought of the 
memorial being identified with Santiniketan, had 
in mind only two things — the hospital and . the 
hall, the latter being the suggestion of a Christian, 
friend. Deenabandhu wells were to be built out 
of Santiniketan funds. Taking the cue from 
Gurudev, I felt there should be no hesitation 
whatsoever in identifying the whole of Santi- 
niketan with Andrews’ memory. The Poet is a 
host in himself. He has an established inter- 
national fame which will grow with time. 
Nevertheless Andrews was its best advertiser. 
Gurudev has no advertising ability. He simply 
works, wishes, and then leaves his wishes 
to fate. Not so the practical Englishman, 
He felt attracted to the Poet, and found his 
peace and permanent abode in Santiniketan. 
England was his birth-place; he never tore 
himself away from her. But his soul found its 
full expression and home in Santiniketan, and 
I know, because I was his co-worker, that he 
went literally from door to door in order to 
get funds for Santiniketan. And he would often 
say to me: ‘Never mind Santiniketan, but you 
must get so much money for me. You know 
what Santiniketan means to me and what the 
Poet means to the world.’ And I succumbed tc 
his advance whenever he made it, even though 
I could ill afford the time. His love for Santi- 
niketan was greater — I say this without any 
offence to anyone living in Santiniketan — than 
theirs. It was certainly as great as the Poet’s, 
and Santiniketan, as it is at present, is due 
as much to Andrews as to the Poet. Probably 
Andrews was the more persistent of the two. 



September l, 1940 ] HARIJAN '271 


With this knowledge at the back of Iny 
mind I had no hesitation in suggesting that the 
appeal should be general. Hence I would say 
to would-be donors that they would miss the 
central fact of the memorial if they detached the 
three additions from Santiniketan. For the three 
together would be a poor memorial to Deena- 
bandhu if Santiniketan were no more. And let 
me say at once that Santiniketan will never 
owe its permanence to the five lakhs that may 
be collected. It will be permanent because 
the Poet has breathed life into it and the 
spirit of Andrews hovers over it. If it keeps 
up the character imparted to it by its founders, 
including Andrews, it will never die. 

The second diflSculty is easily answered. The 
interpretation of Christ in the Hall of Christian 
culture will bear the imprint of the Poet’s all- 
embracing soul, and therefore Christian culture, 
as it will flourish in Santiniketan, will never 
be exclusive. Much will depend upon the Christ- 
ians who might be attracted to Santiniketan. A 
more careful wording in defining the scope of 
the Hall of Christian culture was not possible, 
was not intended. I suggest to my correspondent 
that such matters are better left in a liquid 
state. Who shall say what the future has in 
store for any of the big things of the world? 

The third difficulty is also easily disposed of. 
It had occurred even to me, but I felt that it 
would not be right to create a new trust for 
the memorial funds. The names of the present 
trustees are given in the appeal. If they are good 
enough to be made responsible for the manage- 
ment of the vast international Estate, called 
Santiniketan and Sriniketan, they might well be 
entrusted with the additional responsibility of 
dealing with the funds that may be collected 
for the memorial. 

Finally I may mention that the response hither- 
to made through the memorial appeal has been 
very poor. I know that the organisation of the 
fund rests principally upon my shoulders. I have 
done nothing in the hope that Deenabandhu s 
solid work for submerged humanity would need 
no organised effort, and that it would evoke 
■spontaneous response. I have not yet lost that 
hope. I publish the meagre list of donations 
hitherto received. The reader will notice, as I 
have noticed, that as yet there is no collection 
from the student world nor any coppers from 
the labour world. 

Sevagram, 27-8-40 

Wanted Agents 

For selling copies of Harijan in various towns of 
-India. For terms apply to the Manager. 

Home and Village Doctor 
By Satish Chandra Dasgupta 

1384 pages. 18 chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages. 
-216 illustrations. Price Rs. 5 cloth-bound; By V. P* 
T. Rs. 6. Rs, 6 leather-bound; By V. P, P. Rs, 7, 

Availflhlp of 7T/ri^*V/T« rk-ffl/'o A. 


NON-VIOLENT CEAFTS 

The joint meeting of the A. 1. S. A. and the 
Gandhi Seva Sangh that was held last June discussed 
several questions relating to a wider understand- 
ing of the economics of khadi. At one sitting 
Gandhiji spoke at length about the non-violent 
aspect of the development of handicrafts. “As,” 
he said, “ a non-violent man’s actions will all 
be coloured by non-violence, his occupational 
activity will necessarily be non-violent. Strictly 
speaking, no activity and no industry is possible 
without a certain amount of violence, no matter 
how little. Even the very process of living is 
impossible without a certain amount of vio- 
lence. What we have to do is to minimise it 
to the greatest extent possible. Indeed the very 
word non-violence, a negative word, means that 
it is an effort to abandon the violence that is 
inevitable in life. Therefore whoever believes 
in ahimsa will engage himself in occupations 
that involve the least possible violence. Thus, 
for instance, one cannot conceive of a man be- 
lieving in non-violence carrying on the occupa- 
tion of a butcher. Not that a meat-eater cannot 
be non-violent — there are many among meat- 
eaters who are better observers of non-violence 
than those who abstain from meat, e. g. Deena- 
bandhu Andrews — but even a meat-eater 
believing in non-violence will not go in for 
shikar, and he will not engage in war or war 
preparations. Thus there are many activities 
and occupations which necessarily involve 
violence and must be eschewed by a non- 
violent man. But there is agriculture without 
which life is impossible, and which does involve 
a certain amount of violence. The determining 
factor therefore is — is the occupation founded on 
violence ? But since all activity involves some 
measure of violence, all we have to do is to 
minimise the violence involved in it. This is 
not possible without a heart-belief in non- 
violence. Suppose there is a man who does 
no actual violence, who labours for his bread, 
but who is always consumed with envy at 
other people’s wealth or prosperity. He is not 
non-violent. A non-violent occupation is thus that 
occupation which is fundamentally free from 
violence and which involves no exploitation or 
envy of others. 

“ Now I have no historical proof, but I believe 
that there was a time in India when village 
economics were organised on the basis of such 
non-violent occupations, not on the basis of the 
rights of man but on the duties of man. Those 
who engaged themselves in such occupations did 
earn their living, but their labour contributed 
to the good of the community, A carpenter, 
for instance, ministered to the needs of the 
village farmer. He got no cash payment but was 
paid in kind by the villagers. There could be 
injustice even in this system, but it would be 
reduced to a minimum. I speak from personal 
knowledge of the life in Kathiawad of over 



272 


HAEIJAN 


[ September l, 1940 


people’s eyes, and more life in their limbs, than 
you find today. It was a life founded on 
unconscious ahimsa. 

“ Body labour was at the core of these occu- 
pations and industries, and there was no large 
scale machinery. For when a man is content to 
own only so much land as he can till with his 
own labour, he cannot exploit others. Handicrafts 
exclude exploitation and slavery. Large scale 
machinery concentrates wealth in the hands of 
one man who lords it over the rest who slave 
for him. For he may be trying to create ideal 
conditions for his workmen, but it is none the 
less exploitation which is a form of violence. 

When I say that there was a time when 
society was based not on exploitation but on 
justice, I mean to suggest that truth and ahimsa 
were not virtues confined to individuals but 
were practised by communities. To me virtue 
ceases to have any value if it is cloistered 
or possible only for individuals.’' 

Sevagram, 26-8-40 M. D. 

Notes 

Sindh 

The position of Congressmen in Sindh is by 
no means enviable. They have a most diflicult 
time before them. Their non-violence, if they 
have it in them, has not benefited those who 
live in fear of their lives. It is true that no 
one else has helped them. I warned them at 
the very outset that they must learn the art 
of helping themselves as others do, or by non- 
violence as Congressmen are supposed or expect- 
ed to do. In some places they ate organising 
national guards. Those who do, look up to 
Congressmen for help and guidance. For the 
latter have been their helpers and guides hither- 
to. Some Congressmen feel that without any 
intention themselves of taking up arms they 
can put courage into the people, if they train 
them in the art of self-defence whether with or 
without arms. The question has attained impor- 
tance and demands immediate answer in view 
of the unequivocal resolution of the A. I, C. C. 
recently held at Poona. I am quite clear that 
no Congressman, so long as he is even a four 
anna member of the Congress, can take part 
in organising or aiding self-defence groups with- 
out committing a breach of the Poona resolu- 
tion. But I am equally clear that it is the duty 
of those Congressmen who feel the need for 
helping self-defence groups and have the capa- 
city for doing so, to, go to the rescue of the 
terror-stricken men. This they can do by 
resigning their membership of the Congress. By 
doing so they will enhaiKe the prestige of the 
Congress and their own usefulness. The fact 
that they feel the call to . help is the decisive 
factor in determining their course of action. 


Peaceful Methods? 

A correspondent sends a leaflet published by- 
the Madras Provincial War Committee and: 
printed at the Government Press, which enu- 
merates the seven “great ideals” for which 
“war is being waged” today by England. The 
second of the ideals runs thus : 

“The ideals for which England is fighting are the* 
ideals of India. Our philosophy of life, our traditions 
of domestic and international policy have had: 

Peace for its ideal — as exemplified in the teaching 
of the Lord Buddha and Mahatma Gandhi. 

Peaceful methods and tolerance — as the means of 
political progress and international relations, as 
symbolised by the policy of India’s ideal king Asoka. 

In fighting with England we shall be fighting for 
what we hold most precious in our own national- 
heritage.** 

My correspondent says these leaflets are issued 
in the provincial languages and are widely dis- 
tributed among the villagers. I suggest to the- 
Madras War Committee that they remove clause 
2 altogether as being untrue. For my ideal as put 
before the British people is well known. If Lord 
Buddha was on earth in the body at this- 
moment, such a war would be impossible. It* 
is a travesty of truth to call English methods, 
methods of peace. Asoka's is perhaps the only 
instance of a great king having voluntarily aban- 
doned war and adopted peaceful methods. 

It is no reflection on the British people that 
they do not accept my advice or follow Asoka’S' 
way. These things cannot be done mechanically. 
But it is not right to give them the credit* 
they do not deserve or want. Well may the 
British people who read the leaflet say: ‘Save, 
us from our friends. ’ 

Sevagram, 28-8-40 M, K. G. 

NOTICE 

Harijansevak ( Hindustani ), which was hitherto- 
published at Delhi, has now been transferred to> 
Poona and will hereafter be published at Poona 
every Saturday. Intending subscribers are requested 

to remit their subscriptions ( Rs. 4 for one year^- 

Rs. 2-8-0 for six months inland; Rs. 5 annually 

for Burma; and Rs. 5-8-0 for foreign countries) to- 
the Manager, Harijansevak — Poona 4. The retail 
price per copy is one anna, and in places where 
we have agents readers can arrange to get copies, 
through them. Agents who wish to get copies of* 
Harijansevak also will please write to the Manager 
as early as possible. Manager 


CONTENTS 


PAGE 

My Idea or a Police Force... 

M. K. Gandhi 265 

An Interesting Discourse-II 

M. D. 

266 

Andrews Memorial Fund ... 


267 

Non-violence of the Brave 

M. K. Gandhi 

268 

Question Box 

M. K. Gandhi 

268 

Andrews Memorial 

M. K. Gandhi 

270' 

Non-violent Crafts 

Notes ; 

M, D. 

271 

Sindh 

M. K. G, 

272 

Peaceful Methods? 

M. K. G. 

272. 


Printed and Published hy Vithal -Hari B^ve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 



Reg. No. B. 3092 


o 





o 




Editor : MAHADEV DESAI 


VoL. VIII No. 30 ] POONA — SUNDAY, SEPTEMBER 8, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


AHIMSA IN DAILY LIFE 

A Merchant's Story 

If we once make up our minds to examine 
ourselves at every step, we shall find that we 
frequently infringe the law of ahimsa, and that 
we should be ever so much happier if we 
were vigilant. The need for the soft answer that 
tumeth away wrath arises every moment, but 
we scarcely realise it. Just a little exercise of 
silence, and you well may quench the wrath 
that a retort would surely have provoked, I 
have an annoying letter. I feel like replying to 
it sharply, but I sit silent over it for a couple 
of days and don’t feel like replying to it at all. 
That saves me from an unending series of darts 
and counter-darts. 

A merchant, who does not claim to be a 
“ satyagrahi ” or to have been a jail-goer, but 
who reads Harijanbandhu carefully, narrates a 
little incident in his life which has a lesson for 
every one of us. I summarisi? his Gujarati letter. 

One morning,’* he says, “ my younger brother, 
who was a stranger to my place, came from the 
station in a tonga. On asking him what hire 
was to be paid to the tongawalla, he said he 
had agreed to pay 14 annas. I was considerably 
irritated and said to the tongawalla: ‘That is 
how you would deceive strangers. Eight annas 
is the usual hire, and I am not going to give 
you a pice more.’ But the tongawalla said ; 

‘ That is not my concern. The fact is that he 
agreed to pay fourteen annas.’ It made me more 
angry. There was plenty of altercation, and at 
last I offered to pay him ten annas which was 
the* hire fixed by the Municipality. But the 
man refused to budge. I then threatened to 
take him to ‘ the police station. He said : ‘ I am 
going to do nothing of the kind. I will have 
my fourteen annas and not a pie less. Why do 
you fling the schedule of rates in my face ? 
Supposing I agree to accept six annas to drive 
you to the station, and at the station insist on 
the scheduled ten annas, would you give it to 
me? Would it be proper for me to insist on 
accepting nothing less than the scheduled rate?’ 
That was an argument to which there was no 
reply. But anger had blinded me, and I was 
hurt that a mere tongawalla could get the 
better of me in an argument. 

“My younger brother now intervened and 
said the tongawalla was entitled by rights to 
fourteen annas and it was no use my talking 
of the schedule. But anger had taken full. 


possession of me. I asked my brother to keep 
quiet. But if I was ready to waste time over 
a false sense of right, the tongawalla was not. 
After about an hour’s hot altercation he accepted 
ten annas and left cursing and swearing at me, 

“But my brother was far from happy over the 
incident. When he found- that I had regained 
my calm, he reverted to the subject, and asked 
me why I had failed to appreciate the most 
convincing argument of the tongawalla. Sense 
had now come back to me, and I was sorry to 
have given myself to the devil in sheer pride 
and a false notion of superiority. I decided to 
find out the tongawalla and to pay him his 
four annas. For some days I hunted for him 
in vain. One day at last I found him and asked 
him to come to my shop. He hesitated, lest 
I should scold him for that day’s conduct. But 
I told him that I wanted to make amends for 
my own stupid behaviour. I paid him his four 
annas and apologised to him. His surprise knew 
no boxmds. He accepted the four annas with 
some reluctance and left in grateful joy. A sort 
of remorse had been gnawing into my mind all 
these days, and I was now at peace with myself. 
That day I had been guilty of grave himsa. 
There was not only the disinclination to do the 
right thing, there was contempt in my mind 
for the tongawalla who, I thought, was lower in 
the social scale than I. I was thoroughly ashamed 
of myself, and am hoping that God may rid me 
of any sense of high and low that may still be 
left in me.” 

A Personal Incident 

And here with some apology I propose to 
revive an incident that happened in my own 
life in the satyagraha days of 1930, Readers of 
Young India may know the story as told by 
Miraben, but I shall give it again in my own 
words. I was on the crest of a wave of 
popularity, having been ‘dictator’ for about a 
month, and crowds followed the prison-van in 
which I was being taken to the prison after 
my conviction. Some of them wanted to load 
me with garlands, but the English sergeant on 
the back of the van would not stop. I was 
appealing to the crowds to go back, but they 
chased the car, and when they found that it 
was a futile chase they flung a stone at the 
sergeant. It hit him right on the chin and 
gave him a nasty cut. “ Ah, ” he exclaimed in 
agony, catching, the stone as it fell from his 
face. “See what your wretched people do ! If 



26 


HARUAN 


[ March 9, 1940 


self-sacrificing men and women, why then is 
there disruption in Bengal? It is a puzzle of 
which the solution is as difficult as it is 
obvious. Therefore Gandhiji said to the workers, 
■“ All incompatible mixtures are bound to ex- 
plode. You must resolve to act on the square, 
and whilst you should be prepared to compromise 
on non-essentials you should never be in the 
imcomfortable position of having to compromise 
truth. You should retire from all such positions. 
That is the essence of compromise. Let service 
without near or distant objective be your motto. 
You are surrounded by poverty on all sides. 
Serve those that are afflicted whether they are 
Muslims, Namasudras or others. Satyagraha trans- 
cends parties, and divisions of class and creed. 
It should permeate the whole of our being and 
society. There is no question before you of 
enlisting members for the G)ngress. Give up 
aU thought of gaining members for the sake of 
swelling your register. That is power politics. 
I would rather have 'no register than blacken 
it with bogus members. If you will thus become 
silent workers, even one of you will lead the 
Congress in the province without being in it. 

“ I hope you will not now say, ‘ What will 
happen if the Congress is captured by the 
opponents ? ’ You know the Upanishad precept 
— ^Enjoy by means of renunciation. 
Give up the Congress in order to ‘ enjoy ’ 
■or have it. The moment I set my heart on 
-some kind of capturing I am done for. No 
manoeuvring to keep your hold on the 

Congress, no descending from the right path, 
and you will disarm all opposition. A bogus 
Congress register can never lead you to Swaraj 
any more than a paper boat can help you to 
sail across the Padma." - 

The Corollaiy 

What he said immediately hereafter to the 
larger meeting of workers was a kind of coro- 
llary to the principle enunciated in the fore- 
going. If I mistake not, about a furlong away 
was being heard the slogan ‘ Down with Gandhism’. 
'“Let us understand,” he said, “that there is a 
kcind of poison in the atmosphere. How are 
we to fight it? Whether the number of those 
who shout these slogans is 50 or 500, we may 
not ignore them. We must try to discover their 
grievance. We may not treat them with 
contempt, if we are believers in ahimsa. No 
M’gumentum ad kominum will do. It is no 
answer to say that they ate mercenaries, for 
you may be sure that not any and every one 
who is offered a train fare and a wage would 
consent to come here. They must to an extent 
believe in their mission. And at the back of 
their mind is the feeling that * Gandhism ’ is 
out to destroy what they hold dear. If that is 
the case, they may well desire the destruction 
of Gandhism. When we see the thing in this 
light we can afford to keep our temper. We 
will then try to meet and plead with them 
and assure them tliat we do not desire to 


obstruct their work. I do not say that you will 
immediately win them over, but you will 
certainly check the spread of the poison. 
Retaliation is counter poison, and poison breeds 
more poisons. The nectar of love alone can 
destroy the poison of hate. 

“Therefore let not the cries anger you. Let 
none of you think of drowning those cries in 
the cry of ‘Mahatma Gandhi ki Jai’. You have 
done well in not shouting counter slogans. You 
have thereby sterilised theirs, and very little 
mischief has been done. If the forbearance is based 
on ahimsa, I am sure they will ultimately be still. 

“It is a delusion to think that it is necessary 
to be members of the Congress in order to 
serve it. There are numerous people outside the 
Congress who are serving it better than those 
who are in it. Therefore I have told you that 
he who takes up the charkha with a knowledge 
of its implications serves the Congress cause 
better than Congressmen. I was glad to be told 
that all of you have pledged yourselves to spin 
at least 60,CX)0 yards a year. If, however, there 
is the slightest hcsitance on your part, I would 
ask you not to take the pledge but try to do 
your quota without taking it. 

“There is, however, a flaw in self-spinning 
to which I should like to draw your attention. 
You will of course spin to make your own cloth, 
but you will to that extent deprive the poor 
spinners. The wheel is meant for them. But 
though there is this flaw in it I am asking 
you all to spin in order to universalise spinning. 
Those of you who are too poor to purchase 
khadi will of course card and spin for your- 
selves. But such of you as can afford to buy 
your khadi will send the 60,000 yards to the 
Spinners' Association, which will thus be able 
to reduce the price of khadi in its stock by 
adding to it the gift of your yarn. That will 
enable poor people, who can neither spin for 
themselves nor purchase khadi today, to buy the 
khadi thus made cheaper for them. This is 
what I call a voluntary labour tax. In Europe 
there is compulsory military service. Let us 
have compulsory non-military service here. All 
that you do, you will do intelligently, of your 
free will, and out of a spirit of service. 

“ Along with khadi are the other cottage 
industries, Harijan service, and other items of 
constructive work, which, if solidly done, will 
create the strength that political work, so called, 
cannot. That may preclude t.he necessity for 
civil disobedience and will automatically end 
the Hindu-Muslim tension, abolish untouchability, 
abolish the squabbles between the “ leftists ” and 
the * rightists ', and break the chains of slavery. 
This to my mind is rashtra dharma par excellence." 

Women’s Work 

I have already mentioned the women workers. 
Those from Dacca district presented to Gandhiji 
100,000 yards of yarn, those from Noakhali 10,000, 
from Sylhet 13,000, and from Malda 1,000. Notable 
among these were Shrimatis Lavanyalata Sen 



Maech 9, 1940 3 


HAEIJAN 


27 


and Ashalata Sen who have been workers in the 
cause for years, Shrimati Bidhumukhi Some, aged 
70, wears clothes of her own yarn and gave to 
Kasturba a sari woven out of her own yarn. One 
of the sisters presented to Gandhiji an image of 
the Motherland carved in a block of wood. She 
is the daughter of a Vishwakarma and inherits 
the art from her father. Another sister, whose 
name too I forget, presented to Gandhiji a 
beautiful leather case with the picture of Bharat- 
mata brought out in relief on it. She is a 
student of Shri Nandalal Bose. With workers 
such as these, work in Bengal should be easier 
than in any other province. Gandhiji asked them 
to take up what was specially women’s work : 

"Menfolk have taken to spinning, but let me 
confess that the art comes more naturally to 
you than to them. One of the reasons is that 
men have many other avenues of employment. 
And if Swaraj has to come through the charkba, 
your share in the fight for freedom is going to 
be greater. Again if Swaraj has to come through 
non-violence, then too your place in the fight 
will be in the forefront, for Nature has given 
you a greater capacity for suffering than she has 
to men. In order also to wipe out the reproach 
of inferiority and subjection that man has imposed 
on woman, you will take your privileged part 
in the fight and prove to the world that you 
are better fighters for freedom than men." 

There were thousands of women in the 
mammoth meeting held on the 25th for the 
presentation of the purse. Gandhiji repeated the 
same sentiments before them. 

The Sangh Lives 

As I said in my last article the Sangh has 
changed, but the Sangh cannot die, and, as 
Gandhiji has effectively shown in his article 
on the Sangh, it has to live more purely and 
nobly than ever before. It was about to be 
the victim of the faults and flaws that over- 
take all organisations when they grow unwieldy, 
especially those with a spiritual object. Shorn 
of its size the Sangh, especially its conscien- 
tious president, is free from the responsibility 
of watching the conduct of its multitude of 
members. Such of those as have accepted its 
ideals will continue to do so even now, and 
their spiritual bond, as between one another 
and with Kishorelalbhai, can never be broken. 
They will still seek and get his advice, and 
they will without calling themselves members of 
the Sangh spread the fragrance of their gospel 
in an unobtrusive way. The committee will 
address itself to the special work of research 
with more freedom from administrative burdens. 
The work of research lies both in t hinkin g and 
working out the potency of the wheel as a 
symbol ‘of non-violence and as an instrument of 
rearing in the country a handicraft civilisation 
on firm and solid foundations, and in getting in 
touch with workers along that line. They will 
examine all the criticism that is levelled against 
-the cult of the charkha with a dispassionate 


mind, get in touch with the critics, and try to 
benefit by whatever may be true in what they say. 

As for the concrete activity of the Sangh, it 
will continue as before. Thus the Ashram at 
Tiruchengodu with' its khadi depot and several 
thousand spinners, its free dispensary, hospital, 
Harijan school and bee-keeping; the Utkal centre 
with its work in ten villages ; the Goseva Char- 
malya ( non-violent tannery ) at Nalwadi ( which 
tanned last year nearly 4,000 skins of dead 
animals, sold Rs. 14,000 worth of tanned leather, 
and Rs. 18,000 worth of manufactured goods) 
— all these activities will go on without being 
affected by the altered form of the Sangh. 

An Appeal 

Friends have drawn my attention to the fact 
that, whilst I mentioned the acts of goondaism 
at Malikanda and the hostile slogans, I had 
said nothing about the assaults on two students 
of Ripon College on the evening of our depar- 
ture for Malikanda. Shri Manoranjanbabu of 
Noakhali visited the young men and found 
that they had received injuries, they also , said 
that they had been assaulted by a vounteer 
in khadi who was shouting ‘Sardar Patel ki Jai’. 
When I wrote my article for the last week’s 
Harijan I knew nothing about these cases. I am 
grieved, as I know Gandhiji and the Sardar would 
be both deeply grieved, for those who with their 
names on their lips assaulted anyone, no matter 
who he was, whether he carried a black flag or 
shouted hostile or insulting slogans. If Gandhiji’s 
voice could reach all the people who take part 
in demonstrations of this character, he would ask 
them not to go to stations or similar places and, 
if they go there, to observe absolute quiet , and 
discipline, no matter how much the provocation 
by word or deed. ‘The cry ‘ Mahatma Gandhi ki 
Jai’ when it is without reason is positively un- 
pleasant and hurtful and often so unbearable as 
to make him stuff his ears, and when combined 
with an unbecoming deed, it is an insult to him. 

Having said this, may I say that those who 
are responsible for leading the youths of Bengal 
are doing no service to them if they encourage 
slogans and indiscipline? May I mention the fact 
that Gandhiji and the Sardar are the recipients 
of letters couched in unprintable language, from 
those who sign themselves “youths of Bengal”. 
Pamphlets which were unworthy of anyone 
who professess to serve and love the mother- 
land were distributed, and a well-known lady 
worker showed me a letter addressed to her 
which contained threats to her and abuse of the 
leaders in unprintable language, for no other fault 
than that she attended the Gandhi Seva Sangh. 
I would like to know whom these youths served 
by their slogans. They certainly did not serve 
themselves nor did they serve the thousands of 
villagers who stood near the fence in Malikanda 
in exemplary silence every day for Gandhiji’s 
darshan. These are still untouched by violence. 
Do we want them to catch the. inftctbn? 

Sevagram, 4-3-40 M. D. 



28 


HARIJAN 


[ March 9, 1940 


Notes 

Segaon Becomes Sevagram 

■ There is Segaon near Wardha where I am 
trying to be a villager. A.nd there is Shegaon, a 
station on the main line about 132 miles west 
of Wardha. The result was that many letters 
and wires meant for Segaon, Wardha, went to 
Shegaon station. In order to avoid this confusion 
an application was sent to the authorities on 
behalf of the villagers to change the name 
of Segaon to Sevagram. It is a name with a 
meaning. It means a village dedicated to service. 
The villagers who signed the application did 

so fully knowing what they were doing. Let us 
hope they will live up to the meaning of the 

name they have chosen to give to their village. 

Correspondents will please bear the change in 
mind. 

- Sevagram, 5-3-40 
When The British Withdraw 

“ Unless you adopt an all-party form of govern- 
ment, you are paving the way towards sowing 

Hindu-Muslim conflict after the British protection is 
withdrawn. It was not non-violence but your tremen- 
dous magnetism plus the backing of British bayonet 
that kept the Congress in power. Try non-violence 
without the latter for two or three months, and the 
truth of the above will be realised.*’ 

Thus writes an esteemed correspondent. I have 
no diflBculty in endorsing the remark that it was 
the British bayonet that kept the Congress minis- 
tries in power. My “ magnetism ” may have had 
something to do with the victory at the polls. 
But it proved utterly useless to keep the minis- 
tries in power. The sustaining force was the 
British bayonet. This only shows that the people 
at large have not yet imbibed the lesson of 
non-violence. 

The remedy is not an all-party government. 
Such will be no government of the people for 
the people. It will be the government of a 
-caucus for its own ends. The caucus will have 
,no smoother sailing than the Congress ministries 
had. It will also have to rely upon the British 
bayonet. There can be no manly peace in the 
land unless the British bayonet is withdrawn. 
The risk of riots has to be run. Non-violence 
will be born out of such risks, if at all it is 
to be part of national life. It is daily becoming 
crystal clear that real unity will not come so 
long as the British bayonet crushes the free 
spirit of the people. The peace it imposes is 
the peace of the grave. I feel that riots will 
be a welcome relief, if that is the price we 
have to pay for freedom. For out of them I can 
conceive the possibility of peace coming, not 
out of the present unreality. The way out of riots 
on the one hand and British bayonets on the 
other is frank acceptance of non-violence. To 
this my life is dedicated, and my faith in its 
possibility and efficacy will survive the dissolu- 
tion of my 1x)dy. 

On the train to Wardha. 3-3-40 


Clear Injustice 

The secretary of the Seng Khasi Free Morning 
School, Mawkhar, Shillong, has sent a circular 
letter to those who are concerned in matters 
educational, and has favoured me also with a 
copy. I extract the following from it : 

“ The British Government gave education grants to 
the Christian missionaries for spreading education 
among the people of the Khasi and Jaintia Hills 
District. The missionaries printed the text-books for 
schools according to their liking and choice* viz. 
History of Jesus, Abraham, Issac, Jacob and so on 
and so forth. They translated the Bible into Khasi 
language and made it a text-book for schools. You 
will find the inspecting staff for the schools of this 
District consist entirely of Christians. Fortunately 
for the Khasis, some pure Khasi gentlemen of hallow- 
ed memory took the initiative of providing national 
education for the Khasi children and started the 
Seng Khasi Free Morning School as early as 1921, 
with a view to preserving Khasi national culture. They 
wrote books containing ideas and ideals of ancient 
Khasi culture and religion. Ever since its starting 
the school has been doing its humble services 
in the line of national education. It is a 
free school and entertains children of all the poorer 
classes. The Deputy Inspector of Schools, Khasi and 
Jaintia Hills, desired us to follow the curriculum 
prescribed by his department. I agreed to accept the 
curriculum provided that those books written or 
compiled by the missionaries should not be included 
in the curriculum of the Seng Khasi School. The 
Deputy Inspector of Schools did not recommend this 
school for a grant from the Government on the 
plea that the curriculum was not followed in the 
school. The books written by the late Babu Jeebon 
Roy, Extra Assistant Commissioner, late U. Radhon 
Sing Berry and U. Sib Charan Roy are being 
taught in the Seng Khasi School. It is a matter 
of great regret that the Deputy Inspector of Schools 
compels this school to teach missionary books and 
frustrate the very object with which it was established.*’ 

If what is stated here is true, it enforces the 
argument often advanced by me that Christian 
missionary effort has been favoured by the ruling 
power. But I advertise the circular not for the 
sake of emphasising my argument. I do so in 
order to ventilate the grievance of the secretary 
of the school. Surely he has every right to 
object to teaching proselytising literature prepared 
by the missionaries. It should be remembered that 
the school has been in receipt of a grant from 
Government. It is not clear why the question 
of the missionary books has now cropped up. It 
is to be hoped ' that the school will not be 
deprived of the grant because of the secretary’s 
very reasonable objection. 

Skimmed Milk 

Prof. Warner of Allahabad Agricultural Insti- 
tute sends me a copy of a note submitted 
by him to a Municipal Board in U. P, The 
Board has passed a bye-law requiring that 
“all skimmed milk sold in the city should 
be coloured in order that at may be easily 
identified as skimmed milk, thereby prevent- 
ing its use in diluting or adulterating whole 
milk.” Prof. Warner is of opinion that this 
is a dangerous bye-law whose effect would be 
total destruction or a valuable protective food. 
He has shown in the note, I- think conclusively. 



MAEOH 9, 1940 ] 


HAEIJAN 


29 


that skimmed milk as an article of food is not 
to be despised, the only difference between 
whole milk and skimmed milk bein^ that a large 
percentage of fat is removed ^from skimmed milk 
for preparing butter, but the milk retains all 
the and all the proteins. Adulteration, there- 
fore, of whole milk with skimmed milk pro- 
duces very little effect upon its nutritive value. 
Only the percentage of fat is reduced somewhat. 
He gives figures in support of his argument 
which I need not reproduce. He does not mind 
bye-laws preventing adulteration even with skim- 
med milk. But he strongly objects, and I think 
rightly, to destroying skimmed milk by colouring 
it, and he shows that not only is a valuable 
article of diet taken away from the mouths 
of poor people, but the danger of adulteration 
of milk with water increases. And this danger 
is very real, because the greater the percentage 
of water the lower is the nutritive value of milk. 
And add to this the fact that the water itself 
may be impure. Prof. Warner draws a distinction 
between requiring the colouring of vegetable ghee 
for preventing adulteration of real ghee, and the 
colouring of skimmed milk. It is wholly neces- 
sary that vegetable ghee should be coloured 
with some innocuous dye. Coloured vegetable ghee 
will be used by the people for its cheapness. 
But as there is already prejudice against skimmed 
milk people will refuse to take coloured skimmed 
milk, even though the colouring matter may be 
utterly innocuous. I would on my own behalf 
enforce Prof. Warner’s argument by suggesting 
that municipalities will do well to popularise the 
use of skimmed milk. It can be sold very cheap 
and it is a perfectly wholesome thing both for 
the rich and the poor, and is a good sick man’s 
diet, when whole milk is rejected by the 
digestive apparatus. 

On the train to Calcutta, 16-2-40 M. K. G. 
QUESTION BOX 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Is It Voluntary? 

Q. The local officials have been collecting 
money from the people in aid of the war fund. 
But the way in which they have been raising 
money, though it is supposed to be voluntary 
giving, seems to be practical coercion. They 
arranged for a drama, but under instructions 
from the officials the village teachers ( some of 
whom get about 12 or 15 rupees per month), 
the village .Munsiff, bazaar-keepers; all had to 
buy tickets varying in price from one to fifteen 
rupees each. A petty shop-keeper whose income 
is only about Rs. 15 had to pay Rs. 5 for a 
ticket though the man never attended the drama. 
He told me he paid the money because the 
local Sub-collector, Tahsildar,- Circle Inspector of 
Police were all there’ in person to collect the 
money. I am told Rs. 3,500 were raised in one 
night in my village. Will you advise what to do ? 

A. If what you say is true, it is naked 
coercion. There is nothing voluntary in the 
people’s action. I can only hope that the higher 


authorities do not know anything about such 
high-handed procedure. Your duty is clear. You 
must tell the people that they ought not to 
submit to coercion. They are as free to refuse to 
buy tickets as they are free to buy them. You 
and they should run the risk involved; you in 
instructing the people, and they in refusing to pay. 

A Young Man’s Dilemma 
Q. I am a young m an of 22 years. Is it 
legitimate for me to refuse to oblige my father 
in the matter of marriage if I do not wish 
to marry ? 

A. According to the shastras and also' reason, 
children when they reach the age of discretion, 
which the former prescribe as 16, become their 
parents’ friends, i. e. are free from parental dic- 
tation. They are still bound to consult them 
and defer to their wishes wherever they can. 
You are full-grown, and in a matter so vital 
as marriage you should respectfully refuse to 
marry if the match is not to your liking or 
for any other valid reason. 

A Domestic Difficulty 

Q. I am a young man of 23 years. For the 
last two years I have been using pure khadi 
only. For the last 28 days I have been spinn- 
ing regularly in my leisure time. But my wife 
refuses to wear khadi. She says it is too coarse. 
Should I compel her to use khadi? I may also 
mention that I find our temperaments are 
incompatible. 

A. This is the common lot of life in India. 

I have often said that the husband, being the 
stronger and more educated party, has to act 
as tutor to his wife and put up with her 
defects, if any. In your case you have to bear 
the incompatibility and conquer your wife by 
love, never by compulsion. It follows that you 
cannot compel your wife to use khadi. But you 
should trust your love and example to make 
her do the right thing. Remember your wife b 
not your property any more than you are hers. 
She b your better half. Treat her as such. 
You will not regret the experiment. 

Another Domestic Difficulty 
Q. I am married. My wife is a good woman. 
We have children. We have lived together in 
peace hitherto. Unfortunately she came across 
someone whom she has adopted as her guru. 
She has received gurumantra from her, and her 
life has become a close book for me. .This has 
given rise to coolness between us. I do not 
know what I should do. Rama, as portrayed 
by Tulsidas, is my ideal hero. Should I not do 
what Rama did, and cut off all connection 
with my wife? 

A. Tulsidas has taught us that we may not 
indiscriminately imitate the great. What they 
may do with impunity we may not. Think of 
Rama’s love for Sita. Tulsidas telb us that 
before the appearance of the golden deer the 
real Sita at the behest of Rama disappeared in 
the clouds and the mere shadow remained. This 
fact was a close secret even from Lakshmana* 





XXX1.XVX«I -CXil 




The poet further tells us that Rama had a 
purpose which was divine. It was with this 
shadow of Sita that Rama dealt after the 
appearance of the golden deer on the scene. Even 
so Sita never resented any single act of Rama. 
All such data would be lacking in any mundane 
case, as they are lacking in yours. Therefore 
my advice to you would be to bear with your 
wife and not interfere with her so long as you 
have no cause of complaint against her conduct. 
If you adopted someone as your guru and had 
your gurumantra and if you did not impart the 
secret to your wife, I am sure you would not 
relish her resenting your refusal to disclose the 
secret. I admit that between husband and wife 
there should be no secrets from one another. I 
have a very high opinion of the marriage tie. 
1 hold that husband and wife merge in each 
other. They are one in two or two in one. 
But these things cannot be regulated mechani- 
cally. All things considered, therefore, since you 
are a liberal-minded husband, you should have 
no difficulty in respecting your wife’s reluctance 
to share the secret with you. 

Muslim Weavers and Mill Yam 

Q. By insisting on the use of certified khadi 
only, you have delivered a very severe blow to 
the Muslim weavers on the one hand who are 
mostly using mill yarn, and on the other to the 
consumer who is thus induced to purchase cer- 
tified khadi which is notoriously dear. I am a 
Muslim working for the uplift of the weaver 
class. I appeal to you to remove this double 
hardship by sanctioning the use of hand-woven 
mill yam khadi. 

A. There is no communalism in khadi. The 
A. I. S. A. has thousands of Muslim spinners 
and himdreds of Muslim weavers on its books. 
Khadi has as yet made little impression upon 
mill yarn weavers. What it has done is to 
provide occupation to those Hindu and Mus lim 
weavers who were thrown out of employment 
by mill competition. Those weavers who do not 
take to weaving handspun are cutting their own 
throats because the natural consequence of the 
spread of mills will be the destruction of weavers 
as it has been that of hand-spinners. The hand- 
loom weavers who have held their own are 
pattern weavers. If khadi became universal, 
Muslim and other weavers who are today 
weaving .mill yam would, as a matter of course, 
take to weaving handspun. Thus there is no 
case of khadi ever hitting a single weaver. In 
ffict it is his sole protection. 

A Ticklish Question 

Q. I am a Hindu student. I have been great 
friends with a Muslim, but we have fallen out 
over the question of idol worship. I find solace 
in idol worship, but I cannot give an answer to 
my Muslim fnend in terms of what may be 
called convincing. Will you say something on 
idol worship in Harijanl 

A. My sympathies arc both with you and 
your Muslim fnend. I suggest your reading my 


writings on the question in Young India and, if 
you feel at all satisfied, let your Muslim friend 
read them too. If your friend has real love for 
you, he will conquer his prejudice against idol 
worship. A friendship which exacts oneness of 
opinion and conduct is not worth much. Friends 
have to tolerate one another’s ways of life and 
thought even though they may be different, 
except where the difference is fundamental. May- 
be your friend has come to think that it is 
sinful to associate with you as you are an idolater. 
Idolatry is bad, not so idol worship. An idolater 
makes a fetish of his idol. An idol worshipper 
sees God even in a stone and therefore takes 
the help of an idol to establish his union with 
God. Every Hindu child knows that the stone 
in the famous temple in Benares is not Kashi 
Vishwanath. But he believes that the Lord of 
the Universe does reside specially in that stone. 
This play of the imagination is permissible and 
healthy. Every edition of the Gita on a book- 
stall has not that sanctity which I ascribe to 
my own copy. Logic tells me there is no more 
sanctity in my copy than in any another. The 
sanctity is in my imagination. But that imagi- 
nation brings about marvellous concrete results. 
It changes men's lives. I am of opinion that, 
whether we admit it or not; we are all idol 
yrorshippers or idolaters, if the distinction I have 
drawn is not allowed. A book, a building, a 
picture, a carving are surely all images in 
which God does reside, but they are not God. 
He who says they are errs. 

Educated Unemployment 

Q. The problem of unemployment among the 
educated is assuming alarming proportions. You 
of course condemn higher education, but those 
of us who have been to the University realise 
that we do develop mentally there. Why should 
you discourage anyone from learning? Would 
not a better solution be for unemployed gradu- 
ates to go in for mass education and let the 
villagers give them food in return? And could 
not Provincial Governments come to their aid 
and help them with some money and clothing? 

A. I am not against higher education. But I 
am against only a few lakhs of boys and girls 
receiving it at the expense of the poor tax-payer. 
Moreover I am against the type of higher 
education that is given. It is much cry and 
little wool. The whole system of higher educa- 
tion and for that matter all education needs 
radical overhauling. But your difficulty is about 
unemployment. In this you have • may sympathy 
and co-operation. On the principle that every 
labourer is worthy of his hire, every graduate 
who goes to a village to serve it is entitled to 
be housed, fed and clothed by the villagers. And 
they do it too. But they will not when the 
graduate lives like Sahehhg and costs them ten 
times as much as they can afford. His life 
must accord as nearly as possible with that of 
the villagers and his mission must find apprecia- 
tion among them. Sevagram, 5-3—40 



March 9, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


31 


AN INTERLUDE AT SANTINIKETAN 

“ Love never faileth.” ( I Cor. 13-8 ) 

Prof. L. P. Jacks has somewhere pithily 
observed that there is nothing like ‘ safe conduct’ 
in morality. Prescriptive morality is a contra- 
diction in terms. Morality begins only where 
certainty ends, and a person who holds hack 
action until he has a cent per cent guarantee 
that his line of conduct is correct, will ever 
remain a stranger to moral action in the true 
sense, for there is no virtue in a morality that 
has no element of risk or adventure in it. 

What is true of prescriptive morality is truer 
still of non-violence. The practice of non-vio- 
lence presents its votaries baffling conundrums 
at every step. But if a person makes of it a 
doctrine of negation and allows it to choke his 
sp ring of action so as to make him a helpless 
witness of wrong, he stultifies himself spiritually 
and puts non-violence to shame. This was the 
kernel of Gandhiji’s remarks before a small group 
of pacifists, who led by Dr. Amiya Chakravarti 
took the opportunity to exchange notes with him 
on the subject of non-violence during his brief 
two days’ stay at Santiniketan. The group 
included a couple of Quaker friends and Shri 
Gurdial Mullick, who acted the delicate and 
difficult part of Gandhiji’s jailor and caretaker 
under Gurudev’s roof. Dr. Chakravarti is himself 
a careful student of non-violence, and the group 
he has organised is particularly interested in 
studying its technique in action. 

“ Supposing, ’’ asked one of them, “ in the 
presence of superior brute force one feels helpless, 
would he be justified in using just enough force 
to prevent the perpetration of wrong ? ” “ Yes,” 
replied Gandhiji, "but there need not be that 
feeling of helplessness if there is real non- 
violence in you. To feel helpless in the presence 
of violence is not non-violence but cowardice. 
Non-violence should not be mixed up with 
cowardice,” 

The friend adduced a specific instance. “ Suppose 
someone came and hurled insult at you, should 
you allow yourself to be thus humiliated?” 

“If you feel humiliated,” replied Gandhiji, “you 
will be justified in slapping the bully in the 
face or taking whatever action you might dooTp 
necessary to vindicate your self-respect. The 
use of force, under the circumstances, would be 
the natural consequence if you are not a coward. 
But there should be no feeling of humiliation 
in you if you have assimilated the non-violent 
spirit. Your non-violent behaviour would then 
either make the bully feel ashamed of himsplf 
and prevent the insult, or make you immune 
against it so that the insult would remain only 
in the bully’s mouth and not touch you at all.” 

The friend varied the argument. ‘‘Supposing 
there is a person with a diseased mind — a lunatic 
run amock, bent upon murder, or you arrive 
on the scene of trouble when the situation has 
already advanced too far. An infuriated mob 
has got out of hand, aiid you feel helpless, would 


you justify the use of physical force to restrain 
the lunatic in the first case, or allow the use, 
say, of tear gas in the latter ?” he asked. 

“ I will excuse it for all time,” replied Gandhiji. 
“But I would not say it is justified from the 
non-violent standpoint. I would say that there 
was not that degree of non-violence in you to 
give you confidence in purely non-violent treat- 
ment. If you had, your simple presence would 
be sufficient to pacify the lunatic. Non-violence 
carries within it its own sanction. It is not 
a mechanical thing. You do not become non- 
violent by merely saying, ‘ I shall not use 
force.’ It must be felt in the heart. There 
must be within you an upwelling of love and 
pity towards the wrong-doer. When there is 
that feeling it will express itself through some 
action. It may be a sign, a glance, even silence. 
But such as it is it will melt the heart of the 
wrong-doer and check the wrong. 

“ The use of tear gas is not justified in terms 
of the non-violent ideal. But I would defend 
its use against the whole world if I found 
myself in a comer when I could not save a 
helpless girl from violation or prevent an infuri- 
ated crowd from indulging in madness, except 
by its use. God would not excuse me if, on 
the Judgment Day, I were to plead before 
Him that I could not prevent these things from 
happening because I was held back by my creed 
of non-violence. Non-violence is self-acting, A 
fully non-violent person is by natxure incapable 
of using violence or rather has no use for it. 
His non-violence is all-sufficing under all 
circumstances. 

“ Therefore, when I say that the use of force 
is wrong and whatever degree and under what- 
ever circumstances, I mean it in. a relative 
sense. It is much better for me to say I have 
not sufficient non-violence in me, than to admit 
exceptions to an eternal principle. Moreover my 
refusal to admit exceptions spiurs me to perfect 
myself in the technique of non-violence. I 
literally believe in Patanjali’s aphorism that 
violence ceases in the presence of non-violence.” 

“Can a State carry on strictly according to 
the principle of non-violence ? ” put in another 
friend. 

“ A Government cannot succeed, ” replied 
Gandhiji, “ in becoming entirely non-violent, 
because it represents all the people. I do not 
today conceive of such a golden age. But I 
do believe in the possibility of a predominantly 
non-violent society. And I am working for it. 
A Government representing such society will 
use the least amount of force. But no Govern- 
ment worth its name can suffer anarchy to 
prevail. Hence I have said that even under a 
Government based primarily on non-violence a 
small police force will be necessary.” 

On train, 17-2-40 Pyaielal 

Mahatma Gandhi By S. Radhakrishnan. Rs. 5-10-0. 
Postage 7 As. Available at Harijan Office- Poona 4 
and 81 Queen’s Road, Bombay 2. 



32 


HAEIJAIf 


[ March 9, 1940 



WHEN? 

(.By M. K. Gandhi") 

Everybody is asking me not whether but when 
I am to call the country to civil disobedience. 
Some of my questioners are the most sober 
among co-workers. To them the Patna resolution 
has no other meaning than that the struggle’s 
coming is a question of days. It is proof 
the country, or that part of it that has hitherto 
taken part in the struggle for freedom, is tired 
of waiting and suspense. It is heartening to 
think that there are in the country so many 

persons who count no sacrifice too dear for 
gaining independence. 

While, therefore, I admire the -rpal of my 
questioners, I must warn them a gainsf being 
impatient. There is nothing in the resolution 
to warrant the belief that the atmosphere is 
suitable for declaring dvil disobedience. It will 
be suicidal to declare it when there is so much 
indiscipline and violence within the Congress 
itself. Congressmen will make a serious mistaW 
if they do not give full weight to my words. 
I cannot, will not, start mass civil disobedience 
so long as I am not convinced that there is 
enough discipline and enough non-violence in 
Congress ranks. The apathy about the construc- 
tive programme, i. e. spinning and sales of Irbad? , 
I take to be positive signs of unhplipf Battle 
through such instruments is foredoomed to 
failure. Such persons should know I am 

not their man. If there is no hope of 
attaining the necessary measure of discipline and 
non-violence, it would be better to let me 
retire from leadership. 

Let it be clearly understood that I cannot be 
hustled into precipitating the struggle. They err 
grievously who think that I can ever declare 
civil disobedience, having been driven thereto by 
the so-called leftists. I make no such distinction 
between rightists and leftists. Both are my co- 
workers and friends. He will be a bold man 
who can with any measure of certainty draw 
the line of demarcation between leftists and 
rightists. Congressmen and aon-Congressmen sbmdd 
also know that, even if the whole country were 
to turn against me, I must, when the time comes, 
fight single-handed. The others have or may have 
weapons besides non-violence. I have no rbni^-^ 
Being the author of non-violent technique in 
the political field, I am bound to fi g b t when I 
feel the urge from within. 

It is inherent in the technique that I never 
know the time table in advance. The call may 
come at any time. It need not be described as 
from God. The inner urge is a current phrase 
easily understood. Everybody sometimes acts upon 


the iimer urge. Such action need not always be 
right. But there is no other explanation possible 
for certain actions. 

The thought often comes to me that it would 
be a good thing if the Congress could forget 
me. I do sometimes feel that with my strange 
views of life I am a misfit in the Congress. 
Whatever special qualifications I may possess 
and for which the Congress and the country 
may have use, can perhaps be better utilised if 
I were wholly cut off fitom the Congress. But 
I know that this severance cannot be brought 
about mechanically or violently. It will come 
in its own time, if it has to come. Only 
Congressmen should know my limitations and 
should not be surprised or grieved if they finH 
me stiff and unbending. I ask them to believe 
me when I say that I am incapable of acting 
without the fulfilment of the conditions laid 
down for declaring mass civil disobedience. 

Sevagram, 5-3-40 

INDIA AND THE WAR 

In view of the critical situation which the 
country has to face; the Working Committee 
has decided, at its meeting held at Patna last 
week, to recommend to the Congress Subjects 
Committee only the following resolution: 

This Congress, having considered the grave 
and critical situation resulting from the War 
in Europe and British policy in regard to it, 
approves of and endorses the resolutions passed 
and the action taken on the War situation by 
the A I. C. C. and the Working Committee. The 
Congress considers the declaration by the British 
Government of India as a belligerent country, 
without any reference to the people of India, 
and the exploitation of India’s resources in this 
War, as an a&ont to them, which no self- 
respecting and freedom-loving people can accept 
ortolerare. The recent pronouncements made on 
behalf of the British Government in regard to 
India demonstrate that Great Britain is carrying 
on the War fundamentally for imperialist ends 
and for the preservation and strengthening of her 
Empire, which is based on the exploitation of 
the people of India, as well as of other Asiatic 
and A&ican countries. Under these circumstances, 
it is clear that the Congress cannot in any way, 
directly or indirectly, be party to the War, 
which means continuance and perpetuation of 
this exploitation. The Congress, therefore, strong- 
ly disapproves of Indian troops being made to 
fight for Great Britain and of the drain from 
India of men and material for the purpose of 
the War. Neither the recruiting nor the money 
raised in India can be considered to be volun- 
tary contributions from India. Congressmen, and 
those under the Congress influence, cannot help 
in the prosecution of the War with men, 
money or material 

The Congress hereby declares again that 
nothing short of Complete Independence can be 
accepted by the people of India. Indian freedoms 



March 9, 1940 


HARIJAN 


33 


cannot exist within the orbit ofj •imperialism* 
-and Dominion Status or any other status ^within 
•the imperial structure is wholly inapplicable Jto 
India, is not in keeping with the dignity of a 

great nation, and would bind India in many 

ways to British policies and economic structure. 
The people of India alone can properly shape 
their own constitution and determine their 
relations to the other countries of the world, 
through a Constituent Assembly elected on the 
basis of adult sufiErage. 

The Congress is further of opinion that 
while it will always be ready, as it ever has 

been, to make every effort to secure communal 

harmony, no permanent solution is possible except 
through a Constituent Assembly, where the rights 
of all recognised minorities will be fully pro- 
tected by agreement, as far as possible, between 
the elected representatives of various majority and 
minority groups, or by arbitration if agreement 
is not reached on any point. Any alternative 
will lack finality. India's constitution must be 
based on independence, democracy and national 
unity, and the Congress repudiates attempts to 
divide India or to split up her nationhood. The 
Congress has always aimed at a constitution 
where the fullest freedom and opportunities of 
•development are guaranteed to the group and 
the individual, and social injustice yields place 
to a juster social order. 

The Congress cannot admit the right of the 
Rulers of Indian States, or of foreign vested 
•interests, to come in the way of Indian freedom. 
■Sovereignty in India must rest with the people, 
whether in the States or the Provinces, and all 
■other interests must be subordinated to their 
vital interests. The Congress holds that the 
difficulty raised in regard to the States is of 
British creation, and it will not be satisfactorily 
solved unless the declaration of the freedom of 
India from foreign rule is unequivocally made. 
Foreign interests, if they are not in conflict with 
»the interests of the Indian people, will be protected. 

The Congress withdrew the Ministries from 
the Provinces where the Congress had a majority 
•in order to dissociate India from the War and 
to enfisree the Congress determination to free 
India from foreign domination. This preliminary 
«tep must naturally be followed by civil dis- 
obedience, to which the Congress will unhesj tat- 
ingly resort as soon as the Congress organization 
is considered fit enough for the purpose, or in 
•case circumstances so shape themselves as to 
precipitate a crisis. The Congress desires to 
■draw the attention of Congressmen to Gandhiji’s 
■declaration that he can only undertake the 
•responsibility of declaring civil disobedience when 
■he is satisfied that they are strictly observing 
•discipline and are carrying out the constructive 
•programme prescribed in the Independence Pledge. 

The Congress seeks to represent and serve 
•all classes and communities without distinction 
•of race or religion, and the struggle for Indian 
independence is for the freedom of the whole 


nation. Hence the Congress cherishes the hope 
that all classes and communities will take part 
in it. The purpose of civil disobedience is to 
evoke the spirit of sacrifice in the whole nation. 

The Congress hereby authorises the All India 
Congress Committee and, in the event of this 
being necessary, the Working Committee, to take 
all steps to implement the foregoing resolution „ 
as the Committee concerned may deem necessary. 

WHAT RESOLUTION MEANS 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

The question has come from London whether 
the Congress has closed the door to negotiation 
and compromise. My interpretation of the reso- 
lution is that the Congress has not closed the 
door. It has been closed by Lord Zetland. 
There can be no negotiation on his terms 
so far as the Congress is concerned. India will 
not be a helpless partner in her own exploita- 
tion and foreign domination. The Congress will 
not rest till India is a free country as Britain 
is. And if India accepts non-violence as her 
settled policy, she will be freer than Britain. 
Britain, which has ruled the waves, is in danger 
of losing her liberty. I have prescribed a 
remedy which is fool-proof. Whether the Congress 
will be instrumental in gaining India’s freedom 
or not is a different question. The resolution 
states in unequivocal terms that the Congress 
will enter into no compromise that gives India 
less. The other thing that the Congress has made 
clear is that the British aim being known to 
be no ot^er than the consolidation of the British 
Empire, the India that is influenced by the 
Congress can be no party to the war. In other 
words, the Congress cannot give Britain its moral 
support. The third thing the resolution makes 
clear is that the fight, whenever it comes, will 
be strictly non-violent and, therefore, under severe 
discipline. The choice will be Britain's, not that 
of the Congress, whether India is once more to 
be a prison house for those who will rather 

be prisoners and even go through greater 
sufferings than be helpless witnesses of their 
country’s continuous subordinatbn to Great 
Britain or any other Power. Calcutta, 2-3-40 

Handmade Paper 

The following are the figures of pur purchases and 
sales of paper from January 1st to February 29th, 
1940 : 

Purchases Sales 

January 2599-10-0 1731-10-3 

February 1933-2-6 1375-14-3 

4532-12-6 3307— a^6 

Moreover. Rs. 386-0-3 have been given as catting 
and envelope-making charges. 

During these two months we have sdd 64,338 

whole sheets; 62,932 latter paper; 193,659 envelopes; 
164 card sheets; 17,148 cards; 1,170 whole blotting 
sheets; 787 blotting pieces; 950 visiting cards; 6L 
pocket books; 2,100 tag labels; and 708 office files. 

Manager, Harijani Poona 4; and 81 Queen's Roadt 
Bombay 2. 



34 


HABIJAN 


I Maeoh 9, 1940 


THE SABTINIKETAN PILGEIMAGE 

In the course of a 'letter which he wrote on 
the eve of his visit to Santiniketan Gandhiji 
described it as a ‘ pilgrimage As an institution 
that, pending his arrival, invited and gave shel- 
ter, under its hospitable roof, to members of his 
‘family’ on their return to India from South 
Africa, it has always claimed a soft corner in 
his heart. And the sweet associations of 
Gurudev and Borodada, the late Mr. Pearson and 
Deenbandhu Andrews have only heightened that 
feeling. To attune himself to that feeling, or 
perhaps under the stress of that feeling, 
Gandhiji before starting made a drastic reduc- 
tion in his entourage, cutting it down to the 
barest minimum irrespective of every other con- 
sideration, and though' many at that time failed 
to catch its import, it gave Gandhiji, in the 
retrospect, a supreme satisfaction to have taken 
that unbending moral stand as the only course 
befitting the solemnity of the occasion. 

This was to be his third visit to Santiniketan 
the last one bemg fourteen years ago — in 1925. 
He knew it was overdue. Every report about 
Gurudev's failing health accompanied by a ‘love 
message’ from the Poet that Deenbandhu sent 
to Gandhiji from time to time, reminded him 
of it. It was Deenbandhu who had acted as the 
‘go-between’ on the present occasion, when he 
conveyed to Gandhiji the Poet’s pressing invita- 
tion to visit Santiniketan. But by a cruel irony 
when that long looked for visit actually came 
he was not there to witness it. He " had been 
suddenly taken ill a few days before and 
removed to the Presidency Hospital, Calcutta, in 
a precarious condition. He was more than a 
member of the ‘ joint family ’ of Gurudev and 
Gandhiji, and the shadow of this domestic illness 
overhung and tinged the whole of Gandhiji’s 
Santiniketan visit. 

A Sacred Remembrance 

A small reception had been arranged for 
Gandhiji on the afternoon of the day of his 
arrival. It was held in the Amrakunja, a spot 
rendered sacred by its associations with the 
late Maharshi Debendranath Tagore, Gurudev’s 
father. It was here, tradition says, that he used 
to sit and sometimes remain absorbed in medi- 
tation from eventide till daybreak. By his will 
he converted it into a place of universal wor- 
ship of one Brahma, the Formless and Invisible, 
and a sanctuary for aU wild animal life. 

The function commenced with a chanting of 
the Poet’s favourite Upanishadic text, with the 
haunting refrain 

“ Those who come to know Him, 

They attain to immortality.” 

The address of welcome was read by Gurudev 
himselfr It was short and impressive. But Gandhiji’s 
thoughts were far away with Charlie Andrews 
in Calcutta. On a . previous occasion Deen- 
bandhu had sung' 


And I have seen His face 
have seen and known 
This sacrament was given. 

* ^ » 

And I can wait the dawning of the day, 

The day-star on my night already shining. 

The shadow and the veil shall pass away, 

Death shall make true my dreaming.” 

And now he lay hovering between life and 
death. Gandhiji made a feeling reference to him 
in his reply. 

**My uppermost feelings on arriving here are 
about Deenbandhu, ” he began. “ Perhaps you 
do not know that the first thing I did yesterday 
morning on alighting from the train at Calcutta 
was to pay him a visit in the hospital. Gurudev 
is a world poet, but Deenbandhu too has the' 
spirit and temperament of a poet in him. He 
had long yearned to be present on the present 
occasion, to drink in and store up the memory 
of every word, movement and gesture relating 
to the meeting with Gurudev. But God had 
willed it otherwise and he now lies in Calcutta,, 
stricken down and unable even to make full use 
of his speech. I would like you all to join me in 
the prayer that God may restore him to us soon 
and, in any case, may grant his spirit peace. 
Sweet Old Memories 

‘‘I have not come here as a stranger or a 
guest. Santiniketan has been more than a home 
to me. It was here that the members of my 
South African family found warm hospitability 
in 1914, pending my arrival from England, and 
I too found shelter here for nearly a month. 
The memories of those days crowd in upon me 
as I see you all, here assembled before me. It 
grieves me that I cannot prolong my stay here 
as I would have loved to. It is a question of 
duty. In a letter to a friend, the other day, I 
described my present trip to Santiniketan and 
Malikanda as a pilgrimage. Santiniketan has 
truly, this time, proved for . me a ‘ niketan ’ of 
‘ Santi ’ — an abode of peace. I have come here 
leaving behind me all the cares and burdens 
of politics, simply to have Gurudev’s darshan 
and blessings. I seek often claimed myself to be 
an accomplished beggar. But a more precious 
gift has never dropped into my beggar’s bowl 
than Gurudev’s blessings today. I know his 
blessings are with me always. But it has been 
my privilege today to receive the same from 
him in person, and that fills me with joy.” 

Vidyabhawan 

The next day the whole morning was devoted 
to making a round of all the various depart- 
ments of Santiniketan, followed by a visit to 
Sriniketan. Kshitishbabu, ‘‘the sole survivor” of 
the older group of teachers whom Gandhiji had 
contacted during his last visit to and stay at 
Santiniketan, acted as the guide. It was a privi- 
lege in the Vidyabhawan to meet Haribabu, 
the compiler of the Bengali dictionary, who has, 
single-handed, after twentyeight years of conti- 



March 9, 1940] 


HABIJAN 


35 


jiuous labour completed a work which entitles 
him to be ranked with literary giants like Shri 
hTagendranath Bose, the author of Bengali 
Vishwakosha, and Prof. Murray of the Oxford 
Dictionary fame. Sixtyfour volumes of his monu- 
mental work, we were told, have already been 
published, and the complete set, when it is ready 
in another three years’ time, will run into 
eighty and cost from 40 to 50 rupees. 

In the China Bhawan or the Department of 
Chinese Culture, Prof. Tan-Yuan Sen was not 
there, being away with the China’s goodwill 
deputation that is touring India, but his good 
wife was there to meet Gandhiji. Gandhiji was 
here shown the library of Chinese books that 
the Chinese nation had presented to the Visva- 
bharati. The Chinese children, Gandhiji was told, 
were not one whit behind any other in establi- 
shing a freemasonary with their Santiniketan 
chums, and felt quite at home with them 
undeterred by the “language difficulty’’, 

A Philosopher Prince 

In the section of Islamic culture, Gandhiji was 
delighted to see an original manuscript transcribed 
in his own beautiful caligraphic hand by that 
Philosopher Prince — Dara Shikoh, who through 
his mysticism arrived at a catholicity and 
breadth of religious outlook that was unheard 
'of in those days and is rare even in our own. In 
■a monograph published by the Department we are 
told how he patronised men of all denominations, 
saints, theologians, philosophers and poets of 
every creed and community, studied Sanskrit, 
became deeply interested in the Vedanta and 
Yoga philosophy, and from the learned pandits 
of Benares and contacts with yogis, initiated him- 
self into the practices of Yoga. Denounced by 
the fanatical set as a heretic he was neverthe- 
less a true Mussalman. In a lengthy introduc- 
tion to the Upanishads which he himself trans- 
lated into Persian, he has explained how he was 
led to their study through his search after 
Reality. “ Subtle doubts came into my mind for 
which I had no possibility of solution and, 
whereas the Holy Koran is almost totally enig. 
matical and at the present day the under- 
standers thereof are very rare, I became desirous 
to collect into one view all the revealed books, 
as the very word of God itself might be its 
own commentary, and if in one book it be com- 
pendious in another book it might be found 
diffusive. ’’ Proceeding he adds that as a “mystic 
enthusiast and ardent advocate of the unity of 
God”, he searched for Reality no matter in what 
language, and that in quest for Truth, in the 
higher stages of its realisation, religion is of no 
•matter.” And so he came to ‘Upanekhats’ 
“which are a treasury of monotheism.” And 
yet it was not that he wanted to raise a hybrid 
growth by grafting Hindusim on Islam or vice 
versa. As Dr. Yusuf Hussan has pointed out, “he 
■was actuated by a desire to prove that both 
Islam and Hinduism, in appearance so funda- 
mentally dissimilar, are essentially the same. Both 


represent spiritual efforts of man to realize Truth 
and God.” 

In Nandababu’s Sancium 

The last to be visited was the Kala Bhawan, 
Shri Nandababu’s sanctum sanctorum of art. “Like 
Krishna, he hides himself behind his work,” was 
the epigramatic description given of him by a 
friend to Gandhiji. Retiring, shy, reserved, he 
is the pattern of humility and unassuming un- 
ostentatiousness. He lives only in and for his art 
which he has taken as his spiritual Sadhana. “You 
cannot become an artist, ” he is fond of telling 
his pupils, “ unless you identify yourself with the 
humblest and the meanest of God’s creation. ”, 
A gentler soul has hardly ever breathed. All 
the children are his chums, and it is a common 
sight to see Nandababu make a detour to avoid 
a bunch of youngsters engaged in a ‘ lark ’ 
lest he should intrude upon their ‘ freedom ' !! 
“ Art is a jealous and exacting mistress, ” is 
another favourite saying of his. But though 
fastidious and meticulous to a degree in his 
devotion, to his ideal, he has never been known 
to send away an aspiring artist without an 
encouraging word. 

His genius is only matched by his industry. 
There is hsirdly a nook or a corner in Santi- 
niketan but bears the impress of his art and 
industry. A wall to him is only a bed for the 
execution of a fresco or a bas-relief panel, a ceil- 
ing simply a surface for bearing his cartoons, a 
lump of clay plastic material to be turned into 
a beautiful model. As a friend remarked half 
seriously, half in banter, if Nandababu bad his 
way, he would use our great globe itself as 
material for turning out some cosmic piece of 
art! It gave Gandhiji particular satisfaction and 
joy to know that, next to Bengal, Gujarat had 
provided Nandababu the largest number of pupils. 

Gurudev at Seventynine 

Gandhiji had several intimate talks with 
Gurudev. But they are of too sacred and, 
personal a character for recapitulation here. 
At seventynine the Poet’s countenance shows 
no diminuition .in its luster, the eyes burn 
brighter than ever, the step is firm although 
he needs support and moves about only with 
difficulty. The voice has lost none of its vigour 
or its sonorous musical quality, and the spirit 
retains all the freshness and irrepressible exuber- 
ance of youth. He insisted upon Gandhiji wit- 
nessing the performance of his fiivourite musical 
pantomime, Chandalika, in which his grand- 
daughter played the principal part. He personally 
supervised the rehearsal and even delayed the 
programme by a quarter of an hour till he was 
satisfied that everything was tip-top. It was a 
sight to be remembered when at one stage he 
almost jumped to the edge of his seat and broke 
out into a musical interpolation to provide the 
cue when the performers haul or seemed to have 
lost it. His enthusiasm must have got an infecti- 
ous quality in it, for I have never seen Gandhiji 
follow with such sustained and rapt interest any 



36 HAKIJAJN [ MAECH 9, 1940 


entertainment as he did this one during the 
full one hour that it lasted. 

A ‘Saddening Reflection 

From a bare spot that Santiniketan is origin- 
ally said to have been and notorious for being 
the haunt of dacoits, it has under the magic of 
Gurudev’s personality grown to its present size, 
and yet, as Kshitishhabu remarked to Gandhiji 
with a sigh, “ the scholars who arc engaged in 
research work are cramped for space, and when 
enough accommodation is.forthcoming, who knows, 
the present race of scholars at any rate may 
have run its course 1” 

On train, 26-2-40 • Pyafelal 

UNCONVINCING APOLOGIA 

Mr. F. £. James has done the courtesy of send- 
ing Gandhiji the text of his reply to the 
latter’s article “The Fourfold Ruin” that recently 
* appeared in Harijati. It is a clever piece of 
reasoning, but it is hardly convincing. 

Mr. James's quarrel with Gandhiji is that the 
inclusion of the fourfold indictment of the 
British rule in the pledge is, in the first place 
unnecessary and irrelevant, in the second place 
it is untrue, and lastly it is provocative. 

Let us take the second objection first. For, if 
the “fourfold ruin” lacks a historical basis, that 
by itself should be enough reason to justify the 
deletion of the passage in the pledge under 
reference. 

Mr. James denies that Britain can be held 
guilty of bringing about the economic ruin of 
India or the destruction of her cottage industries, 
which he contends was inevitable as a result of 
the impact of Western industrialism upon the 
primitive economy of the East. One is con- 
strained to say that Mr. James has here begged 
the issue. The question is not whether the 
progress of industrialism would have by itself 
sufficed to kill Indian cottage industries, but 
whether the policy adopted by the British admi- 
nistrators with regard to them was not" calcu- 
lated to bring about that result. The tragic 
story of the levying by Britain of one, two, 
even five, hundred per cent and higher import 
duties on the Indian textiles, the notorious 
* hedge' duties and the Mutarfa tax* or of the 

* With regard to it the Hon. Frederick Shore, son 
of Lord Teignmouth, in one of his Notes on 
Indian Affairs, in reviewing Sir Charles Trevelyan’s 
Report, wrote : “ The poor natives of India submit 
to all this, as they do to every other extortion and 
oppression which they suffer at our hands, because 
they look upon redress as hopeless; but hear the 
bitter complaints which were made to Lieutenant 
Burnes by the merchants of Bokhara. They actually 
declared that the vexatious annoyances and extortion 
practised on merchants in the British-Indian provinces 
were infinitely greater than they experienced in 
Eus^, Peshawar,’ Kabool or Bokhara.” 

* It was described in a memorandum submitted to 
the House of Commons as "a tax upon trades and 
occupations, embracing weavers, carpenters)' all workers 


inhuman exploitation of the Bengal artisans under 
the East India Company which led them to 
cut off their thumbs as the only means of escape- 
ficom their unendurable lot, is all recorded in 
authentic history. Let the curious trim over the 
well-documented pages of R. C. Dutt, whose 
accuracy has not been challenged in a single 
particular, or of Montgomery Martin, and 
judge for himself whether human ingenuity could 
go further in devising means for the extermi- 
nation of a people’s handicrafts, or whether any 
system of industry in the world would survive 
such sabotage. It is true that the progress of 
industrialism had an equally devastating effect 
on the cottage industries of Britain. What is 
forgotten is that the latter were not sacrificed 
to benefit the industry of another nation as- 
India’s were for the sake of Britain. 

Similarly, Mr. James forgets that, whilst he 
energetically repudiates the charge of thrusting 
upon India denationalising education, the authors 
of our educational system were themselves 
refreshingly frank about it. The father of India’s 
present-day educational policy made no bones 
about it when he declared that the intention, 
behind it was “to form a class of persons who 
would he Indian in blood and colour, but 
English in taste, in opinion, in morals and in 
intellect,” nor when he expressed the hope that, 

“ if our plans of education arc followed up, there 
will not be a single idolater among the respect- 
able class in Bengal thirty years hence.”* 

Nor is the spiritual deterioration of a nation 
under foreign political domination a matter 
requiring elaborate historical research; it is a. 
question of the evidence of one’s senses. Mr. James 
worsens his case when he tries to defend humi- 
liating ceremonials on the ground that they owe 
very much to India which existed before the 
British came. It should be enough that they 
are keenly resented by every self-respecting son 
of India. Mr. James could not possibly have 
forgotten how the “efficiency and skill”, to use 

in metals, all salesmen, whether possessing shops 
which are also taxed separately, or vending by the 
roadside, &c., some paying impost on their tools, 
others for permission to sell — extending to the most 
trifling articles of trade and the cheapest tools the 
mechanic can employ, the cost of which is fre- 
quently exceeded six times by the Mutarfa, under 
which the use of them is permitted.” “ The discre- 
tionary power under which it is collected, ” the- 
memorandum went on to add, “affords a wide field 
for the perpetual practice of inquisitorial ■visits, extor- 
tion and oppression, as suits the pleasure or the- 
cupidity of the irresponsible collectors, with whom 
it is no unusual thing to resort to imprisonment and. 
fetters in order to compel tbeir exactions. And the 
whole sum raised by this impost is but little above 
£ 100,000 sterling.” — R. C. Butt’s Tht Economic 
History oj India in the Victorian Age, Pp. 164-65. 

3 Macaulay in 1836 — cited by Edward Thompson 
in his Rise and Fulfilment of British Rule in India^, 
pages 315 and 317. 



Maech 9, 1940 ] 


HAEIJAN 


37 


Prof. Keith’s phrase, with which the Princes 
were drilled on the occasion of Lord Curzon’s 
Durbar nearly precipitated a major crisis in the 
relations between the Ruling Chiefs and the 
Paramount Power. But since Mr, Tames insists 
upon the precise chapter and verse, let him 
ponder over the following picked up almost at 
random from the pages of Edward Thompson : 

" Bentinck’s entertainments were magnificent, and 
he achieved fame by permitting Indians to drive 
to the Governor-GeneraVs house in carriages. 

“ *Oa going to a station no Englishman thought 
of calling on the notables of the district, as was 
once done as a matter of course; instead, certificates 
of respectability were required of the notables before 
they could be guaranteed a chair when they visited 

the oflScer In Calcutta many writers expected 

every Indian to salute them' ” ^ ( Italics mine. ) 

. Or the following : 

“ The racial relations in Bengal continued what 
they are still — the amazement of the society of India’s 
saner regions. Elphinstone was scornfully aristocratic 
‘Cven among his own people. But he knew well that 
India bad its own aristocracy, whose friendship was 
worth regarding. He told Malcolm (May 24, 1819); 

* The picture you draw of the state of India, as 
it is likely to be for the next four or five years, 
makes me regret that you are so soon to leave it. 
It has sometimes struck me that the fault of our 
•younger politicians — who have never seen the Indian 
States in the days of their power — is a contempt 
for the natives, and an inclination to carry every- 
-thing with a high hand. ’ ” * 

Or take the following from Sir Thomas 
Munroe’s minutes to Lord Hastings, As Mr. 
Edward Thompson points out, Sir Munroe’s views 
are too important for the historian to omit 
any fair chance of calling attention to them. 

** Foreign conquerors have treated the natives with 
violence, and often with great cruelty, but none has 
treated them with so much scorn as we ; none has 
stigmatised the whole people as unworthy of trust, 
incapable of honesty, and as fit to be employed 
only where we cannot do without them. It seems 
to be not only ungenerous, but impolitic, to debase 
the character of a people fallen under our domination. 

The strength of British Government enables it 
to put down every rebellion, to expel every foreign 
invasion, and to give to its subjects a degree of 
protection which those of , no Native power enjoy. 
Its laws and institutions also allow them security 
from domestic aggression, unknown in those states : 
but these advantages are dearly bought. They are 
purchased by the sacrifice of independence of national 
■character and of whatever renders a people respect- 
able. The Natives of British provinces may, without 
fear, pursue their different occupations and enjoy the 
fruits of their labour in tranquillity; but none of 
them can aspire beyond this animal state of thriving 
in peace,' none of them can look forward to any 

4 T. G. P. Spear: The Nabobs, p. 140, cited by 
Edward Thompson in his Rise and Fulfilment of 
British Rule in India, p. 306. . 

5. Ibid p. 306. 


share in the legislation or civil or military govern- 
ment of their country. The effect of this state of 
things is observable in all the British provinces, 
whose inhabitants are certainly the most abject race 
in India. 

The consequence, therefore, of the conquest of 
India by the British arms would be in place of 
raising, to debase the whole people.** 

Mr, James non-chalantly remarks that the 
Pledge is repeated in circumstances of unparal- 
leled freedom, and argues from this that Britain 
has fostered the ideals of self-government in India 
for which we ought to be grateful. May we 
remind Mr. James that this “ unparalleled free- 
dom”, as he calls it, became possible only after 
the people had proved their mettle under the 
fire of suffering and repression, that more than 
one university in India were actually asked to 
exclude the writings of Burke and Mill from 
their curricula as they tended to foster the spirit 
of ‘ sedition and that many a college student 
has been made to pay the penalty for betraying 
a nationalist bias in university debates or in 
answering examination papers? 

Full of unconscious irony is Mr. James’s asser- 
tion that for the ' first time in her history, 
largely through British influence, India * has 
understood the meaning and necessity of unity. 
This is a strange claim to make on behalf of a 
nation whose administrators have perfected the 
science of “divide and rule” and used it with 
deadlier effect than any other people on earth. 
But here again let us hear the truth from the 
lips of the Britishers concerned themseilves. It 
was a British Commandant at Moradabad, Lt.- 
Col. John Coke who about the time of the 1857 
rising wrote: “Our endeavours should be to 
uphold in full force the (for us fortunate) 
separation which exists between the different 
religions and races, not to endeavour to amalga- 
mate them. ‘Divide et impera’ should be the 
principle of Indian Government.” It was Lord 
Elphinstone, Governor of Bombay, who in a 
minute dated May 14, 1825, wrote: ''Divide et 
Impera was the old Roman motto and it should 
be ours.” It was Sir Bampfyld Fuller, the 
Governor of Lord Curzon’s creation, “ The East 
Bengal Province”, who in an oft-quoted address 
promulgated the now famous ‘favourite wife’ 
policy. Again, it was Sir John Maynard, a retired 
member of the Executive Council of the Punjab, 
who in an article contributed to The Foreign 
Affairs, London, wrote: 

“ It is, of course, true that British authority could 
not have established and could not now maintain 
itself but for the fissiparous tendency, of which the 
Hindu- Muslim antagonism is one manifestation. It 
is also true that the mass rivalry of the two commu- 
nities began under British rule. Persecuting rulers 
made their appearance from time to time in the 
pre-British era, levying tribute on unbelievers or 
punishing with fanatical zeal the slaying of kine. 
But the Hindu and Muslim masses — before they 
had eaten of the tree of knowlege and had become 



38 


HARIJAN 


[ March 9, 1940' 


religion-conscious — worshipped peacefully side by 
side at the same shrines.” 

Lastly, it was no less a person than Lord 
Olivier, the Secretary of State for India under 
the Ramsay Macdonald Government, who in the 
columns of the London Times observed : 

“ No one with a close acquaintance with Indian 
affairs will be prepared to deny that on the whole 
there is a predominant bias in British officialdom in 
favour of the Muslim community, partly on the 
ground of closer sympathy but more largely as a 
make-weight against Hindu nationalism.” 

Nor has India forgotten the way Sir Samuel 
Hoare torpedoed the Allahabad unity talks by 
going out of his way to concede to the separa- 
tion of Sindh mthout joint electorates when the 
Mussalman representatives in the Conference 
had already agreed to joint electorates on the 
condition that Sindh was constituted into a 
separate province. 

Thus though British rule has brought home 
to India the meaning and necessity of unity in 
a sense as nothing before had, that is not the 
sense in which Mr. James perhaps means it or 
of which Britain can be proud. 

Mr. James has objected to the inclusion of 
Gandhiji’s fourfold indictment in the Pledge on 
the ground of relevancy. There would be some 
force in the objection if the fourfold ruin to 
which the Pledge calls attention were no more 
than a mere historical memory, a matter of 
academic interest only, instead of being an 
ever-present reality, that under a changing face 
confronts us at every turn. The “Lee loot” is 
only a continuation of an earlier tradition.® The 
cry of vested “European interests” has a familiar 
ring to one who has studied the records of the 
Honourable East India Company’s “investments”^ 

Clive had warned, the Directors (August 28 
1767) of what was coming, the jobbery, that be- 
setting curse of Indian administration, which the 
astonishing evidence of India's inexhaustible riches 
was to set up; *the great will interfere in your 
appointments, and noble men will perpetually solicit 
you to provide for the younger branches of their 
families.’...It did, and immediately, Directors and 
Directors* relatives, peers, even the Royal Family, saw 
no reason why they should not push a young friend or 
dependant into a service which within an incredibly 
brief period would bring him back enormously enrich- 
ed.” —( Edwaxid Thompson & G. T. Garratt:jRwe 
& Fulfilment of British Rule in India^ p. 108, 

7 ** Hastings came to see Mir Qasim and used 
his eyes as he went up country : ‘ I have been sur- 
prised to meet with , several English flags flying in 
places which I have passed; and on the river I do 
not believe that I passed a boat without one. By 
whatever title they have been assumed ( for I could 
only trust to the information of my eyes, without 
stopping to ask questions), I am sure their frequency 
can bode no good to the Nawab’s revenues, to the 
quiet of the country or the honour of our nation, 
but evidently tends to lessen each of them. A party 


and the hundred and fifty crores’ “gift” whicb- 
Britain made to herself out of India’s pocket,, 
is not diflFerent in character from the earlier* 
spoliations of Clive, Warren Hastings and the 
harpies of the East India Company, which shock- 
ed their contemporaries but made the hero of 
Plassey, so far as he was concerned, only “stand", 
astonished at his own moderation”.® 

Lord Morley on one occasion remarked that 
lack of courtesy on the part of Englishmen, 
reprehensible everywhere, was in India a crime,. 
The remark, I think, applies equally to ignorance 
about the basic facts of British rule in India^. 
particularly the Indian viewpoint. There is no- 
greater obstacle to the realization of justice in 
Indo-British relationship, than the belief shared 
by many good Englishmen, in common with Mr.. 
James, that the operation of British rule has on 
the whole been beneficent to India. It is this 
belief that makes Mr. James and his countrymen 
find offence in the reference to India’s “ four- 
fold ruin” under British domination, instead of 
a ground for heart-searching and introspection. - 
It is again this belief which makes them regard. 
Indian independence as a “gift” to be granted 
or withheld at Britain’s discretion, instead of a 
matter of detatched justice calling for unilateral) 
reparation on their part. As Chalmers used tO' 
say, duty will be merit when debt becomes 
donation. 

Thus, I hope, I have proved that the reference 
to the fourfold ruin is true and, since it- continues,^ 
it is relevant, and, being relevant, ought not to be 
provocative to any just-minded Englishman. The 
case for independence would lose its point if 
the rulers, having begun by plunder,® had of 

of sipahis, who were on the march before us, afforded' 
us sufficient proof of the rapacious and insolent spirit 
of these people when they are, left to their own 
discretion. Many complaints were made against thenr 
on the road, and most of the petty towns and' 
sarais were deserted on our approach, and the shops 
shut up from the apprehensions of the same treat- 
ment from us.* 

Hastings protested : * The Nawab has granted a- 
boon to his subjects and there are no grounds for 
demanding that a sovereign prince should withdraw 
such a boon, or for threatening him with a war’ 
in the event of refusal.’ ” ( Edward Thompson &* 
G. T. Garratt : Op Cit, p. 103. ) 

8*‘Am I not rather deserving of praise for the 
moderation which marked my proceedings ? Consider 
the situation in which the victory at Plassey had’ 
placed mel A great prince was dependent on my 
pleasure, an opulent city lay at my mercy; its 
richest bankers bid against each other for my smiles; 

I walked through vaults which were thrown open tO' 
me alone, piled on either hand with gold and jewels! 
Mr* Chairman, at this moment I stand astonished at' 
my own moderation!” (Clive before Select Parlia- 
mentary Committee) 

9 ” Nature lightened the unhappy ryot’s problem 
in 1770 when such a famine ravaged Bengal that 
one-third of the natives were believed to have- 



llARCH 9, 1940 1 


HARIJAN 


39 


’their own will later repented of it and made 
common cause with the people. Does it not 
■occur to Mr. James that, if they had, India 
would today be a free county, living in honour- 
■able partnership with Britain? The reverse is the 
•tfact. India’s fourfold ruin still continues. She is 
■still being bled for Britain's sake. Hence Britain’s 
■reluctance to part with power. 

Maiikanda, 25-2-40 Pyarelal 

HARIJAN SEVAK SANGH 

[ The following are some excerpts from the 
-.summary of the proceedings of the annual 
meeting of the Harijan Sevak Sangh circulated 
'by the General Secretary. ] 

The seventh annual meeting of the All India 
Harijan Sevak Sangh was held at Harijan Nivas, 
'Delhi, on 11th and 12th February under the 
presidentship of Sheth G. D. Birla, President of 
the Sangh. In all 40 members and representa- 
tives were present. Reports from the various 
provinces were presented and discussed. The 
reports showed that at present a large number 

• of educational centres were being run by the 
Sangh. In all there were 96 free hostels and 
.ashrams run by the Sangh’s branches, out of 

which 10 were girls’ hostels. The largest number 
s.of hostels were in Andhra, 26 in all. The 
-Sangh is running cottage tanning centres in 
Bengal and Tamil Nad, industrial and agricul. 
•tural centres at Barama in Assam, Delhi, Navsati, 
.Allahabad, Guntur, Ranchi, Bangalore, Conjee- 
varam, Kodambakam ( Madras ), , Trivandrum, 
'Devacottai, etc. The Sangh through its various 
-agencies has constructed or repaired about 300 
•wells during the year. The Sangh in all spent 
•about Rs. 350,000 during the year. Rs. 42,543 
were spent on administration, Rs. 6,297 on 
.propaganda, and the rest on welfare work among 
the Harijans, as schools, hostels, medical work, 
construction and repairs of wells, scholarships, 
-etc. The Andhra Branch of the Sangh spent the 
largest amount, viz. Rs. 43,365, during the year. 
lBut the most important work of the Sangh was 
the organisation of the Tamil Nad temple entry 
campaign and the consequent opening of the 
famous Meenakshi temple of Madura and Palni 
Temple followed by a number of other temples. 

The Central Office at Delhi alone received Rs. 
'72,000 as donations during the year, mostly 
through Gandhiji and the President of the 
Sangh. 

-.perished by sickness and famine. This was Hastings’s 

• own estimate; some English eye-witnesses put the 
deaths at one-half the population which was probably 

^about fifteen millions. We may cautiously accept a 
fifth as the true proportion. The principal Naib 
Muhammad Reza Khan, collected the revenue almost 
fully, adding 10 per cent (the mjay cess, a recog- 
mized exaction by which the living made good revenue 
losses whi.ch were to other taxpayers having been so 
unpatriotic as to die); and the Company’s servants 
iptofiteered in necessities.” (Edward Thompson & 
•G. T. Garatt. Op Cit 109-110) 


As regards the disbursement of Rs. 10,000 
received through Gandhiji from Late Laia 
Ramchand Khanna of Wazirabad for medical 
work among Harijans, the Sangh resolved to 
invite schemes for its utilisation from the 
branches of the Sangh. The Sangh accepted 
the offer of land and buildings of the value 
of about a lac of rupees from the Wadhwan 
(Kathiawad ) Education Society for starting a 
new centre of Harijan welfare work. 

Shri G. D. Birla, Shrimati Rameshwari Nehru, 
Shri A. V. Thakkar, Dr. Prafulla Chandra Ghosh, 
Shri T. D. Pustake, Shri Mahabir Prasad Poddar, 
Shri L. N. Gopalaswamy and Shri Parikshitlal 
Majmudar were appointed members of the 
Executive Committee of the Sangh for 1940. 

Including the two earmarked sums of 
Rs. 20,000 and Rs. 5,000, Rs. 137,991 were re- 
ceived for Thakkar Jayanti Fund, Rs. 20,000 are 
for the Central Board, and Rs. 5,000 for the 
construction of sweepers’ quarters at Ujjain. 
25 per cent of the total collections will be spent 
by Shri A. V. Thakkar for Aboriginal welfare 
and 75 per cent for Harijan work. A sum of 
Rs. 30,000 has been set apart out of this for 
awarding scholarships to Harijan girls for 5 years 
for Higher Vocational Education, and a separate 
sub-committee consisting of Shrimati Rameshwari 
Nehru, Shri A. V. Thakkar, Rajkumari Amrit 
Kaur, Shri Parikshitlal Majmudar and Shri 
Shyamlal has been formed in this connection. 

The Sangh expressed satisfaction at the adult 
literacy campaign organised by the Indore H. S. 
Sangh, and hoped that other provinces would 
also start similar literacy campaigns in their 
respective areas. The Sangh accepted with thanks 
an offer of Rs. 10,000 from Shrimati Rameshwari 
Nehru, its Vice-President, for starting a residen- 
tial industrial institute for girls to be located in 
Delhi, and resolved to take the necessary steps 
for starting the same. 

The question was raised as to the Sangh’s 
policy towards propaganda. Little or nothing 
has been spent by the Sangh for propaganda. 
The Board made it clear that it was not the 
expenditure on propaganda that was objected to, 
but the employment of paid pracharaks. Pro- 
paganda of the right type carried on by con- 
vinced reformers was not only not objected to 
but was welcomed. Such was Gandhiji’s tour 
of 1933-34. Provincial organisations may, there- 
fore, invite noted reformers to tour their 
provinces. A. V. Thakkar 


Some Recent Books 

S. K. George — Gandhi’s Challenge to 
Christianity 2-10 

L. P, Jacks — Revolt E^ainst Mechanism 1-14 
J, C. Kumarappa — C. P. Industrial 
Survey Repot Part I Vol. I 
.. II .. I 

I „ , II 

Thakkar Committee s Report on 

C. P. Sweepers’ condition 1 — 2 0 — 2 

Available at (1) Harijan office — 'Poona 4; (2) Harijan 
office — 81 Queen’s Road, Bombay 2. 


Price Postage 

0—3 
0—2 

0-10 0—2 
0-12 0—2 
1—4 0—4 


40 


HARIJAN 


[ March 9, 1940 


A VISIT TO DEENBANDHU 

Deenbandhu Charlie Andrews’ numerous friends 
here and abroad will be greatly relieved to learn 
that he is now considered by his doctors to be 
out of any immediate danger, Gandhiji, who 
visited him again on his return from Malikanda, 
found him still very weak, but otherwise there 
was a marked, all-round improvement. The 
eflfect of the mild paralytic stroke which had 
followed the preliminary operation was nearly 
over, the kidney function had largely been 
restored, and Gandhiji had the satisfaction 
of being told that, if and when the second 
operation was decided upon, the most competent 
surgeon in Calcutta would be invited to 
perform it. 

Deenbandhu was apparently feeling quite at 
home in his well-ventilated cheery room. He 
was eager to know all about Gandhiji’s Santi- 
niketan visit and the meeting with Gurudev. 
The reference to the Poet put him in that 
expansive mood when one feels with 'the poet 


That miss the many-splendoured thing. 

But ( when so sad thou canst not sadder } 

Cry; — and upon thy so sore loss 
Shall shine the traffic of Jacob’s ladder 
Pitched betwixt Heaven and Charing Cross.*^ 
A strange peace settled on his face as I 
proceeded: 

Yea, in the night, my soul, my daughter, 

Cry, clinging Heaven by the hems; 

And lo, Christ walking on the water, 

Not of Gennesareth, but Thames ! 

And who wrote Borodada, I chaffed him, as I* 
rose to take leave : 

** But have seen His face — have seen and known. 
This sacrament was given. 

And 1 can wait the dawning of the day, 

The day-star on my night already gleaming, 
The shadow and the veil shall pass away. 
Death shall make true my dreaming.” 

He replied with a faint smile, “I thinks, 
I wrote something like that! ” 

On the train to Wardha 3-3-40 Pyarelal 


that 

“ God’s in His heaven, 

All’s right with the world I ’ 

Everything that Gandhiji told him was ‘ won- 
derful ‘ marvellous ’, * perfect He referred to 
the European struggle which had been exercis- 
ing his mind even on his sick-bed, and then 
added, as if describing something that he saw 
with the eye of faith, ” But Bapu, Swaraj is 
coming. I see it coming. India will be free. ’* 
“Tknow it,” replied Gandhiji. “Do you know?” 
resumed Deenbandhu. “ I am quite reconciled to 
my illness. I think it was God’s blessing in dis- 
guise. It has given me a wonderful experience 
which I would never otherwise have had.” He 
struggled hard to recall Francis Thompson’s lines 
without success, I asked him if he was thinking 
of Francis Thompson’s “ In no strange land ” : 

“O world invisible, we view thee, 

O world intangible, we touch thee, 

O world unknowable, we know thee, 
Inapprehensible, we clutch thee. ” 

His countenance lit up with joy, and he began 
slowly to fumble out the succeeding lines : • 

‘'Does the fish soar to find the ocean. 

The eagle plunge to find the air — 

That we ask of the stars in motion 
If they have rumour of thee there ? 

Not where the wheeling systems darken. 

And our benumbed conceiving soars — 

The drift of pmions, would we hearkei;. 

Beats at our own clay-shuttered doors. ” 

He again fell into a inuse, “ O, it is marvell- 
ous, that description of the sweep of the angels’ 
wings,” he slowly muttered, his eyes half closed 
and a deep introspective look on his face. I 
supplied the lines : 

The angels keep their ancient places; — 

Turn but a stone, and start a wing; 

*Tis ye, ’tis your estranged faces, 


To Correspondents and Message-seekers 

In spite of my notice in Harijan of Decem- 
ber 23rd those who can spare me continue tCf 
write and ask for messages. I would refer them 
to the notice for fuller explanation. I know 
several intimate friends have not received acknow- 
ledgments or messages. They will forgive me. 
I have to harden my heart if I am to cope 
-with the responsibility I am carrying. And what 
can be better than that I should commence with 
known friends? 

Sevagram, 15-1-40 M. K. G. 

To Agents 

In view of the several complaints recently received 
from agents about non-receipt of book post packets 
containing copies of Harijan^ we now take certifi- 
cates of posting on all the packets. Our responsibi- 
lity ends with the proper posting of the copies, and 
we would ask our agents, in case of non-receipt, 
to complain to the Post office. Manager 


CONTENTS Page 


Gandhi Seva Sangh — II 

M. D, 

25 

Question Box 

M. K. Gandhi 29 

An Interlude at 



Santiniketan 

Pyarelal 

31 

When ? 

M. K* Gandhi 32 

India and the War 


32 

W^AT Resolution Means ... 

M. K. Gandhi 33 

The Santiniketan Pilgrimage 

pyarelal 

34 

Unconvincing Apologia 

Pyarelal 

3& 

Harijan Sevak Sangh 

A. V. Thakkar 39 

A Visit to Deenbandhu 

Pyarelal 

40 

Notes: 



■ Segaon Becomes Sevagram... 

M. K. G. 

28 

When the British Withdraw 

M. K, G. 

28 

Clear Injustice 

M. K. G; 

28 

Skimmed Milk 

• M* K. G. 

28 


Pub^ed by Vith^ Hari Barve at the Axyabhushan Press- 915/1 Fergusson College Road. Poona 4 
SnlMciiptaon RatM — Inlaitd : One year. Be. 4, Bi± monthi, Be. 8-8, FOKBlon : One year. Be. or. 8 eh. or 1 1. 



Editor : MAHADEV DESAI 


VoL. VIE, No. 5 ] POONA — SATURDAY, MARCH 16, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


NOTICE 

The business hours of our Bombay branch will 
hereafter be from 11 a. M. to 7—30 p. m. Readers will 
please note the change. Address ; 67 & 81 Queen's 
Road, Bombay 2. Manager 

QUESTION BOX 

Do I Distrust the Viceroy ? 

Q. Does not your identifying yourself with 
the Patna resolution of the Working Committee 
betray distrust in Lord Linlithgow, although 
you have professed to believe in his sincerity ? 

A. You have read into the resolution what 
is wholly unwarrantf by the text. I do not 
doubt the Viceroy's s ncerity. I have not known 
a Viceroy who has weighed his words as Lord 
Linlithgow does. It is a pleasure to have a talk 
with him. For he speaks with the greatest 
deliberation. His speech is, therefore, always 
brief and to the point. I adhere to the remark 
I made about our last meeting that, although 
we could not agree, we had come nearer each 
other. We might have gone on talking for a 
few days, but we would only have talked round 
the subject and repeatedly come to the same 
point of disagreement. I was under no handi- 
cap for I was speaking for myself. He was 
under a severe handicap. He was speaking 
under orders. He had no authority to go 
outside his instructions. And so we parted 
the best of friends. But so far as I am con- 
cerned, I expect many more meetings. The reso- 
lution makes the Congress position cleat beyond 
doubt. It represents also my own position. If 
the British Government really mean full-hearted 
Dominion Status with the right to secede, then 
they can have no difficulty in accepting the 
Congress position. Unfortunately Lord Zetland’s 
interview shows that it is not India which is to 
determine her future but Britain will do so for 
her. This is not even Dominion Status of any 
known variety. Once the British Government are 
sure that they can no longer hold India, all 
the difficulties that are now being put forth on 
their behalf will vanish like darkness before 
dawn. For they are all of their creation. They 
are inherent in exploitation. I hope you now 
see that there is no question of distrust of the 
Viceroy. Events had to move to where they are. 

Fear of Tsms’ 

Q. You say that no such thing as Gandhism 
exists, and that what you stand for is nothing 
new. I am a Muslim. I see flashes of Islamic 


glory in Gandhism. As a student of theology I 
see the grandeur of Hinduism and the vigour 
of Christianity amply expounded in Gandhism. 
It includes also to a considerable extent the 
chaste philosophy of the entire East. I search 
the pages of India’s past history, but your creed 
I do not find. Why, therefore, is it not new, 
and why may it not be termed Gandhism for 
those of us who believe in you and therefore 
it? 

A. I have a horror of ‘ isms ’, especially when 
they are attached to proper names. Even if all 
that you say of me is true, it does not make 
a new sect. My effort is to avoid not only 
new sects but even to do away with old and 
superfluous ones. Ahimsa abhors sects. Ahimsa 
is a unifying force. It discovers unity in diversity. 
All that you say is derivable from ahimsa. To 
bring into being a new cult is repugnant to 
ahimsa, to the very experiment I am making. 
Thus you will, I hope, see that there is no 
room for ‘ Gandhism ’. 

Women and Their Work 

Q. You say, It is degrading both for man 
and woman that woman should be called upon 
or induced to forsake the hearth and shoulder 
the rifle for the protection of that hearth. It 
is a reversion to barbarity and the beginning 
of the end.” But what about the millions of 
female labourers in fields, factories, etc. ? They 
are forced to forsake the hearth and become 
‘ bread winners’. Would you abolish the indus- 
trial system and revert to the stone age? Would 
that not be a reversion to barbarity and the 
the beginning of the end? What is the new 
order that you envisage where the sin of 
making women work will be absent ? 

A. If millions of women are forced to forsake 
their hearth and become bread winners, it is 
wrong, but not so wrong as shouldering the 
rifle. There is nothing inherently barbarous ia 
labour, I see no barbarity in women voluntarily 
working on their fields whilst they are looking 
after their homes. In the new order of my 
imagination, all will work according to their 
capacity for an adequate return for their labour. 
Women in the new order will be part-time 
workers, their primary function being to look 
after the home. Since I do not regard the rifle 
as a permanent feature in the new order, its 
use will be progressively restricted even so far 
as men are concerned. It will be tolerated 
as a necessary evil while it lasts. But I would 



42 


HAEIJAN 


[ Maeoh 16, 1940 


not deliberately contaminate women with the 
•evil. 

Reman Script? 

Q. Why may not the illiterate masses be 
taught the Roman script? This would eliminate 
the existing controversy between Urdu and Hindi. 

A. To teach the Roman script in the place 
of Hindi and Urdu would be like putting the 
cart before the horse. Our children have first to 
learn both Hindi and Urdu scripts. Difficult 
questions cannot be solved by ignoring them or 
suggesting apparently easy substitutes. So long 
as hearts are divided the Roman script will 
not cement them. It would be an additional 
burden. The learning of the two* scripts is the 
best and the easiest way of at least solving the 
national language riddle. It opens Hindi and 
Urdu thought to both Hindu and Muslim boys 
and girls who will be the men and women of 
the future generation. The Roman script will 
be learnt at its proper time, i, e. when our boys 
and girls are taught the English language, as 
some undoubtedly will be. 

Kow to Begin? 

Q. Congress clamours for unity, but the prin- 
ciples which must be followed to attain that 
unity, vis. Hindu-Muslim fellow feeling, no caste 
distinctions, no harted towards each other or 
towards foreigners, co-operative endeavour, all 
these are presented to audiences through the 
microphone but not acted upon. Tell me what 
are the duties of a Congress member. I would 
love to join and will put forth all my energy 
to do my bit for the country. 

A. You need not mind what others do or 
ought to do. Charity begins at home. Let yours 
begin with yourself. Abolish all caste and reli- 
gious or race distinctions from your heart. Be 
true to everyone — Hindu, Muslim, Harijan, English 
etc, as you are, I hope, to yourself, and you 
will find that so far as you are concerned your 
difficulty will be solved and your example will 
be copied by others. Be sure that you have 
banished all hate from your heart, and that 
you have no political or other objective in 


loving and serving your neighbour as if 
your own self. 

Sevagram, 12-3-40 

he 

was 

Some Books by 

Gandhiji 





Price 

Postage 

Satyagraha in South, Africa 

Rs. 4 

8 

0 

8 

My Early Life 

1 

0 

0 

2 

Speeches and Writings 

4 

0 

0 

9 

Cent Per Cent Swadeshi 

1 

8 

0 

5 

Hind Swaraj 

0 

4 

0 

2 

From Yeravda Mandir 

0 

2 

0 

1 

Self-Restraint v. Self-Indulgence 





Parts I & II ( each) 

1 

0 

0 

3 


Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radhakrishnan. Rs. 5-10-0. Postage 7 As. 
Available at Harijan ofi&ce-Poona 4, and 67 & 81 
Queen’s Road, Bombay 2 


GANDHI SEVA SANGH 

III 

The Spinning Ritual 

Quite the most important part of the daily 
routine of the Sangh members was sacrificial 
spinning. Every year there used to be an hour 
set apart for this ritual. This year Prafullababu 
decided, in consultation with Kishorelabhai, to 
have it for two hours daily, as the usual pro- 
gramme for some form of body labour in the 
village had been dropped. There was no work 
on which the two or three hundred people 
could be engaged at a time, and so the decision 
to double the period of the spinning interval 
was quite appropriate. 

The bare actual result of this ritual is worth 
noting. This year’s figures will not be ready 
until the yarn is turned into cloth, but they 
may be judged from the last year’s result which 
was available just on the day we were about 
to break up. The yarn was sorted and sent 
to the weaver in two batches. The superior 
sort yielded 57 yards of khadi 45" wide 
of beautiful texture, and the inferior counts 
yielded 12 yards of 27" width. This year the 
result will be nearly treble as, apart from 
the time being double, the number of spinners 
was larger and the spinning went on for a day 
more. Calculating it in round numbers, 300 
spinners must have produced about 150 yards 
of cloth in five days, i. e. half a yard each. 
This is a conservative estimate, for five days’ 
spinning at the rate of 300 yards per hour 
should give four-fifths of a yard of cloth of 
20 counts. What a good thing it would be if 
we could insist on every conference or meeting 
beginning with a spinning ritual of, say, at least 
half an hour. In this connection it my be noted 
that the Ratnagiri District Congress Committee 
has actually made such a rule, and has appealed 
for at least 1,000 spinners prepared to make to 
the Congress an annual donation of 10,000 yards 
of yarn. The Gandhi Seva Sangh members donat- 
ed in five days one-fourth of the annual sacrifice 
expected of every member of the Congress. 
Hindus, Mussalmans, Christians have all their 
periods of lent. Without being members of any 
Sangh, if they made up their minds to do a 
couple of hours’ spinning on these days of fast- 
ing (or semi-fasting) and prayer, they can easily 
donate in 20 days all that the nation expects of 
them. As regards the other results they are per- 
haps more valuable. Two hours’ silent spinning 
is a healthy spiritual exercise which anyone may 
perform with benefit. It adds to one’s peace 
and mental equipoise and power of concentra- 
tion. And one finds — as I actually found — that 
every day one improves the quality and quantity 
of one’s yarn. The essential is that a silent hour 
or even a half-hour must be set apart for the 
ritual. Lastly, to watch these three hundred odd 
spinners doing their silent spinning for a couple 
of hours was a study in many respects. The in- 
diflferent spinner could compare himself with the 



March 16, 1940 ] 


HAEIJAN 


43 


practised spinner in many ways. The former found 
that he appeared for the ritual less equipped than 
the latter — he forgot to examine his wheel before 
he came, he had no spare string, he had no oil 
and had to borrow it from his neighbour, he had 
to interrupt his spinning often because of these 
lapses, and his thread broke oftener than that 
of the others. A careful practice is thus bound 
to make one precise, methodical and careful 
not only in spinning but in every detail of life. 

Prafuilahahus Battalion 

From this point of view the pledge taken by 
Prafullababu’s co-workers, numbering about three 
hundred, of spinning 60,000 yards per year is 
significant. If they do their spinning regularly, 
methodically, and in a proper religious spirit, 
the three hundred can easily increase to a bat- 
talion of 1,000. These may or may not become 
Congress members, they will certainly not think of 
having any responsible positions in the Congress, 
but they will qualify themselves as members of 
the non-violent army that Gandhiji is looking 
forward to before he can advise the country — 
if indeed he has to — to launch civil disobedi- 
ence. In fact as a matter of preparation it may 
be well to expect every captain of a battalion 
to certify that every unit in it has done regular 
and ritual spinning for at least some months. If 
we are in right earnest, we can organise spinning 
on this basis everywhere, and the certificates 
would be enough guarantee that those who hold 
them will go through the fire without infringing 
their creed in any way. The soldiers under this 
test may be very few, but the quality will be 
ensured and every risk will be minimised. 

The Exhibition 

The Exhibition was a neat little affair, quite 
useful and educative. The central khadi court 
contained exhibits of the yarn ( and cloth made 
out of it ) spun by numerous workers in Bengal. 
Some of the samples were as high as 40 counts. 
In the centre of the court was a spinner spinning 
80 counts of beautiful even yarn. Most of the 
khadi exhibits were from the various production 
centres of Bengal, and there were among these 
samples of fascinating designs of weaving. 

Among the stalls that surrounded this main 
court the most interesting, in my opinion, was 
the hand-made paper stall showing the actual 
process of pulp-making and paper-lifting by 
indigenous instruments and also of polishing and 
cutting. The raw materials for the pulp were 
varied, quite a novel one being the fibrous 
fruit of the pestilential water-hyacinth of 
Bengal. The paper made out of this fibre 
was the most durable of the samples exhibited 
there. The.» makers were all Mussalmans. 

Among other interesting stalls were the pottery 
and the silk stalls. The latter showed the actual 
process of silk-rearing and silk-spinning. One 
wondered how the man in charge of boiling 
cocoons was quickly collecting the threads from 
the boiling water. Dr. Prafulla Ghosh was put 
in mind of the famous Bunsen who handled red 


hot liquid glass, and thought of the day when 
we too may have our Bunsens from these wield- 
ers of village crafts which are now being revived. 
There were women showing different processes of 
spinning waste-silk, resembling the making of 
vermicelli. There was the quicker way and the 
slower way, the organisers expecting the women 
employing the latter method to copy the former. 
The pottery stall showed the Bengal village 
pottery at its best. A potter’s family was there 
making various samples, and there w^as a small 
kiln attached to the stall showing the process 
of baking and enamelling and polishing. When 
I thought of the miserable pottery at Segaon 
( Sevagram ) and also of the ineflBcient carpentry 
and masonry, at the same time, I wondered if we 
could not organise interprovincial tours for our 
craftsmen. From Darjeeling and its neighbourhood 
had been brought two Bhudya women busy with 
their wool and indigenous dyes, and their hand- 
made blanket was one of their proud exhibits. 
Another interesting stall was the conch-bangle 
stall. Making of bangles from conches ( imported 
from the Coromandel coast) is a speciality of 
Dacca. A stall, quite interesting for the farmer,, 
was the one put up by the Dhakeshwari Cotton 
Mill, demonstrating the possibility of the grow- 
ing of the high-staple cotton in Bengal. There 
was little cotton being grown in Bengal, except 
in parts of the Tippera district. Experiments 
had now been successfully made, and it had 
been found that cotton of 1 to 1-J inch staple 
could be produced in Bengal. A pamphlet issued 
in Bengali by Shri Subinoy Bhattacharya of the 
Bengal Millowners* Association was being freely 
distributed. This shows details of places grow- 
ing cotton plants 4 feet high, with 60 bolls to 
each plant, and producing cotton of 7/8 to 1 
inch staple, plants growing 7 feet high, with ISO 
bolls, and producing cotton of a li to inch 
staple, and plants growing 7 feet high, with as 
many as 262 bolls, and producing cotton of 1^'' 
to 1^" staple. The seeds can be had on appli- 
cation to the Second Economic Botanist, Bengal^ 
P. O. Tejgaon, Dacca. 

Other interesting stalls which had nothing to 
do with the crafts were the sanitation and 
hygiene stalls with instructive and interesting, 
charts in Bengali, which are very essential in 
every exhibition meant for the villager, looking to 
the heavy toll taken every year by malaria, kala 
azaar, and cholera. These proved very attractive,. 

The New President 

Shri Kishorelal Mashruwala’s successor as presi- 
dent of the altered Sangh is Shri Shrikrishnadas 
Jajuji. As unobtrusive and unassuming as his 
predecessor he is perhaps less contemplative 
and more practical. He had a brilliant academic 
career, having won first class honours every- 
where, and was a lawyer of repute, but gave up 
practice years ago and has been giving all his 
time to public work. He is a member of the 
A. I. V. I. A. Board, was president of it until 
a little while ago, and is president of the 



44 


HARIJAN 


[March 16, 1940 


Maharashtra Charkha Sangh. He belongs to the 
Mar wadi community, and his speech in reply 
to the reception given to him by his community 
in Calcutta, on return from Malikanda, was 
quite characteristic of his life and thought. This 
is a free translation of what he said in Hindi : 

“When I address meetings of poor agricul- 
turists I ask them to learn how to add to their 
scanty income. But when I am in front of a 
Marwadi audience, I ask them to find out ways 
and means of reducing the burden of their 
wealth. They are ‘ cursed ’ with ‘ great posses- 
sions and it would be a blessing for them to 
reduce them and to learn a little sacrifice. And 
in this connection I should like to leave a 
thought with you. I give a much higher place 
to sacrifice than to donating out of superficial 
wealth. Therefore the more we reduce our 
ill-gotten gains the better for us. Then there 
are many of you who regard yourselves as sana- 
tanists and believers in Varnashramadharma. If 
you belief in the four ashramas, it behoves 
you after having made your pile as householders 
grihasthas — to be trustees for what you have 
earned, by taking to vmaprasthashram. ” 

As one who endeavours to live up to his 
principles he is a worthy successor of Kishore- 
lalbhai, and one may fully hope that the Sangh 
with its new ideals and new plan of work will 
flourish under his guidance. ( Concluded ) 


Sevagram, 11-3-40 Mi D. 



FOR ENGLISHMEN 

( By M. K- Gandhi ) 

Thus writes a very responsible Englishman to 
a common friend. The receiver sends it to me 
for answer: 

“ I have just been reading with very real concern 
the text of the resolution which the Working Com- 
mittee adopted yesterday. I am writing as a very 
■ordinary Englishman who has been interested in India 
for a good many years. One of my pleasantest dis- 
coveries out here has been to find a much closer 
affinity in outlook between Indians and Englishmen 
than I . had ever ventured to expect. I do not 

, believe that my sympathy with or attitude towards 
Indian .aspirations is in any way peculiar to myself: 
the views I hold, even if they are not those of the 
older type of 1. C. S. or Army officer, are pretty 

generally held by a large number of Englishmen. 
I can speak with some confidence on this point 
as I am in fairly close touch with several people 
who exercise some influence over English opinion 
and have been working with increasing success 

to create an atmosphere favourable to granting 

India’s demand for full dominion status. What are 
we to make of the Committee’s latest move and of 
what appears to be the rather sudden and drastic 


change from a demand for dominion status to one 
for complete independence ? I have far too great 
a respect for Gandhi ji and the other Congress 
leaders I have met to believe it is either bluff or 
arises from a hasty resentment at our regrettably 
unforthcoming attitude during the early negotiations. 
They ought to know us well enough by now to 
realise how difficult we find it to do the handsome 
thing in a handsome way; and yet on the whole 
I- think it is our manners which are at fault more 
often than our intentions. 

If, therefore, the resolution must be taken to 
mean what it says and we are invited to remove 
ourselves bag and baggage forthwith, I cannot help 
asking you very seriously whether you are really 
able to rule India without any help from us. 
When I was up on the Frontier last summer I 
met a number of large and fierce gentlemen who 
were literally gloating at the prospect of enjoying 
themselves at India’s expense once the English were 
gone. There are also, I believe, other parties who 
would not hesitate to exploit the difficulties of the 
new Indian Republic. Non-violence is, I admit, a 
powerful weapon against people with some prejudices 
against the physical coercion of those who do not 
defend themselves, but I doubt its effectiveness 
against those who regard the whole idea with 
contempt. Can you keep these forces in order 
or are we to contemplate handing India over to ad* 
ministrative chaos and possible, even probable, civil 
war? You may say that that is your affair and if 
such difficulties arise you will deal with them in 
your own way» but that does not ease my mind. 
I am not concerned to defend either the circumstan- 
ces under which we got control over India in 
view of her defenceless condition in the latter part 
of the 18th century some other Power would no doubt 
have taken advantage of it, if we had not — nor 
the way we have treated her since, for the worse 
our record may be made to appear the more incum- 
bent it is upon us, in my opinion, not to divest our- 
selves of our responsibilities, of the penalties of our 
own misdeeds if you like, until there is an equally 
stable as well as a more enlightened administration 
ready to take over from us. I know that if I heard 
six months after we left India that Hindus and 
Muslims were killing one another in the face of an 
impotent government, I should not feel without blame, 
and I am certain that many Indians and other people 
as well would point to it as the evil legacy of British 
domination. I cannot therefore persuade myself that 
we English can fairly leave India until we have put 
her in a position to stand firmly on her own feet. 
When that time comes I will go gladly. I believed 
it was coming soon but my experience does not 
suggest that it has arrived yet. As dominion status 
seems to me to be a long step towards it, why is 
it unacceptable? 

May I turn to another point ? Progressive opinion 
in England, which will probably become more or less 
permanently in the ascendant after the war, provided 
that we win, is I believe genuinely anxious to see 
justice done to India, but it is even more anxious 
that the cause for which we are now fighting shall 




March 16, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


45 


prevail. I kaow the East End of London fairly 
'well and I can assure you that it is the purest 
nonsense to say that the electors of Silver town are 
fighting or voting to bolster up British Imperialism . 
They realise that we are up against evil things and 
that life even under the conditions of dockland is a 
better thing than it would be under Nazism. They 
know too, or if they do not I am afraid they 

will know before they are much older, that 

this is going to be a desperate struggle and 

that victory, if and when it does come, will 

have been bought at a terribly high price. How 
-are they going to feel towards those people in India 

who by trying to obstruct our war effort at this 

critical stage did their best to give that little 

push to the scales that might well have meant 

defeat ? 

You may say, ‘What do we owe to England 
and what do we care whether she is defeated or 
not ? This is the opportunity we have been waiting 

for and we mean to take it. * May I look at such 

an argument quite objectively ? Civil disobedience 

and the troubles to which it will certainly 
give rise will embarrass us seriously and cause 

exasperation, if not much worse, between people 
who ought to be friends, but I do not see how by 
itself it is going to get rid of us, particularly when 
we are mobilised. If it is unsuccessful and we win 
the war in spite of it, the very people who I firmly 
believe would have recognised India's forbearance to 
add to our difficulties in the most generous way 
will feel a resentment which it will take a genera- 
tion to dissipate. If on the other hand you are 
able to make us lose the war, do you really believe 
that the Germans or Russians will either keep their 
hands off India or will be more active in giving 
her complete independence than we have been ? If 
your answer is ‘no’, then would you sooner be 
mled by Nazis or Bolsheviks than by us ? 

I do believe I have been honestly sympathetic 
towards Congress aspirations and so far as my 
limited experience goes have tried honestly to inter- 
pret them to friends in England. But this latest 
'development I cannot understand or justify either 
on grounds of logic or even of expediency. Can you 
■help me ? I know I shall be getting enquiries from 
home before long and should like to answer them 
fairly. At the same time while the generals are 
manoeuvring, is there any way in which a private 
soldier like myself could be of assistance ? There is 
so much goodwill in danger of being wasted.” 

The letter represents the thoughts of many 
Englishmen who are well disposed towards the 
Congress. And yet it betrays a tragic ignorance 
of Indian thought. Thus the writer says, “What 
are we to make of the Committee’s latest mov e 
and of what appears to be the rather sudden 
and drastic change from a demand for Dominion 
Status to one for Complete Independence ? ” 
-Now Complete Independence has been the 
definite goal of the Congress since 1929, and 
has been repeated every year from thousands 
of platforms. From that year to this the 
Congress has never even so much as mention- 


ed Dominion Status. There is therefore no 
change whatsoever in the Congress demand. The 
question of suddenness or drasticness simply 
does not arise. Confusion arises from my 
oft-quoted letter to Mr. Hy. S. L. Polak where- 
in I said in 1937 that, if Dominion Status with 
the right to secede was offered, I for one would 
accept it. I had no authority to bind anyone 
else to that statement. Needless to say the offer 
was never made. Whatever may be said of me, 
no charge of change of policy can be brought 
against the Congress. So far as I am concerned 
I have changed. Experience since gained and 
maturer reflection have led me to think that 
Dominion Status even of the Statute of West- 
minster variety cannot suit India’s case. I have 
only recently given my reasons for the change 
of opinion which I need not repeat here. 

When the writer thinks that India cannot 
yet stand on her own legs, he has not even 
Dominion Status in contemplation. For Dominion 
Status is nothing if it does not mean the ability 
of the Dominion in question to stand by itself. 

What the Congress has definitely asked for is 
Britain’s declaration that it will give effect to 
the decisions of a duly elected Constituent 
Assembly. In other words, Britain should recog- 
nise the right of India without any outside 
interference or influence to determine her own 
future. It may be even Dominion Status. It 
may be less than Independence or a modified 
form of it. It may also be Complete Independ- 
ence. The Congress will not lower its flag. 
But the Constituent Assembly is not synonymous 
with the Congress. This Assembly will include 
representatives of all parties who can secure 
suflScient votes. Therefore all minorities will be 
represented in their full strength. 

It is a great pity that even the best of 
Englishmen are, as a rule, wofully ignorant of 
the Indian claim. They are too self-satisfied to 
take the trouble of studying the Indian case. They 
will not read nationalist papers. They take their 
opinions from the Anglo-Indian papers which 
themselves generally betray amazing ignorance 
about the thoughts, aspirations and acts of 
nationalist India. It has been the lot of the 
Congress to be misrepresented from its incep- 
tion. I suggest that responsible Englishmen should 
meet, say, the best known Congressmen of the 
left and the right schools of thought, and I 
promise that much misunderstanding will bq 
removed. It may be that even then there will 
be honest differences of opinion. These will 
always exist. 

The writer dreads to think what will happen 
to India if Englishmen were to vacate the 
country bag and baggage. Such a contingency is 
inconceivable in a non-violent struggle. The end 
of non-violent action is a friendly settlement. If 
he means ‘ merely the English soldiers, they will 
certainly go if they will not serve Independent 
India or if they are not wanted because they arc 
too expensive or for any other cause. It must 



46 


HARIJAN [ MaeCH 16, 1940 


not be forgotten that the Indian struggle is 
not anti-British, it is anti-exploitation; anti- 
foreign-rule, not anti-foreigners. Underlying the 
writer’s fear is the possibility of India deciding 
upon something beyond its capacity. This honest 
English belief in the incapacity of India to come 
to a sane judgment or to defend herself against 
civil war or foreign aggression is perhaps the 
greatest stumbling block in the way of an 
honourable settlement. If the fear is justified, 
the only antidote is to run the risk and let 
India learn wisdom and the art of self-defence 
by becoming free. Any other course means 
almost perpetual helplessness and foreign domi- 
nation. Surely it is better for India, England 
and the world that a helpless sub-continent 
runs the greatest risk for coming into its own 
than that in its sickness it becomes a dead 
weight to itself and the world. The distinguished 
writer; seems to admit the wrong Britain has 
done. It will not be undone by Britain being 
the judge of India’s destiny and cherishing the 
distant hope that one day India will be fit 
enough to shoulder full responsibility for internal 
and external defence. The very argument advanc- 
ed by the writer against India determining her 
future seems to me to be conclusive for ending 
British rule at the earliest moment possible. 

If the position taken up by me is the correct 
one, the Nazi or Bolshevik menace can have no 
meaning for nationalist India, especially as its 
defence is rooted in non-violence. 

But the writer evidently has no faith in non- 
violence of the strong. I must wholly disagree 
with him when he says, “Non-violence, I admit, 
is a powerful weapon against people with some 
prejudices against the physical coercion of those 
who do not defend themselves, but I doubt its 
efficacy against those who regard the whole idea 
with contempt.” The real test of non-violence lies 
in its being brought in contact with just those 
who have contempt for it. The writer would be 
right if he were to say that such unadulterated 
non-violence has not yet been used by the Con- 
gress. The answer would be that I am trying 
my utmost to present India and through it 
the world with a completed example of non- 
violence. I may fail. But I invite Englishmen 
to assist the experiment if they have even a 
faint belief in the possibility of the exercise of 
such non-violence. 

With the poor opinion the writer has of the 
working of non-violence, it is no wonder that 
he trembles at the thought, when the British 
retire from India, “of a number of large and 
fierce gentlemen who were literally gloating at 
the prospect of enjoying themselves at India’s 
expense once the English were gone." Is it 
like^ that an assembly of elected men and women 
who had such a feeu: would sign their death 
warrant by asking the English to retire in 
order that they may be devoured by “ large and 
fierce gentlemen” of the Frontier? I suggest to 
the writer that, if and when the Engiich 


retire, both the Muslims and the Hindus will 
find it profitable to live in peace as they 
used to do before the British advent. If there 
had been perpetual quarrels, one or the other 
would have been wiped out. When real inde- 
pendence comes to India, Congresses and Leagues 
will be nowhere unless they represent the real 
opinion of the country. The presence of the 
British bayonet has created an artificial condition 
which suppresses the natural play of human 
action and demoralises both the suppressed and 
the suppressors. Let me also add that the 
presence of the British forces has not prevented 
riots such as were seen in Sukkur or kidnap- 
pings and raids on the Frontier. Whatever 
success the forces achieve is after the events 
have happened. The sufferers are no better off 
for the punitive measures, nor is it possible to 
say that at least in the majority of such cases 
full reparation is made. 

That the Congress resistance at this stage 
will embitter the English mind and will be 
remembered against India, is a possibility. But 
my own experience of human nature, not 
excluding the British, is that bitternesses are 
forgotten when parties wish to come together. 
The suggestion presupposes the crushing of 
civil disobedience. There is no such thing in 
the civil disobedience dictionary. If there is 
violence, it will certainly be crushed because 
violence can only end in a disgraceful rout. 
There never has been previous preparation; 
the people themselves will be bewildered. They 
would not know what to do. But if, in 
spite of all the precautions I may take for a 
non-violent struggle, bitterness is still to be the 
residue, even that risk has to be run. Before 
the throne of the Almighty man will be judged 
not by his acts but by his intentions. For God 
alone reads our hearts. Freedom’s battles are not 
fought without paying heavy prices. Just as man 
would not cherish the thought of living in a 
body other than his own, so do nations not like 
to live under other nations however noble and 
great the latter may be. Englishmen who are 
undergoing tremendous sacrifices for preserving 
their freedom should not fail to appreciate India’s 
travail. The Congress does not say, "Give us 
Congressmen what we want.” It says to the 
Rulers, “Not you but the elected representatives 
of the nation should decide its fate.” If such a 
reasonable proposition is circumvented, what 
should the Congress do ? 

Sevagram, 11-3-40 


Some Recent Books Price Postage 
S, K. George — Gandhi’s Challenge to 
Christianity 

J. C. Kumarappa — C. P, Industrial 
Survey Repot Part I Vol. I 
ji II » I 

I „ , II 

Thakkar Committee’s Report 
C. P. Sweepers’ condition 
Available at (l) Harijan office- 


on 


i-IO 

O 

1 

0-10 

0—2 

0-12 

0—2 

1—4 

0—4 

.—2 

T 

o 


office ”67 & 81 Queen’s Road, Bombay 2. 


Poona 4 ; (2) Harijan 



HARIJAN 


47 


March 16, 1940 ] 

OCCASIONAL NOTES 

Playisrg Providence 

Mr. Braiisford, the eminent publicist, has in a 
recent article explained with remarkable clarity 
the reason of the breakdown of the Delhi nego- 
tiations. Gandhiji’s brief explanation, he says, 
has unfortunately not been understood even 

in the Labour Party and so he offers further 
explanation ; 

“ The central issue on which the negotiations at 
Delhi broke down is as vital as it is elementary. 
Who is to be the architect of the political structure 
within which Indians are to live ? Are we to design 
it for them, or are they to plan it for themselves ? 
They claim to be a nation. This promise of Domb 
nion Status means that we concede their claim. 

Very well, then, how do we treat other nations in 
a comparable situation ? We hope, in the event of 
victory, to bring liberty to the Austrians. It would 
never enter our heads to draw up a constitution 
for them at Westminster or in Paris. They must 
decide for themselves whether they wish to remain 
a part of Germany, recovered, as we hope, 

for democracy, or to form a separate State. 

Is it to be a Republic ? That ip their affair. We 
may have our wishes and opinions, but they 
must settle all this, and much more, for themselves 
at Vienna. And as a matter of course, we should 
concede as much even to nations less entitled to 
our respect than Austrians. But in the case of 
India it is fixed as an obstinate principle in our 
rulers' minds that God’s Englishman must plan 
the house in which Indians are to live. Our Civil 
Servants will do the drafting. Our Parliament clause 
by clause will debate the Bill. The votes of white 
men responsible to the electors of Govan and 
Clapham and Cardiff will decide whether India shall 
have two chambers or one, a wide or a propertied 
franchise. .. .It is too late in the day for us to play 
Providence to this awakened nation. Indians will not 
submit to our paternal authority. They stand for 
‘ self-determination ' — the right to choose for them- 
selves the type of government under which they 
shall rule themselves.” 

An Analogy 

In a very long article on Pandit Jawaharlal 
Nehru in Life, one of America’s most widely 
read journals, Mr. and Mrs, Gunther sum up 
the case for India. Barring a statement or phrase 
here and there in the Americanese it is a most 
lucid statement of the Indian case and must 
make the Britisher pause to see how Americans 
view our case, ” While the British fight for 
democracy in Europe, they deny full democracy 
to 350,000,000 Indians who want freedom. Every- 
one knows how exceptionally difficult it is for 
the Allies to state their war aims. But India 
should be a test case for war aims when the 
time comes for stating them, ” the authors say. 
Then they put down what they describe as 
“ an extreme statement of the Indian case, such 
as one that Nehru might make.” There is, 
however, no extreme-ness about it, for it is 
a perfect picture of the condition of things in 


India. “ An analogy might be a Japanese 
occupation of the United States, ” they say, 
trying to put themselves in the Indians’ posi- 
tion. “ Suppose that the United States should 
crumble into decay, and succumb to civil war 
between rival American States, Suppose then 
that the Japanese, residents of a distant land, 
should invade America, restore order, make 
treaties with various local authorities and main- 
tain an armed occupation of the land, finally 
permitting the Americans a limited degree of 
local autonomy. Suppose that the Japanese flag 
flew in Washington, and that the Japanese 
Viceroy were solely responsible for the conduce 
of foreign affairs, finance, law and order. Suppose 
that the Japanese milked America of its colossal 
industrial production and national income and 
meantime starved education. Suppose, finally, it 
established swanky clubs which no American 
could enter, encourged pro-Japanese puppets 
among disloyal Americans, and inflicted on 
Americans a stingently organised Japanese Civil 
Service. Then suppose the Japanese should 
become involved in a war with, say, Britain. 
Would the American subjects of Japan be 
loyal to Japan ? Or would they not ?” 

The Civil Service 

The Gunthers have in the hypothetical analogy 
rightly referred to the ” stringently organised 
Civil Service” in India. This -is an item in the 
fourfold ruin of India which critics will do 
well to bear in mind. A writer in The Tiew 
Review, a monthly issued by the Jesuit 
Fathers in India, gives a detailed account of 
the Indian Civil Service. “ Though it is now a 
high and exalted service,” says the writer, “the 
Indian Civil Service has had a humble origin in 
the factors and writers of the East India Com- 
pany ( who ) later became civil servants.... 

The salaries of these servants were very low. 
The writers were paid £ 5 a year, the factors 
£ 15, junior merchants £30, and senior merchants 
£40; while the Governor received the princely salary 
of £300.” In about a hundred years, i.e. in 1793, 
this Service became the ' Covenanted Civil Service 
of India’, in contradistinction to the lower un- 
covenanted service to which alone Indians were 
admitted. The ‘ low ’ salaries led the Civil 
Servants to engage in private trade and to 
accept ‘ presents and when for years in spite 
of orders prohibiting these the abuses continued 
the salaries were increased. And yet Lord 
Cornwallis, having “ no faith in the integrity 
and moral standards of Indians, adopted the 
policy of getting everything done by European 
agency. All the higher posts were reserved 
to Europeans, and Indians had to be satisfied 
with subordinate posts.” The salaries were 
raised in order to minimise the possibilities 
of corruption among the Europeans, and yet 
it was integrity and ethics of Indians that 
were questioned. “ It was Cornwallis who 
raised the salaries of the Civil Servants to a 
very high level, thus burdening the country with 



48 


HARIJAl^ 


[ March 16, 1940 


one of the most, if not the most, expensive Civil 
Service in the world. ..Civil Servants had to live 
on a level commensurate with the level set up 

by the Nawabs In addition to salary the Civil 

Servants were given a commission of li per cent 
on the revenue collections. This meant that a 
collector could earn in all about Rs. 3,000 a 
month as long ago as the closing years of the 
eighteenth century.” That is to say a collector 
over a hundred and fifty years ago was earning 
ten times the salary drawn by a European 
Governor in 1674, and which salary along with 
other salaries detailed above were fixed accord- 
ing to the conditions of life in India, The 
recent history of the Civil Service with Civilian 
Governors drawing as much as Rs. 10,000 per 
month, with the “ Lee loot ’ scandal and so on, 
is well known. 

This Service, which as a critic has said is 
neither Indian, nor civil, nor service, and which 
being on the one hand the heaviest economic 
drain on India has been on the other hand 
almost wholly responsible for the continuance of 
the stranglehold on India, is a moral outrage 
without a parallel in history, and by itself 
provides a case for atonement by Britain. 

Sevagram, 12-3-40 M. D. 

Notes 

Jaiprakash Narayan 

The arrest of Shri Jaiprakash Narayan is 
unfortunate. He is no ordinary worker. He is 
an authority on socialism. It may be said that 
what he does not know of Western socialism 
nobody else in India does. He is a fine fighter. 
He has forsaken all for the sake of the deliver- 
ance of his country. His industry is tireless. His 
capacity for sujffering is not to be excelled. I 
do not know what speech has brought him 
within the law. But if 124 A or the highly 
artificial sections of the Defence of India Act 
are to be inspanned for catching inconvenient 
persons, then any person whom the authorities 
want can be easily brought within the law. I 
have said before now that it is open to the 
Government to precipitate a crisis if they wish 
to. They have every right to do so. But I 
have hugged the hope that the fight will be 
allowed to develop along its natural course so 
long as it keeps strictly non-violent. Let there 
be no camouflage. If Shri Jaiprakash Narayan 
is guilty of violence, violence should be proved. 
What the arrest has done is to make the people 
believe that the British Government want to 
force the issue. History will then have repeated 
itself. During the first Civil Disobedience the 
Government had forced the issue by arresting the 
Ali Brothers. Is this arrest a prearranged plan, 
or is it a blunder committed by an over-zealous 
oflScer? If it is the latter, it should be set right. 

Sevagram, 12-3-40 


" Khadi Banks ’ 

A correspondent writes : 

I believe in khadi. So I must use it. But 
my means are limited. So I made it a point to 

lay aside Re. 1 per month. Yet I am afraid the 

saving is within easy reach of pressing needs. So 

I conceive a scheme of ‘ Khadi Banks’. Not only 
does the scheme show how the saving could be 

effectively turned by purchasers to ensure purchases 
of khadi but also to ensure a device of cheapening 
khadi to the purchasers without in any way injuring 
the interests of the wage-earners. 

All those who are khadi-lovers and all those who 
cannot afford to save enough to make khadi 
purchases at a time may patronise such banks. An 
amount of money be deposited at a time or at suitable 
intervals with a certified A. I. S. A. khadi bhandar. 
Such a bank would differ from a money bank in 
that the money once deposited cannot be withdrawn 
except through khadi purchase equivalent in value. 
The A. I. S, A. may issue hundi books to such 
customers who may from time to time draw hundis 
of appropriate denominations on the bhandars and 
purchase khadi. 

The advantages of having such banks are obvious 
and important both from the purchasers’ and wage- 
earners’ point of view. Thus, if the khadi-lovers all 
over the country take into their head to patronise 
such banks, ( i ) it is obvious that the A. 1. S. A. 
would be in a position to guarantee the wages of 
the wage-earners. The extent of such security might 
vary; (ii) it is equally obvious that the interest 
earned by the A. I. S. A. would be capitalised and 
utilised towards reduction of the cost of khadi to- 
purchasers without in any way injuring the wages 
of the wage-earners. Thus the purchasers get cheap- 
ened khadi in lieu of interest on their advances. 
Therefore, I think, the proper working of such khadi 
banks may prove a useful device in lowering the 
prices of khadi without loss to the wage-earners. 

I do not know how far the above suggestion is 
practicable. So I request you to give your weighty 
consideration to it. If you think it worth your 
reply, kindly put it through the columns of Harijan 
for the benefit of the general public.” 

The suggestion reads attractive. Let the 
A. I, S. A. experts consider it. If the purchasers 
will forego interest and a sufficient number 
subscribe, it should be possible to cheapen 
khadi. 

Sevagram, 11-3-40 M. K. G- 


CONTENTS 

Question Box 

Gandhi Seva Sangh — III ... 
For Englishmen 
Occasional Notes 
Notes; 

Jaiprakash Narayan 
‘Khadi Banks’ 


Page 

M. K. Gandhi 41 
M. D. 42' 
M. K. Gandhi 44 
M. D. 47 

M. K. G. 43 
M. K. G. 48 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press. 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4 
Snbicription Rates — INLAND ; One year, Rs. 4, Six months, Rs. 2-8, FOREIGN : One year, Rs. 5-8 or, 8 ah. or 2 $. 



aeg. No. B 3092 



QUESTION BOX 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Princes 

Q. You have, I fear, evaded the question 
of Princes. Generally you go straight to your 
subject, but somehow or other you seem to 
have walked round this subject. 

A. Apparently, but not really, there is some 
truth in the taunt. The fact is that the Princes 
have never before now been presented as a 
difficulty. They are a new arrow from the British 
quiver. It is British India that is fighting for free- 
dom. The States people axe fighting their own battle 
in their own States against overwhelming odds. 
The people in the States and in British India 
are one. For them the artificial boundaries do 
not exist. But for the administrators the bound- 
aries are very real. British law has allowed 
Princes to regard as foreigners people from British 
India going to the States or people from one 
Scate to another. And yet Princes exist only on 
British sufferance; They cannot move without 
British permission. Their heirs have to be 
approved by the British Raj, Their tuition is also 
under the same supervision. They can be deposed 
at will. Thus so far as the British control is 
concerned, they are worse off than the ordinary 
British subject. But so far as their people are 
concerned, the Princes have unlimited control 
over them. They can imprison them at wiU 
and even put them to death. Theoretically 
British Raj has a duty by the people also. But 
it is rarely exercised. Therefore the people of 
the States labour under a double handicap. It 
must be clear to you from the foregoing narra- 
tive that the Congress cannot influence the 
Princes except through the British Government. 
Indeed the latter will not permit any real 
approach to the Princes. I personally do not 
desire the extinction of the Princely order. But 
I do want the Princes to recognise the signs 
of the times and shed a large part of their 
autocracy. In spite of the powerful British 
bayonet, the march of the people of both the 
Indies' cannot be stayed. I am hoping that the 
combined wisdom of all, including the Princes 
and the present rulers, will prevent the march 
from running mad, which ' it is bound to do 
unless a smooth passage is made for it. I am 
putting forth the best non-violent effort I can, 
but my non-violence, because of my imperfections, 
may fail I ask for the helping hand of those who 
would see India win her goal without a blood bath. 


But if the Princes will not listen, I do not 
ask for their coercion. Let British India have 
her independence, and I know, the Princes know, 
that true freedom of British India means free- 
dom of their people also. For as I have said 
the two are one. No power on earth can keep 
them in separation for all time. 

Use of Force against Muslims 

Q. You talk of complete independence from 
Britain and at the same time of settling the 
question of minorities through a Constituent 
Assembly. This means that, if Muslims do not 
listen to you, you would want to use British 
forces to compel them to submit to your will. 

A. This question simply ignores my own 
position and, so far as I know, the Congress 
position. The Congress cannot want independ- 
ence and the use of British forces at the same 
time. But that is not all. The Congress will not 
coerce Muslims or any minority. That would not 
be a non-violent approach. The greatest coercion 
is British coercion. And the Congress is impatient 
to get out of that coercion. My hope in desir- 
ing a Constituent Assembly is that whether the 
Muslims are represented by the Muslim League 
mentality or any other, the representatives when 
they are face to face with the reality will not 
think of cutting up India according to religions 
but will regard India as an indivisible whole 
and discover a national, i. e. Indian, solution 
of even specially Muslim questions. But if the 
hope is frustrated, the Congress cannot forcibly 
resist the express will of the Muslims of India. 
Needless to say the Congress can never seek the 
assistance of British forces to resist the vivisec- 
tion. It is the Muslims who will impose their 
will by force singly or with British assistance on 
an unresisting India. If I can carry the Con- 
gress with me, I would not put the Muslims to 
the trouble of using force. I would be ruled 
by them for it would still be Indian rule. In 
other words, the Congress will have only a 

non-violent approach to every question and 
difficulty arising. But just as it is possible that 
Muslim representatives to the Constituent Assem- 
bly may wear another hue than that of the 
Muslim League, it is also possible that the others 
may be non-Congressmen. In that event, the 
British will be where they are, only they will 
be wooed by both the parties alternately and 
will remain the architects of India's destiny. 

For then, with the Congress swept away, 

non-violence will be blown to the winds and 



50 


HARIJAN 


[ March 23, 1940 


naturally the infinitely superior violence of the 
British aided by the willing co-operation of the 
wooing party will easily rule India. For the 
only force matched against British force is 
that of non-violence, incomplete though it is, 
of the Congress. 

Neglect of Sanskrit 

Q. Do you know that the Patna University 
has practically tabooed the study of Sanskrit? 
Do you approve of the step ? If you do not, 
will you express your opinion in Harijan ? 

A. I do not know what the Patna University 
has done. But I quite agree with you that the 
study of Sanskrit is being sadly neglected. I 
belong to a generation which believed in the 
study of the ancient languages. I do not believe 
that such a study is a waste of time and eflEbrt. 
I believe it is an aid to the study of modern 
languages. This is truer of Sanskrit than of any 
other ancient language so far as India is con- 
cerned, and every nationalist should study it 
because it makes a study of the provincial lan- 
guages easier than otherwise. It is the language 
in which our forefathers thought and wrote. No 
Hindu boy or girl should be without a know- 
ledge of the rudiments of Sanskrit, if he will 
imbibe the spirit of his religion. Thus the 
Gayatri is untranslatable. No translation can give 
the music of the original which I hold has a 
meaning all its own. The Gayatri is but one 
example of what I have said. 

Ramgarh, 17-3-40 

WOMEN AND VOLUNTARY 
ENDEAVOUR 
(By M. K. Gandhi^ 

Shrimati Rajkumari Amrit Kaur writes : 

“ Recently the women assembled at the Annual 
Session of the All India Women’s Conference passed 
a resolution expressing their faith in khadi as a 
means of economic relief to our poor sisters, and 
pledged themselves to try to use it as far as 
possible in their homes and promote its sales. In 
view of this I have recently addressed all our 
Branches and asked them to take up what you 
have termed * sacrificial spinning’ as a practical way 
of helping khadi. If women of the leisured classes 
would spin regularly and give their yarn to the 
A. I. S. A., it could be utilised for sustaining the 
recent increase in the wages of spinners which the 
Association has introduced. These poor women used 
to earn even as low a wage as a pice per day; 
the A. !• S. A. has voluntarily raised it to a pice 
and more per hour and desires it to rise much 
higher. But it cannot do so without the hearty 
co-operation of the well-to-do today, For it has .to 
keep down the price of khadi so that it may remain 
within the purchasing power of the middle classes- 
We shall therefore be rendering a double service to 
the spinner and the khadi buyer. It is ' a tragedy 
,that most of us do not realise that the A. L S. A. 
is in reality an Association for the benefit of women. 
Spinners are women; they live if khadi lives; if we 
can help to raise their earnings to a living wage, 


v/e are at once not only giving them economic 
independence but we also raise the dignity of their 
labour. 

Through the kind help of Shri Krishnadas Gandhi 
I am able to give the following figures which 
illustrate the material value of the help we could 
easily render to our poor village sisters. 

If a woman spins for an hour daily, she spins 
for about 360 hours in the year. Reckoning an 
average speed of 280 yards per hour and approxi- 
mately 2l hanks per week ( a hank being equal to 
840 yards ), she would be contributing 10 hanks per 
month and 120 per annum. The value of this yarn 
works out at 12 As- to 14 As. per mensem, and the 
value of the spinning ( an hour daily at the rate of 
wages at a pice per hour ) may be reckoned at 7 
annas approximately. Supposing 3,000 of us joined 
hands, we would be contributing Rs. 2,250 and Rs. 
27,000 worth of yarn per month and per annum 
respectively, the labour of spinning being reckoned 
at Rs. 1,400 a month and Rs. 17,000 in the year. 

If we buy our slivers, we would have to spend 
7 As. a month or Rs. 5-4-0 per annum on them. 
If, however, the art of carding cotton at home and 
making slivers therefrom is cultivated, this expendi- 
ture could be reduced by Rs. 2-4-0 a year, self- 
made slivers involving a cost of 4 As. per month 

or Rs. 3 per annum. Each one of us would thus 

be' contributing labour to the extent of Rs. 7-8-0 
during the year. ( Rs. 2-4-0 in making slivers and 
Rs. 5-4-0 in spinning. ) 

Some sisters have asked me why I am asking 
them to spin rather than contribute their quota in 
cash. While it is open to those who will not spin 
to help by donations, the value of work which 
makes us one in spirit with the poor, which en- 
hances the dignity of all labour, especially women’s 

labour, and which develops within us a love of 
hand-woven and hand-spun cloth as nothing else can 
is something which cannot be reckoned in terms 
of money. 

Girl students in colleges often ask me in what 
way they can serve the country. Each one of them 
could contribute her quota in this manner too. 

I shall be very grateful if you will give your 
blessing and approval to this scheme and thereby 
strengthen my appeal. We ought of course to be 
able to raise many more than 3,000 volunteers to 
join hands in this endeavour. What is 3,000 for a 
huge country like ours, if we have the love of 
service in us ? And of course it should be incumbent 
on those who can give longer hours of labour to do 
so. Those who wish to join this ‘ brigade ’ may send 
their names and addresses to me, and I will inform 
them as to where they can give in their yam. 

I may mention that the figures given have been 
reckoned at present A. I. S. A. rates.” 

I heartily endorse this appeal. It will be a 
shame if even three thousand sisters cannot 
be founfl who would labour for the starving 
millions. It is well that the Rajkumari has laid 
stress on identification with the poor through 
labour willingly and cheerfully done. 

Sevagram, 11-3-40 



MAECE 23, 1940 ] 


HAEIJAN 


51 


CANDID COMMENTS 

Time and Tide is one of the most influentialo 
broad-minded Qjnservative journals in England 
today. The following comments that have appear- 
ed in it vis-a-vis the Hindu Muslim question 
in relation to India’s claim to Independence will 
be read with interest: 

”To the British public who have had the words 
* Hindu ® and ‘ Muslim ’ dinned into their ears until 
India has come to connote little else, this will 
sound helpful, but it raises new questions. There is 
the Hindu-Muslim problem and it is no use shirk- 
ing it. But the Congress standpoint is that its Minis- 
tries did not resign over the communal question, but 
over the question of India’s international status and 
the British Government’s war aims and that the 
Viceroy and the India Office have dragged in the 
Hindu-Muslim problem, much as St. Paul, with far 
more excuse, dragged in the quarrel of the Saddu- 
cees and Pharisees when be found himself in a tight 
corner. Also the India Government, by the exagge- 
rated recognition it has given to what is, after all, 
merely the best organised and largest Muslim group, 
the Muslim League, is held to have deliberately 

exacerbated the problem. The Congress has its own 
internal difficulties like every other group, but the 
difficulties of the Indian Government are likely to 
come to harvest first as the war grows grimmer 
and ever more serious. Finally, there will never be 
any settlement of the Hindu-Muslim problem any 
more than of the Catholic-Protestant problem or of 
the many religious problems of Syria and the 

Balkans. If India has to wait for Dominion Status 

until there is such a settlement, she must wait for 
ever, which many Indians believe is our only interest 
in the problem. All you can get is a convention 

for a specified term of years by which the majority 
community pledges itself to give Muslims such re- 
presentation in excess of their numerical proportion 
as will establish them in the legislatures and the 
public services — until their educational and economic 
progress has made the community able to look 
after itself. ” 

Even more outspoken are the comments of 
The Hatal Witness which is the oldest established 
journal in Natal. The extracts below are from 
its leading article entitled “A cat may look at 
a king” in reply to the London Times' vapour- 
ings: 

There are fewer tests of the sincerity of Britain 
in her war aims than are to be found outside them. 
Some of the assertions being made on behalf of 
democracy and its defence call from Britain at this 
time ( as well as from South Africa in the same 
connection ) a practical recognition if she ( and we ) 
are not to be advised to practise what we preach 
by those we are not slow to condemn.... The Congress 
Party, it is true, does not represent all India; it- 
would be remarkable, indeed, if, in the diversity of 
faiths and the vastness of the population, any one 
group should enjoy the unanimous support of the 
TOsses. Let it be , said, however, that the party is 
in power in seven of the eleven provinces, and that 


it gained a national majority in the provincial elec- 
tions, and it will be realised that its right to speak 
for India is comparable with that conferred upon 
the Conservative Party to speak for the British 
Commonwealth of Nations. In claiming this right it 
neither ignores nor neglects the several and strong 
minorities in India. Briefly, what its demands envi- 
sage is the acknowledgment by the greater demo- 
cracy Britain of a principle for India not dissimilar 
from the one we are now fighting for in Europe. 
It has discovered already, however, that, if the objec- 
tive of British policy in India is Dominion status, 
a process of self-determined freedom and liberty, the 
granting of it is a slower process than the swift 
call to arms for the defence of the principle else- 
where.... 

It reasons, as so many people reason, that because 
there are strong minorities in disagreement with the 
Congress Party, it behoves Britain to withhold the 
right it is capable of exercising. It is as if to say 
that because the Conservative Party has facing it a 
strong opposition it must not be allowed to declare 
war or make peace. This stupidity will one day 
prove the undoing of a considerable portion of the 
British Commonwealth of Nations.... If we continue 
to deny those of our own Empire, that are fitted 
for such status and privilege, the right to have more 
than vague assurances for the future, we can expect 
to be dubbed as hypocrites by our enemies in the 
field. 

The Times stands for the re-establishment of Poland 
and Czechoslovakia, and at the same time refuses 
the same to a nation fkr more democratically 
inclined than Poland, which did but lately emerge 
from a medieval feudalism, can ever hope to be. 
This is no light matter. It might have thought that 
the leaders of British opinion would pay some criti- 
cal attention to the foundations of belief and faith, 
and on them formulate policy consistent with reitera- 
ted principles and consonant with those ideals for 
which men are called to die at this time 

Let it be said at once that the relation of Britain to 
India merely reflects the relation of the Union to its 
Indians. For anyone with a care for democracy, 
with which goes a concern for political integrity and 
reputation, will find it difficult to appreciate an 
anxiety to defend liberty, freedom, honest dealing 
with the rest of the values now challenged in 
Europe, combined with a complete neglect of those 
same things in our own land. The war, it has been 
said, is a test of our own faith in matters of faith. 
Singularly enough, it is not in Poland or in Czecho- 
slovakia or at the Maginot line, though The Times 
thinks it is, where democracy is to be defended. If 
the cause of the British Commonwealth is to be 
saved, it can only be done by granting those within 
it a full measure of that ordered freedom and self- 
determination we fight to grant those without. The 
London Times very naturally does not see it that 
way ! ” 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radbhkrishnan. Rs. 5-10—0. Postage 7 As. 

Available at Harijan office-Poona 4, and 67 & 81 
Queen’s Road, Bombay 2. 



HAEIJAN [ March 23, 1940 



ANOTHEE ENGLISHMAN’S LETTER 


( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Last week I dealt with a letter from a well- 
known Englishman who is in India. Now I 
have a letter from a responsible English friend 
in England, from which I give below all that 
the readers need to know: 

“ We are quite certain that no such thing as 
‘ banging the door ’ has happened. The Government 
still anxiously desires a settlement to be reached. 
Even if normally it did not want this, it is bound 
to do so at the present time, in view of the terri- 
fic war in which this country is engaged. The feel- 
ing, however, is growing amongst Government people 
that the Congress is increasingly regarding settle- 
ment’ as meaning what it alone considers right. 
Apart from the fact that that is not of the nature 
of a settlement, but rather of a one-sided dictation, 
I am bound to remind you that a war condition 
does not increase the liberal-mindedness of men, 
but on the contrary tends to strengthen a certain 
fear and rigidity in politics, when men become of 
necessity concentrated on the terrible effort in hand, 
and more and more unable to allow for opposition. 

Hence, if the Congress rejects conciliation and 
follows a line of immovable opposition, it is more 
than probable that the British War Cabinet will do 
the same. The time for peaceful settlement will 
pass — a disaster for both India and Great Britain. 
I need not labour this. Its consequences are obvious. 
But I may say that it is felt here, by many most 
sympathetic to the cause of freedom in India, that 
the Congress is not wise in taking so rigid a posi- 
tion and ignoring the grave and indeed enormous 
problems Great Britain is facing that make so difficult 
a satisfactory answer to the Congress claim. 

India claims her freedom in the sense, first, of 
self-determination. Here the question is asked: What 
is this Government of India that all India wants — 
Congress Party, Muslims and other communities* and 
Princes included ? The Congress demands a Consti- 
tuent Assembly to determine this. But it seems clear 
that before such an Assembly could usefully attempt 
to tackle this question, with any hope of reaching 
agreement, prior work has to be done. Should not, 
first, a small, private but very responsible Conference 
of a dozen representative Indian men work out to 
agreement the main points of the desired constitution ? 

Given that this small Conference was representa- 
tive, and was accepted by both India and Great 
Britain as a responsible body, and given the reach- 
ing of reasonable agreement, , it is practically certain 
that the British Government would accept its 
decision. And it is to be supposed that a National 
Assembly of all India, whatever the minor modifica- 
tions it might desire, would substantially do so too. 


This would not be all that the Congress High 
Command is envisaging. But unless the Congress 
is prepared for war ’ there must be some meeting 
of the views of other parties, and some willingness 
to meet the de Jacto Government on procedure. 

There is a great desire and willingness here to 
reach a solution. Everything demands it, and there 
never was a greater amount of discussion over Bri- 
tish-Indian relations than at the present time. On 
the other hand there is developing a certain grim 
determination not to accept dictation from what, it 
is otherwise agreed of course, is the major political 
party in India, — but whose decision can neither oust 
Great Britain from participation in the solution, nor 
release her from treaties, undertakings and promises. 

The gravity of the situation now is such that I 
most deeply pray you not to turn from the wonder- 
ful path of patient seeking of understanding that 
has always been yours and return to a past situation 
of a kind we both equally hate. 

May I add as a long friend of Indian freedom 
my deep conviction that this struggle must and can 
be ended in friendship and equality — accepting 
all the implications of both those words. For this, 
England has to return to India the domination and 
control she has exercised, not asking a price; and 
India has to claim England’s consent^ not demand 
her surrender. So only can a lasting peace be 
reached. But if this is so, the steps thereto must 
be agreed steps. 

I can well believe that “ the Government 
people” did not wish to bang the door, but 
Lord Zetland’s interview left no room for doubt. 
These were his words : 

“ Referring to Mr. Gandhi’s statement that, if 
the British Government would leave the framing of 
the constitution to Indians themselves, the questions 
of defence, minorities, Princes and European inter- 
ests would automatically be resolved, Lord Zetland 
said that, while be greatly admired Mr. Gandhi’s 
optimism, he was unhappily quite unable to share it 
and felt that, as long as the leaders of the Congress 
maintained their present attitude, the obstacles in 
the way of an honourable understanding would be 
greatly increased. 

Lord Zetland said that it was unfortunate that 
Congress spokesmen made a fetish of the word 
‘ independence *, since he was convinced that this had 
created a false impression in Great Britain of the 
aim which the vast majority of Indians had in 
view. ‘That they desire freedom to govern them- 
selves I do not doubt; that they contemplate India 
swinging from the orbit of British Commonwealth, 

I do not for a moment believe. In a mad world, 
they are far too appreciative of the protection 
afforded to them by the armed strength of Great 
Britain on land and sea.” 

My correspondent is a careful student of 
contemporary events in India. He chooses his 
words before using them. Yet he has evi- 
dently felt unable to correct the impression in 
Government circles that the Congress “ is 
increasingly regarding ‘settlement* as meaning 



^.iARCH 23, 1940 ] KAillJAjS 


what it alone considers right”. The Congress 
has never taken up an uncompromising [attitude 
and within the four corners of its demand has 
always shown its readiness for ‘a settlement’. 
Its demand is unequivocal. It says to the British 
Government: “If you really mean to part with 
power and your war is not for consolidating 
your Empire but for democracy ail round, then 
you will declare India a free country and let a 
Constituent Assembly elected on the basis of 
adult suffrage decide upon the form and content 
of her own Government. No doubt there are 
difficulties, e. g. about defence, about minorities, 
and the Princes. The burden of solving these 
difficulties will be shifted from you to the Con- 
stituent Assembly. If the Assembly cannot solve 
these satisfactorily, it will prove its insolvency. 
You will have done your duty.” Surely in this 
there is no one-sided dictation. 

The writer reminds me of the war condition 
and suggests in effect that it does not improve 
one’s temper. I should say that a problem like 
India is a direct issue in the war; perhaps the 
fortunes of war will turn upon the conduct of 
nationalist India. People engaged in a war do 
not lose temper over matters which affect the 
fortunes of war. 

I have no difficulty in endorsing the sugges- 
tion that some work prior to the Constituent 
Assembly should be done. The writer suggests 
“ a very responsible conference of a dozen 
representatives”. The; difficulty is of choosing 
the representatives. Who will choose them ? 
They cannot command confidence unless they 
are duly elected. Such a committee, so far 
as I can see, can only be appointed by the 
members of the Constituent Assembly. I think 
the day is gone when any party worth the 
name will accept as representatives Government 
nominees as was done at the Round Table 
Conference. 

The Congress has to be and is prepared for 
‘ war ’. But it wants to avoid ‘ war ’. It will 
not wantonly act so as to be the cause of 
endless suffering to the people. The Congress 
is ever ready to “meet the de facto Govern- 
ment on procedure”. Is the latter willing and 
ready to recognise India as a free country? The 
Congress history shows that it has always met 
and is today ready to meet the views of other 
parties on most matters. What it is not ready 
to do is to alter the goal. It must be content 
to be reduced to a hopeless minority for the 
sake of preserving its goal. It is a trust which 
it cannot abandon without being disloyal to its 
past. The end of non-violent ‘war’ is always 
an agreement, never dictation, much less humilia- 
tion of the opponent. There can be no question 
of the Congress asking or expecting Britain to 
dishonour just obligations or treaties. 

What, however, I miss is a sincere desire on 
the part of Britain to do unto India what she 
would wish done to her if the position were 
reversed. The Congress is unreasonable, if it is 


wrong for it to refuse to abate the passion fcr 
feeedom for which Dadabhai laboured, which 
Tiiak taught India to regard as her birthright, 
and for which thousands of men and women 
have cheerfully suffered imprisonment and loss 
of their possessions. If it is allowed as a 
worthy passion, the Congress has no fear as 
to the verdict of being regarded as eminently 
reasonable in everything else. 

Ramgarh, 16-3-40 

A Very Useful Publication 

Shri Satishchandra DasGupta of Khadi Pratis- 
than has just published a volume called Home 
and Village Doctor ( price Rs. 5 cloth-bound, 
Rs. 6 leather-bound). It contains 1384 pages, 
has 18 chapters on the human body, care of 
systems, nutrition, hygiene and sanitation, nursing, 
accidents, home treatment, cheap remedies, dis- 
eases of the various organs, care of pregnant 
mother and child, infectious and constitutional 
diseases as well as those relating specially to 
women. Particular contents are exhaustive, and 
it has a copious index at the end covering 32 
pages. There are 219 instructive illustrations. 
It was during my second imprisonment here 
that I wrote and asked medical friends to give 
me a book after the style of the excellent 
publication Moore’s Family Medicine. I wanted, 
however, something better and more indigenous 
in the sense that a layman serving in villages 
could handle with ease. A book was promised 
but the promise could not be fulfilled. Satish 
Babu came to the rescue and with his amazing 
industry has produced a book which should 
meet my requirements. As he says in his intro- 
duction he would not publish it till I had 
read it through and certified it as satisfactory. 
He supplied me with the chapters as they were 
getting ready; then when he had finished the 
whole volume he bound it and sent it to me. 

I carried it with me for one year or longer 
but could never get the time required. In 
despair I wrote to Satish Babu to publish the 
book as it was. He was quite content to leave 
the work unpublished, but I could not think 
of allowing such labour of love given with 
infinite care to be lost. I confess that I do 
not quite like the bulk of the volume. If I 
could have revised it, probably it would have 
been curtailed. But Satish Babu has erred, if 
he has erred at all, on the safe side. I ' hope 
that every village worker knowing English will 
make it a point to possess a copy which can 
be had from the Khadi Fratisthan, 15 College 
Square, Calcutta.* 

Sev agram, 4 -3-40 M. K. G. 

* Can also be had from the Harijan office ( Poona 
4; and 81 Queen’s Road, Bombay 2 )• Postage 13 As. 
by ordinary post, Re. 1 per V. P. P.. extra. 

NOTICE 

The business hours of our Bombay branch are 
now from 11 A. M. to 7—30 P. M. Address: 67 & 81 
Queen’s Road, Bombay 2. Manage 



Xi -fiUCVX^ 


[ iViAKUil 1^40 


0 ‘± 


OCCASIONAL NOTES 

Non-CoBgress India 

It is Sir Samuel Hoare’s phrase. In his speech 
on the present crisis, he coined it to distinguish 
it from Congress India. It was an expressive 
phrase, but his object was not quite patent in 
his speech. What Lord Zetland and Sir Samuel 
Hoare have said euphemistically Mr. W. P. 
Barton, a retired Civilian, has expressed most 
bluntly in an article in The Quarterly Review^ 
Non-Congressmen, he asserts, are with and for 
the British rule in India, and they represent 
the vast majority. Here are some of the state- 
ments on which, one can now see, the average 
Britisher is fed : 

(1) The Congressmen “ have little or no in- 
fluence with the classes possessing military value”, 
viz. the Muslims of the north, the Sikh pea- 
santry, the Rajputs, the great landowners, the 
Marathas; (2) “Ninety million Moslems contest 
the Congress claim “ ; (3) “ In the States only a 
very small proportion of the Hindu intelligentsia 
in them subscribe to the Congress creed” ; 

(4) “The great community of outcastes (sixty 
million) does not acknowledge the authority of 
the Congress, despite Gandhi's special protection”; 

( 5 ) “ Indian Liberals similarly reject the Congress 
claim to speak for India”; (,6) “The Democratic 
Swaraj Party of Bombay follows the example of 
the Liberals”; (7) “So does the great party of 
Hindu orthodoxy, the Hindu Mahasabha”; (8) 
“The landowning classes throughout India, who 
contributed largely to the Congress victory, are 
now bitterly hostile”; (9) “A non-Brahmin 
( Hindu ) party is opposed to the Congress 
Government of Madras”, 

Mr. Barton has by accident forgotten the 
Parsis and quite a number of other groups, 
though he has made every attempt to be as 
exhaustive as possible. The conclusion which 
Sir Samuel Hoare and Lord Zetland have not 
uttered in so many words is that there is no 
truth in the “Congress claim to represent an 
Indian nation which only exists in its ima- 
gination”, and “it is doubtful if it can claim 
to voice the wishes of a third of the people of 
India.” Why, therefore, Mr. Barton argues, make 
any attempt to treat with the Congress? 

The Naked Reality 

Whatever happens, the Congress “defection” 
is “little likely to prejudice India's war effort”, 
for the whole of non-Congress India is with 
Britain. 

“ Does Gandhi, ” Mr. Barton asks, “ really intend 
to do his best to paralyse India’s war effort, despite 
the admitted fact that with two*thirds of the people 
(rf India on the side of Britain any such attempt 
must inevitably fail? Does he really intend to risk 
the future by a gambler’s throw? It seems unlikely. 
.Gandhi is not a realist, but he cannot overlook the 
fact that he would best , consult the interests of the 
Congress by allowing former Ministers to reassume 
- oflSce and work with Britain relying on British 
support to suppress the left-wing if they attempted 


revolution ... Whatever policy Congress may decide to 
adopt, it is obvious in existing conditions that Britain 
could not possibly comply with Congress demands 
and place it in a position that would give it pre- 
dominance over the Princes and the great Moslem 
community.... Practically the whole Moslem world of 
over 200 million people is giving its moral support 
to France and Britain. It would be sheer insanity 
on the part of Britain and a gross neglect of her 
responsibilities to India to forfeit Moslem support 
by placing the Moslems of India at a disadvantage 
as regards the Hindu majority in the future political 
settlement of India.’* 

The whole position is transparently clear. If 
two-thirds of the people of India were on the 
side of Britain, it would be absurd for the onc- 
third to think that it can paralyse India’s war 
effort. But Mr. Barton is sure that as a matter 
of fact the two-thirds he claims to be with 
Britain are not really so. With Britain’s policy 
of “ divide and rule” and with the help of the 
British bayonet they may be won over perhaps. 
And Gandhiji, if he was the “ astute ” and 
” ambitious ” gambler “ who with his usual 
astuteness had acquired merit by professing 
himself ready to support Britain unconditionally, 
only, of course, with soul force and non-vio- 
lence,” he would certainly purchase the “interests 
of the Congress” from mighty Britain. Luckily 
Gandhiji does not answer to Mr. Barton's 
description. He wants for the Congress predo- 
minance neither over the Princes nor over the 
great Moslem community. He wants freedom 
for all — including the Princes and the Muslims 
— from the yoke of British Imperialism. “Would 
the Congress exist but for British Imperialism ? ” 
asks Mr. Barton. The Congress has proclaimed 
it to the world that it would prefer extinction 
to having anything to do with British Imperial- 
ism. But it goes further and questions the fact 
of the so-called “ non-Congress ” India wanting 
to depend for its existence on British Imperial- 
ism. 

That question can be automatically decided by 
Britain's declaration of India’s right to frame 
her own constitution by means of a Constituent 
Assembly on which all the parties that Mr. 
Barton has mentioned will have representation. 
To accept that suggestion — we will not call it 
a demand — would be sportsmanlike. To reject 
it would be just not playing the game. That 
Britain has enough physical might everyone 
knows. The Congress would prefer to raise the 
moral question and in the solution of it to be 
extinguished than bend the knee to Imperial 
Britain. 

Missionaries Once Again 

If there is one thing that one can genuinely 
admire in the Missionaries, it is their persistence. 
They know what Gandhiji has to say in 
reply to their stock questions, but they go on 
asking them in the spirit of converting him or, 

I take it, being in their turn converted. A 
group of them saw him at Sevagram the other 



March 23, 1940] 


HARIJAN 


day. We were busy packing to go to Ramgarh, 
and there was nardiy any time that Gandhiji 
could spare. But he promised to see them for 
£ve minutes. And they did indeed make the 
best of their time. 

“What started you on your career of leader- 
ship?” was the queer question with which they 
started. 

“It came to me, unsought, unasked,” said 
Gandhiji rather embarrassed. “I do not know, 
though, what sort of leader I am, and whether 
what I am doing is leadership or service. But 
whatever it is, it came to me unasked.” 

But the friends who came were sure that 
they were leaders, and they asked for guidance 
as leaders of Christian thought. 

“All I can say,” said Gandhiji, “is that there 
should be less of theology and more of truth 
in all that you say and do." 

“Will you kindly explain it?” 

“How can I explain the obvious? Amongst 
agents of the many untruths that are propound- 
ed in the world one of the foremost is theology. 
I do not say that there is no demand for it. There 
is a demand in the world for many a question- 
able thing. But even those who have to do 
with theology as part of their work have to 
survive their theology. I have two good Christian 
friends who gave up theology and decided to 
live the gospel of Christ.” 

“Are you sure that no great result has come 
through your own study of Jesus ? ” 

“Why? There is no doubt that it has come, 
but not, let me tell you, through theology or 
through the ordinary interpretation of rheo- 
logists. For many of them contend that the 
Sermon on the Mount does not apply to mundane 
things, and that it was only meant for the twelve 
disciples. Well I do not believe this. I think the 
Sermon on the Mount has no meaning if it is 
not of vital use in everyday life to everyone,” 

"Is there not to be found a solution of the 
present-day problems in the teaching of Jesus?” 

“Well you are now dragging me in deeper 
waters," exclaimed Gandhiji, “ and you will drown 
me.” 

“ What is the present trend of the thought 
of Young India?” 

“ It would take a brave and knowing man 
to answer this question. But, ” he smilingly said, 
“I must tell you that you have overstayed 
your time already. And if you go on question- 
ing and cross— questioning me, I dare say you 
will floor me without being any the wiser for 
having done so.” 

A Seeker 

Of a different type, so far as I could judge, 
was a Missionary friend who saw him long 
before this and asked him similar questions in 
a different spirit. He was more a seeker than 
a , questioner. “Could you tell me the things 
one should avoid in order to present the 
gospel of Christ ? ” he asked. 



“ Cease to think that you want to convert 
the whole world to your interpretation of 
Christianity. At the end of reading the Bible, 
let me tell you, it did not leave on my mind 
the impression that Jesus ever meant Christians 
to do what the bulk of those who take his 
name do. The moment you adopt the attitude 
I suggest, the fleld of service becomes limitless. 
You limit your own capacity by thinking and 
saying that you must proselytise.” 

“ I see what you mean, ” he said. “ We have 
been cumbered by creeds and man-made things. 
We feel that we should be in a place where 
all barriers have broken down.” 

Gandhiji instanced a few Christians who, be 
said, saw the central fact that, if they wanted 
to live this Christian life, they should literally 
follow the words — “ Not he that sayeth 'Lord, 
Lord’, but he that doeth His will.” 

“ You are living a guided life. Could you 
kindly tell me your experience of guidance ?” 

“ I do not ■ regard God as a person, ” said 
Gandhiji. “ Truth for me is God, and God’s 
Law and God are not different things or facts, 
in the sense that an earthly king and his law 
are different. Because God is an Idea, Law 
Him- self. Therefore it is impossible to conceive 
God as breaking the Law. He therefore does not 
rule our actions and withdraw Himself. When 
we say He rules our actions, we are simply 
using human language and we try to limit Him. 
Otherwise He and His Law abide everywhere 
and govern everything. Therefore I do not 
think that He answers in every detail every 
request of ours, but there is no doubt that 
He rules our action, and 1 literally believe 
that not a blade of grass grows or moves with- 
out His will. The free will we enjoy is less 
than that of a passenger on a crowded deck.” 

“ Do you feel a sense of freedom in your 
communion with God?” 

“ I do. I do not feel cramped as I would on 
a boat full of passengers. Although I know that 
my freedom is less than that of a passenger, 
I appreciate that freedom as I have im- 
bibed through and through the central teaching 
of the Gita that man is the maker of his own 
destiny in the sense that he has freedom of 
choice as to the manner in which he uses that 
freedom. But he is no controller of results. The 
moment he thinks he is, he comes to grief.” 

“Thank you.” 

Ramgarh, 16-3-40 M. D. 

To Correspondents and Message-seekers 

In spite of my notice in Harijan of Decem- 
ber 23rd those who can spare me continue to 
write and ask for messages. I would refer them 
to the notice for fuller explanation. I -know 
several intimate friends have not received acknow*’ 
ledgments or messages. They will forgive me. 
I have to harden my heart if I am to cope 
with the responsibility I am carrying. And what 
can be better than that I should commence with 
known friends? 

Sevagram, 15-1-40 


M. K. G. 



56 


HARIJAS 


I Maech 23, 1940 


Notes 

The Lonclon Assassination 
Further details that have come through the 
Press of the assassination of Sir Michael O'Dvryer 
and the attempted assassination of Lord Zetland, 
Lord Lamington and Sir Louis Dane confirm 
my opinion that it was a work of insanity. It 
is none the less reprehensible on that account. 
We bad otsr differences with Sir Michael 
O’ Dwyer, but that should not prevent us from 
being grieved over his assassination or condoling 
with Lady O’Dwyer and her family. I would 
like every Indian patriot to share with me the 
shame of the act and the joy that the lives 
of the three distinguished Englishmen were 
saved. We have our grievance against Lord 
Zetland. We must fight his reactionary policy. 
But there should be no malice or vindictiveness 
in our resistance. The papers tell us that the 
accused acted with amused nonchalance when 
he faced the court and the spectators. This 
does not command my admiration. It is to me 
a sure sign of continuing insanity. The accused 
is intoxicated with the thought of his bravery. 
I have known drunken men act with a reck- 
lessness of which they would be incapable in 
a sober state. I understand that extra rum is 
issued to soldiers who are sent to specially 
hazardous tasks. What am I to praise, the 
rum or its after-effect? The word assassin 
owes its origin to the hasheesh that was 
administered to the would-be assassins in order 
to deaden their conscience. This continuing 
insanity of the accused should fill us with pity 
and grief. If we are to fight fairly and squarely, 
we must, as far as is humanly possible, make 
every Englishman feel that he is as safe in our 
midst as he is in his own home. It fills me 
with shame and sorrow that for some timg at 
least every Indian face in London will be suspect. 
Is it not possible for us all to realise that the 
masses will never mount to freedom through 
murder ? I would like every reader of these 
lines to know that every such act bar ms our 
non-violent struggle, and therefore to dissociate 
himself in the secret of his heart and openly 
from such acts of insanity. 

The National Week 

From 6th April to 13th April has been observed 
as the National Week from year to year. On 
the 6th April 1919 the masses of India found 
their feet. It was the inauguration of Civil 
Disobedience. Its non-violent character was 
signalised by fasting and prayer. Hindus and 
Muslims fiaternised as they had never done 
before. The vow of Swadeshi was taken by tens 
of thousands. The 13th April 1919 saw the 
Jallianwala massacre in which Hindu, Muslim 
and Sikh blood -flowed promiscuously. The 
National Week is observed as a week of self- 


purification, m which sales of khadi and other- 
products of village industries arc organised on 
a large scale. I have said and I repeat that there 
is no Swaraj for the masses except through 
khadi and other village crafts. For there is no 
non-violent disobedience without sustained con- 
structive effort. A living, continuous mass contact 
is impossible without some constructive pro- 
gramme requiring almost daily contact of the 
workers with the masses. I hope, therefore, that 
the forthcoming week will be celebrated by all 
earnest workers with due solemnity and with 
intensive sales of khadi and other products of 
village handicrafts. 

Ramgarh, 17-3-40 M. K. G. 


AN INSANE ACT 

Gandhiji made the following statement to the 
Press on the 14th inst. at Ramgarh : 

The news of the death of Sir Michael 

O’Dwyer and of the injuries to Lord Zetland, 

Lord Lamington and Sir Louis Dane has caused 

me deep pain. I offer my condolences to the 

deceased’s family, and hope that the injured 

will soon recover. I regard this act as one of 

insanity. Such acts have been proved to be 

injurious to the causes for which they are 

committed. I hope this will not be allowed 

to affect political 'udgment. 

* * ^ 

The Working Committee passed the following 
resolution at Ramgarh on the 17th inst.: 

The Working Committee has learnt with deep 
regret of the assassination of Sir Michael O’Dwyer 
and the wounding of the Marquess of Zetland 
and others by a person said to be an Indian. 
The Committee does not attach any political 
significance to this unfortunate act of violence. 
Nevertheless, it wishes to reiterate its conviction 
that all such acts are injurious to the national 
cause. 

To Agents 

The attention of the agents is drawn to tlie fact 
that -we do not accept cheques other than those drawn 
on banks in Poona and Bombay. In view of recent 
complaints about loss of book post jiackets in transit, 
we now take certificates of posting. In cases, there- 
fore, of non-receipt agents may complain to their 
post offices. Manager 


CONTENTS 

Question Box 
Women and Voluntary 
Endeavour 
Candid Comments 
Another • Englishman's 
Letter 

Occasional Notes 
An Insane Act 
Notes: 

A Very Useful 
Publication 

The London Assassination 
The National Week 


Page 

M. K. Gandhi 49 

M. K. Gandhi 50 
51 

M. K- Gandhi 52 
M. D. 54 
56 


M. K. G. 53 
M. K. G. 56 
M. K. G. 56 


Atyabhushan Press. 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona f 
SahMnvtaw Rate. - iBiAiro ; One year, Be. 4, Six months Re. &-8. Foebigh : One year. Rs. 5-8 or. 8 iSTor 8 $. 



Editor : MAHADEV DESAl 


VoL. vm, No. 7 ] POONA — SATURDAY, MARCH 30, 1940 [ TWO ANNAS 


EAMGARH 

The Non-cooperation of the Elements 

When Rajendrababu and his colleagues fixed 
upon Ramgarh as the venue of this year’s Con- 
gress, they little knew the hardships they would 
have to bear due to the non-cooperation of the 
elements. From the point of view of convenience 
Daranagar would have been a much better and 
much less expensive place. But Daranagar was 
ruled out as not being a village-venue. Ramgarh 
was right in the midst of the unsophisticated 
villagers, and, though the cheap village-Congress 
of Gandhiji’s conception still remains a dream, 
we have, since Faizpur, been succeeding in plant- 
ing a Congress-city in the midst of villages to 
the material benefit of the villagers who for 
three or four months get full employment, a 
satisfactory wage, and a custom for village 
products. In a vague sort of way the message 
of the Congress does reach these folks. But we 
have not yet learnt to go to the Congress with 
village-mentality, and therefore the principal 
object of having the Congress in the villages — 
viz. annihilation of the distance between the 
city-dweller and the villager — is still far from 
being realised. 

But Ramgarh proved a handful in a most 
unexpected way. The exhibition, for which 
Laxmibabu and others had laboured like Trojans, 
was to have been opened by Gandhiji on the 
10th, but heavy rains ruined their work; they 
had to toil over again and the Exhibition could 
be opened only on the 14th. For five days the 
skies remained clear, the workers heaved a sigh 
of relief, when suddenly at the exact hour of 
the opening of the Congress it began to 
pour, and the amphitheatre with its enchanting 
environment soon became a lake. 

‘ How inauspicious, ’ some exclaimed. ' No,’ was 
the reply, ‘rain is never inauspicious, and certainly 
never so disastrous as fire.’ How human nature 
always tries to derive consolation from all acts 
of God! And really speaking the non-cooperation 
of the elements proved not a small blessing in 
disguise. The Maulana Saheb declared that, come 
what may, he was determined to open the 
Congress. Pandit Jawaharlal stood by him, and 
their determination was infectious. Nearly a 
hundred thousand people — men, women, and 
children, the richest with their costly wearing 
apparel and the poorest in their single khadi 
shirt and dhoti — sat smiling and laughing with- 
out making the slightest stir. When the down- 


pour was unbearable they lifted the bamboo-- 
tattis from under themselves and held them up 
for shelter, and only when there was knee-deep 
water, and no sign of the fury abating, did 
they make for their camps. But even then 
there was no scrimmage to get back, ^ei^'eryone 
bowed to the inevitable, the orange-clad sisters 
and the men volunteers gave all the help they 
could in carrying children and helping people 
who slipped and fell, and not a soul was hurt. 
Rajendrababu, sore at heart, greeted the people 
in a brief speech, the Maulana followed with a 
similarly brief address, and Pt. Jawaharlal moved 
the main resolution which Prof. Kripalani second- 
ed, and the house was adjourned. The . inclement . 
elements continued their mad fury, hut finding 
that everyone was undaunted, the tempest ceased 
and the skies cleared in the morning, and at 
nine o’clock the Congress met again in the 
Chowk with fifty thousand people again ready 
to face the threatening weather with a cheer. 
The President could have made short work of 
the amendments which did not deserve the per- 
mission to be moved, seeing the utter lack of 
support they had in the Subjects Committee, 
but he gave everyone as long a rope as was 
asked for, and in a. little more than three 
hours brought the proceedings to a close. Nothing 
could have been more expeditious, more telling, 
more significant of the temper of the people. 
The non-cooperation of the elements was thus 
turned into co-operation and work, and has left 
a lesson for all time. 

The Exhibition 

If the rains taught the workers the lesson of 
selecting for the Congress a rain-proof venue, 
they taught people like me not to leave until 
tomorrow the work that you can do today. 
For I was foolish enough to defer until the 
last day a careful and examining look of the 
Exhibition, with the result that I have come 
away having seen only the Khadi Court to 
which one day I devoted a couple of hours. 
And I know that, if I gave a couple of hours 
to the Khadi Court, there were courts like the 
Basic Education Court, planned by Shrimati 
Ashadevi and the Jamia Milia workers with 
elaborate care, which deserved more than that time. 

The Khadi Court was arranged this time not 
by professional people like Shri Jerajani, but by 
an amateur in the field, Shrimati Kuwerbai 
Vakil, who with her husband [runs the Pupils’ 
Own School in Vileparle, a suburb of Bombay.. 



58 


HARIJAN 


[ Makoh 30, 1940 


Her amateur hand left nothing to be desired in 
the way of exquisite taste and attractiveness, and 
though I have not beside me the figures of 
khadi sales, I know this must have contributed 
not a little to push up the sales. Bihar 
has been lucky in the manufacture and sale 
of khadi, luckier than other provinces. The 
Congress Government purchased last year Rs. 
60,000 worth of khadi from the Bihar Branch 
of the A. I. S. A. This year the new incum- 
bents have placed an order for Rs. 400,000 
worth of khadi — policemen’s uniform to be made 
of cloth costing 17 annas a square yard. No 
wonder, therefore, that the Bihar workers 
should be forging ahead every day in the 
matter of new patterns, new designs and 
finer texture. Thus they were able to exhibit 
this year a piece of muslin woven out of yarn 
of 300 counts — reminiscent of the famous gos- 
samerlike Dacca muslin — spun by a sister who 
was present on the spot to exhibit the beauty 
of her art. Devasundari of Darbhanga sat in 
the middle of the court with her wheel, spinn- 
ing with patient care from her own handmade 
slivers the 300 count yam. Though the workers 
had succeeded in coaxing her to give up purdah, 
it was difficult to make her answer many 
questions. ( By the by, the Congress in spite of 
the heavy expenses and trouble it meant for the 
organisers, has helped to bring about a revolution 
among womenfolk. Neatly 200 Bihar sisters have 
discarded their purdah and, having worked as 
volunteers, will now be so many workers in the 
field of social reform and will help in the 
abolition of the purdah from the province. ) 
Devasundari told me that she had her 

slivers out of Cambodia cotton, and that a tola 
of slivers took her a month to spin! The sari 
which had been exhibited there weighed 15 tolas. 
Rs. 5 was her monthly earning. Abdulla the 
weaver said that it took him three months to 
weave her yarn with the help of four men. 


The other exhibits — coatings and shirtings, 
saris, dhotis, curtains, bed-spreads — showed the 
rapid march we have made in producing stuff 
suited to the most varied taste and varied needs, 
and left no excuse for people to say that no 
khadi to suit their tastes was available. There 
were the exquisite door curtains from Sambalpur 
(Orissa) and U. P., the fine patola from Orissa, 
not quite so elaborate and exquisite as the one* 
from Patm, but costing- ten times less and there- 
fore within the reach of fashionable middle rlasg 
women; the charming printings from Bombay 
and Meerut, and the beautiful saris from Andhra 
and Tirupur; and the Kashmir shawl with all 
kinds of pashmina products which tantalised 
but were be^nd the reach of the ordinary 
khadi-lover. The reversible pashmina waistcoat 
and pashmina pull-over were worth their price 
and the tug of clipped wool-work told a tale* 
that IS worth recording. The art had- died out 
^ one of the A. L S. A. workets teceneb 
tumbled upon an old man workinj at a ato^ 


breaker, who casually told him that he could 
weave designs that would bewitch the eye but 
had no customer. He was asked to give up 
stone-breaking and revive the dead art. The rug 
with the clipped wool giving the appearance 
o£ fur outside and the silky pashmina inside 
measuring yards, was worth Rs. 172-8-0. 

There were other courts worth a visit and a 
careful study, but, as I have said before, I 
missed them as I deferred seeing them. I had, 
however, rushed through the Exhibition with 
Gandhiji on the day he opened it, and therefore 
knew from a distance the wealth that it con- 
tained. The Basic Education Court, in which, 
as Gandhiji said, one could see Hindu-Muslim- 
Christian unity at work, was where Dr. Zakir 
Husain and his colleagues, Shrimati Ashadevi 
and Shri Aryanayakam, had tried to show the 
advance and the illimitable scope of basic 
education. 

There was the place where the villagers in 
Bihar were extracting iron out of sand and 
making tools out of it; the manufacture of paper 
by hand and the rapid strides made in that 
department ; the tannery and the leather-goods 
factory dealing exclusively in dead cattle hide; 
the stall where sugar and all kinds of sweet- 
meats were made from the juice of the palm 
tree which grows wild in most provinces of 
India, and of which the number in Bihar is 
enough to produce gnd and sugar for the whole 
of India. The harvest is rich, the reapers arc 
few and far between. 

Its Meaning 

In a speech which I shall not attempt to 
reproduce here Gandhiji explained the vast 
possibilities of the movement for the revival of 
these village crafts and occupations. “You can 
show the villagers,’* he said, ‘'that they have 
in their possession crafts that can stand 
the invasion of bombs from aeroplanes. But 
they are ignorant of their treasures which have 
been mostly looted, and are on the brink of 
extinction. Wc have to awaken them to a sense 
of those treasures, and dispel their ignorance 
and darkness. That is the function of these 
exhibitions. ” 

A wag had remarked the other day that 

Gandhiji aimed not at the civilisation of India, 
but at the charkha-isation of India. Whatever 
one may say about the meaning and implica- 
tions of the charkha and Gandhiji’s concep- 
tion thereof, is there any doubt that the 

civilisation which has been the pride and 

the admiration of all historians was the 

charkha civilisation ? Gandhiji adverted to this 
aspect and said: “The true Indian civilisation is 
in the Indian villages. The modern city civili- 
sation you find in Europe and America, and in 
a handful of our cities which are copies of the 
^Vestern cities and which were built for the 
foreigner, and by him. But they cannot last. It 
is only the handicraft civilisation that will endure 
and stand the test of time. But it can do so 



Maech 30 , 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


59 


only if we can correlate the intellect with the 
hand. The late Madhnsudan Das used to say that 
our peasants and workers had, by reason of 
working with bullocks, become like bullocks; and 
he was right. We have to lift them from the 
estate of the brute to the estate of man, and 
that we can do only by correlating the intellect 
with the hand. Not until they learn to work 
intelligently and make something new every day, 
not until they are taught to know the joy of 
work, can we raise them from their low estate.” 

Touching on another aspect of the exhibition 
he said in another speech in the exhibition 
after the evening prayer : “ This exhibition is the 
real Congress for the masses. Our chosen dele- 
gates will attend the Congress, and pass reso- 
lutions there as to what we have to do during 
the year. But what are the masses to do ? The 
exhibition serves to provide intellectual pabulum 
for the masses, and those who visit the exhi- 
bition owe it to them to take to them what 
they learn here. There is no institution where 
35 crores of our people can go. The Kumbha 
Mela is attended by several lakhs of people, 
but what is that number in a population of 35 
crores? But if you who attend the exhibition 
can take some of the crafts which are 
being demonstrated here to the villagers, you 
can reach the millions who inhabit the villages 

and revolutionise their lives There is the 

talk of civil disobedience in the air. But who 
is fit to practise civil disobedience? Not those 
who will not spin, who will not wear khadi, 
who do not care for the handicrafts. They will 
do some other kind of disobedience, but it will 
be anything but civil. That is not the disobe- 
dience I would like to teach or would care 
to live for. I want to turn the quiet and living 
strength that spinning gives you into the 

channel of civil disobedience. If you will, there- 
fore, see the exhibition with my eyes, you will 
carry the gospel of khadi and the spinning wheel 
to the villages, and lay the foundation of a 
handicraft civilisation and universalise khadi and 
handicrafts. If you do so, I assure you there 
will be no necessity for civil disobedience. If 
you will not do so, if you do not spin, do 

not universalise khadi, I may go to jail and 

be there for a number of years, but it will 

be all in vain. Without khadi and without 
handicrafts the Congress boat, far ftom carrying 
us to the port, will sink in midstream.” 

At the Helm 

The candidature of Maulana Abul Kalam Azad 
was the acid test of the Congress delegates’ 
nationalism, their feith in Hindu-Muslim unity, 
and their courage to entrust the destinies of the 
nation to a Muslim leader at a time of unpre- 
cedented crisis. But by an overwhelming majo- 
rity they declared their faith in him. They 
would have done so in 1939 too, but t he ir 
having done so in this critical year of our 
nation’s history is especially notable. I had an 
occasion to ask the Maulana what he meant 


when he was reported to have said in a Lahore 
interview that now that the parliamentary 
programme had been put aside he had no 
difiSculty in consenting to be president. “ That,” 
said the Maulana, with, a smile, “ is the trouble 
of having a reporter who cannot understand 
and express correctly what you say in Urdu. 
Don’t you see the absurdity of the statement ? 
How could I decry the parliamentary programme 
having been so closely associated with the conduct 
of it ? What I meant to say was this ; * The 
parliamentary programme is over . I have had 
my share in the Working Committee’s resolution 
asking the ministers to resign, and if I am 
called upon to preside over the next Congress 
and if I declined, I should be rightly held 
guilty of having shirked the natmral consequences 
of that resolution. Some time or other, unless 
the Government revise their attitude, we are 
sure to have civil disobedience, and I did not 
want anyone to say or feel that because civil 
disobedience was a certainty I got funky. And 
then to have reposed their trust in me in 
ordinary times would be good enough ; but to 
have done so in a crisis like the present is 
something that compelled me to respond. ” I 
think this explanation is enough to silence all 
criticism on the score of that misreported inter- 
view. And the Maulana’s presidential address 
and his conduct of the proceedings at Ramgarh 
have more than justified the nation’s choice. 
The address was characteristic of the Maulana, a 
closely reasoned piece, strictly confined to the ques- 
tion of the hour, and studiously refraining ftom 
touching any other subject. E the Working Com- 
mittee at Patna decided to have only one resolu- 
tion, the Maulana decided to have only one topic 
for exhaustive treatment in his address. Not a 
paragraph in it is superfluous, and he has wast- 
ed no words on adjectives and epithets. “You 
might have said something on civil disobedience 
and the constructive programme,” I said to the 
Maulana. "No,” he said, “having said that 
everything depended on discipline, unity and full 
confidence in Mahatma Gandhi’s leadership, it 
would have been an act of supererogation on 
my part to have said anything on these topics. 
He has said all that is worth saying. He who 
accepts his leadership accepts all that he has 
said on civil disobedience and the intimate con- 
nection of the constructive programme with it, 
and he has no business to add anything of his 
own. If I did, I should set a bad example." 

The Address 

The address has been printed in extenso by the 
daily press, but as a number of foreign readers 
read this paper, and as The Times and The 
Daily Telegraph have disposed it of in a summary 
of 39 and 40 words, I shall extract here the 
cream of the address. India’s fight is not against 
the British people but against British imperialism, 
and the Maulana has made this abundantly clear: 

“ But while we were considering the dangers aris- 
ing from Fascism and Nazism, it was impossible 



60 


HARIJAN 


[ March 30^ 1940 


for U 3 to forget the older danger which has been 
proved to be infinitely more fatal to the peace and 
freedom of nations than these new dangers, and 
v/hich has in fact supplied the basis for this reac- 
tion. I refer to British imperialism. We are not 
distant spectators of this imperialism, as we are of 
the new reactionary movements. It has taken posses- 
sion of our house and dominates over us. It was 
for this reason that we stated in clear terms that, 
if new entanglements in Europe brought about war, 
India, which has been debarred from exercising 
her will and making free decisions, will not take any 
part in it. She could onlj' consider this question 
when she had acquired the right of coming to deci- 
sion according to her own free will and choice. 

India cannot endure the prospect of Nazism and 
Fascism, but she is even more tired of British im- 
perialism. If India remains deprived of her natural 
right to freedom, this would clearly mean that 
British imperialism continued to flourish with all its 
traditional characteristics, and under such conditions 
India would on no account be prepared to lend a 
helping hand for the triumph of British imperialism. 
This was the second declaration which was con- 
stantly emphasized through these resolutions. These 
resolutions were repeatedly passed from the Lucknow 
session onwards till August 1939 and are known by 
the name of ‘ War Resolutions 

Also: 

“ But it is not a question of the desire or of 
the measure of the desire of the British Govern- 
ment. The straight and simple question is of India’s 
right; whether she is entitled to determine her own 
fate or not. On the answer to this question depend 
the answers to all other questions of the day. This 
question forms the foundation stone of the Indian 
problem; India will not allow it to be removed, for 
if it is displaced, the whole structure of Indian 
nationalism will collapse. 

So far as the question of war is concerned our 
position is quite clear. We see the face of British 
imperialism as clearly now as we did in the’ last 
war, and we are not prepared to assist in the 
triumph by participating in the War. Our case is 
crystal clear. We do not wish to see British impe- 
rialism triumphant and stronger and thus lengthen 
the period of our own subjection to it. We abso- 
lutely refuse to do so, Our way lies patently in 
the opposite direction. ’* 

Lastly : 

“ Since war began, several members of the British 
Cabinet have tried to make the world believe that 
the old order of British imperialism has ended, and 
that today the British nation has no other aims 
except those of peace and justice. Which country 
could have more warmly acclaimed such a declaration 
than India ? But the fact is that, in spite of these 
declarations, British imperialism stands in the way 
•of peace and justice today exactly as it did before 
the War. The Indian demand was the touch-stone 
for all such claims. They were so tested and found 
to he counterfeit and untrue. ’’ 

The portion of his address on Hindu-Muslim 
Unity and the Minority Problem is likely to 


endure in history. Ever since he started his 
weekly Al Hilal in 1912 he has waged 
unrelenting war against the policy and efltorts 
to divide Hindus and Muslims, and he declares 
in his address : 

I would remind my co-reiigionists that today I 
stand exactly where I stood in 1912 when I address- 
ed them on this issue. I have given thought to all 
those innumerable occurrences which have happened 
since then; my eyes have watched them, my mind 
has pondered over them. These events did not merely 
pass me by; I was in the midst of them, a parti- 
cipant, and I examined every circumstance with care, 
I caunot be false to what I have myself seen and 
observed; I cannot quarrel with my own convictions; 
I cannot stifle the voice of my conscience. I repeat 
today what I have said throughout this entire 
period that the ninety millions of Muslims of India 
have no other right course of action than the one 
to which I invited them in 1912.” 

He scouts the idea that the Muslims are in a 
minority, and that the democratic institutions in 
India would therefore jeopardise their interests 
and existence : 

"Politically speaking, the word minority does not 
mean just a group that is numerically smaller and 
therefore entitled to special protection. It means a 
group that is so small in number and so lacking in 
other qualities that give strength, that it has no 
confidence in its own capacity to protect itself from 
the much larger group that surrounds it. It is not 
enough that the group should be relatively the 
smaller, but that it should be absolutely so small as 
to be incapable of protecting its interests. Thus 
this is not merely a question of numbers; other 
factors count also. If a country has two major 
groups numbering a million and two millions respec- 
tively, it does not necessarily follow that, because 
one is half the other, therefore it must call itself 
politically a minority and consider itself weak.” 

Also: 

” Full eleven centuries have passed by since then. 
Islam has now as great a claim on the soil of 
India as Hinduism. If Hinduism has been the re- 
Ugion of the people here for several thousands of 
years, Islam also has been their religion for a thou- 
sand years. Just as a Hindu can say with pride 
that he is an Indian and follows Hinduism, so also 
we can say with equal pride that we are Indians 
and follow Islam. I shall enlarge this orbit still 
further. The Indian Christian is equally entitled to 
say with pride that he is an Indian and is follow- 
ing a religion of India, namely Christianity.” 

Lastly : 

"Do we, Indian Mussalmans, view the free India of 
the future with suspicion and distrust or with courage 
and confidence? If we view it with fear and suspi- 
cion, then undoubtedly we have to follow a different 
path. No present declaration, no promise for the 
future, no constitutional safeguards, can be a remedy for 
our doubts and fears. We are then forced to tolerate 
the existence of a third power. This third power is 
already entrenched here and has no intention of 
withdrawing and, if we follow this path of fear, we 



Masoh 30, 1940 : 


HAIIIJAN 


61 


must nseds look forvcard to its continuance. But if 
v*7e are convinced that for us iear and doubt nave 
no place, and iha.t vre must view the future 
with courage and conhdence in ourselves, then our 
course of action becomes absolutely clear. We 
find ourselves in a new v/orld, which is free from the 
dark shadows ot doubt, vacillation, inaction and 
apathy, and where the light of faith and determina^ 
lion, action and enthusiasm never fails. The con- 
fusions of the times, the ups and downs that come 
our way, the difncuities that beset cur thorny path, 
cannot change the direction of our steps. It becomes 
our bounden cuty then to march v/itti assured steps 
to India’s national goal. 

i arrived at this definite conclusion without the 
least hesitation, and e\ery fibre of my being 
revolted against the former alternative. I could not 
bear the thought of it. i could not conceive it 
possible for a Mussalman to tclerate this, unless he 
has rooted out the spirit ot Islam from every 
corner of his being.” 

So much lor the Mussalmans. As for the 
British who are not tired of repeating the 
obstacle of the communal question as an 
insuperable one, be declares: 

“ We could attach no greater importance to it, 
than to make it the first condition for the attain- 
ment of our national goal. The Congress has always 
held this belief ; no one can challenge this fact. It 
has always held to two basic principles in this 
connection, and every step was taken deliberately 
v;ith these in view. 

( 1 ) Whatever constitution is adopted for India, 
there must be the fullest guarantees in it for the 
rights and interesrs of minorities. 

( 2 j The minorities should judge for them- 
selves what safeguards are necessary for the protection 
of their rights and interests. The majority should 
not decide this. Ttieiefore the decision in this respect 
must depend upon the consent of the minorities 
and not on a majority vote 

The manner in which the Congress has dealt with 
this problem today in connection with the Consti- 
tuent Assembly, throws a flood of light on these 
two principles and clarifies them. The recognised 
minorities have a right, if they so please, to choose 
their representatives by their votes. Their represen- 
tatives will not have to rely upon the votes of 
any other community except their own. So far as 
the question of the rights and the interests of 
the minorities is concerned, the decision will not 
depend upon the majority of votes in the 
Constituent Assembly. It will be subject to 
the consent of the minority. If unanimity is not 
achieved on any question, then an impartial tribunal, 
to which the minorities have also consented, will 
decide the matter. This last proviso is merely in 
the nature of a provision for a possible contingency, 
and is most unlikely to be required. If a more 
practical proposal is made, there can be no 
objection to it.” 

The Background 

^Many people have described the Ramgarh Con- 
gress and the passing of the single resolution as 


a unique triumph for Gandhiji, But I wish I 
had the words to give even a faint picture of 
the awesome travail that Gandhij: was going 
through during the last three days of the 
Congress. There V7as no question before him of 
triumph or failure. There was before him the 
sole question of whether he v^ouid be able to 
shoulder the terrible responsibility that was being 
placed upon him, to bear the weight of the 
unthinking trust that was being reposed in 
biro. He had pleaded wdth the members of the 
Woricmg Committee to relieve him of the burden. 
It would free them from w^hat might be acting 
upon them as an incubus, and it would at 
the same time leave him free to pursue 
his experiment of ahirnsa more intensively and 
without thought of the millions who locked to 
him for direction. “ I may be a broken reed 
and may well land you into unexpected troubles. 
I might not begin che movement for an 
indefinite length of time, and I might stop it 
abruptly However much you may agree with 
me, your ahimsa does not go as far as mine. 
xAnd if after twenty years of practice of it 1 have 
noc been able to vvin the afiection and trust of 
the Mussalmans, my ahimsa must be of a very 
poor quality indeed. Why not then let me 
further examine myself, and make further 
researches ? " To the Maulana he said : “ I have 
not the slightest doubt that the Congress and 
the nation can have nothing to lose and every- 
thing to gain by the step. There is no question 
of my distrusting you or other members of the 
Working Committee or the nation. It is a 
question of my distrust in myself. I am sure 
that, if you release me, I shall be able to give 
even civil disobedience a purer and a nobler 
shape.” But the Maulana demurred. He some- 
how could not reconcile himself to the step. 
“ You must not forget,” he said with visible 
emotion. ” that it was at your command that I 
accepted to serve this year, and you cannot now 
forsake me.” There was now nothing for it but 
to bear the burden. The speeches at the 
Subjects Committee and the open Congress made 
after the passing of the resolution, translated 
fairly fully in this issue, should be read with 
this background in view. 

M. D. 


JUST^ PUBLISHED 

One Step Forward 

The report of the first Conference of Basic 
National Education, Poona, October 1939. Pages 
292 + 24. Price .Rs. 1—4 — 0. Postage 4 As. extra. 

( Hindustani ) 

By Krishnadas Gandhi, Chapter I, 45 Pages, 
Price 4 As. Postage 1 Anna extra. 


Educational Reconstruction 
Price Rs. 1-4-0 Postage 3 As. extra 
Available at ( 1 ) Harijan Office — Poona 4; 
(2) Harijan Office — 67 & 81 Queen’s Road, 
Bombay 2. 



62 


HARIJAN [ March 30^ 1940 


THE OLD GAME 

The Britisher today wases indignant at being 
reminded that the communal problem in India, 
as we see it today, is largely the creation of 
the British themselves and a part and parcel of 
the imperialist game of ‘ divide and rule But 
he can do so, as the following narrative will 
show, in the teeth of recorded history. 

A friend has sent a penetrating monograph, 
based on a study of diaries of Lady Minto, 
that throws a flood of light on this phase of 
British Indian policy. In the winter of 1905-06, 
George V, as Prince of Wales, made a tour of 
India and returned to England in the spring of 
1906. In a letter to Lord Minto, the then 
Viceroy, dated 11th May 1906, Lord Morley 
wrote : 

“Yesterday I had a long conversation with the 
Prince of Wales in which he gave me an immensely 
interesting account of his impressions in India. His 
key word is that we should get on better if our 
administrators showed wider sympathy ....He talked of 
the National Congress rapidly becoming a great 
power. My own impression, formed long ago, and 
confirmed since I came to this office, is that it 
will mainly depend upon ourselves whether the 
Congress is a power for good or evil. There it is, 
whether we like it or not. 

To this letter Lord Minto replied on May 
28th. 1906: 

As to Congress there is much that is 

absolutely disloyal in the movement and that there 
is danger for the future, I have no doubt. You 
see extracts from the Vernacular press; the great 
bulk of the tone of it can only be termed disloyal. 

I have been thinking a good deal lately of a 

possible counterpoise to Congress dims. I think we 
may find a solution in the Council of Princes or 
in an elaboration of that idea, a Privy Council not 
only of Native Rulers, but of a few other big men 
to meet, say once a year, for a week or a fortnight, 
at Delhi for instance. Subjects for discussion and 
procedure would have to be very carefully thought 
out, but we should get different ideas from those of 
the Congress emanating from men already possessing 
great interest in the good government of India.... 

I cannot say how much I am with you as to 
'sympathy’... But with all one’s desire for ‘sympathy’ 
one- must not lose sight of hard facts. We are 
here a small British garrison, surrounded by millions 
composed of factors of an inflammability unknown to 
the Western world, unsuited to Western forms of 
government, and we must be ’physically strong or 
go to the wall. ’* ^ ( Italics mine ) 

About the same time a number <of distinguish- 
ed Anglo-Indians, including Sir W^alter Lawrence, 
Private Secretary to Lord Curzon (1898-1903 )! 
Sir Valentine Chirol, Times correspondent. Sir 
Sydney Low, special correspondent during the 
Royal visit to India (1905-06), were, in their 
self-appo inted role of saviours of the Empire, 

1. Motley’s Recollections, Vol, II, p. 170-71, 

2. Lady Minto's Diary, p. 23-29. 


plying Lord Morley with their ‘ expert ’ advice. 
In a letter dated 19th June 1906, Morley wrote 
to Minto : 

“ Everybody warns us that a new spirit is grow- 
ing and spreading! over India. Lawrence, Chirol, 
Sydney Low, all sing the same song : ‘ You cannot 
go on governing in the same spirit; you have got 
to deal with the Congress Party and Congress 
principles, whatever you may think of them. Be 
sure that before long Mohammedans will throw -in 
their lot with the Congressmen against you and 
so on and so forth. I do not know how true this 
may or may not be. 

The latter, in his reply on June 27th, showed 
that he was fully alive to the ' danger’. He 
recognised the Congress Party as a power with 
which he had to deal and with whose leaders 
he had to reckon.^ 

What followed is worth noting closely. With- 
in a few months a Mohammedan deputation, head- 
ed by the Aga Khan, presented an address to 
Lord Minto at Simla on October 1, 1906, It 
was to the effect that •“ the Mohammedan com- 
munity should be represented as a community,” 
and that the position of the Mohammedans 
should be estimated ” not merely on their 
numerical strength but in respect to the politi- 
cal importance of the community and service 
it rendered to the Empire.*’ ( Italics mine ) Lord 
Minto replied to it in terms that have set 
the pattern for all official pronouncement since 
down to Sir Samuel Hoare and Lord Zetland 
in our time on the communal question : 

“ I am entirely in accord with you I am 

as firmly convinced as I believe you to be, that 
any electoral representation in India would be doom- 
ed to mischievous failure which aimed at granting a 
personal enfranchisement, regardless of the beliefs and 
traditions of the communities composing the popula- 
tion of this continent. The great mass of the people 
of India have no knowledge of the representative 
institutions. In the meantime I can only say that the 
Mahommedan community may rest assured that their 
political rights and interests as a community will be 
safeguarded by any administrative reorganisation 
with which I am concerned.” 

There is a significant entry in Lady Minto’s 
diary under the date October 3, 1906, which 
provides a very revealing commentary on the 
nature and origin of the Mahommedan deputa- 
tion which Lord Minto showed such willingness 
to oblige. In expressing grief at the passing 
away of the great Mahommedan leader, Nawab 
Mohsin-ul-Mulk, who had died in Simla, among 
his good points she prominently notes that “he 
it was who engineered the recent Mohammedan 
deputation. ** Equally illuminating is the entry 
under October 1, 1906, which is set down as 
“ a very eventful day. and epoch in Indian 
history”. That evening he received the follow- 
ing letter from an official whose name and 
identity are not disclosed: “I must send your 


3. /6/d, p. 30. 4, /6td, p. 31. 



March 30, 1940] 

Excellency a line to say that a very big thing 
has happened today, a work of statesmanship 
that will affect India and Indian history for 
many a long year. It is nothing less than the 
pulling back cf 62 millions of people from join-- 
ing the ranks of the seditious opposition'' The 
attitude taken up by Whitehall with regard to 
the Mohammedan question was reflected in the 
Secrerary o£ State’s letter to Lord Minto ( Janu- 
ary 28, 1909 ), after an interview with “ the 
sons of the Crescent ”, as Lord Moriey pictu- 
resquely put it. It is a naked statement of the 
policy of balancing one community against the 
other. “How could I satisfy them by a straight 
declaration off my bat,” he wrote. “ We have to 
take care that in picking up the Musalmans we 
do not drop our Hindu parcels^ and this makes 
it impossible to blurt out the full length to which 
we are or may be ready to go in the Moslem 
direction/' (Italics mine) In the letter dated 
Februaty 1909 by the Secretary of State to Lord 
Minto, the cynicism is even more brutally frank: 
“I begged the Aga Khan to dismiss from his 
mind, what I had stated, that, like all other 
English radicals, I had hatred of Islam. What other 
Liberals thought of Islam, I did not know, but 
for myself, if I were to have a label, I should 
be called a Positivist, and in the Positivist 
Calendar, framed by Comte after the manner of 
Catholics, Mahomet is one of the great leading 
saints, and has the high honour of giving his 
name to a WeekU This will soon be expanded 
into a paragraph in The Daily Mail, that, the 
Indian S. S, has turned Mahometan. That, at 
any rate, would tend to soften Mahometcm aliena- 
tion from our plans. Forgive all this nonsense. 
Like many another man of grave (or dull) 
temperament, I seek snatches of relief from 
boredom by clapping on a fool’s cap at odd 
moments.” (Italics mine) 

Later on, however, as the fruits of his policy 
began to give him a foretaste of what was 
coming, Lord Moriey seems to have felt uneasy 
misgivings within him that he had perhaps gone 
too far in the Mohammedan direction, and that 
it was necessary to cry a halt. It appears 
that the India Council, especially Sir Theodore 
Morrison, was anxious to favour the Muslim 
cjaims. On August 6, 1909, Lord Moriey wrote 
to Lord Minto as follows: 

“ Morrison is pertinacious up to the eleventh hour 
about his M. friends; insists on our pledges, and 
predicts a storm of M’s reproach and dissatisfaction- 
It may be so. On the other hand, G. predicts that 
departure from the line we have agreed upon in our 
dispatch, would provoke at least as much reproach 
and dissatisfaction among the Hindus. We shall there- 
fore have a stubborn talk in Council, to which I 
shall not contribute more than two or three stubborn 
sentences. I am the least in the world of a Crom- 
wellian, but I am beginning to understand, in a way 
never understood before* how impatience at the delays 
and cavilling and mistaking of very small points for 
big ones at last drove Oliver to send his Coun- 


63 

cillors packing.” 

In his letter of August 26 to Lord Minto, 
the reaction has become even more marked. He 
is already talking about his determination to 
‘ put his foot definitely down' : 

“ Morrison tells me that a Mahometan is coming 
over here on purpose to see me, and will appear on 
Monday next. Whatever happens, / ajn quite sure 
that it was high time to put our foot definitely 
doxon and to let them know that the process of 
haggling has gone on long enough, come what may, 
I •am only sorry wc could not do it earlier''^ 
( Italics mine } 

The last entry relating to this dismal episode 
is dated December 6, 1909. The wheel has come 
full circle. Writes the philosopher Secretary of 
State to Lord Minto, with ill-concealed chagrin, 
“ I won’t follow you again into our Mahometan 
dispute.' Only I respectfully remind you once 
more that it was your early speecli about their 
extra claims that first started the M. hare. I 
am convinced my decision was best.” But it 
was too late to retract. The mischief was done. 
The “ counterpoise to Congress aims ”, that Lord 
Minto had envisaged, was created in the form 
of communal representation. Sixty two millions 
of people were “ pulled back ” from “ joining 
the seditious ranks”. But the most surprising 
part of the story is that Nationalist India is 
today called upon, by the successors of the 
statesman who deliberately started the “hare’ 
of communaiism, to- expiate for their predecessors’ 
sins I 

The other expedient, not less Machiavellian, 
suggested by Lord Minto in pursuance of his 
policy of divide and rule was not left untried. 
We see it in full swing today even like the 
communal device. But the story of the exploit- 
ation -of the princely order for strengthening 
and perpetuating the imperialist structure I must 
reserve for full narration on another occasion. 

Ramgarh, 16-3-40 Pyarelal 

5. Moriey ’s Recollections, Vol- II p. 296-97. 

6. Ibid, Vol. II. p. 315. 

7. Ibid, „ p. 317. 


To Correspondents and Message-seekers 

In spite of my notice in Harijan of Decem- 
ber 23rd those who can spare me continue to 
write and ask for messages. I would refer them 
to the notice for fuller explanation. I know 
several intimate friends have not received acknow- 
ledgments or messages. They will forgive me. 
I have to harden my heart if I am to cope 
with the responsibility I am carrying. And what 
can be better than that I should commence with 
known friends? 

Sevagram, 15-1-40 M. K. G« 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Eadhakrishnan. Rs. 5-10-0. Postage 7 As. 

Available at Harijan office-Poona 4, and 67 & 81 
Queen’s Road, Bombay 2. 


H ABU AN 



64 


HARIJAIN' 


[ March 30, 1940 



EVERY CONGRESS COMMITTEE 
A SATYAGRAHA COMMITTEE 
(By M, K, Gandhi ) 

When I said at the Subjects Committee meet- 
ing at Ramgarh that every Congress Committee 
should become a Satyagraha Committee, i meant 
every word of what I said, as I meant every 
word of everything else I said. I would like 
every Congressman who desires to serve in the 
Satyagraha Sena to read my two speeches made 
at Ramgarh as well as whatever else I may 
write in Harijan on the struggle, and to carry 
out the instructions meant for him or her. 

In the coming struggle, if it must come, no 
half-hearted loyalty will answer the purpose. 
Imagine a general marching to battle with doubt- 
ing, ill-prepared soldiers. He will surely march 
to defeat. I will not consciously make any such 
fatal experiment. This is not meant to frighten 
Congressmen. If they have the will, they will 
not find my instructions difficult to follow. 
Correspondents tell me that, though they have 
no faith in me or the charkha, they ply the 
latter for the sake of discipline. I do not 
understand this language. Can a general fight 
on the strength of soldiers who, he knows, 
have no faith in him ? The plain meaning 
of this language is that the correspondents 
believe in mass action but do not believe in 
the connection I see between it and the 
charkha etc., if the action is to be non-violent. 
They believe in my hold on the masses, but 
they do not believe in the things which I 
believe have given me that hold. They merely 
want to exploit me and will grudgingly pay 
the price which my ignorance or obstinacy 
( according to them ) demands. I do not call 
this discipline. True discipline gives enthusiastic 
obedience to instructions even though they do 
not satisfy reason. A volunteer exercises his 
reason when he chooses his general, but after 
having made the choice, he does not waste bis 
time and energy in scanning every instruction 
and testing it on the anvil of his reason before 
following it. His is “ not to reason why 

Now for my instructions. 

Every Congress Committee should become a 
Satyagraha Committee and register such Con- 
gressmen who believe in the cultivation of the 
spirit of goodwill towards all, who have no 
untouchability in them in any shape or form, 
who would spin regularly, and who habitually 
use khadi to the . exclusion of all other cloth. 
I would expect those who thus register their 
names with their Committees to devote the 
whole of their spare time to the constructive 
programme. If the response is sincere, these 


Satyagraha Committees would become busy spin- 
ning depots. They will work in conjunction 
with and under the guidance of A. 1. S. A, 
branches in a businesslike manner so that there 
remain, in the jurisdiction of the Committees, no 
Congressmen who have not adopted khadi for 
exclusive use. I shall expect businesslike reports 
to be sent from provincial headquarters to the 
A. I. C. C. as to the progress of the work of 
the Satyagraha Committees. Seeing that this 
registration is to be purely voluntary, the 
reports would mention the numbers both of 
those w'ho give their names for registration and 
those who do not. 

The registered Satyagrabis will keep a diary 
of the work that they do from day to day. 
Their work, besides their own spinning, will 
consist in visiting the primary members and 
inducing them to use khadi, spin and register 
themselves. Whether they do so or not, contact 
should be maintained with them. 

There should be visits paid to Harijan homes 
and their difficulties removed so far as possible. 

Needless to say that names should be 
registered only of those who are willing and 
able to suffer imprisonment. 

No financial assistance is to be expected by 
Satyagrahi prisoners whether for themselves or 
their dependants. 

So much for the active Satyagrabis. But there 
is a much larger class of men and women who, 
though they will not spin or court or suffer 
imprisonment, believe in the two cardinal 
principles of Satyagraha and welcome and wish 
well to the struggle. These I will call passive 
Satyagrabis. They will help equally with the 
active ones, if they will not interfere with the 
course of the struggle by themselves courting 
imprisonment or aiding or precipitating strikes 
of labourers or students. Those who out of 
overzeal or for any other cause will act contrary 
to these instructions will harm the struggle and 
may even compel me to suspend it. When the 
forces of violence are let loose all over the 
world and when nations reputed to be most 
civilized cannot think of any force other than 
that of arms for the settlement of their disputes, 
I hope that it will be possible to say of India 
that she fought and won the battle of freedom 
by purely peaceful means. 

I am quite clear in my mind that, given the 
co-operation of politically-minded India, the 
attainment of India’s freedom is perfectly possi- 
ble through unmixed non-violence. The world 
does not believe our pretension of non-violence. 
Let alone the world, I, the self-styled general, 
have repeatedly admitted that we have violence 
in our hearts, that we are often violent to 
one another in our mutual dealings. I must 
confess that I will not be able to fight so long 
as we have violence in our midst. But I will 
fight if the proposed register is honest and 
if those who courageously keep out will not 
disturb the even course of the struggle. 




Maech 30, 1940 j 


HAEIJAN 


65 


Non-violent action means mobilisation of world 
opinion in our favour. I know that a growing 
number of thinking men and women of the 
world are sick of the war spirit, they are 
longing for a way of peace, and they are look- 
ing to India to point that way. We cannot 
have that opinion on our side if we are not 
honestly non-violent. Let me repeat what I have 
said in these columns that I shall be able to 
fight with a very small army of honest Satya- 
grabis and shall feel powerless and embarrassed 
if I have a huge army in which I can have 
no trust or as to whose behaviour I am not 
always sure. 

I expect the A. I. C. C. to organise Satyagraha 
Committees and report to me from time to time 
of the progress made. If there is an enthusi- 
astic response, inside of one month it should 
be possible to forecast the exact period required 
to put the Satyagraha Committees in working 
order. 

Sevagram, 25-3-40 

MY ANSWER TO QUAID-E-AZAM 

( By Al. Gandhi ) 

Quaid-e-Azam Jinnah is reported to have said: 

** Mr. Gandhi has been saying for the last 20 
years that there cannot be any Swaraj without 
Hindu-Muslim unity. Mr, Gandhi is fighting for a 
Constituent Assembly. May I point out to Mr. 
Gandhi and the Congress that they are fighting for 
a Constituent Assembly which we 'cannot accept ? 
Therefore, the idea of a Constituent Assembly is 
impracticable and unacceptable. Mr, Gandhi wants 
a Constituent Assembly for purposes of ascertaining 
the views of Muslims, and if they do not agree, 
he would then give up all hope and then will 
agree with us. If there exists the will to come to 
a settlement with the Muslim League, then why 
does not Mr. Gandhi, as I have said more than 
once, honestly agree that the Congress is a Hindu 
organization and that it does not represent anything 
but the solid body of Hindus ? Why should Mr. 
Gandhi not be proud to say : ‘ I am a Hindu and 
the Congress is a Hindu body’ ? I am not asham- 
ed of saying that I am a Muslim and that the 
Muslim League is the representative of Muslims. 
Why all this camouflage, why this threat of civil 
disobedience, and why this fight for a Constituent 
Assembly ? Why should not Mr. Gandhi come as 
a Hindu leader and let me meet him proudly 
representing the Mussulmans ?” 

My position is and has been clear, I am proud 
of being a Hindu, but I have never gone to 
anybody as a Hindu to secure Hindu Muslim 
unity. My Hinduism demands no pacts. My 
support of the Khilafat was unconditional. I am 
no politician in the accepted sense. But whatever 
talks I had with Quaid-e-Azam or any other 
have been on behalf of the Congress which is 
not a Hindu organisation. Can a Hindu organisa- 
tion have a Muslim divine as President, and can 
its Working Committee have 4 Muslim members 
oUt of 15? I still maintain that there is no 


Swaraj without Hindu Muslim unity. I can never 
be party to the coercion of Muslims or any 
other minority. The Constituent Assembly as 
conceived by me is not intended to coerce 
anybody. Its sole sanction will be an agreed 
solution of communal questions. If there is 
no agreement, the Constituent Assembly will 
be automatically dissolved. The Constituent 
Assembly or any body of elected representatives 
can alone have a fully representative status. 
The Congress representative capacity has been 
ana can be questioned. But who can question 
the sole representative capacity of the elected 
delegates to the Constituent Assembly ? I cannot 
understand the Muslim opposition to the pro- 
posed Constituent Assembly. Are the opponents 
afraid that the Muslim League will not be elected 
by Muslim voters? Do they not realise that any 
Muslim demand made by the Muslim delegates 
will be irresistible? If the vast majority of Indian 
Muslims feel that they are not one nation with 
their Hindu and other brethren, who will be 
able to resist them ? But surely it is permissible 
to dispute the authority of the 50,000 Muslims 
who listened to Quaid-e-Azam to represent the 
feelings of eight crores of Indian Muslims. 

Sevagram, 26-3-40 

A BRAVE STA.TEMENT 

[ Shri Jaiprakash Narayan sent me a copy of 
his statement before the court which is printed 
below„ It is worthy of him, brave, brief and to 
the point. It is an irony of fate, as he himself 
has said, that his patriotism should be penalised. 
What tens of thousands think and thousands 
say in their talks, Shri Jaiprakash has said in 
public and before the very men who are pro- 
ducing war material. It is true that, if his 
words take effect and they are repeated, the 
Government would be embarrassed. But such 
embarrassment should set them thinking about 
their treatment of India instead of punishing 
a patriot for his open thinking. 

The concluding portion of the statement proves 
the author’s intense humanitarianism. He has 
no malice in him. He wants to end Imperial- 
ism and Nazism. He has no quarrel with 
Englishmen or Germans and says truly that, if 
England were to shed imperialism, not only 
India but the freedom-loving people of the 
whole world would exert themselves to see the 
defeat of Nazism and the victory of freedom 
and democracy. 

Sevagram, 26-3-40 M. K. G. ] 

THE STATEMENT 

“I have been charged with trying to impede 
the production of munitions and other supplies 
essential > to the efficient prosecution of the war, 
and with trying to influence the conduct and 
attitude of the public in a manner prejudicial 
to the defence of British India and the efficient 
prosecution of the war. I plead guilty to these 
charges. 



66 


HARIJAN 


These charges, however, do not constitute a 
guilt for me but a duty which I discharge 
regardless of the consequence. That they also 
constitute an offence under certain laws of the 
foreign Government established by force in this 
country, does not concern me. The object of 
these laws is diametrically opposed to the object 
of nationalist India of which I am but an 
humble representative. That we should come in 
conflict is only natural. 

My country is not a party to this war in 
any manner, for it regards both German Nazism 
and British Imperialism as evils and enemies, 
Iz finds that both the sides in this war are 
driven by selfish ends of conquest and domination, 
exploitation and oppression. Great Britain is fight- 
ing not to destroy Nazism, which it has nurtured, 
but to curb a rival whose might can no longer 
be allowed to grow unchallenged. It is fighting 
to maintain its dominant place in the world 
and to preserve its imperial power and glory. 
As far as India is concerned, Great Britain is 
fighting to perpetuate the Indian Empire. 

Plainly, India can have no truck with such a 
war. No Indian can permit the resources of his 
country to be utilized to buttress up imperial- 
ism, and to be converted through the processes 
of the war into the chains of his country’s 
slavery. The Congress, the only representative 
voice of nationalist India, has already pointed 
out this sacred duty to the people of this 
country. I, as an humble servant of the Congress, 
have only tried to fulfil this duty. 

The British Government on the other hand, 
in utter disregard for Indian opinion, has declar- 
ed India a belligerent power and is utilizing 
Indian men, money and materials for a war 
to which we have pledged our uncompromis- 
ing opposition. This is in the nature of an 
aggression against India, no less serious in 
the circumstances than German aggression against 
Poland. India cannot but resist this aggres- 
sion. It therefore becomes the patriotic duty 
of every Indian to oppose the attempt of the 
British Government to use the country’s resour- 
ces for its imperialist ends. Thus the charge 
framed against me of trying to impede the 
efficient prosecution of the war is only the ful- 
filment of a patriotic duty. That the British 
Government should consider what is a duty for 
patriotic India to be an offence, only proves 
further its imperialist character. 

Regarding the speech for which I am being 
prosecuted, I cannot say how far it succeeded 
in achieving its ends. But nothing would please 
me more than to learn that it did have some 
success in impeding the effective prosecution of 
the war. I shall deem the heaviest punishment 

well earned if I am found to have succeeded 
in this. 

As for the charge of endangering the defence 
of British India, I think the irony of it cannot 
he lost upon us. A slave has no obligation to 
defend his slavery. His only obligation -is to 


[ March 30 , 1940 

destroy his bondage. I hope we shall know 
how to defend ourselves when we have achieved 
our freedom. 

I consider it fortunate that I have been prose- 
cuted for a Jamshedpur speech. This important 
industrial centre, which I consider the mos^ 
important in the country, is peculiarly backward 
politically and from the point of view of the 
labour movement. I shall derive some satisfac- 
tion in prison, where I expect inevitably to find 
myself, from the thought that my arresc and 
incarceration for a speech delivered there has 
attracted to that city the notice of the political 
and labour leaders of my country. It seems 
scandalous to me that the country’s most vital 
resources should be so wasted in a war to 
which we are so firmly opposed. And it seems 
no less scandalous to me that while labour 
throughout the country should be reacting vigor- 
ously to the conditions created by the war, 
Jamshedpur labour should carry on as if nothing 
extraordinary has happened. May, at least, the 
demand for a war bonus gain some momentum 
from this prosecution. 

Before concluding 1 should like to add that, 
lest as an Englishman you should misunderstand 
me, I should make it clear that in impeding 
the prosecution of the war I have no desire to 
help Germany or to see Germany victorious. I 
desire the victory neither of Imperialism nor 
of Nazism. Yet, as a Congressman and a socia- 
list I have nothing but goodwill for the British 
and German people. If India’s opposition to 
Britain’s imperialist war ensures a Nazi victory, 
it is for the British people to decide whether 
they would have Nazi hegemony or victory 
with real democracy at home and in India. If 
the people of Great Britain remove their present 
rule and renounce imperialism with its capitalist 
rulers, not only India but the freedom-loving 
people of the whole world would exert them- 
selves to see the defeat of Nazism and the 
victory of freedom and democracy. In the 
present circumstances, however, India has no 
alternative but to fight and end British 
imperialism. Only in that manner can it contri-^ 
butc to the peace and progress of the world. 

I am conscious, Sir, that I have made your 
task easier by this statement. I do not regret it. 

In the end I thank you for your courtesey 
and consideration during this trial.” 


Some Books by Gandhiji 

Price 

Postage’ 

Satyagraba in South Africa 

Rs. 4 

8 

0 

8 

My Early Life 

1 

0 

0 

2 

Speeches and Writings 

4 

0 

0 

9 

Cent Per Cent Swadeshi 

1 

8 

0 

5 

Hind Swaraj 

0 

4 

0 

2 

From Yeravda Mandir 
Self-Restraint v. Self-Indulgence 

0 

2 

0 

1 

Parts I & II ( each) 

1 

0 

0 

3 

Manager, Harijan; Poona 4; 

and 81 

Queen’s Road,* 


Bombay 2. 



I^iARCH 30, 1940 1 


ACHARYA KRIPALANI‘S 

ixaugural address 

[The following is a synopsis of Acharya Kripa- 
■ianfs inaugural address at the Basic Educational 
Conference held at Poona last October. Those 
who would like to read this instructive address 
in full should apply to the Office of the Hindu- 
stan; Taliml Sangh, Sevagram. ] 

Systems of education not only here but all 
over the world suffered from decadence. Seeds 
of corruption set in when institutions become 
compleii, over-civilised, when the primal impulse 
and reason that gave them birth become 
exhausted. In the dawn of history all knowledge 
proceeded from the concrete, the discrete and 
the real, from what could be seen and sensed. 
Man and animal both had nature around them; 
but man, unlike the animal, began to work upon 
nature and give it new and fanciful shapes. He 
acquired knowledge by this process and began to 
master nature for his ever-increasing needs. In 
Hindu philosophy it is said that the world is 
made of rup and nam, form and name. Form 
must come first and name afterwards. But in 
our educational system, we have inverted this 
natural order and put names and general terms 
first and objects afterwards. By the new system 
we are called back to mother earth, back to the 
primal process of acquiring knowledge, which 
humanity has successfully employed in raising itself. 

When Gandhiji first announced his new reform 
the learned, who had acquired their knowledge 
in the orthodox way by means of words and 
phrases, were up against the scheme. If they 
had, instead of pronouncing judgment a priori, 
studied the scheme, they would have found it 
natural, scientific and psychological. All know- 
ledge proceeds from observation and experiment, 
frorn the practical to the theoretical. It must 
be justified by human experience. Gandhiji was 
thinking of this scientific process. He was also 
thinking in terms of child psychology. The 
child finds it natural and easy to handle and 
work upon things and thus acquire knowledge. 
The present system of education runs counter, 
therefore, to child psychology. The essence of 
■science is the investigation of truth by the 
experimental method. Gandhiji claims to have 
learnt through experience and experiment. 

If the method is natural and scientific, it can 
suit any system of education whatever its aim. 
In Europe and America the craft method has 
been advocated apart from any general aim. It 
has been advocated for an individualist and 
capitalist, as well as for a socialist or communist, 
society. It has been advocated even by religious 
organisations. Even so we may not forget that 
Gandhiji lighted upon this method in connection 
with the rest of his philosophy of life for the 
individual and society. If our education has 
suffered grievously from a defective and unscien- 
tific method, it has suffered more from defective 
and unworthy ideals. It was designed to produce 
cheap coloured administrative and clerical assis- 
tants for the white Government; in the words 
of Macaulay, to produce a race of Anglo-Ssixons 
in thought and culture who were Indians only 
in the colour of their skins. The educated 
Indian has thus been effectively cut off from 
the masses. An unbridgeable gulf has been 
created between _ him and them. The national 
movement has tried to bring them together by 
.giving them a common goal to strive for. If it 
is, therefore, necessary to change the method in 
•education, it is perhaps more necessary to 
provide it with worthy and noble ideals. 




To understand the philosophy of a reformer 
such as Gandhiji it is necessary to view :t 
against the historical background. Oniy^ so can 
one fully evaluate and appreciate the changes he 
proposes to bring about in the present order of 
things. The march of history unfolds a struggle 
to the knife of economic classes. The Marxian 
interpretation of history is economic; its method 
of investigation is scientific. Science has nothing 
to do with final aims and values, but we are 
told that the unconscious aim of this ideojiogy 
is to produce a classless society. This may be 
said to be a culminating point of process rather 
than an aim. In spite, however, of belittling 
moral and spiritual aims the Marxist has tc 
posit such ends to justify all the pain and 
travail of history, while Gandhiji puts these in 
the very forefront of his philosophy. 

The aim of history is to change the natural 
man into the moral or spiritual man and make 
him into a member of a moral or spiritual society. 
There must be some harmonious correlation 
between the life of the individual and society. 
Few will quarrel with me when I say that a 
moral or spiritual person is a free person, and 
that human freedom cannot be thought of apart 
from human responsibility. Moral man combines 
free choice with due restraint, and liberty with 
responsibility. To attain this end he must be' a 
member of an appropriate moral society. 

Humanity began with strife, violence and war. 
Later it moved out of this chaotic condition and 
some kind of justice and equality were establish- 
ed. The law that might alone is right was 
partially modified. Later still men felt within 
themselves the call for a higher order of good- 
ness, mercy, charity and love. The existing society 
could not satisfy this inner need. Thus it was 
that Buddha renounced the world and Christ 
declared that his kingdom was not of this world 
but of the other. And society that was divided 
between masters and slaves came to be further 
divided between those who followed the way of 
the Lord and those who renounced the world. 

The great renouncers organised societies after 
their hearts’ desires, societies free from exploita- 
tion, free from class distinctions of high and 
low. These groups were as oases in a desert of 
inequality, injustice, lust, and pride of power. 
Tryanny and injustice continued unabated until 
men roused themselves from age-long sleep, and 
the struggle of the slaves against the masters 
established what is known as democracy. Demo- 
cracy asserts the moral worth of the individual 
in society. If this new-found democratic principle 
in the politics of the nations had been allowed 
free scope to develop itself, it might have saved 
nations from internal conflicts and established a 
unified social order. But scientific inventions and 
discoveries of new lands ushered in the industrial 
revolution and the modern empire. This divided 
humanity into the haves and the have-nots. The 
new need became economic and gave birth to 
the cult of socialism which proclaims the equa- 
lity of man in the economic field. We see this 
socialism at work in Russia. Some sort of eco- 
nomic equality has been established but by the 
curtailment of individual 'initiative and liberty. 
For the new creed the individual apart from 
society does not exist. Bolshevik economic equality 
is built upon big centralised mechanised industry 
and agriculture and naturally affects the political 
field also. The result is bureaucratic rule. 

In ancient times the most absolute of rulers 
had certain limits placed upon their tyranny and 
rapacity by the morality of the age as embodied 
in custom, religion, superstition. Modern dendio- 


kaeijan 



HARIJAN 


68 


cracy caaie in simultaneouslv with the advance 
of scientific research. The freedom of the indivi- 
dual divested of moral responsibility introduced 
a chaotic element. Only recently when demo- 
cracy IS in danger have its advocates dimly 
begun to realise that it is not merely a poli- 
tical device but a great and moral principle. 

Gandhiji believes in the spiritual origin and 
destiny of man. This destiny has got to be 
worked out by the average man and woman in 
a moral society. It is therefore necessary that 
the means must in all spheres be as pure as 
the end. In all insticutions guided by him it is 
Gandhiji’s eflEbrt to retain for humanity the 
moral and material gains of democracy and social- 
ism. His advocac;v of cottage and village indus- 
tries along wdth decentralised agriculture and 
commerce connotes a moral principle. He is too 
moral and humanitarian to allow the machine 
to sw-allow up the free individual. Political life, 
internal and international, must be guided by truth 
aud non-violence. There must be no secret 
diplomacy and armaments. Holders of political 
powder must be the servants of their people. Their 
economic life must be in keening with the ave- 
rage standards of comfort prevalent in the nation. 
No work or profession must be considered high 
or low. Every worker, however humble, is not 
only worthy of his wage but also of honour. 
All Gandhiji’s practical programmes are directed 
towards the concrete aim of providing moral man 
with a moral society. His philosophy works for 
a non-violent revolution and ushers in a new 
epoch in history. It is to educate the indivi- 
dual and society in the light of the nrir.ciri.c*: 
of this new revolution that he has propounded 
his new scheme of education. It is a natural and 
scientific method with worthy and noble aims. It 
is in this light that the scheme should be judged. 

A CHIEF JUDGE DESCENDS 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

A correspondent sends me a newspaper report 
of a speech delivered by the Chief Judge of 
Mysore at a meeting recently held in Bangalore 
to help the war. He is reported to have said : 

The Allies were not fighting for democracy or 
any particular form of government. They were 

only fighting so that all nations might live in peace 
and develop on their own lines. They were fighting 
to put an end to all forms of aggression by one 

nation against others. Let them not in India be 

too sure -that the war would not touch them 

directly. War touched every one of them in India 
and also the generations yet unborn. 

He knew that most people in India were prepared 

to do their utmost to ensure the victory of the 

Allies. But some people had stood aloof. The 

leaders of a certain political party in this country 
had decided that this was the proper occasion for 
them to bargain for their political ends, had threa- 
tened that, if what they asked for was not granted, 
they would create trouble in India and so help the 

enemy. Such action on their part had greatly 

encouraged the enemy too. 

In every history there were some pages which 

people of the nation concerned read with shame. 
He was sure that when the history of India came 
to be written Indian children of the future would 
skip over with shame that part relating to the 
tactics of such politicians as he had referred to. 


[ March 30, 1940 


He was quite certain that such persons who 
bargained for their political rights at this hour did 
not represent the heart of India. If he had thought 
that they did, he would wish he had never set foot 
in India. But he had lived in India for 40 yea^s 
and knew that India as a nation was quite 
generous and warm-hearted and would respond to 
all good causes." 

It is hardly likely that His Honour the Chief 
Judge knows of the secrets of the British 
Cabinet. In any event, if Britain is fighting 
against mere aggression, it can hardly be called 
a worthy aim. Having been the foremost 
aggressor in the world Britain could not justify 
her fight against Germany on the pretext put 
forth by the learned Chief Judge. 

My correspondent in sending the cutting says 
in his covering letter : 

“ 1. He ought not to have entered into matters 
of political controversy at a non-parfy meeting 
convened under royal auspices. 

2. He, being the Chief Justice of a High Court, 
overstepped the bciinds of property in publicly 
attacking the politics of a particular party. 

3, He, being a judicial officer of an Indian State, 
ought not to have gone out of the way and meddled 
with the party politics of British India.” 

I think the criticism is just. The Congress 
will survive the attack. But I do not know 
whether the Paramount Power should not take 
notice of the Chief Judge’s extraordinary utterance. 
Surely he misuses the word bargain when he 
applies it to the Congress policy. What is there 
to be ashamed of in the Congress seeking the deli- 
verance of the country from foreign rule even 
when the foreigner is in distress ? If the Congress 
was not committed to the method of peace, it 
would have been not only justified but would have 
deemed it its duty to take advantage of Britain’s 
diflficulty by creating a state of rebellion in* 
the country by every means at its disposal. But 
the Congress has adopted the policy of peace. 
No doubt it would have done better if it could 
have honestly accepted my advice. The choice 
before the Congress was not between two evils 
but between good and better. The better was 
beyond its ability and would therefore have 
harmed and weakened it. Thus ‘ good ’ was the 
best for the Congress, and so I threw in my 
lot with it. I would have been a traitor if, 
having led the Congress to accept non-violence 
as its policy, I had remained on my pedestal 
and refused to guide the great organisation. It 
ill becomes those who believe in war as an 
accepted institution to charge the Congress with 
the spirit of bargaining. The word is a misfit 
when it is applied to the life and death struggle 
of a nation bent upon vindicating its right to 
freedom. 

Sevagram, 25-3-40 

NOTICE 

The business hours of our Bombay branch are 
now from 11 A. M. to 7-30 p, M. Address: 67 & 81 
Queen’s Road, Bombay 2. Manager 



March 30, 1940 ] 


HAEIJAIT 


6g 


THE TWO SPEECHES 

[For the first time during the last six years, 
2 : e. ever since his retirement from the Congress, 
Gandhiji expressed his own desire to address the 
Subjects Committee and also the delegates. I 
have given in my notes a glimpse of his mental 
background. The physical background was pro- 
vided by some of the speeches of the members 
of the Subjects Committee and the delegates 
which he had gone specially to hear. At the 
Subjects Committee at about quarter to ten on 
the evening of the 18th, Gandhiji addressed the 
meeting, and nearly twenty thousand people 
listened to him in a silence that matched the 
stillness of the night — the only sound being that 
of his speech delivered in firm, deliberate, un- 
faltering tones giving to everyone the impression 
that the speaker was in dead earnest and would 
not be trifled with. The speech at the open 
Congress on the 20th was delivered to an 
audience of about fifty thousand who had stayed 
for the Congress undeterred by the torrential 
rain of the previous evening and night. It was 
nearing noon but the rain-clouds shielded the 
audience from the heat of the sun. There was 
the same stillness and the same atmosphere as 
on the evening of the 18th. M. D.] 

I 

AT THE SUBJECTS COMMITTEE 
To Find Out Where I Was 

Since I went out of the Congress at Bombay, 
there has been an understanding between me 
and the Working Committee that I should not 
be asked to speak at tbe A. I. C. C. or the 
Subjects Committee or the open session, and 
should be allowed to conserve the little strength 
that is left in me. I have usually been attend- 
ing the meeting of tbe Working Committee. On 
this occasion, I myself suggested . that I should 
address the Subjects- Committee and also the 
delegates. The Working Committee agreed to this 
and, although I wanted to address you before the 
resolution was adopted, the Committee suggested 
that Ido so after the resolution was disposed of. 

It was my desire to see the faces of you all, 

■ and also to give you an opportunity of looking 
at me and finding out if there had been any 
change in me since my retirement in Bombay. 
Fifty years of public life have given me the 
capacity to read your faces. I have during these 
years created many institutions, met thousands 
•and tens of thousands of people, and it should 
not therefore be difficult for me to get at the 
back of your minds. But my desire to see you 
•was in order to find out where I was. 

Difficulties 

You have, I see, made considerable progress 
in the art of debate and I congratulate you, for 
-in a democratic organisation powers of persua- 
sion and a high level of debate are essential. I 
have also seen that the number of amendments 
you move has also increased, and it is well 
that you should all be anxious to press new 
ftoints of view, though I cannot congratulate 


you on some of the amendments which were 
either frivolous or abs'urd. 

You have adopted the resolution practically 
unanimously as there were only seven or eight 
dissentients. That adds to my responsibility, for 
I have been witness to tbe debate. If I had so 
desired. I should have warned you before voting, 
but I accepted the suggestion of the Working 
Committee that I should not address the house 
before tbe resolution was passed. 

I do not want to reply to what has been 
said by some of you in the course of the debate. 
But I do want to say that, though there was 
a time in my life when I launched movements 
even if some of my conditions had not been 
fulfilled, I am now going to be hard, not for 
the sake of being hard, but because a General 
who has to lead the army must let the army 
know his conditions beforehand. 

• Let me then- tell you that I do not see at 
the present moment conditions propitious for an 
immediate launching of the campaign. We are 
hemmed in with difficulties greater than those 
we had to face in the past. They are external 
and internal. The external difficulties are due 
to the fact that we have declared unmistakably 
what we want and. the Government have also 
declared their intentions as clearly as possible. 
Then there is the fact that the British Govern- 
ment are engaged in a world war and naturally, 
if we engage them in a flight, we ask for 
enough trouble. 

What, however, appals me is our internal 
difficulties, I have often said that external 
difficulties need never frighten a Satyagrahi. On 
the contrary, he flourishes on external difficulties 
and faces them with redoubled zeal and vigour. 
Today the situation is almost the reverse. Our 
external difficulties do not find us stronger 
and more united. Our internal difficulties are 
increasing. Our Congrsss registers are full of 
bogus members and members who have swelled 
them because they know that getting into the 
Congress means getting into power. Those who 
therefore never before thought of entering the 
Congress have come into it and corrupted it. And 
how can we prevent people from coming into 
a democratic organisation because they come 
from selfish motives? We have not that discipline, 
and not the strength and purity of public opinion 
which would compel such people to stay out. 

And this strength and purity cannot come so 
long as we approach the primary members only 
once in a year for the vote There is no dis- 
cipline in our ranks, they have been divided up 
into groups which strive to gain more and more 
power. Non-violence as between ourselves does 
not seem to us to be necessary. There may be 
groups, but they should strengthen and not 
weaken and destroy the organisation. 

No Democracy in an Army 

Ours has been both a democratic organisa- 
tion and a fighting one, ever since we reorga- 
nised it in 1920. We have used even military 



HABIJAJT 


[March 30, 194^> 


. 72 


HOW TO EVOKE THE BEST 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

An Indian protagonist of Britain writes : 

“ If our aim is to arouse the best in Englishmen 
through our non-violence and thus create mutual 
trust, we have signally failed. Our actions have not 
beeu in conformity with our professions. Our best 
period of non-violence ( when we manufactured least 
hatred towards England ) was the period of Con- 
gress regime in provinces. On account of personal 
contact with Governors, mutual trust was generated. 
Even that period was not free from rancour, but 
now the whole atmosphere is again getting surchar- 
ged with nothing but hatred towards England. 
Cordiality is being replaced by bitterness and trust 
by distrust. All our activities and arguments 
are only arousing the worst in the Englishmen. 
What visible demonstration have we given of 
our non-violence or of our desire to cultivate 
goodwill ? Armed rebellion and coercion through 
uncivil disobedience, no doubt, are ruled out. But the 
threat of disobedience is still there, and since pure 
non-violence at present is not existent, even mere 
threat of war cannot but rouse violent passions; and 
so there is no hope of developing that goodwill for- 
which pledges were taken. Is not a compromise 
based on give and take a more appropriate machi- 
nery for ( 1 ) Creating a non-violent atmosphere ; 
(2) Creating goodwill, ( 3 ) Rousing the best in the 
Englishmen and, ( 4 ) Creating a short cut to 
Independence through mutual co-operation ?’* 

The argument does credit to the heart of 
the writer, but he misses the method of non- 
violence. He has started with a half premise. 
Our aim is not merely to arouse the best in 
Englishmen but to do so whilst we are prose- 
cuting our cause. If we cease to pursue our 
course, we do not evoke the best in him but 
we pander to the evil in him. The best must 
not be confounded with good temper. When we 
are dealing with any evil, we may have to 
rujSEle the evil-doer. We have to run the risk, 
if we are to bring the best out of him. I have 
likened non-violence to aseptic and violence to 
antiseptic treatment. Both are intended to ward 
off the evil, and therefore cause a kind of dis- 
turbance which is often inevitable. The first 

never harms the evil-doer. 

Whilst I agree with the critic that our non- 
violence has not been unadulterated, I must 
dissent from the view that wc have signally 
failed. 1 am unable to agree that the best 

period of non-violence was the period of Con- 
gress regime. During that period non-violence 
was inactive. For each tried to please the 

other. Both were seemingly pursuing a common 
policy, though each had known reservations. 
The visible demonstration we have given of 
non-violence is that violent action has been 
successfully and entirely avoided through Con- 
gress influence. Being too near the event we 


are not able to have a true measure of the 
great restraint exercised by millions of men and 
women. I grant that we have not yet shed 
violence of the heart. But the amazing self- 
restraint exercised by the people fills me with 
the hope that violence of the heart will in due 
course give place to goodwill towards the 
opponent. It will never come if the critic’s 
plan of the policy of timidity, as I should call 
it, is pursued. Hatred will melt when restraint 
has been exercised sufficiently long to starve it. 
The effect of it on the English mind will also 
be equally wholesome in the long run. English- 
men will perceive that non-violence was real 
in so far as it went, and that masses of people 
could act with great restraint in spite of their 
nursing a grievance against them. 

All compromise is based on give and take, 
but there can be no give and take on funda- 
mentals. Any compromise on fundamentals is a 
surrender. For it is all give and no take. The 
time for compromise can only come when both 
are of one mind on fundamentals, i. e. when 
the British Government have made up their 
mind that not they but Indians will determine 
the constitution under which the latter will be 
governed. There is a dangerous snag in the 
reluctance to refer the question of constitution 
to an assembly of elected Indian representatives. 
Minorities need have no fear, for they will 
determine their own • safeguards through their 
own representatives. The Princes z^ceJ have 
none, for they need not come in, if tliey Jo 
not wish to. The only party that can 
effectively obstruct and does obstruct is the 
dominating, z. e. the ruling, party. There will 
be no compromise until that party has- sincerely 
come to the conclusion that it cannot or 
docs not want to rule. 

Sevagram, 24-3-40 

To Agents 

The attention of the agents is drawn to the fact 
that we do not accept cheques other than those drav/n 
on banks in Poona and Bombay. In view of recent 
complaints about loss of book post packets in transit, 
we now take certificates of posting. In cases, there- 
fore, of non-receipt agents may complain to their 
post offices. Manager 


CONTENTS Pac;k 


Ramcakaii 

M. D. 

57 

The Oi,d Game 

Every Congress Committee 

Pyarelal 

('2 

A Satyacraiia Committee 
My Answer to 

M. K. Gandhi 

f4 

Quaid-e-Azam 

M. K. Gandhi 

(.5 

A Brave Statement 

J. Narayan 

fi5 

Acharya Kripalani’s 



Inaugural Address 


f>7 

A Judge Descends 

M. K. Gandhi 

6S 

The Two Speeches 

M. K- Gandhi 

69 

How TO Evoke the Best ... 

M. K. Gandhi 

72 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4 
Subscription Rate. — IBLAUD : One year, Es. 4, Si* months, Es. ^-8, FOBEION : One year, Ks. 5-8 or, 8 sh. or i $. 



Editor : MAHADEV DESAl 

VoL. Vlir, No. 8 ] PCK)NA — SATURDAY, APRIL 6, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


QUESTION BOX 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Are You Not Moved? 

Q. You have written about Shri Jaiprakash 
Narayan. But are you not moved by his 
sentence ? Is it not a call to arms ? Will 
you even now wait till your impossible condi" 
tions are fulfilled? 

A. I fear I must wait till my conditions are 
fulfilled. You should allow me to know more 
than you of the way in which satyagraha 
works. Of course I am moved by the sen- 
tence pronounced against that brave co-worker. 

I wish I could move you as I am moved. If 
you were, you would silently and more persis- 
tently spread the charkha cult by yourself 
spinning full-heartedly and by taking its message 
to your neighbours. Jaiprakash having gone to 
jail, has had his reward. He had the inner 
urge. He deserved the reward. Believe me 
it will produce its own effect. If I become 
impatient and resort to precipitate action, the 
good done by Jaiprakash’s imprisonment is likely 
to be undone partly or wholly. I will not be 
party to producing an anarchical condition in 
India, nor will any good purpose be served by 
my inviting individuals to follow Jaiprakash’s 
example and court imprisonment. This jail- 
going in satyagraha does not admit of arith- 
metical application. Only one person's going 
may be most appropriate. Suffice it to say that 
Jaiprakash's imprisonment is engaging my serious 
attention. I wish all Congressmen would follow 
with redoubled zeal the task set before them. 

Constructive Work and C. D. 

Q. You have tabooed power politics from 
Gandhi Seva Sangh and similar institutions for 
the sake of constructive work. Does this mean 
that no workers engaged in these institutions 
can take part in civil disobedience ? I am 
afraid this water-tight division between civil 
resistance and constructive work will result in 
a crippling of the latter as no first-rate worker 
would take to it by renouncing civil resistance. 

A. Those who argue like you do not know 
the value of constructive work. It is any day 
superior to civil disobedience. Civil disobedience 
without the backing of constructive effort is 
neither civil nor non-violent. Those who do 
constructive work merely for the sake of civil 
disobedience look at things topsyturvy. At the 
present moment all satyagrahis have to hold 


themselves in readiness. But all may not Oe 
called. A soldier in reserve is as good as one 
on active duty. If the battle must come, I may 
say at once that my present plan is to disturb 
the constructive work as little as possible. 
Your question, I take it, has reference to those 
only who are working in organisations such 
as the A. I. S. A., A. 1. V. I A., H. S. S. 
and H. T. S. These will be as little disturbed 
as possible. But all Congressmen without 
exception, if they want to help the struggle, 
must take up constructive work in their persons. 

Khadi and Politics 

Q. Are you not endangering the khadi move- 
ment by identifying it with the political pro- 
gramme, especially the civil disobedience part of it ? 

A, Most certainly not. I would be, if khadi 
was confined only to Congressmen or civil 
resisters. Khadi is prescribed as national wear 
for all, whether Congressmen or other. It is used 
even by some Englishmen, Americans and other 
Westerners. Your objection, if it was valid, 
would apply even to communal unity, removal of 
untouchability and temperance. These four have 
gained importance and momentum since they 
were incorporated in the Congress constructive 
programme. They can all become illegal if they 
become mixed up with violence. If they did 
become illegal, it would be found that the 
movements as such were not suppressed but 
the organisations masquerading under innocent 
labels were in reality covering violence. 

Confusion of Thought 

Q. You will be responsible for a gross injus- 
tice if you persist in giving to India a majority 
Government with only ‘ safeguards ’ for the 
minorities. The latter ought to have an effective 
part in the actual government of the country. 

A. You have evidently confused majority 
rule with Hindu rule implying that the Hindu 
majority is irremovable. The fact is that the 
majority in all the provinces is a mixed 
majority. The parties are not Muslims and 
Hindus; they are Congressmen, Independents, 
Muslim Leaguers, Muslim Independents, Labour- 
ites, etc. The Congress majority everywhere is 
a mixed majority and could be better balanced 
if there was no tension. The tension is a 
distemper. A distemper can never be a per- 
manent feature of any growing society which 
India is. Whatever the outcome of the Muslim 
League demonstration and its claim, some day 
or other there will be a solution of the issues 



74 HAEIJAN [ APRIL 6, 1940 


raised. The outcome will never be pure Muslim 
■or Hindu majorities in any single province. The 
parties will be mixed and aligned according to 
different policies, unless democracy is crushed 
and autocracy reigns supreme in India as a 
whole or India is vivisected into two or more 
dead parts. If you have followed my argument, 
it must be clear to you that there will never 
be a denial of power to any party or group 
so far as the Congress is concerned. Minorities 
are entitled to full protection of their rights, 
for so long as they have to divide power with 
others, they run the risk of their special rights 
being adulterated. 

A Dilemma 

Q. My father is an employee in the S. L Rail- 
way. He has four children, all younger than I. 
He wants me to take an apprenticeship course, 
if I take part in the coming civil disobedience 
struggle, he may be dismissed and the family 
will starve. He says I can serve the nation by 
doing my share of constructive work. What is 
your advice? 

A. Your father is right. If you are the 
only bread-winner, you cannot leave ti'.e family 
to its fate for the sake of taking pari in civil 
disobedience. You will certainly serve the 
nation quite as effectively as civil resistors if you 
zealously carry out the constructive programme. 

Vain Repetitions 

Q. All agree that mechanical repetition of 
prayers is worse than useless. It acts as an 
opiate on the soul. I often wonder why you 
encourage repetition morning and evening of the 
eleven great vows as a matter of routine. May 
not this have a dulling effect on the moral 
consciousness of our boys? Is there no better 
way of inculcating these vows? 

A. Repetitions when they are not mechanical 
produce marvellous results. Thus I do not regard 
the rosary as a superstition. It is an aid to the 
pacification of a wandering brain. Daily repeti- 
tion of the vows falls under a different category. 
It is a daily reminder to the earnest seeker as 
he rises and retires that he is under the eleven 
vows which are to regulate his conduct. No 
doubt it will lose its effect if a person repeats 
the vows mechanically under the delusion that 
the mere repetition will bring him merit. You 
may ask, “ Why repeat the vows at all ? You 
know that you have taken them and are expected 
to observe them/’ There is force in the argument. 
But experience has shown that a deliberate 
repetition gives stimulus to the resolution. Vows 
arc to the weak mind and soul what tonics are 
to a weak body. Just as a healthy body needs 
no tonics, a strong mind may retain its health 
without the need of vows and the daily 
reminder thereof. An examination of the vows 
will, however, show that most of us are weak 
enough to need their assistance. 

On Behalf of Disabled People 
Q. You stand for the poor and helpless. 
Would you not include the providing of at 


least one daily meal to disabled beggars as an 
item of the daily routine of a “ constructive 
worker’? A large number of the former are 
lepers. There is not a city in India of any note 
without its quota of these hapless creatures. 
Their condition is deserving of your pity and 
consideration. 

A. Valuable as this work undoubtedly is, it 
cannot become part of the constructive pro- 
gramme, It is not every form of social relief 
that can be made part of the Congress construc- 
tive programme. Such programme can only 
cover that part, the omission of which would 
make the attainment of Swaraj through non- 
violence impossible. Who can deny that Hindu- 
Muslim unity, removal of untouchability, temper- 
ance, and the charkha are essential for achiev- 
ing our object ? My answer, however, does not 
mean that disabled humanity does not need any 
attention. No man or woman, whether of the 
Congress or not, can be worth much if he or 
she neglects to do his or her part of social 
service in the widest sense of the term. 

Sevagram, 1-4-40 

A CREDITABLE RECORD 

The Gandhi Ashram at pLdupalayan:, Tiru- 
chengodu ( Dt. Salem, South India ), which was 
founded by Rajaji who nurtured it and made it 
his own residence for a number of years, com- 
pleted the fifteenth year of its existence at the 
end of 1939, and the latest annual report for 
1939 shows a record of creditable service 
rendered to the villages round about. The 
main activity of the Ashram has been khadi 
production, and the following figures ( for 
1939 ) of the volume of production and amounts 
of wages disbursed speak for themselves: 


Khadi production 

lis. 

80,475 

Yarn „ 


lbs. 

52,667 

Khadi consumed 

by spinners under 



self-sufficiency 

scheme 

Rs. 

15,100 

Spinning wages 

distributed 

Rs. 

35,685 

Weaving „ 

»* 

Rs. 

16,494 

Dhobis’ „ 

It 

Rs. 

1,355 


Rs. 2,220 represented the loss met by the 
Ashram in supplying improved implements to 
spinners at half price. The khadi activity of 
the Ashram covered 283 villages. 3,182 spinners 
were on record, and their yearly earnings ranged 
from Rs. 5 to Rs. 75, the variation being 
accounted for by the difference in time devoted 
to the work. The average annual earning of a 
spinner was Rs. 11-4-0, a weaver Rs. 145-12-0, 
and a dhobi Rs. 80 — the spinner and the dhobi 
being part time workers. To many of the latter 
the work served as a second string to the bow. 
The figures of income may seem meagre to a 
city-dweller, but in villages where income stands 
at the low level of about Rs. 2 to 3, even this 
is a substantial addition and may in some cases 
even help to keep the wolf from the door. 
The weaver weaving handspun yarn has an 
advantage over his mill yarn weaving brother 
in that, whereas the latter experiences great 



HAEIJAN 




April 6, 1940 ] 


difficulty in finding a market for his finished 
product, the former is freed from any such 
worry, is provided with work all the year 
round, and has to submit to no exploitation 
by middlemeUc The sales of khadi effected 
through the agency of the Ashram amounted 
to Rs. 87,000 for the year. 

The Ashram also runs at Tiruchengodu 4 
schools for Harijans and also a hostel having 
17 boarders. It has a free hospital where the 
average daily attendance is 40 and on which 
Rs, 1,866 were spent in the year under report. 
The apiary work is well on the way of being 
permanently established. An institution like this* 
which has more than justified its existence, 
should not be allowed to feel handicapped for 
want of funds which should readily come forth 
in the form of donations. 

c. s. 

THE BASIC EDUCATION COURT 

The Basic Education Court in the recent 
Exhibition at Ramgarh was very attractive and 
certainly interesting for those who were at all 
keen on the new scheme of education. The 
presence of a class of a few dear little boys, 
neatly clad in khadi shorts and shirts, zealously 
spinning away on their taklis, added life to the 
exhibits of yarn and the products from various 
schools. This was the third exhibition of its 
kind since the scheme came into being. It was 
heartening to sense progress. The cloth produced 
from this yarn should compete favourably with 
similar quality material in A. I. S. A. bhandars. 
Its sale need not then be a difficulty. Card- 
board articles, I was glad to notice, were improv- 
ing and due attention was being paid to pro- 
duce only matketable things — files and boxes for 
confectionery; the latter giving ample scope for 
varying patterns and accurate measurements to 
the pupils, should not become a burden to any 
establishment. Then the Bihar bamboo and 
" moos ” small carding bow which even a child 
of six can manipulate has been perfected and its 
gOosamer-like carding was a joy to behold. Its 
cost is now two pice; hence it is possible for 
each child to possess his own in class. New 
products that deserve special mention were 
“asans” made in Loni and Bihar schools from 
waste yarn and the wood work of the Training 
Centre, Wardha. The bread and fruit platters 
made of seasoned wood were particularly charm- 
ing in design and well polished and finished. 
Then there were ladles of varying sizes, takii 
and charkha winders, sliver makers, etc. etc. 

Charts showed a definite improvement. They 
were divided into economic, educational and 
administrative spheres, showing results hitherto 
achieved as well as possibilities for future 
improvement. Those defining the correlation 
between the craft and various subjects were 
specially interesting. 

The most original thing in the Court, how- 
ever, were the pictures that decorated the walls. 


They were the handiwork of a young arsist^ 
Shri Nihar Ranjan Chaudhuri, a pupil of Shri 
Nandalal Bose. He spent three months in just 
reading all the literature available about the 
new scheme of education. After that he spent 
days and weeks at a time in most of the 

basic schools in the provinces watching and 

and listening to both pupils and teachers. The 
inner meaning of the scheme definitely inspired 
him to the extent of enabling him to depict 
its soul through the medium of his art. The 

pictures portrayed four crafts, spinning, wood 
work, cardboard and agriculture. The artist 

also depicted four possible crafts which are 
being tried in Kashmir and Allahabad, e. g. 
paper-making, leather work, pottery and basket 
weaving. The paintings show how the teacher 
begins his task, how the tools should be handled, 
how the pupils should sit or stand, how they 
should be clad, how various postures help better 
production, why accuracy must be adhered to, 
how attractive and colourful the class rooms may 
be, how neatness and order are a natural out- 
come of a wise use of material and tools, how 
patience is developed through correct correla- 
tion between the brain and the hand, what joy 
comes from seeing the result of the labour of 
one’s hands, and how their task completely 
absorbs both pupil and teacher. The details of 
each craft were well mastered and the colouring 
of the pictures was delicate and alive. Two which 
portrayed excursions to river and countryside 
were specially joyous. There was too a pictorial 
forecast of the elevating effect of the new 
education, the children being shown as model 
citizens, free from the taint of separatism. The 
artist has followed the Indo-Persian school of 
art in all his* designs. The paintings were all 
on handmade paper and mounted on khadi. 
Indigenous colours were used throughout. The 
pictures should constitute a good nucleus for 
any Basic Education Centre or Museum. 

Sevagram, 30-3-40 A. K. 

Scholarships for Harijau Girls 

Applications are invited from Harijan girls alt 
over India ( including States ) for the Thakkar 
Jayanti Scholarships for Higher Vocational Educa- 
tion. Higher Vocational Education includes study of 
the Fine Arts, Medicine, Nursing and Midwifery,, 
Law, Engineering, Teachers’ Training, etc. In very 
exceptional cases College Scholarships for Arts and 
Science courses will be awarded to Harijan girls 
from provinces and states where Harijans are educa- 
tionally very backward. Such provinces and states will' 
be Bihar, U. P., Delhi, Sind, Gujarat, Kaihiawad, 
Mahakoshal, Chhattisgarh, Orissa, Rajputana, Central 
India and Hyderabad States. The scholarships will 
be awarded to Harijan girls studying in recognised 
colleges, professional schools » or universities and 
such other vocational institutions as may be approved 
by the Sangh. Applications will have to be made to 
the General Secretary, Harijan Sevak Sangh, Kings- 
way, Delhi, on prescribed application forms which can 
be had from the office of the Sangh before the 
10th June 1940. 

A. V. Thakkar 

Delhi, 29-3-40 General Secretary 



76 HARIJAN [APRIL 6, 1940 





Apr. 6 


1940 


A BAFFLING SITUATION 


(By M. K. Gandhi') 

A question has been put to me: “Do you 
intend to start general civil disobedience al- 
though Qaid-i-Azam Jinnah has declared war 
against Hindus and has got the Muslim League 
to pass a resolution favouring vivisection of 
India into two ? If you do, what becomes of 
your formula that there is no Swaraj without 
communal unity ? ’’ 

I admit that the step taken by the Muslim 
League at Lahore creates a baffling situation. 
But I do not regard it so baffling as to make 
civil disobedience an impossibility. Supposing that 
the Congress is reduced to a hopeless minority> 
it will still be open to it, indeed it may be 
its duty, to resort to civil disobedience. The 
struggle will not be against the majority, it will 
be against the foreign ruler. If the struggle 
succeeds, the fruits thereof will be reaped as 
well by the Congress as by the opposing majority. 
Let me, however, say in parenthesis that, until 
the conditions I have mentioned for starting 
civil disobedience are fulfilled, civil disobedience 
caimot be started in any case. In the present 
instance there is nothing to prevent the impe- 
rial rulers from declaring their will in unequi- 
vocal terms that henceforth India will govern 
herself according to her own will, not that of 
the rulers as has happened hitherto. Neither 
the Muslim League nor any other party can oppose 
such a declaration. For the Muslims will be 
entitled to dictate their own terms. Unless the 
rest of India wishes to engage in internal fratri- 
cide, the others will have to submit to Muslim 
dictation if the Muslims will resort to it. I 
know no non-violent method of compelling the 
obedience of eight crores of Muslims to the will 
of the rest of India, however powerful a majo- 
rity the test may represent. The Muslims must 
have the same right of self-determination that 
the rest of India has. We are at present a 
joint family. Any member may claim a division. 

Thus, so far as I am concerned, my proposi- 
tion that there is no Swaraj without communal 

unity holds as good today as when I first 
enunciated it in 1919. 

But civil disobedience stands on a different 
footing. It is open even to one single person 
to offer it, if he feels the call. It will not be 
offered for the Congress alone or for any 
particular group. Whatever benefit accrues from 
it will belong to the whole of India. The 
injury, if there is any, will belong only to 
the civil disobedience party. 

But I do not believe that Muslims, when it 
comes to a matter of actual decision, will ever 
want vivisection. Their good sense will prevent 


them. Their self-interest will deter them. Thei^^ 
religion will forbid the obvious suicide which 
the partition would mean. The “ two nations *' 
theory is an untruth. The vast majority of 
Muslims of India are converts to Islam or are 
descendants of converts. They did not become 
a separate nation as soon as they became con- 
verts. A Bengali Muslim speaks the same tongue 
that a Bengali Hindu does, eats the same food, 
has the same amusements as his Hindu neighbour. 
They dress alike. I have often found it diffl- 
cult to distinguish by outward sign between a 
Bengali Hindu and a Bengali Muslim. The same 
phenomenon is observable more or less in the 
south among the poor who constitute the masses 
of India. When 1 first met the late Sir Ali 
Imam I did not know that he was not a Hindu. 
His speech, his dress, his manners, his food 
were the same as of the majority of the Hindus 
in whose midst I found him. His name alone 
betrayed him. Not even that with Qaid-i-Azam 
Jinnah. For his name could be that of any 
Hindu. When I first met him, I did not know 
that he was a Muslim. I came to know his 
religion when I had his full name given to me. 
His nationality was written in his face and 
manner. The reader will be surprised to know 
that for days, if not months, I used to think of 
the late Vithalbhai Patel as a Muslim as he 
used to sport a beard and a Turkish cap. The 
Hindu law of inheritance governs many Muslim 
groups. Sir Mahomed Iqbal used to speak with 
pride of his Brahmanical descent. Iqbal and 
Kitchlew are names common to Hindus and 
Muslims. Hindus and Muslims of India are not 
two nations. Those whom God has made one, 
man will never be able to divide. 

And is Islam such an exclusive religion as 
Qaid-i-Azam |would have it? Is there nothing 
in common between Islam and Hinduism or any 
other religion? Or is Islam merely an enemy 
of Hinduism? Were the Ali Brothers and their 
associates wrong when they hugged Hindus as 
blood brothers and saw so much in common 
between the two ? I am not now thinking of 
individual Hindus who may have disillusioned 
the Muslim friends. Qaid-i-Azam has, however, 
raised a fundamental issue. This is his thesis : 

“It is extremely difficult to appreciate why our 
Hindu friends fail to understand the real nature of 
Islam and Hinduism. They are not religions in the 
strict sense of the word, but are, in fact, different 
and distinct social orders, and it is a ffieam that 
the Hindus and Muslims can ever evolve a common 
nationality. This misconception of one Indian nation 
has gone far beyond the limits and is the cause of 
most of our troubles and will lead India to destruc- 
tion if we fail to revise our notions in time. 

The Hindus and Muslims have two different reli- 
gious philosophies, social customs, literatures. They 
neither intermarry, nor interdine together, and indeed, 
they belong to two different civilisations which are 
based mainly on conflicting ideas and conceptions. 
Their aspects on life and of life are different. It 
is quite clear that Hindus and Mussalmans derive 
their inspiration from different sources of history. 
They have different epics, their heroes are different » 




April 6, 1940 ] HARIJAE" 


77 


and they have different episodes, "^^’ery often the 
hero of one is a foe of the other andj likewise, 
their victories and defeats overlap. To yoke together 
two such nations under a single state, one as a 
numerical minority and the other as majority, must 
lead to growing discontent and final destruction of 
any fabric that may be so built up for the govern- 
ment of such a state.” 

He does not say some Hindis are bad; he 
says Hindus as such have nothing in common 
with Muslims. I make bold to say that he 
and those who think like him are rendering no 
service to Islam; they are misinterpreting the 
message inherent in the very word Islam. I say 
this because I feel deeply hurt over what is now 
going on in the name of the Muslim League. 
I should be failing in my duty, if I did not 
warn the Muslims of India against the untruth 
that is being propagated amongst them. This warn- 
ing is a duty because I have faithfully served 
them in their hour of need and because Hindu- 
Muslim unity has been and is my life’s mission. 

Sevagram, 1-4-40 

Harijan Work in Indore 

Shrimati Rameshwari Nehru who was invited 
to preside at the recent celebration of “Harijan 
Day” in Indore, sends a note about Harijan 
work there. A summary is given below. 

Harijan Day is celebrated on March 1st every 
year since the Maharaja Sahib’s granting of civic 
tights and allowing entrance to State temples to 
Harijans. This year the occasion was marked by 
the laying of the foundation stone of a sweepers’ 
colony for which Rs. 60000/- have been given by 
the Maharaja Sahib from his privy purse. During 
the course of a few months houses for 80 families 
will be completed and it is hoped that this dona- 
tion will be repeated until the housing problem of 
sweepers of Indore City has been completely 
solved. A humble beginning in the form of a 
thrift and credit society and an Industrial Home 
were inaugurated and a detailed programme of 
work for this year drawn up. This includes the 
•starting of a students’ hostel. The programme 
was well received by the authorities of the 
•State who were approached for financial help. 
The President of the Harijan Sevak Sangh, 
Indore, has moved a resolution in the Munici- 
pal Committee, which it is hoped will soon be 
adopted, to raise the pay of sweepers and make 
their service permanent with the usual 
maternity benefits, leave rules, provident fund 
etc. Social service in the form of removal of 
illiteracy ... 3500 Harijans were made literate ... 
teaching lessons of thrift, clean living, avoidance 
of debt, temperance etc, was carried on through- 
out last year with the help of several young 
caste Hindu men and women who received 
certificates for their work on March 1st. A few 
sweeper women joined the evening worship in 
the Gopal Mandir in company with Caste 
Hindus. The joy on their faces was good to behold. 

It is to be hoped that the progress made will 
be steadily maintained. 

Sevagram, 31-3-40 A. K. 


KHADI CAN 

( By K* G. Mashruivala ) 

Is it possible to produce all the cloth we 
need by hand-spinning and hand- weaving ? What 
will it cost to the purchaser? With the held 
of colleagues I am trying to answer these ques- 
tions. In doing so, in order to be on the safest side, 
I have taken the most conservative calculations. 

For this reason I have taken the total popu- 
lation of India to be 40 crores, and the average 
annual need of cloth to be 18 square yards per 
head. This works out at 720 crore yards per 
year, or less than 2 crore yards per day. This 
must then be the average daily production of 
cloth for India’s total need. 

It is also assumed that 80 per cent o£ the 
total population (or 32 crores) is rural and 
agricultural. Generally 40 per cent of the total 
population is estimated to be fit for labour. In 
India the estimate is perhaps more conservative 
than necessary. For, in villages, men begin to 
work for bread at a very early age and conti- 
nue to do so almost till the end. Spinning and 
some of its incidental operations safely allow 
children and old men to be made use of. Still, 
on account of the extremely ill-nourished condi- 
tion of the villagers, their productive eflSciency 
is much below normal, and so I have accepted 
the estimate of 40 per cent. This gives us about 
12J- crores as the labouring population. 

In the production of khadi, the proportion of 
spinners to other craftsmen (such as carders, 
weavers, dyers, etc. ) varies according to the 
methods and implements of production employed. 
Shri Vinoba has been carrying on experiments 
in this line. For conservative calculation I have 
taken his figures. According to him, among 100 
full-time khadi producers, there should be 55 
spinners and 45 other craftsmen (ginners, cleaners, 
carders, weavers, etc.), and they would produce 
44 square yards of cloth per day. According to 
the prevailing methods about 75 full-time spin- 
ners would provide work to 25 weavers and 
other craftsmen, and would produce about 60 
yards of cloth per day of between 12 to 16 
counts. ( A full-time spinner is estimated to 
produce yarn equal to 4/5 of a sq. yd. ) 

Therefore, according to Shri Vinoba, for pio- 
ducing 2 crore square yards per day, we require 
2-5 crore full-time spinners and about 2 crores 
of other textile craftsmen, or 4-5 crore full-time 
khadi producers in all. In a populption of 12| 
crores of rural workers, this figure, by itself, is 
sufficient to dispel any doubt about India’s 
capacity to produce her own cloth. According 
to the other calculation, this figure would be 
much smaller. 

At present there are very few spinners and 
other craftsmen working full time, i. c. eight 
hours a day. Much of the khadi is produced 
either during leisure hours all the year round or 
during periods of unemployment. Some quantity 
is also produced for home consumption, and 
it is desirable that this habit should, for 



78 


HAEIJAN 


[ April 6, 1940 


the progress of khadi, be encouraged as much 
as possible. It will, therefore, be safe to assume 
that on an average in all processes up to spin- 
ning, workers put in on an average only 3 hours’ 
work per day. On the simplest good village 
charkha this amount of labour should enable a 
spinner to produce on an average from to 
hanks per day ( hank=840 yds. ). This works out 
at 3 spinners per day for each square yard of 
khadi. Therefore, to produce 2 crore yards per 
day, we should need 6 crore spinners working 
for 3 hours per day. Thus the whole khadi 
production would engage 6 crores of part-time 
workers and a crore of other full-time craftsmen, 
or 7 crores in all. 

There is no doubt that 7 crores of people 
are available in India for this work, without 
detriment to agriculture and to other occupa- 
tions and industries. Not only so, but it leaves 
a good margin for the expansion of this industry^ 
if more production were needed. For then it 
could be made more remunerative than at 
present, and improvements in implements, con- 
sistent with rural conditions, could also be 
introduced with greater confidence. 

This brings us to the question of cost. Let 
it be remembered that in the economics of khadi, 
the question of cost affects by way of actual 
out-of-pocket charges only those who cannot or 
will not card and spin for themselves and their 
dependants. On a very liberal calculation these 
cannot be more than 6 crores in India. 

They will have to purchase their khadi, and 
a majority of them would be consuming more 
cloth than the average of 18 yards per head. 
A good part of it will also be of counts finer 
than the average 12 to 14 counts assumed for 
the rest of the country. It will not be wrong 
to estimate their demand at 30 yards per head. 
This means that it will be necessary to produce 
180 crore yards of khadi for sale. This comes 
to half a crore of yards per day, or 25 per cent 
of the total cloth needed. As for the rest of 
the people, they will have to do some labour 
( at the most an hour per day ) without feeling 
any actual saving in out-of-pocket charges. 

The present A. L S. A, rate of spinning 
works out to about f anna per hank, and yields 
to a full-time spinner the wage of to 3 as. 
per day with the present implements and rough 
methods of work. To reach the standard mini- 
mum living wage of eight annas per day, the 
wage must be steadily raised up to 2 as, per 
hank, along with training and the supply of 
improved implements. The present average kbadi 
costs at pre-war rates nearly 21 times more 
than the mill cloth. Khadi of superior count 
cost not less than 3 times, ( Since the war 
the mill cloth has become more costly and 
so the proportion is less than before, ) If 
the wage is increased, it would be costlier 
still, though on account of improvements, not 
in proportion to the increment. If we leave 
aside the A. I, S. A. rate and for the time being 


content ourselves with giving such wage as 
prevails in each season in each locality, the rate 
would work out to at least half an anna per 
hank. Even assuming that there is no change 
in the cost of other factors of khadi production 
and in the currency economy of the country, 
this rate would make khadi only twice as costly 
as mill cloth. Having regard to the fact that 
the production of the cloth through charkha and. 
hand-looms ensures better distribution of wealth 
and consequently retention of wealth in the 
villages and also reduces unemployment, it 
must improve the purchasing power of the 
people to a considerable extent. This means 
that those who have to clothe themselves by 
purchasing ready-made khadi will also, in return, 
be in a better position to manufacture articles 
needed by the khadi producer. Costlier khadi 
will not, therefore, be to the disadvantage of the 
middle class purchaser. On the contrary a graduat- 
ed increase in the spinning wage as contem- 
plated by the A. I. S. A. would be, in the long 
run, still more advantageous from the national 
point of view. Instead of investing huge sums of 
money in dead engines, a moderate investment 
in millions of living human engines rotting for 
want of employment in villages, will be cheaper 
and economical in terms of national accounting. 
And then the improvement in the methods and 
implements of producing khadi without giving 
up its rural character will also be a great factor 
in the reduction of cost. Every day new experi- 
ments arc being made in these directions, and 
there are great hopes of steady progress. 

The rise in the price of cotton on account of 
war brings to light another difference between 
khadi and mill cloth. In the production of 
khadi, more is spent on labour than on the raw 
material. Consequently a rise in the price of the 
raw material (without any change in the wages) 
does not appreciably affect the price of khadi. 
This is not so in mill cloth, which rises and falls 
in price almost in the same proportion as raw 
cotton. Of course there is also one more way to 
reduce the price of khadi without reducing the 
wage. That is through * a voluntary tax in 
labour’ as suggested in the article so entitled in 
Harijan of 20th January last. 

The conclusion is that quantitatively it is quite 
practicable to produce all the cloth we require, 
without running the mills, that the problem of 
high price will affect not more than 25% of the 
population, that it is possible to mitigate that 
factor in various ways partially if not fully; and 
for the rest, the costliness will be more an 
advantage than otherwise, and this, again, in the 
long run and in an indirect manner be advan- 
tageous even to the purchaser. It is also in the 
interest of those interested in large scale industri- 
alisation and mechanisaton to leave this industry 
of the masses safe for them. It is likely that the 
nation will be able to move with greater con- 
fidence and less disturbances in some of the 
other spheres of industrialisation. 



APEIL 6, 1940] HARIJAN 79 


SEVAGRAM KHADI YATRA 

The khadi lovers of Wardha district have] been 
holding an annual conference in the different 
villages in the taluka for the last six years 
under the inspiration and guidance of Shri 
'Vinoba. The object of the conference is to 
propagate khadi. It has been named Khadi Yatra 
or pilgrimage. People generally come to the con- 
ference trudging long distances on foot and live 
there for two days the life of the village folk 
in every respect. It is organised by the Gram 
Seva Mandal, whose workers are scattered over 
these villages, engaged in various constructive 
activities. People from different villages invite 
the khadi yatra to their village, and give every 
possible help in a most willing and enthusiastic 
manner. This year Shri gRadhakrishna Bajaj, 
Secretary Gram Seva Mandal, came to Gandhi ji 
with the suggestion thac the yatra might be 
held in Sevagram, Gandhiji had no objection to 
it, provided the villagers of Segaon — 'now called 
Sevagram — wanted it. They did, and the yatra 
was held on 30th and 31st March in open fields 
of the village. 

On the morning of the first day, the yatris took 
out a prabhat pheri; on the second day, they 
took part in village cleaning. Two hours in the 
afternoon were devoted to community spinning. 
Gandhiji addressed them after the evening prayers 
on the 30th night. About 1,500 people had 
gathered from the surrounding villages and the 
Wardha town for the occasion. The audience 
sat in darkness but for an electric bulb fitted 
to the loud speaker battery. His speech was 
preceded by the usual evening prayer of the 
Ashram, The prayer includes a recitation of 
the eleven vows. Taking his cue from it, 
Gandhiji said: 

“ Just now you recited the eleven vows as 
part of your prayers. It is our formula for 
gaining internal and external emancipation. 
Working within its orbit success may appear 
at times difficult, but there need be no despair, 
if we have faith. The greater the difficulties, 
the greater should be our faith. Even so, faith 
is needed for the prosecution of the khadi 
programme. 

“ Although the people of Sevagram gave an 
invitation and I agreed to the holding of the 
yatra here, that does not mean that I consider 
this place to be fit for the holding of such yatra. 
My test would require a high percentage of 
adoption of khadi. As ic is, perhaps, not more 
than 20 per cent of the Sevagram folk wear 
khadi. Those that do, have not adopted it 
fully and with an understanding of all its 
implications. The adoption of khadi with all its 
implications means revolution in one’s life. It 
means purity in its wide sense and a readiness 
to lay down one’s life for the sake of the 
country’s freedom. Do the people of Sevagram 
come up to that test ? I am afraid not. I 
confess the failure is partly mine. I have not 


put forth sufficient effort to give them the 
needed education. I would like you to hold the 
next yatra in a place which comes at least 
within a measurable distance of the ideal that 
I have laid down. 

“At Malikanda we reduced the size and scope 
of the Gandhi Seva Sangh and turned it into an 
institute for carrying out experimental research 
into the principles for which the Sangh stands, 
as for instance, truth, ahimsa, khadi, and their 
interrelationship. I have said that there is a vital 
connection between khadi and ahimsa. But I 
have not fully proved it. My reason follows 
my heart. Without the latter it would go 
astray. Faith is the function of the heart. It 
must be enforced by reason. The two are not 
antagonistic as some think. The more intense 
one’s faith is* the more it whets one’s reason. 
And so, although my faith in khadi is daily 
growing, I have not put my reason in cold 
storage. I listen carefully to all adverse criticism 
with an open and receptive mind, extract from it 
what is worth extracting and reject the chaff, I am 
always ready to correct my mistakes. A full 
and candid admission of one’s mistake should 
make one proof against its repetition. A full 
realization of one’s mistake is also the highest 
form of expiation. I would like all co-workers 
to test with their reason all I say. When 
faith becomes blind it dies. It is a drawback 
in khadi work that many workers do not 
apply their reason to their work. We must 
find out why the progress in khadi is slow. 
It may be that we have erred in detail, wc 
may find that we have hereafter to place more 
emphasis on self-spinning than on production 
for sale. At one time I myself had suggested 
the ideal of immediate introduction of a standard 
wage of eight annas a day for the spinners. 
But under the advice of experienced khadi 
workers, we satisfied ourselves with three annas 
standard wage for the time being, keeping the 
higher figure before us as our goal. Even this 
rise is phenomenal. Shall wc be able to sustain 
this wage? 

“Take now the political aspect. I have said 
that we can get Swaraj through khadi. If you 
have real faith in it, you will not rest till you 
have proved it to the whole world by your 
reason. The link between khadi economics, poli- 
tics and sociology cannot depend on unreasoned 
faith. The wheel is the one thing that can 
become universal and replace the use of arms. 
If the millions co-operate in plying the charkha 
for the sake of their economic liberation, the 
mere- fact will give them an invicible power 
to achieve political independence. You must have 
noticed how insistent I have become about 
the fulfilment of the khadi ptogramme as a 
condition precedent to the launching of civil 
disobedience. If our preparation is complete, the 
struggle may be rendered unnecessary. And if 
it does become necessary, it will be invincible 
and of a short duration. But if only a few 



[ APRIL 6, 1940 


3k ) 


HAEIJAN 


i&ke to the chaskha, it becomes necessary 
for them to sacrifice their all in order to 
quicken the conscience of their compatriots 
and the English rulers. The efficacy of their 
sacrifice will depend upon the degree of their 
purity and innocence. Mere wearing of khadi 
without knowing its implications cannot help. For, 
when it becomes the vogue even evil-doers will 
wear it. Khadi like God’s sunshine and air is for 
all alike, but all do not thereby become eligible 
for satyagraha. Khadi, purity, and readiness to 
3 acrifice oneself ate the three essentia! conditions 
for a satyagrahi. The charfcha is the external 
symbol. Without it your sacrifice will not be non- 
violent. I have no cut and dry plan of fight 
before me. I only know that I must be ready 
for it unless I am a hypocrite or a fool. 

“ Lastly, since the yatra has taken place here, 
I suggest that you draw up a programme for 
making the whole of the village of Sevagram 
khadi-clad within a year. The experiment will 
exercise your faith and your reason and may 
give you the key for making khadi universal.” 

Questions amd Answers 

The khadi yatra was over at 5 p. m. on 31st 
March, but as Gandhiji had agreed to answer 
questions, if there were any, after the evening 
prayer, many people stayed on for the night. Here 
arc some of the questions with Gandhiji’s answers. 

Q, Has takli been introduced into the basic 
education scheme with the economic, i. e. self- 
support, or the educative end in view, 

A. Anything introduced in basic education 
can only have one end in view, i. e. the edu- 
cative. The object of basic education is the 
physical, intellectual and moral development of 
the children through the medium of a 
craft. But I hold that any scheme which is 
sound from the educative point of view and is 
efficiently managed, is bound to be sound eco- 
nomically, For instance, we can teach our 
children to make clay toys that arc to be 
destroyed afterwards. That too will develop 
their intellect. But it will neglect a very 

important moral principle, viz. that human 
labour and material should never be used in a 
wasteful or unproductive way. The emphasis 
laid on the principle of spending every minute 
of one’s life usefully is the best education for 
citizenship and incidentally makes basic educa- 
tion self-sufficient. 

Q. How can khadi and spinning lead to Swaraj ? 

A. If millions co-operate, it cannot but generate 
tremendous strength which can be put to any 
use one likes. The chaxkha provides the best 
medium for such co-operation. It provides digni- 
fied employment and food and clothing for 
Daiidranarayan. This cannot but produce magg 
consciousness and non-violent strength for gain- 
ing Swaraj. 

Q. Must one who takes to khadi tak? to 
spinning as well? 


A. From the economic point of view it is 
enough to take to khadi. But if khadi is ic 
be our weapon for winning Swaraj, spinning is 
of equal necessity. Khadi gives us economic 

self-sufficiency, whereas spinning links us with 
the lowest paid labour. In militarised countries 
everyone gives a certain time for military pur- 
poses. Ours being a non-violent basis, everyone 
should do sacrificial spinning for a minimum 
period from year to year. Maulana Mohamed 

Ali used to call the takli and the yarn oui 

arms and ammunition for winning Svraraj. The 
analogy is telling. j.s it too much for us to 
give half an hour or one hour pec day cc 

spinning as a measure of voluntary conscription? 
I remember, at the beginning of the last w-ar 
when I was in England I was given pyjama 
suits to stitch for the soldiers. Many others 
from the most aristocratic families including 
some venerable old ladies and gentlemen wore 
doing such work. We all finished our quota o£ 
work as we were required to. No one considered 
it beneath bis or her dignity to do so. Towards 
the end of the war far more work was given 
by the whole nation. Yet no one complained. 
I warn you that, although today I am askiag 
you only to give half an hour or one hour per 
day to spinning, I may have to be more 
exacting as the situation develops. 

Q. Should civil resister prisoners offer satya- 
graha in order to get the permission to wc.il 
khadi and spin regularly in jail? 

A. A satyagrahi willingly submits to all j;ul 
discipline. He never wishes to cmkirrass the 
authorities. To insist on being alli'wcu to spin 
in jail when you do not do so with religious 
regularity outside, would he a species of vio- 
lence. I would not recommend that course to 
anybody although I can conceive of exceptional 
cases. — Appa Patwardhan for instance — ■ who 
might go to the extreme length in order to 
secure that permission. We have not bemived 
as ideal prisoners in the past. There has beer 
violence and untruth in our actions. I do not 
want that to be repeated. We may plead with 
the jail authorities, I would be faced with a 
dilemma if I were not allowed these facilities. 
What I have said of spinning applies equally to 
khadi.” 


Sevagram, 2-4-40 



s. 

N. 

CONTENTS 



Page 

Question Box 


K. 

Gandhi 

73 

A Creditable Record 


c, 

. S, 

7't 

The Basic Education O'Ukt 


A. 

K. 

75 

Baffling Situation 

M. 

K. 

Gandhi 

7f 

Khadi Can ... 

:.c. 

Mashniwcil 

a 77 

Sevagram Khadi Yatr.v 


S. 

N. 

7-t 


Notes : 


bCHOLARSHIPS FOR HarIJA:. 

Girls \ Y 'j\ 

Harijan Work in Incukj-. A. K. 


■ Printed and Published by Vithal Han Sarve at the .Anf&bhuslifm Prp<iQ Qi s/i ir.... — n t-. j 

Rato.— I siIhii. On- J Q- “"■''^““snan rress yi5/l Ferprusson Colics Road, Poona 

SabouiirtiM Rato. mARB . One year, Rs. 4, Six months, Hs. a-8, FOREIGH : One y^ar, Hh. 5-6 or. 8 sh. or * $. 



Reg. No. 3 3092 



VoL. Vlli, No. 9 ] POONA — SATURDAY, APRIL 13, 1940 [ 1 ANNA 6 PIES 


THE DEENABANDHU 

I 

When I saw C. F. A. — that is how many of 
his friends referred to him, some called him 
Charlie, and I latterly had come to address him 
as Borodada, none of us who were nearest to 
him ever referred to him as Dcenabandhu, 
which name, however appropriate, never seemed 
to stick to him — a few weeks ago at Calcutta 
recovering from his first operation, I had a fear 
that, though he had been restored to us, he was 
not likely to be with us for long. And yet his 
loss creates such a terrible void that it seems 
impossible to reconcile oneself quite to the inevi- 
table. A friend who writes to me a letter of 
sympathy, knowing what the loss means to me, 
says I must be feeling as though I had lost 
my dear father. Quite true. But though I am 

young enough to have been his son, and he 

had a venerable beard, it was quite impossible to 

regard him as a father. In fact it was impossible 
to look up to him as an elder or anything else. 
For he was friend to all — the oldest and the 
youngest, the richest and the poorest, the 

highest and the humblest. When he sat down 
with my boy to read Kuhla Khan and mingled 
his mirth with his own, when he sat down 
with [Gandhiji to discuss Dominion Status or 
Independence, or with Dr. John Mott to discuss 
Gandhiji’s attitude to Christianity, there was in 
him the same childlike innocence and simple 
regard for truth. I remember vividly the early 
morning when twentytwo years ago I was 
introduced to him by Gandhiji. From that 
moment his overflowing affection and friendli- 
ness made it impossible to look up to him. 

* * • * 

When thirtysix years ago he decided to come 
to India, there were friends who remonstrated 
with him. He had won a triple First and was 
a Cambridge Don. If he stayed at home, he 
might one day be venerated as the seniormost 
Professor of History in Cambridge, or if he 
entered politics he might one day be Prime 
Minister. He would not be moved from his 
resolve, “India calls” were the two words he 
uttered with such deep conviction that it silenced 
all remonstrance. When two or three years ago 
friends found that he was feeling the effects of 
a none too robust health and approaching age, 
they asked him to settle down in a quiet spot 
in England and give more fruits of his pellucid 
pen to the world, he said ‘no’, he could not 


think of settling an? else but India. When 

the surgeon who performed the two operations 
on him suggested that he should go to England 
or Europe and have the second operation there, 
he resolutely said ‘no’. He knew that Shri 
Ghanshyamdas Birla, who bore all the expenses 
of his prolonged illness, would gladly bear those 
of an air-flight and operation at ‘home’. But 
how could he leave his real home? “Whatever 
happens to me,” he said, “must happen here.” 
I do not know an Englishman who loved India 
more, and who has served India better. That was 
not because of an emotional impulse — there 
were perennial wells of emotion in him, but 
nobody made the choice of his vocation out of 
emotion — but because he knew India, went on 
with the years knowing her and loving her more 
and more, he knew the wrong that his country- 
men had done to India, consciously or un- 
consciously, and he had resolved to atone for it. 
He was a tapasvi in the true sense of the term. 

St * * 

It was a triple atonement. The first was by 
a conscious endeavour every day of his life to 
wipe out the reproach of ‘ superiority ’ attach- 
ing to Englishmen. The second was by .slaving 
for India — the flood-stricken and the famine- 
stricken and the earthquake-stricken at home, and 
the oppressed Indian in South Africa and Kenya, 
in Fiji and New Zealand, in Trinidad and 
Tanganyika. The third was by opening the eyes 
of his Missionary brethren to the rich spiritual 
heritage of India, which they had ignored, mis- 
understood and even misrepresented, and by 
showing them the true way of Christ, I do not 
know that he made any Christian convert, but 
I know that he had won the hearts of millions, 
and hundreds are shedding silent tears over the 
loss of their guide, philosopher, and friend. 

* * ♦ 

And he had the richest equipment for the 
sacred mission of atonement he had undertaken. 
He had ahimsa in a larger measure than most 
people I have known. He had woven into his 
life the principal attribute of the Bhakta of the 
Gita — who paineth none, and who is pained 
by none. The very mention of the Beatitudes 
made him beam with serene joy, giving one the 
impression that the joy was the reflection of 
the inner light that comes from an observance 
of them. I have not yet come across a better 
exemplar of the Biblical proverb — a soft answer 
turneth away wrath. All this gave him the 



82 


HARIJAN 


[ April 13, 1940 


Strength to bear the Cross that everyone must 
bear who is on the strait and razor-edged 
path of tapasya- 

JS: * * 

And don’t I know the terrible weight of that 
Cross ? The proud regarded him as an outcaste, 
the wise laughed behind his back saying he was 
a simpleton full of sob-stuff. But his humility 
and single-minded devotion to the cause would 
never dismay him. He bore all insults, humilia- 
tions, snubs, sarcasms with a smile. If Dr. 
Grenfell of Labrador set a supreme example of 
physical endurance that all servants of humanity 
have to possess, C. F. A. set a supreme example 
of mental endurance. 

* ♦ * 

But he was not a man easily to take a denial. 
No task was too mean or humble for him. He 
would run errands, take a note to the Viceroy, 
or to an irate oflScial who was in no mood to 
yield. But on most occasions he succeeded in 
appealing to the human side of people and 
worked wonders. In South Africa he worried 
General Smuts time and again. When the Final 
Agreement was about to be signed came a wire 
to Gandhiji saying Kasturba was seriously ill. 
But Gandhiji refused to go until the Agree- 
ment was signed by General Smuts. Charlie 
ran to Smuts who was deeply touched, signed 
the Agreement, and released both to go to 
Durban, At the time of the last Yeravda fast 
of August 1933, he worried Sir Reginald Max- 
well at all hours of the day and night until 
the final release of Gandhiji. In 1932 during 
the Premier’s Award Fast, he was now with 
Lord Halifax, then with Sir Samuel Hoarc, then 
with Mr. MacDonald, and saw that there was 
not a moment’s delay in announcing the decision. 
On countless other occasions he took upon him- 
self the mission of peace and worked at it 
without regard for the result. And I have seen 
him not only running errands, but ready to do 
the most tiresome clerical jobs like copying, 
revising typescript, etc. ‘ His soul was like a 
star, and on himself the lowliest tasks did lay.’ 

♦ 

Not that he did not err. He was very human 
indeed and made plenty of mistakes, but no 
one knew how to make better amends. He had 
a kind of ‘will to believe’ which often landed 
him in scrapes out of which he found it difl5cult 
to extricate himself. He came across black- 
mailers who sometimes found him an easy victim, 
but he had the joy of Hugo’s Bishop who was 
happy to have lost his candlesticks. ‘Better to 
be deceived than to deceive,’ sings Kabir; ‘to be 
deceived yields joy, to deceive is a sure source 
of misery,’ 

II 

On three or four occasions I saw him during 
the convalescence before the fatal second opera- 
tion. and every day, after the second operation, 
for a few minutes every morning and evening. 
On the first occasion when I met him after he 


had emerged from the first operation, he said : 

“Last night was a night of peace and bliss. Some- 
how the Beatitudes which I like most did not 
haunt me. What came upon my mind again and 
again as a nevcr-to-be-effaccd memory were some 
parts of the Gospel of St. John and the last 
nineteen verses of the second Discourse of the 
Bhagawadgita. They arc still there with me. 
And oh, it was bliss to have Bapu here 

yesterday.” 

* :i; * 

On the second occasion he said: “This has 
been a miracle, this recovery. And yet how 
we fret unnecessarily !” With the faith of one 
who believed with the Apostle that ‘ the very 

hairs of our head are all numbered ’, he said : 

“Not one day more or one day less than He 
feels it right that I should live. To know 
this is a benediction.” And with this he 
hugged me in a close embrace, muttered some 
words I could not hear, and then said : “ Let us 
today have the great Upanishad prayer; From 
the unreal, lead me to the Real; from darkness, 
lead me to Light; from death, lead me to 
Immortality.” 

* ♦ ♦ 

On the third occasion he said : “ Let me un- 
burden myself of one or two things that have 
been pressing on my mind. You know the little 
doctor who has been so good to me. He wants 
an autographed photograph of Bapu, and I have 
promised it to him. You must remember to get 
him that.” I asked for his name, but he did not 
know. He asked me to call the nurse. She was 
not quite sure, but she promised she would 
find out. When she gave me the name, I had 
to leave Calcutta, But I said: “ I shall see that 
he gets it.” Then he said : “ And now there is 
another thing. You know our friend gave me 
Rs. — for Palestine work. I was to have gone 
there. Twice I had very nearly gone, but could 
not actually go, though I have been doing work 
for the Jews off and on. Anyway the money 
was unused, when as you know — approached 
me with her troubles, and I gave her half 
of it. Now there is a little money that I have 
in the bank which can go to make good this 
loss. Please explain this to our good friend and 
tell him I can return the whole amount if he 
so wishes, otherwise if he permits I can give 
that small amount to my sisters. But ask Bapu 
what he thinks. In any case do write to the 
friend. I had no right to use his money as I 
did, and it worries me.” 

* * * 

On the last occasion he was full of the 
Ramgarh resolution, he said he knew that victory 
was sure to come, and he began immediately 
to discuss the European situation, but I stopped 
him from exerting himself. Then he said: “I 
have been thinking more and more of the Gita. 
W^hat a capital idea it is — the one of man’s 
eternal war with evil. There are wars on the 
physical plane and we know them. But there 



APRIL 13, 1940] HARIJAN 8^ 


are mightier wars on the spiritual plane which 
we have to be unceasingly fighting.” 

* * 

One can thus see the atmosphere that he had 
created around himself and the thoughts and 
prayers that occupied his mind< On the day of 
the second operation an hour before the ordeal 
I saw him. I gave him Bapu’s and Rajkumari’s 
messages and the prayers of us all. He beamed. 
Then he smiled and said : “ They have shaven 
off my beard and moustache. All clean gone!” 
I said : ” You will remember that Gurudev also 
had to lose his and was none the worse for it.” 
Then he said : “Whatever happens to me, 
Mahadev, don’t forget that little doctor. Bapu’s 
autographed photograph for him !” If Socrates 
would forget the cock he owed, then would 
C. F. A. forget his debt to the doctor. I am 
ashamed to say that I had not carried the 
photograph with me, but now his debt shall be 
paid. But he was already feeling the effect of 
the medicine he had been given, and so he said : 
“Now I go to sleep with my God.” 

* ♦ 

Then every day I saw him with the Bishop 
of Calcutta, but we rarely engaged him in a talk. 
“It is a blessing to have you here,” he would say, 
and just close his eyes, or sometimes he would ask 
the Bishop to pray. He knew that a dear friend 
Dr. Paton had, like me, gone from farther South 
to be with him during the ordeal. He used to 
see him with the Bishop and me, but had not 
the strength to talk with him. So on the even- 
ing before the last he called me and said: “I 
hope to be better tomorrow and to be able to 
talk to Paton. Tell him.” But it was not to be. 
Those indeed were the last words I heard from 
his lips, for on the last day he was in a semi- 
conscious condition. But there were no groans 
or signs of pain on his serene face which when 
he slipped into the Eternal showed the stamp 
of the ‘Peace that passeth all understanding’. 

Ill 

Though he tramped about like a wandering 
Jew and was here, there and everywhere, he 
found time for writing numerous books. As 
early as 1908 he declared that “ few things have 
pained me more than the false and one-sided 
picture given of the Hindu religiom” by some 
of the Missionaries, and accuses the Church in 
India of “ an unChristian lack of sympathy 
with what was good and noble.” ( North India — 
Handbooks of English Church Expansion ) He 
implores the Missionary to shed his ‘superiority’ 
and his ‘ Sahibhood ’, and tells them : As those 
who desire to be one in heart and soul with 
the people of the land, we must not expect or 
even wish them to approximate to our standard 
of living, but must continually expect and wish 
ourselves to approximate to theirs.” “There is,” 
he adds, “ a vernacular of thought and habit 
and temper to be learnt as well as a vernacular 
language.” But he still talks in this book of 
“ rich additions to the Faith”. That phase did 


not last long. Came the years of fruitful com- 
panionship with the late Shri S. K. Rudra and 
the Poet and Munshi Zakaullah. He studied 
the Upanishads, left the Cambridge Mission, 
and associated himself closely with the Poet’s 
work. In a beautiful monograph on Munshi 
Zakaullah he describes how he, a devout follower 
of Christ, and the Munshi, a devout follower of 
Muhammad, sat together from day to day adding 
to each other’s spiritual treasure, but without 
thought of either converting the other to his 
faith. 

In his What I Owe to ChrisU which may be 
called his spiritual testament and which was 
the ripe fruit of years of experience, he declares 
his final faith : 

** Such an intimate and devoted companionship 
between a Christian Missionary and a Mussalman^ 
without the least thought of conversion, was by no 
means common at that time. There might have 
been some danger of misunderstanding on the part 
of other Mussalmans. But Susil’s ( Rudra’s ) friend- 
ship at this point stood me in good stead, for he 
was well known all over Delhi as having no 
sympathy with proselytising methods, and I too soon 
came to share with him that character. Susil Rudra 
and the leading Indian Christians in Delhi expressed 
the strong opinion that silent influence carrying with 
it the fragrance of a true Christian life .was worth 

all the propagandist teaching in the world 

* Charlie, * Susil would say to me, ‘ I find it difficult 
sometimes to read St. Paul’s Epistles. He is like 
you Englishmen — always trying to force someone to- 
his own point of view and ‘compassing sea and land 
to make one proselyte *. Christ Himself is free 
from such forceful methods to obtain success. ” 

The son of a Fundamentalist father, he had 
started life by declaring that he could not 
possibly believe in eternal punishment, and that 
it was no longer possible for him to receive 
the Holy Communion side by side with the 
parents, and he ended up with the faith quoted 
above, declared a few years ago. 

* * * 

In politics, too, he had had a dijEcult in- 
heritance. His father held firmly to the view 
of India as “a British possession” whose destiny 
had been entrusted by Providence to the British.. 
“At times,” he confesses, “it became painfully 
evident bow deep the fibres ( of this inherit- 
ance) had gone, and how hard it was to eradi- 
cate them completely.” But a few years in 
India were enough to make him stand out for 
full freedom from the foreign yoke. In his 
book on Munshi Zakaullah, he summarises some 
of the discussions he used to have with 
the Munshiji. “Don’t you see,” he would say 
to him, “ we have no intervening power in our 
own country ? Does not the presence of an 
intervening power in India only stir up greater 
strife? Have not the two communities got ta 
settle their own differences without the inter- 
ference of an outside party ? ” Then he says ; 
“I had very often spoken to him of the evils 



AJLM 


[_ x<l», iSW 


I saw to be inherent in foreign rule; and 1 had 
put forward very strongly the idea that India 
should govern herself independently, and not to 
be tied any longer by the strings of a Govern- 
ment many thousands of miles away. This 
anomaly of the foreign and distant administra- 
tion had always seemed to me preposterous.” 

But his outstanding contribution was an essay 
on Independence wherein he made out a strong 
plea for a declaration of Indian Independence. 
He exclaims that it can brook not a moment’s 
delay, and bases his thesis on two fundamental 
maxims of Seeley in his Expansion of England. 
“ Subjection for a long time to a foreign yoke 
is one of the most potent causes of national 
deterioration,” said Seeley. ” This is a terrible 
fact of history to be faced,” said C. F. A, “Any 
further remaining in a state of dependence within 
the British Empire would appear to mean an in- 
creasing measure of national deterioration. We 
must therefore awake and shake ourselves free.’’ 
Then there is the second maxim which drives 
us Indians on the horns of a dilemma : “ To 
withdraw the British Government from a country 
like India which is dependent on it, and which 
we have made incapable of depending on any- 
thing else, would be the most inexcusable of all 
conceivable crimes, and might possibly cause the 
most stupendous of all conceivable calamities.” 
This, he declares, is a vicious circle — perpetual 
dependence, perpetual subjection, perpetual depen- 
dence! India must shake herself free, Gandhiji 
had given the mantra, and complete non-co- 
operation with the foreign rule in a non-violent 
manner is the only remedy. “ The sentence about 
subjection,” said C. F. A., “ought to be written 
on the heart of every Indian with all the humi- 
liation it implies. Until the humiliation is more 
deeply felt, there is no hope” of the remedy 
being applied. 

It was the death of this unique friend of 
India that Hindus, Mussalmans, Christians — Indian 
and English — had assembled on the 5th of April 
to mourn at the St. Paul’s Cathedral in Calcutta. 
The servants and bearers and chauffeurs who 
inquired daily about his health knew that it was 
a friend of the poor who had passed away, and 
they too shared the grief of the rest. 

Sevagram, 8-4-40 M. D. 


The Home and Village Doctor 
By Satish Chandra Dasgupta 
1384 pages. 18 chapters. Copious Index of 32 
pages. 219 illustrations. Price Rs. 5 cloth-bound; 
Rs. 6 leather-bound. By V. P. P. Rs. 6 and Rs. 7 
respectively. Published by Khadi Pratisthan, 15 College 
Square, Calcutta. Available at (1) Harijan offic e — 
Poona 4; (2) Harijan office — 81 Queen’s Road, 
opp. Marine Lines Station, Bombay 2. “Every village 
worker knowing English will make it a point to 
possess a copy,” says Gandhiji. Several eminent 
doctors have spoken highly of the book. 

Educational Reconstruction 
Price Rs, 1-4-0, Postage 3 As. 



A True Friend oii the Poor 

In the death of C, F. Andrews not only 
England, not only India, but humanity has lost 
a true son and servant. And yet his death is 
a deliverance from pain and a fulfilment of his 
mission on this earth. He will live through 
those thousands who have enriched themselves by 
personal contact or contact with his writings. In my 
opipion Charlie Andrews was one of the great- 
est and best of Englishmen. And because he 
was a good son of England be became also a 
son of India. And he did it all for the sake 
of humanity and for his Lord and Master Jesus 
Christ. I have not known a better man or a 
better Christian than C. F. Andrews. India 
bestowed on him the title of Deenabandhu. He 
deserved it because he was a true friend of the 
poor and downtrodden in all climes. 

Sevagram, 5-4r-40 ( Statement to the press ) 

Andrews’ Legacy 

Nobody probably knew Charlie Andrews as 
well as I did. Gurudev was gum — master — to 
him. When we met in South Africa, we simply 
met as brothers and remained as such to the 
end. There was no distance between us. It was 
not a friendship between an Englishman and an 
Indian. It was an unbreakable bond between two 
seekers and servants. But I am not giving my 
reminiscences of Andrews, sacred as they are. 
I want Englishmen and Indians, whilst the 
memory of the death of this servant of England 
and India is still fresh, to give a thought to the 
legacy he has left for us both. There is no 
doubt about his love for England being equal 
to that of the tallest of Englishmen, nor can 
there be any doubt of his love for India being 
equal to that of the tallest of Indians. He said 
on his bed from which he was never to rise, 
" Mohan, Swaraj is coming.” Both Englishmen 
and Indians can make it come, if they will. 
Andrews was no stranger to the present rulers 
and most Englishmen whose opinion carries 
weight. He was known to every politically- 
minded Indian. At the present moment I do 
not wish to think of English misdeeds. They 
will be forgotten, but not one of the heroic 
deeds of Andrews will be forgotten so long 
as England and India live. If we really love 
Andrews’ memory, we may not have hate in 
us for Englishmen, of whom Andrews was among 
the best and the noblest. It is possible, quite 
possible, for the best Englishmen and the best 
Indians to meet together and never to separate till 
they have evolved a formula acceptable to both 
The legacy left by Andrews is worth the effort.' 
That is the thought that rules me whilst I con- 
template the benign face of Andrews and what 
innumerable deeds of love he performed so that 
India may take her independent place among 
the nations of the earth. 

Sevagram, 9-4-40 



April 13, 1940 3 


HARIJAIT 


85 


How Not to Do It 

Prof. Ranga is a co-worker whom I have had 
the pleasure of knowing for a long time. He 
is brave and good-natured, but he has the 
knack of often saying things he ought not to 
and doing wrong things at the wrong time. 
He sent me a telegram when he had decided 
to break the order of internment served upon 
him. He knew that he was under discipline. 
If he had left me the time, I should have 
asked him to obey the order to confine him- 
self to his place, Nidubrole. By compliance he 
would have shown a fine spirit of discipline 
and today he would be doing constructive work 
in his place and earning the privilege of 
joining the civil disobedience brigade. As it is, 
in my opinion, he has harmed the cause and 
done no good to himself or anybody. He has 
harmed the cause by setting a bad example to 
those who look up to him for guidance. If 
1 could persuade him, I would certainly advise 
him to inform the authorities that he had 
committed a breach of internal discipline for 
which he was sorry and that, if he was 
discharged, he would gladly proceed to Nidubrole 
and remain there till the order of internment 
was withdrawn. I make bold to say that, if 
he followed my advice, he would help me 
and help the country’s cause. 

Sevagram, 9-4-40 M. K. G. 

CHAEKHA — SWAEAJ — AHIMSA 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

A correspondent says now that civil dis- 
obedience is in the air I must once more, even 
at the risk of repeating myself, summarise in a 
single article my argument showing that there 
is a vital connection between the charkha, 
Swaraj, and ahimsa. I gladly make the attempt. 

The spinning wheel represents to me the 
hope of the masses. The masses lost thdt 
freedom, such as it was. with the loss of the 
charkha. The charkha supplemented the agri- 
culture of the villagers and gave it dignity. It 
was the friend and solace of the widow. It 
kept the villagers from idleness. For the charkha 
included all the anterior and posterior industries 
— ginning, carding, warping, sizing, dyeing and 
weaving. These in their turn kept the village 
carpenter and the blacksmith busy. The charkha 
enabled the seven hundred thousand villages to 
become self-contained. With the exit of the 
charkha went the other village industries, such 
as the oil press. Nothing took the place of 
these industries. Therefore the villages were 
drained of their varied occupations and their 
creative talent and what little wealth these 
brought them. 

The analogy of the other countries in which 
too village handicrafts were destroyed will not 
serve tis because, whereas the villagers there 
had some compensating advantages. India’s 
villagers had practically none. The industrialised 
countries of the West were exploiting other 
nations. India is herself an exploited country. 


Hence, if the villagers are to come into their 
own, the most natural thing that suggests itself 
is the revival of the charkha and all it means. 

This revival cannot take place without an 
army of selfless Indians of intelligence and 
patriotism working with a single mind in the 
villages to spread the message of the charkha 
and bring a ray of hope and light into their 
lustreless eyes. This is a mighty effort at co- 
operation and adult education of the correct 
type. It brings about a silent and sure revolu- 
tion like the silent but sure and life-giving 
revolution of the charkha. 

Twenty years’ experience of charkha work has 
convinced me of the correctness of the argu- 
ment here advanced by me. The charkha has 
served the poor Muslims and Hindus in almost 
an equal measure. Nearly five crores of rupees 
have been put into the pockets of these lakhs 
of village artisans without fuss and tomtoming. 

Hence I say without hesitation that the 
charkha must lead us to Swaraj in terms of 
the masses belonging tou. all faiths. The charkha 
restores the villages to their rightful place and 
abolishes distinctions between high and low. 

But the charkha cannot bring Swaraj, in fact 
it will not move, unless the nation has faith 
in non-violence. It is not exciting enough. 

Patriots yearning for freedom are apt to look 

down upon the charkha. They will look in 

vain to find it in history books. Lovers of 

liberty are fired with the zeal to fight and 
banish the foregin ruler. They impute all the 
vices to him and see none in themselves. They 
cite instances of countries having gained their 
freedom through seas of blood. The charkha 
devoid of violence seems an utterly tame affair. 

In 1919 the lovers of the liberty of India 
were introduced to non-violence as the only 
and sure means to Swaraj and to the charkha 
as a symbol of non-violence. The charkha found 
its proud place on the national flag in 1921. 
But non-violence had not gone deep into the 
heart of India, and so the charkha never came 
into its own. It will never come into its 
own unless the vast body of Congressmen 
develop a living faith in non-violence. When 
they do so they will, without needing any argu- 
ment, discover for themselves that there is no 
other symbol of non-violence than the charkha. 
and that without its universalisation there will 
be no visible expression of non-violence. It is 
common ground that without non-violence there 
can be no non-violent disobedience. My argument 
may be false, my data may be faulty. But holding 
the views I do, let me proclaim that without 
fulfilment of the conditions prescribed by me 
I simply cannot declare civil disobedience. 

Sevagram, 9-4-40 


Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radhakrishnan. CNew Bdition) Rs. 5-10-0. 
Postage 7 As. Available at Harijan office-Poona 4 , 
and 67 & 81 Queen's Road, Bombay 2. 



86 


HAEIJAN 


[ April 13, 1940 



4-^dtijdn 


1 Apr. IS 


1940 


ALL ON TRIAL 

( By M, K. Gandhi ) 

** My immediate object in writing to you is to 
draw your attention to the activities of the Khaksars. 
What has taken place in Lahore is well known to 
you. The Khaksar movement has been declared to 
he an unlawful association. I enclose a synopsis of 
the writings and speeches of Alama Mashriqui. They 
must have been brought to your notice before. But 
I have marked the portions which show that it is 
a movement directly opposed to non-violence of 
which you are an apostle. It is feared that the 
ban may be removed. If that happens, we will 
attribute it to what appears to us to be an im- 
possible attitude adopted by the Congress — creating 
deadlock in seven provinces out of eleven. The 
British have no doubt from the very beginning adopted 
the policy of divide and rule, but the policy adopted 
by the Congress has contributed no less to the British 
relying solely on the support of the Muslims. The 
suppression of a violent movement like that of the 
Khaksars falls within the special responsibilities of 
the Governor under Section 52 ( 1 ) ( a ), but the 
Governor may refrain from adopting such a course 
for the simple reason that it may lead to liie 
resignation of the present ministry and the addition 
of an eighth province to the seven in wliich the 
constitution has already been suspended. If the ban 
is removed, Hindu and Sikh organisations will be 
formed on the same lines as chat of the Khaksars. 
The Akalis assembled at Attari the other day 
resolved to enlist a lakh of men to the ranks of 
their Dal If that plan materialises, there will be 
bloodshed in the land. Can you remain a quiet and 
inactive observer of the carnage which will be the 
necessary result of these movements? What do you 
propose to do to prevent such a catastrophe ? " 

This is an extract from a letter from a well- 
known Punjabi, He is right in surmising that 
I must have received Khaksar literature. I am 
not publishing what my correspondent has sent, 
I am studying the papers and hope to be able 
as soon as possible to give a resume of the 
literature in my possession. There is no doubt 
that it is a military and militant organisation. 
No Government can allow private military 
organisations to function without endangering 
public peace. I am quite sure that the Punjab 
Government will not permit the Khaksar orga- 
nisation to be revived in its original form. I 
quite agree with my correspondent that, if the 
Khaksars are permitted to function as before, 
the Sikhs and others will have to be treated 
likewise. This cannot but lead to a clash. 

My correspondent, however, suggests that, if 
the ban is removed, “we will attribute it to 
what appears to us to be an impossible attitude 


adopted by the Congress — creating a deadlock in 
seven provinces out of eleven.” I am unable to 
subscribe to the view. The Congress resignations 
had nothing to do with the communal tension. 
They were an honourable protest against the 
British Government making India a belligerent 
country over the responsible heads of the eleven 
provinces which were supposed to be auto- 
nomous and resorting to other arbitrary acts 
in connection with the war. The resignations 
were the least and the mildest step the 
Congress could have taken. But events have 
justified the step on other grounds too. Com- 
munal bitterness would have increased if the 
Congress ministries had continued. So long as 
the Congress retains its non-violent policy, it 
cannot administer the affairs of the country 
except with the willing consent of the vast 
majority of the people. Mere majority through 
the ballot box does not count. If [ have my 
way with the Congress, I would not allow it 
to hold power with the aid of the British 
bayonet. I did not hesitate to express my dis- 
sent publicly when the Congress ministers were 
obliged to make use of the police and even the 
military to suppress public violence. They were 
bound to use them if they were to remain in 
power. My point was that, having suppressed 
violence as they were bound to, the Congress 
might have made a public declaration that it 
had not attained non-violent control over the 
people and that therefore, consistently with its 
policy, it should abdicate. 

But I fear that in holding this view I am 
in a minority of one. My non-violence is not 
exhausted with the effort to displace the British 
Government. Such non-violence would be poor 
stuff, hardly deserving the name. Therefore, if 
I can help it, there will be no Congress minis- 
try without a substantial communal settlement. 
I am quite clear that real independence is 
impossible without a consistent non-violent 
technique. I am equally clear that there i s 
hope of India gaining real independence if the 
Congress will refuse to compromise on it and 
will adhere to the means and for so doing 
dare to wander in the wilderness. 

The Khaksar menace is no menace in itself. 
As a symptom of a deeper disease it is a 
portent. To bring into being rival organisations 
is a simple thing, but it is no remedy. It 
merely multiplies the evil. If I had my way, 
I would ask the people to meet the Khak- 
sar violence with non-violence. But from the 
papers and the correspondence before me, I 
observe that the people seek outside protection 
against the danger, real or imaginary. That 
means the consolidation of existing authority, 
supplemented perhaps by private defensive 
preparations. I am interested in neither. 

I have not discussed the terrible toll of 
deaths the Khaksars had to pay. My sympathies 
ate .wholly with the bereaved families. I say 
nothing about the shooting, A special tribunal 




87 


-Apeil 13, 1940 ] HABIJAK 


is inquiring into the whole affair. If the tragedy 
leads to a searching of hearts, whatever the 
finding of the Committee, it will nit have been 
enacted in vain. 

Sevagram, 8-4-40 

A HUMBLE TRIBUTE 

Many tributes have been paid and will con- 
tinue to be paid to the personal *cy and work 
of Charlie Andrews. I had the privilege of 
knowing him from my early years. His kindly 
eyes and smile which were but an index of the 
loving heart that beat within his breast will 
always remain with those who came in contact 
with him. It is rarely that one can say about 
any person that he or she never spoke a harsh 
word to or of anyone. But it is true of Charlie. 

1 have seen him return from interviews with 
officials where harsh words had been said to 
him and about those whom he loved. But no 
anger ever entered his heart, and he knocked 
again and again at the doors of those who mis- 
understood him, his overflowing love for India, 
and the burning desire that his England should 
do justice by her. Many instances come to my 
mind of his kindness and generosity. Hundreds 
of young men owe their education to his help. 
On more than one occasion has he returned to 
our house bereft of his coat and drenched 
with rain because he felt that some poor hill- 
man carrying a heavy load on his back needed 
the garment more than he did. Money given 
to him for something he needed himself has 
often fulfilled another’s want. And always these 
unselfish acts were performed with the utmost 
joy. Tears would come to bis eyes when he 
heard of oppression or injustice anywhere, and 
his utter humility was one of his greatest 
attractions. 

With his unique career at Cambridge of which 
University he was a triple first and his facile 
pen, he was told by an eminent divine that he 
was throwing away a brilliant future in the 
Church of England by coming to India. “The 
highest office here can be yours with your rare 
gifts.” The simple answer given was “ India 
calls”. And India never ceased to call him. 
While he loved his own country with a rare 
devotion, I always felt he was happiest in 
Indian homes and how many that have loved 
to have him and minister to him will miss one 
who through all these years has been such a 
loyal friend. 

His death has left an aching void which it 
will not be possible to fill. Rarely are English- 
men able to identify themselves as he did with 
those whose interests seemingly or from the 
material point of view conflict with England’s. , 

Requiescat m pace> and may the fragrant 
memory of a dedicated life enable us to give 
ourselves in greater and greater measure for 
the service of suffering humanity. 

• Sevagram, 5-4-40 Amrit Kaur 


A CHINESE VISITOR 

All foreigners of note that visit India are 
naturally drawn to Sevagram. Recently no one 
has done more than Pandit Jawaharial to raise 
the status of India in the eyes of the world. 
And with his burning interest in world affairs 
he never ceases to emphasise the necessity for 
us, however immersed we may be in our own 
struggle, to view the same in the light of a 
larger struggle for a new order. By his visit 
to China he has brought that land and its 
problems very near to us. Many Chinese friends 
have come and brought their message of good 
will. The other day a devoted admirer of the 
great Chinese leader Sun Yat Sen came to pay 
his homage to Gandhiji, armed with a number 
of pertinent questions. 

“ Do you believe that the British, knowing 
them as you do, will give you independence 
without a fight ?” he commenced. 

“ It all depends,” replied Gandhiji. “ I do not 
think they would want to have a fight if they 
were conscious of our strength. But today they 
do not feel our strength.” 

“ Have you any means other than civil dis- 
obedience to enforce your will?” 

“ Yes. If we had no internecine quarrels, 
the British Government would not be able to 
resist us. ” 

” You are aware that in China we have paid 
heavily for unity. V7e have had to suffer 25 
years of civil war. Might not India have to 
suffer the same horrors if the British withdrew?” 

“ It is impossible to say definitely what will 
happen. It is, how-ever, not necessary that there 
should be internal w'ar, I imagine conditions in 
China were different. The whole populace there 
was fired with the spirit of revolt. Here we 
in our seven hundred thousand villages do not 
fly at each other’s throats. There are no sharp 
divisions between us. But non-violence applied 
to large masses of mankind is a new experiment 
in the history of the world. I am buoyed up 

by my faith in its efficacy; the millions may 

not have caught that faith, and it may be that 
civil war will be the price we have to pay 
for our liberty. But if we win truly non- 
violcntly against the British, I am sure there 
will be no civil war.” 

“After 25 years of civil war in China we 
have now found one person to represent us in 
our Generalissimo. Is it not possible that the 
Indian people will need someone more martial 
than you with your spiritual leadership?” 

“ If there is civil war, it will have ' proved 

my. bankruptcy. A militarist will then be the 

need.” 

“ In the event of Indian independence would 
India develop along republican lines? Is demo- 
cracy suited to the character of the Indian 
people ? ” 

“These are problematical questions and it is 
difficult to say definitely one way or the other. 
If we evolve non-violently, democracy will not 



88 


HARIJAN 


only suit us but we shall represent the truest 
democracy in the world.” 

“If the British withdrew, could you protect 
yourselves ?” 

“ Yes, if both Hindus and Muslims evolve 
non-violently. ” 

“ Is it true to say that the majority of Indians 
of the upper class do lip loyalty only to nation- 
alism and in their heart of hearts want British 
rule?” 

“ I am of opinion that the vast majority does 
not want British rule. They want freedom from 
foreign domination,” 

“ If the British withdrew, would you keep 
any Englishmen here?” 

“ Yes, if they will transfer their allegiance to 
.us and if they will serve India with their great 
ability, their technical knowledge and powers of 
research. ” 

“ Would you receive the help of a third 
party to free you from your yoke ? 

“ Never. We have to find ourselves through 
our own inner strength, otherwise we must fall. 
Any structure built with outside help must of 
necessity be weak.” 

“ The British are a bargaining nation, are 
they not? Have you anything with which to 
bargain with them ? ” 

** Very little. And in any case I would not 
bargain for my liberty.” 

“Do you believe conscience can make a man 
good ? ” 

“ Yes, but it can make a coward of him too ! ” 

“Can religion make a man moral?” 

“ Yes, but it must be real religion, that which 
inspires one from within with a spirit of love 
and service.” 

“ In China we used to think that communism 
would never take any root, but it has now got 
a definite hold. Can the same be said of India?” 

“I may say that communists have not made 
much headway yet in India, and I somehow 
feel that the character of our people will not 
easily lend itself to communist methods.” 

“Is it true that an Indian is a Hindu or 
a Muslim first and an Indian afterwards?” 

“It is not true, generally speaking, though 
neither will sell his religion for his country.” 

“ Religion plays no part in our political life,” 
said the Chinese friend, “and this applies to 
Chinese Muslims too. Is India, likely to develop 
more as an Eastern nation, or will- the bond with 
the English be a difficult thing to get rid of ? 
It seems to me that English modes of life and 
thought have taken deep root here.” 

“ You are right where cities . are concern- 
ed. But you will find, if you were to go 
there, that the villages, which are the real 
India, are wholly untouched. All the same, 
English ways and customs, their methods of 
administration, language and thought have had a 
devastating effect on so-called educated India. 
And this cultural conquest may perhaps never 
be wholly got rid of. “ 


[ APRIL 13 , 1940 '' 


“ India is a nation of so many races. Do yons 
think that should prove to be an obstacle to 
unity ? ” 

“ None whatever. ” 

“It is strange how we and you have the 
same problems, social and otherwise. ” 

“ Yes, and that is why we are really so close 
to each other — friends in distress.” And here 
Gandhiji related, as he often loves to relate* 
incidents from his vast experiences, how well 
he knew the Chinese colony in South Africao 
how he was their lawyer, what close contact he 
had with them, how they became his comrades 
in the fight for vindication of the rights of 
Easterners there. He laughingly twitted the 
Chinese friend of the proverbial “inscrutability” 
of the Chinese as well as of the Japanese. 
He told him how Sevagram Ashram had the 
good fortune to have a Japanese monk 
at the moment — “ quiet, disciplined, kind, but 
with a characteristic reserve which does not 
enable any of us to know his real mind. It 
may be a good thing, it adds to his dignity* 
it certainly adds to his peace of mind, and he 
is untouched, unruffled, by domestic difficulties 
and quarrels. I felt the same with the Chinese 
friends in South Africa. I addressed them 
hundreds of times, I made no distinction betweem 
them and Indians, but I always felt that your 
people had built a wall round themselves. You 
are so highly cultured and perhaps, therefore, 
artificial. Take your art” — and Gandhiji pointed 
to a lovely picture of hand- woven silk, framed 
and hanging on the wall, which the Chinese 
mission of goodwill had given him recently — * 
“ it is a work of beauty and joy, but that art 
is inscrutable to me. But I do not mean this 
in a .bad sense. I have trusted my Chinese 
co-workers and they were loyal and I am much 
drawn to China and the Chinese.” 

“ May I ask one or two more important ques- 
tions before leaving ? ” said the Chinese friends,. 
“ Do you expect to sec India independent ? ” 

“ Yes, of course,” came the reply in no un- 
certain terms. “I 7m7U to see India free in my 
lifetime. But God may not consider me fit 
enough to see the dream of life fulfilled. Then 
I shall quarrel, not with Him hut with myself.” 

“ But without an array how can you ever 
succeed ? ” 

“Well, we have done so t’ f.ir. Wc are 
nearing our goal without having fired a single 
shot. It will be a miracle if wc succeed. But 
there is nothing to make me doubt the efficacy 
of the weapon of non-violence. Whether, how- 
ever, we have the requisite degree of it within 
us has yet to be proved.” 

"Is there hatred against the British?” 

“ Yes — alas — but if we remain non-violent, 
hatred will die as everything does from disuse.” 

"It is very hard for us to get rid of hatred 
against Japan.” 

“ Yes, it will take generations for you as 
you are using violence against them. I do not 



APEIL 13, 1940 1 HARIJAN 89 


say that you should not have defended your- 
selves violently, but under those circumstances 
hatred cannot die.” 

‘‘ Are the British easier to deal with than 
any other people ? '* 

‘“They are as easy, in terms of non-violence, 
to deal with as anyone else. But not having 
dealt with anyone else I cannot say from prac- 
tical experience. All conquerors of India have 
reacted to what is noble in Indian culture and 
in Indian nature, the Muslims included, I 
believe the Germans would have done likewise. 
It may even be that the English reaction has 
been less than what others’ may have been 
because of their insularity and colour prejudice,” 

If Gandhiji had the time, there would have 
been more questions, but before getting into 
the car the visitor said, “ My half hour has 
been the fulfilment of a long chcrised dream, 
I shall never forget it.” 

Sevagram, 7-4-40 A. K« 

QUESTION BOX 

( By M., K. Gandhi ) 

A Domestic Difficulty 

Q. You have rightly said that no one who 
has not renounced untouchability in every shape 
and form can take part in Satyagraha, Supposing 
a Congressman’s wife does not share his convic- 
tion in this regard and won’t let him bring 
Harijans into his house, what should he do — 
coerce his wife into conformity with his views, 
renounce her, or renounce the Satyagraha 
struggle ? 

A. No occasion for coercing your wife. You 
should let her go her way and you should go 
yours. This would mean her having a separate 
kitchen for herself and, if she likes, also a 
separate room. Thus there is no question of 
renouncing the struggle. 

Teachers and Satyagraha 

Q. What part should a teacher who has faith 
in your constructive work play in the coming 
struggle, that of an active Satyagrahi or a 
passive Satyagrahi only ? 

A. The data given by you are insufficient, 
but from what you have given I can say that 
you should play the passive part. 

State Praja Mandals 

Q. What is the duty, in the event of civil 

disobedience, of members of Praja Mandals in 

the States and the rest of the people of the 
States ? 

A, If civil disobedience is started by the 
Congress, it will be as against the British 

Government. The people of the States cannot 

and ought not to offer any civil disobedience in 
the States. Hence it follows that the Praja 
Mandals will remain unaffected by the Congress 
civil disobedience. But individuals of the States 
can, if they wish, join the civil disobedience 
campaign in British India, They can, therefore, 
send in their names to the nearest Congress 
committee outside their State. 


The More Essentia! 

Q. Which is the more essential requirement 
in your mind for starting civil disobedience — 
your inner urge which may make you fight 
even single-handed, or the fulfilment of your 
conditions by Congressmen? What will be the 
position if they are prepared and you have not 
felt the call? 

A. There can be no inner urge if my con- 
ditions are not fulfilled. It is possible that there 
may be apparent fulfilment of conditions but 
there may be no inner response in me. In such 
a case I cannot declare civil disobedience; but 
it will be open to the Congress to repudiate 
me and declare civil disobedience independently 
of me. 

Mom-Congressmeni 

Q. Will those who are not now either Con- 
gress members or active Satyagrahis be asked 
to join the movement ? If so, how ? 

A. They should become Congress members 
and have their names registered as Satyagrahis. 
A. B. C. Classes 

Q. Why should not all Satyagrahis ask to be 
included in “ C ’ Class only ? 

A. There is a great deal to be said in favour 
of your suggestion. 

Secrecy 

Q. You should give your opinion clearly 
about secrecy. During the last struggle there 

was a great deal of secrecy to outwit the 

authorities. 

A. I am quite clear that secrecy does no 

good to our cause. It certainly gave joy to 

those who were able successfully to outwit 
the police. Their cleverness was undoubted. But 
Satyagraha is more than cleverness. Secrecy 
takes away from its dignity. Satyagrahis have 
no reason to have secret books or secret funds. 
I am aware that my opinion has not found 
favour among many co-workers. But I have seen 
no reason to change it. I admit I was lukewarm 
before. Experience has taught me that I should 
have been firm. 

Damage to Property 

Q. You know that many Congressmen openly 
preached that there was no violence in damaging 
property, i. e. destroying rails, burning thanas 
when they are not occupied, cutting telegraph 
poles, burning post boxes, etc. 

A. I have never been able to understand 
this reasoning. It is pure violence. Satyagraha 
is self-suffering and not inflicting suffering on 
others. There is surely often more violence in 
burning a man’s property than doing him 
physical injury. Have not so-called Satyagrahis 
preferred imprisonment to fines or confiscation 
of their property ? Well has one of my critics 
said that I have succeeded in teaching disruptive 
disobedience till at last it has come home to 
roost, but that I have signally failed in teaching 
people the very difficult art of non-violence. 
He has also said that in my haste I have put 
the cart before the horse and therefore all my 



90 


HAEIJAN 


talk of civil disobedience is folly if not worse, 
I am not able to give a satisfactory reply to 
this criticism. I am but a poor mortal. I 
believe in my experiment and in my uttermost 
sincerity. But it may be that the only fitting 
epitaph after my death will be “ He tried but 
signally failed.” 

Sevagram, 7-4-40 

TWO QUESTIONS FROM AMERICA 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

A friend writing from America propounds the 
following two questions: 

“1. Granted that Satyagraha is capable of win- 
ning India’s independences what are the chances 
of its being accepted as a principle of State policy 
in a free India? In other words, would a strong 
and independent India rely on Satyagraha as a 
method of self-preservation, or would it lapse back 
to seeking refuge in the age-old institution of war, 
however defensive its character? To restate the ques- 
tion on the basis of a purely theoretic problem: Is 
Satyagraha likely to be accepted only in an up“hill 
battle, when the phenomenon of martyrdom is fully 
effective, or is it also to be the instrument of a 
sovereign authority which has neither the need nor 
the scope of behaving on the principle of martyrdom? 

2. Suppose a free India adopts Satyagraha as an 
instrament of State policy, how would she defend 
herself against probable aggression by another sove- 
reign State? To restate the question on the basis 
of a purely theoretic problem: What would be 
the Satyagrahic action-patterns to meet the invading 
army at the frontier ? What kind of resistance can 
be offered the opponent before a common area of 
action, such as the one now existing in India between 
the Indian nationalists and the British Government, 
is established ? Or should the Satyagrahis withhold 
their action until after the opponent has taken over 
the country ? ” 

The questions are admittedly theoretical. They 
are also premature for the reason that I have 
not mastered the whole technique of non-violence. 
The experiment is still in the making. It is 
not even in its advanced stage. The nature of 
the experiment requires one to be satisfied with 
one step at a time. The distant scene is not 
for him to see. Therefore my answers can only 
be speculative. 

In truth, as I have said before, now we are 
not having unadulterated non-violence even in 
our struggle to win independence. 

As to the first question, I fear that the 
chances of non-violence being accepted as a 
principle of State policy are very slight, so far 
as I can see at present. If India docs not accept 
non-violence as her policy after winning inde- 
pendence, the second question becomes superfluous. 

But I may state my own individual view of 
the potency of non-violence. I believe that a 
State can be administered on a non-violent basis 
if the vast majority of the people are non- 
violent. So far as I know, India is the only 
country which has a possibility of being such a 


[ APRIL 13, 1940 


State. I am conducting my experiment in that 
faith. Supposing, therefore, that India attained in- 
dependence through pure non-violence, India could 
retain it too by the same means, A non-violent 
man or society does not anticipate or provide 
for attacks from without. On the contrary such, 
a person or society firmly believes that nobody 
is going to disturb them. If the worst happens, 
there are two ways open to non-violence. To- 
yield possession but non- cooperate with the 
aggressor. Thus, supposing that a modern edition 
of Nero descended upon India, the representatives 
of the State will let him in but tell him that 
he will get no assistance from the people. They 
will prefer death to submission. The second 
way would be non-violent resistance by the 
people who have been trained in the non-violent 
way. They would offer themselves unarmed as 
fodder for the aggressor’s cannons. The- underly- 
ing belief in either case is that even a Nero 
is not devoid of a heart. The unexpected 
spectacle of endless rows upon rows of men and 
women simply dying rather than surrender to 
the will of an aggressor must ultimately melt 
him and his soldiery. Practically speaking there 
will be probably no greater loss in men than if 
forcible resistance was offered ; there will be no 
expenditure in armaments and fortifications. The 
non-violent training received by the people will 
add inconceivably to their moral height. Such 
men and women will have shown personal 
bravery of a type far superior to that shown 
in armed warfare. In each case the bravery 
consists in dying, not in killing. Lastly, there is 
no such thing as defeat in non-violent resistance. 
That such a thing has not happened before is 
no answer to my speculation. I have drawn 
no impossible picture. Histoty is replete with 
instances of individual non-violence of the type 
I have mentioned. There is no warrant for 
saying or thinking that a group of men and 
women cannot by suflScient training act non- 
violent ly as a group or nation. Indeed the sum 
total of the experience of mankind is that men 
somehow or other live on. From which fact I 
infer that it is the law of love that rules 
mankind. Had violence, i. e. hate, ruled us, we 
should have become extinct long ago. And yet 
the tragedy of it is that the so-called civilised 
men and nations conduct themselves as if the 
basis of society was violence. It gives me 
ineffable joy to make experiments proving that 
love is the supreme and only law of life. Much 
evidence to the contrary cannot shake my faith* 
Even the mixed non-violence of India has sup-* 
ported it, 'But if it is not enough to convince 
an unbeliever, it is enough to incline a friendly 
critic to view it with favour. 

Sevagram. 8-4-40 

Gandhis Challenge to Christianity 

By S. K. George Price Rs. 1-4-0 Postage 3 As. 
extra 

Available at ( 1 ) Harijan Office — Poona 4; 
(2) Harijan Office ~ 67 & 81 Queen’s Road, 
Bombay 2- 



April 13, 1940 ] 


HAEIJAN 


91 


SPINNING WHEEL IN CHINA 

The revival of handspinning and handweaving 
in China under the stress of war has already 
been alluded to in these columns. The January 
number of the American magazine Asia contains 
an article entitled “Tale of a Spinning Wheel” 
by Lewis S. C. Smythe, which describes another 
eflfort in the same direction. The writer is a 
Westerner participating, at the invitation of 
the Chinese Government, in the organization of 
Industrial Cooperatives in China. He has been 
a professor of sociology at the University of 
Nanking (now removed to the interior terri- 
tory of Chengtu) and has been granted leave 
for the new work he has been called upon to 
undertake. Many of the factories situated on 
the west coast of China have been destroyed 
by the Japanese invaders, and the Chinese have 
to fall back upon hand production for many of 
their urgent needs. A plan was thus made in 
January 1939 for making army blankets by simple 
hand methods. In course of his investigations 
for a suitable spinning wheel which was the 
first necessity in the new programme, the writer 
chanced upon an improved model which had 
been simplified by a Chinese by mounting the 
spindle directly over the treadle wheel. Further 
improvements were carried out in the structure 
of the wheel to make it more efficient for 
spinning the sort of woollen yarn needed for 
blankets To make the required number of 
blankets ( 150 thousand ) in time for the coming 
winter 7,500 wheels and 750 handlooms were 
needed. Further work in the direction is thus 
.described : 

*‘The local women soon learned that with the new 
wheel it was easier to produce an even yarn ; greater 
production could be secured; and for beginners the new 
wheel was much easier to learn to operate. Expert 
women workers can produce two catties of yarn per 
•day. Consequently the local weaving union decided 
to provide its fortythree weaving cooperatives with 
the new type of wheel. Women living with their 
families and others who register at the union office 
will be supplied with the wheels on condition that they 
•spin for the blanket programme. They will be trained 
in the use of wheels on condition that each one 
trains ten others. Later, some of these women will 
be organized into spinning coops. Fifty men from 
the weaving coops were trained also and are to 
•supervise the spinning so that the work will be 
kept up to standard.” 

The aluminium required for making ‘ flyers ’ 
•( spindles ) is expected from the remnants of the 
Japanese aircraft destroyed by the Chinese ! The 
Japanese bombers have not yet been able to 
penetrate the interior. Coastal cities and towns 
have been laid waste but the far-off villages 
still remain untouched. And it is here that the 
revival of the handicraft economy is going on. 

The women who spin and the men who weave 
are scattered in countless villages beyond the attack 
of Japanese bombers. The machine coop that makes 
the new wheels is far out in the country on the 
side of a hill. The carpenters and machinists who 
turn the pile of logs and scrap iron, delivered by 
boat, into humming spinning wheels have plenty of 
air and sunshine* The strong brown backs of the 


sawyers swing to the tune of^ ‘ We’ll beat the Japs 
yet, well beat the Japs yet. * For C. I. C. has 
taught them * a new way in which they can use 
their skill and strength to help save their fellow 
countrymen.” 

Efforts are being made to devise anew or dupli- 
cate some sort of small scale carding equipment 
from English models. The new wheel is also 
reported to produce better yarn from uncarded 
wool than from machine-carded wool. Admittedly 
this is an effort made necessary by war condi- 
tions, and whether it will continue even in 
peace times remains to be seen. Readers will 
please not ask further questions about the wheel, 
as it is impossible to get any more information 
or to procure a wheel referred to here from 
China. The importance of the activity lies for 
us primarily in the example it provides us of 
determined corporate effort in which even 
women and children participate, inspired with a 
desire to render some service to their country. 
It also testifies to the fact that rural surround- 
ings and rural handicrafts are proving the last 
resort of an invaded nation. As the writer of 
another article in the same issue of Asia says: 

It is interesting that today, when China is facing 
imperialist Japan with such determination, she is 
reaching out into these districts, not with forts 
and machine guns, but with the idea of bringing 
together the various peoples by helping them in 
industry, in education and health and in the 
possession of more of the better things of life. 
The industrial cooperative, instead of the desperately 
maintained fort, is seen today to be the better way/' 

And what missionary zeal inspires the volun- 
teer men and women who tread the country- 
side imparting to hundreds of their compatriots 
the knowlegc of the new technique of spinning 
and weaving ! Here is a description which bears 
reproduction: 

“ Our chief claim to fame on the way up was 
the new-type spinning wheel which we carried, 
around which would gather groups of interested 
womenfolk. Spinning in this locality is done by 
the oldest known method, and a machine which 
enabled one person to spin two catties instead of 
half a catty in one day was certainly some im- 
provement. Weavers here, we found, also had the 
oldest methods known. Two women stood at a 
little distance from each other, with the warp around 
their waists, and passed the shuttle through it by 
hand. The result was not good, a loosely woven 
article. Some of these people around Sungpan are 
already receiving instruction in the use of both 
the improved spinning wheel and the improved 
loom. To them it is a real advance in 
civilization, and their teacher is thrilled to be 
able to^ impart the knowledge he acquired in an 
orphans’ industrial class in Kwanhsien. He was a 
lad from the Sungpan Valley whose people had lost 
all in the earthquake. He had drifted to Kwanhsien, 
and had been taken in charge by the authorities 
and taught a trade. Filled with the missionary 
spirit, he now tries to impart what he has learned, 
and the audience is certainly appreciative.” 

How much more intensive and widespread 
endeavour do we need for the prosecution of a 
programme which is with us not a mere war 
measure but for some of us is also calculated 
to form the basis of a new economic order 
based on peace. C. S. 



HARIJAJT 


MY POSITION 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Nawabzada Liaqat Ali Khan has, in his criti- 
cism of my reply to Qaid-e-Azam, put some 
questions which I gladly answer. I must adhere 
to my statement that I have never spoken to 
anybody on the communal question as a Hindu, 
I have no authority. Whenever I have spoken 
to anybody I have spoken as a Congressman, 
but often only as an individual. No Congress- 
man, not even the President, can always speak 
as a representative. Big things have always been 
transacted on this planet by persons belonging 
to diflferent organisations coming together and 
talking informally in their non-representative 
capacity. I fear that even the answer I am 
about to give must be taken as representing 
nobody but myself. In the present instance I 
have reason to say that probably I do not 
represent any single member of the Working 
Committee. I am answering as a peace- 
maker, as a friend (and may I say brother) of 
the Mussaimans. 

As a man of non-violence I cannot forcibly 
resist the proposed partition if the Muslims of 
India really insist upon it. But I can never be 
a willing party to the vivisection. I would 
em.ploy every non-violent means to prevent it. 
For it means the undoing of centuries of work 
done by numberless Hindus and Muslims to live 
together as one nation. Partition means a patent 
untruth. My whole soul rebels against the idea 
that Hinduism and Islam represent two antago- 
nistic cultures and doctrines. To assent to such 
a doctrine is for me denial^ of God. For I 
believe with my whole soul that the God of 
the Quran is also the God of the Gita, and 
that we are all, no matter by what name desig- 
nated, children of the same God. I must rebel 
against the idea that millions of Indians who 
were Hindus the other day changed their 
nationality on adopting Islam as their religion. 

But that is my belief. I cannot thrust it 
down the throats of the Muslims who think that 
they are a diflSerent nation. I refuse, however, 
to believe that the eight crores of Muslims will 
say that they have nothing in common with 
their Hindu and other brethren. Their mind can 
only be known by a referendum duly made to 
them on that clear issue. The contemplated 
Constituent Assembly can easily decide the 
question. Naturally on an issue such as this 
there can. be no arbitration. It is purely and 
simply a matter of self-determination. I know 
of no other conclusive method of ascertaining 
the mind of the eight crores of Muslims, 

But the contemplated Constituent Assembly 
will have the framing of a constitution as its 
m ain function. It cannot do this until the 
communal question is settled. 

I still believe that there can be no Swaraj 
by non-violent means without communal unity. 


[ April 13, 1940 


And eight crores of Muslims can certainly bar 
the way to peaceful freedom. 

If then I still talk of civil disobedience, it is 
because I believe that the Muslim masses wane 
freedom as much as the rest of the popuiacion 
of this country. And assuming that they do 
not, civil disobedience will be a powerful means 
of educating public opinion whether Muslim, 
Hindu or any other. It will also be an educa- 
tion of world opinion. But I will not embark 
upon it unless I am, as far as is humanly pos- 
sible, sure that non-violence wil! be observed 
both in spirit and in the letter. I hope the 
Nawabzada has no difficulty in believing that 
whatever is gained by civil disobedience will be 
gained for all. When India gets the power fo 
frame her own constitution, the Muslims will 
surely have a decisive voice in shaping their 
own future. It will not be, cannot be, decided 
by the vote of the majority. 

Lastly, I suggest to the Nawabzada that he 
wrote in haste the lines about the President of 
the Congress. For they are contrary to the 
history of our own times. And he was equally 
in haste in suggesting that “the sole objective 
of the Congress under Mr. Gandhi’s fostering 
care has been the revival of Hinduism and the 
imposition of Hindu culture on a!! and sundry.’’' 
My own objective is not the issue in the terri- 
ble indictment. The objective of the Congress 
is wholy political. Nothing is to be gained by 
making statements that arc incapable of proof. 
So far as my own objective is conccrpcd, my 
life is an open book. I claim to represent nil 
the cultures, for my religion, whatever it may 
be called, demands the fulfilment of all cultures. 
I am at home wherever I go, for [ regard all 
religions with the same respect as my own. 

Sevagram, 9-4-40 

Chrome Tannin^^ for Collagen By Srilisii Chnndrr? 
Dasgupta. Price 8 As. Postaj^'f. 1 Anna. 

On Khaddar By 1). Pattabhi Sitarainayya. Price 
8 As. Postage 1 Anna. 

Available at Harijan OAice-Poona 1; and 81 Queens 
Road, opp. Marine Lines Station, Bombay 2. 


CONTENTS 


Page 

The DiiENAHANDiia 

M. 

D. 

HI 

Chakkiia-Swaraj-Ai I imsa . . . 

M. K. 

Gandhi 

85 

All on Tkiai. 

M. K. 

Gandhi 

S6 

A Humble Tkibutk 

A. 

K. 

37 

A CU[NE«E V ISITOR 

A. 

iv. 

87 

Question Box 

M. K. 

Gandhi 

89 

Two Questions from 




America 

M. K. 

Gandhi 

9;- 

Spinning Wheel in China ... 

C. 

S. 

91 

My Position 

M. K. 

Gandhi 

9Z 

Notes : 




A True Friend of the 




Poor 

M. 

K. G. 

34 

Andrews’ Legacy 

M. 

K. G. 

S4 

How Not to Do It 

M. 

K. G. 

85 


Printed and Pnblished by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press. 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 
SaliMription Rates — INLAND : One year, Rs, 4, Six months, Rs. 2-8, Foreign ; One year, Rs. 5-8 or, 8 »h. or % $, 



Editor : MAHADEV DESAI 


VoL. Vni. No. 10 ] POONA — SATURDAY, APRIL 20, 1940 / [ ONE ANNA 


QUESTION BOX 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Danger of Delay 

Q. You say you will not launch civil dis- 
obedience till Congressmen are 'fully trained in 
non-violence and disciplined. That is right. But 
in the meantime the country is being bled 
white. Increased railway fares, duty on sugar, 
the reduction of sugarcane prices are only a 
few instances -n point. Is it right to delay the 
struggle till our best workers are picked off one 
by one, and thus lose the fight without ‘striking 
a blow’? 

A. I can cite &r more telling instances than 
you have given for justifying civil disobedience. 
But civil disobedience is not being delayed for 
want of justification. It is being delayed for 
want of preparation. I should be a stupid 
general if I began the fight in spite of my 
knowledge that my resources are poor. If the 
leaders are picked off by the Government with- 
out just cause, it would mean an invitation to 
the Congress to fight. I would not answer the 
invitation if I were not ready. The leaders’ 
being picked off can do the country no harm. 
For we know that disciplined jail-going is itself 
a part of the struggle. Moreover, the imprison- 
ment of leaders will test our strength as an 
organisation. A non-violent organisation implies 
the equal education and therefore equal fitness 
of all units. That we have not arrived at that 
stage shows our ignorance of the working of 
non-violence. 

Authorised and Unauthorised Strikes 

Q. In your leading article of March 30, you 
have hoped that passive Satyagrahis will not 
interfere with the course of the struggle by 
“ precipitating strikes of labourers”. There is 
just this cryptic word ** precipitating ” and 
nothing more. When I read it first, I did not 
particularly notice it. But I had to do a lot 
of explaining later. Unless a very careful reader 
or trained to understand your way of thought 
and expression, one is likely to go astray. One 
may miss the force of the word “precipitating” 
and understand it as if you frowned upon all 
strikes of labourers. 

With the recent Ahmedabad fight for a war 
bonus, no one would be entitled to regard you 
as an opponent of labourers’ strikes as such. 
The strike in Ahmedabad was indeed averted, 
but you had approved of it and the workers 
realised their demands. The work in Ahmedabad 


was done methodically. There was proper pre- 
sentation and working out of labour’s demands, 
completing of arbitration, full notice and ballot- 
ing of the over hundred thousand votes on 
the question of the strike. I believe that, if 
after such methodical work a strike cannot be 
averted, you will approve of it and only assure 
yourself that there is no violence. 

A. You are right. I consider myself to be 
an expert in organised strikes. My first success- 
ful attempt was made in South Africa under 
most adverse circumstances. I improved the 
technique in Ahmedabad. I do not claim to have 
reached perfection. I know that strikes can be 
made irresistible, I have discountenanced only 
unauthorised strikes. The Congress has not gained 
control over labour. Some Congressmen have. 
Almost all the strike leaders have their own 
methods. All of them are not non-violent. Some 
are ruled by selfish considerations. Some others 
are unscrupulous. What I, therefore, ask for is 
at least passive, if not active, co-operation. I 
shall not need strikes for the purpose of the 
struggle. What shape mass civil disobedience 
will take, if it ever comes, I cannot say. But I 
can say what it will never do if I have any. 
thing to do with it. I know that, if the Con- 
gress had non-violent control over all labour in 
India, the Congress could become far more power- 
ful than it is today. That control will come 
when the Congress has one policy about labour 
and has enough workers to give effect to it, 

Untouchability and Conversion 

Q. If the object of the Congress in the liqui- 
dation of untouchability is to give Harijans a 
status of equality with the rest, is this not 
achieved by their conversion to Islam ? Why 
does the Independence Fledge allocate the pro- 
gramme of the removal of untouchability to the 
EUndus only? Does this not show that the 
Congress is anxious to maintain a Hindu majo- 
rity and therefore denies to the Mussalmans 
their right of conversion? 

A. Liquidation of untouchability cannot be 
attained by the conversion of untouchables to 
Islam or any other religion. For it is the so- 
called Caste Hindu who has to rid himself of 
the sin of untouchability. He can wash away 
the stain only by doing justice, however tardy, 
to the outcaste. You will thus see why Mus- 
lims are not invited by the Congress to share 
the burden with the Hindus. They have com- 
mitted no sin against the untouchables. I can- 
not prevent you from looking at a simple but 



94 


HAEIJAN 


[ April 20, 1940 


necessary social reform as a political dodge 

to maintain a majority. Tens of thousands of 
Hindus who are doing penance have no thought 
of majority. All they want is to do justice 

to those whom, under the guise of religion. 

Caste Hindus have reduced to a state worse 
than slavery. Lastly, you are hopelessly wrong 
in suggesting that the Congress denies the right 
to Muslims to convert ‘ untouchables The 

Congress cannot prevent anybody from doing 
conversion work. Whether you will exercise the 
right in the right manner or wrong is for you 
to consider. 

Sevagram, 15-4-40 

PRINCELY EXTRAVAGANZA 

I 

In the course of his speech at the recent 
meeting of the Chamber of Princes, the Maha- 
raja Saheb of Bikaner is reported to have said: 

“ It has been alleged in Congress circles that the 
Princes are an imperial creation, that they are 
vassals of the Crown and have no status apart 
from the Crown, that the question of the States is 
a red herring drawn across the path of India’s 
progress for imperialistic purposes, that the problem 
of the States is a bogey raised by the British 
Government...! may here be permitted to state that 
many States, big as well as small, owe their 
existence to the strong arm of their former Rulers 
and that too before the establishment of the British 
Empire in India. Their claims cannot be dismissed 
in this airy fashion which ignores irrefutable histori- 
cal facts... If one might point out in all friendliness, 
it is British India which is the creation of the 
British Government, 

The allegation has also been made that the Princes 
are unfriendly to the Congress. But that is not a 
correct statement of the situation. It is the Con- 
gress, however, which has of late shown active 
hostility to the States, and some of its prominent 
spokesmen have expressed the view that they do 
not want the States in the Federation, and that 
they would tear the treaties of the States as if 
they were scraps of paper and even that they 
would like to see the States done away with.” 

Not an Imperial Creation? 

Unfortunately, this kind of extravaganza has 
become but too common of late in Princely 
utterances. The description of the Constitutional 
position of the Princes in relation to the Para- 
mount Power as ‘vassalage’ or ‘subordinate co- 
operation’, one may in all respect point out, is 
not of Congress coining. It was laid down by 
the duly appointed! representatives of the very 
imperialist order to which, the Maharaja Saheb 
of Bikaner has declared times without number, 
the Princely order are proud to belong. 

As for the other statement to which the 
Maharaja Saheb took exception, viz. that the 
Princes arc an imperial creation, the very defini- 
tion of Indian States in the Government of India 
Act of 1935 is significant. It runs: 

“Indian State means any territory, not being part 
of British India, which His Majesty recognises as 


being such a State, whether described as a State^ 
an estate, a Jagir or otherwise.” 

In other words, their status is made to depend 
purely on “recognition by His Majesty'*. The 
history of British relationship with Princely 
India is littered with instances of States that 
were made or unmade, of zamindaris being 
elevated to chiefships and vice versa, by a breath 
of the imperial power according to the shifting 
needs of its policy. Take the case of the Tri- 
butary Mahals of Orissa, 26 in number, which 
collectively cover an area equal to that of an 
Indian Province and affect the destinies of 46 
lakhs of population. We have it on the highest 
authority that “ there was nothing in the nature 
of the connection of Government with the pro- 
prietors that would preclude their being brought 
under the ordinary jurisdiction of the courts if 
it should ever be thought desirable,”’ when 
they first came into relation with the British 
Government in 1803-1804 on the cession 
of Orissa by the Marathas. But in the Regu- 
lations of 1805 all these States, except Baud, 
Pal Lahara and Athamallik “ of which no 
mention was made **, were exempted from the 
Bengal Regulations “ on grounds of expediency 
alone”. The process was repeated in C. P. 
where “sound policy suggested the establish- 
ment..,, of a succession of , Rajput chiefships as 
barriers to the revival of Maratha soverciSnty which 
the Peshwa had finally resigned in 1818. ” And 
so, every part of this large tract, “ in which 
civil and predatory war had obliterated all 
political landmarks, was placed under some con- 
stituted authority; and thus from the wreck 
there emerged no less than 145 chiefships, which 
arc now recognised and placed under the 
Governor-General’s Agent in Central India.”® 

In Kathiawad, after a prolonged controversy, in 
which three members of the Government of 
Bombay, including Sir Bartle Frcre, the then 
Governor of Bombay, laid it down as their 
considered and definite opinion that Kathiawad 
was British territory, and the Government of 
India, in their despatch dated 14th April 1864, 
to the Secretary of State for India, recommended 
that the matter might be referred for final 
decision to law ofl&cers of the Crown, the 
question was in the end decided arbi- 
trarily. 212 States were newly created, leaving 
aside 12 first and second class States which 
formerly existed. The principle followed in 
assigning a particular class to a particular chief 
was the number of villages he possessed, his 
income, and his other status. “ Even landhold- 
ers possessing one or two entire villages were 
placed in the sixth and seventh class.” It 
appears in the course of time, of the newly 
created 212 States, those of the lower classes 
from fifth to seventh gradually disappeared 
through a process of sub-division of their estates 

7 Report of the Constitutional Position of the 
States in Bihar and Orissa and the Central Pro* 
vinces, By Mr. A. C. Lothian I. C. s. (1932), Para 28* 

2 Lee Warner : Protected Princes of hidia, p. 108 



Apsil 20, 1940] 


HARIJAN 


95 


among their sons in succession and they were 
reduced to mere peasantry. Some of them were 
found absolutely incompetent to exercise their 
powers, and they were all deprived of their 
powers. [ Vide papers regarding Keating’s Classi- 
fication and paper book Privy Council in Hem- 
chand v. Sakarlal ( 1936 ), appeal cases, P. 237 ] 

Now take the reverse. The total number of 
States in The Imperial Gazetteer Vol. IV of 
1907 is given as 693. But the list for 1925 
contains only 562 States, the smaller figure 
for 1925 being due chiefly to the reduction 
of States from 148 to 89 in Central India 
Agency, from 52 to nil in Burma, and from 26 
to 1 in Assam. Even the powerful Rajas of 
Jodhpur, Bharatpur, etc., we find, show a history 
of variations in their status that are startling. ^ 

Further instances can be multiplied. It will 
thus be seen that the statement that the Princes 
are an imperial creation, is, in a very large 
number of cases out of the total 562 that 
comprise Princely India, literally and historically 
true. But the statement is true in another sense 
too. Pax Brittanica has deprived the States’ 
people of their “natural right to have capable 
and vigorous rulers”. The system of rule obtain- 
ing in the States today has neither the essential 
qualities of autarchy nor the constitutional sanc- 
tions of the popular system of government, but 
is, sui generis, a by-product and mainstay of the 
I^iperial system in India. 

** Sirong Arm ” — an Illusioia 

The Maharaja Saheb in his speech referred 
to the “ strong arm ” of the ancestors of some 
of the present rulers of the States big and small 
to which, he contended, they owed their exist-, 
cnce. Without wishing in the slightest way to 
detract from the glory of the house of Bikaner 
which is admittedly one of the most exalted in 
Princely India, one may be permitted to cross 
the t’s and dot the i’s of the Maharaja Saheb’s 
statement. The first treaty between Bikaner and 
the British Government was concluded on 
March 9, 1818, the request for Treaty in 1908 
being not granted. Under it the latter 
“Engaged to protect the principality, while the 
Maharaja and his successors agreed to act in sub- 
ordiante co-operation with the British Government 
and acknowledge its supremacy. By article 5 the 
Maharaja and his successors agreed not to commit 
aggression on anyone. 

3. “ Even the powerful Rajas of Jaudhpur and. 
Bharatpur etc. were called Zamindars by the Moghul 
Government, down to the latest period, and we know^ 
the nature of their tenures. They were bound to 
attend in succession on the person of the Emperor 
at the head of a fixed quota of troops, their own 
countries were and are still subdivided into the lands 
of their military retainers or Thakores or the revenue 
lands, on the same principle that prevailed under 
the Hindu Government in the Empire at large. ” 
( A Sterling : An Account Statistical, Geographical and 
Hisiorical of Orissa proper or Cpttack. ) 


By article 7 the British Government undertook 
to reduce to subjection the Thakores and other 
inhabitants who had revolted and thrown off his 
authority^ The Maharaja undertook to pay all the 
costSo ( Italics mine ) 

In 1830 the British Resident had made prepara- 
tions to send forces to Bikaner to assist the chief 
in reducing the rebellious nobles. The chief was 
however given to understand that he had no right 
to call on the British Government for military aid 
against his disaffected subjects at any future period.” 
( Atchison’s -Treaties vol. Ill, p. 337 ) 

‘Tn 1871 discontent arose, the State was in debts, 
and exactions of the Maharaja to increase the 
revenue gave rise to acute unrest. The Thakore 
left Bikaner and took refuge in British territory. A 
British officer was deputed to make inquiries and 
to adjust the difference between the Maharaja and 
his nobles. 

In 1883, the affairs of the State relapsed into 
confusion, a resident Political Agent was appointed 
to Bikaner, and the Maharaja was required to 
conform to certain conditions so as to ensure to the 
political officer the power, of removing the abuses 
and of controlling the administration.” ( Ibid ) 

One wonders whether these cullings would be 
included by the Maharaja Saheb under the 
category of ‘irrefutable historical facts’ by which 
he swears. Bus if they are any guide, it would 
seem that the fortunes even of the illustrious 
house of Bikaner have depended less on the 
‘ strong arm ’ of its previous rulers than upon 
the shifting exigencies of the Imperial policy. 
As the Butler Committee’s report observed: 

“ It is not in accordance with historical facts 
that when the Indian States came into contact with 
the British power they were independent. Some were 
rescued, others were created by the British ...Through 
paramountcy and paramountcy alone have grown up 
those strong. ..relations... on which at all times the 
States rely for their preservation through the genera- 
tions that are to come. Through paramountcy is 
pushed aside the danger of destruction and annexa- 
tion.” ( Butler Committee s Report ) 

Sevagram, 8-4-40 Pyarelal 

Home and Village Doctor 

By Satish Chandra Dasgupta 
1384 pages. 18 chapters- Copious Index of 32 
pages. 219 illustrations. Price Rs. 5 cloth-bound; 

Rs. 6 leather-bound. By V. P. P. Rs. 6 and Rs. 7 
respectively. Published by Khadi Pratisthan, 15 College 
Square, Calcutta. Available at (1) Harijan office — 
Poona 4; ( 2 ) Harijan office — 81 Queen’s Road, 
opp. Marine Lines Station, Bombay 2. “Every village 
worker knowing English will make it a point to 
possess a copy,” says Gandhiji. Several eminent 
doctors have spoken highly of the book. “The book”, 
s^ys the author, “has behind it the experience of over 
ten thousand cases treated in the various institutions 
connected with the Khadi Pratisthan for the past 
seven years, according to the lines indicated. ” 

Educational Reconstruction 
New edition. Price Rs. l-4-<l. Postage 3 As. 



96 HARIJAN [ April 20, 1940 





Apr. 20 


1940 


DANGER SIGNAL 

( By M. K, Gandhi ) 

The happenings in Ajmer are a danger signal, 
if the facts received by me are correct. I have 
no reason to doubt their accuracy. The facts are 
these. There was a khadi exhibition held during 
the National Week by known workers. The 
promoters had arranged a series of lectures on 
the importance of khadi and other village in- 
dustries. The National Flag was hoisted as is 
usual at these functions. The authorities served 
a notice that a flag having been erected on the 
rampart of the fort had caused annoyance to 
some of His Majesty’s subjects and should be 
hauled down within an hour. The promoters 
claimed that the ground was under municipal 
jurisdiction, and that they had authority from the 
municipality to hold the exhibition. The protest 
was of no avail. The flag was unceremoniously 
hauled down by the police and addresses pro- 
hibited. If the exhibition was held under the 
permission of the municipality, the interference 
with the flag was clearly illegal. Bat apart from 
the illegality, the hauling down of the flag was 
a highly provocative act. An insult such as 
this can easily lead to unexpected results. I 
suggest that the matter is one for the Central 
authority to investigate. I hope that the Central 
authority does not want to provoke a clash 
which is highly likely if incidents like the 
Ajmer one are repeated. It would be deplorable 
if the non-intended happened. 

The promoters telephoned to me for advice 
immediately the incident happened. Contrary to 
their expectations I advised the workers to 
submit to the order. Ordinarily I would not 
have a moment’s hesitation in advising disobe- 
dience of such an order. I am the author of 
the flag. It is dear ^ to me as life. But I do 
not believe in flag waving. This flag represents 
unity, non-violence, and identification through 
the charkha of the highest with the lowliest 
in the land. Any insult to the flag must leave 
a deep scar on an Indian breast. But today 
unity is lacking; the Muslim League has declar- 
ed its hostility to the flag; those who honour 
it do not accept the authoritative implications 
of the flag. And the nation is preparing for a 
vast struggle. In a situation such as this I 
felt that the best course was to suppress the 
impulse to answer the, insult. I felt that the 
restraint would be a test of the discipline of 
the workers in Ajmer, It would be a lesson 
to all India in the non-violent technique, and 
an opportunity for the Central authority to undo 
what appears to have been a wanton interfer- 


ence with the ordinary peaceful non-political 
activity of the Congress. It should be remem- 
bered that the exhibition had nothing what- 
soever to do with the impending struggle. I 
congratulate the workers on their prompt 
compliance with my instructions. They have 
strengthened the Congress by showing their 
capacity for observing discipline, 

Sevagram, 16-4-40 

JAIPRAKASH’S PICTURE 

( By M- K. Gandhi ) 

The following draft resolution was sent to 
me by Shri Jaiprakash Narain. He asked me, 
if I accepted his picture, to put it before 
the Working Committee at Ramgarh. 

“The Congress and the country are on the eve 
of a great national upheaval. The final battle for 
freedom is soon to be fought. This will happen 
when the whole world is being shaken by mighty 
forces of change. Out of the catastrophe of the 
European War, thoughtful minds everywhere are 
anxious to create a new world — a world based on 
the co-operative goodwill of nations and men. At 
such a time the Congress considers it necessary to 
state definitely the ideals of freedom for wnich it 
stands and for which it is soon to invite the 
Indian people to undergo the uttermost sufferings* 

The free Indian nation shall work for peace 
between nations and total rejection of armaments 
and for the method of peaceful settlement of 
national disputes through some international authority 
freely established. It will endeavour particularly to 
live on the friendliest terms with its neighbours, 
whether they be great powers or small nations, and 
shall covet no foreign territory. 

The law of the land will be based on the will of 
the people freely expressed by them. The utlimate 
basis of maintenance of order shall be the sanction 
and concurrence of the people. 

The free Indian State shall guarantee full indivi- 
dual and civil liberty and cultural and religious 
freedom, provided that there shall be no freedom to 
overthrow by violence the constitution framed by 
the Indian people through a Constituent Assembly. 

The State shall not discriminate in any manner 
between citizens of the nation. Every citizen shall 
be guaranteed equal rights. All distinctions of birth 
and privilege shall be abolished. There shall be no 
titles emanating either from inherited social status 
or the State. 

The political and economic organisation of the State 
shall be based on principles of social justice and 
economic freedom. While this organisation shall 
conduce to the satisfaction of the national require- 
ments of every member of society, material satisfac- 
tion shall not be its sole objective. It shall aim 
at healthy living and the moral and intellectual 
development of the individual. To this end to 
secure social justice, the State shall endeavour to 
promote small scale production carried on by 
individual or co-operrtive effort for the equal benefit 
of all concerned. All large scale collective production 
shall be eventually brought under collective ownership 




April 20 , 1940 ] 


HAPJJAN 


97 


and control, and in this behalf the State shall 
begin by nationalising heavy transport, shipping, 
mining and the heavy industries. The textile industry 
shall be progressively decentralised. 

The life of the villages shall be reorganised and 
the villages shall be made self-governing units, self- 
sufhcient in as large a measure as possible. The 
land laws of the country shall be drastically reformed 
on the principle that land shall belong to the actual 
cultivator alone, and that no cultivator shall have 
more land than is necessary to support his family 
on a fair standard of living. This will end the 
various systems of landlordism on the one hand and 
farm bondage on the other. 

The State shall protect the interests of the classes, 
but when these impinge upon the interests of those 
who have been poor and downtrodden, it shall defend 
the latter and thus restore the balance of social 
justice. 

In all State-owned and State-managed enterprises, 
the workers shall be represented in the management 
through their elected representatives and shall have 
an equal share in it with the representatives of the 
Government. 

In the Indian States, there shall be complete 
democratic government established and in accordance 
with the principles of abolition of social distinction 
and equality between citizens, there shall not be 
any titular heads of the States in the persons of 
Rajas and Nawabs. 

This is the order which the Congress envisages 
and which it shall work to establish. The Congress 
firmly believes that this order shall bring happiness, 
prosperity and freedom to the people of all races 
and religions in India who together shall build on 
these foundations a great and glorious nation.” 

I liked it and read his letter and the draft 
to the Working Committee. The Committee, 
however, thought that the idea of having only 
one resolution for the Ramgarh Congress should 
be strictly adhered to, and that the original, as 
framed at Patna, should not be tampered with. 
The reasoning of the Committee was unexcep- 
tionable, and the draft resolution was dropped 
without any discussion on merits. I informed 
Shri Jaiprakash of the result of my eflFort. He 
wrote back suggesting that he would be satisfied 
if I could do the next best thing, namely 
publish it with full concurrence or such as 
I could give it. 

I have no diflEculty in complying with Shri 
Jaiprakash’s wishes. As an ideal to be reduced 
to practice as soon as possible after India comes 
into her own, I endorse in general all except 
one of the propositions enunciated by Shri 
Jaiprakash. 

I have claimed that I was a socialist long 
before those I know in India had avowed their 
creed. But my socialism was natural to me and 
not adopted from any books. It came out of 
my unshakable belief in non-violence. No man 
could be actively non-violent and not rise 
►against social injustice, no matter where it 
occurred. Unfortunately Western socialists have. 


so far as I know, believed in the necessity of 
violence for enforcing socialistic doctrines. 

I have always held that social justice, even 
unto the least and the lowliest, is impossible 
of attainment by force. I have further believed 
that it is possible by proper training of the 
lowliest by non-violent means to secure redress 
of the wrongs suffered by them. That means is 
non-violent non-cooperation. At times non-co- 
operation becomes as much a duty as cooperation. 
No one is bound to cooperate in one’s own 
undoing or slavery. Freedom received through 
the effort of others, however benevolent, cannot 
be retained when such eflFort is withdrawn. In 
other words, such freedom is not real freedom. 
But the lowliest can feel its glow as soon as 
they learn the art of attaining it through non- 
violent non-cooperation. 

It therefore gladdens me to find Shri JaU 
prakash accepting, as I read his draft, non- 
violence for the purpose of establishing the order 
envisaged by him. I am quite sure that non- 
violent non-cooperation can secure what violence 
never can, and this by ultimate conversion of 
the wrong-doers. We in India have never given 
non-violence the trial it has deserved. The 
marvel is that we have attained so much even 
with our mixed non-violence. 

Shri Jaiprakash’s propositions about land may 
appear frightful. In reality they arc not. No 
man should have more land than he needs for 
dignified sustenance. Who can dispute the fact 
that the grinding poverty of the masses is due 
to their having no land that they can call 
their own? 

But it must be realised that the reform cannot 
be rushed. If it is to be brought about by 
non-violent means, it can only be done by edu- 
cation both of the haves and the have-nots. 
The former should be assured that there never 
will be force used against them. The have-nots 
must be educated to know that no one can 
really compel them to do anything against their 
will, and that they can secure their freedom by 
learning the art of non-violence, i. e. self-suffer- 
ing. If the end in view is to be achieved, the 
education I have, adumbrated has to be com- 
menced now. An atmosphere of mutual respect 
and trust has to be established as the preli- 
minary step. There can then be no violent 
conflict between the classes and the masses. 

Whilst, therefore, I have no diflEculty in 
generally endorsing Shri Jaiprakash’s propositio a 
in terms of non-violence, I cannot endorse his 
proposition about the Princes. In law they are 
independent. It is true that their independence 
is not worth much, for it is guaranteed by a 
stronger party. .But as against us they are able 
to assert their independence. If we come into 
our own through non-violent means, as is 
implied in Shri Jaiprakash’s draft proposals, I 
do not imagine a settlement in which the 
Princes will have eflFaced themselves. Whatever 
settlement is arrived at, the nation will have ta 



98 


HARIJAE 


[ April 20, 1940 


carry out in full. I can therefore only conceive 
a settlement in which the big States will retain 
their status. In one way this will be far 
superior to what it is today; but in another it 
will be limited so as to give the people of the 
States the same right of self-government within 
their States as the people of the other parts of 
India will enjoy. They will have freedom of 
speech, a free press and pure justice guaranteed to 
them. Perhaps Shri Jaiprakash has no faith in the 
Princes automatically surrendering their autocracy. 

I have. First because they are just as good 
human beings as we are, and secondly because of 
my belief in the potency of genuine non-violence. 
Let me conclude, therefore, by saying that the 
Princes and all others will be true and amena- 
ble when we have become true to ourselves, to 
our faith, if we have it, and to the nation. At 
present we are half-hearted. The way to free- 
dom will never be found through half-hearted- 
ness. Non-violence begins and ends by turning 
the searchlight inward. 

Sevagram, 14-4-40 

C. F. A. — THE MAH 

It was by his vigorous championship of the 
student victims of the Lahore Martial Law 
regime that I first came to know of him. I 
was then a student going up for my Bachelor 
of Arts degree, from the Government College 
Lahore, and though students of our college 
escaped the worst indignities of the Col, Frank 
Johnson regime, what one saw around one was 
enough to choke the soul of any patriotic 
and self-respecting young man. What disappoint- 
ed us students — and particularly me — most was 
the supine attitude of some of the religious 
leaders whom we had been taught to look up 
to and the inglorious way in which they truckl- 
ed to the irate commandant's demarche for the 
rustication of a certain percentage of students 
in certain colleges. The percentage was arbitra- 
rily fixed and the required quota had to be 
rusticated, guilt or no guilt. “ What sort of 
God-fearingness is that,” we asked ourselves, 
“ which does not even enable one to cast out 
fear and stand up for right and justice against 
oppression? Instead of sympathy, we got from 
‘ wise heads * counsels of prudence only. We 
were shunned and avoided as hot-heads 
fespohsible for the country’s troubles. Those 
were dark days indeed, and despair clutched at 
the heart of aspiring youth. 

It was then that Charlie Andrews’ voice was 
heard, clear, ringing, strident, espousing their 
cause and giving expression to their outraged 
feelings. He personally came to Lahore to do 
his bit for them,, and his residence became the 
Mecca of all rusticated students. It was usual 
in those days to compare the Jallianwalla Bagh 
tragedy with the massacre of Glencoe, But that 
did not satisfy Charlie Andrews’ historical sense. 
“No. It is worse even than that,” he rejoined, 
“considering the distance that humanity has 
travelled since that remote Highland tragedy.” 


It was a portent. For an Englishman who loved 
his country it was too much to sit still over 
his country's misdeeds. 

That gave one the key to his entire persona- 
lity. Charlie Andrews was, above all, a huma- 
nitarian. a servant of God who had made the 
whole world his family, and who recognised no 
frontiers of colour, caste or creed. None deserved 
better the title Deenabandhu which grateful 
India affectionately gave him, in recognition of 
his ceaseless labour of love for the sake of the 
poor. The cry of the distressed never found 
him unready. Ill-health never deterred him. 
He was ready at a moment’s notice to proceed 
to the ends of the earth in response to the 

cry of humanity whether it was from China 

or British Guiana, South Africa, Trinidad or 
Fiji. In fact the more forlorn a cause the 

greater was his sympathy for it. Like his master 
Jesus Christ, he never hesitated to pitch him- 
self against principalities and powers to champion 
the cause of the weak and the oppressed. In 
fact, he considered that to be the core of 

Jesus Christ’s teaching, and identified the Christ’s 
Kingdom of Heaven with the realization of his 
utopia of social justice upon earth. 

His Christianity was as wide as his humanity 
and the scriptures of other faiths were to him 
not less dear than that of his own. It was a 
favourite saying of his that, but for his Indian 
and non-Christian contacts, his own understand- 
ing of Christ would have remained incomplete. 
He literally followed Christ’s saying, “ Get you 
no gold, nor silver, nor brass in your purses, 
no wallet for your journey, neither two coats, 
nor shoes, nor staff,” sometimes with romantic 
results. The only occasion when as Gandhiji’s 
cashier I entrusted him with a ten rupee note 
to pay off his tongawalla, was when Gandhiji 
was convalescing after his appendicitis operation 
in the Sassoon Hospital, Poona. In the evening 
Charlie Andrews returned and innocently told 
me to pay off the tongawalla as the ten rupee 
note had "slipped out’’ of his open pocket”! 
I shall never forget the trouncing which I got 
from Gandhiji when I reported the matter to 
him. “ Could you not foresee,” he thundered, 
"he would give it away to the next beggar, if 
he did not lose it ? You might as well entrust 
a foaby with cash.” 

Miss Agatha Harrison, Charlie Andrews’ gift 
to Gandhiji and India, who acted sometimes as 
his' secretary, used to tell us ; " The first thing 
I do, when he returns from India, is to empty 
his pockets, lest important messages from friends 
across should go to the laundry instead of their 
proper destination. Charlie is a baby and needs 
to be mothered I” 

There it was, with all his depth and serious- 
ness, his unmatched erudition and wide experi- 
ence, he had the heart and innocence of a 
child of seven and was 
*' As the greatest only are 
In his simplicity sublime." 



April 20 , 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


99 


Yet with all the serious side of his nature ^ 
Deenabandhu was not devoid of humour. I shall 
never forget how at the time of the Second 
Indian Round Table Conference, during our stay 
together at 88 Knightsbridge in London* he 
once set the whole company of us roaring with 
laughter as he recited with inimitable mimicry 
his parody of the poem “ Hunting the Shark”, 
substituting for “ thirtytwo boxes ” in the original 
“ thirtytwo venerable Bishops”, Gandhi ji having 
just had a meeting with the Bishops at Lambeth 
Palace that day ; “Thirtytwo Bishops all carefully 
packed, his name well written on each.” The 
adventure in the improvisation, however, proved 
to be still-born, because, as often happened in 
C. F. A.’s own case, the keys of the boxes were 
all left behind! 

One of the last meetings that I had with 
him was in Gandhiji's company as he lay on 
his sick-bed in the Presidency Hospital, Calcutta. 
Again and again in the course of his talk he 
reverted to the “ inner universe”, in which he 
had, during his illness, found ineflfable peace. 
**As the outer senses become attenuated, this 
inner universe unfolds itself to you. Although 
it is invisible, it is real, and embraces man s 
entire existence. Just now, when the whole 
world seems to be rushing headlong to its doom, 
the need has become all the greater to renovate 
our soul by the rediscovery of and plunge into 
this inner universe, ” he remarked to Gandhiji. 
As the time to take leave drew near, he grew 
more and more restless and several times anxi- 
ously inquired whether his ward-sweeper had 
returned. We could not at first understand the 
reason for his anxiety, till I suddenly remem- 
bered how during Gandhiji’s 21 days’ fast for 
Hindu-Muslim unity at Delhi, he had brought 
to Gandhiji, by special appointment, the sweeper 
of “ Dilkhush ” ( the name of Rai Bahadur 
Sultan Singh’s bungalow, at the Ridge where 
Gandhiji was staying). He afterwards recorded 
in his poetical style in Young India the ineflfa- 
ble joy of the poor man at the darshan, which 
the curious can still read with benefit. It was 
so characteristic of Deenabandhu, even in extremist 
to be thinking of the “ poor, the lowliest and 
the lost”. 

Sevagram. 9-4-40 Pyarelal 

Jaipur State and Praja Mandal 

At last a settlement has been reached between 
the State and the Praja Mandal in Jaipur. The 
credit for this happy consummation belongs both 
to the authorities and Sheth Jamnalalji. Let us 
hope that the settlement will lead to cordial 
relations between the authorities and the Praja 
Mandal, and that the co-operation will result 
in progressive betterment of the people of the 
State in every respect. For this the State will 
have to show toleration and the Mandal res- 
traint in all its doings and utterances. 

Sevagram, 14-4-40 M, K. G. 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radhakrishnan. (New Edition) Rs. 5-10-0. 
Postage 7 As. Available at Harijan oflBice-Poona 4 , 
and 67 & 81 Queen's Road, BomW 2. 


RASHTRABHASHA ADHYAPAN 
MANDIR, WARDHA 

The Rashtrabhasha Adhyapan Mandir of Wardha 
has been training Pracharaks for the various non- 
Hindi Provinces for the last three years. Young 
men from Maharashtra, Gujarat, Bombay, Sindh, 
Assam, Bengal and Orissa have been sent to their 
respective Provinces after a study in the national 
language. So far 31 Pracharaks have been trained in 
Hindi Adhyapan Mandir and each and every one of 
them has got employed in his province. 

When the Adhyapan Mandir, Wardha, was started 
three years back, there was no other arrangement 
in the non-Hindi provinces for the training of 
Pracharaks. But now several provinces have started 
their own Adhyapan Mandirs. Consequently the 
Rashtrabhasha Prachar Samiti, Wardha, has decided 
to re-organize the Wardha Adhyapan Mandir. This 
Mandir will now not train ordinary teachers. On 
the other hand, it will be a nucleus of higher study 
in Hindi or Hindustani for the non-Hindi provinces. 
15 candidates will be selected for the next session 
and ten of them will be awarded a monthly stipend 
of Rs. 10 each. Only those candidates will be 
selected who have passed either the ‘ Kovid ' 
examination of the Rashtrabhasha Prachar Samiti, 
Wardha, or the ‘ Visharad * examination of the Hindi 
Sahitya Sammelan, Allahabad. 

The aim of the Rashtrabhasha movement is not 
merely to teach a new language, but to strengthen 
the bonds of unity between the various provinces of 
India. We hope, therefore, that only those who 
realize the importance and usefulness of the move- 
ment and who are fired with a desire to serve their 
country, will apply for admission. The candidates 
should have also attained general education up to the 
Intermediate standard. 

The new session will begin from the 15th June, 
1940. All applications should reach the office of the 
Rashtrabhasha Prachar Samiti, Wardha, by the 15th 
May. Printed application forms can be had free from 
the Superintendent, Rashtrabhasha Adhyapan Mandir, 
Wardha. 

Shrimannarayan Agrawal 

Secretary, Rashtrabhasha Prachar Samiti, Wardha. 

Handmade Paper 

We stock handmade paper in about 75 varieties 
made in 12 different producing centres in India — 
Ahmedabad, Aurangabad, Erandol, Hyderabad ( Dn. ), 
Jaipur, Kalpi, Koratla, Nepal, Outshahi, Sialkot, Sode- 
pur and Wardha — from the thinnest tissue paper and 
air mail paper to the thickest paper, and in many 
different colours, to suit various tastes and require- 
ments. It is sold in the form of whole sheets, letter 
paper, envelopes ( over 50 varieties ), blotting paper, 
cards, account books, office files, tag labels, and 
pocket books. Samples sent on receipt of two anna 
postal stamps. A sample file ( which is a miniature 
exhibition in itself ) sent on receipt of Re. 1. It is 
up to patriotic persons to give handmade paper a 
chance whenever they require any of the things mention- 
ed above. (1) Harijan Office— Poona 4; (2) Harijan 
Branch— 81 Queen’s Road, 0pp. Marine Lines Station, 
Bombay 2. 

The Necessity of Pacifism by J. Middleton Murry. 
Rs. 2-10-0 -b 3 As. Postage. 



HARIJAN 


[ Apeil 20, 1940 


REPRESSION IN JODHPUR 

( By M. K, Gandhi ) 

News about repression in Jodhpur is disquiet- 
ing. The Jodhpur Lok Parishad, which according 
to the information in my possession has been 
before now held in respect by the local authori- 
ties, has suddenly been declared illegal. Several 
prominent workers are under detention without 
trial. Speeches and processions arc banned. 

What is worse is the speech delivered by the 
Maharaja Bahadur, justifying the order. It reads 
as if a mountain was in labour. The following 
are extracts from the report of the speech : 

Unfortunately there is a small but vocal 
minority, who, by their deeds and actions, have 
recently given ample proof of their determination to 
find fault with everything which the Government do, 
and of their intention to hinder and embarrass the 
Government by all possible means unless the reins 
of Government are placed in their own inexperienced 
hands. 

I refer in particular to a political organisation, 
which has brought itself to undesirable prominence 
under the title of ' Lok Parishad Members of the 

Lok Parishad ’ have recently become increasingly 
violent in their denunciations of all established order 
and traditions. The members of this party ask us 
to believe that the sole panacea for the many 
diverse afflictions, which we in common with all 
communities suffer, is to vote for and place our- 
selves unreservedly in the hands of the ‘ Lok 
Parishad*. We are asked to believe that with the 
advent to power of the ‘ Lok Parishad * there will 
be created a new heaven and a new earth, and I, 
the M&haraja of Jodhpur, am desired to place the 
destinies of my house and my people in the hands 
of the ‘ Lok Parishad ’ in order that peace may 
reign, and 'freedom’ be enjoyed by all. 

This is indeed a tall order and a bold demand, 
and I am not surprised that requests have poured 
in to me from the great sane and sober-minded 
majority of my subjects to put a stop to these 
extravagances and pretensions. If the ‘Lok Pari- 
afaad* consisted of men of political and administra- 
tive experience? men of ripe education, or of high 
professional attainments, we might be well advised to 
give to their words and expressions that serious consi- 
deration which thoughtful citizens would undoubtedly 
accord. But we find, now that an insistent clamour 
focusses our attention on the subject, that the* Lok 


groundless political agitation to grow and spread it: 
my State in time of war; nor am I prepared an> 
longer to allow an open campaign of subversive 
agitation manifestly designed to encourage our peasan- 
try to revolt and to corrupt our youth.” 

It seems that the voice is the Maharaja’s but 
the hand that has prepared it is not his. The 
speech consists of palpable exaggerations. The 
Parishad has more than 30 branches in the 

State and has many experienced men as mem- 
bers. I have seen correspondence in which their 
co-operation has been desired and sought for. 
The Lok Parishad has never put forth the 

claim attributed to it m the quotations. It has 

responsible government within the State as its 
goal. It has carried on agitation in the recog- 
nised manner. I suggest that it is highly undigni- 
fied for the advisers of the Maharaja to put 

into his mouth words that have no correlation 
to facts. They have not hesitated even to drag 
the war and the ‘alliance’ with Britain to justify 
the high-handed action adopted towards the 
Parishad. The Parishad, I am sure, will come 
out unscathed, if the workers can stand the 
test of self-suffering. Those who are imprison- 
ed will be the salt and saviours of Jodhpur, 
for they will be trusted by the people as their 
real servants. It is not right for the Princes 
and their advisers to ignore the time spirit and to 
resort to such statements and acts as cannot 
stand impartial scrutiny. I see from their leaflet 
that the Parishad have asked for an open. trial. 
They deny all the charges that are mentioned 
in the Maharaja’s speech. The least that is 
owing to the public is proof of the indictment 
against the Parishad. Meanwhile and whether the 
Parishad gets justice or not, I hope that its 
members will peacefully and bravely stand the 
sufferings that may be inflicted on them. 

Sevagram, 16-4-40 

Books by C. F. Andrews 

The True India — A Plea for Understanding. 
Rs. 2-10-0 + 4 As. Postage, 

Mahatma Gandhi's Es. 2-10-0 + 5 As. Postage. 

India and the Pacific Rs. 2-10-0. + 4 As. Postage. 

One Step Forward 

Report of Basic Education Conference, Poona* 
Rs. 1-4-0 + 4 As. Postage. 

Available at ( 1 ) Harijan Office - Poona 4 ; ( 2 ) 
Harijan Office- 81 Queens Road, opp. Marine Lines 


Parishad’ consists mainly of inexperienced young Station, Bombay 2. 
men, who do not appear to have achieved much 


CONTENTS 


. , . . — — X jU/i 

success m their various vocations.... Question Box 

They show no sign whatever of any co-operative Extravagan2A-I 

spirit; rather do they seem bent on findins fault P^^ger Signal 
.W. I, i, posabl. to do to. In their <L ftee mT 

speech has desesmted into hcenee, and this at a Rashtkabhasha Adhyapan 
time when a terrible war threatens in the distance Mandir, Wardha 
and a very bad famine is at our doors..., Repres6ION in Jodhpur 

I do not consider it consistent with mv duhr pie „ 

a loyal ally of the British Government, to allo^ a ^""MANDAf’’’" 


M. K. Gandhi 93 
Pyarelal 94 
M. K, Gandhi 96 
M, K. Gandhi 96 
Pyarelal 9S 

S. Agrawal 99 
M. K. Gandhi 100 


M, K. G. 


915/1 Fergus8oa'c^e~]^l>oona 4- 

one year. Rs. 4. 8a monthe, Re. 2-8. Fomigr ; One year. Be. 5-8 or, 8 ah. dr 2 $. 



Reg, No. B 3092 



Editor : MAHADEV DESAI 


VoL. vm. No. 11 1 POONA — SATURDAY, APRIL 27. 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


QUESTION BOX 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Beef 

Q. The Muslim public need to be satisfied 
on a very important question. Will the Muslims 
be allowed to cat their national food — beef — ■ 
under a Hindu majority Government? If you 
can satisfy the Muslims on this all-important 
question, a great deal of knots will be solved. 
You should give a straight answer to this 
question in your paper Harijan. 

A. I do not know how this question arises. 
For whilst Qingressmen were in office they are 
not known to have interfered with the practice 
of beef-eating by Muslims. The question is also 
badly conceived. There is no such thing as a 
Hindu majority Government. If a free India is 
to live at peace with herself, religious divisions 
must entirely give place to political divisions 
based on considerations other than religious. Even 
as it is, though unfortunately religious difiierences 
loom large, most parties contain members drawn 
from all sects. It is moreover not true to say 
that beef is the national food of Muslims. In 
the first place the Muslims of India are not as 
yet a separate nation. In the second, beef is not 
their ordinary food. Their ordinary food is the 
same as that of the millions. What is true is 
that there are very few Muslims who are vegeta- 
rians froni a religious motive. Therefore they will 
t&e meat, including beef, when they can get 
it. But during the greater part of the year 
millions of Muslims, owing to poverty, go with- 
out meat of any kind. These are facts. But the 
theoretical question demands a clear answer. 
As a Hindu, a confirmed vegetarian, and a 
worshipper of the cow whom I regard with the 
same veneration as I regard my mother ( alas 
no more on this earth ). I maintain that Mus- 
. lims should have full freedom to slaughter cows, 
if they wish, subject of course to hygienic 
restrictions and in a manner not to wound 
the susceptibilities of their Hindu neighbours. 
Fullest recognition of freedom to the Muslims 
to slaughter cows is indispensable for communal 
harmony, and is the only way of saving the 
cow. In 1921 thousands of cows were saved by 
the sole and willing effort of Muslims themselves. 
In spite of the black clouds hanging over our 
heads, I refuse to give up the hope that they 
will disperse and that we- shall have communal 
peace in this unhappy land. If I am asked for 
proof, I must answer that my hope is based on 


faith and faith demands no proof. 

Death Sentence 

Q. Do you consider death sentence to be 
against your principle of ahimsa ? If so, what 
form of punishment would you advocate as a 
substitute in a free India ? 

A. I do regard death sentence as contrary to 
ahimsa. Only He takes life who gives it. All 
p unishm ent is repugnant to ahimsa. Under a 
State governed according to the principles of 
ahimsa, th&efore, a murderer would be sent to 
a penitentiaty and there given every chance of 
reforming himself. All crime is a kind of disease 
and should be treated as such. 

God's Will 

Q. How can an ordinary man distinguish 
between God’s will and his own will ? 

A. By not regarding anything as God’s will 
unless he has positive proof to the contrary. 
Not every person can know God’s will. Proper 
training is necessary to. attain the power to 
know God’s will. 

An Offence against Congress 

Q. Some of the Congress committees here in 
Adampur Doaba during the last Independence 
Day celebrations got prepared national flags of 
uncertified khadi, and some of them got badge 
flags prepared from paper. They sold these to 
raise funds. When questioned they pleaded that 
they wanted funds for the Congress and could 
not afford to sell badge flags made out of khadi 
for one pice each and still retain something for 
themselves. At some places I even found 
national flags hoisted which were of mill cloth 
and even without the spinning wheel. I per- 
sonally feel that the spinning wheel and khadi 
are the very soul of our flag ; and a national 
flag which is printed on uncertified khadi and 
without the spinning wheel mark on it, or a 
paper flag cannot be called a national flag. 

A. Your objection is sound. The Congress 
committees who used as national flags paper flags 
or those which were made of mill cloth or 
uncertified khadi or without the charkha, com- 
mitted an offence against the Congress. They 
betrayed little regard for the flag. Any rag 
cannot be used as a flag. It has to conform to 
the prescribed pattern. If we do not respect 
our own flag, we have no right to expect 
others to do so. You have made out a case 
for the central office having a stock of flags 
of a variety of sizes. Nobody should be permit- 
ted to use unauthorised flags as national flags. 

Sevagram, 22-4-40 



102 


HARIJAN I April 27, 1940 


m THE WAKE OF MECHANISATION 

I 

In the race for mechanisation going on in the 
West, America would easily stand first — not only 
in the mechanisation of industrial production 
in which every big country is a competitor, but 
of agriculture also, wherein natural conditions 
and existence of large prairies have given her 
a decisive advantage over the Old World. “The 
farm tractor, the mechanical reaper-binder, and 
the other power-driven instruments of modern 
large-scale agriculture became the characteristic 
tools of the prairie farmer," and “over the past 
century the revolution in agriculture has fallen 
no whit short of the revolution in industry." 
(Cole) The capacity for mass production, both in 
industry and agriculture — in America as elsewhere 
in the West — has increased to such an extent 
that “if we consider only the mechanical resources 
required, our contemporary world has the elec- 
tric power, the engines and the skill, to ensure, 
if not at once to its entire population, then at 
least to the peoples of Europe and North 
America, an adequate and varied diet, sufficient 
clothing, houses that satisfy civilised needs, and 
with all this to meet the cravings of their 
minds for hooks and music and visible beauty. The 
machine has made poverty an anachronism. ” * 
But do facts support these optimistic statements ? 
The apparition of poverty still stalks the land, 
and the world is faced with the paradox of 
large masses of men submerged in poverty in 
the midst of plenty both of agricultural and 
industrial goods. “ The dwindling of the 
national income, the slowing down of the 
whole apparatus of production, the shrinkage 
of international trade, the waste and misery 
of mass-unemployment,” are stark realities, and 
have led serious men in the West to 
ask “ whether even in the Great War we 
experienced a completer defeat of civilisation."® 
While millions of men have not enough to feed 
and clothe themselves, engines are kept idle 
and wheat and cotton crops are burnt. “The 
Brazilian Government,” says an English economist, 
^‘throws into the Atlantic each season by the 
million the bags of coffee that would make 
breakfast for innumerable brick-layers. During 
half a day last winter I journeyed in California 
through apple orchards that stretched as far as 
the eye could teach. The trees in every third 
or fourth row had been ruthlessly lopped 
to the graft, to check the embarrassing bounty 
of nature for several years to come. There 
vanished our builders' dessert.”® Articles of 
food and raiment and luxuries are produced in 
gigantic piles, but who is to consume them ? 
The will and the need for consumption among 
men ate there, but they lack the wherewithal 
to buy the things. Then there is a slump, 
production has to slow down, and the economic 
structure gets a rude shaking from the effects 


of which it takes a long time to recover. 
“ There has arisen an apparent deficiency of 
consuming power in relation to the capacity of 
the productive system ; and the world’s most 
pressing problem has come to be, not a further 
increase of the power to produce, but the 
devising of means for the full use of the 
productive resources already at hand. ” There 
must be ‘ something radically wrong with an 
economic order which piles up means of rapid 
and gigantic production, then stints the fruits 
thereof to men most in need of them, and is 
ultimately reduced to a state in which not only 
the engines of production are perforce to be 
kept idle but their valuable products destroyed. 
Discerning men have even gone to the length 
of saying that “ in our society a merciful man 
who had perfected a beneficent labour-saving 
invention might well conceal it. " This is then 
the grim dilemma facing the present-day world. 

Economists in the West have been sharply 
at variance in diagnosing the disease and 
suggesting remedies. There are a few among 
them who, though not sworn enemies of 
mechanisation, have been witnessing the tragic 
results it has led to, have been disillusioned, and 
have begun to doubt seriously its once trumpeted 
benefits. For instance, says one of them; 

“or wlaat use is it that scientists should devise 
means of making human labour more productive, if 
the result is to be that the increase of productive 
power becomes a positive cause of unemployment 
and distress? Of what use is it to devise machines 
for the lightening of labour, if lliese machines will 
only throw more and more people out of work and 
income? And what are we to say of a world in 
which the farmer, when b: sows his crop, has to 
pray for a bad harvest in order to rescue him from 
his financial difficulties? We live in an odd world 
and no mistake.”* 

Says another : 

“Machinery, then, has not brought mathematics 
into our daily life, or rather it has brought numbers 
and order into one side of it, into our productive 
activities, and even there they are the sovereigns 
of petty kingdoms, for each of the many units of 
production is isolated within its own walls. The 
other side of our daily life, distribution, we abandon 
to chance, and the pulls of unequal forces. The 
result is that the machine has brought its curses 
in full measure; its blessings it stints. It has torn 
whole populations from the relative humanity of 
village life, it has blasted our landscapes, withered our 
trees and poisoned our streams; it has abolished the 
craftsman’s pride in his creative skill; it has doomed 
the majority of its servants to a life of deadening 
monotony and strain. But for lack of an ordered 
market, we enjoy neither the security which its 
regular motions promise, nor the leisure and abun- 
dance latent in its infinite capacity of reproduction.”® 

A sombre picture this — which should suffice 
to disturb the naivete of those of us who cling 


1. H. N. Brailsford : Property or Peace, p. 12. 

2. Ibid, p. 15. 3. Ibid, p. 11. 


4. G. D. H. Cole : World Chaos, p. 65 
5 H. N. Brailsford: Op Cit, p. 92-3. 



APEIL 27, 1940 ] 


HARIJAK 


103 


with a childlike faith to mechanisation and large 
scale industrialisation. And things are not likely 
to change much so long as the economic world 
order remains substantially what it is today. 

II 

There may be differences of opinion among 
economists about the diagnosis and remedies of 
the economic ill-health from which the world 
is suffenng, but there is no gainsaying the fact 
that mechanisation leads directly to displace- 
ment of human labour and unemployment. 
“Its first effect,” says J. A. Hobson, “ as shown 
by statistics, is to save ‘ labour ’ — that is, to 
create more unemployment. ” Once large scale 
mechanisation is introduced and the wheels of 
high speed machinery set going, there can be 
no halfway house or halting till human labour 
is utterly done away with and lifeless robots 
take its place. This is the logical and inevi- 
table culmination of the process which has 
come to be known as ‘rationalisation’. “Modern 
machinery not only dispenses more and more 
with the need for either physical strength or 
manual skill, but also goes further towards 
the positive displacement of labour.... In the 
latest development of industrialism the emphasis 
has been more and more upon this absolute 
displacement of labour.... In these circumstances 
the obvious way of lowering costs is to get rid 
of labour altogether, or to use far less of it, 
and especially in America and Germany this 
form of rationalisation has been pushed of late 
to astonishing lengths.... The displacement of 
labour through mechanisation has been going on 
faster than ever.... The chief means of reducing 
costs nowadays is the absolute displacement of 
human labour.”® C. S. 

( To be continued ) 

PRINCELY EXTRAVAGANZA 

II 

The Imperial Game and States 

The policy has undergone several gradations 
at different periods of its history. But the one 
primary consideration that runs like a connect- 
ing thread through them all, as I shall presently 
show, has been about strengthening and perpe- 
tuation of the Imperial hold on India. The three 
distinct phases through which it has passed 
have been described as those of ‘Ring Fence’, 

• Subordinate Isolation’, and ‘ Subordinate Union’. 
From the point of view of the States these 
may more fitly be characterized as those of 

* Britain’s security’, ‘ Ascendency’, and ‘Empire’. 

“ Safety First ” 

During the first phase (1765-98) the guiding 
consideration was the safety and permanence of 
Britain’s position in India. The Company was 
as yet struggling for bare existence. It was 
surrounded on all sides by powerful rivals and 
adversaries. It therefore naturally looked out 
for friends and helpers among local potentates. 
Its policy towards them had to be one of 
*' fraternizing, ingratiation and reciprocity”. Clive 


( 1758-67 ) “ sought the substance of territorial 
power under the fiction of a grant from the 
Mughal Emperor. Warren Hastings ( 1772-85 ), 
“ like other British administrators of his time, 
started with a conviction of the expediency of 
ruling with the aid of the Native Power. ”® 
Both Cornwallis ( 1786-93 ) and Sir John 
Shore, who brought this period to a close, 
were advocates of the policy of “non-interven- 
tion”. The idea was to create an insulating belt 
of friendly powers and, so far as possible, to 
remain within a “ ring fence ” of powers thus 
won over. There was a general dread of entangle- 
ments.* And so we find in 1784 an Act of 
Parliament declare that to pursue schemes of 
conquest and extension of dominion in India are 
measures repugnant to the wish, honour and 
policy of this nation.” The prohibitory injunc- 
tion was repeated in the Charter Act of 1793. 
The treaties concluded in this period are based 
on the principle of non-intervention and abound 
in such expressions as ‘ mutual amity’, ‘ friendly 
■co-operation’, ‘reciprocal obligation’, ‘ perpetual 
friendship ’, ‘ firm alliance, etc. * 

Power above All 

It was, however, soon felt that unless the 
Company could draw the neutral Princes beyond 
the ° ring fence ’ to itself and reduce them to 
subservience by diplomatic negotiation, its ad- 
versaries might do so and the security, afforded 
by the ‘ ring fence ’ might be jeopardized. With- 
out ascendency there was no security. Domina- 
tion thus became the key-note of the second 
phase of its policy ( 1798-1858). Lord Wellesley, 
who saw this, determined to establish the 
ascendency of the British Power over all other 
Stated in India by a system of subsidiary 
treaties “ so framed as to deprive them of the 
means of prosecuting ' any measure or of forming 
any confederacy hazardous to the security of the 
British Empire, and to enable us to preserve 
the tranquillity of India by exercising a general 
control over the restless spirit of ambition and 
violence which is characteristic of every Asiatic 
Government. ” ® 

Lord Wellesley’s policy was carried a step 
further by Lord Hastings ( Earl of Moira ) (1814- 
23 ). He intensified and systematised the practice 
introduced by Lord Wellesley.® “ Opposed as he 
certainly was to annexation, he felt that the 
true position of the States in the interior of 
India was one of isolated and subordinate co- 
( Continued on p. 106 ) 

1. Imperial Gazetteer, Vol. II, p. 429. 

2. Ibid, Vol. II, p. 482. 3. Ibid, Vol. II, p. 488. 

4. Ibid, Vol. II. p. 192. 

5. The Udaipur Treaty of 1818 is illustrative of 
this policy. By Article 2 “The British Government 
engages to protect the principality and territory of 
Udaipnr. Article 3 lays down that “the Mahiaja 
will always act in subordinate cooperation with 
the British Government and acknowledge its supre- 
macy and will not have any connexion with other 
chiefs and states.” Article 4, again, prohibits any 
negotiation with other States without the sanction 
of the British Government 

6. Private Journal of Marquis of Hastings ( 1814) 


6 G. D. H. Cole: Op Cit, p. 144-5; 148-9. 



104 


HARIJAN 


[ April 27, 1940 


NOTICE 

The next issue ( to be published on 4th May ) 
will contain 12 and will be priced at / Amxa 

6 Pies per copy. Agents will please notify changes 
in their requirements, if any, by Thursday next. 

Manager 



CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

The Working Committee advisedly passed no 
startling or new resolution this time. For there 
was no programme before them. That of civil 
disobedience has to be evolved by me. But the 
Committee had useful discussions on many points 
arising out of the contemplated movement. 
I propose to give the readers the gist of what 
I told the members of the Committee, with the 
necessary amplification. 

Civil disobedience in the face of the lawless- 
ness that prevails in the country will easily pass 
for the same unless it is beyond doubt recognised 
as something different in kind from the prevailing 
brand. Thus the Khaksar defiance is admittedly 
and openly violent. The kisans who held up the 
train between Gaya and Kiul were violent 
under cover of non-violence. They were doubly 
guilty according to the non-violent conception. 
For they are supposed to be Congressmen. 
To hold .up a train is disobedience with- 
out doubt. And so far as the Congress is 
concerned, according to the Ramgarh resolution 
Congressmen may not resort to civil disobedience 
singly or in groups without my permission. I 
have already said that Prof: Ranga’s disobedience 
was also not civil. His friends have asked me 
to withdraw my criticism. I claim to be a 
special friend of his. We became friends pro- 
bably before the protesters knew him. And it 
is because he is such a close friend that 1 
condemned his action without mincing words. 
I am sure he will not misunderstand me. In 
any event when a man of his learning chooses 
deliberately to commit an act of indiscipline 
it must come to me as a warning against 
any hasty action. 

Now civil disobedience, if it is really civil, 
must appear so even to the opponent. He must 
feel that the resistance is not intended to do 
him any harm. At the present moment the 
average Englishman thinks that non-violence is 
merely a cloak. The Muslim Leaguers think 
that civil disobedience is aimed at them more 
than at the British. I protest with all the 
strength at my command that, so far as I am 
concerned, I have no desire whatsoever to 
embarrass the British, especially at a time when 
it is a question of life and death with them. 
All I want the Congress to do through civil 
disobedience is to deny the British Government 


the moral influence which the Congress co- 
operation would give. The material resources of 
India and her man power are already being 
exploited by the British Government by reason 
of their control of the whole of this sub- 
continent. 

If by civil disobedience the Congress has no 
desire to embarrass the British people, it has 
still less to embarrass the Muslim League. And 
I can say this on behalf of the Congress 
with far greater assurance than I can with 
regard to the British. Working in the midst of 
suspicion and terrible misrepresentation on the 
one band and the prevailing lawlessness outside 
and inside the Congress on the other, I have 
to think a thousand times before embarking 
on civil disobedience. 

So far as 1 can see at present mass civil 
disobedience is most unlikely. The choice lies 
between individual civil disobedience on a large 
scale, very restricted, or confined only to me. 
In every case there must be the backing of the 
whole of the official Congress organisation and 
the millions who, though not on the Congress 
register, have always supported the organisation 
with their mute but most effective co-operation. 

I have repeatedly shown in these columns 
that the most effective and visible co-operation 
which all Congressmen and the mute millions 
can show is by not interfering with the course 
civil disobedience may take and by themselves 
spinning and using khadi to the exclusion of all 
other cloth. If it is allowed that there is a 
meaning in people wearing primroses on Prim- 
rose Day, surely there is much more in a 
people using a particular kind of cloth and 
giving a particular kind of labour to the cause 
they hold dear. From their compliance with the 
khadi test I shall infer that they have shed 
untouchability, and that they have nothing but 
brotherly feeling towards all without distinction 
of race, colour or creed. Those who will do 
this are as much satyagrahis as those who will 
be singled out for civil disobedience. 

Sevagram, 23-4-40 

Committee for Preliminary Agreement ? 

The following wire from London was received 
by Gandhiji on 22-4-40: 

“London. Grateful to receive an exposition of 
your attitude to proposal that committee of 
Indian leaders representing all interests should 
try to reach agreement on essential preliminary 
to final constitutional settlement. "-News Chronicle 

He has sent the following reply to it: 

“ Proposal . convening committee leaders reach 
preliminary agreement attractive, provided leaders 
elected, not nominated, according to acceptable 
procedure. This is my personal view. Unconsult- 
ed colleagues. "—Gandhi 

NOTICE 

The business hours of our Bombay office will 
hereafter be 8 to 11 A. M. and 3 to 7 P. M. Readers 
will please note the change. Manager 




HARIJAN 


APEIL 27, 1940 ] 


AN IMPORTANT INTERVIEW 

[ The following interview was given by Gandhiji 
to a representative of The Hew York Times. 

A. K.] 

Q. I have heard it said on behalf of Britain, 
" We cannot say what the new world is going 
to be at the end of the war; the Indian prob- 
lem cannot be isolated from world problems ; 
Dominion Status, Independence, may mean some- 
thing very different then, or nothing at all, if 
Germany should win. Therefore why should not 
India accept Dominion Status under the Statete 
of Westminster now and take her chance and 
■her opportunity at the Peace Conference ? 
Dominion Status under existing circumstances is 
the highest we can offer India. ” You yourself 
have said, “ Of what value is freedom to India 
if Britain and France fail ? ” Can you throw 
some light on these points ? 

A, The legal status of India, whether it is 
Dominion Status or something else, can only 
come after the war. It is not a question at 
present to decide whether India should be 
satisfied with Dominion Status for the time 
being. The only question is what is the British 
policy ? Does Great Britain still hold the view 
that it is her sole right to determine the status 
of India or whether it is the sole right of TnHia 
to make that determination ? E that question had 
not been raised, there would have been no dis- 
cussion such as we are facing today. The ques- 
tion having been raised — and it was India’s tight 
to raise it — I was bound to throw in my weight, 
such as it is, with the Congress. Nevertheless 
I can still repeat the question I put to myself 
immediately after the first interview with the 
Viceroy : “ Of what value is freedom to India if 
Britain and France fail ?” If these powers fail, 
the history of Europe and the history of the 
world will be written in a manner no one can 
foresee. Therefore my question has its own 
independent value. The relevant point, however, 
is that by doing justice to India Britain might 
ensure victory of the Allies because their cause 
will then be acclaimed as righteous by the 
enlightened opinion of the world. 

Q. Have you any views about world federa- 
tion ( Strait’s scheme of 15 white democracies 
with India excluded at present ) or about 
a federation of Europe with the British Com- 
monwealth and again excluding India ? Would 
you advise India to enter such a larger federa- 
tion so as to prevent a domination of the 
coloured races by the white ? 

A. Of course I would welcome a world 
federation of all the nations of the world. A 
federation of the Western nations only will be 
an unholy combination and a menace to huma- 
nity. In my opinion a federation excluding 
India is now an impossibility. India has already 

passed the stage when she could be safely 
neglected. 

Q. You have seen in your lifetime more 
devastation by war than there has been at any 


105 


time in the world’s history. And yet do you 
still believe in non-violence as the basis of a 
new civilization? Are you satisfied that your 
own countrymen accept it without reservation ? 
You continue to harp on your conditions being 
fulfilled before starting civil disobedience. Do 
you still hold to them ? 

A. You arc right in pointing out that there 
is unheard-of devastation going on in the world. 
But that is the real moment for testing my 
faith in non-violence. Surprising as it may 
appear to my critics, my faith in non-violence 
remains absolutely undimmed. Of course non- 
violence may not come in my lifetime in the 
measure I would like to see it come, but that 
is a different matter. It camnot shake my faith, 
and that is why I have become unbending so 
far as the fulfilment of my conditions prior to 
the starting of civil disobedience is concerned; 
because, at the risk of being the laughing-stock 
of the whole world, I adhere to my belief that 
there is an unbreakable connection between the 
spinning wheel and non-violence so far as India 
is concerned. Just as there are signs by which 
you can recognise violence with the naked eye, 
so is the spinning wheel to me a decisive sign 
of non-violence. But nothing can deter me from 
working away in hope. I have no other method 
for solving the many baffling problems that 
face India. 

/' / / ■ 

Q.' You want a declaration that ' henceforth 

India 'shall govern . herseE according /to her' own- 
wilE You/also, say,-^ “It^is possible- Tor/the best- 
Englishmen and 'fhe best/ Indians tO'^meet'4ogrther 
and/never'^O'' separate ^ill/'they hav^/evolvM a/ 
formula/'acceptable to' both/”' The/ British''^ say/^ 
“■ We are' vitally -interested in'' defence^^our 'com- 
mercial/interests/ and , the-" Indian States;!! Are 
you 'willing to-' allow your- best Englishmen /and 
your, best'Tndi^s to'^en;ter- Ipto a ' treaty 
regard'^ to these^atters ."'^in a/ spirit 
accommodation ’/■''t^^he-'' language/ of the'^ Anglo/ 
Egyptian''^ treaty of^l922.'')C' - . 

/ / ^ 

A;'lf^the bes^Englishmen^and the best Indians-' 
meet /together with ^ a 'Sxed/ determination/hot to- 
separate until they/ have/ reached , an''' agreement/^ 
the '^ay "will have beenf opened 'for the/ sum- 
monmg of ''the/ Constituent ^ AssembN ' ' of ^ my 
conception/ Of , course this comTOat'e''bom:d''will 
have to-'^bc of^one' m^d as toAhe'^ goalJ^ that" 
is/put theAnelting' pot,, there will ^m^hing 
but/^interrmnable'' wrangjiiig. /Therefore .^eljEneter/ 
mination/must ba'tha common'’ cause ^with this 
composite board! 

Q. Supposing India does become free in your 
lifetime, what will you devote the rest of your 
years to ? 

A. E India becomes free in my lEetime and 
I have still energy left in me, of course I 
would take my due share, though outside the 
official world, in building up the nation on a 
strictly non-violent basis. 

Sevagram, 22-4-40 



106 


HAEIJAK 


[ April 27, 1940 


PRINCELY EXTRAVAGANZA 

( Continued Jrom p> 103 ) 

operation,” The motive behind this policy was 
twofold : ( 1 ) combinations should be made 
impossible among the Princes ; ( 2 ) they should 
be rendered incapable of even independent self- 
defence. Peace and protection were offered to 
those who engaged to live “secluded and innocent”. 
The idea was to so weaken and demoralise them 
that they should cease to be a menace to British 
Power, Residents were sent to the various courts. 
Instead of acting in the character of ambassadors 
they assumed the functions of dictators, interfered 
in all their private concerns, countenanced 
refractory subjects against them, and made “ the 
most ostentatious eshibition of their exercise of 
authority’*. Not that -there was felt any real 
concern for the States subjects. On the contrary. 
Lord Hastings deprecated intervention as a 
breach of faith ” and ridiculed solicitude on 
the part of the British for the subjects of a 
“ Native State *’ as “ quixotic ”. The Princes were 
in outward form at least to be absolute masters 
of all within their territories, unquestioned and 
undisturbed, but only ivithin. 

Fishing for Excuses 

This policy of “ subordinate isolation cum 
non-intervention” had, however, some unexpected 
repercussions. As early as 1805 Lord Cornwallis, 
during his second term of oflSce, had ruefully 
noted that “the States which were most inti- 
mately connected* with us were reduced to the 
most forlorn condition, that these powers pos- 
sessed no funds or troops on which they could 
depend, that anarchy and disaffection prevailed 
universally throughout the dominions.” Before 
long, predatory gangs overran the face of the 
whole country and threatened the peace of the 
Company’s territories. In short, the neighbour- 
hood of British India became both unsafe and 
disreputable.” 

As the external menace disappeared “allies” 
were no longer needed who were more a liability 
than an asset, and the policy ot .non-intervention 
was given up in favour of that of active interven- 
tion and annexation. Lord Dalhousie laid down 
the dictum that “the British Government is bound 
not to put aside or neglect such rightful oppor- 
tunities of acquiring territory or revenue as may 
from time to time present themselves.” And since 
some colourable excuse was necessary to justify 
such a course, the British administrators, from 
regarding solicitude for the subjects of the 
“Native States” as “quixotic”, began now to 
appear in the role of disinterested humanitarians 
and “ champions of the oppressed states subjects”. 
The patronage was transferred form the Princes 
to their people; Lord William Bentinck’s 
annexations were nearly all “ punishments for 
misrule ”. Hardinge talked of the “ stigma of 
tolerating oppression, which the British Govern- 
ment cannot submit to.” Lord Dalhousie regard- 
ed his annexations as simply “assignments made 
to the Company by Providence itself in its 


denial of natural heirs to vacant thrones.” But 
they were also a means of “ insuring to the 
population of the State a perpetuity of just 
and mild Government ! ” 

Consolidating Gains 

The rising of 1857 marked the beginning of 
the third phase. The Crown of England had 
emerged from the maelstrom as the unquestioned 
ruler and Paramount Power, The question was 
now to consolidate the foundations of its autho- 
rity. This called for a reversal of the annexa- 
tionist policy of Lord Dalhousie. It has been 
objected that, if the policy of perpetuating the 
States’ rule by the grant of “ adoption sanads ’ 
was accepted, it would cut off “ further oppor- 
tunities of accession of territory”. To this Lord 
Canning’s reply was : 

“ I regard this not as an objection but as a 
recommend^Ltion. Our first care should be to 
strengthen that rule within its present limits, and 
secure for our general supremacy the contented 
acquiescence and respect of all who are subjected to it; 
the supremacy will never be heartily accepted and 
respected so long as we leave ourselves open to the 
doubts which are now felt, and which our uncertain 
policy has justified, as to our ultimate intentions 
towards Native States. We shall not become stronger 
so long as we continue adding to our territory 
without adding to our European force; and the addi- 
tions to that force which we already require are 
probably as large as England can conveniently 
furnish, and they will certainly cost as much as 
India can conveniently pay, As to Civil Government, 
our English officers are too few for the work they 
have in their hands, and our financial means are not 
yet equal to the demands upon us.” 

As “Breakwaters’ to Storm 

“ The safety of our rule,’* he argued, “ is increased, 
not diminished, by the maintenance of native chiefs 
well affected to us-” He recalled how during the 
troublous and anxious days of 1857-58 “these patches 
of native governnoent served as breakwaters to the 
storm which would otherwise have swept over us 
in one great wave.” “ And in quiet times they 
have their uses. Restless men who will accept no 
profession but arms, crafty intriguers bred up in 
native courts, and others who would chafe at our 
stricter and more formal rule, live there contentedly; 
and should the day come when India shall be 
threatened by an external enemy, or when the in- 
terests of England elsewhere may require that her 
eastern Empire shall incur more than ordinary risk, 
one of our best mainstays will be found in these 
native states. But to make them so, we must 
treat their chiefs and their leading families with 
consideration and generosity, teaching them that, 
in spite of all suspicions to the contrary, their inde- 
pendence is safe, that we are not wailing for 
plausible opportunities to convert their territory into 
British territoty, and convincing them that, they have 
nothing to gain by helping to displace us in favour of 
any new rulers from within or without- 

“ It was long ago said by Sir John Malcolm that, 
if we made all India into Zillahs ( or British 
distriots )y it was not in the nature of things that 
our empire should last fifty years, but that, if we 
could keep up a number of native states, without 
political power, but as royal instruments, we should 
exist in India so long as our naval superiority in 
Europe was maintained.” ( Italics mine ) 

(To he continued ) 

Sevagram, 8-4-40 


Pyarelal 



April 27, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


107 


THEN AND NOW 

The January issue of The Asiatic Review that 
has just come to hand contains the text of a 
paper read by Sir Alfred Watson at a meeting 
of the East India Association and a summary 
of the discussion that followed. Among those 
who participated in it were Sir Michael 
O’Dwyer; Mr. F, G. Pratt and Lord Lamington. 
“ What has shocked us in this country, ” remark- 
ed Sir Alfred, quoting Lord Salisbury’s words 
in the House of Lords, “ is that these Indian 
leaders have thought fit to use the international 
situation in order to promote a further step 
towards self-government. ” Sir Alfred proceeded 
to say that, though his own nerves were not 
so susceptible as Lord Salisbury’s, he recognised 
that the latter did represent a point of view, 
and that “ it was a grave misfortune to the 
Indian cause that those holding his ( Lord 
Salisbury’s ) view should have been strength- 
ened in their opposition to Indian aspirations 
by Congress action.” The accusation has since 
been repeated in other quarters too. 

The elasticity of the British conscience is 
proverbial. It has shown itself to be fairly 
tough and shock-proof when Britain really 
meant business. Mr. F. G. Pratt, who as an 
ex-Indian administrator knows both India and 
England well, was not slow to call attention to 
the fact. He reminded Sir Alfred and the house 
that it was in the middle of the Great War 
that the Dominion ministers at the Imperial Con- 
ference of April 16, 1917, had insisted upon “the 
full recognition of the Dominions as autonomous 
units of an Imperial Commonwealth, and of 
India as an important part of the same, and 
also on recognition of the right of the Domi- 
nions and of India to an adequate voice in 
foreign relations.” It did not shock British 
conscience then. Nobody thought of accusing 
the Dominions of “ political bargaining 

The chief contention of the Dominions, it will 
be remembered, was, as voiced by Sir Robert 
Borden, in moving his resolution was that the 
theory of trusteeship, on which the inter- 
imperial relations in regard to the question of 
foreign policy, foreign relations and common 
defence of the Empire were based, “ was certa in 
to prove not only entirely inadequate to the 
needs of the Empire' but incompatible with the 
..aspirations of the people of the Dominions in 
the future,’’ and that “it could not continue 
indefinitely in the future, whatever] might be 
said of it in the past.” Mr. Massey remarked that, 
if the different parts of the Empfre were to be 
kept together, the bonds to hold them wou Id 
need to be, “while stronger than steel, as light 
as silk that will not chafe and not seriously 
inconvenience British citizens in any part of the 
Empire. " The readjustment of the constitutional 
relations of the component parts, further, was 
not to be made contingent upon certain things 
happening in, or certain conditions being satisfi ed 
by, the Dominions concerned, as is sought to be 


done in the case of India today, but were to 
be taken up “as soon as possible after the 
termination of hostilities. ” Most significant was 
the note struck by General Smuts who observed, 
“ If we have no other resolution at this confer- 
ence than this one, I am sure that we will 
have done a good day’s work for this Empire.” 

The resolution, far from proving a “stumbling 
block ” to the recognition of their claim, paved 
the way for the Statute of Westminster. From 
the operation of that Statute India was, how- 
ever, excluded, India has, therefore, a perfect 
right to demand that before she is called upon 
to defend the principle of self-determination in 
Europe it shall be applied in full to her case 
by Britain, as a test of her sincerity. To call 
this “cold calculation” and “exacting the high- 
est price before striking a blow ”, as some of 
the Imperial spokesmen at the East India Asso- 
ciation did, is surely gross perversion of langu- 
age which only changed times and the changed 
scene could make possible 

Sevagram, 22-4-40 Pyarelal 

WHAT BIG EMPLOYERS CAN DO 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Shri Vithaldas Jerajani sends me the following 
from Shri Shantikumar of the Scindia House: 

“During the National Week every effort will be 
made to sell khadi by hawking from place to place. 
Then why not approach the big offices and get them 
to agree to buy khadi for peons’ dresses ? The peons 
dresses are always provided by the Companies. Last 
year the Scindia Company provided khadi uniforms for 
the peons, and this year also we are going to have 
the same. I have already sent circulars to the 
Branches of the Company to use khadi for the 
uniforms of peons there. I am trying to push khadi 
uniforms in other Associated Companies of the 
Scindia Company. 

1 am also trying to push the use of handmade 
paper in the office cf the Scindia Company. I have 
been successful to some extent in this case but not 
to my satisfaction. I am making every effort to 
increase the use of handmade paper.” 

I have no hesitation in whole-heartedly endors- 
ing tbe suggestion made by Shri Shantikumar. 
I would go a step further. In order that the 
peons who have willynilly to wear uniforms 
provided for them may not feel any inferiority, 
the big office staff should set the example by 
themselves voluntarily using khadi for their 
garments. Khadi is one of the greatest levellers. 
The peons should be able to take pride in their 
uniforms. This they will only do when they 
know that their employers use the same material 
as that of which their uniforms are made. The 
greater the approach on the part of employers 
to their employees, the greater the possibility 
of a peaceful solution of the difficult problem of 
class conflict. I therefore hope that Shri Shand- 
kumar’s effort will be appreciated by the other 
employers. Indeed the idea should be taken up 
by all public institutions such as hospitals 
students' hostels, etc. 



108 


HARIJAN 


[ Apeil 27, 1940 


The use of handmade paper is a less difficult 
problem. For good handmade paper is any day 
more artistic than and superior to the ordinary 
mill paper, and there is not the same difference 
in the prices of the two varieties as in th^ 
case of khadi and mill-made cloth. The big 
houses owe it to the millions to use as many 
handmade articles as is possible for them to do. 

Sevagramo 22-4-40 

ABOUT ZAMINDARS 


who are as patriotic as any Congressmen, 

2 A nationalist Zamindar will try to live like 
a non-Zamindar, He will regard his tenants as 
his co-proprietors; in other words, he will hold 
his Zamindari in trust for his tenants taking a 
moderate commission for the use of his labours 
and capital. A nationalist non-Zamindar will not 
regard the Zamindar as his natural enemy but 
will seek redress of his wrongs by the process 
of conversion, I have shown before now that 
this is not a long drawn out agony. 


( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

A first class Deccan Sardar propounds the 
following conundrums : 

“You say, on page 442 lines 4-6 of Harijan of 
10th February, that you put Europeans on the same 
footing as big Zamindars and capitalists. T presume 
that you include in the general word ‘Zamindars’ 
Inamdars, Talukdars and big Landholders. 

1. Will you be pleased to say whether you 
remember and realise the fact that Europeans are 
foreigners and their earnings and profits go out of 
the country to enrich other nations and make them 
more powerful instruments to exploit India; while 
Zamindars and Inamdars, particularly of Maha- 
rashtra, are Indians, who have patriotic blood running 
in their veins, and who will lay their bones in India, 
and all their earnings and savings, and even their 
extravagance will remain in this country and enrich 
the country ? Many of these people have national 
interests fully at heart and are always prepared to 
help the national development. 

2. What are the differences between a nationa- 
list Zamindar and a nationalist non-Zamindar, in 
your opinion ? 

3. What exact position do you assign to Zamin- 
dars and Inamdars, and the capitalists in a free 
and Independent India ? Will these classes be allowed 
to fully play their proper and active part in national 
development ? Can these two classes expect justice 
and fair play in an Independent India ? 

4. Have the Zamindars and Inamdars and capi- 
talists any place in the present Congress, consistent 
with their limitations and commitments ? ” 

Answer : 

1, I make no difference between Europeans 
and Indians, if the former conform to the laws 
of Free India. I cannot, consistently with my 
views on non-violence. Under my scheme, 
European settlers will not be allowed to exploit 
the country as most of them are doing today. 
Patriots will have had their reward in the shape 
of freedom of their country. They are no patriots 
who arc working with selfish personal ends in 
view. If we create a State based on pure justice, 
real equality and genuine brotherhood, Europeans 
will cease to be foreigners. They will take 
pride in pooling their talents for the sole good 
of the country of their adoption. 

I gladly acknowledge the fact that there are 
many Inamdars, Zamindars and other capitalists 


3. This is answered in the foregoing. Anta- 
gonism between the classes will be removed. I 
do not envisage a dead and artificial level, 
among the people. There will be a variety among 
them as there is among the leaves of a tree. 
There will certainly be no have-nots, no un- 
employment, and no disparity between classes 
and masses such as we see today. I have no 
doubt whatsoever that, if non-violence in its full 
measure becomes the policy of the State, we 
shall reach essential equality without strife. 

4. All who subscribe to the simple creed 
of the Congress can join it. As a matter of 
fact there are many monied members of the 
Congress. To quote only one instance, Jamna- 
lalji is a capitalist and he is a member of the 
Working Committee. 

Sevagram, 22-4-40 

Home and Village Docte 
By SaHsh Chandra Dasgtipla 

1384 pages. 18 chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages. 
219 illustrations. Price Rs. 5 cloth-bound; By V. P. 
P- Rs. 6. Published by Kjiadi Pratisthan, 1 5 College 
Square, Calcutta. Available at (1) Harijan office — 
Poona 4; (2) Harijan office — 81 Queens Road,, 
opp. Marine Lines Station, Bombay 2. “ Every village 
worker knowing English will make it a point to 
possess a copy,*’ says Gandhiji. Several eminent 
doctors have spoken highly of the book. "The book",, 
says the author, "has behind it the experience of over 
ten thousand cases treated in the various institutions 
connected with the Khadi Pratisthan for the past 
seven years, according to the lines indicated. *’ 

CONTENTS Page 

Question Box ... M. K. Gandhi 101 

In the Wake of 

Mechanisation I-II ... C. S. 102 

Princely Extravaganza IJ ... Pyarelal 103" 

Civil Disobedience ... M. K. Gandhi 104 

An Important Interview ... A. K. 105 

Then and Now .... Pyarelal 10/ 

About Zamindars ... M. K. Gandhi 10> 

Note: 

Committee for Preliminary 

Agreement ? M. K. G. 104 

What Big Employers 

Can Do ... M. K. G. 107 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press. 915/1 Fergnsson College Road, Poona 4 
SabMiriatimi Rain — lULATO : One year, B«. 4, Six montha, Ba. 2-8, FOBSIQH : One year, Ea. 5-8 or, 8 ah, or 2 $. 



Rego No. B 3092 



Editor : MAHADEV OESAl 


VoL. VIII, No. 12 ] POONA — SATURDAY. MAY 4, 1940 [ ONE ANNA SIX PIES 


QUESTIOiT BOX 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

No Confusion 

Q. There is still a lot of confusion in the 
public mind about the Indian situation. How 
can one remove it ? 

A. Confusion should have been removed as 
soon as the popular ministers resigned. They 
were the chosen representatives of the people. 
They had applied themselves to their work 
with amazing industry and efficiency which 
won the unstinted praise of the Governors. 
They took no rest themselves and allowed none 
to their subordinates. They had set a definite 
programme before themselves which would have 
improved the condition of the masses. It must 
have cost them a lot to give up office. But 
they found to their amazement that Provin- 
cial Autonomy, which Sir Samuel Hoare had 
declared -from the house-tops to be real and 
complete, was reduced to a farce in the twinkling 
of an eye. The popular ministers were to be 
mere registering officers to carry out the will 
of the central executive so far as war measures 
were concerned. In this most vital matter they 
were not consulted formally or informally. So 
the ministers had to resign. This one act of 
theirs was complete in itself. Its importance is 
not felt as it should be because the Congress 
is wedded to non-violence. 

Congress Not Responsible 

Q. Many people believe that the attitude of 
the Congress has precipitated the Muslim 
League resolution about partitioning India. 

A. I do not think so. But if it has, it is a 
distinct gain. It is good that what was in should 
come out. It is easier now to deal with the 
problem. It will solve itself. One distinct gain is 
that nationalist Muslims have become awakened 
to a sense of their duty. 

Muslim Rule = Indian Rule 

Q. Would you prefer Muslim rule to British 
rule ? 

A. The question is badly put. You, being 
British, cannot get out of the babit of thinking 
that India is fit only to be ruled by someone. 
Muslim rule is equivalent to Indian rule. You 
might as well ask me whether I would prefer 
Bengali or Maratha to British rule. Maratha, 
Bengali, Sikh, Dravidian, Parsi, Christian 
(Indian), Muslim — all will be Indian rule. It 
makes no difference to me that some Muslims 
regard themselves as a separate nation. It is 


enough for me that I do not consider them as 
such. They are sons of the soil. Muslims 
considered separately have eight crores of 
unarmed Muslims scattered over India to look 
to. But you have the whole British nation and 
your army of occupation to look to. You 
belong to the ruling race. You are less than one 
hundred thousand in the midst of 350 millions 
over whom you rule. It is a matter of shame 
both for you and us. I need not weigh whose 
is the greater shame. The sooner we get out 
of it the better for both of us. 

You will now understand my answer when I 
say that I would any day prefer Muslim rule 
to British rule. I have no doubt that, if British 
rule which divides us by favouring one or the 
other as it suits the Britishers were withdrawn 
today, Hindus and Muslims would forget their 
quarrels and live like brothers which they are. 
But supposing the worst happened and we had 
a civil war, it would last for a few days or 
months and w>’e would settle down to business. 
In status we are equal. With you, it is 
different. You have disarmed us. Those of us 
who have been trained by you really belong 
to you rather than to us. We are no match, 
for you in military power. You do not know 
how the rule has stunted the nation. 
Immediately British rule is really ended, we 
shall grow as never before, in spite of all 
forebodings. 

Why This Partiality? 

Q. Both Prof. Ranga and Shri Jaiprakash 
Narain have been punished under the law. But 
while you were moved by the latter’s sentence 
you have denounced Prof. Ranga, and this in 
spite of the fact that Prof. Range’s offence was,, 
if anything, a technical one, whereas Shri Jai- 
prakash by obstructing the war effort invited 
the penalty of the law upon himself. I agree 
that Prof. Ranga should not have broken the 
law. But then does not your attitude betray 
partiality on your part towards the one and 
antipathy towards the other ? 

A. You are hopelessly wrong. Your admission 
that Prof. Ranga was wrong in breaking the 
order shows that your cause is not just. Prof. 
Ranga is as good a friend to me as Shri 
Jaiprakash. I should have expressed the same 
opinion about the latter’s action if he had 
done what Prof. Ranga did. There is no room 
in public life for partial friendships. Indeed, real 
friendship is in no need of partiality. I have 



110 


HARIJAK I may 4, 194© 


none for Shri Jaiprakash. Nor have I any anti- 
pathy towards Prof. Ranga. I have perhaps less 
diSerences with Prof. Range than with Shri 
Jaiprakash, but that makes no difference to me, 
Shri Jaiprakash committed no breach of an order. 
He delivered a speech which was regarded as 
contrary to law'. In Prof. Range’s case there 
was a deliberate breach of an order served on 
him. The two things are different, I have 
answered your question, because I attach impor- 
tance to the breach. I also want to warn .those 
who accept Congress discipline against such 
breaches. 

A Municipal Chairman s Duty 

Q. My father is the Congress Municipal 
Chairman of a certain place. In a recent bye- 
election for a ward the official Congress candi- 
date was defeated, A local youth organisation 
gave a tea party in honour of the successful 
non-Congress candidate. My father was invited 
and he attended. His view was that once a 
candidate is elected, no matter to what party 
he belongs, as Chairman it was his duty to 
welcome him and get the best of co-operation 
from him in the interests of civic welfare. 
Some people feel that attending a function given 
in honour of an opponent is harmful to the 
party’s cause. 

A. Your father, I am sure, was quite right. 
He would have been wrong, if he had not 
attended the function. An opponent is entitled 
to the same regard for his principles as we 
would expect others to have for ours. Non- 
violence demands that we should seek every 
opportunity to win over opponents. And what 
can be better than that we share their joys and 
sorrows? Moreover your father as Chairman was 
bound to be impartial. It was, therefore, doubly 
his duty to attend the function. 

Sevagram, 30-4-40 

Gram Sevak Vidyalaya 

The next session of the Gram Sevak Vidyalaya of 
the A. I. V. I. A. Wardha will be from 1-7-40 to 
30-4-41. Admission will be closed on 1st June 
1940 and students must present themselves at the 
Vidyala:^a not later than 1st July 1940, 

Application forms for admission and further parti- 
culars can be had from the Superintendent, Gram 
Sevak Vidyalaya, Maganvadi Wardha, C. P. 

Handmade Paper 

We stock handmade paper in about 75 varieties 
made in 12 different producing centres in India — 
Ahmedabad, Aurangabad, Erandol, Hyderabad ( Dn. ), 
Jaipur, Kalpi, Koratla, Nepal, Outshahi, Sialkot, Sode- 
pur and Wardha — from the thinnest tissue paper and 
air mail paper to the thickest paper, and in many 
different colours, to suit various tastes and require- 
ments. It is sold in the form of whole sheets, letter 
paper, envelopes ( over 50 varieties ), blotting paper, 
cards, account books, office files, tag labels, and 
pocket books. Samples sent on receipt of two anna 
postal stamps. A sample file ( which is a miniature 
exhibition in itself ) sent on receipt of Re, 1, It is 
up to patriotic persons to give l^ndmade paper a 
chance whenever they require any of the things mention- 
ed above. (1) Harijan Office — Poona 4; (2) Harijan 
Branch — 81 Queen’s Road, 0pp. Marine Lines Station, 
Bombay 2. 


PRINCELY EXTRAVAGANZA 

III 

” Divide and Rule 

And so the policy of “ subordinate union and 
co-operation/’ was launched. ‘®The Prince was 
granted possession and administration but not 
sovereignty, and his possession was made condi- 
tional on his remaining faithful in allegiance and 
subordination to the Crown.” ^ Treaties hereafter 
were no longer concluded on terms of equality. 
Older treaties were not revised or abrogated. 
“Instead, the milder and less provocative device 
of constructive interpretation was relied upon.”* 
Difficulties and apparent contradictions involved 
in this policy were vividly described by Lord 
Elgin who succeeded Lord Canning ( 1862 ); 

“ If you attempt to crush all superiorities, you 
unite the native population in a homogeneous mass 
against you. If you foster pride of rank and 
position, you encourage pretensions which you cannot 
gratify, partly because you dare not abdicate your 
own functions as a Paramount Power and partly 
because you cannot control the arrogance of your 
subjects of the dominant ( sic ) race. Scindia and 
Holkar are faithful to us in proportion as they are 
weak and conscious that they require our aid to 
support them against their own subjects and neigh- 
bours.. ..My own opinion is that Canning never 
intended to let the chiefs get the bits into their 
mouths, or to lose his hold over them. It is true 
that he rode them with a loose rein, but the pace 
was so killing that it took the kick out of them 
and a light hand and silken thread were all that 
was required. His policy of deference to the 
authority of the Native Chiefs was a means to an 
end, the end being the establishment of British Raj 
in India; and when the means and the end came 
into conflict, or seemed likely to do so, the former 
went to the wall. ’ 

A Dutch Auction 

Here wc have an authoritative statement of 
the time-honoured British policy of “ divide and 
rule” propounded with a Machiavellian skill and 
frankness that almost takes away one’s breath. 
Lord Curzon’s insistence on “ efficiency ” and his 
dictatorial manner with the Princes, however, 
introduced a ‘ rift in the lute * at a time when 
“the Government of India was beginning under 
political pressure to contemplate utilizing their 
services to counter revolution”.^ Wrote Lord 
Minto, his successor, to Lord Morley (May 28, 
1906 ) : “ I have been thinking a good deal lately 
of a possible counterpoise to Congress aims. I 
think wc may find a solution in the Council 
of Princes.” 

The latter demanded their price and had to 
be propitiated.^ Lord Minto and his successors, 

1. Keith: A Constitutional History of India^ p. 217. 

2. Ibid, p. 217. 

3. Ibidf p. 218. 

4. Compare the following in support of the claim 
put forward by the Bhavnagar Darbar for the 
withdrawal of the plenary jurisdiction which, it was 
complained, the British authorities had unfairly estab- 



May 4, 1940 ] 


HABIJAlf 


while admitting in theory that “ in guaranteeing 
the internal independence of the States and in 
undertaking their protection against external 
aggression... Imperial Government assumed a cer^ 
tain degree of responsibility for the general 
soundness of their administration and would not 
consent to incur the reproach of being an in- 
direct instrument of misrule,” in practice gave 
them a loose rein. The result was that they 
relapsed into the self-indulgent and unenlightened 
despotism from which Lord Curzon had tried 
to pull them out thereby necessitating a long 
chapter of abdications which came to a head 
in Lord Reading’s regime. Their stock, how- 
ever, again soared • high when it was sought to 
bring them into the Federation, “ not, as the 
Simon Commission intended, as fellow self- 
go vering units... but to make the Centre conser- 
vative and pro-English.’*® But the Paramount 
Power, while it was prepared to go a long way 
to humour them as far as their personal extra- 
vaganza was concerned, unceremoniously turned 
down their demand for release from the burden 
of Paramountcy as the price for entering the 
Federation. And even the Conservative Prime 
Minster, Mr. Chamberlain, found it handy to 
take public notice of that usually forgotten 
entity, the States’ subjects. “ He made it clear 
that he did not suppose that there was anyone 
in the House who thought the Princes were 
the only people to be considered.... He was 
unwilling to allow the House to be driven 
from what it thought proper to enter into a 
Dutch auction for the sport of the Princes.” 
Sir Samuel Hoare too was equally frank. He 
plainly told the Princes that Paramountcy must 
remain paramount. The only way in which 
they could lighten the burden of paramountcy 
for themselves was by exchanging for it. 
in certain spheres, the control of the Federal 
Government, if they so chose. If they had the 
most of Federation, they would be under the 
least of paramountcy. But* having declared its 
unpreparedness to enter into a Dutch auc- 
tion for the sport of the Princes, whom it 
claimed as its vassals, to bring them into the 
Federation, the Paramount power now turns 
round and requires the Congress to do • the same 

lished over the Bhavnagar State Railway: “One 
of the ironies of the thing is that the Princes, who 
have taken a stern line against the spread of sedi- 
tion by agitators from British India, are debarred 
from loyal action. The situation was summed up 
in 1918 by the Maharaja of Bhavnagar: 

“ With the control of the police of my railway 
taken away from me, any agitation walla or mischief- 
monger from Ahmedabad, or any other part of the 
country, can make use of my own railway to travel 
and come up to Bhavnagar station, and knock at 
the very gate of my capital city. He can instigate 
my employers to go on strike, to hamper the 
working of the railway, to misuse the telegraph wires 
and generally to defy authority — and this without 
my being able so much to point a finger at him.” 
( A. P. Nicholson : Scraps of Paper ^ p. 229 ) 

5, Mr. J. Wedgewood before the Joint Select 
Committee. 


ill 


in order to negotiate a settlement v^ith them as 
a condition precedent to the fulfilment of its 
declaration with regard to the Indian Independ- 
ence that it has made before the world 1 
A Mockery of Justice 

This is a strange mockery of justice. The 

Crown claims and exercises absolute suzerainty 
over the Princely order. It questions their right 
to introduce reforms in the States without the 
previous consent snd sanction of the Political 
Department. They are Kable to be set aside 
for “ not listening ” to the advice that the 
Crown’s Representative might give them. Yet it 
is the Congress which is today charged with 
failure to settle terms with them. Nationalist 
India would welcome them into partnership 

with itself on a basis of absolute equality pro- 
vided they came as free agents, representing the 
will of their people. It refuses to admit them 

as a wooden horse of Troy within its body 

politic. To describe this attitude as one of 
‘ hostility ’, as the Maharaja Saheb of Bikaner has 
done in his speech, is surely a travesty of true 
facts. The Maharaja Saheb is beating thin air when 
he accuses the Congress of wanting to tear up 
the treaties of the States like so many scraps 
of paper. Nicholson’s Scraps of Paper, surely, 
does not refer to the doings of the Congress. 
Similarly, far from asking for the abolition of 
the States, the Congress has offered the only 
solution which will restore to the States a 
reality and a vitality which, on their own admi- 
ssion, Pax Brittanica has robbed them of, ® and 
give to their rulers, as constitutional monarchs, 
a status of honourable equality in a free India, 

Sevag ram, 8-4-40 Pyarelal 

6. Compare the following from a statement from 
the Chamber of Princes: 

“ Protection ( by the British ) was from the first 
no unmixed blessing to them (Princes) as autocratic 
rulers... -It detracted from the merits of autocracy as 
a system of government. An autocrat justifies his 
despotical rule, if he retains his power by his own 
personality and ability, but not otherwise.... TAe 
* blessing' of external protection removes what is 
perhaps the greatest incentive to able administration,- 
the ruler's fear of his own subjects, if he does not 
give them satisfaction. It is a Greek gift which 
indirectly has done more than anything else to keep 
the Indian Princes and their States from progressing 
at the pace of British India.’* — ( The Crown and the 
Indian States, p- 119-120) (Italics mine) 

Corrections 

In article II of this series in last issue, on 
p. 103, col. 1, para 1, line 1, read ‘gyrations, 

instead of * gradations and on p. 106, col. 2, 
para 2, line 7, read ‘ had ’ instead of ‘ has 
Home and Village Doctor 
By Satish Chandra Dasgupta 

1384 pages. 18 chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages. 
219 illustrations. Price Rs. 5 cloth-bound; By V. P. 
P. Rs. 6. Published by Khadi Pratisthan, 15 College 
Square, Calcutta. Available at (1) Harijan office — 
Poona 4; { 2 ) Harijan office — 81 Queen’s Road, 
opp. Marine Lines Station, Bombay 2. 



112 


HARIJAN 


[ May 4, 1940 


THE HAND OF THE DEVIL? 

Now that the Muslim League has gone beyond 
even the expectations of the adepts in the 
policy of ‘ divide and rule Lord Zetland 
describes the pardtion as “ constitutiog some- 
thing not far short of a counsel of despair ”, 
and says that its acceptance would be “ an 
admission of failure of tbc devoted labours of 
Indians and Englishmen alike over a long period 
of concentrated effort.” If by “ the devoted 
labours of Indians and Englishmen ” he means 
the labours of Indians who built up the Indian 
National Congress through mere than fifty years, 
and of Englishmen like Mr. A. O. Hume, Sir 
William Wedderburo, and the last but by no 
means the least of them Deenabandhu C. F. 
Andrews, his words are absolutely true. Partition 
would not only be an admission of failure ” of 
those devoted labours, but it would be wanton 
destruction of the edifice of unity they have 
patiently wrought to erect. But Lord Zetland’s 
words have a tragically ironic ring when one 
thinks of the endeavours that have been made 
“over a long period”, not to unite the two 
communities, but to divide them, by those who 
were entrusted v^ith the work of consolidating 
the Empire. 

One wonders if Lord Zetland knows that the 
principal authors of the two nations theory 
were the Empire-builders of Britain, his 
predecessors in the offices that he has one time 
or other occupied. We cannot fix the guilt 
either of the monstrosity or the originality of 
’ the suggestion on Jinnali Saheb. It was con- 
ceived and defined by the “ rulers”. The first 
of those was Lord Dufferin — there were earlier 
ones like Sir Bartle Frere, but they had not 
enunciated the theory in such definite terms — 
who warned the Muslims against any identifica- 
tion with the Hindus in a political objective 
and propounded the two nations theory in 
these terms: 

“Bat perhaps the most patent characteristic of 
our Indian cosmos is its division into two mighty 
political communities as distinct from each other as 
the poles asunder in their religious faith, their his- 
torical antecedents, their social organisation and their 
natural aptitudes; on the one hand the Hindus 
numbering 190 millions with their polytheistic beliefs, 
their temples adorned with images and idols, their 
veneration for the sacred cow, their elaborate caste 
distinctions, and their habits of submission to suc- 
cessive conquerors — on the other hand the Mohame- 
dans, a nation of 50 millions with their monotheism, 
their iconoclastic fanaticism, their animal sacrifices, 
their social equality, and their remembrance of the 
days when enthroned at Delhi they reigned supreme 
from the Himalayas to Cape Comorin. ” 

It would be difficult to compress in a brief 
paragraph more mischievous half-truths than 
Lord Dufferin did. Lords Minto and Morley 
went a step further by helping to perpetuate the 
apparent division. Lord Minto declared any 
electoral representation in India as “ doomed to 


mischievous failure which aimed at granting a 
personal enfranchisement regardless of the beliefs 
and traditions of the communities composing 
the population of this continent.” It was a 
clever way of expressing the theory, but Lord 
Morley was brutally frank : “ Only let us not 
forget that the differences between Mohamedan- 
ism and Hinduism is not mere difference of 
articles of religious faith or dogmas. It is a 
difference in life, in tradition, in history, in all 
the social things as well as articles of beliefs 
that constitute a community. Do not let us 
forget that in talking of Hindus and Moha- 
medans we are. dealing with and are brought 
face to face with historic issues.” 

Some of the Muslims of those days were easy 
disciples of those British tutors, and even proud 
giants like Sir Syed Ahmed appealed to the 
Mussalmans to look to their communal interests 
as against national interests which were illusory. 
But it was. reserved, in the words of Maulana 
Mahomed Ali, “for General Dyer to break down 
entirely the barrier that Sir Syed Ahmed had 
for temporary purposes erected more than thirty 
years previously, and to summon the Mussalmans 
of India to the Congress held at Amritsar in 
1919 as the unsuspecting herald of India’s 
nationhood. The bullets of his soldiery made no 
distinction between Hindu and Muslim, and 
clearly Providence had so designed things that 
a community even more loyal than the Mussal- 
mans. namely our brave Sikh brothers, should 
also dye the sacred soil of their religious capital 
at Amritsar with their own blood along with 
that of Hindu and Muslim martyrs. There is 
the hand of God.” 

But let me correct Maulana Mahomed Ali in 
one or two respects. Even Sir Syed Ahmed had 
not thought that the barrier he had recognised 
— it had been erected not by him, but by the 
English masters as we have seen — could in any 
way be permanent. In a speech at Gurdaspur in 
1884, he said : 

“From the oldest times the word ‘nation’ is 
applied to the inhabitants of one country, though 
they differ in some peculiarities which are charac- 
teristic of their own. Hindu and Mahomedan brethren, 
do you people .any country other than Hindustan ? 
Do you inhabit the same land ? Are you not burned 
and buried on the same soil? Do you not tread 
the same ground and live upon the same soil ? 
Remember that the words Hindu and Mahomedan 
are only meant for religious distinction — otherwise 
all persons, whether Hindu or Mahomedan, even the 
Christians who reside in this country, are all in 
this particular respect belonging to one and the 
same country. Then all these different communities 
can only be described as one nation; they must each 
and all unite for the good of the country which is 
common to all.” 

In a Lahore speech he went even further and said: 

“What we do see is that we inhabit the same 
land, are subject to the rule of the same governors, 
the fountains of benefit for all are the same, and 



may 4, 1940 ] 


HAEIJAN 


113 


the pangs of famine also we suffer equally. These 
are the different grounds upon which I caJl both 
those races which inhabit India by one word, Hindu, 
meaning to say that they are inhabitants of Hindustan. 

And it must be remembered that it was Sir 
Syed Ahmed who used that famous simile — ■ 
Hindus and Mussalmans being the two eyes of 
the same human body, each indispensable to 
the other — ■ which later Jinnah Saheb himself 
adopted in one of his speeches. 

And Maulana Mahomed Ali was less than fair 
to the Muslim leaders of pre-Jallianwalla days. 
There were men like Justice Badroodin Tyebji 
and Mr. Rahimatulla Sayani who whole-heartedly 
supported the Congress. But there were men 
like Mian Muhammad Shafi who, though they 
had not joined the Congress, were anything but 
separatists. This is what the Mian Saheb said 
at the All India Muslim League meeting in 1913 : 

“ Now the Indian Mussalmans consist of two 
sections. Firstly those who themselves being descend- 
ants of the pre-Aryan aborigines and of the 
Aryan settlers in India, were converted -to Islam 
during the long centuries of Muslim ascendancy in 
this country, and secondly those who are descendants 
of the Muslim conquerors from the West. It is 
obvious that the former are as much Indians as 
our Hindu brethren, and the latter having settled in 
India centuries ago and, having made it their per- 
manent home, have as vital a stake in the material 
prosperity and political progress of their motherland 
as any other section of the. Indian population. But 
there is, in this' connection, a fact of great 
political importance which must not be lost sight 
of. The majority of Indian Mussalmans belong to 
the agricultural or quasi-agricullural classes, and are 
therefore relatively more identified v/ith the permanent 
Indian interests than the other classes of our 
population. Under these undeniable circumstances, it 
is but natural that the warm blood of Indian 
patriotism courses through the veins of Indian 
Mussalmans with the same vitality as is the case 
with those articulate classes whose patriotic spirit 
finds loud expression from the public platform and 
in the press. ” 

There were others like Mr, A. Rasul, Syed 
Hassan and Syed Ali Imam, and later Maulana 
Abul Kalam Azad. In 1915 the Ali Brothers 
cast in their lot with the nationalist Mussalmans. 
Jinnah Saheb, whose utterances of an earlier 
day we examined the other day, was a disciple 
of those Mussalmans who stood for a united 
nation. But he is now recanting his earlier 
professions, denying his Muslim tutors and evi- 
dently going back to the teaching of the British 
tutors. He forgets that he is flying in the face 
of those experienced Muslim leaders who like 
Mian Muhammad Shafi had patiently argued out 
and rejected the separatist theory. 

As for Lord Zetland, one would respectfully 
remind him that the tribe of Dufferins and 
Colvins and Mayos is not extinct. Lord Hailey 
supports the two nations theory as much as 
Lord Zetland professes to disown it. “ The 


Mussalmans," he said recently, “ can never forget 
that until our arrival in India they ruled the 
whole country. They are deeply suspicious 
any political development v/hich may place 
them under the control of a Hindu majority. 
They are not merely a political minority as we 
understand it, there are deep-seated social and 
cultural differences between them and Hindus, 
It is again a fact which counts for much, that 
they have religious connections with the warlike 
Mohammedan peoples on the frontier and beyond 
it.” If, as Maulana Mahomed Ali said, ” the hand 
of God ” had worked in Jallianwalla, may it be 
that the hand of the Devil is working today ? 

Sevagram, 28-4-40 M. D. 


Example Belter than Precept 

The Junior Maharaja of Dewas has expressed 
his active sympathy for khadi — and all village 
industries, we presume — in a manner which will 
leave no manner of doubt in the minds of State 
employees and the people of the State. The 
Maharaja, speaking at the Malhar Exhibition on 
the 1st of March, said : 

“ I have a proposal to place before you regarding 
khadi. Next year there should be a stall in the exhibi- 
tion exclusively devoted to khadi, khadi goods, and giv- 
ing facts and figures showing the advantages of khadi. 
This year I had sent Sliri Salcharam Chaudhri to 
receive training in the processes of khadi manufac- 
ture, and I am glad that he has returned with all 
the training that he could get. But I want to 
extend the work on a wide scale, and if necessary 
I _ may send more people for training. I also pro- 
pose to spend an adequate amount on this object. 

I would appeal to the Exhibition Committee to 
restrict themselves to the use of khadi for all the 
cloth that may be necessary in the construction 
of the exhibition. This khadi should be woven in, 
and prepared from yarn spun in, IDewas, and every- 
one in the State should aim at exhibiting here 
something of his or her own manufacture. I pro- 
pose to place an exhibit myself, and so will all the 
members of my family. I hope all people will co- 
operate in the fulfilment of this object and will 
make of the khadi exhibition as great a success as 
they made of the fruit and vegetables show. 

I approched in this matter other States in Central 
India, but I am sorry to say there was no response. 
I therefore have decided to do the thing myself 
and set an example.” 

Before this, on the 29th January 1940, the 
Maharaja had issued the following appeal in 
AkJibar Martand, a local paper: 

“ Malre Khadi your own.” 

“There is an^ English proverb which says, ‘Charity 
begins at home,’ and everyone is familiar with the 
appeal, ‘ Support Home Industries. ’ Acting on these 
adages I would ask all the State officials to dress 
themselves in clothes made of khadi, white or 
coloured, manufactured in our State. I am speaking 
from experience. I use home-made khadi. I shall 
be delighted if my example is followed. It will bene- 
fit the people, and it will give a fillip to the cottage 
industries in the State.” 

■We congratulate the Dewas Maharaja on the 
thoroughgoing way in which he has taken up 
the matter, and we hope others will follow 
his example. 

Sevagram, 29-4-40 M. D. 



il4 


KARIJAN 


[ May 4, 1940 


¥ 

1 

1 Mas? ^ 

1940 1 


OF WHAT AVAIL IS 


NOH-VIOLENCE ? 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

An Indian friend writes : 

“ Yesterday Kealer in patbeiic terms reSated how 
the population of Norway under the rain of bombs 
and machine gun bullets was fleeting from towns 
completely demoralised and in panic. It is shocking 
that such good people should so suddenly bo 
reduced to this helpless condition simply because they 
had neither the will nor the resources to develop 
the technique of destruction into a fine art. The 
futility of violence, and also, I fear, its temporary 
efficacy, is b§ing proved. Of what avail was the 
violent defence of Norway ? And yet for the 
time being the bigger violence of Germany seems 
to have succeeded ! Let us hope eventually everyone 
will see the futility of violence and a new era 
may dawn. But are we really making a non-violent 
contribution to-wards the world problem ? Of what 
avail is our non-violence to Norway, Sweden and 
Denmark ? Virtually, are we not giving a handle to 
Germany ? True, we are doing nothing beyond 
embarrassing Great Britain, and perhaps we may 
say that such an embarrassment is inevitable and is 
not caused deliberately. But the fact remains that 
England is in distress and by our action we are 
embarrassing not only England but all other good 
nations who have been victims of aggression. We are 
not likely, it seems, to succeed in changing England's 
heart. And victims like Norway etc. can never 
appreciate our attitude. In the light of our present 
attitude, the international world can with justification 
misinterpret our past help to victims of aggression 
like China and Spain. Were they more deserving of 
our help than the present victims ? And if not, then 
why this distinction ? Simply because an imperialist 
power, even for the sake of its own interest, 
happens to decide to do something which is noble 
and moral ! You have never regretted your action 
during the last war when you . vigorously recruited 
people for military purposes. This time your altitude 
appears to be in sharp contrast, although you say 
that both attitudes are right.” 

correspondent is not alone in bemoaning 
the lot of most cultured and inoffensive people 
like the Danes and the Norwegians. This war 
is showing the futility of violence. Supposing 
Hitler becomes victorious over the Allies, he 
will never subjugate England and France/ It 
will mean another war. Supposing the Allies are 
victorious, the world will fare no better. They 
will be more polite but not less ruthless, unless 
they learn the lesson of non-violence during the 
war and unless they shed the gains they have 
made through violence. The first condition of 
non-violence is justice all round in every depart- 


ment of life. Perhaps it is too mucii to expect 
of human nature. I do not, however, think so. 
No one should dogmatise about the capacity of 
human nature for degradation or exaltation. 

Indian non-violence has brought no relief to 
the cultured Western powers because it is still 
poor stuff. Why travel so far to see its 
inefficacy? We in India are torn asunder in 
spite of the Congress policy of non-violence. 
The Congress itself is distrusted. Not until 
the Congress or a similar group of people 

represents the non-violence of the strong, will 
the world catch the infection. 

India’s aid to Spain and China was merely 
moral. The material aid was but an insignifi- 
cant token of it. There is hardly an Indian 

who does not feel the same sympathy for 
Norway and Denmark who lost their freedom 
overnight. Though their case is different from 
that of Spain and China, their ruin is more 
complete perhaps than that of Spain and China, 
Indeed there is a material difference even between 
China and Spain. But there is no difference so 
far as sympathy is concerned. Pauper India has 
nothing to send to these countries except her 
non-violence. But as I have said this is not yet 
a sendable commodity. . It will be, when India 
has gained her freedom through non-violence. 

There then -remains Britain’s case. The 
Congress has caused no embarrassment. I have 
declared already that I shall do nothing to 
embarrass Great Britain. She will be embarrass- 
ed if there is anarchy in India. That, the 
Congress, so long as it is under my discipline, 
'^ill not support. 

What the Congress cannot do is to lend its 
moral influence to Britain. Moral influence is 
never mechanically given. It is for Britain to take 
it. Perhaps British statesmen do not think the 
Congress has any to lend. Perhaps they think 
that all they need is material aid in this warring 
world. If they do, they will not be far wrong. 
Morality is contraband in war. My correspondent 
has given up the whole of his case for Britain 
when he says, ** We are not likely to succeed 
in changing Britain’s heart.” I do not wisli ill 
to Britain, I shall grieve if Britain goes down. 
But the moral influence of the Congress cannot 
avail Britain unless she washes her hands clean 
of India. It works under its own unalterable 
condition. 

My friend does not see* the difference between 
my recruiting in Kheda and my attitude now. 
During the last war the moral issue had not 
been raised. The Congress was not pledged to 
non-violence. It had not the moral hold on 
the masses it now enjoys. I was acting on my 
own in all I did. I had even attended the War 
Conference. And to be true to my declaration 
I had been recruiting at the cost of my health. 

I _toId the people that, if they wanted arms, 
military service was the surest way to get them. 
But if they were non-violent like me, my appeal 
was not to them. There was no non-violent 



May 4, 1940 ] 


115 


HAHIJAIT 


man among my audiences so far as 1 knov7. 
Their reluctance was based on ill-will towards 
Britain. This was gradually giving place to an 
enlightened determination to throw off the 
foreign yoke. 

Things have changed since then. In spite of 
the unanimous support that Britain got during 
the last v»7ar from India, the British attitude was 
translated into the Rowlatt Act and the like. 
The Congress accepted aon-vioient non-coopera« 
tion to meet the British menace. There is the 
memory of the Jallianwala Bagh, the Simon 
Commission, the Round Table Conferences, the 
emasculation of Bengal for the sake of the mis- 
deeds of a few. The Congress having accepted 
non-violence, I do not need to go to the people 
to give^ recruits. Through the Congress I can 
give something infinitely better than a few such 
recruits. Of that evidently Britain has no need. 
I am willing but helpless. 

Sevagram, 30-4-40 

AN ENGLISH SUGGESTION 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

An English friend writes thus : 

“ It is still reasonable at present to proceed on 
the assumption that the Muslims would accept some- 
thing a good deal less than * Pakistan ’. But the 
trouble is that the longer the time that elapses 
without any compromise solution being reached, the 
stronger and more insistent will be ilic cry for 
“Pakistan*, so that in the end civil war or partition 
will be the only alternatives, I think the view 
held by some that there is nothing to be done 
but ‘to wait upon events is fatal. It is up to the 
British now to use all their powers of persuasion 
and statesmanship to compel the parties to settle. 

The crux of the matter is who is to control 
power at the Centre — Hindus or Muslims ? Over 
this the Congress must be prepared to make 
great concessions. The principles of parliamentary 
democracy and majority rule must be jettisoned- 
They are not applicable when two distinct civilisa- 
tions have got to lie down together. Majority 
rule from the Muslim point of view will mean or, 
at any rate, contain the menace of the dominance 
of one civilisation over the other. If the Congress 
do not recognize this quickly, I am afraid that 
partition will become, if not the only alternative, 
the best one — which will give you- an idea of 

how bad the other alternatives will be ! 

« 

If the Congress can be brought to see the need 
for great concessions on this point, I am sure 
compromise solutions can be found. I hold this 
necessity to be vital. ** 

Of course the British Government can do much. 
They have done much by force. They can 
make the parties come to a solution by force. 
But they need not go so far. What they have 
done hitherto is to prevent a proper solution. 
In proof of my statement I commend the esteemed 
correspondent to the columns of Harijan, The 
only thing the British Government -have to 


do IS zo change their attitude. Will they ? They 
can retain their hold ®n India only by a policy of 
divide and rule. A living unity between Muslims 
and Hindus is fraught v/ith danger to their rule. 
It would mean an end of it. Therefore it seems 
to me that a true solution will come with the 
end of the rule, potentially if not in fact. 

What can be done under the threat of Paki- 
stan ? If it is not a threat but a desirable goal, 
why should ic be prevented ? If it is undesir- 
able and mectnt only for the Ivlasiims to get 
more under its shadow, any solution would be 
an unjust solution. It would be worse than no 
solution. Therefore I am entirely for waiting 
till the menace is gone. India’s independence is 
a living thing. No make-believe will suit. The 
whole world is in the throes of a nevy^ birth. 
Anything done for a temporary gain would be 
tantamount to an abortion. 

I cannot think in terms of narrow Hinduism 
or narrow Islam. I am wholly uninterested in a 
patchwork solution. India is a big country, a big 
nation composed of different cultures, which are 
tending to blend with one another, each com- 
plementing the rest. If I must wait for the com- 
pletion of the process, I must wait. It may not 
be completed in my day. I shall love to die in 
the faith that it must come in the fullness of 
time. I should be happy to think that I had 
done nothing to hamper the process. Subject 
to this condition, I would do anything to bring 
about harmony. My life is made up of com- 
promises, but they have been compromises 
that have brought me nearer the goal. Pakistan 
cannot be worse than foreign domination, I 
have lived under the latter though not willingly. 
If God so desires it, I may have to become 
a helpless witness to the undoing of my dream. 
But I do not. believe that the Muslims really 
want to dismember India. 

Sevagram, 29-4-40 

Wanton Destruction in Bidar 

A correspondent is grieved that I have been 
silent about the shocking tragedy in Bidar 
( Hyderabad State ). I have before now said in 
another connection that because I say nothing 
in public about certain wrongs it is not to be 
thought that I am oblivious to them or that I am 
doing nothing. I must be allowed to judge what 
is best under given circumstances. If all I have 
heard about Bidar (not all has been published 
in the papers) is true, nothing quite like it has 
happened anywhere in all India. If Hyderabad 
State is not to be given over to lawlessness 
and Hindu life and property not rendered value- 
less, there should be a thorough and impartial 
judicial inquiry commanding confidence, and full 
compensation should be given to those who arc 
rendered suddenly homeless. It is to be hoped 
that Muslim opinion outside Hyderabad will ask 
for full investigation into the happenings. 

Sevagram, 30-4^0 M. K. G. 



116 


HARiJAK 


[ May 4, 1940 


THE AJMER TROUBLE 

(By M. K. Gandlii) 

Having published the gist of the case of the 
Khadi Exhibition organisers about the national 
flag incident, I am in duty bound to publish 
the following communique of the Commissioner 
of Ajmer Merwara on the incident; 

" A feature of the celebration by the Ajmer Con- 
gress of what is known as the ‘National Week’ has 
been an exhibition organised by a committee known 
as the ‘ Khadi Gram Udyog Exhibition Committee*. 
For this a number of temporary structures have 
been erected adjoining the fort on a plot of nazul 
landj which is under the control of the Municipal 
Committee. Advantage was taken of the fact that 
the exhibition attracted large crowds of people to 
hold political meetings on a vacant plot between the 
exhibition grounds and the entrance to the city 
kotwali. At two of these meetings speeches of an 
extremely objectionable character were delivered, and 
it was evident that the organizers of ihe meetings 
who are members of the local Congress were attem- 
pting under the pretext of promoting the use of 
khadi and village industries in general to bring the 
Government into hatred and contempt. The fact that 
these seditious utterances were made at a place 
adjoining a barrack occupied by constables stationed 
at the kotwali was an additional provocation. 

Further, the organisers of the exhibition set up a 
flag-staff on an outlying bastion of the fort from 
which the Congress flag was flown. This bastion is 
on Government land and is a part of the kotwali 
Police Station. Permission was neither sought for 
nor obtained for this act. Apart from the un- 
desirability of a party emblem of this nature being 
displayed from a Government building, the flying of 
the Congress flag from the ramparts of an ancient 
Moghul fort, which is a protected monument, caused 
grave offence to certain sections of the public. 

After satisfying himself by personal inspection as to 
the facts, the Commissioner decided to issue two 
prohibitory orders to prevent a breach of public 
tranquillity. The first order was addressed to the 
organisers of the exhibition by name, and it directed 
them to remove the flag and flag-staff within one 
hour and to refrain from re-erecting it within 400 
yards of the fort ramparts. The second order was 
a general one prohibiting political meetings under 
^e Municipal limits for a period of ten days. The 
issue of this order was rendered necessary by the 
manner in which certain partisans of the Congress 
had abused the opportunity which the holding of 
the Khadi Exhibition presented. 

As far as the first order is concerned, the indi- 
viduals to whom it was addressed intimated in 
writing their refusal to comply, whereupon the police 
were directed to remove the flag and the flag-staff. 
Action is being taken separately regarding the 
refusal of the organisers of the exhibition to comply 
with the order.” 

If the above version is true, the case of the 
Exhibition Committee falls to the ground. I 
may state that a correspondent claiming to 
be impartial sends a letter supporting ' the 
version of the Ajmer authorities, I refrain from 
expressing any opinion till my investigation 
is complete. One thing, however, is clear. The 
Commissioner has done everything he can to 
incite the Muslims against the Exhibition 
Committee, Prejudice against it peeps out through 
a portion of the communique. Even if the 
facts are as he has stated them, the Commi- 
ssioner could have avoided the inflammatory 


reference to the ® Moghul Fort Fie knew 
that the Exhibition Committee could have no 
intention of wounding Muslim susceptibilities. 

I have further information that more trouble 
is brewing in Ajmer, But of this more when 
I have full facts. 

Meanwhile let me draw attention to the 
reported tactful act of a Commissioner in the 
Frontier Province who, when a Congressman 
went to his office to hoist the Congress flag^ 
straightaway hoisted it himself, and hoisted the 
Muslim League flag as v/ell, taking care that tne 
Union Jack flew the highest of ail. But for 
the sense of humour and tact of the Com- 
missioner it is difficult to say what v/ould have 
happened, 

Sevagram, 30-4-40 

An Uniudicia! Dictum 

A correspondent sends me a press cutting 
containing a report of an Allahabad judgment 
of two English judges sitting as appellate court. 
In delivering their judgment allowing the appeal 
their Lordships are reported to have said : 

The case is unsatisfactory because we have no 
less than five persons who were in effect, if their 
evidence can be relied upon, eye-witnesses, and yotg 
having regard to the slight value placed upon 
truth in this country, wc have seriously to apply 
our minds as to whether they can be believed.’’ 

This is an extraordinary pronouncement from 
a bench of judges. What legal basis had these 
two judges for the sweeping statement made by 
them as to the character of a v/liole nation ? 
The inference is that in other countries a 
higher value is placed upon truth. Now if 
this was a universally accepted proposition, 
perhaps the judges would have been justified 
in taking legal notice of it. There is, however, 
not only no such acceptance but experienced 
observers have testified that, on the whole, 
greater value is put upon truth in India than 
elsewhere. But no judge should be influenced 
one way or the other by such observations as 
have no judicial value, I would go further and 
say that such observations ought not to be 
made by any responsible person, even on political 
platforms. They can never be proved. But when 
they are made by judges they vitiate their 
judgments and may lead to miscarriage of justice. 
Be it noted that the Allahabad judges have 
made use of their bias in coming co their 
decision and have thus proved tlieir incapacity 
to . hold responsible posts. The case in which 
the observation was made affected poor people. 
But the fact that only poor persons were 
involved makes it all the more necessary to 
take public notice of the judges’ strictures. 
Who knows in how many cases this bias of 
theirs has resulted in defeating justice ? 

Sevagram, 2-4-40 M. K. G. 

NOTICE 

The business hours of our Bombay office are now 
8 to 11 A. M. and 3 to 7 p. M. Readers will please 

Manager 



May 4s 1940 ] 


HAEIJAN 


11 ? 


HINDU MUSLIM TANGLE 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

The partition proposal has altered the face of 
the Hindu Muslim problem. I have called it 
an untrutlis There can be no compromise with 
it. At the same time I have said that, if the 
•eight crores o£ Maslims desire it, no power on 
earth can preveni: it, notwithstanding opposition 
violent or non-vioient. It cannoc come by 
honourable agreement. 

That is the political aspeci: of it. Bat whac 
about the religious and the moral which are 
greater than the political? For at the bottom 
of the cry for partition is the belief that 
Islam is an exclusive brotherhood, and anti- 
Hindu. Whether it is against other religions it 
is not stated. The newspaper cuttings in which 
partition is preached describe Hindus as prac- 
tically untouchables. Nothing good can come 
out of Hindus or Hinduism. To live under 
Hindu rule is a sin. Even joint Hindu-Muslim 
rule is not to be thought of. The cuttings 
show that Hindus and Muslims are already at 
war with one another and that they must 
prepare for the final tussle. 

Time was when Hindus thought that Muslims 
were the natural enemies of Hindus. But as is 
the case with Hinduism, ultimately it comes to 
terms with the enemy and makes friends with 
it. The process had not been completed. As if 
nemesis had overtaken Hinduism, the Muslim 
League started the same game and taught that 
there could be no blending of the two cul- 
tures, In this connection I have just read ' a 
booklet by Shri Atulanand Chakrabarti which 
shows that ever since the contact of Islam with 
Hinduism there has been a t attempt on the part 
of the best mind of both to see the good points 
of each other, and to emphasise inherent simi- 
larities rather than seeming dissimilarities. The 
author has shown Islamic history in India in a 
favourable light. If he has stated the truth and 
nothing but the truth, it is a revealing booklet 
which all Hindus and Muslims may read with 
profit. He has secured a very favourable and 
reasoned preface from Sir Shafaat Ahmed Khan 
and several other Muslim testimonials. If the 
evidence collected there reflects the true 
evolution of Islam in India, then the partition 
propaganda is anti-Islamic. 

Religion binds man to God and man to man. Does 
Islam bind Muslim only to Muslim and antagonise 
the Hindu? Was the message of the Prophet peace 
only for and between Muslims and war against 
Hindus or non-Muslims ? Are eight crores of 
Muslims to be fed with this which I can only 
describe as poison ? Those who are instilling 
this poison into the Muslim mind are rendering 
the greatest disservice to Islam, I know that it 
is not Islam. I have lived with and among 
Muslims not for one day but closely and almost 
uninterruptedly for twenty years. Not one 
.Muslim taught me that Islam was an anti-Hindu 
.xeligion. Sevagram, 29-4-40 


IN THE WAKE OF MEOHANiSA.TION 

III 

Of this increasing displacement of human 
labour and its dire results an example has jusr 
come to light from America where, as we said 
before, mechanisation of agriculture is proceed- 
ing at a very rapid pace. It is described m 
an article which appeared last year in an 
American Christian weekly, Zions Herald, and 
was reproduced in the Christian quarterly World 
Ckristianity ( now defunct ) towards the end of 
that year. In agriculture, and particularly in 
cotton cultivation, in America the system of 
having “ share-croppers ” obtained till the grow« 
ing mechanisation disturbed it rudely and 
brought “in its trail the destitution of share- 
cropper families and the consequent human 
erosion.*' 

‘'Every step towards rationalisation, every advance 
in the utilisation of electricity and the automatic 
machine diminishes the consequence of the worker. 
His skill and experience count each year for a little 
less. His numbers are everywhere in excess of the 
demand. Industry still requires large, though diminish* 
ing, numbers of unskilled, or semi-skilled, ‘hands', 
but the expert master mechanic has fallen on evil 
days.** ^ 

Exactly the same thing happened in the case 
of these share-croppers whose story has been 
narrated by Mark A. Dawber, the author of 
the above-mentioned article. ’ “ His condition/* 
says the writer, “has been the subject of radio, 
movie, and press,” surveys and reports have 
been made, “ general pronouncements concerning 
America’s economic problem number one have 
been released, but the share-cropper remains, his 
condition not improved, but growing worse with 
every passing day.” 

The share-croppers and share-tenants, as their 
names suggest, are those skilled cultivators who 
do not own the land but raise the crops, a 
part of which they receive in return for their 
labour from the landowners. The magnitude of 
the problem may be realised from the fact that 
out of about two million farm families depend- 
ent upon the cotton crop for a livelihood. 
1,830,000 are share-croppers and tenant-farmers. 
The share-cropper family earned $ 38 to 87 a 
person per year, and a share-tenant family an 
average of $ 73 a person per year. Most of the 
share-croppers are Negroes ; most of the 
share-tenants are whites. Since 1935, “ thousands 
of these have been forced off the land and arc 
trying to eke out a living as day labourers and 
migrant workers, and the end is not yet.” 

“ The sharecropper’s condition has been made 
more diflScult, ” says the writer, “ by the intro- 
duction of machinery. As a result, thousands 
of sharecroppers have been dispensed with and 
evicted from the land and the miserable cabins 
in which they have lived.” 

And what is the prospect that the future 
holds out before them ? The narrative goes On : 

7 H. N. Braiisford: Op CiU p. 258. 



HAEIJAH 


i May 4, 1940 


m 


‘^The future displacement of -sharecroppers when 
the mechanical cotton-picker shall have been perfected 
33 ^yeli recognized. The serious displacement now in 
progress in the wake of the all-purpose farm tractor 
has been scarcely noticed. Yet tenant farmers, share- 
croppers, and farm labourers — whites and Negroes 
alike — are being swept from (.he land and on to 
relief in some of the most important agricultural 
sections of the country. Planters are dispensing with 
their croppers and tenants, retaining the few necessary 
to operate the tractors and paying them by the day 
when they work. A planter in the Mississippi Delta, 
to cite an outstanding example, purchased twentytwo 
tractors and thirteen four-row cultivators; he let go 
130 our of his 160 cropper families, and retained 
the thirty/ for day labour.” 

The mechanical tractors and cultivators are 
showering their curses in the fullest measure on 
these helpless folk, and are bringing in their 
wake desolation and despair. 

“ The rural landscape is strewn with abandoned 
houses, or, as in sections of Kansas with which I 
am personally acquainted, the farm homes are being 
pulled down to avoid taxes. Residents in western 
Texas explain as they point: ‘There used to be ten 
cropper families on that farm. The tractor got nine 
of them. ’ ‘ That farm has made a living for a 
dozen families ever since the land was broke; now 
only three are living on it and two are getting 
just enough to get by. ’ ‘ The tractors are keeping 
our families from making a living.’ 

The story proceeds in its moving pathos ; 

Rural schools decline. Village merchants fail. 
Drought and poor cotton prices have undermined 
them, and mechanized farming finishes them. Class 
bitterness is stirred, and even the government program 
intended to benefit the farmer has become an instru- 
ment of strife. This is the story of those who have 
been dispossessed from the land, the story of the 
machine riding ruthlessly over the lives of people, 
bringing bitterness and despair. Others not yet 
dispossessed are facing the same fate in stark fear.” 

Even a worm turns, and it is no wonder that 

these families, described as the ‘ victims ’ of 
increasing mechanisation of agriculture and of 
government crop-adjustment programmes”, make 
occasional mass protests, however feeble, against 
what has deprived them of not only their 
livelihood but of even the opportunity of 
honest labour. Here is a description of one 
of such groups: 

“ This new condition that reduced the sharecropper 
to a day-labour status, with no cabin to call his 
■own, has created a revolt in certain sections of 
the country. In January, during a bitter winter 
storm, hundreds of these evicted sharecroppers, in 
Missouri, moved along the highway to give demon- 
stration against the new economic status in which 
they found themselves. Under the leadership of Owen 
H. Whitfred, a Negro Baptist minister, more than 
a thousand men, women, and children camped along 
the two main highways. The march to the high- 
ways was called as a protest against the growing 
movement in the cotton country to abandon share- 
cropping in favour of day labour. The leader of the 
movement contended that some landowners had evicted 
their renters in order to avoid having to share the 
crop benefit payments received from the Gov|rnment. 
Men, women, and children camped in the open. 
They huddled around camp fires or makeshift stoves 
.ialong the desolate rigVits of way, sharing the contents 
of the steaming kettles. Most of them were Negroes, 
but there was a scattering of white persons. Men 


feebio with age, one woman so ill she bad lo be 
carried to the highway on a cot, and babies 
crjdng from fright and hunger, ail presented a dis- 
tressing picture.” 

Some philanthropic organisations are now trying 
to devise some measures of relief and to find 
a solution of their problem by way of rural 
rehabilitation and cooperative farm programmes. 

IV 

It would not be surprising if happenings like 
these began to shake the faith of people in 
machine economy and its so-called benefits. 
Thus, for instance, read against the background 
of the above, a little poragrapf) i.hat appeared 
in the American weekly, The Nciv RcpvMic, on 
27th September 1939, under the heading “ Back 
to Handicraft 

“ The Farm Security Administration has an interest- 
ing policy which it proposes to apply to IS, 000 
poor farmers in the northeastern section of the 
country. According to Philip Henderson, regional 
director of the FSA, these farmers will be taught 
to churn their own butter, grind tlicir own flour and 
weave their own cloth. lie believes that substantial 
savings can be made in the governmental assistance 
going to these farmers, who now sell their products 
for what they can get and buy their necessities in 
the open market. 

The Twentieth Century Fund revealed the other 
day that, on the average, the producer gets only 40 
per cent of the consumer’s dollar; the other 60 per 
cent goes to middlemen. Mr. Hendersons 18,000 
farmers are paying prices based partly on toe 
many small retail stores, on charge accounts, 
delivery service, elaborate packaging of staple 
products, competitive advertising that is sometimes 
wasteful. He is very likely right in saying that 
they will be better off financially to churn their own 
butter and grind tlieir own flour. But what a coni- 
nic-ntary on our civilization ! When tlie machine- 
powered creamery was invented, when flour and 
textile mills grew to gigantic proportions, they were 
hailed as tremendous forward strides for humanity;, 
doing away with vast : quantities of isolated, individua! 
toil and substituting that of a few men and many 
machines. Plere we see the trend toward technologi- 
cal efficiency reversed because we haven't enough 
collective intelligence to use our machines to seL 
us free.” 

The movement may be confined to a small 
number at present, but there is unmistakably 
a swing of the pendulum, and maybe it will 
gather momentum with the passage of time 
and greater disillusionment following upon eco- 
nomic disasters. On us, to whom unemployment 
due to mechanisation is not an unknown thing, 
events like these reported from the West should 
have a sobering effect, and should make us pause 
and ponder before we take a plunge towards 
widespread introduction of machines and large 
scale industrialisation. Let us count the cost ii"* 
human misery the country will be made to pay 
in the bargain. Let us, at any rate, proceed 
with open eyes and look before we leap. 
C. S. 

NOTin 

The Rashtrabhasha Prachar Samiti, Wardba, has 
decided to open a regular Flindi Shorthand class at 
Wardha from 1st July 1940. Ten candidate^ will 
be selected for training. Further information can be 
had from the Secretary of the Samiti, Wardha. 



May 4, 1940] 


HARIJAN 


OCCASIONAL NOTES 

A Spau-a oS SopMstifies 

In the course of bis speech during the recent 
7ndia debate in the House of Commons — which, 
as Mr. Wedgv 70 od Benn hinted, was staged 
primarily for the benefit of the neutral world — 
the former Secretary of State for India indul- 
ged in sophistries galore. One of these was 

that Dominion Status of the Westminster 
'^^ariety was one and the same thing as and 
identical with Independence, and since it had 
satisfied even ardent separationists like Mr, 
Tielman Ross and Gen. Hertzog, it ought to 
satisfy India too. What Mr. Benn did not say 
in his speech but which was the mostly rele- 
vant part of the matter was that the status — 
whatever its nature — v/hich was accepted 
was entirely determined by the accredited 

representatives concerned without any pressure 
or interference from any alien stake-holders 
within the country or from outside. As 

Sir Thomas Inskip pointed out when the 

question of the status of the Dominions was 
discussed in the House of Commons, every single 
clause in the proposed draft bill was to be 
found '‘word for word and letter for letter in 

the schedule to the Report of the Imperial 

Conference of 1930.” “It would be a matter 
of very grave responsibility,” the Solicitor- 

General added, *‘to insert any Amendment in this 
Bill which would go contrary to the expressed 
desire of any of our Dominions overvseas. ” As 
I pointed out last week, the Dominions protest- 
ed against and repudiated outright the doctrine 
of ‘ trusteeship ’ in inter-imperial relations in the 
middle of the Great War. In the case of 
South Africa, although its constitution was framed 
after what was claimed to be a victory 
over the Boers, the British Parliament did 
not claim the right even to transpose a 
misplaced comma in the draft Bill embodying 
. the Union constitution, if South Africa chose to 
be ungrammatical. By the same token India to- 
day asks for self-determination which is every 
nation’s birth-right, and refuses to barter it for 
any political concession that Britain might be 
inclined to concede. It is for India and India 
alone to decide what her constitution shall be and 
by what name her status shall be described. 

The Past Recalled 

Regard being bad to what is going on at 
present it is interesting and instructive to 
recall what Lord Birkenhead did thirteen 
years ago. 

The situation briefly was, the ten years’ limit 
’fixed by the authors of the Montford Scheme 
for determining the next instalment of political 
reforms was about to expire. Lord Birkenhead, 

- to whom it was “ frankly inconceivable that 
India will ever be fit for self-government,” 
had on December 4, 1924, already written to 
Lord Reading : “ My present view is that we 
ought rigidly to adhere to the date proposed in 
i’the Act for re-examination of the situation, and 


that it is not likely, unless matters greatiy 
change in the interval, that such a re-examina- 
tion will suggest the slightest extension. In the 
meantime, little as I have liked diarchy, obvi- 
ously it must be given a chance.” 

In January 1925 Lord Birkenhead wrote to 
Lord Reading the following memorable words: 

“ In ultimate analysis the strength of the British 
position is that we are in India for the good of 
India. The most striking illustration of the truth 
of rbe position is supplied hy the in unite variation 
of nationality* sect and religion in the sub-continent. 
The more it is made obvious that these antagonisms 
are profound and affect immense and irreconcilable 
sections of the population^ the more conspicuously 
is the fact illustrated that we, and we alone^ can 
play the part of composers. “ ( Italics mine ) 

But developments had in the meantime taken 
place both in India and England, and there was 
in the offing a chance of the Labour Party 
being returned to power at the next elections. 
A strange thing then happened. In July 1925, 
Lord Birkenhead pompously declared in the 
House of Lords that he was “ no slave to dates” 
and was prepared to anticipate the date fixed 
for the revision of the constitution. On November 
8, 1927, Lord Irwin announced the appointment 
and composition of the Simon Commission. 
This was ostensibly done in response to “ Indian 
political pressure to secure anticipation of the 
statute”. The real reason however, as is now 
established by the publication of private corres- 
pondence that passed at that time between 
Lord Birkenhead and Lord Reading, was that 
the former shrank from the prospect of the 
appointment of the Commission being left into 
the hands of a possible Labour Government to 
come. In a letter dated December 10, 1925, 
addressed to Lord Reading, His Lordship deli- 
vered himself as follows: 

“When I made my speech in the House of Lords 
suggesting that it might be possible to accelerate 
the Commission of 1928, if some measure of co- 
operation were forthcoming in India, I always had 
it plainly in mind that we could not afford to run 
the slightest risk that the nomination of the 192 B 
Commission should be in the hands of our successors.. 
You can readily imagine what kind of a Commission 
in its personnel would have been appointed by 
Col. Wedgwood and his friends. I have, therefore* 
throughout been of opinion that it would be necessary 
for us, as a matter of elementary prudence, to 
appoint the Commission not latter than the summer 
of 1929. ... I should, therefore, like to receive your 
advice if at any moment you discern an opportunity 
for making this a useful bargain counter or for 
further disintegrating the Swarajist Party. ... The 
Swarajist Party at this moment is undoubtedly 
torn by divided counsels. The reasonableness of 
the attitude disclosed in your speeches and mine 
has already inclined many important members of 
that party to advocate co-operation. Surely their 
number would be greatly augmented if it were known 
that they could obtain what the other Swarajista. 




HARIJAN 


[ May 4, 1940'- 


cannot confidently count upon — acceleration. I shall 
myself abstain from making any speech which is 
m tbs least definite upon these lines until I bear 
iffom you. And you would, I think, be well advised 
$0 do the same.... 

But I am sure that, having regard to political 
contingencies in this country, we must keep the 
nomination of the personnel of this Commission in 
our own hands. In this matter we cannot run the 
slightest risk. My present view, therefore is — and I 
believe that the Prime Minister shares it — that we 
shall in any event, playing for safety, be driven 
to nominate the Commission in the middle of 1927. 
If such an acceleration affords you any bargaining 
value, use it to the full, and with* the knowledge 
4hat you will be supported by the Government. 

C Birkenhead ; The Last Phaser p, 250-51 ). ( Italics 
mine. } 

The Congress reply to the appointment of 
this all-white Commission was to pass a resolu- 
tion (Madras, 1927) boycotting it “at every stage 
and in every form”. This was a disconcerting 
prospect. In a [private letter to Lord Irwin 
dated 10th January 1928 Lord Birkenhead wrote: 

“ I write to you just before making the journey 
to Victoria Station to say farewell to the Simon 
Commission. I have persuaded the Prime Minister, 
Peel and the Attorney-General to come with me, 
30 that the occasion will be invested with as much 
importance as we can give it. 

I had a long talk with Simon yesterday, and once 
again covered the ground which seemed useful. I 
told him, and I am sure that you will agree, that 
on this first visit, and until the situation clarifies, it 
would be wisest to give as few people as possible 
t he opportunity of snubbing the Commission. This is 
a generalisation with which I am sure you will 
agree, but one cannot, of course, in this office, 
foresee the development of events with any clearness. 
But I had it in my mind that as far as possible 
people ^should not on this visit be asked to meet 
those who are likely, in the first place to refuse to 
do so, and in the second to publish such a refusal 
with as much offensiveness as they can command. 
A friendly attitude of unobtrusiveness, willingness to 
acquire information and make friends, seems to me 
clearly indicated. I do not, of course, mean that 
where the response is likely to be friendly prelimi- 
nary discussion might not take place. 

We have always relied on the non-boycotting 
Moslems, on the depressed community, on the busi- 
ness interests and on many others, to break down 
the attitude of boycott* You and Simon must be 
the judges whether or not it is expedient in these 
directions to try to make a breach in the wall of 
antagonism, even in the course of the present visit,” 
( Birkenhead : The Last Phase, p, 254 ). ( Italics mine ) 
Finding, however, that the Commission had 
been ' successfully boycotted despite all official 
tactics, in February next he again wrote, this 
time’ in high dudgeon : 


“ 1 should advise Simon to see at ail stages im" 
poitant people who are not boycotting the Cormnis- 
Sion, particularly Moslems and the depressed classes. 
1 she aid widely advertise all his interviews with 
lepresentative Moslems. The whole policy now is 
obvious. It is to terrify the immense Hindu popu- 
lation by the apprehension that the Commission is 
being got hold of by the Moslem support, and leav^ 
ing Jinnah high and dry'" ( Birkenhead : The Last 
Phase, p. 255) [Qaid-e-Azam was then opposed to 
the Commission. ] ( Italics mine ) 

Many readers will remember how every inter- 
view was advertised and [how deputations were 
arranged and magnified through the favoured 
Press,. 

Further lines of cleavage were suggested to 
the Viceroy by His Lordship in the course of 
the same letter : 

“ You will remember that in dealing with the 
question of the Indianisation of the Indian Armya 
His Majesty's Government were averse from using 
the phrase ‘Dominion Status’ to describe even the 
ultimate and remote goal of Indian political develop- 
ment, because it has been laid down that Dominion 
Status means ‘the right to decide their own destinies \ 
and this right we were not prepared to accord to 
India at present, or in any way to prejudge the 
question whether it should ever be accorded. I think 
it is fair to infer from this that separatism should 
be regarded as a hostile movement, and if that is 
so, its representatives ought not to be treated in 
the same way as the representatives of other political 
movements, which, though they may be unreasonable 
or ill-timed, are not illegitimate. It is a constant 
complaint of our friends in India that they are 
rendered impotent by the encourjgement that is 
given to our and their enemies.” 

Sevagram, 28-4-40 • Pyarela! 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radhakrishnan. (New Edition) Rs. 5-10-0. 
Postage 7 As. Available at Harijan office-Poona 4, 
and 67 & 81 Queen's Road, Bombay 2. 


CONTENTS 


Page 

Question Box ' 

M. 

K. Gandhi 

109 

P RINCELY EXTRAVAGANZA-III 


Pyarelal 

110 

The Hand of the Devil ? 


M. D. 

112 

Of What Avail Is Non- 

Violence ? 

M. 

K. Gandhi 

114 

An English Suggestion ... 

M. 

K. Gandhi 

115 

The Ajmer Trouble 

M, 

K. Gandhi 

116 

PIiNDU Muslim Tangle 

M. 

K. Gandhi 

117 

In the Wake of 

Mechanisation IV-V ... 


c. s. 

117 

Occasional notes 


Pyarelal 

119 

Notes : 

Example Better than 

Precept 


M. D. 

113 

Wanton Destruction 

IN Bidar 

M. K. G. 

115 

An Unjudicial Dictum 

M. K. G. 

Il6 


'Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press- 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4 
Sabscription Retei — INLATO ; One year, Ee. 4, Six montlw. Be. 2-8, POBXIOIT : One year, E». 5-8 or, 8 ih. or 2 $. 




EdSaop : MAHADEV DESA8 


VoL. vni, No. 13 ] POONA — SATURDAY, MAY 11, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


A OKE-SIDSD INQUIRY 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

I had hoped that I would not have to say 
anything on Justice Nagesvara Iyer’s report 
into the allegations of ill-treatment of satyagrahi 
prisoners in Mysore. But the press criticism of 
the action of the State Congress in abstaining 
from participation in the inquiry demands an ex- 
planation from me. If it was wrong for the State 
Congress not to participate in the inquiry, the 
blame was mine. The inquiry was a result of 
Mahadev Desai’s visit to Mysore at the instance 
of the Dewan and the former’s confidential 
report to me of which a copy was given to 
the Dewan. Mahadev Desai had recommended 
an open judicial inquiry presided over by a judge 
of known integrity brought from outside. Instead 
there was only a departmental inquiry by a 
Mysore judge. I have been for some time guiding 
the Mysore Congress, and the Congress acted 
upon my advice in not leading evidence before 
a Mysore judge who could not, I felt, be wholly 
impartial in judging the conduct of officials 
with whom he must have come in close official 
contact. It was too much to expect an impartial 
scrutiny by one who had risen to the rank of 
a judge from being a Government official. 

The allegations were of a most serious chara- 
cter, and they were repeated in the presence 
of Mahadev Desai and before officials occupying 
the positions of Deputy Commissioner. District 
Superintendent of Police, Superintendent of Jail 
and so on. Those who made the allegations were 
volunteers, not criminals, and a few of them 
held high social positions. It is impossible to 
treat them as liars, as the report seems to 
have done. 

I am not yec in possession of the Judge’s 
report. What I have before me is a highly 
tcndencious summary of the report published by 
Government, interspersed by Government’s own 
statements of certain happenings and Justice 
Nagesvara Iyer’s comments on them in his 
report. It passes comprehension that the inquiry 
was continued when the complainants refused 
to appear before the officer. The judge should 
have dismissed the case for want of evidence. 
How he could have arrived at definite 
conclusions in the absence of material evidence 
it is difficult to say. The judge admits that 
“most of the persons who made accusations of 
assault and torture did not attempt to establish 
those charges,’’ but that he “had a large volume 


cr crai t'.nd dccunjeAtaiy evidence” adduced 

before him. What this “documentary” evidence 
was we do not know. The oral evidence was 
of people who had nothing to do with the in- 
quiry but were dragged by the police before the 
judge to prove the Government case. The judge 
says he has based his conclusions “ on such 
materials and broad probabilities”. This is hard- 
ly the language of a judge. No judge of inte- 
grity and impartiality would have cared to go 
into the extraneous evidence that Justice Nage- 
svara Iyer went into, and made uncalled for 
animadversions against satyagrahis for refusal to 
give evidence before him, when he knew that 
their reason in doing so was that they ques- 
tioned the competence, independence and im- 
partiality of the judge. Two paragraphs in the 
communique are devoted to proving that the 
leaders of the movement adopted questionable 
methods of sending out surreptitious letters from 
jails. What this has to do with allegations of 
torture one is at a loss to know. It would 
thus appear that, far from the inquiry being 
into any allegations by Congressmen, it became 
an inquiry into allegations by Government officials 
which the judge has supported without giving 
those against whom the allegations were made 
an opportunity to rebut them. 

My point, however, in referring to the un- 
fortunate inquiry is that the Mysore Congress 
acted under my advice. The judge’s biassed 
finding confirms me in the soundness of the 
opinion I gave them. As satyagrahis, the mem- 
bers of the Mysore Congress were not interested 
in the guilty parties being condemned. They 
were interested in the truth being known. The 
golden lid of the one-sided inquiry covers the 
truth. But they should have the truth that the 
lid will be lifted one day and the truth will 
be found. The exoneration of the nffiriglc may 
result in the hardening of their hearts and 
greater maltreatment of the prisoners t-hgn 
before. If such is the case, the prisoners should 
rejoice in their suflFerings and know that, if they 
bear them without malice, they will bring the 
local Congress nearer its goal. 

Sevagram, 7-5-40 

Two New Books 

Congress and War Crisis — (Published by A. I. 
C. C. Office ). Price Re. 1 + 2 As. Postage. 

Sandhya Meditations — Posthumous work of Deena> 
bandhu Andrews. Price Re. 1 + 2 As. Postage. 

Available at Harijan Office — (1) Poona 4; and 
(2) 81 Queen's Road, Bombay 2. 



1 

1 




r' 


1940 


OUR CASTES 

1 .happened to preside over a conference of my 
castemen in Surat the other day, and friends 
were surprised that I should have consented to 
do so in spite of my life being a fiat contra- 
diction of any kind of belief in caste By 

caste, by the by, I do not mean vama or the 
four functional and occupational divisions of 
Hinduism, but the multitude of sub-divisions of 
these varnas which may originally have had 
some correspondence with guilds, but which 
later were encrusted with ail manner of restric- 
tions and limitations on marriage, social inter- 
course, and eating and drinking together. The 
caste I was born in, is one of the numerous sub- 
divisions of the original division of Brahmanas, 
and a few among us still observe, as against other 
sub-divisions and other Hindus, the restrictions 
I have mentioned. Before I consented to preside 
over the conference I made it clear to the 
friends who pressed me to do so that I held 
very strong views on the matter, and that I 
should be of little use to a conference of 
castemen. But I was told that it was to listen 
to those very views that they had invited me, 
and that I was free to say to them whatever 
I liked. 

There were, therefore, certain things I made 
absolutely clear in my address. I said that even 
varna as it -obtained today was a travesty of 
the original conception, and that the numerous 
sub-divisions were still worse travesties, that 
even the original varna was a functional social 
division, that there was no superiority or in- 
feriority attaching to the various functions, and 
that in ancient India there was plenty of inter- 
mixture by marriage and there were no restric- 
tions on interdining. I also explained that caste 
seemed to‘ me to have arisen out of the 
economic exigencies of the time, that it was 
essentially feudal in character, and that it 
certainly had nothing to do with religion. 
I also explained that, whilst we called ourselves 
Brabmanas, few only performed the func- 
tions of Brahmanas or had any of the quali- 
ties of the head and heart that are said to 
be the natural attributes of Brahmanas, and that 
Hindus of all varnas and castes could be fitly 
described only as Shoodras, if indeed they cared 
to apply the label of a varna to themselves. 
I also told them that, so far as our present 
practice went, many of us privately and some 
even publicly were infringing all the restrictions 
on interdining and even to a certain extent 
the restrictions on intermarriage. It was there- 
fore no use pretending that any restrictions were 
being observed. All castes were, therefore, no 
better than convenient social groups. Those 
groups existed in all societies' cyen in the West 
where there were no castes, and some kind of 
grouping will continue to exist until the end 
of time, but then it should hot be allowed to 
exist as anything but a social grouping. Sidney 
Low has said in his Vision of fndia : The 


crudities and cruelties of the caste system need 
not blind us to its other aspects. It provides 
every man with his place, his career, his occu- 
pation, his circle of friends. It makes him, at 
the outset, a member of a corporate bodji^ : 
protects him through life from the canker of 
social jealousy and unfulfilled aspirations; it 
ensures him companionship and a sense of com- 
munity with others in like case with himself. 
The caste organization is to the Hindu his club, 
his trade union, his benefit society, his philan- 
thropic society.” This is true, and to the extent 
that it serves as a club or a benefit society or 
a philanthropic society it serves a useful func- 
tion and shoulders part of the social burden of 
India. If Bhatiyas, for instance, looked after the 
social, educational and medical needs of their 
own group, that meant so much the less burden 
on India. And if castes took upon themselves 
the task of self- purification by purging them- 
selves of all ugly customs and practices, it 
would mean fulfilment of part of the duty that 
Hinduism owes to itself and India. 

The corollary from this was the obvious one 
that castes could exist only to the extent that 
they were not anti-social and to the extent 

that they subserved the national ideal, and 

remained only as convenient social groups. 
They may have their own educational institu- 
tions, but they should be flung open to all 

Hindus including Harijans, restriction on the 
number of those outside the group being allow- 
ed. They need not convert themselves into 
political groups and address themselves, as such, 
to political activities any more than Labour 
Unions, or Kisan Sabhas, or such other groups 
do; but even their existence in a restricted 
character would be futile if they did not 
support the activities of the Congress, especial- 
ly its constructive programme. At any rate 
I could serve no useful purpose as their presi- 
dent if our castemen could not decide to make 
that contribution. 

For two days we discussed the position, and 
I am glad to be able to say that the Confer- 
ence passed two resolutions of a far-reaching 
character, so far as the institution of “ caste ” 
goes. I have gone into the question in some 
detail because what I said at Surat applies to 
all the thousand and one castes in Hinduism 
which arc today so many stagnant pools or 
stinking wells and have got to be dredged and 
purified in order that they may be so many 
rivers contributing their share to the ocean 
of Hinduism. Here arc the two resolutions : 

** 1. Whereas all the castes in Hinduism, though 
claiming to be based on religion, have really nothing 
.to do with religion but are only convenient social 
groups, this conference resolves that it should be 
the goal pf the Anavil community to purge itself 
of all the ugly practices obtained therein and to 
merge' itself into the great comnunity of Hindus; 
this conference also resolves that it accepts the 
Congress goal of the attainment of independence by 
means of truth and non-violence, and that all the- 
activities of the community will, far from being 



123 



prejudicial to the goal, contribute to the attainment 
of that goal. 

2. This conference accords its hearty support to 
the constructive programme of the Congress, viz. 
khadi and village industrieso abolition of untouch- 
ability, communal unity, prohibition, and appeals to 
ail the members of the community to make a solid 
contribution to the cause of the Congress by carry- 
ing out ail these items in their daily life.” 

Though these resolutions were passed by an 
overwhelming majority, there being only two or 
three dissentients to the first resolution, I do 
not pretend to believe that the conference in 
any way represented the 50,000 odd people des- 
cribing themselves as Anavil Brahmans and living 
in a few hundred villages of the Surat district. 
But they strike a new departure and, if every 
village can adopt the resolutions, it would mean 
a great step forward. Whatever may be the 
case, they indicate the direction of reform for 
all the groups known as “castes” in India. 

There were a number of other resolutions also 
dealing with the particular social abuses in the 
community — dowry system, forced gifts of money 
and material by parents of the bride to the 
parents of the bridegroom, both before and 
after marriage, and so on. The conference 
labelled these as barbarous and shameful, and 
appealed to young men and women, not yet 
married, to sign pledges to have nothing to 
do with these practices. There were resolutions 
appealing to the members to preserve the reli- 
gious character of various ceremonies by refusing 
to burden them with pomp and wasteful expendi- 
ture, and also appealing to parents and guardians 
to encourage marriages of child-widows, and to 
afford all facilities to grown-up widows intend- 
ing to marry again. There was, however, nothing 
distinctive about these resolutions, and all 
communities do have resolutions nowadays on 
these or similar lines. 

Sevagram, 7-5-40 M. D. 

GANDHIJI’S . 

When Gandhiji was shown Reuter’s cable of 
Sir Hugh O’Neill’s statement, he said his posi- 
tion was absolutely clear. The only authority 
that can possibly convene a preliminary con- 
ference of elected leaders is the British Govern- 
ment, and they will do so and find out the 
ways and means when they have made up 
their mind to part with power and recognise 
the right of India to frame the charter of her 
own freedom. 

Sevagram, 3-5-40 

NOTICE ^ 

The Central Office of the Harijan Sevak Sangh 
will award a few scholarships to Harijan girls from 
Bihar, U. P. and Rajputana studying in high school 
classes. A few scholarships are also available for 
Harijan students going in for vocational and indus- 
trial study from various provinces and states. 
Applications for the same will be received on or 
before IQth June 1940 on prescribed application 
forms which can be had from the Office of the 
Harijan Sevak Sangh, Kingsway, Delhi. 

' Shyamual, 

Asst. Secretary, Harijan Sevak Sangh 


^, 177 r'i nr'-- , - t ' j -' 

^ U /JjO ^ -C- 

( By M. K. ) 

Kindu-Muslim 

Q. You can do Harijan work, you can orga- 
nise khadi and village industries, bur when it 
comes to Hindu-Muslim unity, you find many 
excuses for not organising it. 

A. This charge has been brought against me 
by several Muslim correspondents unknown to 
ooeo But larterly It has been repeated with 
considerable by who knows me 

intimately. The complainant challenges me to 
deal with the charge in Harijan. There can be 
no comparison between Harijans and Muslims. 
I owe a debt to Harijaiis in need of any assist- 
ance that can be given to them, Harijan work 
is humanitarian work. Muslims stand in no need 
of my humanitarianism. They are a powerful 
community standing in no such need. Any work 
done for Muslims after the Harijan style will be 
resented. To cite khadi and village industries 
against me is thoughtless. These can be organised 
and are organised for all who will care to profit 
by them. As a matter of fact both Hindus and 
Muslims, and indeed others too, profit by these 
activities. Hindu-Muslim unity stands on its own 
footing. I have tried and am still trying to do 
my share of the work. I may have achieved no 
visible success, but I have no doubt that the 
direction in which I am working is the right 
one and is bound to lead us to the goal, 

Bidar an^ Biba^ 

Q. You feel keenly about Bidar. You ask for 
justice about it and you want Muslims outside 
Hyderabad to see that justice is done. Do you 
feel equally keenly if Muslims are ill-treated as 
they were in Bihar? 

A. I do not know what the exact reference 
to Bihar is. All I can say is that not one 
single case of maltreatment of Muslims by 
Hindus having been reported to me has remain- 
ed without investigation by me. This has been 
my practice since the days of the Khilafat. I 
have not always succeeded in finding the truth 
or of giving satisfaction to the aggrieved parties 
that I had done my best. The Bihar charge is 
too vague to be answered more fully. If a 
particular instance were mentioned, I should be 
able to say what I had done about it. But 
supposing that I had failed in my duty to do 
justice, supposing further that I did not “feel 
equally keenly about Hindu injustice to Muslims”, 
would that justify indifference about Bidar? I 
have said that there is nothing like Bidar in 
all the previous cases of Hindu-Muslim clashes, 
assuming of course that the allegations we made 
were true. All I have asked is that full justice 
and reparation should be made through a tribunal 
admittedly impartial. My proposal in the case of 
Bidar should be applicable to all such cases. 

Sevagram, 6-5-40 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radhakrishnan. (New Edition) Rs. 5-10-0. 
Postage 7 As. Available at Harijan office-Poona 4, 
and 67 & 81 Qneen’s Road, Bombay 2. 





AJMER 

(By M. K. Gandhi) 

As soon as I read- the extraordinary commu- 
nique of the Commissioner of Ajmer, I asked 
for proof from the workers in Ajmer in sup- 
port of their charges. It seems to me that in 
every single particular the charges are supported 
by documentary evidence. I have now in my 
possession copies of the relevant documents 
including a blue-print showing where the so- 
called Ajmer fort is, where the wall on whose 
bastion the Congress flag was flown, is. The 
statement giving a categorical denial of all the 
allegations of the Ajmer Commissioner is pub- 
lished below. From it, it would appear that the" 
Commissioner is prejudiced against the Congress. 

1. The ground including the wall and a 
portion behind it is in the possession of the 
Municipal Council as lessee. 

2. Permission was duly received by the khadi 
workers for the use of the ground for exhibition. 

3. No separate permission for flying the flag 
is or has ever been considered necessary. 

4. The Municipal Council even voted Rs, 51 
towards the expenses of the exhibition. 

5. The Ajmer fort is a well-defined struc- 
ture. It is at present used for the kotwali, etc. 
It is undoubtedly a protected monument and in 
possession of the Government. The outer wall 
is dilapidated and is included in the ground 
leased to the Municipal Council and is going to 
be demolished by them. 

6. There was no complaint brought before 
the workers against the hoisting of the flag on 
the wall. It could give no offence to anybody. 
The Ajmer Council contains Muslim members. 
The decision to give permission to hold the 
exhibition on the ground was unanimous. 
Muslims freely visited the exhibition. Well-known 
Muslims attended the party given to Seth 
Jamnalalji although they knew that the flag was 
hoisted on the outer wall. . 

I have seen many denials by officials of un- 
comfortable popular charge sheets. But it is 
hard to beat the unblushing distortions by the 
■Commissioner of Ajmer. He has not added to 
British prestige. If ever a case was clearly made 
out for civil disobedience, surely the Ajmer one 
is such a case. I refrain because of the turbid 
atmosphere and because I wish to take no 
action that will precipitate a crisis. The workers 
in Ajmer have done well to exercise self- 
restraint in the face of the gravest provocation. 
This case demands serious notice by the Central 
authority. In my opinion nothing short of the 
removal of the Commissioner from the high 


office he occupies will meet the requiremerus 
of justice. 

It may be argued that the Commissioner of 
Ajmer is no worse than many such officials who 
do much worse things with impunity, me 
argument ■ is sound. But many thieves escape 
with impunity because of want of conclusive 
evidence. When, however, one is caught red- 
handed, it is well to deal with him and give 
satisfaction to the injured public. Lord Curzon 
had his grave limitations. But he believed in 
justice being done and eberefore had no hesita- 
tion in acting sternly and promptly when a 
proved case came under his observation. Preven- 
tion of civil disobedience, I believe, is common 
cause between the Government and the Congress. 
The latter will resort to it when it is clearly 
inevitable, if, that is to say, the Congress is 
ready, I am leaving no stone unturned to 
prevent it. But if the executive officials behave 
as the Ajmer Commissioner seems to have done, 
no effort on my part may prevent a conflagra- 
tion. 

On the 29th ultimo, being the last Sunday ot 
the month, all over the country there was 
Jhandci Vandan. In Ajmer too the Congress had 
advertised the function to take place in the 
Town Hall compound. But this time the 
Commissioner, who is also the District Magis- 
trate, prohibited the use of the Town Hall 
compound for the purpose. It is debatable 
whether he had any legal right to prohibit the 
use of the municipal ground in the manner he 
did. But for the moment it is not relevant. The 
fact of the issue of the order is relevant to 
show the bias the Commissioner has against the 
Congress. The matter was referred to me by 
the telephone, and I advised the Congressmen 
to obey the order and not attempt to hold the 
meeting even elsewhere. But if the Commissioner 
is intent upon provoking a quarrel, I suppose 
he will not be happy till he has succeeded. 

Sevagram, 6-5-40 

[The following is the statement referred to 
in the foregoing. Ed. Hakijan] 

1. The exhibition was organised by the Raja- 
sthan Charkha Sangh and not by the Ajmer 
Congress as suggested in the communique. The 
grounds on which the exhibition was held are 
in possession of the Municipality. Whether 
they arc Nazul or not is irrelevant. Permission 
was duly taken from the Municipal Committee 
for the use of the ground. A portion was 
utilised for the exhibition proper and the remain- 
ing portion was fitted with loud speakers for 
holding public meetings in connection with the 
exhibition. 

. 2. The Commissioner, who is also District 
Magistrate, has throughout been hostile to 
national activity. For instance, he demanded 
security even for issuing a khadi patrika, a pro- 
cedure never adopted anywhere. He would not 
allow, the use of the Anasagar Bund for a. party 
to be held in honour of Seth Jamnalal Bajaj. 



May li, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 




3. Only three public speeches vreie made in 
connection with the eshibition and not for 
political purposes. The Srst meeting was in 
connection with the opening ceremony performed 
by Seth Jamnalai Bajaj. Ssthji spoke on khadi, 
and also pointed out the unhappy position of 
Ajmer Merwara. He criticised the mentality of 
the Commissioner, who is also the District 
Magistrate, in demanding security for publishing 
the khadi patrika. I also spoke. I drew attention 
to the editorial note published in Tlte Hindustan 
Times, and said that it was established beyond 
doubt that Mr. Hallowes was suffering from 
neurosis. I criticised the two acts of the Com- 
missioner. Next day, another meeting was addressed 
by Shrimati Parvati Devi Deedwania, a prominent 
Congress worker of Delhi and an ex-president 
of the Delhi Congress Committee. She spoke 
on khadi generally but made a particular refer- 
ence to the happening of the Jallianwala Bagh 
and exhorted the audience to obtain freedom 
for India. I deny that the speeches were 
inflammatory. 

4. The exhibition grounds were situated out- 
side the boundaries of the police kotwali but 
adjacent to it. The police barracks are also 
situated inside the kotwali. 

5. The flag was no doubt hoisted on a 

bastion on an old outer wall surrounding the 
Moghul Palace. This wall is on Government land, 
but this land, including the wall, has been leased 
by Government to the Municipality and, is under 
the possession of the Municipality. The Munici- 
pality has been lending its use to different 

associations for holding tournaments and had 
allowed the municipal staff club to utilize it as 
their sports ground. This last step was objected 
to by the Commissioner not on the ground 

that the land was not in the possession of the 
Municipality but because it “luas made over to 
the Municipal Committee by the Government for 
the purpose of a public garden.” Mr. Hallowes 
himself says in this letter, “ These are the terms 
on which it was leased to the Municipal Com- 
mittee. ” As far back as 1938, the Municipal 
Chairman ( who was Mr. Burtt, Superintending 
Engineer, Punjab, nominated by the local Govern- 
ment) suggested that the wall should be 

demolished in order to enable the Municipality 

to extend the magazine garden. His suggestion 
was accepted by the Commissioner who, after 
consulting the Superintending Engineer, New 
Delhi, informed the Committee that the rampart 
could be demolished. 

6. The wall does not form part of the 
kotwali police station. It is altogether an outer 
wall outside the main wall of the Moghul 
Palace and wholly unconnected with it. If demo- 
lished, it will not expose the kotwali which is 
'.surrounded by the main wall as shown on the 
plan. Even the police witnesses have not said 
that the wall is a part of the kotwali. 

7. No separate permission for hoisting the 
^National Flag has been ever required. The 


National Flag is a component part of all nation- 
al activities. The flag was hois-red in the 
previous khadi exhibition held sin months ago in 
the Town Hal! grounds which are also under 
the control of the Municipality. The question 
of seeking permission from Governmer-c for hebt- 
ing the National Flag on the wall, therefore, 
does not arise. 

8. The wall on which the flag was hoisted 
is not at ali the rampart of the “ancient 
Moghul Focz” as has be.-.:; claimed. A's a matter 

of fact, the ancient Moghul Fort was not a fort 
but the fortified palace of Emperor Akbar. It 
was converted into an arsenal by the British 
Government and was fortified during the mutiny 
of 1857. It is at present used as Tehsildar’s 
courts, S. P. C. A. Refuge, veterinary hospital, 
and museum, etc. No sanctity attaches to the 
wall ; otherwise Mr. Burtt would never have 
requested the Government for permission to 
demolish it on the ground that it was “ of no 
historical importance”. Had it been considered 
a “ protected monument”, the Superintending 
Engineer, Government of India, would certainly 
have taken objection to the suggestion and 
would not have agreed to its demolition. The 
opinion of the Superintending Engineer was 
endorsed by Mr. Hallowes himself [as mention- 
ed in (1) above]. The fort inside is a protect- 
ed monument, but not the rampart wall whose 
demolition has been allowed by the Government, 

9. The flag itself could not cause any offence 
to anybody. The National Flag has been hoist- 
ed in Ajmer on so many occasions, several times 
in the Town Hall grounds, but no objection 
was ever taken on the pretext of annoyance. 

10. Muslims attended the opening ceremony 
and visited the exhibition in very large numbers. 
Some prominent Muslims attended the garden 
party given to Seth Jamnalai Bajaj. The National 
Flag was fiying on the wall all the time. No 
complaint was received from the Muslims or 
from anybody by the organisers of the exhibi- 
tion about the National Flag. Among the 
Muslims who attended the garden party were 
Maulvi Abdul Rashid, Junior Vice-Chairman of 
the Ajmer Municipality and a Municipal Com- 
missioner elected on the Muslim League Ticket, 
and Messrs Zahural Hassan and Abdul Aziz 
Khan, both Municipal Commissioners. 

11- The Municipal Committee unanimously 
passed a resolution contributing Rs. 51 for the 
khadi exhibition. The Muslim League members 
of the Municipality also supported the resolu- 
tion. The relations between the communities 
have been generally happy. It is wholly wrong 
for the Commissioner to suggest that the flying of 
the flag from the “ ramparts of an ancien t 
Moghul Fort which is a protected monument “ 
caused grave offence to a certain section of 
the public. 

Krishna Gopal Garg 
Secretary, Khadi & Village Industries 
Exhibition, Ajmer 



ll ASI J* AS 


[ may il, 1940 


12 '^ 


OCCASIONAL SOTES 

Th© Ck'kx of the Maiteir 

The latest issues of the Hansard received by 
air mail bring to light severs? aspects of the 
recent India debate in the Parliament of which 
the carefully edited summaries cabled by Reuter ' 
gave one no idea. For instance, it is interesting 
£0 learn that a thinking and by no means 
uninfluential section of the Hoiise has begun 
to show a growing appreciation of the Indian 
demand for Independence. Sir George Schuster 
made it quite clear in his speech that the only 
reasonable course for Britain was to leave it to 
India alone to decide as to how her future 
constitutional status shall be known. Not only 
that, it should be England’s concern to set 
India on her own foundations in the world* 

I care very little,” he observed, “ as to 
whether the words used by the Indians are 
Independence or Dominion Status, because, if 
we face realities, it must be clear that, if India 
reaches a stage in her own development 
when she is strong enough to stand on the 
foundations of her own strength in the world, 
then nothing can keep her bound within the 
British Commonwealth, if the united wish of 
the Indian people is to withdraw. What 
meaning has Dominion Status as a barrier ? I 
am quite prepared to face that and more than 
that, I am prepared to say that we should do 
all we possibly can to help India to acquire 
the strength to stand on her own foundations 
in the world.” But of course,” Sir George 
went on to remark, “ having said that, 
Indians cannot expect us to say we look 
forward to the independence of India as a 
goal, because our hope must be that, though 
capable of independence, she should remain of 
her own free will a member of the British 
Commonwealth.” Sir George claims himself to 
be a shrewd realist. But one cannot help feel- 
ing that for once, at any rate, old Homer has 
been found nodding ! Nationalist India has never 
held that independence excludes free association 
with Britain; on the contrary our contention 
all along has been that it is a necessary step 
towards it. Britain, by identifying herself with 
India’s cherished political aspiration will not be 
negativing her own ideal of a free Common- 
wealth of nations, as Sir George fears. On the 
contrary, thus alone can be forged bonds which, 
as a British statesman remarked at the Imperial 
Conference of 1916, had need to be " while 
stronger than steel,* as light as silk” and which 
alone can hold Britain and India together. 
The crux of the question that faces Britain 
today really is not whether India is to have 
her independence or not,- but .whether Indian 
independence is to come through the willing 
recognition of Britain or. in the teeth of her 
opposition. 

' A Welcome Note 

Sir Stanley Reed’s speech, while containing 
aeveial obsexvations that invite a challenge^ 


struck the right note when he remarked : 

“ I urge with all the emphasis I can that v;e ■ 
should not be lulled into a sense of false optimism by 
the comparative quiescence of political feeling in the 
last six months, but rather seize this opportunity to 
press on with any conceivable scheme which will 
bring the parties together and lay down the princi- 
ples of a constitution which can be worked,” 

It is essential, ” he continued, that this House 
should make up its mind that this work must be 
done in India by an elected body, carrying the 
confidence of all classes and all major interests. 

Equally welcome was the admission that the 
initiative in this respeoc had i:‘o come from 
Britain. After referring to the various alterna- 
tive proposals for setting up a machinery to 
apply the principle of self-determination to India,;. 
Sir Stanley proceeded: 

“ I would urge that no stone should be left 
unturned to get together some body in India, 
representing as wide interests as possible, to sit 
down and grapple with this matter. I think we 
should say that we are not in the least frightened 
by the bogey of Independence aMiough we ask 
Indian politicians to look East and^ West and North, 
and say what that ‘ Independence ’ would be worth, 
without association with the Commonwealth, and to 
give the definite assurance that if there is a sub- 
stantial measure of agreement in India on the basic 
changes in the constitution, tliis Parliament will nut 
hesitate, even amid the preoccupations of the war. 
or with a time limit of not more than 12 months 
after the termination of Ihe war, to implement these 
conclusions in an Act in full confidence and with 
the hope that it will lead, as we believe it will, to 
the greater prosperity and contentment of that land.’ 

Sophistries Ai^swered 

It was. however, left to Mr. Sorensen to clinch 
the issue with regard to Indian independence, 
A spate of sophistries had been indulged in. 
during the debate, by the former Secretary of 
State, Mr. Wedgwood Benn, and others. The 
former had even tried to make the neutral 
world believe that Dominion Status of the 
Westminster variety was identical with Indepen- 
dence, and that it was sheer unreasoning obsti- 
nacy on India’s part to have rejected the same, 
Mr. Sorensen challenged the honesty of that 
statement. It was a question of plain morality, 
so far as England was concerned, to unhesitat- 
ingly concede India’s claim to full independence : 

”The Under Secretary of State said quite categori- 
cally that India could never expect independence .... 

I am not a lawyer, but I rather understand that 
from the days when the Statute of Westminster- 
was passed it has been possible for some of our 
Dominions to claim such sovereign rights that they 
can entirely secede from organic connection with the 
rest of the Empire. If there is that possibility 
under the Statute of Westminster, will the Under 
Secretary say so ? ... I quite agree tliat words can 
be used to mean anything or nothing .... Some people- 
use the word * Independence ’ in a far less rigid 
sense than others, and * Dominion Status ’ is so* 
ambiguous that it may mean something in this 
House and something else to people outside. I think, 
it should be frankly recognised that Indians will 
insist Ion securing independence according to their 
own interpretation, and surely we wish for nothing 
else. If we wish for anything else, we are acting 
wholly inconsistent with our professions in this war.*^’ 



May 11, 1940 ] 




T, -'f 7 


He gave no quarter to tiiose ^rho were inclined 
to exploit the coromnnai problem. “It must be 
recognised/* he gently pointed our, ''that there 
■ are some people who are a little overeager to 
seize on the admitted communal difficulties in 
India as an excuse either for refusing any fur- 
rher deveiopmeni towards Indian self-government 
or for justifying their claim that independence 
can nex^er be granted to India because of internal 
disruption and other dangers.” Applying the 
criterion of India's status with regard to the 
War, to the question under debate, Mr, Sorensen 
proceeded : 

“ Whatever may be our views, Tand even though 
'vve may have profound regret that India is not 
acting in the way we would like her to do, that 
is not the point. The point is that India is a free 
people in her own mind, if not legally. Rightly or 
wrongly, she has come to the conclusion that she 
was not consulted at the beginning of the war and 
yet was involved in it, and that whatever may be 
xhe lip service we pay to freedom in India, we do 
not intend to treat India as a sovereign nation able 
by her own volition to decide, as other Dominions 
do, her own coarse of action in the future. We 
have to go a long way yet in order to appreciate 
what that standpoint means. It is natural for us, 
because we are British and not Indian, to feel that 
India should not have taken this course, but if 
we brush Indian opinion on one side merely because 
it is not our opinion, virtually we do the same 
thing as has been done to Denmark, Norway, 
Finland, Poland, and Czechoslovakia. Those countries 
have been dominated by an alien will and have been 
told that they must accept the position for their 
own good, or because it is a natural*' necessity of 
.'the situation. These countries resent that. 

The Indians are in the same position. They say 
^that whatever the English may feel about the matter 
and whatever plausible or genuine explanations the 
English may advance, the fact remains that the 
Indians are under an alien will, and the British 
are determined that they shall remain under 
it. Judging from certain statements made by 
the Under Secretar 3 ^ this afternoon, - it would 
seem as if we are going to say to the 
Indian people: * You shall be free provided you 
agree with us, and so long as you do not claim 
the right to secede from the British Empire; when 
you do or intend to do that, you shall not be free.* 
We would not tolerate such action by Germany 
towards Denmark. I have a natural interest in 
Denmark as my name indicates, Denmark will never 
tolerate Germany saying ultimately, ‘ You shall be 
free provided you do not wish to break away from 
our domination over you. ’ That is precisely the 
position in India, and the more we appreciate it 
the better.” 

These were the utterances of no irresponsible 
firebrand with extra-territorial loyalties, or a 
fifth columnist saboteur. Underlying them was 
a burning patriotism and love of democracy 
which was exceeded only by an abhorrence of 
Nazism and all that it stands for. It was the 
outspokenness of a patriot who sincerely believ- 
ed that it was a war of principles his country 
was engaged in, and that to defeat Nazism 
*^broad it was necessary that England should 
renounce Nazi methods at home first. 

“ It may be said, ** remarked Mr. Sorensen, that 
I ought not to say these things because they will 
be used by the enemy. But surely we have not 


come to the stage where, through ?aar of our -voice 
being misinterpreted or maliciously' aged by the 
Germans, ws should not let it be heard in zhe rest 
of the world. We have today to raise cur voice cn 
behalf of democracy more vigorously than ever 
before .... We have to say to the world what v-e 
know and what we believe, even though it may 
sometimes mean the exposure of our xveakness. In 
the long run, honesty is the best political policy.... 
The Congress has declared that it is preparing for 
civil disobedience and non-cooperation. It is use- 
less for the Under Secretary to say that we shall? 
rot ho deterred i3y threats cf that desersption, for 
Indians can also say they too will not be deterred 
by threats. People with high principles are prepared 
to go through unlimited suffering for what they 
believe to be true.. ..If, at this time when democracy 
is challenged, we are prepared to implement our 
promise and establish freedom and independence 
in India, we shall be doing more than anything 
within imagination to win India and awaken the 
peoples of the world to the realities of democracy 
and freedom. Involved as we are in this struggle 
for democracy and freedom of nations and peoples, 
we must of necessity demonstrate our consistency. 
Our enemy makes a great deal of our inconsistency, 
but surely the best answer is not to evade what 
he says or ^ to abuse him, but to remove the 
inconsistency.” 

Sevagram, 6-5-40 PyareSal 

UNWORTHY OF WARDHA! 

It was a sultry night and our carriage was 
crowded to suflfocation. Those who could not 
sleep beguiled the tedium of the hours by 
talking, and their ceaseless chatter kept awake 
those who did try to sleep. There need have 
been no stuffiness while the train was in motion, 
but there were some near the windows who 
said that they would rather be suffocated than 
have the coal-dust. I would open the window 
when I found that the other fellow was half 
sleepy, and he would shut it when he found 
that I was too sleepy to notice it 

We had thus no real sleep until about 2 
o’clock in the morning, and out of sheer 
exhaustion we fell off to sleep. But at about 
3 or 3-30 came a hefty Sikh shouting and 

storming. He managed to find some room on the 
upper bank, but was too bulky and long to be 
comfortable there. So he got down and shouted 
to one of the passengers to get up and 

make room for him. This friend, a Parsi, made 
room for him without the slightest reluctance. 
But the Sikh said : ' You better get right up,’ — 
he was still stretching himself half-length— 
•you have been sleeping all night. It is nearly 
four o’clock, and you” must leave me enough 
room to lie down.’ 

This evidently the other friend was not willing 

to do, as he had no sleep until 2 o’clock. The 

Sikh shouted : ‘ But will you get up or shall 
I summon the Station Master?’ 

The Parsi young man remained quiet without 
budging from his seat. But the Sikh friend 
had now attracted others who joined Him in 
the shouting, and the hubbub brought a station 
official in. He saw the situation in a moment 
and very politely began; td evetyon^ to move 



12£ 


HASLTA2^" 


[May 11, 1940' 


tlown a little and to make some more room for 
the Sikh, That, however, was not enough for 
the latter. He wanted to make an impression. 
He looked suspidonsly at the Parsi friend and 
asked him "■ ‘ Kow far are you going ?’ 

The Parsi friend gently replied: ‘To Bombay." 
‘Where are you coming from?" 

‘yrom Wardha," 

‘ Have you got a ticket ? Let the Station 
Master find out first if you have got a ticket. 

I will then see how you stick to your seat. ’ 
The conversation was going on so far in 
Hindi. The Parsi friend, who had kept amac- 
ingly cool, now said in English : ’ What do you 
mean? What business have you to ask me to 
show my ticket? What right have you?’ 

The Sikh, finding that this friend was civilised 
enough to talk English, slightly lowered his 
tone now, and said: ‘I did not ask you to 
show me your ticket. I wanted the station 
official to find out if you had a ticket.’ 

The Parsi: ‘But you asked me first if I had 
a ticket. And even if you wanted the station 
official to find out if I had a ticket, what 
business had you to suggest that I might be 
travelling without a ticket ? ’ 

The Sikh friend offered a straight blunt 
explanation : ‘You said you were travelling from 
Wardha. You have no bed-roll. You are lying 
down on a miserable sheet. From your looks 
I suspected you might not have a ticket.’ 

With perfect composure the Parsi friend said : 

‘ You are now adding insult to the injury, sir. 
All you will judge a man from is his dress 
and his looks ? ’ 

‘ No, I do not,’ said the Sikh. ‘ You are 
travelling from Wardha. If you had cheap 
khadi on, I should not have questioned you.’ 

‘Then what do you see on my person? Don’t 
you see that every bit of the cloth on me is 
khadi ? ’ 

He was wearing a coloured suit of khadi check, 
but the Sikh friend having never worn khadi 
evidently did not know that there could be 
coloured. khadi. But he stuck to his guns, and 
said: ‘But this sheet you are lying down on is 
mill-cloth and not khadi I' 

The Parsi youth said: ‘I confess it is not, 
but what has that to do with my having a 
ticket or not?’ 

‘ No. ’ said the Sikh, ‘ but how can a man 
perform a long journey without a good bedding? 
And seeing that you bad just a sheet and nothing 
else 1 suspected that you might be like many 
of those who travel without a ticket on this 
train.’ The Sikh friend again forgot that in the 
hot season a yquth would not think of having 
anything more than a sheet to spread on the 
seat. But he now shifted his ground. ' You,’ he 
said, ‘being from Wardha, how can you afford 
to lose your temper? You arc a yoimg man, I 


am much older, and so I asked you to make" 
room for me, but you flew into a rage i ’ 

‘Is that correct?’ asked the Parsi friend. ‘I 
actually made room for you. It is you who 
stormed and raged and even suggested that I 
might not have a ticket. Don’t worry what a 
man from Wardha should wear and how he 
should behave. Think of yourself and please 
don’t forget that a blow with a word sometimes 
cuts deeper than a blow with a sword. That 
is the blow you gave me.’ 

The Sikb was nonplussed but he still insisted 
that the Parsi frieiuJ’s behaviour was unworthy 
of one coming from Wardha. There was no one 
else in the compartment wearing khadi, and so 
the Sikh was in ‘ good ’ company. His neighbour 
now took up the cudgels on his behalf and 
said : ‘ You arc perhaps coming from Gandhiji’s 
ashram ? ’ 

‘ What if I did ? ’ 

‘If you do, you ought not to lose your 
temper. They practise ahimsa there. ’ 

‘ I see,’ said the Parsi friend gently. ‘ I was 
on a visit there and do not belong to the 
ashram.' 

The fault was first of Wardha, then of the 
Gandhi Ashram; the first charge was that the 
youth was not wearing khadi, then that he 
was not using a khadi sheet, and again that he 
had lost his temper. The Government expect 
satyagrahis to suffer insults, abuse, kicks, lathi 
blows without a word. If they do so, they are 
expected to bear shooting without flinching. 
If they fail to do so, they arc no satyagrahis. 
Even so it is Wardha that has to keep the 
whole code : spin, wear khadi, lose no temper, 
preserve truth and non-violence in thought, 
word and deed. These ‘ non-Wardiia-mcn’ thus 
want the ‘Wardha- men’ to win Independence for 
them. They will enjoy it all right, but the code 
has to be kept by Wardha, and no one else ! 

Sevagram. 6-5-40 M. D. 


To Correspondents and Message-seekers 
In spite of my notice in Harijan of Decem- 
ber 23rd those who can spare roe continue to 
write and ask for messages. I would refer them 
to the notice for fuller explanation. I know 
several intimate friends have not received acknow- 
ledgments or messages. They will forgive me, 
I have to harden my heart if I am to cope 
with the responsibility I am carrying. And what 
can be better than that I should commence with 
known friends? 

Sevagram, 15-1-40 M. K. G. 

CONTEN'rS Page • 


A One-sided Inquiry 
Our Castes 
Gandhiji’s Statement 
Question Box 
Ajmer 

Occasional Notes 
Unworthy of Wardha! 


M. K. Gandhi 121 
M. D. 122 
123 

M. K. Gandhi 123 
M. K. Gandhi 124 
Pyarelal 126 
M. D. 127 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aiyabhudian Press. 915/1 Fergusson Coflege Road. Poona ♦ 
•■^••■****** “ hn-ABB : Om yeu. Be. 4, Six months, Bi. *-«, FOBXiaH : One yesr, E*. 6-8 or, 8 ah. or 1 8. 





c 





No. B 3092 



: MAHADEV DESAI 


'VoL. Vin, No. 14 1 POONA — SATURDAY, MAY 18, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


QUESTION BOX 

(Bj; M. iC. Gandhi') 

Democracy and Non-violence 

Q. Why do you say, “Democracy can only be 
saved through non-violence ” ? ( The questioner 
is an American friend. ) 

A. Because democracy, so long as it is sus- 
tained by violence, cannot provide for or protect 
the weak. My notion of democracy is that 
under it the weakest should have the same 
opportunity as the strongest. That can never 
happen except through non-violence. No country 
in the world today shows any but patronising 
regard for the weak. The weakest, you say, go 
to the wall. Take your own case. Your land 
is owned by a few capitalist owners. The same 
is true of South Africa. These large holdings 
cannot be sustained except by violence, veiled if 
not open. Western democracy, as it functions 
today, is diluted Nazism or Fascism. At best it 
is merely a cloak to hide the Nazi and the 
Fascist tendencies of imperialism. Why is there 
the war today, if it is not for the satisfaction 
of the desire to share the spoils ? It was not 
through democratic methods that Britain bagged 
India. What is the meaning of South African 
democracy ? Its very constitution has been drawn 
to protect the white man against the coloured 
man, the natural occupant. Your own history is 
perhaps blacker still, in spite of what the 
Northern States did for the abolition of slavery. 
The way you have treated the negro presents 
a discreditable record. And it is to save such 
democracies that the war is being fought ! There 
is something very hypocritical about it. I am 
thinking just now in terms of non-violence and 
trying to expose violence in its nakedness. 

India is trying to evolve true democracy, i. e. 
without violence. Our weapons are those of 
satyagraha expressed through the charkha, the 
village industries, primary education through 
handicrafts, removal of untouchability, communal 
harmony, prohibition, and non-violent organisa- 
tion of labour as in Ahmedabad. These mean 
mass ejBFort and mass education. We have big 
agencies for conducting these activities. They are 
purely voluntary, and their only sanction is 
service of the lowliest. 

This is the permanent part of the non-violent 
effort. From this effort is created the capacity 
to offer non-violent resistance called non-coopera- 
tion and civil disobedience which may culminate 
in mass refusal to pay rent and taxes. As you 


know, we Lave tried non-cooperaLion and civil 
disobedience on a fairly large scale and fairly 
successfully. The experiment has in it promise 
of a brilliant future. As yet our resistance has- 
been that of the weak. The aim is to develop 
the resistance of the strong. Your wars will 
never ensure safety for democracy. India’s 
experiment can and will, if the people come up 
to the mark or, to put it another way, if 
God gives me the necessary wisdom and 
strength to bring the experiment to fruition. 

Hypocrisy 

Q. I agree with you that those who do not 
believe in the tests laid down by you for 
enrolment as satyagrahis should not hold ofifice 
in the Congress organisation. What is, however, 
happening is that, while embargo upon disbelief 
has been effective, hypocrisy is enjoying a 
premium. People who have nothing in common 
with your programme are coming forward 
with the satyagraha pledge in order to capture 
power, their only qualification being lack of 
scruples. Can you as General of the satyagraha 
army shut your eyes to this ? If not, what 
remedy do you propose ? 

A. I suppose Cowper not knowing how to 
deal with the hypocrite paid him a compliment 
by saying that “ hypocrisy was an ode to virtue.’ 
And so it is. But the gentlemen whom you 
refer to will soon discover their error either 
by my sensing the hypocrisy and not starting 
the struggle, or by their being tired of a role 
which requires labour from them. Meanwhile 
I must take everyone at his or her word, and 
believe that those who have taken the pledge 
have done so in good faith, I have no right 
to question anybody’s motive unless I have 
proof positive to the contrary. 

Defence of India Act 

Q. The resolution passed at Ramgarh says 
that •* Congressmen and those under the Congress 
influence cannot help in the prosecution of the 
War with men, money or materials.” Every 
resolution of the Congress has to be explained 
to the people by Congressmen and Congress 
committees. If we do that, we are sure to 
offend the provisions of the Defence of India 
Act, i. e. we will be committing an act of civil 
disobedience before you as General have given 
the word. What are we to do under the 
circumstances ? 

A. I am not quite sure that you will 
commit an offence against the Defence of India 




Act nsreiy by explaining tbe resolution to the 
people. But you can easily put yourself under 
it by adding ‘ginger’ to your explanation and 
delivering a first class harangue against British 
rule. In your place I rvould not do it. Suffi- 
cient education has been given to the people 
as to what British rule is. But you should 
lay stress on what the people have to do to 
get out of foreign rule. Therefore everything 
depends upon how you say it. You will 
offend against my instructions when you dis- 
obey explicit orders served upon you. 

Self-detominaiion 

Q. Are you right in conceding the right of 
self-determination to Muslims in a matter so 
vitally affecting others also, viz. Hindus, Sikhs, 
etc. ? Supposing the majority of the Muslims 
decide in favour of partition in terras of the 
Muslim League resolution, what happens to the 
self-determination of Hindus, Sikhs, etc., who 
will be minorities in the Muslim States ? If you 
go on like this, where will be the end to it? 

A. Of course Hindus and Sikhs will have the 
same right, I have simply said that there is no 
other non-violent method of dealing with the 
problem. If every component part of the nation 
claims the right of self-determination for itself, 
there is no one nation and there is no 
independence. I have already said that Pakistan 
is such an untruth that it cannot stand. As 
soon as the authors begin to work it out, they 
will find that it is not practicable. In any case 
mine is a personal opinion. What the vast 
Hindu masses and the others will say or do I 
do not know. My mission is -to work for the 
unity of all, for the sake of the equal good 
of all. 

What Should Be Done ? 

Q. In the last meeting of the Working 
Committee the Committee have resolved that all 
Congress committees should cither be transformed 
into satyagraha committees or the office-bearers, 
who for any reason cannot sign the pledge, 
should resign and make room for others who 
have signed the pledge. Now, if any Congress- 
man has no faith in your technique but has 
accepted it only to carry out the Working Com- 
mittee’s resolution and is spinning only because 
he wants to remain in office, is he entitled 
to become a satyagrahi and remain in office ? 

A. Surely the office-bearers should resign. The 
pledge taken merely to remain in office is of no 
value. Such a person should not hold office. 

For Non'-performance 

Q. If anyone signing the satyagraha. pledge 
does not observe the rules laid down in it, what 
action will be taken, against such a satyagrahi? 

A. He is liable to be removed from the 
position he may hold. 

If A Committee Refuses 

■ Q. If a Congress committee refuses to trans- 
form itself into a satyagraha committee, what 
is the position of that committee? ■ 

' A; That area will .. be unfreptesented unless 


[ is, i940- 

there are other Congressmen to take the place 
of the defunct committee. 

Cam They Take the Pledge? 

Q. Can the following persons take the 
satyagraha pledge ? 

(a) A pleader who has given an undertaking 
to the court that he will not join any civil 
disobedience movement. 

(b) A person who though he wears khadi 
himself buys mill cloth for others and uses mill 
cloth for his bed sheets, etc. 

(c) A person who though a khadi- wearer him- 
self trades in foreign cloth. 

A. These persons cannot take the pledge. 

Sevagram, 13-5-40 

BASIC EDUCATION 

The annual meeting of the Hindustani Talimi 
Sangh was held at Sevagram on the 2nd and 
3rd May, Dr. Zakir Husain presiding. 

The following members were present : 

1. Dr. Abid Husain, 2. Rajkumari Amrit Kaur, 
3. Shri Shrikrishnadas Jaju, 4.. Acharya Kaka 
Kalelkar, 5. Shri J. C. ICumarappa, 6. Shri G. 
Ramachandran, 7. Acharya Badrinath Varma, 
8. Acharya Vinoba, 9. Smt. Ashadevi, 10. Shri 
E. W. Aryanayakam. 

The following arc some of the important reso- 
lutions passed : 

1. The Sangh expresses its agreement with 
the opinion of the Poona Conference of Basic 
Education that steady and encouraging progress 
has been made during the last two years, and 
that basic education bids fair to bring about a 
healthy revolution in the existing unsatisfactory 
system of primary education, with special refer- 
ence to rural areas; also that it has brought a 
new sense of self- confidence into the life of 
children and a refreshing sense of healthy dis- 
ciplined freedom into the school. 

2. The Sangh is definitely of the opinion that, 
in spite of its larger initial expenditure, the basic 
system will in the long run be more economical 
than the existing one. There will, in addition, 
be such advantages as cannot be measured in 
terms of money, 

3. The Sangh is of opinion that in the choice 
of basic crafts for schools the predominant 
occupation of the locality should be taken into 
account, provided that it is rich in educational 
possibilities. In order to ensure a sound economic 
market for the products of basic education, each 
Government should set up a department to make 
the necessary local survey for a proper selection 
of basic crafts and regulate the disposal of the 
products of the schools. 

4. The Sangh requests the authorities in the 
various provinces to select some basic schools in 
their areas for intensive work so that results 
worked out under controlled experimental condi- 
tions may be available in the shape of data for 
the whole country. 

5. Necessary steps be taken to induce local 
bodies in the various provinces to open basic 



YiAY 18 , 1940 ] 


131 


HABJJAN 


sciools and to make necessary arrangements for 
the training of teachers. 

6. A Basic Craft Sub-Committee - be appointed 
to assist the Sangh in the following matters: 

( a ) The preparation of detailed correiared 
craft syllabi for both teachers and students. 

(b) The revision of the existing syllabus in 
the light of two years’ experience, 

’( c ) The preparation of standards and tests 
for testing the efficiency of craft work at the 
training schools and basic schools. 

( d ) The preparation of technical literature 
and the revision of literature already produced. 

(e) The preparation of a vocabulary of tech- 
nical terms. 

7. In view of the need for craft experts on 
the staff of the training centres and supervisory 
staff of basic education, the Maharashtra Charkha 
Sangh be requested to make special arrange- 
ments for the training cf such experts, and 
Shri Shrikrishnadas Jaju be requested to prepare 
a suitable scheme. 

8. The invitation of Dr. I. E. Khan, Principal, 
Basic Training College, Allahabad, to hold the 
Second Conference of Basic Education in Allaha- 
bad was accepted. 

9. The authorities of Jamia Millia Islamia be 
requested to make arrangements for a permanent 
exhibition of basic education attached to their 
training centre at Jamia Nagar, Delhi, and 
an exhibition of Basic Education may also be 
organised in connection with the Kbadi and 
Village Industries Exhibition at the annual 
session of the Congress. 

10. During the coming year efforts be made 
by the Sangh to prepare suitable literature for 
pupils and teachers of basic education. 

Ashadevi 

Favouritism 

On reading my note in Harijan of 9th March 
on the Seng Khasi School, a correspondent writes : 

“The school may perhaps be failing to follow 
the Government curriculum. But even at its worst 
it could not be worse than the large numbers of 
local , mission schools which have received Govern- 
ment grants. ' It looks, therefore, as though the 
stumbling block is -text-books. It is all too true 
that the books on the prescribed list are nearly all 
mission bopks, and are unusable by any non-Christian 
school. But it is true that all the people with 
influence in the Education Department, so far as 
Khasi education is concerned, are Christians, and the 
scales are weighted very heavily in favour of mission 
schools, and against such courageous efforts as the 
one referred to by , your correspondent, which is 
making' a sincere and praiseworthy effort to preserve 
the national culture and rescue the Khasis from the 
demoralising influence of the Roman Catholics and 
Calvinists.” 

This is ‘ a • matter for the Assam Government 
to attend to. Whatever may have happened 
before, thc^ scandal such as the one referred to. 
by my correspondent should '.cease tinder a 
Government 'which is responsible to the people. 
SeVagtam, 13^5-40' ' M. K. G. 


A GEY FSOM SOUTH OEI3SA 

( By Ao ]/. ThcJ&or ) 

For over a year ! have been moving frequently 
in the backward areas of Qrissa, now called 
‘Partially Excluded Areas’, and almost neglecting 
my Harijan work. Two such extensive Oriya- 
speaking areas, comprising the Koraput district 
(or Jeypore Zimrr.fH/T and Ganjam Uplands, 
were transferred to the newly -formed Orissa 
Province by Ma(?'cas in ri?36. Both are inhabited 
by aborigmal tribes such as Khends (or Kandhas), 
Savaras, Parajas, Koyas, Gadabas and Gonds, and 
by Harijans like Dombs (or Dorns) and Panos. 
The proportion of non-aborigines and others in 
these areas is about 56 per cent and 40 per 
cent respectively. The tribe of Savaras, which 
takes its name from the Shaba ri, a tributary of the 
Godavari, is the same as that mentioned in the 
Ramayana, a female member of which gave sweet 
plums with great love to Shri Ramachandra. 

It is a real tragedy that the British Govern- 
ment has done very little in the past for the 
moral, material and intellectual betterment of 
these people. Over a century has gone by and 
these areas are more or less inaccessible and 
unknown to the man in the street. Even the 
money from special grants given for them by the 
Central Government seems to have been wasted. 
The Labour Commissioner’s Department, which 
has worked well for the Scheduled or Harijan 
Castes, has ignored the existence of these people 
who have been in charge of Agents of the 
Madras Governor. As a result of this neglect even 
primary education scarcely exists, and disease, 
superstition and ignorance are rampant. The 
primitive method of cultivation by means of 
burning trees from the forest and sowing on 
manure formed by the ashes thus obtained still 
prevails, resulting in the denudation of forests, 
and soil erosion on a large scale. These back- 
ward tracts have been handed over to the 
Government of Orissa which is proverbially the 
poorest province in the country. Rs. 2-8-0 per 
head is the revenue income of Orissa, and in 
addition to the cost of an expensive machinery 
of government, money has to be found very 
often for relief from havoc caused by floods or 
droughts. How can the Orissa Government find 
money to develop these areas? 

Another obstacle is the fact that these tracts 
yield next to no revenue to the Province. 
The Koraput area is under the Maharaja of 
Jeypore under the Permanent Land Settlement, 
and the people of Ganjam were exempted from 
payment nearly a century ago by the then 
irresponsible India Government. Two to three 
lakhs of rupees per annum would go a long* 
way to improve the lot of these backward people. 
It is not a large sum for the Central Govern- 
ment to find, and the rescuing and development, 
of these poor people is surely a duty which 
may not be neglected. 

As, however, there seems very little hope o^ 
the requisite financial aid coming from the 



132 


HAMJAK 


I May 18, 7MQ 


CentrCj, it would be a great thing if welfare 
work could be organized on a laxge scale. 
Workers with the necessary zeal and de'-^ot?ou 
•could go and settle among these poor people 
and raise them educationally, morally and eco- 
nomically. Will organisations like the Arya 
Samaj, the Brahmo' Samaj, the Hindu Maha- 
sabha, and other Social Service Leagues help ? 
All eflforts to reclaim these backward classes 
will be a real service to the country. 

It is interesting to note that under the 
Government of India Act of 1935 these two 
areas are the only ones to whom the stigma 
of nomination still attaches. There is no system 
of election to the Assembly, and even those 
nominated to represent them arc not always 
members of the tribes themselves. To no other 
backward tribes does this rule apply. 



4~l (Ltij an. 


May 18 


1940 


NON-COOPERATION 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

The following is from a God-fearing political 
friend whom everybody knows: 

“You must have shouldered the responsibility of 
making difficult decisions many a time in your life, 
but the responsibility which the Ranigarh Congress 
resolution has entrusted you with is the gravest of 
all. The future of India, nay of the world, depends 
upon it. 

You are far above me in wisdom and experience. 
But I feel you are very hard upon yourself. The 
■experiments that you sometimes carry on in your 
search of truth, involving yourself and thousands of 
others, make me gasp. 

I have been closely following your experiments in 
.ahimsa and satyagraha and read carefully every word 
that you write. You feel that these weapons are 
effective for establishing the right and putting down 
the wrong in the world. But I tell you these weapons 
of yours have been and are being abused in the world. 
The reason for it, I think, is this that once the 
people begin to feel the strength of these weapons 
the latent hatred in their hearts comes to the surface 
and, armed with these, becomes ten times, even a hun- 
dred times, more potent for mischief. That is bound 
to do great harm to the country, and it may take 
ages to undo it. Non-cooperation has become a curse 
in every-day life. Its ill effects are seen in family 
circles, in associations, in business, in factories and 
in Government offices. 

The most unfortunate part is this that those who 
are in the wrong are using this weapon against 
those who are in the right. An unworthy son or 
an unworthy daughter, a father on the wrong path, 
a miserly businessman or millowner, a dishonest 
worker, all these resort to non-cooperation to defend 
their indefensible conduct. My experience is that 
those who are in the right are perplexed and 
paralysed by your weapon. Non-cooperation hits 
one from behind and in a manner more deadly 
than the deadliest weapon. Twice I have seen it 
used in connection with political movements in India, 
^nd it brings tears to my -eyes whenever I see you 
about to resort to it. Having learnt its use from 


you, selfish people use it in your name in order 
to gain their selfish ends, and bring misery upon 
thousands of people. Therefore I beg of you not to 
employ this weapon in politics. It may get us 
some rights, but it spreads hatred among mankind, 
not love. We are too imperfect. You are a wise 
man, you are a man of God. Pray God that He 
may show you another way. 

I request you not to embarrass the British in any 
way while they are engaged in this life and death 
struggle. But I know, by itself the Congress will 
ngt have the patience to do so, though it may 
under your advice. The ill-will and the hatred that 
would be let loose if non -cooperation is started and 
Ihe communal bitterness to which it may give rise, 
would have an adverse effect upon the war and 
expose India to greater danger- 

If Congressmen must embarrass the British, I feel 
they should go back to offices in the provinces and 
should face the British Government with a dilemma at 
every step in the Provincial and the Central Assem- 
blies. This is the only right course and it tells 
upon the British public. 

Again we have to solve the Hindu-Muslim problem. 
For that we should call a conference of all the 
communal leaders and party leaders. If ive make 
an effort beforehand, we might become united by 
the time the Government is willing to call the 
Constituent Assembly. No time should be lost. 
The demands of the Mussalmans will mount up as 
time goes on. I am certain God will help us to 
attain unity if we try for it in right earnest and 
without delay. God has put the reins of the country 
in your hands ; you alone can make or mar Iier 
fate. ” 

The writer is one of the most earnest among 
us. He has presented one side of the picutre, 
but like all one-sided pictures this also is 
misleading. 

Every powerful thing is liable to misuse. Opium 
and arsenic are most potent and useful drugs. And 
they lend themselves to great abuse. No one has 
for that reason suggested the stopping of their 
good use. If non-cooperation has lent itself to 
abuse in some cases, in many cases its wise use has 
proved absolutely efficacious. A thing has to be 
judged by its net effect. The net effect of non- 
violent non-cooperation has been of the greatest 
benefit to India. It has brought about an awaken- 
ing among the masses which would probably have 
taken generations otherwise. It has prevented 
bloodshed and anarchy and on the whole improv- 
ed the relations between the Britishers and our- 
selves. There is a better mutual understanding 
because there is better mutual respect than ever 
before. And yet our non-cooperation has been 
indifferently non-violent, I hold that non-coopera- 
tion is of universal use. Well applied, its use 
in politics can wholly displace the use of barba- 
rous weapons of mutual destruction. The thing 
to do, therefore, is not to restrict its use but 
to extend it, care being taken that it is used 
in accordance with the known laws regulating 
its use. Risk of misuse has undoubtedly to be 
run. But with the increase in the knowledge 
of its right use, the risk can be minimised. 

One safe thing about non-cooperation is that 
in the end its abuse recoils more upon the 
users than upon those against whom it is used- 




133 


May 18, 1940 } 'KA^l^^AE 


' Its abuse is the greatest in domestic relations 
because those against whom it is used are not 
strong enough to resist the abuse. It becomes 
a case of misapplied affection. Doting parents 
or wives are the greatest victims. These will 
learn wisdom when they realise that affection 
does not demand yielding to extortion in any 
form. On the contrary true affection will resist it. 

The v/riter suggests the usual parliamentary 
programme with cbstructicn. Its futility, when 
it is not backed by readiness for non-cooperation 
and civil disobedience, has been fully demon- 
strated. 

So far as the British are concerned I have 
already said that I will do nothing to embarrass 
them. I am straining every nerve to avoid a 
conflict. But they may make it inevitable. Even 
sOo I am praying for a mode of application 
which will be effective and still not embarrass- 
ing in the sense of violent outbreaks through- 
out the country. 

Here I must say that, whilst it is true that 
active cooperation on the part of Congressmen 
is not yet much in evidence, of passive co- 
operation on their part there is no lack. Violent, 
sporadic eruptions on the part of the people 
would have paralysed my effort to gather to- 
gether forces of non-violence in an effective 
manner. As it is, the restraint which they have 
• exercised fills me with hope for the future. 

Hindu-Muslim unity is a morsel by itself. 
But my friend is on the wrong track when he 
suggests that unity should be hastened for fear 
of Muslims raising their demands. Demands 
against whom ? India is as much theirs as 
anybody else’s. The way to unity lies through 
just demands once for all, not through ever- 
increasing demands, whether just or unjust. The 
demand for partition puts an end to all 

effort for unity for the time being. I hold that 
communal understanding is not a pre-requisite 
to the British doing justice, on their part. 
When they feel that they want to recognise 

India’s right of self-determination, all the 
diflBculties that they put forth as obstacles in 
their path will melt away like ice before 
the sun’s rays. The right of self-determination 
means the right of determination by every 

group and ultimately every individual. The 

' demand for a Constituent Assembly presumes 
that the determinations of the groups and 
individuals will coincide. Should it haptftn 
otherwise and partition become the fashion, 
either we shall have partition or partitions rather 
than foreign rule, or we shall continue to 

wrangle among ourselves and submit to foreign 
rule, or else have a proper civil war. Anyway 
the present suspense cannot continue. It has to 
end one way or the other. I am an optimist. I 
have every hope that when we come to grips 
Hindus, Muslims, and all others will throw in 
their weight in favour of India which all will 
'-claim as their own. 

Sevagram, 13-5-40 


OCCASIONAL NOTES 

The MfiiiTioiritbs’ 

There is no doubt that dunng the present 
crisis there are more Englishmen alive to a 
sense of realities and to the justice of India's 
case than ever before. The India debate in the 
Commons is a sure index. But an even surer 
index is the opinion in the British press. Thus 
The Scoisinctii had an interesting controversy 
071 the Hindu Muslim and the Princes' question 
between Mr. F. Burton Leach and Prof. A* 
Berriedale Keith. The former maintained that 
the Hindus and Muslims differed more widely 
than the Protestants of Northern and Catholics 
of Southern Ireland. 

“ The Hindus and Muslims,” he said, represent 
two civilisations and cultures, which are diametrically 
opposed to one another in nearly every way. With- 
out upholding the intransigent claims made by some 
Moslem leaders, it is useless to shut our eyes to- 
the facts and to dismiss 80,000,000 Indian Moslems 
as merely a religious minority, who ought to be 
satisfied with the security of their religion. Security 
for their religion, indeed, has never been threatened 
for two good reasons — one that Hinduism is not 
a proselytising faith; and the other that to under- 
mine the religion of the Moslems would be utterly 
impossible and even interference with it would -pro- 
voke immediate Civil War, in which the Hindus, in. 
spite of numerical majority would stand very little 
chance, because the Moslems would have^ Afghanistan 
and other Moslem countries behind them.” 

It is curious to note how this language is 
just an echo of Lord Hailey’s and Sir William 
Barton’s language which revives the two nations 
theory which, as we have seen in these columns, 
was originally conceived in the British mind. 
Prof. Keith makes short work of this argument : 

There is no truth in Mr. F. Burton Leach’s 
allegation that I compare the Hindus and Moslems 
of India with the Catholics and Protestants of 
Ireland or regard their cleavage as purely religious. 
The whole point is that just as we allowed a poli- 
tical minority in Ireland to induce us to deny home 
rule, and thus brought about a rebellion which end- 
ed with the Independence of Eire and the legisla- 
tion last year to legalise treason against the King, 
so we shall bring about disaster in India if we 
allow a political minority to deny responsible Govern- 
ment to the majority. That form of Government 
was promised with the sanction of Parliament 
in 1917, the promise has been repeated lime 
after time with like approval, and the issue sim- 
ply is, ‘ Are we going to repudiate our promises 
and to justify Civil Disobedience and rebellion ? ’ 
Mr- Leach admits that there is no danger to- 
Moslem religion from the Hindus, which shows 
that their claim to deny responsible Government 
rests merely on their denial of the principle of 
democracy, majority rule. We are therefore to govern 
India in contradiction to the wishes of the majority 
of the people to please a minority. We did so in 
Ireland and the result is patent to all. Can history 
teach nothing ? *' 

The Princes* Question 

Mr. Leach employed the usual argument of the 
Treaty Obligations with the Princes and argued 
that the Princes 

^ are not all autocrats and that autocracy is not 
necessarily bad. A benevolent autocracy may be a 
better form of Government in some societies than a 
:so-called democracy which might in practice be only 



•n <0 / 


jaj?? 


[ IViAY 185 1940 


an oligarchy. England was on tbe whole better 
go%’8rn€d under the autocracy of the Tudors than 
under the corrupt oligarchic system of the eighteenth 
century which claimed to have overthrown autocracy. 
Many of the larger Slates have adopted a considej'* 
able measure of responsible Gcvernment, and several 
distinguished Congress politicians are serving as 
Ministers under the Princes. The policy of succes- 
sive Viceroys has been to encourage the liberalisa- 
tion of the constitution of the Slates. Prof. Keith's 
argument that ‘ autocracy in India is now supported 
by British arms only ’ is a complete misrepresenta- 
tion of the situation from the point of view of the 
Indian princes and of the British Government,” 

This is blowing hot and cold in the sa/oc 
breath, praising autocracy and yet trying to 
maintain that responsible government is being 
introduced. One would like to know the Con- 
gressmen serving as Ministers in States and also 
to know for how many days the States could 
function if the support of the British arms were 
to be removed. But Prof. Keith’s reply as a 
constitutional authority is worth noting: 

Mr. Leach is perfectly aware that the treaties 
are all subject to the paramount power of the Crown 
to be exercised in the interests of India as a whole. 
Does anyone really believe that to ask a few 
score of rulers to abandon absolute pov/er and to 
accept the role of constitutional sovereigns, with all 
their wealth, prestige and the light to influence their 
‘ Governments, is to break any obligation of the 
Crown or is contrary to morality ? ” 

Then he adds : . 

“ Mr. Leach indeed ruins his own case by admitting 
that many of the larger States have adopted a con- 
siderable measure of responsible Government. They 
have done so because they know that e^-en a bene- 
volent autocrat — and many rulers have not been 
benevolent and still more have been grossly incom- 
'petent — form an inferior type of Government to 
self-government. To ask responsible-Governraent 
provinces to federate with autocratic Slates is an 
unreasonable demand. We should make it clear at 
least that, if the States prefer to remain autocratic, 
Federation will go on without them. Less than that 
will be a failure in duty no less than in policy. 
The time for saving India is growing short. Those 
of us who followed the Irish fiasco with regret do 
not wish to see a like fate for India.” 

But the demand for Independence ought to 
make the case simpler. Let the people of British 
India get their right to self-determination, irres- 
pective of what the Princes may or may not 
like to do. Perhaps it would be easier for 
them to make their choice if the British Indian 
people’s right to self-determination were recognised. 

Too Late 

The Church Times publishes a long interview 
by its special representative with an Indian 
Christian. His name is not given, but the space 
devoted to this important interview indicates the 
importance of the source. On the minorities’ 
question the gentleman said : 

Tbe differences* in so far as they exist, between 
Moslems and Hindus were certainly got created by 
Great Britain; but for its own reasons those differ- 
ences have been fostered by the Imperial Government. 
The British policy has been Divide at impera, and 
it has been directly responsible for widening the gap 
*that already existed ? between the Moslem and the 
Hindu community* It is the Moslems of the cities 
xi British India who have made the complaints and 


have demanded protection. They have beer? giveo- 
political and economic powers out of all proportion 
to their numbers, influence, education and cnlturOo 
They are bound up with the British rule, and have 
. everything to lose if Britain withdraws. In the villages, 
on the Other hand, where British influence has not so 
fully penetrated there is no Moslem problem at alia 
Moslems live sido by side with Hindus and have 
nothing to fear. The Piinces naturally fear for 
themselves at the withdrawal of the British. They 
gave their power to the Imperial Government and, 
they assert, will take it back into their own hands 
again if Congress gains its demands. This is only 
an empty tVrat. Thci: vvOi’-j -mincdirriciy 

colhoso o Biii'sl; 1'; fs 

interesting lo no!:c the depiossed classes have 

not asked for special protection. Dr. Auibedikar 
speaks for only ten thousand out of sixty million. 
Nor have the Indian Christians, the second largest 
minority, put forward any special interest.” 

The interviewer asked if Dominion StatuE 
would not be the Crst step to full Independence. 
The ansv/cr was : 

“ Dominion Status would have been the proper 
preparation for freedom once upon a lime. For my 
part I believe with many other Indians tliat that 
time has passed. IJ^omiiiion Status should have been 
granted before, it is now' too late. Such status 
would give Inclhns llie right to ticcich) all alVairSj 
except defence, foreign policy’', minority r/roMems and 
so on. But these ate the very (lueslions tl^at 
wishes to decide for herself, though she wouid ttro- 
bably 'welcome advice about defence —as in jy^ypt - 
and make special arrangements wllh Great ih-itaiiio 
If even Dominion Status is postponed U) the end of 
the war, Indian feeling will be liopclcssly alienated, 
and the unrest in Ireland and among the Africander in 
South Africa will be reitcalcd this time in the ICastA 
Wo Love of Max: Germany 

Mr. Sorenson, the Labour M. P. foe West 
Leyton, in an article in the London Tiilnme 
exposed the hollowness of the pretension that 
the Muslim League represented the whole 
Muslim opinion, and showed hov/ the reference 
to tbe eighty million Muslims opposed to the 
Congress was the plea advanced pretentiously 
by life-long notorious imperialists who fought 
even the India Act every step of the way. ’’ 
This is how he appeals to the British Govern- 
ment to face the -reality; 

“ Will this be followed by Civil Disobedience ? 
That remains to be seen, although this is possible. 
In any case Hindus, Muslim?, Sikhs, and others 
writhin, or supporting, the Congress have made it 
abundantly clear that there can be no co-operation 
with Great Britain unless and until there is the 
recognition of mutual respect and dignity which c-an 
only issue* through the admission by Britain that 
I^jflia is a free nation entitled and able to work 
her own economy and choosing by her own unciua^ 
lified volition as a recognised independent nation 
whether she shall or shall not cooperate with the 
British nation. Our Government may interpret this 
as it pleases, but the reality of the issue remains. 
And for Britain and the Labour Movement no less 
than for India it is of the highest value that our 
professions should thus be put to critical test. It is 
through no love of Nazi Germany that India insists 
on her inherent right. It is through love of the 
same freedom vaunted above totalitarian debasement 
that India now implements her insistent chg,l]enge s 
‘ Do you fight for freedom ? So do we. 'What 
about it ? ’ ” 

Sevagram, 15-5-40 M. D. 



'May 18, 1940 ] 


HAEIJAH 


A HIDEO'US SYIL 

A friend from Kamalapuram wrir.es as folicws: 

“A few days ago I was at the Car Festival of 
Humpi — the ancient Vijayanagar — which annual^’' 
draws thousands of men and women, young and olda 
from all over these parts. I noticed certain huts 
constructed apart from campers’ sheds on one side 
of the temple yard. A woman was standing at 
the entrance of each hut with obvious intent to 
attract men. The sight being unexpected and re- 
volting I enquired of other visitors what it meant. 

I was told they were brothels and therefore segre- 
gated. Deeply smitten I hurried away, but on second 
thought felt I ought to bring the fact to the notice 
of the public. There were a dozen huts each with 
6 or 7 victims in them. The organisers charged a 
little extra as ground rent for the special site. 
Who knows if they did not collect a professional 
tax too ? 

I was told by one of the crowd that such doings 
.are a normal feature of festivals. But even my 
informant was staggered at the unseemly and syste- 
mised organisation of these brothels under the very 
nose of the police. The Temple Committee, and the 
Police and Health Departments are jointly responsible 
for the happenings and arrangements at the fair. It 
may be that other bodies are also. The President of 
the District Board of Bellary is also the President of 
the K. P. C. C. There is a Congress 'Committee 
within 7 miles of this place where a Congress 
M. L, A. as well as the President reside. I ex- 
pressed my horror to some prominent Congressmen 
who were there, but none appeared to feel as deeply 
as 1 did. The girls were mostly from the Northern 
Circars. 

This vicious traffic may be a hideous truth. But 
why should organisations meant for promotion of 
human welfare become its agents ? Can society 
• descend to worse depths ? 

, I wish you would raise your voice in protest/’ 

That brothels are more often than not orga- 
nised at fairs and during religious festivals, and 
that over and above these there are villains who 
lie in wait to waylay innocent young women, 
is no news to me. Two years ago when I was 
President of the Women’s Conference, I raised 
funds for a band of women workers to go to 
Hardwar for the Kumbh -Mela and see what 
they could do to combat the evil. Where our 
Branches exist our Standing Committee members 
do try to see that steps may be taken by the 
authorities to stop this hideous traffic. But we 
are really powerless to do much. Acts for put- 
ting a check on immoral traffic in women are 
not really efficacious, and we women have not 
yet done anything substantial towards creating 
public opinion in the matter. I do not differen- 
tiate between men members of any political 
party where codes of morality are concerned. 
In all matters of social reform my experience 
has been that very little help can be had from 
constituted authority. Our system of Government 
is not of the soil and therefore not |];human 
•enough to feel for the sufferings of the poor. 
That religious bodies should exploit religious 
festivals for such foul deeds is a' travesty of 
religion and is another proof of the havoc that 
institutional religion often works. 

I hope women workers will resolve to attend 
these fairs and festivals not only to protect 


innocent girls but also to expose the organis-ers 
of these brothels. If Congress committees will 
help us, it will make our 'cask easier. But I zm 
convinced it is we and we alone who can get 
rid of this evil in society. It is hard work® it 
is difficult, it is almost thankless, but if we fee! 
the shame of it enough, we shall not count the 
cost, if public opinion is strong enough, the help 
of the district authorities will also be available, 
Mere protests are not enough — because it is 
strange bow men’s consciences the weeid over 
are singularly dead where such matters are con- 
cerned. I am sure Gandhiji will once again take 
this opportunity of condemning those concerned 
in no uncertain terms. 

Sevagram, 1-5-40 A. 

[I am quite sure that Congressmen must not 
tolerate this evil. M. K. G. ] 

KHADI WORE IN TAMIL NAD 

I 

The Tamil Nad Branch of the A. 1. S. A, has 
brought out a little brochure embodying the 
report of khadi work done in Tamil Nad in 
the year 1939. The year is described as one of 
trial for khadi work — with accumulation of 
large stocks, a small balance of working capita!, 
and continuance of famine conditions through- 
out the year. Production had to be cut down; 
and sales, though increased by special efforts, 
did not come up to expectations and could not 
help to tide over the crisis. It is worth noting 
that the increase in sales was not due to increased 
demand in cities ( where there was actually a 
decrease by Rs. 7,000) but due to greater purchases 
of khadi by villagers — particularly by spinners. 
On the top of these difficulties came the disas- 
trous fire in the Madras Exhibition causing a 
loss of Rs. 36,000 to the A. I. S. A. It redounds 
to the credit of the workers of the Sangh that, 
undaunted by these mishaps, they sustained their 
faith and efforts and in August last raised the 
spinners’ wages from 3 As. for a day of 8 hours 
to 3 As. 6 Ps., i, e. by 22 per cent, , without 
raising the prices of cloth — meeting the differ- 
ence from Government subsidy. 

Here are a few figures, culled from the tables 
given in the report, which show at a glance the 
volume of work put forth through the agency 
of the A. I. S. A. in the year under report ; • 


A. I. S. A- Centres 
Spinners on rolls ( average ) 
Average monthly attendance 
Yarn produced Hanks 

„ Weight lbs. 

„ Value Rs. 

Khadi produced Sq. yds. 

„ ■ Value Rs. 

Khadi sold { Urban ) Rs. 

„ ( Rural ) Rs. 

„ (Other provinces )^Rs. 
The khadi production gave 
57.585 spinners, 2,043 weavers, 
dyers, 42 printers, 21 tailors, 3 


49 
55,564 
22,778 
61,89,814 
3,85,968 
4,20.510 
23,85,110 
11,84,987 
6,87,121 
3,83,642 
3,85,976 
employment to 
74 dhobis. , 30 
carpenters and 





m 


[ May 18, 194© 


2 Shiikis — the total mumber of artisaos employ- 
ed bdiig 59,800, The wages paid to them were 


as follows: 


Carding 

ivS. 

801’ 

Spinning 

4,V2,276 

Weaving 

3,04,050 

Bleaching 

16,679 

Dyeing 

6i,509 

Printing 

23,155 

Tailoring 

6,240 

Carpentry and Smithy 

1,505 


When it is borne in minol that many of these 
were part time workers it will be admitted that 
the earnings of some of them were quite decent. 
It is also to be noted that, but for the em- 
ployment given to them by the A. L S, A., 
many, if not most, would have stood on the 
list of the unemployed or partially but inade- 
quately employed. These workers, classified by 
community, included 1,031 Haiijans, 833 Muslims, 
532 Christians, and 57,404 others. “In the pro- 
secution of my obligations to the villagers I shall 
recognise no distinction between man and man,’* 
says the A. I. V. 1. A. members’ pledge, and 
the foregoing figures demonstrate how khadi 
has served all communities alike. It has united 
them all in a common endeavour to rehabilitate 

j 

our village economy. 

C. S. 

AN IMPORTANT INTER 

[The following is the report of an interview 
that Gandhiji gave to a representative of The 
Times of India at Seva gram on the 9th inst.] 

“I would welcome a settlement which ensures 
peace with honour, ” said Mr. Gandhi. “ The 
Viceroy knows I am always ready.” 

Seated on a mat in his small barely furnished 
room, with a wet cloth wrapped round his head, 
Mr. Gandhi carefully explained his viewpoint. 
He spoke with great earnestness. 

“I am not averse.” he explained, “to coming 
to terms with Britain on matters like defence 
and commercial interests, and I am fully prepared 
that these adjustments should be referred to a 
constituent assembly as part of an agreed settle- 
ment. 

Mr. Gandhi went on to explain his attitude 
to the constituent assembly. “I believe per- 
sonally that it is the most satisfactory method 
of procedure; but don’t forget that I preserve 
an open mind on the matter. If some people 
hold that there are other forms of procedure 
which are more representative, I am willing to 
be convinced. Today I say that the assembly 
should be elected on adult franchice, but here 
again my mind is open to alternative proposals 
provided these proposals have the backing of 
irepresentatiye men.” 


“If the Viceroy,” asked your correspondent, 
declares that he will summon a conference of 
*the best Englishmen and the best Indians’, and 
if he further agrees that its terms of reference 
wiii be to arrange for the estabiishmem 
of self-government within the shortest period 
practicable, would you accept that gesture ?’* 

Mr. Gandhi’s reply was emphatic. “Certainly, 
it will be acceptable. In the preliminary confer^ 
ence it is necessary that the best Englishmen 
and the best Indians should meet to adjust 
their diflFcrences, but in the framing of the 
constitution only Indians must participate.” 

“If the Viceroy,” continued Mr. Gandhi with 
deliberation, “is authorised to declare that Fhs 
Majesty’s Government have definitely come tc 
the conclusion that it is the sole right of 
India to determine the form of government 
under which she would live, and if with that 
end he summons a conference of the best 
Englishmen and the best Indians — the latter 
elected according to an acceptable procedure — tc 
devise a method whereby a constituent assembly 
can be summoned for the purpose of framing a 
constitution and for solving all problems that 
may arise, I would accept the proposal.” 
“But,” — and here Mr. Gandhi spoke gravely- 
“I don't sense the proper atmosphere today.” 

Asked whether if His Majesty’s Government 
summoned a conference and acted in good faith 
Mr. Gandhi would be prepared to use his personal 
intlucnce to induce the Congress Ministers to 
return to oflSicc, the Mahatma quickly replied: 
“ Not unless there is a Hin Ju-Muslim agreemeni:., 
I should wait,” 

“You did not deserve the interview,” chaffed 
Mr. Gandhi as I said good-bye, “ You brought 
a hot wind with you to Sevagram.” The tem- 
perature was 108. He laughed uproariously at 
my obvious retort : “ It is an ill wind which 

brings no one any good.” 

( The Times of India, 20-5-40 ) 

Hindus & Musaimans of India 

By AttUananda Chakrabarti 
Gandhiji has said of this book:* “If he has stated 
the truth and nothing but the truth, it is a reveal- 
ing booklet v/liich ■ all Hindus and Muslims may 
read with profit.” Price Rs. 2-8-0. Postage 5 As. 
extra. Available at ( 1 ) Plarijan office - Poona 
and (2) Harijan office -81 Queen’s Road, opp. 
Marine Lines Station, Bombay 2. 

CONTENTS Page 

Question Box ... M. K. Gandhi 129 

Basic Education Ashadevi 130 

A Cry from South Orissa A. V. Thakkar 131 
Non-Cooperation ... M. K. Gandhi 132 

Occasional Notes ... M. D. 133 

A Hideous Evil ... A. K. 135 

Khadi Work in Tamil Nad-I C. S. 135 

An Important Interview ... M. K, Gandhi 136 

Note : 

Favouritism ... M. K. G. 131 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabbushan Pressi 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poom 4 
Ubani^lioii Ratae — IXLANt) : One year, Ri. 4, Six montl^ Ba. 2-8, FoxtMGir : One year, Bi. or, 8 ilu or 2 $» 



No. B 3092 


fl' 



'S/-^rL 



EcHitJ? ; MAHADEV DESA3 


Yol. VIII, No. 15 ] POONA — SATURDAY. MAY 25, 19-^<0 f ONE ANNA 


QUESTION BOX 

C By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Spianing Regularly 

Q. What do you mean by ' spinning regu- 
larly ’ ? If one spins for a couple of hours 
during a month or for half an hour once or 
twice a week, would he be deemed to have 
satisfied the condition about spinning regularly? 

A. ‘ Regularly ’ was put in the place of 
' daily This was meant to provide for acciden- 
tal or unavoidable omissions. Therefore spinning 
every week or at stated intervals will not meet 
the case. A satyagrahi will be expected to 
spin daily except for valid reasons such as 
sickness, travelling or the like. 

Satyagraha Camps and Untouchability 

Q. Satyagraha camps are being organised for 
the training of volunteers all over the country. 
But the principle with regard to the renuncia- 
tion of untouchability in every shape and form 
is not being rigorously enforced. Don’t you agree 
that it ought to be made an absolute rule in 
the camps that no one who regards the touch 
of Harijans as polluting and does not freely mix 
with them should be permitted to attend them? 

A. I have no hesitation whatsoever in saying 
that he who has the slightest untouchability 
in him is wholly unfit for enrolment in the 
Satyagraha Sena. I regard untouchability as the 
root cause of our downfall and of Hindu- 
Muslim discord. Untouchability is the curse of 
Hinduism and therefore of India. The taint is 
so pervasive that it haunts a man even after 
he has changed over to another faith. 

Partition and Non-Muslims 

Q. You have said in Harijan that *'if the 
eight crores of Muslims desire partition, no 
power on earth can prevent it. ” Does it not 
strike you that 25 crores of non-Muslims too 
might have a say in the matter ? Does not your 
statement imply that you put a premium on 
the opinion of the Muslims while underrating 
that of the Hindus? 

A. I have only given my opinion. If the 
majority of Hindus or Christians or Sikhs or 
even Parsis, small though their number is, stub- 
bornly resist the express wish of the duly 
elected representatives of eight crores of Muslims, 
they will do so at the peril of a civil war. 
This is not a question of majority or minority. 
If we are to solve our problems non-violently, 
there is no other way. I say this not because 
the eight crores . happen to be Muslims. I would 


say the same if the sigh: crores were any other 

community. 

Legal Practice and Satyagraha 
Q. Knowing as you do how lying and deceit 
have become the stock-in-trade of the legal pro- 
fession in this country, would you permit prac- 
tising lawyers to enlist as active satyagrahis ? 

A. I am unable to subscribe to your sweeping 
proposition. The fact that a lawyer wants to 
become a satyagrahi presupposes on his part a 
certain standard of purification. No doubt there 
may be, to my knowledge there arc, black sheep 
in the Congress. This is inevitable in any big 
organisation. But it would be unbecoming of a 
satyagrahi to condemn a man because he belongs 
to a certain profession. 

Satyagraha and Obstructionism 
Q. Is the policy of obstructionism compatible 
with satyagraha? Can a satyagrahi, who is sup- 
posed to stand for principles rather than party, 
adopt one attitude with regard to a measure 
when it is sponsored by his party, and another 
when the same measure is sponsored by the 
opposite party ? Would you approve of this 
policy in Municipalities and District Boards as 
is being done by some Congressmen at present? 

A. I have always opposed obstruction as be- 
ing anti-satyagraha. Congressmen, to be correct 
in their behaviour, should always give co opera- 
tion to their opponents when the latter are in a 
majority and adopt any wise measure. The object 
of Congressmen should never be attainment of 
power for power’s sake. Indeed such discrimi- 
natory co-operation will enhance the prestige of 
the Congress and may even give it majority. 

Training Harijans as Cooks 
Q. Don’t you think that, if the Congress star- 
ted a plan for training Harijans as expert cooks 
for Hindu homes and made it a rule to man every 
ashram or a mess meant for Congress workers 
with Harijan cooks thus trained, it would prove 
a short cut to the removal of untochability 7 
A. Our ambition should be to enable Harijans 
to rise to the highest rank. But while that 
must be the ideal, it will be a good thing to 
train some Harijans to become accomplished 
cooks. I have observed that the more we draw 
them into the domestic circle, the quicker is 
the pace of the reform. Harijans who become 
absorbed in our homes lose all sense of inferiority 
and become a living link between other 
Harijans and Savarna Hindus. 

Sevagram, 19-5-40 



HAE7JAH 


KHADI WORK IN TAMILNAD 

II 

The other feature of the ^ork that desen^es 
special notice is the expansion of the self-suffi- 
ciency scheme and the efforts to add to the 
efficiency and productive capacity of the workers 
by introducing improved implements. Thus during 
the year 630 thousand lbs. of lint were used, 
of which — except 10 thousand lbs. — the entire 
quantity was ginned by the spinners themselves 
on hand gins. This happened for the first time 
since the inception of the khadi movement. The 
spinners are reported to have realised the advan- 
tage of hand-ginning, and some who have land of 
their own have taken to growing their cotton 
also. The spinners in Tamil Nad generally do 
their own carding. Improved implements were 
distributed to them at half the cost price as 
follows: 762 gins, 870 spinning wheels. 8,761 
speed wheels, 8,472 carding bows, 225 carding 
bows. The cost was collected in easy instal- 
ments. Harijan spinners were not only given 
the implements free of cost, but were paid daily 
wages even during the period in which they 
learnt spinning. To encourage better spinning 50 
tests were conducted in which 439 spinners 
participated, of whom as many as 113 showed 
a speed of above 400 yards per hour, and about 
40 per cent attained an efficiency which would 
enable them to earn over 3 As. per day. 

Referring to the progress made by the self- 
sufficiency scheme, the report says ; 

“The message of kliadi has reached more homes 
this year- 35,968 saris valued at Rs. 1,78,614 
woven from yarn collected hank by liank from the 
spinners every time they delivered yarn to us, have 
been distributed among the spinners during the ycar. 
Besides, khadi other than saris, valued at Rs, 37,052 
was also distributed for the use of the other 
members in the spinners’ families. It will also be 
noted that the first law of production, i. e. tliat the 
'producer should be the first consumer of his produce, 
has been well kept in view. Of the tota,l yarn 
produced, i. e. 90,72i383 hanks, the spinners have 
deposited for their own use 28-, 82, 769 hanks, i, e. 
nearly 32 per cent of the total output or 47 per 
cent of the yarn sold. 227 families in Tamil Nad 
got their own yarn woven into cloth through our 
various branches. 4,695 sq. yds. of cloth valued 
at Rs. 2,334 was thus woven. The total weaving 
wages paid under this head was Rs. 591.” 

During the year under report the 2.093 weavers 
working under the A. I. S. A. earned , Rs. 
3,04,050. Their average attendance was 24 \l^eeks 
in the year, and the average weekly earning 
amounted to Rs. 6-2-3 — by.no means a negli- 
gible amount. Whereas most of the mill yarn 
weavers began their careers with debt and could 
never get free from that burden, the hand 
yarn, weavers could not only make . the two 
ends meet but were able to make a little 
“saving also — the amount deposited by .them 
being, at the end of the year, Rs. 27,714-3-8, 
or an average of Rs. 13-6-0 per weaver, A 


[ may 25, 1940 '■ 

comparative study of these two classes of weavers 
is likely to yield revealing results, and will 
prove to the hilt the truth of Gandhfji's dictum 
that “ those weavers who do not take to weaving 
handspun are cutting their own throats,” and 
that “khadi is the weaver’s sole protection^ 
There is yec another feature in the report 
worth noticing. The total turnover during the 
year was about Rs. 30 lakhs. The salaries 
paid to 365 workers amounted to Rs. 61 
thousand, i. e. 2-1 per cent. This figure would 
surely compare favourably with the correspond- 
ing figure of any other business concern, and 
it is creditable for the workers engaged in the 
service. The fact that the Branch could carry 
on its work with a working capital of Rs. 8 
lakhs and odd shows the distinct advantage 
enjoyed by khadi over mill production which 
would have required a much greater capital. 

We shall look forward to getting similar 
businesslike reports from other branches of the 
A. 1. S. A., for these reports, besides being 
authentic records of the progress made by 
khadi, are of great value as additions to the 
growing volume of literature useful to students 
of khadi economics. 

c. s. 

CHARKHA V. TAKLI 

The Secretary of the Tamilnad Branch of the 
All India Spinners’ Association writes as follows: 

It is not necessary that the charkha alone 
should be used for spinning. Spinning on the 
takli is as much a training in non-violence. The 
takli alone is the handiest spinning implement 
that can be used on a mass scale at a short 
notice. The reasons are as follows : 

1. It will take a long time to provide all 
those who register themselves as satyagrahis with 
the charkha and its component accessories. With 
.the best of efforts it will take at least six 

months to complete the equipment. But thou- 
sands of taklis can be provided at a very short 
notice, 

2. The charkha can be used only in the house 
of the spinner and does not have much of 
demonstration value. But the takli can be used 
anywhere and at any time. Takli spinning does 
not interfere with our other work. One can be 
talking or walking as he or she is spinning. It 
is easily carried about, being small enough to go 
into a pocket, and when others see us going 
about spinning they too fall under the spell and 
a spinning atmosphere is created. 

3. It will be difficult for everybody who 
takes to the satyagraha pledge to learn quickly 
the antecedent processes of spinning such as gin- 
ning and carding. They will have to depend on 

• slivers made ready for them. It will not be 
‘ possible to provide everybody with slivers if 
everyone takes to charkha-sp inning. Takli-spin- 
‘ ning will require less sliver supply. Moreover, 
whatever Dev kapaS is available, can be easily 
ginned by hand and made into slivers. 



'^T ^ -v 




^5 


'Harija: 


139 


4. The cheapest charkha costs Rs, 2, It may 
TiGt be within the reach of all tc buy one. 
But the takli costs only two annas* cne need 
not incur even this much of expense. A takli 
can be improvised with a bamboo stick and a 
stone weight, 

5. Spinning on the charkha requires more 
training than the takli. The charkha often goes 
out of order and requires adjustment. The takli 
rarely goes out of order. 

A FEAST FOR THE EYES 

Shri Dilkhush Diwanji is an M* A. of the 
Bombay University, and might have been a pro- 
fessor in a college if he had chosen an academic 
career. But he elected to settle down in a village 
and share the hard lot of the villager. He chose 
Karadi, the little village where Gandhiji was 
arrested at the end of the Dandi March, for his 
field of activities and is conducting a khadi 
depot there which I purposely visited on my 
way back from Surat. The work thait he is 
carrying on, the atmosphere he has created, the 
smiling faces not only of the children who 
surround him but also of the old women who 
flock to the depot — all this was a feast for 
the eyes. 

For he has made himself one of them. He 
lives in a place humbler than theirs, he eats 
what they eat, cooking for himself, and lives and 
dresses himself like them. 

A group of old women — some of, them very 
old who could hardly see my face clearly — had 
gathered in the depot from a neighbouring village. 
Their ages muse be anything between, 50 and 80. 
Each one had a little bundle of yarn with her 
which she had come to deliver at the depot. 
Each had a little pass-book in which every little 
detail of her yarn was shown — the weight, the 
count, the quality, the wage, etc., wastage, the 
yarn deducted for her own khadi, and the date. 
Everyone referred to Shri Diwanji as son”, 
and the one with whom we began to talk 
addressed me also as “son”. This “son” 
Diwanji had descended as a “god” among them; 
they had no work, they had been put on the 
shelves, new they had work and they earned 
two to three annas per day. They were proud 
of their income wherewith they could make 
pmall purchases, including tea, which they 
confessed was bad but which nevertheless 
had become a need k , - 

Everything in the depot was spick and span — 
the books, the boxes containing yarn according 
to their quality, and the khadi, the sacks of 
cleaned and uncleaned cotton, and the stocks of 
yarn. There was a method and orderliness about 
everything. When the work was started in 1936 
there were only 12 wheels, and the wages given 
amounted Rs. 277-3-0.' In ;1937 there were 42 
wheels, and the work has since increased by 
leaps and bounds., The .following figures are 
eloquent of the progress : , . * . 


19.S7 
Vvhseis 42 


195S 1939 

190 o99 


ms. srs. ms. srs. 
Yarn 8 3 28 4 


me. srs. 
115 30 


Wages Rs. 1,159-10-0 Rs. 2,033 Rs, 10,593-4-0 
Khadi 434 yards 2836 yards 10,198 yards 
Khadi / Local Rs. 116-5-0 Rs. 629-15-0 Rs. 2604-15-0 
Sales I Outside 157-4-0 Rs. 622-13-0 Rs. 3015-1-0 
These are the details of the work done during 1939: 
Yarn spun, 115 mds. 30 srs. 

Slivers , 113 5 , S 

Khadi 10198 Yds. 

Worth 5496 Rs. 

Khadi f Spinners etc. ■ Rs. 1456-8-0 
Sold 4 Other customers Rs. 1148-7-0 
to I Outside customers Rs. 3016-1-0 
Spinning wheels sold 334 
Other articles sold Rs. 332-8-0 


Wages distributed in 1939 
117 Cotton cleaners 
4 Ginners 
22 Carders 
699 Spinners 
8 Weavers 
Others 


Rs. 49-14-6 
Rs. 17-11-0 
Rs. 1074-12-9 
Rs. 7156 — 6-9 
Rs. 1836—1-6 
Rs, 258—5-3 


7 Workers in charge of Depot Rs. 654 — 0-0 
The boys in the Local Board school at Matwad 
have their spinning hour with Shri Diwanji. 
There is half an hour’s silent spinning and half 
an hour’s talk on the topics of the day. They 
asked me intelligent questions. They are all free 
from drink and the “ petty vices “ of smoking, 
tea-drinking, etc. There is an intelligent appre- 
ciation among the village-folk of the work that 
is going on, and I should not be surprised if the 
boys who are coming under Shri Diwanji’s 
influence were’ to ’ develop into workers in 
the cause of the uplift of their community. 
Sevagram, 14-5-40 M. D. 


Handmade Paper 

We stock handmade paper in about 75 varieties 
made in 12 different producing centres in India — 
Ahmedabad, Aurangabad, Erandol, Hyderabad ( Dn. ), 
Jaipur, Kalpi, Koratla, Nepal, Outshahi, Sialkot, 
Sodepur and Wardha — from the thinnest tissue 
paper and air mail paper to the thickest paper, and 
in many different colours, to suit various tastes and 
requirements. It is sold in the form of whole sheets, 
letter paper, envelopes (over 50 varieties), blotting 
•paper, cards, account books, office files, tag labels, 
and pocket books. Samples are sent on receipt of two 
anna postal stamps. A saniple file (which is a 
miniature exhibition in itself ) is sent on receipt of 
Re- 1 ( per V, P. P. Rs. 1-3-0 ). It is up to 
patriotic persons to give ’ handmade paper a chance 
whenever they require any of the things mentioned 
above. ( 1 ) Harijan Office — Poona 4; ( 2 ) Harijan 
Office Branch — 81 Queen’s Road, 0pp. Marine Lines 
Station, Bombay 2. 

Hindus & Musalmans of India 
By Atulananda Chakraharti 
' Gandhiji has said of this book : ** If he has stated 
the truth and nothing but the truth, it is a reveal- 
ing booklet which all Hindus and Muslims may 
read with profit.” Price Rs. 2-8-0. Postage 5 As* 
extra. Available at' (1) Harijan office -'Poona 4, 
and (2*) Harijan office -81 Queen’s Road, opp. 
Marine Lines Station, Bombay 2. 




OUR DUTY 

{By M. K. Gandhi) 

In view of further ruthless aggression by Nazi 
Germany and the fact that Britain is hard pressed 
and going through deep waters today, does not non- 
violence demand that we should say to her that, 
while we do not resile in llie voiy least from our 
position nor withdraw an iota of our demand so far 
as her relationship with us and our future arc con- 
cerned, we do not desire to embarrass her in dire 
distress and will definitely, therefore, defer all thoughts 
and all talk of a civil disobedience movement for the 
time being ? Do not our minds rebel against the very 
idea of a domination such as Nazidom is avowedly stand- 
ing for today? Is not the whole future of a humane 
civilisation at slake ? It is true that our independence 
from an alien rule is also a matter of life and death to 
us. But when Britain is up against an aggressor 
who is definitely pursuing barbarous methods, should 
we not make a timely and human gesture which 
should in the end win the heart of our opponent? 
Even if such a gesture makes no impression on her 
and an honourable settlement is impossible, will it 
still not be the higher and ennobling thing for us 
to offer non-violent battle when she is not beset on 
all sides? Will it not require greater strength in 
us and therefore mean greater and more lasting 
benefit, and will it not be a glorious example for a 
warring world? Will it not also be a proof that 
non-violence is pre-eminently a weapon of the strong?” 

Perhaps this correctly represents the sentiment 
of several correspondents who have written to 
me since the Norwegian setback. It is evidence 
of the nobility of the hearts of these corres- 
pondents. But there is want of appreciation of 
the reality. These letters ignore British nature. 
British people stand in no need of sympathy 
from subject people. For they can command 
all they want from them. They are a brave 
and proud people. They are not going to be 
■dernoralised by even half a dozen such setbacks. 
They are well able to cope with any difficulty 
that may face them. India has no say whatso- 
ever in the manner in which she is to take 

her part in the war. She was dragged into 

the war by the mere wish of the British 

Cabinet. Her resources are being utilised at the 
will of the British Cabinet. India is a dependency, 
and Britain will drain the dependency dry as she 
has done in the past. What gesture has the 
Congress to make in these circumstances ? The 
greatest gesture in its power the Congress is 
already making. It creates no trouble in the 
country. It refrains in pursuance of its own 

policy. I have said and I repeat that I shall 
<io nothing wilfully to embarrass Britain. It will 
be contrary to ,my conception of Satyagraha. 


Beyond this it is not iu the power of the 
Congress to go. 

Indeed it is the duty of the Congress to 
proseciire its demand for independence and to 
continue the preparations for civil disobedience 
to the fullest extent it can. The nature of the 
preparations should be appreciated. To promote 
khadi and village industries, communal unity, 
removal of untouchability, prohibition, and to 
this end to enlist and train Congress members. 
Is this preparation to be suspended ? I dare say 
that, if the Congress truly becomes non-violent 
and in pursuance of the policy of non-violence 
it successfully carries out the constructive work 
I have mentioned, it will be able to have in- 
dependence without doubt. Then will be the 
time for India as an independent nation to decide 
what aid she should give to Britain and how. 

The Congress contribution to the cause of 
the Allies in so far as it may be good, and to 
the world peace, is its active pursuance of 
non-violence and truth and the prosecution of 
its goal of Complete Independence without 
abatement and without delay. 

Britain is really damaging her own cause by 
persistently refusing to examine the Congress 
position and recognise its justice and in raising 
false issues. The Constituent Assembly of the 
kind proposed by me provides for every diffi- 
culty except one, if it is a difficulty. It does 
not provide for British interference in the shap- 
ing of India’s destiny. If that is put forth as 
a difficulty, the Congress must wait til! it is 
acknowledged that it is noi:. only uo dlluculty 
and that self-determination is India’s indisput- 
able right. 

In this connection let me refer to the letters 
I have received accusing me of unwillingness to 
declare civil disobedience under some pretext 
or other. These friends must know that I am 
more concerned than they in the successful 
demonstration of the weapon of non-violence. I 
am not giving myself a minute’s rest from the 
pursuit of the search. I am ceaselessly praying 
for light. But I cannot precipitate civil dis- 
obedience because of outside pressure, even as 
I will not refrain because of such pressure. I 
know that this is the time of my greatest trial- 
I have overwhelming evidence to show that there 
is much violence in the hearts of many Congress- 
men and that there is much selfishness. If Con- 
gressmen were imbued with the true spirit of 
non-violence, we would have had independence 
in 1921 and our history would have been written 
differently. But I must not complain. I must 
work with the tools I have. Only let Congress- 
men know the cause of my seeming inaction. 
Sevagram, 20-5-40 


OLD ISSUES 

Issues of Vols. I to VI of 'Hariatt * can be had from 
us for 3 As. per copy (including postage). Issues of 
Vol- 8 will be had at the published price plus 
postage. Manager 




141 


'li'AY 25, 1940 ] 


HAxlIJAI'T 


GOD-3FESD 

A band of Muslim volumceeTS about 30 sttong, 
led by Abid All Saheb and AH Bahadur Khan 
Saheb, returning from the Azad Muslim Con- 
ference held at Delhi, called at Sevagram the 
other day They travelled all the way from 
Bombay to Delhi and back in a motor-bus halt- 
ing at important places to carry on Hindu- 
Muslim unity propaganda, and the account of 
their esperiences was quite thrilling and suScient 
to fill one with hope. The ideal way to do 
■this kind of propaganda is to perform such a 
tour on foot, but the way adopted by these 
Bombay friends was certainly a second-best, and 
perhaps the most expeditious and best for people 
who have not the time a journey on foot 

• demands. They held big mass meetings wherever 
•they halted, talked with people dispelling their 

• doubts and fears, and did some reconciliation 
work too. Thus at Jwalapur, they said, the 
relations between Hindus and Muslims were far 

•from good and there was even fear of a riot. 
After these friends went there and had a talk 
•with leaders of parties a reconciliation was 
brought about with the result that a meeting 
was held in the mosque and it was attended 
•by hundreds of Hindus. At some places there 
•were slight disturbances, but as the friends 
-were determined to do nothing by way of 
retaliation the disturbances were confined to 
one side only and were futile. The friends had 
•composed a song Zanda uncha rahe hamara 
specially for the tour which they sang wherever 
they went and marched in procession. It' was 
so simple and musical and so full of words 
of every day usuage among both Hindus and 
Muslims that it caught on, and lots of people 
took it down to commit to memory. 

It was plucky and resourceful to have planned 
this excursion. I dare say it was much less 
■ expensive than a train-journey and obviously 
most fruitful. For 27 to 30 people to travel 
miles on end in an ordinary Ford motor bus 
with all their belongings, at the height of the 
■summer, was no joke. But they bore all the 
•discomforts cheerfully and looked none the 
worse -for roughing it out. 

As they left Sevagram after a few minutes’ 
i:alk about their experiences with Gandhiji and 
Pandit Jawaharlal who was here that day, they 
asked for Gandhiji’s message. “My message has 
been already given, and I have none new to 
give you,” he said to them. “All I will say 
is that now that you have actively taken up 
this great mission, you will not cease from 
your effort until Hindu-Muslim unity is achiev- 
ed, I would ask you to forget that you have 
any quarrel with the Muslim League people. 
Your object differs ftom theirs, but they also 
are our brothers and you cannot convert them 
unless you treat them as such and refrain 
from all personal attacks. You have to carry 
•conviction to them, for unless you or we can 


win rhem over shere is v.o Kindu-M’jslim 
unhy, I ■wis’e ycj. god-spsK’. ” 

Se-^agra'", 21-5-40 M, iO. 

THIS PIOTUES AND TRAT 

“ Unliappily..., the system ci Government pursued... 
has been based on the policy of psrpefiating that 
very separation of the races and encouraging those 
very notions of conflicting nationalities which it 
ought to have been the first and chief care of 
Governni'int to cbsch and e:-:tiiignish. Trom the 
period of conquest to the pre-serr tlnrt, t'ne conduct 
of the Government has aggravated the evils, and the 
origin of the present extreme disorder may be found 
in the institutions by which the character of the 
colony was determined... The Imperial Government... 
has shaped its policy so as to aggravate the disorder. 
In some instances it has actually conceded the 
mischievous ^etensiom of tiationality in order to 
evade popular claim. The alternate concessions to 
the contending races have only irritated both, and 
impaired the authority of the Government. ” ( Italics 
mine ) 

This is not an indictment of the separate 
electorates or of the ‘ Divide and Rule ’ policy 
of the British Indian Government but only 
extracts from Lord Durham’s Report on Canada. 
Communal cleavages are today being aggravated 
and exploited by Britain to keep India out of 
her own. All this is a replica of what happen- 
ed in Canada. A cursory review of the story 
of Canada and the striking parallels to our own 
case with which it is replete, therefore, would 
not be uncalled for at this juncture. 

Divide and Rule Policy in Canada 

The first settlement of the Canadas was made 
in the proclamation of 1763, soon after their 
acquisition from the French King by the Treaty 
of Paris. Close upon its heels followed those 
discontents which resulted in the Independence 
of the States of America. To prevent the fur- 
ther dismemberment of the Empire henceforth 
became the primary object of British statesmen, 
and “an especial anxiety was exhibited to adopt 
every expedient which appeared calculated to 
prevent the remaining North American colonies 
from following the example of successful revolt.” 
For this purpose the distinct national character 
of the French inhabitants of Canada, and their 
ancient hostility to the people of New England, 
presented the easiest and most obvious line of 
demarkation. “To isolate the inhabitants of the 
British from those of the revolted colonies, became 
the policy of the Government, and the nationality 
of the French Canadian was therefore cultivated, 
as a means of perpetual and entire separation 
from their neighbours” It also became the “con- 
sidered policy” of the British Government “ to 
govern its colonies by means of division, and to 
break them down as much as possible into petty 
isolated communities, incapable of combination, 
and possessing no sufficient strength for individual 
resistance to the Empire.” The language question 
was not left unexploited. Further to separate the 



HAELiAN 


14i 


French of Canada from the British emi^?rants a 
plan vv’as adopted '‘to conciliate the former by the' 
retention of their languages, laws and religions 
institutions.’* In Prince Edward’s Island a condi- 
tion was annexed to the grants of land which 
may fitly be described as a Canadian prototype, 
of the Punjab Land Alienation Act, It stipulated 
that the , Island was to be settled by ‘ foreign 
Protestants “ as if they were to be foregin in 
order to s eparate them from the people of New 
England, and Protestants in order to keep them 
apart from the Canadian and Acadian Catholics.’' 

The Indian reader will not fail to trace in 
this picture the familiar lineaments of the present 
day ' Divide and Rule ’ policy that is being 
pursued in India, In fact almost every one of 
the divisive expedients which finds its apologists 
among the high priests of the British ruling 
class today will be found’ stripped of its sancti- 
monious mask ^ and exposed in its nakedness in’ 
Lord Durham’s Report.' 

Canada’s Reply 

Nor were the results dissimilar from ours. On, 
his arrival in Canada Lord Durham found himself 
confronted by “jealousy between two races, so long 
habituated to regard each other with hereditary 
enmity, and so diflFereing in habits, in language’ 
and in laws. ” “I expected to find a conflict between 
a Government and a people, but I found two 
nations warring in the bosom of a single state.... 
a struggle not of principles, but of races.” 
Previous to this, in 1833, the Lower Canada 
Assembly had put forward the suggestion of a 
“Convention” for the redress of their grievances, 
the request being repeated in the petition which 
was sent by the Assembly to the King soon 
afterwards. It was to the effect that “ dele- 
gates freely and indiscriminately chosen by all 
classes of the community so as to be in harmony 
with the interests of the province should 
recommend the proper inodifications in govern- 
ment.” “ A general Assembly of this kind,” it’’ 
was said, “ would prove to be a faithful inter- 
preter of all the interests of the colony taken 
collectively.’ ( Kennedy : Statutes, Treaties and' 
Documents of the Canadian Constitution, 2nd Edi- 
tion, p. 264) The reply of the Secretary of 
State for the Colonial Department in answer to 
this petition might as well have dropped from 
Sir Samuel Hoare’s or Lord Zetland’s lips during' 
a debate on the Indian demand for a Constitu- 
ent Assembly. “The object of ,the address,” 
it ran, “ is to pray his Majesty to sanction a 
National Convention of the people of Canada, 
for the purpose pf superseding the legislative 
authorities. ..His Majesty can never be advised to' 
assent, as deeming it inconsistent with the very 
existence of monarchical institutions.” Nor did 
Canadian insistence on “conventions of the people” 
in the Ninety two Resolutions of 1834 gain much 
support with the British Cabinet. In desparation! 

Assembly had recourse to t!he only sanctSjon 
known to antf 'r^cpgnisejd, in the l^st resort, by 
’ constitutional .practice, viz. './threat of 


[ May 25, 1940 

Durham's Panacea 
. It was to propose a remedy for this state ct 
things that Lord Durham was sent to Canada. 
During the recent India Debate, it was ingeni- 
ously argued by some speakers, in their anxiety 
to combat the Indian demand for a Constituent 
Assembly, notably by Sir George Schuster, that 
in India the democratic system on which political 
life in the West is based cannot, owing to the 
communal situation that prevails here, “ really 
function as we know it ”, and that some distinc- 
tive type would, therefore, have to be evolved. 
There w'cre not wanting protagonists of Sir 
George even in Lord Durham s time who 
similarly argued that the representative system 
of Government was unsuited to the Canadian 
conditions, and that “ the principles, which are 
productive of harmony and good government in 
the mother country, are by no means applicable 
to a colonial dependency,” Lord Durham’s reply 
to these objectors would serve equally for out- 
present-day, Imperialists like Sir George too. 

“ It needs no change in the principles of Govern- 
ment, ” contended Durham, “ no invention of a new 
constitutional theory, to apply the remedy which 
would, iu my opinion, completely remove the exist- 
ing political disorders. It needs but to follow out 
consistently the principles of the Dritish constitutior 
and introduce into tho Government of those great 
colonies those wise provisions, by which alone Ihr 
working of tho representative system can in any 

country be rendered harmonious and efficient I 

know not how it is possible to secure that harmony 
in any other way, than by administering the Govern- 
ment on those principles which have been founi.'! 
perfectly efficacious in Great Britain.” 

Imperialists Debunked 

Equally withering was his reply to upholders 
of the ‘ trusteeship ’ doctrine who maintained 
that Providence had made them responsible for 
the good, government of Canada for all time: 

‘'The .colonists may not always know what laws 
are , best for them, or wliich of their countrymen arc 
the , fittest for conducting their affairs; but, at least, 
they have a greater interest in coming to a right 
judgment on these points, and will take greater 
pains to do so than those whose welfare is very 
remotely and slightly affected by the good or bad 
legislation of these portions of the Empire. If the 
colonists make bad laws, and select improper persons 
to conduct their ajtTairs, they will generally be the 
only, the greatest, sufferers; and, like the people of 
other countries, they must bear the ills wffiicl: 
they bring on themselves until they choose to applv 
the remedy. But it surely cannot be the duty oi 
the interest of Great Britain to keep a most expen- 
sive military possession of these colonies in order 
that a Governor or a Secretary of State may be 
SLble to confer colonial appointments on one rather 
than another set of persons in the colonies. For 
this IS really 'the only question at issue.” 

’ Lastly, there was, ,.the group of habitual pessi- 
mists, who condemned all change in advance on. 
the Aground of past failures and used it as a.. 



oiea for the maintenar.ee of si::tus quo which 
provided a happy hunting ground to self-centred* 
wooden- minded imperialists. “ We may derive 
some confidence from the recollection, ’ Lord 
Durham sardonically told them* that very simple 
. remedies yet remain to be resorted to for the 
.first time.’' 

Therapeutic FunedoEs of Freedom 

Instead of using the mischievous pre’centiens 
of nationality” to "‘evade the popular ciaim”, 
as the British Government had done hitherto 
and has been doing since in India and elsewhere, 
he followed the only honourable and straight- 
forward course by prescribing what Professor 
Chestor Martin of Toronto University has des- 
cribed as ‘ the therapeutic function of freedom to 
engender goodwill and co-operation in this wicked 
world.” “ V/hen I look on the various and deep- 
rooted cause of mischief which the past inquiry 
has pointed out as existing in every institution, in 
the constitutions and in every composition of 
society throughout the greater part of these 
Provinces,” he observed, “I almost shrink from 
the- apparent presumption of grappling with these 
difficulties. Nor shall I attempt to do so in detail, 
I rely on the efficacy of reform in the' constitutional 
system ' by ivliich these colonies are governed for 
the removal of every abuse in their administration 
which defective institutions have engendered. ” (Italics 
mine ) History has fully vindicated Lord Durham’s 
judgment, and the policy which he recommend- 
ed has since come to be acknowledged as the 
high-water-mark of Btitish statefsmanship and 
' political wisdom. ' 

The Rockbottom Truth 

The acceptance of Lord Durham’s recommenda- 
tions by the British Government was due not 
to an overflow of altruism, but to the rise and 
growth of the United States of America as a 
powerful independent nsftion to which Lord 
Durham drew pointed attention of the Home 
Government : , 

” I am, in trath, so far from believing that the 
increased power and weight that would be given to 
these colonies by union would .endanger their connec- 
tion with the Empire that I look to it as the only 
means of fostering such a national feeling through- 
out them as would effectively counterbalance what- 
ever tendencies may now exist towards separation... 


alist hold. She will sing ir. 
ent tune when the logic cl 
her vision and chastened her 
Sevagram, 14-5-40 


aLcgether di&c- 
o'rer.ts purified 

■j nder;s:arid*ng. 


G^mmeudahie 

Shri Pragjf Desai has sent us a brief report 
of good work done by the people of icebapur, 
a little villrge in Surat district, for distressed 
Ifiiarljans, In Lfiarch last year a die broke cut 
in Ifiarijans’ ’ quarters which coDsisred mostly of 
grass huts built side hy side, and before any 
effective help could be given they were all 
reduced to ashes along with every one of the 
Harijans’ humble belongings, their little stores of 
grain and so on, and they simply had to escape 
with their lives. Fourteen families were thus 
rendered homeless and helpless. Shri Pragji 
Desai, whose village is near by, ran to the spot 
held a meeting of the village folk, and asked 
them to start collections in order to rebuild the 
Harijans’ huts. The people responded readily and 
collected on the spot nearly Rs. 150. They had 
already given to the Harijans help in the shape 
of food and clothes, but this little fund became 
a nucleus for a fund to be collected by a com- 
mitte composed of the Patel and others with Shri 
Pragji Desai as Chairman, who now went to the 
neighbouring places and to Bombay to make more 
collections. The Mayavumshi Harijans of Bombay 
took up the work in right earnest and collected 
‘ something like Rs. 500. Other donations came . in 
from Hindus, Muslims and Parsis, with the result 
that dver Rs. 2;000 were collected ( including the 
gift of timber, etc. ) apd the Harijans of Iccha- 
pur are again housed in their own dwellings. 
All this was the result of a voluntary effort . 
The villagers did not . approach the Harijan 
Sevak Sangh nor did they approach any out- 
siders until they had contributed their mites, 
and that is why within a short time they were 
able to restore their homes to the homeless. 

Icchapur’s example is really commendable. Let 
the people of Ichhapur go a step further now 
and abolish untouchability by asking the .Harijans 
to come and live along with the rest of the 
inhabitants rather than be confined to their 
“ untouchable ” quarters. Without that thing 
being done there cannot be true reparation. 

Sevagram, 21-5-40 M. D. 


The influence of the United States surrounds him 
( the colonist of Great Britain ) on every side and 
is for ever present.... If we v/ish to prevent the 
extension of this influence, it can only be done by 
raising up for the North American colonist .some 
nationality of his own; and by giving their inhabi- 
tants a country which they will be unwilling to see 
absorbed into one more powerful.” 

The argument applies mutatis mutandis to the 
Indian .demand for Independence. But today, 
■instead of regarding our communal troubles as her 
concern, Britain hurls them in our face as a 
challenge, and magnifies them .before the world 
as an excuse for the continuance of her Imperi- 


Home and Village Doctor 

By Sattsh Chandra Dasgupta 
1384 pages.. 18 chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages* 
219 illustrations. Price Rs. S cloth-bound; By V. P, 
P. Rs^ 6. -Rs, -6 leather-bound; ByV- P. P. .Rs. 7. 
Published by Khadi Pratisthan, 15 College Square. 
Calcutta. Available at ( 1 ) Harijan office — Poona 4; 
( 2 ) . Harijan office. — 81 Queen’s Road, opp. Marine 
Lines . Station, Bombay 2. , : I 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S, Radhakrishnan. (New Edition) Rs. 5-10-0. 
Postage 7 As. Available at Harijan pfficdrPoon^ 4. 
and 67 & 81 Queen's Road, Bombay 2. 



144 


HABIJAN 


I May 25, 1940 



Hisn-Resistancs 

I read the following in the daily press; 

”A petition signed by a number of Muslims has 
been sent to the Corporation authorities that® if ‘■heir 
previous representations for the removal of Gandhiji s 
portrait from all Corporation schools for Muslim boys 
and girls is not acceded to, the institutions will be 
boycotted. They contend that the display of the 
portrait is a form of hero worship, v;hich is anti- 
Islamic. ” 

Assuming the truth of the statement, I would 
strongly advise compliance with the Muslim 
demand. Nothing is to be gained by the Congress 
party resisting the demand. At the same time 
I would suggest to the leaders of the agitation 
that it is supported by wrong argument. For 
they have surely their own heroes. The proper 
and conclusive argument is that I am no longer 
their hero. Heroes change with the times. It is 
well for public bodies to accommodate them- 
selves to such changes. 

Five Questions 

1. Can satyagrahis ( i. e, those who have signed 
the satyagraha pledge) offer defence when they are 
arrested ? 

2. May a satyagrahi make an effort to get better 
class treatment, i. e. * A ’ or ‘ B ’ ? 

3. Ought a satyagrahi in jail to acquiesce in the 
conditions imposed upon him, or should he endeavour 
to secure what he regards more humane and satis^ 
factory treatment? 

4. What is the minimum time for which a satya- 
grahi ought to spin or what is the minimum quantity 
of yarn he should produce? 

5. Can a man sign the satyagraha pledge imme- 
diately you declare civil disobedience and court arrest, 
or is there any definite period for which he should 
have remained a satyagrahi to be eligible to take 
part in the civil disobedience campaign ? 

Answers : 

1. There is no objection to offering defence, 
and in certain cases it would be a duty to do 
so as, say, in the Ajmer case. 

2. In my opinion he should not make any 
attempt to alter the class. Personally I am 
against any classification. 

3. He is entitled to make every legitimate 
effort for change to human conditions. 

4. I think one hour per day should be the 
minimum and 300 rounds per hour is a reasonable 
speed. Men engaged in public work may spin less. 

5. A man who intentionally refrains from 
signing a pledge in order to avoid fulfilment of 
conditions is a cheat and unworthy of being a 
satyagrahi. But I can conceive an honest man 
just signing the pledge and straightaway going 
to jail. Even at the risk of losing prospective 
pledge-takers and those who have taken the 
pledge, I would say that there is no immediate 
prospect of my giving the call. 

Sevagram, 20-5-40 


Andrews’ Siafluence 

Mr, A. G. Fraser of Elgin, Scotland, sends me 
the following touching letter about Deenabandhu; 

I write to you because of the great joy and 
inspiration you were to him who has just left uSj. 
Charlie Andrews, and because you, perhaps more 
than any other, will feel his loss. He has had a 

great and deeply joyful life, and amongst all the 
many things which made it rich, your friendship 
was one of the foremost. For your pleasure in him 
I would like to tell you one story of him. 

The noblest of British Governors that I have 
kuowu, Sir Guiueu Gaggisberg, whu iileraliy gave 
his life for Africans, was anxious to know Charlie 
and he asked me to arrange a meeting, if possible 
for lunch in his club, the Army and Navy club in 
Pall Mall. It is one of the most rigid clubs in 
London in its standard of dress, so I told Gaggis- 
berg that Charlie would not be dressed for clubland. 
He did not care about that, so the lunch was 

arranged. On the day, I was seated with Sir Gor- 
den when the porter came and said : * Sir, 

there is a man at the door who says be has an 
appointment with you, but I did not like to let 
him in till you had seen him.’ I said to Gaggis- 
berg, * That’s Charlie,* and it was. He was worse 

dressed than I have ever known him to be in 

Europe. But Gaggisberg was too delighted to meet 
him to think of that. We had lunch at a small 
central table and admirals, generals, governors came 
up to greet Gaggisberg who was newly back in 
England, He introduced them all to Charlie. Thus 
wc retired to an alcove for a quiet talk, and 

Charlie’s visit to British Guiana was fixed up. 

Thus Charlie had to go and Gaggisberg saw him 
down to the street and finding a taxi himself for 
him put him into it. As the taxi left he followed 
it with his eyes, his head bent. It disappeared 
round a corner and he stood very still. Then he 


turned to me and said, ‘ I feel 

as though I 

had 

been honoured to give lunch to 

my Lord.* It 

was 

the meeting of two great men, 

and they met 

for 

the sake of Indian labourers in 

Guiana. 


You will greatly feel his loss 

at this time, 

more 

than even we who loved him here can know. 

. But 

we do pray that you and India 

through you 

may 

he blessed, and you will be blessed.*’ 


Sevagram, 7-5-40 

M. K. 

G. 

CONTENTS 

i Page 

Question Box 

M. K. Gandhi 

137 

Khadi Work in Tamil 



Nad-11 

C. S. 

138 

Charkha V. Takli ... C 

;. A. Aiyamuthu 

138 

A Feast for the Eyes ... 

M. D. 

139 

Our Duty 

M. K. Gandhi 

140 

God-Speed 

M. D. 

141 

This Picture and That ... 

Pyarelal 

141 

Note : 



Commendable 

M. D. 

143 

Non-resistance 

M. K. G. 

144 

Five Questions 

M. K. G. 

144 

Andrews’ Influence 

M. K. G. 

144 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press. 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 
ftvbfonption Ratoi — Inljlnd : One year, Re. 4, Bix monthe, Re. 2-8, FOREIGN : One year, Re. 5-8 or, 8 eh. or 2 I. 



iK©i Yet 


Reg. iNo. tS 



saiiof : MAHADEV DESA! 


VoL. Vin. No. 16 ] POONA — SATURDAY, JUNE 1. 1940 i ONE ANNA 


QUESTION BOX 

C By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Whole of Spare Time 

Q, You say an active satyagrahi should 
devote the whole of his spare time to con- 
structive work. What is your conception of 
spare time? 

A. Every minute that is not required for my 
necessary private work would be spare time. 
A merchant whose whole time is occupied in 
making money — nothing inherently wrong in it, 
if it is honestly made and equally honestly 
spent — naturally has no spare time. He cannot 
become an active satyagrahi. An active satya- 
grahi will give the least time to his private 
work. The balance is his spare time. For an 
active satyagrahi time is more than money. He 
should therefore be able to give a good account 
of every minute. In these matters the ultimate 
judge is oneself. 

How to Use Vacation 

Q, What can students do during vacation ? 
They do not want to study and would get 
tired of constant spinning. 

A. If they get tired of spinning, it shows 
that they have not understood its life-giving 
property ’and its intrinsic facination. What is 
the difficulty in understanding that every yard 
spun adds to the national wealth ? A yard of 
yarn is not much, but as it is the easiest form 
of labour it can be easily multiplied. Thus the 
potential value of spinning is very great. Students 
are expected to understand the mechanism of the 
charkha and keep it in good order. Those who 
do so, will find a peculiar facination in spinning. 
I refuse, therefore, to suggest any other occupa- 
tion. But of course spinning may give place to 
more pressing work — I mean more pressing in 
point of time. Their help may be required in 
putting the neighbouring villages in a good 
sanitary condition and in attending to the sick 
or in educating Harijan children, etc. 

Honest Doubt 

Q. Some of us belong to that section of 
Congress workers who are not firmly of the 
opinion that the charkha is no good and has to 
be discarded along with your leadership at the 
earliest possible date. Nor do we belong to 
that happy band of your followers who have 
an unshakable faith in the political, economi- 
cal and spiritual mission of the charkha. We 
believe in khadi — at any rate in the present 
circumstances of our country. But we cannot 


truthfully say tha: we understand the necessity 
for ourselves spinning. We are city people, and 
there is very little scope for the charkha here 
as a bread- giver. However, we are anxious to 
be enrolled as satyagrahis. We can promise that 
we shall- conscientiously spin as required by you, 
but we are not in a position to promise that 
faith in it which you desire. It is possible that 
as we ply the charkha the faith may come. 
But, for the present, it is as we have stated. 
Can we honestly sign the satyagraha pledge ? 

A. Of course you can be enrolled. All those 
who spin do not do so because of the bread- 
giving property of the wheel. Many spin for 
sacrifice, to set a good example, and to create 
the spinning atmosphere. 

Test for All Members 

Q. I am one of the secretaries of a Congress 
committee, I have a feeling that some of those 
who have signed the pledge are not carrying 
it out — particularly the clause about spinning. 
Can we put to them the question, whether 
they spin or not ? And, if we feel that their 
answers are evasive or untrue, is it part of our 
duty to hold an enquiry into the matter? Some 
of us feel that we must accept their word, and 
not be too searching, 

A. As secretaries it is your duty to devise 
rules so that there would be an automatic test 
for all members, not merely for doubtful ones, 
spinning or not spinning. One test will be that 
the members deliver to a depot the yarn they 
spin. Every member is expected to keep a 
daily record of his output. But a nagging 
inquiry should undoubtedly be avoided. 

Recruitment v. Constructive Work 

Q, Which would you prefer — whether we 
should devote all our time to recruiting satya- 
grahis or set about organising consructive work 
with the satyagrahis that we already have on hand? 

A. Of course you will organise constructive 
work with those you have. This will by itself 
attract recruits. 

Men and Women 

Q, I should like to know whether you would 
approve of men and women satyagrahis mixing 
promiscuously and working together, or whether 
they should be organised into separate units 
with a clear delimitation of the field of each. 
My experience is that the former must lead, as 
it has led, to a lot of indiscipline and corrup- 
tion, If you agree with me, what rules would 
you suggest to combat the potential evil? 



146 


HARIJAN [ JUNE 1, 1940 


A. I should like to have separate units. 
Women have more than enough work amongst 
women. Our womenfolk are terribly neglected, 
and hundreds of intelligent women workers of 
sterling honesty are required to work among them. 
On principle too I believe in the two sexes 
functioning separately. But I would lay down 
no hard and fast rules. Good sense must govern 
zhe relations between the two. There should be 
no barrier erected between the two. Their 
mutual behaviour should be natural and spon- 
taneous, 

Khadi and Advertisement 

Q. Do you approve of the policy that is 
being followed by the Charkha Sangh in some 
places, of pushing the sale of khadi by the use, 
for instance, of loud speakers, popular gramophone 
records and the like? Don’t you think that 
advertising apart from supplying the necessary 
information about the marketing of khadi is 
undignified and incompatible with the khadi 
spirit ? 

A. I see nothing wrong or undignified in 
making use of loud speakers, etc., to popularise 
khadi. Through these means too one does no 
more than give the prices and other information 
about khadi. It will be certainly undignified 
and worse if false information is given whether 
with or without the use of loud speakers and 
the like. 

Will to Live 

Q. It has been said that the “ will to live” 
is irrational; being born of a deluded attachment 
to life. Why is then suicide a sin ? 

A. The will to live is not irrational. It is 
also natural. Attachment to life is not a delu- 
sion, it is very real. Above all, life has a pur- 
pose. To seek to defeat that purpose is a sin. 
Therefore suicide is very rightly held to be a sin. 

Sevagram, 28-5-40 

THREE WITNESSES 

Apropos of the suggestion that the Congress 
should suspend its struggle and help Britain in 
her extremity, a European friend exclaimed ; 

“ How will suspension help the Allies ? The 
Congress occupies its present position owing to the 
prestige which her moral struggle gives her. To 
suspend the struggle is to destroy her status. 
Nazism will not be overthrown on the battle-field. 
It is the product of the last war. Today the 
Germans believe with the rest that the only effec- 
tive sanction for the establishment of right in the 
present-day world is force. Their conviction is based 
on their past experience. The only effective check 
against Nazism is the successful application of the 
Congress principle of satyagraha for gaining Indian 
independence and liquidating a centuries old dispute 
with Britain. The Congress is unknowingly helping 
the Allied cause and the German people by un- 
compromisingly adhering to her full demand in terms 
of satyagraha and refusing to take advantage of 
Eritain’s distress.” 


It is interesting to note how even a military 
authority like Captain Liddell Hart arrives at a 
similar conclusion by arguing from altogether 
different premises. It was some time back that 
he gave the warning that nothing could be more 
fatal to the Allied cause than to pin their faith 
on a smashing victory on the battle-field. Here 
is what he has recently written in The Sunday 
Dispatch, After discussing the possibility of a 
huge German offensive and extensive air raids 
by the Allies into the heart of Germany, he 
observes : 

“Cannot we find a better way, a way of ‘curing 
Hitlerism’ instead of merely crushing it down — to 
spring up again after another period of enforced 
and embittered peace? 

A declaration that we were renouncing military 
assault as a means of curing aggression would 
be a far-sighted move, reinforcing our moral posi- 
tion, while forestalling the growth of disillusionment 
over our apparent inactivity. 

It might well be the first point in the develop- 
ment of a new technique for countering aggression, 
one suited to present-day conditions and our parti- 
cular situation. 

It should be reinforced by such a statement of 
our war aims brief but sufficiently explicit, as would 
make it clear that the German people, individually 
and collectively, have more to gain than to lose by 
a return to peaceful conditions on the basis of 
mutual agreement; and that their enjoyment of such 
a prospect is bound up with the recognition and 
restoration of the rights of other people. 

So long as the Allied statesmen use Ihe old 
military language about ‘victory’, so long will the 
German people naturally interpret the idea of peace 
in terms of Versailles,” 

It is the fashion these days to dub those 
who advocate this line of thinking as visionaries, 
while those who swear by the undiluted might 
of armaments and “ cannon fodder ” anyhow 
obtained are described as realists. To such the 
following from World Youth should act as an 
eye-opener : 

“ Those who call themselves realists too often 
distort the meaning of the terms. A realist is one 
who can accept a fact. And no fact has been more 
conclusively proved than that peace by conquest is 
no peace^ but war on a new front. Peace is bred 
when the strong surrenders to the weak the rights 
he could withhold. Peace is never achieved by 
victory over others, but only by victory over one’s 
self; by a proud and confident adherence to the 
principle of right, and of rights — the rights of others 
as precious as one’s own, " 

Sevagram 28-5-40 Pyarelal 

Hindus & Musalmans of India 

By Atulananda Chakrabarti 

Price Rs. 2-8-0. Postage 4 As. extra. 

I Follow the Mahatma 
By K. M. Munshi 

Rs. 2-8-0. Postage 4 As. 

Available at (l) Harijan office -Poona 4, and 
(2) Harijan office— 81 Queen’s Poadi opp> Marine 
Lines Station, Bombay 2. 



June 1, 1940 i 


147 


HAEIJA]Sr 


OCCASIONAL NOTES 

The Hoiflir of Peril 

The latest, and one may hope the last, phase 
cf the war is, to adopt Pandit Jawaharlal Nehru’s 
description, a Napoleonic phase. The use of the 
word by one who is a sworn enemy of Im- 
perialism no less than he is of Nazism is signi- 
ficant. Imperialism and all its ruinous history 
apart, there is no question in anybody’s mind 
that the arch-aggressor in the war is Hitler, 
and when one thinks of his sweeping and even 
pictorious aggression one automatically uses the 
phrase * Napoleonic That the hour of peril is 
near and the situation as grave as it can possi- 
bly be is apparent from the statements of British 
and French statesmen. What could be more 
significant than these ringing words of Mr, 
Atlee who appealed to his countrymen to sacrifice 
their all in order to express “ the will and 
determination of a free people”: 

“The Government is convinced that now is the 
time when we must mobilise to the full the whole 
resources of this country. We must throw all our 
weight into the struggle. Every private interest must 
give way to the urgent need of the community. We 
cannot know what the next few weeks or even days 
may bring forth, but whatever may come, we shall 
meet it as British people in the past have met 
dangers and overcome them. But it is necessary 
that the Government should be given complete control 
over persons and property, not just some persons or 
some particular class of community, but over all 
persons rich or poor, employer or worker, man or 
woman, or property... What is proposed is that there 
should be control over persons and over property. The 
Minister cf Labour will be given power to direct any 
person to perform any services required. That does 
not necessarily mean service in munitions or factories- 
It does not apply only to workmen. It applies to 
everybody. Everybody alike must be under this 
control. He will be able to prescribe the terms of 
remuneration, terms of labour, or hours of service. 
Remuneration will be on the basis of remuneration 
for the job. If an engineer is asked to do an 
engineer’s work, he gets an engineer’s pay. If some- 
one else is asked to do the job, he gets the pay 
of that job. If a professional man has to do profe- 
ssional work, he gets the professional pay; but if he 
is asked to do manual work, he gets the manual pay.’’ 

That is the least that those who have the 
honour to belong to a free nation should do in 
the hour of its peril. . 

India’s Part 

Hitler’s Nepoleonic exploits have stirred some 
of us to make statements which do credit to 
their generous impulses but not to their sense 
of reality. What can India in her crippled state 
of dependence do ? Have Indians “ the will and 
the determination of a free people”? Even one 
like Dr. R. P, Paranjpye has made this admis- 
sion : ” The policy of the Government has been 
to keep Indians absolutely dependent on Britain 
for their defence. This policy is now seen to 
have been absolutely short-sighted. Even now 


no attempt is being made to organise the man 
power and resources of India at least for local 
defence. With longer vision India would have 
been able to give material help to Britain in 
her hour of trial.” 

Moral Gesture Needed 

Pandit Jawaharlal put the moral issues quite 
clearly in his forceful statement made at the 
early stage of the present crisis. A little after 
this Mio Churchill referred to the British Empire 
and said there was no survival for the British 
Empire without victory. What is forgotten, one 
has painfully to point out, is that the very 
Empire to which its soldier-statesmen are sticking 
on, may be a terrible handicap in the desperate 
race for victory. Even if crippled India were to- 
be put upon her legs today, she could not as by 
a magic wand produce the material needed for a 
victorious violent war. But if she was put upon 
her legs and raised from the status of a depen- 
dency to the status of an independent ally, all 
Hitler’s excuse for wanton aggression would be 
gone. What is more, British statesmen would be 
only making good the democratic statements that 
they have made ■— all during the past six months. 
“Wc are fighting in defence o£ freedom/’ said 
Lord Halifax. “We are fighting for peace; we are 
meeting a challenge to our own security and that 
of others; we are defending the rights of all 
nations to live their own UvesS* (Italics mine) 
Mr. Anthony Eden declared about the same 
time that all war effort — be was talking of 
the Dominions — “was based, as I believe, on a 
positive faith, and that positive faith is Parlia- 
mentary Government by a free community.” 

( He forgot that “ war effort ” in India was 
impossible, as there is no Parliamentary Govern- 
ment and no free community.) “If we really 
mean to build a clean, ordered, secure world 
after this war,” said Sir Herbert Morrison, “ wc 
must be ready for sacrifices as individuals, as 
classes, as a nation.'^ And “all peoples have a 
right to live in security and independence,” 
declared Mr. Arthur Greenwood, 

But the fight is for victory. And as Guy 
Chapman, the compiler of that fine miscellany 
of the last World War has said in Vain Glory: 

“ The peculiarity of war lies in the fact that 
whole communities are directed to a single objective — 
victory^ and the reason they were induced to co- 
operate, the clash of philosophies and creeds, is for- 
gotten in the closer obsession of the desire to win. 
It is not belief in the cause, but the strength of 
the desire for victory which, as it waxes and wanes, 
is the basis of what is called morale.” 

Mr. Churchill’s words, Lord Gort’s words, 
and now Mr. Amery’s statement repeating Lord 
Zetland’s language, betray that “ obsession of 
the desire to win”, and forgetfulness of the 
very moral considerations that alone -can speed 
Britain to victory. It is a sad reflection to 
make, but none the less true. 

Sevagram, 27-5-40 Da 



148 


HAEIJAN 



1 June 1 

-rjatijan 

S940 1 


NOT YET 


(By M. K. Gandhi) 

The reader will find in another column Dr. 
Ram Manohar Lohia s plea for immediate civil 
disobedience. I endorse his prescription for ensur- 
ing world peace. For enforcing the acceptance 
of his prescription he would have immediate 
civil disobedience. Here I must join issue. If 
Dr. Lohia subscribes to my conception of the 
working of non-violence, he will at once admit 
that the present is no atmosphere for influenc- 
ing the Britisher in the right direction through 
civil disobedience. Dr. Lohia agrees that the 
British Government should not be embarrassed. 
I fear that any step towards direct action is 
bound to cause them embarrassment. If I start 
now, the whole purpose of civil disobedience 
will be defeated. 

I would unhesitatingly declare civil disobe- 
dience if the country was demonstrably non- 
violent and disciplined. But unfortunately we 
have many groups outside the Congress who 
believe in neither non-violence nor civil dis- 
obedience. In the Congress itself there are all 
shades of opinion about the efficacy of non- 
violence. Congressmen who believe in the appli- 
cation of non-violence for the defence of India 
can be counted on the finger-tips. Though we 
have made great strides towards non-violence, 
we have not arrived at a stage when we can 
hope to be unconquerable. Any false step at 
the present time may end in the loss of the 
great moral prestige the Congress has gained. We 
have sufficiently demonstrated that the Con- 
gress has done with imperialism, and that it will 
not be satisfied with anything less than the 
unfettered right of self-determination. 

If the British Government will not suo motu 
declare India as a free country having the right 
to determine her own status and constitution, I 
am of opinion that we should wait till the heat 
of the battle in the heart of the Allied coun- 
tries subsides and the future is clearer than it 
is. We do not seek our independence out of 
Britain's ruin. That is not the way of non- 
violence. 

But we shall have many opportunities of 
demonstrating our power if we really have it. 
We can make it felt at the time of peace 
which must come whichever party wins. 

Have we got the power? Is India at ease 
without having uptodate arms? Does not India 
feel helpless without the ability to defend her- 
self against aggression? Do even Congressmen 
feel secure? Or do they not feel that for some 
years to come at any rate India will have to 
be helped by Britain or some other power? If 


[ June 1, iS40 


such is our unfortunate plight, how can we 
hope to make an effective contribution towards 
an honourable peace after the war or universal 
disarmament ? We must first demonstrate the 
efficacy of non-violence of the strong in our 
own country before we can expect to influence 
the tremendously armed powers of the West. 

But many Congressmen are playing at non- 
violence. They think in terms of civil disobe- 
dience anyhow meaning the filling of jails. This 
is a childish interpretation of the great force 
that civil disobedience is. I must continue to 
repeat, even though it may cause nausea, that 
prison-going without the backing of honest con- 
structive effort and goodwill in the heart for 
the wrong-doer is violence and therefore forbidden 
in satyagraha. Force generated by non-violence 
is infinitely greater than the force of all the 
arms invented by man’s ingenuity. Non-violence, 
therefore, is the decisive factor in civil disobe- 
dience. At this the most critical moment in 
India's history, I will not play with the force 
whose hidden possibilities I have been humbly 
trying to explore now for nearly half a century. 
Fortunately in the last resort I have myself to 
fall back upon. I have been told that people 
cannot be non-violent overnight. I have never 
contended they can. But I have held that by 
proper training they can be, if they have the 
will. Active non-violence is necessary for those 
who will offer civil disobedience, but the will 
and proper training are enough for the people 
to co-operate with those who arc chosen for 
disobedience. The constructive work prescribed 
by the Congress is the proper training. Given 
the preparation, the Congress will make perhaps 
the most effective contribution toward ending 
the war in the right way. Disarmament of India 
though compulsory in origin, if it is voluntarily 
adopted by the nation as a virtue and if India 
makes a declaration that she will not defend 
herself with arms, can materially influence the 
European situation. Those, therefore, who wish 
to see India realise her destiny through non- 
violence should devote every ounce of their 
energy towards the fulfilment of the construc- 
tive programme in right earnest without any 
thought of civil disobedience. 

Sevagram, 28-5-40 

“Will Leave No Stone Unturned'’ 

Interviewed on Mr. Amcrys’ statement in the 
House of Commons, Gandhiji said: 

“While hourly butchery is going on in the 
West and peaceful homes are being destroyed, 
I have no heart to say anything publicly in 
regard to Mr. Amery’s statement. Suffice it to 
say that I will leave no stone unturned to 
bring about a peaceful and honourable settle- 
ment of the present deadlock.” 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radhakrishnan. (New Edition) Rs, 5-10-0. 
Postage 8 As. Available at Harijan office-Poona 4, 
and 67 & 81 Queen's Road, Bomtey 2. 



June 1 , 1940 ] 


HASIJAN 


149 


BIDAS 

C By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Five gentlemen from Hyderabad Deccan have 
sent me an offer to which there is a long 
preface containing all kinds of innuendoes against 
me. I need not burden these columns with their 
preface. If the adjectives used against me are 
deserved, they will stand whether I advertise 
them or not. If they are due to the ignorance 
of the authors, as I know they are, it is well 
for me not to notice them. Here is the offer : 

“Will Gandhiji agree that the whole Samajist 
movement which led to this and many other inci- 
dents should be thoroughly investigated by a Com- 
mission, whose head should be a Parsi or a Chris- 
tian, with an equal number of Hindu and Muslim 
members? We are even prepared if Gandhiji agrees 
to arbitrate himself, as we are confident that the 
evidence with us will prove the case. As a prelimi- 
nary, congenial atmosphere to conduct such an enquiry 
is all that is required. We, therefore, suggest 
that Gandhiji will not hesitate to demand that all 
•the cases pending in court in connection with the 
Bidar conflagration should be withdrawn. We do 
■not, of course, plead that cases of a serious nature, 
as that of murder or cases having no connection 
with the conflagration, should be included. 

Gandhiji is also of opinion that compensation should 
be given to those who have suffered. We fail to 
understand the logic behind it# If communal incidents 
are to be compensated, what would be the burden 
on the Exchequer ? Would the riots not be employed 
.as a weapon to bring financial failure upon the 
•Government? Is it a remedy or an encouragement? 
It is a novel demand indeed# We hope Gandhiji 
will accept our offer."’ 

I have no difficulty about accepting the offer 
unreservedly. If the writers succeed in persuad- 
ing the Government of H. E. H. likewise to 
.accept the offer, they will have established a 
precedent which may well be followed in all 
■such cases. Needless to say, if the court sug- 
rgested by my correspondents comes into being, 
the composition and terms of reference will 
have to be by agreement. 

I am asked- to demand the withdrawal of the 
cases- instituted against persons suspected of 
complicity. They were not instituted at my 
instance, and I presume they will not be with- 
drawn on my demand. But I should have no 
'.hesitation in approving of all withdrawals if 
the court of inquiry is appointed. I assure my 
'friends that I am interested in elucidation of 
truth, not in the punishment of the guilty. 

But I am sorry I cannot forego the sugges- 
tion for compensation. Compensation has been 
asked because it is alleged that the authorities 
failed to do their duty. The question of com- 
pensation has naturally to be referred to the 
proposed tribunal. My correspondents assure me 
of the sincerity of their proposal. I do not 
doubt it. I shall await the results of their efforts 
to have the offer accepted by the State. I wish 
them every success. Sevagram, 28-5-40 


CURSE OF UNTOUGHABILITY 

( By M. K, Gandhi ) 

Several correspondents protest against my 
referring to the arguments advanced in favour 
of partition. They say that Islam is not exclu- 
sive, and that it teaches universal brotherhood 
and toleration, I have never denied this claim. 
It was because of my knowledge of Islam that 
I felt grieved ever the arguments which go 
to prove the contrary. Almost every Muslim 
writing I take up nowadays contains disparage- 
ment of Hindus and Hinduism. It cannot be 
otherwise if the case for partition is to be 
proved. But my correspondents are angry when 
I point out the anomaly. They say I have 
hastily come to the conclusion from isolated 
writings of unimportant Muslims. Unfortunately, 
the arguments referred to by me have proceed- 
ed from important Muslims. 

But where the writers score over me is in 
regard to Hindu untouchability. They say in 
effect : “ You should be ashamed of bringing 
the charge of untouchability against the Muslim 
League. First cast out the beam from the Hindu 
eye before you attempt to deal with the mote 
in the Muslim eye. Has not the Hindu main- 
tained for a thousand years complete boycott of 
Muslims? He will not drink or cat with him. 
He will not intermarry. He will not even let 
his house to him. Can you conceive a more 
effective isolation of a whole community .than 
the Hindu has carried out? Will it not be a 
just nemesis if the Muslim now turns round 
and pays you in your own coin?” 

I have admitted as much. Whatever the 
Muslims do by way of retaliation will be richly 
deserved by Hindus. My question was and is, 
should they do so ? Does it behove a great 
political party to play upon religious prejudices ? 

Whatever the Muslim League does or does 
not do, it behoves thoughtful Hindus to take 
note of the deserved taunt and purge Hinduism 
of its exclusiveness. It will not be protected 
by artificial barriers which have no sanction in 
ancient Hinduism or reason. Well did Maulana 
Abul Kalam Azad say the other day how sick 
he was of hearing the cry at railway stations 
of Hindu and Muslim tea or water. I know 
this touch-me-not-ism is deep-rooted [in Hindu- 
ism as it is practised today. But there is no 
reason why it should be tolerated by Congress- 
men. If they will* be correct in their behaviour, 
they will pave the way for a radical trans- 
formation of Hindu society. The message of anti- 
untouchability does not end in merely touching 
the so-called untouchables. It has a much 
deeper meaning. 

Sevagram, 28-5-40 

OLD ISSUES 

Issues of Vols. I to VI of Harijan, with certain 
exceptions, can be had from us for 3 As. per copy 
(including postage). Issues of VoL VIII will be 
had at the published price plus postage. Manager 



350 


HARIJAN 


[ June 1, 1940' 


DEENABANDHU MEMORIAL 

Innumerable people all over the ■world, who 
have been plunged into sorrow by the recent 
death of Charles Frere Andrews, must have been 
feeling, in their grief, that it behoves his friends 
to carry on the work of service and reconcilia- 
tion in which he laboured so greatly. We would 
not willingly let die the memory of his life; we 
seek a way to perpetuate, in permanent and 
visible form, the spirit of that life, Andrews’ 
permanent Indian home, the place with which 
for over a quarter of a century he affectionately 
identified himself, was Santiniketan in the 
Birbhum district of Bengal. This Ashram was origi- 
nally founded by the late Maharshi Debendra- 
nath Tagore and supported by the ancestral 
funds. Under the leadership of his son, the Poet 
Rabindranath Tagore, the educational institutions 
at Santiniketan, with the centre of rural recon- 
struction close by at Sriniketan, have far out- 
grown the first conception, and become a world- 
frmous centre of international culture. To the 
welfare of these institutions, with their vision of 
universal brotherhood and their service of inter- 
national understanding and peace, Andrews, the 
Poet’s closest friend, gave his whole-hearted devo- 
tion. No private resources could be adequate 
for the support of such a centre of study and 
research, and many of the financial and other 
contributions which have been made to it from 
East and West alike have been owed to Andrews’ 
perseverance, hard work, and faith in its future. 
No more fitting place can be conceived for a 
memorial to him, nor one which he himself 
would have loved better, as we who came into 
the closest contact with him know. 

It is true that no memorial in stone and 
mortar can fully perpetuate Andrews’ memory. 
That can best be done by promoting true and 
lasting peace between India and Great Britain 
as independent nations and, through their joint 
efforts, universal peace. But this work of recon- 
ciliation must find concrete form in some centre 
from which his influence can radiate. There 
could be no better memorial to him than that 
the place where he found his spiritual home 
and greatest human inspiration, should be so 
endowed as to enable it to fulfil his high hopes 
for it unhampered by the constant financial 
anxiety with which it is now burdened. In his 
name and that of the Poet whose vision he so 
entirely shared, we appeal for this endowment 
to be generously given. 

There or two projected developments of the 
work of Santiniketan and Sriniketan which 
Charles Andrews himself . specially longed to see. 
The generous response of the public to our 
appeal for a memorial fund will enable them 
both to be carried out in addition to ensuring 
the permanence of the present established work. 
They are as follows: 

Andrews was most appropriately called ‘Deena- 
bandhu’, the friend of the poor, and the poor 
of the Birbhum district knew his friendship. The 


rural centre at Sriniketan- has a good doctor and 
dispensary but no hospital or operating theatre. 
We propose to build a small but properly 
equipped hospital to serve the villages round us, 
and to dig each year ‘Deenabandhu wells’ in 
the neediest areas. The Birbhum district is not 
served by the large rivers of Bengal, and lack 
of adequate water supply is the main cause of 
its grinding poverty. 

It was true insight which caused an Indian 
friend to interpret the initials C. F. A. as 
meaning ‘ Christ's Faithful Apostle”. Christ was 
the centre of his life. Devotion to Him was his 
outstanding characteristic and the source of his 
inspiration and strength. During the last months 
at Santiniketan he often expressed the hope 
that in this place, where the civilisations of the 
world can share with each other the bases of 
their strength, there might be established a Hall 
of Christian culture which could do for India’s 
thought through contact with the Western world 
what the ‘ Cheena-Bhawan ’ is expected to do 
for our relationship with China. The central 
purpose of the Hall would be the study of the 
teaching and character of Christ and its appli- 
cation to the solution of international problems. 
It would seek to attract scholars and students, 
especially of the East, to the task of interpret- 
ing in their own modes of -thought the spirit 
and mind of Christ. We envisage a modest 
building, suJEciently endowed to enable us to 
offer such scholars and students a home at a 
minimum cost, with simple living accommoda- 
tion, meeting hall, and the library whose nucleus- 
Charles Andrews had already begun to assemble. 
He himself made Santiniketan his headquarters' 
during a life of practical Christian service which 
reached out from here to the ends of the earth. 
We hope that such a Hall would enable others 
consecrated to the same kind of service tO' 
enjoy the same kind of home. 

The full carrying out of this programme will 
require a fund of at least Rs. 500,000 (£40,000). 
We ask Andrews’ friends and admirers all over 
the world to give liberal support to a scheme 
which will make possible, in his name, the 
preservation and enrichment of this work nearest 
to his own heart. 

Santiniketan and Sriniketan are in the charge 
of Dr. Rabindranath Tagore, Founder-President, 
Sir Nilratan Sarkar, Shri Hirendranath Datta, 
Shri L. K. Elmhirst, Dr. D. M. Bose, Treasurer, 
and Shri Rathindranath Tagore, General Secretary, 
as trustees. The trust deed is registered. Its 
corpus today is valued at Rs, 1,700,000. Its. 
annual expenditure is about Rs. 330,000. 

Abul Kalam Azad 
S. K. Datta 
M. K. Gandhi 
M. M. Malaviya 
Sarojini Naidu 
Jawaharlal Nehru 
V. S. Srinivasa Sastri 
Foss Westcott (Bishop) 



HASIJAN 


151 


June i, 1940 ] 


IMMEDIATE SATYAG-RAHA ” 

( By Ram Manohar Lohia ) 

The turn of events in Europe has made it 
dear that the Allies ate not as strong as was 
earlier imagined, and that Germany is not as 
weak as was made out at the beginning of the 
war. Germany and the Allies appear to be 
evenly matched, with the advantage for the 
present very much to Germany, The war, there- 
fore, cannot end soon, unless there is surprise 
.defeat and destruction of one or the other or 
unless a vital change of policies and aims is 
effected. 

The longer this war continues the greater is 
the possibility of its extension over other coun- 
tries of Europe and the rest of the world. 
The continuing and extension of the war can 
have only one consequence, destruction. This 
will involve not only deaths and epidemics 
and laying waste of cities and villages and 
objects of material comfort, but also the ruining 
of superior emotions of man. There will be 
increasing hunger for cruelty in all lands. 

The end of the war will probably see no 
better results than those in its duration. The 
victory of Germany will produce Nazi domina- 
tion over the larger part of Europe, for the 
Hitler principle of national security is only a 
respectable term for conquest and imperialist 
rule. But the victory of Germany’s enemies, as 
things stand today, is also not likely to lead to 
any better world. Germany’s enemies are them- 
selves imperialists and, as the war drags on, 
their commitments with other Powers will 
•almost surely be of an imperialist character. 
With the one aim of securing victory, an aim 
already officially accepted by their spokesmen, 
Britain and France may have to buy the friend- 
ship, at least the neutrality, of Japan or Italy 
or any other similar Power. Such a purchase 
can be made only at the expense of the free- 
dom of peoples in China or in Africa and else- 
where. 

It is undoubtedly true that, if the war con- 
tinues long, there will be enormous destruction 
and nobody can say what the outcome may be. 
The fighting Powers, in their victory as much 
as in their defeat, may become too weak to 
enforce their treaties and contracts. 

Against this background of a continuing and 
extending war, the Indian people has to decide 
its course of action. This action should be 
such as to secure the freedom of the country 
in the midst of a free and peaceful world 
where the enemies of freedom cannot prosper. 
The duration of the war and its destruction 
and cruelty should, so far as it lies wtihin the 
power of the Indian people, be lessened. 

The cry to arm the nation in co-operation 
with the British Government shows unawareness 
both of the international background and of the 
aim of the Indian people. Indo-British co-opera- 
tion towards arming India during the present 
war will, firstly, defer the day of freedom and, 


secondly, force the Indian people to take increas- 
ing part in destruction. As far as real national 
defence is concerned, the fate of people in 
Poland, Holland, Belgium and even France is 
there with their many decades of army tradi- 
tion and training and long years of military 
mechanisation. If India is to militarise herself 
for national defence, let this be clear that two 
decades at least of industrial and army pre- 
parations would be necessary, and any amount of 
arming during this war will leave us helpless, 
either voluntarily or therwise, in the hands of 
a bigger Power. 

We have to think of some other way con- 
sistent with our aim and the international back- 
ground. 

Those world forces which are anxious to re- 
move aggression and conquest and foreign rule 
must without delay collect on a platform which 
will give them strength and deprive their 
enemies of confidence. Such a platform can 
be short and simple. 

(1) All peoples will be free. The peoples 
newly freed will determine their constitution 
through a Constituent Assembly elected on the 
basis of adult franchise. 

(2) All races are equal, and there will be no 
race privileges in any part of the world. There 
will be no political bar to any man settling 
wherever he likes. 

(3) Credits and investments of the nationals 
and the government of one country in another 
will be scrapped or submitted for review to 
international tribunals. Such credits and invest- 
ments will then be owned not by individuals 
but by the nation. 

When these three principles will have been 
accepted by the peoples of the world a fourth 
will also come into operation. 

(4) There will be total disarmament. 

If the world that is not Hitler’s were really 
anxious to establish peace and freedom in the 
world, it would straightaway accept the first 
three principles of this platform and put them 
into immediate operation in the territories under 
its control. This would generate forces of incal- 
culable strength and an atmosphere of gripping 
goodwill. The world that is Hitler’s will either 
quail or bow. Even if that does not happen 
and the war continues, it will be short and 
decisive. 

The Allies arc showing no inclination to accept 
this platform of ideals, and the progress of war 
in Europe is accompanied by incredible destruc- 
tion and terror and feat of more. The battles 
in Holland, Belgium and France, destructive of 
human culture as they are, appear to be only 
the ‘beginnings. The worst may yet come. 

In waiting for the British Government to take 
the initiative or in allowing for a further long 
period of preparations, the Indian National 
Congress will be indirect party to the prolonga- 
tion of the war and its consequent miseries 
and dangers to the Indian people and the 



152 


HARIJAN 


[ Juke 1, 1940 


world- The freedom of India may not wait, not 
only in her own interest but in that of world 
peace, Satyagraha must now be declared. 


it and by their solid work impress the people- 
with their sincerity, 

Sevagram, 27-5-40 M. ]K„ G. 


If the Congress gives v/ithout delay the call 
of satyagraha to the Indian people for the two 
principles of the Constituent Assembly and of 
cancellation or impartial review of British credits 
and investments, it will do its duty by the 
Indian people and might generate just those 
world forces which will bring the war to a 
speedy end and assure reconstruction of the 
world on the basis of freedom and peace. 

Satj^agraba here and now is not an attempc to 
esploic Britain’s recent defeats. On the contrary 
these defeats have heightened India’s responsi- 
bility towards herself and also towards the 
Britain which is anxious to defeat all that 
Hitler stands for; and satyagraha will only be 
the expression of this heightened responsibility. 
Nevertheless, a period of two weeks or a 
month — as a further delay would not be in 
keeping with the rapid pace of change in the 
world — may be given to Britain to make up her 
mind about the platform of ideals which alone 
can defeat Hitler. Incidentally, the Congress 
will thus invite the United States. Russia and 
even Germany to revise their policies and aims. 
If Britain and others should still misunderstand 
the satyagraha of the Congress as an effort to 
make use of an adversary’s difficulty, history 
will, judge between them. 

Notes 

Kerala Congress 

Mian Iftikharuddin after his visit to Kerala 
reported to me that the differences between rival 
groups that were hampering real progress in 
Kerala had been settled. I was happy to have 
the report. But letters since received from 
Kerala go to show that the settlement was 
superficial I have before me a long resolution 
passed by the Kerala Provincial Congress Com- 
mittee which condemns almost all my acts and 
writings, ridicules the constructive programme, 
and yet to fulfil the letter of the Congress law 
half-heartedly endorses the Congress resolution. I 
suggest to the Kerala Congressmen who are res- 
ponsible for the resolution that this is neither good 
soldiership nor sportsmanship. The letter killeth, 
the spirit giveth life. Congressmen should under- 
stand the spirit of the resolution and carry it 
out. They will put life into me and themselves. 
If they cannot, it will be brave and honourable 
to resist in a dignified manner the present 
leadership and programme. The resolution be- 
fore me merely confounds the people to whom 
it is addressed. I hope that the leaders of the 
majority group in Kerala will realise their 
mistake and retrace their steps. But whether 
they do so or not, the minority who have 
faith in the programme should quietly pursue 


The BeiniefkeEiit Eee 

The following is taken from A. W. McCanns 
The Scmice of Eating : 

“ The Van Rensslaer apple orchard in Medina 

County, Ohio, produced on the average 500 bushels 

of apples annually until its owner trimmed and sprayed 
his trees and began to keep bees, whereupon the 
production of the same orchard, with not a single 
new tree, leaped from 500 bushels to 16,000 bushels- 
in a single season. 

The Repp farm in Gloucester County, New Jersey... 
is now producing 1,20,000 bushels of apples. Repp' 
himself declares that so indispensable are bees to 
the growing of fruit in this country that fruit 
growers can afford to pay local bee men at the rate 
of 5 dollars a colony merely to have the bees in 
the orchards during the time the trees are in bloom,, 
letting the owners of the bees take them away again 
at once 

Dr. Philips of the Bureau of Entomology, 
Washington, declares that fruit orchards cannot be 
planted properly on an extensive scale without main- 
taining in connection with them numerous colonies 
of honey bees and that. ..bee-keeping adds indirectly 
more to the resources of the country, by flower 
pollination than by the scale of honey and wax. 

The orange growers of Florida now know what 
the bee means to their crops. Sweet cherry orchards 
have jumped from a production of 13 tons to 39- 
tons merely through the introduction of a few 
colonies of bees to the acre. Even the tomato is 
pollinated by the bee. 

In Massachusetts alone there are now over 
2,000 colonies of bees pollinating cucumbers, squashes 
melons and pumpkins. The grape, strawberry, black- 
berry, raspberry, cranberry, blueberry, gooseberry, 
currant plum and pear need the bee. 

In New Zealand red clover could not be culti- 
vated until honey bees were imported from 
England. 

Greater demand for honey as a sugar food means 
more bees. More bees mean more food of every 
kind.” 

Love of honey is, therefore, one of the most 
productive of the forces now engaged in the 
growing and harvesting of crops; in the recons- 
truction of the world itself. 



V. G. 

D._ 

CONTENTS Page 

Question Box 

M. K. Gandhi 

145 

Three Witnesses 

Pyarelal 

146 

Occasional Notes 

M. D. 

147 

Not Yet 

M. K. Gandhi 

148 

Bidar 

M. K. Gandhi 

149 

Curse of Untouchability 

M. K. Gandhi 

149 

Deenabandhu Memorial ... 

M. K. Gandhi 



& Others 

150 

“Immediate Satyagraha” ... 

R. M. Lohia 

151 

Notes : 



“Will Leave No 



Stone Unturned’’ ... 

M. K. G. 

148 

Kerala Congress 

M. K. G. 

152 

The Beneficent Bee 

V. G. D. 

152 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona*^.- 
SuWiption Rates— I nland: One year, Rs. 4, Six months, Rs. 2-S, FOREIGN : One year, Bs, 5-a or, 8 sh. or 2 3. 



Reg. No. E 3092 




Editor : MAHADEV DE3AI 


VoL. vnr, No. 17 3 POONA — SATURDAY, JUNE 8, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


Notes 

Peace in Siroh! 

Some time ago I had regretfully to comment 
on happenings in Sirohi. I am therefore happy 
to be able to note that there is now peace 
between the State and the people. The credit may 
be equally divided between the State and the 
satyagrahis. The satyagrahis were ably led by 
Achaiya Gokulbhai who is a firm believer in 
the principles of satyagraha. Let me hope that 
the relations between the two will daily become 
more and more cordial, and that there never 
will be any cause for quarrel between the State 
and the people. 

Untouchability 

Shri T. S. ^ Jadhav, President District Local 
Board, Sholapur, writes: 

“ I have been incessantly making effort to give 
facilities to the Harijans especially with regard to 
their immediate needs in respect of water supply, 
educaticn, etc The Congress Board has opened a 
good number of wells to the Harijans, and has also 
arranged to put up notices to that effect at these 
wells. But it is a matter of regret that the Harijans 
are not inclined to take advantage of this facility 
for fear of being put to trouble by the ‘ touchables*. 
During my tours in the district, I have been request- 
ing the latter to allow Harijans the exercise of this 
legitimate right without any ill effects and exhorting 
the Harijans to have sufficient courage to establish their 
fundamental right of drinking water from any public 
well. This I have been doing through public meetings, 
articles and private discussions. As a pratical instance, 
I go myself to a public well in a village after a 
public meeting with some Harijans, * touchable * 
Congress workers, and a few other prominent villagers, 
and all of us drink water from the well after it has 
been drawn by a Plarijan. But it is found tl it 
the ‘ touchables * who take part in this function are 
often boycotted and the Harijans visited with 
various kinds of troubles by the * touchables’ who 
do not participate in the function. No doubt the 
nature of this boycott and that of the infliction of 
troubles is becoming milder and milder day by day ; 
but in whatever form it may be, it is there and 
serves as a hindrance in the way of removal of 
untouchability. Can you suggest anything more?” 

This certainly is good work. Removal of un- 
touchability is a question of double education, 
that of * touchables ’ as well as ‘ untouchables’. 
‘Touchables’ have to be taught patiently by 
precept and example that untouchability is a sin 


against God and humanity, and the 'untouchabies‘ 
that they should cease to fear the ‘ touchables ’ 
and shed untouchability among themselves. I 
know that that is very easily said. But I have 
found nothing else. Living in the midst of both, 
I know how hard the work is among both. If 
Hinduism is to live, the work has to be done, 
however difficult and even homeless it may 
appear to be. 

Handmade Paper 

Shri Jadhav further writes: 

“ Secondly, I have been using handmade paper for 
the use of the District Local Board office since Ihe 
advent of the Congress Party in the Board. Use 
of mill paper or foreign paper is discon- 

tinued, and as far as my information jgoes, ours is 
the only Board in Maharashtra which iias been using 
handmade paper for its office use to the complete 
exclusion of other paper. I had sent a circular 
letter to the Presidents of the other Boards in 
Maharashtra, requesting them to follow this practice 
of our Board, and I am glad a few cf them nave 
agreed to do so. But I think it will be better 
if you yourself request the Presidents of the Con- 
gress Boards in India to use handmade paper for 
their office purposes. This can well be done through 
the columns of Harijan^ and I am sure it will go 
a long way in bringing into reality your dream of 
revival of village industries as far as writing paper 
is concerned.” 

I gladly support this plea. Indeed I have often 
enough said the same thing in these columns. 
Shri Jadhav’s example should be copied by all 
Local Boards not merely in the matter of hand- 
made paper but all village products. With a 
little care, the Boards should be able to manage 
these things within their budget. I should also 
suggest that the Boards have these things manu- 
factured in the villages under their jurisdiction 
as far as possible. The purpose of the village 
movement will be defeated, if this central fact 
is not borne in mind. Decentralisation is the 
beauty of the movement as also the key to 
its success. 

Red Cross Fund 

’ The same letter mentions the following: 

“Then, with respect to the Red Cross Fund. 
Efforts are afoot in this district to collect money for 
this fund on a very large scale by means of sale of 
lottery' tickets. These tickets are sold to the villagers 
against their wishes and in spite of their inability 
to do so. This is being done through undue inflaence 
yrithout leaving any proof of the same behind. At 



154 


HAEIJAN [ June 8, 1940 


some places the Patil Kulkarnis do not accept land 
revenue if the agriculturist does not buy these tickets. 
I have received a number of complaints in writing 
to this effect during my recent tour in the district. 
I am communicating these complaints to the proper 
Government authorities.*’ 

This subject too I have already dealt with. I 
have explained that in such matters there should 
be no compulsion. Overzealous ofl&cials may 
resort to unfair means bordering on compulsion. 
There is no statutory obligation to subscribe to 
such funds. Those who do not wish to, will 
certainly not subscribe. These irregular collec- 
tions are often vexing and should be stopped 
by the authorities wherever discovered. 

Comilla Municipality and Harijans 

Shri Thakkar Bapa sends the following inter- 
esting account of what the Comilla Municipality 
has done and propose doing for Harijans; 

“ 1. 15 days’ leave with full pay in a year, and 

maternity leave to female sweepers. 

2. A free primary school in their quarters. 

3. Corrugated-iron roof huts for (a) Naga sweepers 
at a cost of Rs. 1,500, and (b) for other sweepers 
at a cost of Rs. 3,000. Some Nagas in East Bengal 
and Surma valley have taken to scavenging work. 

4. The sweepers have been relieved almost wholly 
from their indebtedness, which totalled about 3,000 
and on which they were paying an interest of three 
.annas per rupee per month or 225 per cent ! 

The Commissioners intend to adopt the following 
further measures for them; 

1. To start a Co-operative Stores, proposal for 
which has been sent to the Registrar of Co-operative 
Societies for registration. 

1. Sweepers have to be weaned from their drink- 
ing habit, which it is known is a difficult task. 

3. The insanitary drain behind the sweepers’ 
quarters requires to be made into a pucca drain. 

4. Providing kitchens for sweepers’ quarters, as at 
present they have to cook and sleep in the same room.” 

This reminds one of what the Ahmedabad 
Municipality has done in the matter. The latter 
is possibly more thorough. But that does not 
in any way detract from the merit of what 
the Comilla Municipality has done. It deserves 
warm congratulations. Let us hope that the 
prospective reforms too will be carried out in 


good time. 

Sevagram, 4-6-40 M. K. G. 


Handmade Paper 

Our purchases and sales of handmade paper, fron 
l"l-’40 to 31"5"40 have been as follows ; 

Month Purchases Sales 

January 2599-10-0 1731-10-3 

February 1933—2-6 1575-14-3 

March 1429-11-6 728—6-3 

April 1242-10-6 773-.0-^0 

May 1642-14-0 1265—3-0 


8848—0-6 6074-1-9 


Rs. 970 have been given for paper-cutting and 
envelope-making. A Sample File containing all the 
samples of paper, envelopes, etc. available with us 
can be had from us for Re. 1 post free. 

Manager, Harijan 


OCCASIOi^AL NOTES 

All for Principle 

In one of his plays, Man of Destiny, Bernard 
Shaw has characterised the English as a ‘race 
apart’. There is nothing so good or so bad, he 
remarks, that you won’t find an Englishman do- 
ing it. He does what pleases him and grabs 
what he covets, but he does all this on ‘principle’. 
He is never at a loss for an effective moral 
attitude. “He fights you on patriotic principles, 
he robs you on business principles, he enslaves 
you on imperial principles, he bullies you on 
manly principles, and cuts off his King’s head on 
republican principles. His watch-dog is always 
Duty, and he never forgets that the nation which 
lets its duty get on the opposite side to its 
interest is lost.” 

One was strongly reminded of these remarks 
of Shaw on a perusal of the proceedings of the 
recent India debate in the Parliament, the full 
text of which has since appeared in the press. 
It was contended in the course of that debate 
by one honourable member after another from 
the floor of the House that India could not be 
allowed to exercise her fright of unfettered self- 
determination as that would “ put upon us the 
charge that we have been traitors to our 
responsibility for the protection of the mino- 
rities in India who rely upon us. ” How could 
Britain, it was sanctimoniously argued, abandon 
her obligations, as trustee of the welfare of the 
Indian people which were “embedded in the very 
texture and tapestry of history”? There was, 
of course, the reference to the Princes, like the 
inevitable King Charles’ head, and to “the stake 
we have in the country” and “which is the 
outcome of historical forces”. 

Bug-bear of the States 

“ How can you ignore Indian States, ” exclaim- 
ed Sir Stanley Reed, " which comprise one-third 
of India and one-quarter the population ?” Sir 
Stanley Reed, as a veteran journalist with a long 
career in India, surely, must know that out of 
562 States that constitute Princely India only 
about thirty have any treaty relations with the 
Paramount Power, that even these treaty States 
are bound to the Paramount Power in “subordi- 
nate co-operation ” either by express provisions 
in the treaties themselves or have been reduced 
to that status as a result of half a century of un- 
broken political practice. As vassals of the Crown 
they are not free agents; they cannot treat with 
anybody except at the sufferance of the Crown, 
and are bound loyally to carry out the policies 
of the Paramount Power. It is therefore a travesty 
of the reality to speak of Princely India as 
“ comprising one-third of India and one-quarter 
the population ”, or to trot out treaty obligation 
towards the Princes as a reason for refusing 
India her right of self-determination. 

Concern for the Under-dog 

A true measure of the genuineness of these 
contentions would, perhaps, be provided by com- 
paring the present attitude of the British Parlia- 



JUKE 8, 1940 ] 


HAEIJAN 


155 


ment with the way in which it dealt with the 
problem of the ‘‘ under dog ” on an occasion 
when necessity pointed the other way. 

The South African constitution of 1909 was 
framed in South Africa by the South African 
National Convention, A thorny question at issue 
was that of the native franchise. The Convention 
decided that in South Africa only persons of 
European descent could sit as members in 
either House of Parliament. 

This meant that the natives, who constituted 
the majority of the population, would be excluded 
from sitting in the South African Parliament. 
As Lord Crewe, the Colonial Secretary, himself 
admitted in Parliament, there were among the 
natives men who were of high standing, of 
high character and of high ability.” They regarded 
the exclusion as a slight, and they “ pressed with 
deep feeling and much eloquence their case 
before the British Government at Westminster,” 
But the British Government felt powerless to 
interfere with the decision of the South African 
National Convention. Explained Lord Crewe, the 
Colonial Secretary, from his place in the House 
of Lords on July 27th, 1909; 

“The fact which has decided us in not attempt- 
ing to press this matter against the wishes of the 
South African delegates has been that this is 
undoubtedly one of those matters which represent a 
delicately balanced compromise between themselves. 
As a Government, we cannot take — and personally 
I am not prepared to take — the responsibility for 
the possible wrecking of this Union measure altogether 
or provision of this kind. I am assured that such 
would be the result of any attempt to insert such 
a provision in the Bill. The cause of those who 
desire this change to be made has been pressed with 
deep feeling and much eloquence by some of the 
natives themselves, and by those who specially repre- 
sent their cause. But I do feel that, if this change is 
to be made, it must be made in South Africa by 
South Africans themselves, and that, it is not possi- 
ble for us, whatever we may consider to be the 
special merits of the case, to attempt to force it up- 
on the great representative body which with absolute 
unanimity demands that it should not appear.” 

So the South African Convention had its way 
and the draft of the South African constitution 
of 1909 which, as a Constituent Assembly, it had 
drafted was, as has already been pointed out, 
endorsed by the British Parliament without the 
change even of a misplaced comma. 

Other Times Other Manners 

“However far,” it was further contended in 
the debate, “ we may go in giving responsibi- 
lities to a body in India for the framing of 
their constitution, Parliament cannot entirely 
devolve its responsibilities, it cannot slough off 
its share in the work, because it will have to 
implement by an Act whatever recommendations 
may be agreed upon,*’ This doctrine of inalien- 
able constitutional responsibility of the Parliament, 
one may point out, with due deference to the 
honourable member who advanced it, is histori- 
cally an untruth; in practice it was always put 
aside whenever a settlement was genuinely desired 
by Britain, as in the case of Ireland and the 


Dominions. The fact that it is now being dangled 
before us only shows that the sanction on which 
Britain relies is her might rather than the logic 
or historical validity of her contention. 

To take up a few concrete instances; in the 
case of Canada the Parliament did nothing more 
than embody in a legislative form, in 1867, the 
seventytwo Quebec Resolutions of 1864 which 
represented the ultimate agreement between the 
Canadians themselves in regard to their own 
constitution. The Commonwealth of Australia 
Bill, again, as Mr. Joseph Chamberlain, the Colo- 
nial Secretary, admitted in his speech on the 
introduction of the Constitution Bill in the House 
of Commons on the 14th May 1900, was pre- 
pared without any reference to the British 
Parliament or the British people. The Imperial 
Parliament only registered the decree of the 
Australian people. 

“ As a matter of fact, ” stated Mr. Bonar Law 
on 27th November, 1922, in his speech in the Com- 
mons defending the drafting of the Constitution 
Bill by the people of Ireland, “ the constitutions of 
Canada, Australia and South Africa were all drafted 
in those Dominions. ** Sir John Simon in his speech 
on the same day on the same Bill was even more 
emphatic. “ The principle, ” he observed, “ that 
Constitutions in our Empire have usually been found 
to have a permanent basis in the cases where they 
have been arrived at and settled on the soil affected 
by them, is by no means limited to the different 
Federal Unions under the British Crown. I believe 
it would be true to say that Constitutions which 
promote prosperity and loyalty, and which have been 
found to be lasting Constitutions for subordinate 
.States in our Empire, have almost without exception 
either actually or virtually been framed by those 
who were to live under them themselves. ” 

“ Special Obligations ” 

The example of Ireland is still more striking^ 
During the Debate on the Statute of Westmin- 
ster, it was held by a section of the Tories, 
headed by Mr. Churchill, that there was a 

special obligation”, viz. in regard to the Irish 
Treaty of 1921 which did not find its reserva- 
tion within the corners of the Statute as propos- 
ed. “ I am advised on high technical authority,” 
observed the honourable member for Eping that 
“this Bill confers upon the Irish Free State 
full legal power to abolish the Irish Treaty at 
any time when the Irish Legislature may think 
fit.” He therefore suggested that an amendment 
should be incorporated into the Statute to pre- 
vent that. But on receiving a note from Mr. 
Cosgrave to the effect that ” any attempt to 
erect a statute of the British Parliament into a 
safeguard of the Treaty would have quite the 
opposite effect here and would rather tend to 
give rise in the minds of our people to a doubt 
as to the sanctity of this instrument. ” Col. 
Grettan s amendment was dropped by 360 votes 
to 50 despite the support of Mr. Churchill and 
Lord H. Cecil, and the ” special obligations of 
the British Parliament ” were left to take care 
of themselves. 

Sevagram, 2-6-40 Pyarelal 



156 


HARUAN 


1 Juie 8 





1940 


HINDU-MUSLIM 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Thus writes a Khan Bahadur from Delhi : 

“This is a letter for the Question Box in Harijan. 

In your article in Harijan of April 6, you observe 
as follows: 

‘ I should be failing in my duty if I did not 
warn the Mussalmans against the untruth that is being 
propagated amongst them. This warning is a duty 
because I have faithfully served them in their hour 
of need and because Hindu-Muslim unity has been 
and is my life’s mission.’ 

I will request you to consider the Hindu-Muslim 
problem fromi our point of view. The stumbling 
block to any negotiations for a settlement of the 
communal question has been the refusal of the 
Congress to recognise the All India Muslim League 
as the authoritative and sole representative body of 
the Indian Mussalmans. The Congress claims that it 
speaks for whole India and that it has on its rolls a 
considerable number of Mussalmans. The very fact 
that the Congress has made several attempts to 
come to terms with Mr. Jinnah shows that it 
is not fully confident of its representative character, 
as far as the Mussalmans are concerned. But do 
you not honestly feel that the Congress Mussalmans 
are the real stumbling block in the way of Hindu- 
Muslim unity, and that it is for their sake that 
the Congress is not making a serious effort to 
solve the problem ? Believe me, they are a lazy lot 
who are enjoying their present position because they 
are in the Congress. 

You know what the Muslim masses did to ■ your 
President in Calcutta where for years he had been 
leading Id prayer. You also know that they have 
no courage to address a Muslim meeting to convert 
the Mussalmans to their point of view. You blame 
the British for creating Princes, Moderates and 
Khan Bahadurs like me. You blame the British 
for trying to create another Ulster in India. 
Has not the Congress created equivalent Mode- 
rates and Khan Bahadurs in Azads, Asaf Alis 
^nd Kidwais. Is not the action of the Congress 
tantamount to creation of a Muslim Ulster? 

, You _ may cite the case of Mr.* Asaf Ali succeeding 
in the municipal elections of Delhi. I may inform 
you that but for a division in the Provincial League 
and bad handling of the situation Mr. Asaf Ali 
would have never won the election. I may inform 
you that even as it is, when Delhi Congress wanted 
to contest the municipal elections as a party, Mr. 
Asaf Ali, who is now a member of the Congress 
Working Committee, had declined to take a Congress 
ticket. Therefore,. Mr. Asaf Ali's election was not a 
test case; and if you pardon my saying so, even 
now let Mr. Asaf Ali re-seek election on a Congress 
ticket, and I am confident that any League candi- 


[ June 8, 1940 


date would defeat him. You will thus realise that 
your being baffled by the Lahore resolution of the 
League is not justified when Mussalmans have ceased 
to t"ust in your life’s mission regarding Hindu- 
Muslim unity. On the other hand they are convin- 
ced that the sole aim of the Congress, for the last 
ten years at least, has been to divide and rule the 
Mussalmans. I will beg of you to reconsider your 
attitude towards the League. Please don’t trust the 
Congressite Mussalmans, for they are not only the 
‘ Mir Jafars ° amongst us, but the enemies of Hindu- 
Muslim accord and India’s freedom.” 

Just now I am inundated with letters of 
protest from Muslim friends. Most writers do 
not argue. They give themselves satisfaction by 
abusing. Pyarelal, who opens and deals with 
the daily post, gives me only those letters 
which he thinks I should see. Of these I take 
notice of those £ think I must. In some cases 
I answer them privately. Therefore corres- 
pondents who never receive acknowledgment 
either through Harijan or the post should 
know the reason. 

There are some Muslim letters of sympathy 
too. One of them says that in his house he has 
to listen to wildest criticism of me. No adjec- 
tive is too bad to use. Much criticism he knows 
to be false. What is he to do, he asks. Is he 
to leave the house, or is he to engage in 
endless disputation and convert his house into 
a bear garden? I have advised my correspon- 
dent neither to leave the house nor to engage 
in a discussion. If he can, he may put in a 
mild word when he knows that a manifest 
falsehood is being uttered and believed. 

The correspondence in my possession and the 
Urdu press cuttings and even some English cut- 
tings from journals owned by Muslims go to show 
that I am believed to be the arch enemy of 
Islam and Indian Muslims. If I was at one time 
acclaimed as their greatest friend and suffered 
the praise, I must suffer too to be described 
as an enemy. Truth is known only to God. I 
am confident that in nothing that I am doing, 
saying or thinking I am their enemy. They are 
blood brothers and will remain so, though they 
may disown me ever so much. 

Now for the Khan Bahadur’s letter. 

I have never understood the reason behind 
the demand for the recognition by the Congress 
of the All India Muslim League as the sole and 
authoritative Muslim body. W^hy should such an 
admission be demanded or expected ? How is it 
compatible with a genuine desire for a settlement? 

The Congress attempts to represent all. But 
it has never demanded recognition as such from 
anybody. The all India status has to be deserved. 
But whether it be deserved or not, admis- 
sion thereof is a superfluity. The Congress has 
never claimed that it represents the whole of 
Indian Muslims. It has not claimed to represent 
any single community wholly. But it does rlaim 
to represent every single national interest irres- 
pectiy? of class, caste, colour or creed. Even 




June 8, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


157 


"that claim need not be admitted by those who 
deal with it. It should be sufficient consolation 
to each party that it is considered by the other 
important enough to seek friendship with. 

The Congress has always frankly admitted that 
it has not on its register as many Muslims as 
it would like. But it has been proud to have 
had the support of many eminent Muslims. 
Hakim Saheb Ajmal Khan was the tallest among 
them. Qaid-e-Azam himself was a great Con- 
gressman. It was only after non-cooperation 
that he, like many other Congressmen belonging 
to several communities, left it. Their defection 
was purely political. They disliked direct action. 

It is wrong to swear at the nationalist 
Muslims simply because they are attached to 
the Congress. If they become members of the 
League, they will become worthy Muslims ! ! ! 
My correspondent simply does not know how 
much Congress Muslims are trying to bring about 
unity. When unity is re-established, as it must 
be, I have no doubt that nationalist Muslims will 
get their due both from Hindus and Muslims. 

It is torture of truth to suggest that they are 
-so many Mir Jafars. They ate betraying neither 
Islam nor India. They are as true Muslims accor- 
ding to their lights as members of the League 
■claim to be. It is equal torture of truth to 
suggest that the Congress is following the British 
method of divide and rule. The Congress is a 
political party with one single aim. It would be 
a bad day for India if the Congress could be 
proved to have mean motives. Is it mean to woo 
Muslim opinion by the fairest means imaginable? 
•Rightly or wrongly the Congress does not believe 
in watertight compartments on a communal basis. 
If religion is allowed to be as it is, a personal 
• concern and a matter between God and man, 
there are many dominating common factors bet- 
ween the two which will compel common life 
.and common action. Religions are not for separat- 
ing men from one another, they are meant to 
bind them. It is a misfortune that today they 
•are so distorted that they have become a potent 
•cause of strife and mutual slaughter. 

It will perhaps now be clear why I can have 
no concern with Asaf Ali Saheb’s case. I would 
grant that he would be beaten in a contest 
between him and a Leaguer. Let it be further 
granted that such will be the case in the 
majority of such contests. It will in no way 
weaken my position. It will prove the superior 
organising ability of the League and its popula- 
rity among the Muslims. I have not doubted 
■either. My case is incredibly simple. I must 
not be called upon to make any admissions about 
the status of the League before thinking of 
unity through the League. I must not be disloyal 
to the Muslim nationalists however insignificant 
they may be considered to be. I ask the Khan 
Bahadur, the writer of the letter under discussion, 
to exert his influence to bring the two com- 
munities together. 

Sevagram, 4-6-40 


PANIC 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Nowadays one reads about panic in the Press 
and hears more than one reads. One friend 
writes, “ You sitting in lonely Sevagram can have 
no notion of the talks and whispers going on 
in the busy cities. Panic has seized them.” 

Panic is the most demoralising state anyone 
can be in. There never is any cause for panic. 
One must keep heart whatever happens. War 
is an unmitigated evil. But it certainly docs one 
good thing, it drives away fear and brings 
bravery to the surface. Several million lives 
must have been already lost between the Allies 
and the Germans. They have been wasting 
blood like water. Old men, women both old 
and young, and children in Britain and France 
are living in the midst of imminent death. But 
there is no panic there. If they were seized by 
panic, it would be an enemy more dreadful than 
German bullets, bombs and poison gas. Let us 
learn from these suffering nations of the West 
and banish panic from our midst. And in India 
there is no cause whatsoever for panic. Britain 
will die hard and heroically even if she has to. 
We may hear of reverses, but we will not 
hear of demoralisation. Whatever happens will 
happen in an orderly manner. 

Therefore I would say to those who lend a 
listening ear to me : “Go on with your work or 
business in the usual way. Do not withdraw 
your deposits or make haste to turn your paper 
into cash. If you are cautious, you will run no 
new risks. Your metal buried underground or 
in your treasure chests need not be considered 
safer than in banks or in paper if anarchy over- 
takes us. There is risk just now in everything. 
It is best to be as you are in such a condition. 
Your steadiness, if it is multiplied, will steady 
the market. It will be the best preventive 
against anarchy. There is undoubtedly fear of 
goondaism in such times. You must be prepared 
to cope with it yourself. Goondas flourish only 
in the midst of timid people. They will have 
no quarter from people who can defend them- 
selves violently or non-violently. Non-violent 
defence presupposes recklessness about one’s life 
and property. If it is persisted in, it will in 
the end be a sure cure for goondaism. §ut non- 
violence cannot be learnt in a day. It requites 
practice. You can commence to learn it from 
now. You must be ready to lose your life or pro- 
perty or both. But that is implied in the art of 
non-violence. If you do not know how to defend 
yourself either way, the Government will not be 
able to save you in spite of its best effort. No 
Government, however powerful it may be, can 
without the active co-operation of the people. 
If even God only helps those who will help 
themselves, how much more true it must be of 
perishable Governments! Do not lose nerve and 
think that tomorrow there will be no Govern- 
ment and it will be all anarchy. You can be 
the Government now, and you ^rtainly will be 



158 


HAElJAN 


I June 8, 1940 


in the contingency you contemplate or you 
v/ill perish.” 

Sevagram, 4-6-40 

‘‘ SANDHYA MEDITATIONS 

Deenabandhu Andrews lived such a full life 
that two of his books were still in the press 
when he died. The book under review was 
published a few days after his death, and the 
other one which is with an English publisher 
is not yet out. Sa7idhya Meditations has value 
^i^ot only as a little spiritual legacy left for his 
Christian and non-Christian friends, but as an 
experession of the love that he bore to India 
and India gave him. For the publisher of these 
lovely meditations “chiefly of interest to Chris- 
tians” (as C. F. A. himself said) is a devout 
Hindu, who took up the task at his behest 
because he was a valued friend and a great 
servant of India. Shri Natesan is to be congra- 
tulated on placing at the feet of Mother India 
this posthumous garland of pretty flowers woven 
by C F. A. 

They are not sermons planned and prepared 
for big audiences, they are just brief commun- 
ings with the little brotherhood of the Christu- 
kula Ashram at Tirupattur where he lived a 
short while before his death. And though they 
were “chiefly of interest to Christians”, they 
are in many ways of universal interest, inas- 
much as they represent the quintessence of his 
religious experiences, and they show in his 
luminously simple and charming style the essence 
of a truly religious life. We see face to face in 
these 150 odd pages the beautifully simple life as 
he lived it, the profound love that he bore to 
Christ and therefore to “ the poorest, the lowliest 
and the lost”, the men he admired and adored, 
and the Christian life that he ever held before 
himself as a model to be lived. From the point of 
view of style, they arc gems of literary beauty and 
models of the chaste and limpid Anglo-Saxon 
of which he was master. There is above all a 
spirit of joy and beauty about everything that 
he has written and which is an expression of 
the joy and beauty that he had captured in his 
heart from Christ, 

He adored beauty wherever he saw it. 

“ Since coming to live here, in South India,” he 
says. "I have been more and more struck with the 
tenderness of the landscape and the peace that 
broods over it. What a lovely country it is 1 
There are the hills in the distance, with their 
gentle rise and fall. The sunrise and the sunset, 
through the monsoon days, bring with them an 
indescribable glory. Whenever the rain descends 
nature at once responds, and the earth becomes 
green with such a richness of colour that the eye 
drinks it in with pleasure.” 

But he adored Beauty which was an expression 
of Truth and Goodness. Satyam, Shivanij Sundaram 
he used to repeat very often. 

^ Sandhya Meditations by C. F- Andrews ( G. A, 
Hatesen and Co., Madras.) Price Re. 1. Postage 

2 As. Available at Harijan Office — Poona 4. - 


“Joy always comes at the sight of beauty. When 
I see in the early morning a marvellously beautiful 
shy with the clouds and mists of dawn all filled 
with light, it gives me joy because of its beuut\\ 
Here in this Ashram all round us there is beauty. 
This House of Prayer itself is very beautiful. All 
buildings and the hospital look very beautiful amid 
the trees with the hills in the background. Hut 
this loveliness of Nature, which is all round us, is 
only a dim picture of the heavenly Beauty, The 
wonder of Christ’s love is this, that everythinsi 
that He did had a radiance about it, which still 
brings joy to us even when we think about it. 
What he did was done in a beautiful way. ICven 
today it gives us joy.” 

And that is why some of the choice spirits 
who lived lives of beautiful dedication are pictur- 
ed to us in these pages — St. Christopher, Bishop 
Westcott, Sadhu Sundarsingh, Principal Rudra. 
These are more or less known to us. I shall 
give here C. F. A.’s story of John Smith of 
Demerara. He had been sent out by the London 
Missionary Society to British Guiana where the 
whites from Western Europe were minting money 
out of the blood and sweat of slaves on sugar 
plantations. 

“From the moment John Smith landed,” says 

C, F. A.. “ the slave-owners began to persecute him 
and he was forbidden to preach to the slavc-s. 
Pie replied: *I must obey God jather than man.* 
And he soon became known all over PJritish Guiana 
on account of his love for the slaves. At last 
about the year 1830 there was a rising among the 
slaves against the masters and this was put down 

with a terrible amount of brutal force. The sia\e- 

owners were frightened, and in their panic they 
brought a charge against this missionary, saying 
that he had encouraged the slaves to revolt. He 
was thrown into dungeon, lull of malaria, and 
treated cruelly by ^Ihe jailors, until at last, after 

more than a year’s imprisonment and before hjs 
trial was finished, he died in the prison a martyr s 
death for the great cause.” 

Interwoven with these are stories of the in- 
dentured Indians in Natal, Trinidad, British 
Guiana, and Fiji where C. F. A. went in order 
to help to abolish that system of semi-slavery. 
There is an evening’s talk devoted to the 
returned emigrants at Matiaburz whom he went 
to visit “ more times than I can remember and 
their misery has been heart-breaking.” He made 
repeated appeals to Government to take charge 
of these miserable Indian emigrants and asked 
his little audience to “ bear these poor Indian 
emigrants on your hearts as they are being borne 
on mine; for the burden has become too heavy 
for me to bear alone.” And even when on the 
eve of his fatal operation he disposed of his 
meagre belongings, he asked the Metropolitan tc 
divide the little money in his bag between the 
nurses and the people at Matiaburz. 

Though these are not full-fledged sermons there 
are brief but illuminating comments on verses 
from the New Testament. I shall give but one 
instance — the commentary on John 1*17: 
“The law was given by Moses, but Grace and 
Truth came by Jesus Christ.” 

“There is,” he says, “something wonderfully 
majestic in the impersonal uniformity of Law where 



159 


JUNE 8, 1940 ] HARIJAN 


HO individual exception is ailcvved to come in which 
might interfere with the stern decrees of justice. 
The planets in their courses fulfil their own laws 
of uniform activity, and the inanimate world of 
Nature seems also to be bound by uniform laws of 
its own. But where sentient life comes in, the 
greatest fact of all is not uniformity, but freedom. 
The life which is merely mechanical loses its beauty. 
To force each individual into a frame- work of 
impersonal law, brings with it, in the end, death 
instead of life.’* 

Though he believed that “ in Jesus Christ the 
Light of God became fully visible and focussed 
in a single character which was able to reveal 
not a partial image of the invisible God, but 
the one true image which we, as human beings, 

‘ could recognise and accept, he had no doubt 
in his mind that Christ himself taught that 
“ Wherever the good act is done from a good 
motive, there is the fulfilling of God’s will, and 
that act IS accepted by our Heavenly Father, ” 
and “ that whatever good deed is done as an 
act of love is done unto Himself.” And the 
way to preach the Gospel was summed up by 
him in these words: “Far, far more than what 
v;e say and far more even than what we do, 

’ is what we are. Only the heart can instinc- 
tively devise, in a moment, the beautiful deed 
with grace and say instinctively the beautiful 
word with grace. That is why Jesus was able to 
give us that most perfect of all His sayings: 
' ' Blessed are the pure in heart, for they shall see 
God.’ He could give us that word because His 
own heart was pure.” 

I can quote thus indefinitely from his beauti- 
ful talks on the true Christian (suggested to 
him by the hymn of the true Vaishnava which 
I translated for him), or on the colour bar, or 
on the sin of racial pride on which he has 
■some scorching words to say. What, however, 
has appealed to me most and what will live 
with me always are his two little talks on prayer. 
V/e have, he says explaining a text from St. 

Matthew, to enter into our inner chamber, shut 
the door of our hearts from all wandering 

thoughts, to keep out the world and all its 
•storms, and to be pure in our inmost hearts, 
for “He is our Father who seeth that which 
-is secret.” But why, it is asked, should one 
pray, why should we not leave everything in 
His hands? He has an answer which cannot 
be bettered: 

“The answer is really very simple. Indeed the 
simpler we make it the better. For if we depend 

on logic in such a matter as this, we are certain 

to become confused and lose our way... Let me give 
my answer in the form of another question. If any 
one is the father of an extremely dear child, whose 
love was all in all to him, would he be happy if 
the child never brought to him any question to be 
answered, and never made to him any requests, 
however foolish sometimes they might be ? Is it 
good, either for the child or for the father, to have 
only distant relations with each other ? Surely not. 
The essence of relationship of the father to the 
child is one of complete dependence on the part of 
the child. That dependence is really and trully, if 
I may say so, a form of perpetual prayer..,. Don’t 


let us become too bound by logic in thinking quj 
this subject. Let us rather enter that Kingdom ^ of 
Heaven which prayer denotes, with a childlike mind 
remembering the words of our Lord when he said : 
Except ye humble yourselves, as little children,^ ye 
shall in no wise enter the kingdom of Heaven. 

Sevagram, 28-5-40 D. 

QUESTION BOX 

(By M. K. Gandhi^ 

If You Have Courage 

Q. My mother died last month. I have for a. 
long time been following the practice of eating 
food cooked by Harijans. The orthodox did not 
like it, but they tolerated my practice. Three 
years ago I accepted an invitation for a funeral 
dinner given by a Muslim friend on the occasion 
of his mother’s demise. Now my mother is dead. 
My community have now boycotted all functions 
in connection with my mother’s demise. What 
am I to do ? 

A. If you have courage, you will let the 
castemen do their worst, but you will befriend 
yout Muslim friend at all costs and dine with 
him as often as is necessary. Such boycotts 
should not be feared at all. 

Benevolent Dictatorship 

Q. When the rich become callous and selfish 
and the evil continues unchecked, a revolution 
of the masses with all the attendant horrors 
inevitably results. Since life, as you have put 
ir, is often a choice between evils, won’t you, 
in view of the lesson which the history of 
revolutions inculcates, welcome the rise of a 
benevolent dictatorship which would with the 
minimum use of force “ soak the rich”, give 
justice to the poor, and thereby serve both ? 

A. I cannot accept benevolent or any other 
dictatorship. Neither will the rich vanish nor 
will the poor be protected. Some rich men will 
certainly be killed out and some poor men will 
be spoon-fed. As a class the rich will remain, 
and the poor also, in spite of dictatorship 
labelled benevolent. The real remedy is non- 
violent democracy, otherwise spelt true education 
of all. The rich should be taught the doctrine 
of stewardship and the poor that of self-help, 
A Social Nuisance 

Q. The beggar problem has become a social 
nuisance everywhere, especially in the cities, 
India can ill bear the burden of this array of 
drones. They use self-t6rture, sometimes even 
threats and menaces, to work upon the sympathy 
and fear of our simple folk and extract alms 
from them. Some of them have in this way 
accumulated a secret hoard and lead a life of 
vice and immorality. What solution would you 
suggest for this problem ? 

A. Begging is an age-old institution in India. 
It was not always a nuisance. It was not always 
a profession. Now it has become a profession 
to which cheats have taken. No person who is 
capable of working for his bread should be 
allowed to beg. The way to deal with the prob- 
lem v/ill be to penalise those who give alms tear 



ISU 


HABIJAN 


[ June 8 , 1940 


professional be^'^ars. Of course begging itself by 
the able-bodiea should be penalised. But this 
reform is possible only when municipalities conduct 
factories where they will feed people against 
work. The Salvation Army people are or were 
experts in this class of work. They had opened 
a match factory in London in which any person 
who came found work and food. What I 
have* however, suggested is an immediate palli- 
ative. The real remedy lies in discovering the 
root cause and dealing with it. This means 
equalising the economic condition of the people. 
The present extremes have to be dealt with as 
a serious social disease. In a healthy society 
concentration of riches in a few people and un- 
employment among millions is a great social 
crime or disease which needs to be remedied. 

Economic Independence of Women 

Q. Some people oppose a modification of 
laws relating to the right of married woman to 
own property on the ground that economic in- 
dependence of woman would lead to the spread 
of immorality among women and disruption of 
domestic life. What is your attitude on the 
question ? 

A. I would answer the question by a coun- 


and weavers whose lot the A, I. S, A. is striving; 
to improve. Such persons can neither take the 
pledge nor hold any office in a Congress organisa- 
tion. No person or institution other than the 
A. I. S. A. can issue the required certificates. 

Students’ Difficulty 

Q. We are students in Poona. We are taking 
part in the drive against illiteracy. Nov/ in the* 
parts we are visiting there are drunkards who- 
threaten us if we go to teach people. Those 
among whom we are working are Harijans. They 
get frightened. Some suggest that proceedings 
should be taken against these drunkards. Some 
suggest we should try your method of wooing 
them. Will you advise? 

A. You are doing good work. Literacy drive 
and many such things are by-products of the 
big reform, perhaps the biggest of modern timeSo 
As to the drunkards they must be treated as 
diseased persons entitled to our sympathy and 
service. You should, therefore, reason with them 
when they are sober, and take even the beating, 
if any, with good grace. 1 do not rule out 
court proceedings, but they will be evidence of 
want of enough ahimsa in you. But you cannot 
go against your nature. If you do not evoke 


ter question : Has not independence of man and 
his holding property led to the spread of immo- 
rality among men? If you answer ‘yes’, then 
let it be so also with women. And when women 
have rights of ownership and the rest like men, 
it would be found that the enjoyment of such 
rights is not responsible for their vices or their 
virtues. Morality v/hich depends upon the help- 
lessness of a man or woman has not much to 
recommend it. Morality is rooted in the purity 
of our hearts. 

A Temple Trustee s Poser 

Q, I am a member of the A. L C. C. Per- 
sonally I neither believe in nor observe taboos 
relating to untouchability. But I am trustee of 
a temple built by my ancestors who were 
thoroughly orthodox in their religious outlook, 
I feel that it would be a breach of trust to 
throw it open to Harijans. Would that stand in 
the way of my signing the satyagraha pledge ? 

A. It would stand very much in the way of 
your signing the pledge. It would be no breach 
of trust if the law allows you to open the 
temple. The condition was immoral as we have 
now discovered and hence invalid. 

Uncertified Khadi 

Q, You say that a person buying or using 
mill cloth cannot take the satyagraha pledge. 
Can a person using, buying or dealing in uncertifi- 
ed kbadi take the pledge or hold offices in 
Congress committees ? Is a person or an associa- 
tion other than the A. I. S. A. entitled to 
certify khadi dealers ? 

A. Certainly not. I repeatedly said that a 
person who uses or deals in uncertified khadi 
damages khadi and directly exploits the spinners 


response from them to your wooing, your work 
must not by held up because of the obstruction 
referred to by you. Recourse to legal proceed- 
ings is then indicated. But you must make all 
honest effort before you go to law. 

Sevagram, 4^6-40 

NOTICE 

We regret to announce that we have decided tc 
close our Bombay Branch from the 8lli inst. We 
have seen by experience that in the present state of 
demand for handmade paper it is not possible 
for that single infant industry to bear the burden 
of an independent establivShment or even incidental 
expenses in a big city like Bombay ; though we 

may thankfully mention that the space occupied by 

our Branch was given to us free of rent by a good 

friend. As, however, we did not intend to run the 

risk of a loss, we have thought it advisable to close 
down the shop. Nevertheless "we will continue our 
efforts at popularising handmade paper in Bombay 
through correspondence and through friends who have 
promised to help in this cause as a labour of love. 
We have also decided to bear the freight by goods 
train on all orders exceeding Rs. 25. All correspondence 
should be addressed to Manafier^ Harijan — Poona 4. 

CONTENTS ^ Pag^ 
Occasional Notes ... Pyarelal 154 

Hindu-Muslim ... M. K, Gandhi 156 

Panic ... M. K. Gandhi 157 

“ Sandhya Meditations " ... M. D. 158 

Question Box ... M. K. Gandhi 159 

Notes : 

Peace in Sirohi ... M. K. G. 155 

’■ Untouchability ... M. K. G. 153 

Handmade Paper ... M. K. G. 155 

The Red Cross Fund ... M. K, G. 153 

CoMiLLA Municipality 
and Harijans ... M. K. G. 154 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergussoii College Road, Poona 4.1- 
Subscription Rates — INLAIID: One year, Rs. 4, Six months, Rs. 3-8, Foreign : One year, Rs. 5-8 or, 8 sh. or 2 



n 


P. S. V. 14. 


t 







CmUesj^c Nowsp&peirs^ 


1. Name of Pa]3er 


J-HL-o -v , . 


2. Published at - 


3. Dated 


^larked 





EOMBAY, June 15 

F or the present there are onlv two paities in India — the Congics'; 

and those who side with the Con^icss and the oarties who do 
not Between the twii thcic is no mc'^'tinq ground without one or the 
other surrendeiing it^ puiposc, and i( tlie Congress Joses hope and lailh 
and comes to the cluicIufjoii that it xiiust sta lender its original posit irr 
for the ijurpose ot gclt'a:* a common measuro of agreement it will cees i 
to be the power it is This view t. oxpiessod bv Mr Crandlii in the 
Hatijan lo-dav wiitniff under the caption “Two Paitici’’ 


SCfB— 72 eS&B^rC 


INlr Cr..'n''llii 
Lblic* anpoals 


a 

•y 

lilt 

ncl 

'O 

cmJ 


“Piivate anrl 
)iic’ appoais arc li' me made to me 
call all paiLios logcrhci and ainvc 
' common agr^^oment, and then, 
say \\ c *- liatl get v\ liat v e 
I '(jiii CxicMt Britain Tlicst 
1 1 lends loigot one ccnfial tact 
Cont’icss whii h idi nt(js<-os to 
Im Inch i and n mis un- 
dt'M iLc’d indc'pcndciii'c, cannot 
ke .1 common measure ol aeroe- 
tit V itli (’v'pe who do not To act 
oiwi'f would bo to betraj' Us 
st Ix the nntui'c of things, Ihcio- 
L*. Ihei' ^*011 he nil ‘all patties 
liTv-neq i.inl'-,rs aU have a eom- 
n purpose 

'The British Clovornmcnt would 
loi a c'ommon agreement, lI 

■■ ier'cigin'''''’cl nui c»ne party 

enough to take dcLivetv The 
cios-^, U mu - 1 he acimiUed, hv.^ 
that slioneth to-day. It has conic 
tn nUi’seiiT puiition m the taec < 

, MUnn. II .1 docs not ncatecn 

has enough patience, it vt ih 
clijp suthoent sliciifith 
veiv It IS an illusion cieated 
Stives tJiaL we niutit cuine xo 
»omc‘nl with all paiUes heioio 
nial-i- any picgro'" 
cjNT.y UEMOCTIaTIC BOTt\ 
rheie is onlv om demoeratie 
•loci ptililicMl orgaiu'/^aiion, that is 

•CnU«XC.ss. /r t 

T'baSs"’ So “'S; 

‘Sioam-ahon nhtch Ubo «« 

is. IS popularly clecioa. >• 

iklv eoinmundl and wanx 
tdo India mlo two p.^ii.s, om 

iiii 'iiid ihu uthfi i\'lci''<lem I rt.-x« 

aff'tl liya tlu.Uro l.oaRiu -1 
a.tun'f in d mo Uriti.-h Ciovcrn- 
it shoulfl oum-' to U‘itns 
stems olid dcpona upon 
Th'it ivouicl he hhc 
line the question, bu- 
peluoting Biitish ithe 
:>iii Maiitisabha will xio 


r 


an 

wo 


1 


wixU Iho 
Moslem 
way ot 
also ot 
The 
doubt 


lavoLxred treatment lor Hindus. 
:lin.A Hindu tStates 

Into tor tUe tho'** ConffS " 

iSiLTho SnV 

errra'p't” mcetixg^Sio^n 

one or the otUci suircn- 

STo & sTlU. Theieiora, tho]» 

“cVm-.tr But the atalemate 

i.,:t til cxolxmi- • '-.'^'1 

^ lb*' Co»'!|ru *■ *' • ' • 


* Its nnn-violem-e luibids the 
nif, l.oxn Ftanduig alum and r.rlu ^ 

The hiah<»hoi“c as the ixPpuUcnLs ssy 
on {hJr^Tontraxy. U has woo ah 

parbe.-,, disaini su-pwion and 
iiust m its bona tides Chis n lai 
un^yUo when b has el.^mied its ovin 
'.lal/'ics ItiL c c-s may take timc. 
ThXl time mu-t bo given It will bo 
no r,'.Uu. But xl tho Con^c^a 
hope and taith and comes to the con 
ehiFioij thax U must surrondoi its oii 
ginal position for the P^xpose ot 
•netting a conimon mcasuio of a*.,icL- 
menb It svill cease to be the powoi it 
ja T'o-d.iv it IS the sheet-anchor of 
India’s hope and faith It 
woll wiUi It, It It 

xuvav liom its moormgs. whothei it if. 
in ,a minority or a majority — A.i' i 



Editor: MAHADEV DESA5 


VoL. Vin, No. 19 ] POONA — SATURDAY, JUNE 22, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


ISrON-VIOLENCB AND KHADI 
(jB^; M. K. Gandhi^ 

Mr. Richard Gregg, one of whose letters I 
reproduced some time ago, has sent another 
which I share with the reader : 

“Last week I was sorry to see the report in 
our papers of the death of Charlie Andrews. He 
was such a dear, good man, mighty in his sweetness, 
compassion, loyalty, affection and love. Such bound- 
less capacity for affection ! He made the world a 
better pla'ce. We will miss him greatly, but his 
great example lives on. 

All these months since I wrote you last I have 

been wrestling intellectually with the problems of 

discipline for non-violence and of non-violent persua- 
sion and conversion, and how to state them and 

their solution in Western terminology. As I think* 
I wrote you, I am working on a book about those 
two aspects of satyagraha, to supplement my Power 
of Non-violence. I read and ponder, read and 

ponder. In the last few weeks I have come to see 
the pattern of the whole thing with much greater 
clearness. My effort is to try to get the Western 
world to realize the validity and practicalness of 
your entire programme. 

I have been so glad that during these last few 
months you have insisted so strongly that the Con- 
gress must earnestly and loyally take up the khadi 
programme before you will lead them in any open 
struggle of satyagraha against the Government. I 
see clear as crystal the necessity for that. You are 
absolutely right. 

Aside from that aspect of the matter, I foresee 
that after the present war is over, all Europe will 
need your khadi programme and also your plan of 
education without books, through handcraft of various 
kinds. The middle class of England as well as the 
Continent will be gravely impoverished. The same 
will happen in the United States, and may be just as 
severely as in Europe, for did not we have as severe 
a fall economically from 1929 to 1934 as any of 
the European countries ? The experience and techni- 
cal resources which the khadi movement of India 
has amassed will be of immense value in the post- 
war years. 

Despite the war and all its horrors, I am opti- 
mistic as to the future of non-violence. Never before 
in all the history of the world have there been so 
many believers in non-violence, both in absolute 
number and also relatively to the rest of the popula- 
tion. Never before has that belief been found in all 
groups, classes, religions and occupations. Never before 
have so many prominent statesmen stated earnestly, 
clearly and publicly the folly, futility and appalling 


results of war and violence. Never have so many 
military men been so unsure of the validity and 
ultimate effectiveness of their method. 

All during the past two years and rapidly since 
the war began, the organized peace movements of 
Britain and America have grown. They have never 
been so large. Nor is it mere sentiment. Much keen 
and searching thinking is going on about all aspects 
of the problem. 

Up to March 9th, 26,681 men among the mili- 
tary conscripts of Great Britain had been officially 
registered as conscientious objectors to war, as 
compared with about 16,000 for the entire four 
years of the war of 1914-18. Though one can never 
be sure in advance, all the evidence indicates that, 
if the United States were dragged into the war, 
there would be a similar great increase in the num- 
ber of conscientious objectors here. In the five or 
six calls of conscripts in Great Britain between 
last June and March of this year the percentage of 
C.O.’s ranged from 1-6 to 2'2 %. This may be interest- 
ingly compared with the estimate that in all coun- 
tries the really effective or decisive work of govern- 
ment is done by not over 2% of the population. 
Further weight is given to this comparison by the 
high intellectual calibre of the leaders of the paci- 
fist movement in Britain. And while one should not 
boast about one’s own country, the pacifists of this 
country are not stupid, even though they may not 
have world- wide reputations. The relation of these 
facts to the future lies in historical analogy. 

After the war of 1914-18 many of the pacifists 
who had been severely persecuted during the war 
became recognised leaders. This is likely to happen 
again. 

After the world war there was a strong pacifist 
movement in all the nations which took part and 
also in many neutral nations. This is likely to happen 
again. At that former time much of the movement 
was mere sentiment, and when it was severely test- 
ed it broke. But since then there has been much 
and intense thinking, so that believers in non- 
violence understand the problems and their difficul- 
ties and possible ways of solution much more clearly 
than formerly. In future they will be much more 
efifective than before. 

After this war the hatreds and fears will probably 
be deeper and stronger and more obstinate than after 
the last world war, but there will be more honesty, 
more willingness to recognise one*s own nation’s past 
mistakes and faults, also more willingness to give up 
old habits and experiment with new methods. The in- 
creased group awareness will make for more awareness 
of danger from endless hostility. It may prove to be 



170 


HARIJAH [ 22, 1940 


a narrow choice between chaos and order, but I incline 
to believe that man’s desire for permanent order 
will be just a little stronger than his fears and 
hatreds. It will be as if all the inmates of an 
insane asylum, after a wild outburst of mutual 
violence, were to decide to call a truce and try to 
work out a co-operative plan for curing themselves. 

If it be true that man’s desire for order and 
significance in bis life are stronger than fear and 
hate, the only programme which can produce order 
and significance to life will have non-violence as its 
backbone. This places a great responsibility upon 
the believers in non-violence. It will require of them 
great thought, discipline, and social invention. I 
consider your khadi programme one of those great social 
inventions. The Wardha education scheme is another. 

I am writing a letter to J. C. Kumarappa about 
some items that I have long wanted to discuss with 
him, a set of suggestions for possible experiment by 
the A. I. V. I. A. One is to try hanging small mosquito 
net bags containing naphthaline moth balls in village 
wells a yard or more above the level of the water. 
The odour of the moth ball is much disliked by 
mosquitoes, and as it is slightly heavier than un- 
scented air it would lie like a blanket over the sur- 
face of the water and keep the mosquitoes from laying 
their eggs in the water, without harming the water 
or t-ilHug the mosquitoes. The odour is not absorbed 
by the water. Thus one breeding ground for malaria 
might be cheaply, easily and harmlessly eliminated. 
I have found it effective in a small open steel tank 
here in my garden. I think I saw the moth balls 
on sale in the Ahmedabad bazar, so I presume they 
are obtainable. If not, certain of the aromatic herbs 
will be found to be also repellent to mosquitoes, and 
they could be used instead. The moth balls evapo- 
rate after a while, so they would have to be watched 
and occasionally renewed. 

Another .application of the same idea would be 
plpntiu g certain water-loving aromatic herbs along 


RURAL HUMANITY 

( Bv Mami Subedar ) 

The major problem of national planning is to 
secure employment for millions of people, who 
are either not employed at all, or who are under- 
employed, i,' e. who have got plenty of spate 
time. 

The question is whether the growth of industry 
in urban centres could absorb them all. The 
reply clearly is that it would not absorb even 
a fraction — not even two per cent. 

If- all the industries projected by the Manu- 
facturing Industries Sub-Committee were put into 
operation, they would not touch the fringe of 
this unemployment problem. 

Unemployment here is a compulsory condition 
and not through the choice of the people. 

The labour, which is thus lost, is lost for 
ever, both to these men and to the community. 
National wealth can never increase while their 
condition continues like this. They must be put 
to work to improve their standard of life and 
to enable them to have a robust confidence and 
to be restored to human normality. 

This means that such activities as they can 
undertake must be provided for them without 
removing them from their surroundings. 

Rural industry is- not for the sake of having 
the production, but for the sake of giving work 
to these men. They become producers, and they 
would be in most cases themselves the consumers. ' 

It must be so arranged that they shall be 
consumers of things produced in the rural areas 
in preference to things coming from urban areas 
and factories. 

The human claim is so paramount that every- 
thing else must be subordinated to it. The 
calculations in these matters cannot be made on 
the basis of cost, but on the basis of human 
l<aVkrtnr f-iirnori from Casual and inefficient to 


the banks of village tanks and rivers, close to the 
water’s edge. Mosquitoes lay their eggs preferably 
in shallow water so that the larvae can escape 
being eaten by small fishes. If the right herbs, 
of a kind whose odour is^ repellent to mosquitoes, 
were thus planted and kept growing, it would seem 
likely to cut down the malaria in this way. 
Anyhow I think these two experiments worth 
trying. The mint family 'of herbs are known to be 
repellent to mosquitoes.” 

Mr. Gregg is a careful thinker. He takes 
nothing for granted. The last paragraph of his 
letter shows his practical nature. But I know 
that no amount of logical thinking is going to 
establish the supremacy of non-violence on earth. 
The only thing that can do it is India's ability 
to demonstrate beyond doubt its efficacy in 
gaining and defending national freedom. 
Sevagram, 8-6-40 

Home and Village Doctor 
By Satiah Chandra Daatupta 
1384 pages. 18 chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages. 
219 illustrations. Price Rs. 5 cloth-bonnd; By V. P. 
P. Rs. 6. Rs. 6 leather-bound; By V. P. P. 7, 
Available at Harijan o£Sce — Poona 4. 


technically efficient. 

It is not merely a question of encouraging the 
rural industries in private hands. That is good, 
but it will not go very fat. It is a question of 
organizing production in rural areas. The men 
do not know what they will do and when th®y 
will do it. They have no resources for getting 
the raw material, or even the simple band tools. 
They do not know where to sell the stuff. 

All this activity cannot be. therefore, left alone 
to itself or to private enterprise. 

The middleman’s expectations of profit arc so 
high that rural industry of this character is 
beneath his notice. Therefore he would not 
bother about it. But the State cannot leave these 
men to their fate. 

It is not that factory industry must be cur- 
tailed and ultimately replaced by hand industry, 
but hand industry is the only field which offers 
an immediate and urgent field of constructive 
endeavour. 

The attempt to solve all the problems of rural 
humanity by means of reforms in land-holding 
and revenue administration is the method which 



JUNE 22, 1940 1 


HASIJAN 


171 


the socialists seek, but this is inadequate. It is 
not possible, by merely taking away rights in 
land, that the landless could be absorbed to 
useful and sustaining activity. The distress of 
unemployment is also amongst those who have 
land, where they can raise only one crop. The 
amount of saving, which they can effect from 
their present activities, is not adequate to secure 
them either full sustenance throughout the year- 
or many of the elementary needs on the basis 
of present commercial supply from factories in 
urban areas. The idea is that these things could 
be manufactured in the rural districts themselves 
and, by means of this self-help, without the 
corroding influence of middlemen profiteering, the 
standard of life of the people in the rural 
districts could be materially improved. 

If something is created in the rural districts 
on these lines, it must be protected against the 
onslaught of ever-increasing factory products. The 
degree of restriction on factories would have to 
be determined both as to location, number of 
licences, quantities produced, qualities, and, last 
but not the least, as to the freedom of movement 
for goods so produced to reach everywhere. 

Production in rural areas on the lines envisaged 
above would sometimes be phenomenally cheap, 
but in other cases it may be a little dearer 
than factory production. All cases would not 
be the same. This will want a very close-knit 
organmation based on local knowledge and, while 
the management would be in the hands of the 
State, the cost of the administration and manage- 
ment would have to be kept down, if the 
scheme is not to 'fail. 

It is true that this scheme of rural handicrafts 
cannot cover those industries which need tremen- 
dous equipment and can be only dealt with 
in centralised factories. But it can cover an 
astonishingly large number of every-day articles 
in use, and the field has not yet been, to my 
knowledge, fully surveyed as to what can and 
cannot be done in rural areas, in villages, and 
in the homes of simple people in their cottages. 

Initially, taking a large mass of entirely un- 
trained and undisciplined labour, things will be 
dijficult, and only the simpler forms of produc- 
tion would have to be attended to. But, con- 
sidering that even in urban areas an entirely 
new person could be put to work in a factory 
and would work properly in periods ranging 
from three weeks to three months, there is no 
reason to despair. Untrained men put in charge 
of trained men could be brought to the level of 
efficient production in like period ranging from 
three weeks to three months. Under proper 
direction, their labour could be usefully employed 
from the beginning. It would not be the case 
of creating individual artisans who would pro- 
duce from A to Z. It would be the case of 
creating nuclei of one or two trained men, i. e. 
full-fledged craftsmen, assisted by ten or twenty 
untrained men, working with, and under the 
direction of, the master-craftsmen; these men 


would, in the period of a year or so, reach a 
standard that would enable them to work on 
their own or as centres of other nuclei, if it 
was desired. Any plan for India that leaves 
this problem of rural humanity out would be 
like the plan of the British Government for 
India, viz. absorption and exploitation for British 
enterprise, wherever possible, and ‘ Devil take 
the hindmost’, i. e. leaving everybody else to 
his fate. It cannot leave anybody to his 
fate. It must take account of the disabilities of 
all and provide for them. The greater the dis- 
ability, the greater must be the care, anxiety, 
circumspection and provision. 

Spinning Competition in Ramgarh 
During the Congress Week there was the usual 
spinning competition at the exhibition. There 
were six tests — coarse counts up to 10, medium 
up to 18, fine up to 30, very fine ranging from 
44 to 158, spinning on the Magan Charkha, and 
last on the takli. The examiners were Ramdev 
Babu of Bihar, Shri Nandlal Patel of the Khadi 
Karyalaya Ahmcdabad, and Prabhudas Gandfat 
who was also the organiser. From the table before 
me I see that the examination was as strict and 
thorough as it should have been. In my opinion 
the competitors were neither as many as should 
have been nor from many provinces. They were 
principally from Bihar and Gujarat, some from 
Maharashtra and U. P, There were cash prizes, 
the highest being Rs. 15, and trophies for the 
winning institutions. It is worthy of note that 
in the very fine yarn competition there were 
many women. The finest spinner was Devsundari 
Devi of Madhubani, Her count was p8. The 
highest speed on the wheel was 618 yards per 
hour of 10 counts. The highest on the Magan 
Charkha was 925 yards of 15 counts. The 
highest on the takli was 303 of 12 counts. 
This is all satisfactory. There is not much scope 
for increased speed with the present improve- 
ments except on the Magan Charkha. Enough 
experiment has not yet been made on that 
wheel; But all accounts go to show that it has 
further possibilities. The takli is any day the 
queen for easy carriage, simplicity and cost. 
On the whole it may prove to be the quickest. 
Whereas the wheels may go out of order, the 
takli need never. Experiments arc being made in 
plying the takli after the style of the charkha. 

I congratulate the winners. I only hope that 
more interest will be taken than hitherto in such 
competitions. Spinning competitions have a great 
national value. I may note that the Maulana 
Saheb was to have given the prizes, ^ut the 
wholly unexpected downpour made it utterly 
impossible to do so. 

Sevagram, 17-6-40 M. K. G. 

OLD ISSUES 

Issues of Vols. I to VI of Harijan, with certain 
exceptions, can be had from us for 3 As. per copy 
{ including postage ). Issues of Vol. VIII will be 
had at the published price plus postage. MANAGER 



172 


HAEIJAN 


[ June 22, 1940 



June 22 *940 


HOW TO COMBAT HITLERISM 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Whatever Hitler may ultimately prove to be, 
we know what Hitlerism has come to mean. 
It means naked ruthless force reduced to an 
exact science and worked with scientific preci- 
sion. In its effect it becomes almost irresistible. 

In the early days of satyagraha when it was 
still known as passive resistance. The Star of 
Johannesburg, stirred by the sight of a hand- 
ful of Indians, wholly unarmed and incapable of 
organised violence even if they wished it, pit- 
ting themselves against an overwhelmingly armed 
Government, had a cartoon in which the latter 
was depicted as a steam-roller representing irresist- 
ible force, and passive resistance was depicted as 
an elephant unmoved and comfortably planting 
himself in his seat. This was marked immovable 
force. The cartoonist had a true insight into the 
duel between the irresistible and the immovable 
forces. It was then a stalemate. The sequel we 
know. What was depicted and appeared to 
be irresistible was successfully -resisted by the 
immovable force of satyagraha — call it suffering 
without retaliation. 

What became true then can be equally true 
now. Hitlerism will never be defeated by counter- 
Hitlerism. It can only breed superior Hitlerism 
raised to nth degree. What is going on before 
our eyes is a demonstration of the futility of 
violence as also of Hitlerism. 

Let me explain what I mean by failure of 
Hitlerism. It has robbed the small nations of 
their liberty. It has compelled France to sue 
for peace. Probably by the time this is in 
print Britain will have decided upon her course. 
The fall of France is enough foe my argument. 
I think French statesmen have shown rare 
courage in bowing to the inevitable and refusing 
to be party to senseless mutual slaughter. 
There can be no sense in France coming out 
victorious if the stake is in truth lost. The 
cause of liberty becomes a mockery if the price 
to be paid is wholesale destruction of those who 
are to enjoy liberty. It then becomes an in- 
.glorious satiation of ambition. The bravery of the 
French soldier is world-known. But let the world 
know alM the greater bravery of the French 
statesmen in suing for peace. I have assumed 
that the French statesmen have taken the step 
in a perfectly honourable manner as behoves true 
soldiers. Let me hope that Herr Hitler will 
impose no humiliating terms but show that, 
though he can fight without mercy, he can at 
least conclude peace not without mercy. 

But to resume the thread of the argument. 
What will Hitler do with his victory ? Can he 


digest so much power ? Personally he will go as 
empty-handed as his not very remote predecessor 
Alexander. For the Germans he will have left 
not the pleasure of owning a mighty empire but 
the burden of sustaining its crushing weight. For 
they will not be able to hold all the conquered 
nations in perpetual subjection. And I doubt if 
the Germans of future generations will entertain 
unadulterated pride in the deeds for which 
Hitlerism will be deemed responsible. They will 
honour Herr Hitler as a genius, .as a brave 
man, a matchless organiser and much more. But 
I should hope that the Germans of the future 
will have learnt the art of discrimination even 
about their heroes. Anyway I think it will be 
allowed that all the blood that has been spilled 
by Hitler has added not a millionth part of an 
inch to the world’s moral stature. 

As against this imagine the state of Europe 
today if the Czechs, the Poles, the Norwegians, 
the French and the English had all said to 
Hitler : “ You need not make your scientific pre- 
paration for destruction. We will meet your 
violence with non-violence. ,You will therefore 
be able to destroy our non-violent army with- 
out tanks, battleships and airships.” It may be 
retorted that the only difference would be that 
Hitler would have got without fighting what 
he has gained after a bloody fight. Exactly. 
The history of Europe would then have 
been written differently. Possession might ( but 
only might) have been then taken under 
non-violent resistance, as it has been taken 
now after perpetration of untold barbarities. 
Under non-violence only those would have been 
killed who had trained themselves to be killed, 
if need be, but without killing anyone and 
without bearing malice towards anybody. I dare 
say that in that case Europe would have added 
several inches to its moral stature. And in the 
end I expect it is the moral worth that will 
count. All else is dross. 

I have written these lines for the European 
Powers. But they are meant for ourselves. If 
my argument has gone home, is it not time for 
us to declare our changeless faith in non-violence 
of the strong and say we do not seek to defend 
out liberty with the force of arms but we will 
defend it with the force of non-violence? 

Sevagram, 18-6-40 


Duty of Indians Overseas 

Last week I referred to the duty of the 
students to make collections for the Deenabandhu 
memorial. Dr. Brookes’ letter, reproduced else- 
where in this issue, should remind Indians over- 
seas of their special duty. No man laboured so 
hard, so sincerely or so effectively as C, F. 
Andrews in their behalf. He travelled to distant 
kmds to study personally the condition of the 
Indian settlers in those lands. I hope that these 
settlers will make collections and send their 
quota to the Memorial Fund. 

Sevagram, 16-6-40 M. K. G- 




June 22, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


173 


Notes 

Caste Hindu Marries Harijan Girl 

Shri Harekrushna Mahtab writes a letter about 
a marriage between a Caste Hindu and a Harijan 
girl in Orissa. From it I take the following: 

“ Shri Radhamadhab Mitra of Khurda in Orissa 
now serving as sub-inspector in the Excise Depart- 
ment of the Orissa Government married a Harijan 
girl Fulrani named by us on 4th March last strictly 
according to Hindu rites with Brahmin priests, and the 
ceremony was attended by about one thousand people 
of all castes and communities. Radhamadhab is aged 
about twentyfive. When he was a student in the 
Khurda school he organised one Harijan boys* 
football team. During your epic fast for Harijans, 
Radhamadhab with some of his friends lived in a 
Harijan village, and during that period he and his 
friend promised to marry Harijan girls. His friends 
forgot their promise but Radhamadhab carried it out. 
When the proposal for marriage with a Harijan girl 
was first made all the relatives and friends used all 
sorts of pressure to dissuade Radhamadhab from his 
resolve. When he first consulted me, I depicted a 
very dark future before him. But undaunted by all 
these forebodings he carried out his resolve. There 
was opposition from the bride’s relatives who were 
afraid of oppression from higher castes and also 
of some divine punishment. But ultimately they 
agreed. Radhamadhab has registered a deed of com- 
pensation amounting to Rs. 500 in case he forsakes 
his wife at any lime. In case he dies earlier, he has 
registered another deed to enable his wife to secure 
a substantial share from his paternal property. We 
tried our utmost to secure the attendance of as 
many high class people as possible, and thank God 
we could get what we wanted. On the day of the 
marriage about seven hundred Pans, to which class 
the girl belonged, assembled and their joy could be 
seen in their faces. Just imagine several hundreds of 
high caste people sitting together with an equal 

number of Harijans in front of a poor Pan house 

witnessing the marriage ceremony and receiving betel 
from the father of the bride. ” 

1 congratulate Shri Radhamadhab on his 
courage in breaking through the rock of caste 
superstition. I hope his example will be copied 
by other young men. May the union prove 

happy. I would advise Shri Radhamadhab to 

arrange for proper education of his wife who, 

I understand, has not received any scholastic 
training. 

Another Tribute 

Dr. Edgar Brookes has sent me through my 
son a letter about his contacts with Deena- 
bandhu. Dr. Brookes, my son tells me, is a 
very learned man and deeply religious. He is a 
well-known figure in South Africa apart from 
.his being a senator. Here is Dr. Brookes’ letter 
to me: 

“You will pardon me, a complete stranger, for 
thus writing to you. I am elected senator represent- 
ing the Bantu * Natives * of Natal and Zululand in 
the Union Parliament. As such I have had the 
privilege of speaking more than once on behalf of. 


groups of Indians suffering from disabilities in South 
Africa. The urge to write to you has come to me as 
during these last weeks I have been reading C. F- 
Andrews* Christ in the Silence^ and thinking very 
much of my dear friend who has entered into fuller 
life — I dare not say ‘ died for I have never felt 
him more living. Knowing something of what your 
friendship meant to him and his ( I imagine ) to 
you, I felt that I should like to tell you a little 
of our contact. I met him not only here in South 
Africa but also in England and France, where we 
both spoke in connection with the Oxford Group 
movement. He is godfather to my youngest son- 
Mr. Andrews had the greatest of gifts — love. In its 
weakness, it is yet the strongest thing on earth — ■ 
* terrible as an army with banners’- You have 
taught us that lesson. I would rather be like Mr, 
Andrews than the Prime Minister of a great country. 
He was the closest among all the people that I have 
ever met to what I imagine Jesus to have been. He 
brought something to India. He learned much from 
India, and much from yourself. Those who were 
made humbler and better by knowing him will, like 
myself, want to thank you for helping to make him 
what he was.” 

The letter shows how great was the influence 
that Deenabandhu produced on those with 
whom he came in contact. 

Adult Literacy 

The Gandhi Mission Society, Tiruvcnnainallur, 
send me their half-yearly report of adult lite- 
racy work. The total number of adults educat- 
ed was 197. But the problem that really faces 
them is ‘how to enable the adults to retain 
the knowledge thus gained*. The report goes 
on: “Nearly half the members who attended the 
class during the first session have approached the 
worker in charge to repeat the lessons. In fact 
they had lapsed into illiteracy. The workers are 
racking their brains to devise means to prevent 
this lapse. ” The workers need not rack their 
brains at all. The lapse is bound to occur 
after the short courses that are given. The 
lapse can only be prevented by correlating the 
teaching to the villagers* daily wants. The dry 
knowledge of three R’s is not even now, it 
can never be, a permanent part of the villagers* 
life. They must have knowledge given to them 
which they must use daily. It must not be 
thrust upon them. They should have the appe- 
tite for it. What they have today is something 
they neither want nor appreciate. Give the villa- 
gers village arithmetic, village geography, village 
history, and the literary knowledge that they 
must use daily, i. e. reading and writing letters, 
etc. They will treasure such knowledge and pass 
on to the other stages. They have no use for 
books which give them nothing of daily use. 

Sevagram, 16-6-40 M. K. G. 

Hindus & Musalmans of India 

By Atulananda Chakrabartt Price Rs. 2-8-0. 
Postage 4 As. extra. 

Mahaixna Gandhi 

By S. Radhakrishnan. (New Edition) Rs. 5-10«0* 
Postaige 8 As. Available at Harijan ofiScfr-Poona 4^ 



174 HARIJAX 1 22, 1940 


THE ECLIPSE OF FAITH 

II 

A Got)d Group 

Quite a different type were three who dis- 
cussed the spinning wheel not in a carping 
spirit but in a real spirit of inquiry. One of these 
has been a regular spinner and spins well, but 
she doubted that the spinning wheel could pro- 
duce any tangible result, because she was afraid 
that many were not going to take it up in the 
proper spirit. I simply said to her : Are you 

sure that you are doing it in the proper spirit ? 
If you are, it is enough. You have to perse- 
vere in the faith that your example will spread. 
If you are not, perhaps it is your want of faith 
that is spreading the infection and preventing 
people from taking up the wheel. The second 
of the three was convinced of the value of the 
spinning wheel and even accepted its spiritual 
and moral implications. But — ? He did not spin, 
he had no time to, hut he intended to do so. 
To him I said : “ You must remember that the 
road to hell is paved with good intentions. The 
moment the intentions become solid blocks of 
action the road is bound to take the opposite 
direction. ” He laughed. I added : “You believe 
that you have got the faith and the conviction, 
but let me tell you that you have not got 
either, ” I think what I said went straight home. 
The third friend, who is a spinner, accepted its 
disciplinary value and all else but had honest 
doubts about the capacity of the wheel to 
enable us to preserve our independence in a 
non-violent way. To him I said : “ Well if we 
can win it by non-violence, I am sure even the 
opponents of non-violence will agree that wc 
can retain it by non-violence. What many of 
them don’t believe is that independence can be 
won by means of non-violence. But I would 
give you another argument which I am sure 
you will appreciate. Do you remember what 
Pandit Jawaharlal said in one of his speeches 
some time ago? He said Poland, if she had 
resisted German aggression non-violently, would 
perhaps have suffered less than she had done. 
Well let us extend the thought. Her civilisa- 
tion is a factory civilisation, and the same is 
the case with the other devastated regions like 
Holland and Denmark and Belgium. Now if 
there .was no factory civilisation there but only 
a cottage industries civilisation, the enemy would 
have gained nothing out of destroying the cottage 
crafts, and the devastated countries would have 
taken no time to recover. What has happened 
is that the enemy is in possession of all the 
factories and is now turning them to his own 
use..; This could never have happened if there 
was a cottage industries civilisation. It should 
imt now be difiScult for you to see that a 
country/ reared on a cottage industries civilisa- 
tion and which stands to lose much less by 
another country’s aggression, would be less] liable 
to aggression^ for one thing, and would certainly 


resist such an jggression more effectively or- 
would more effectively non-cooperate with a, 
foreign forcible occupant than she could if she^ 
was dependent on a factory civilisation, “ 

I drew the attention of these friends to Shri 
Vinoba’s words about the takli quoted in a 
Marathi book on spinning called Va.st) apoorna : 

“ Tukaram has sung — Tliou art with me wherever 
I go. God never forsakes us wherever we may be. 
The takli can from that point of view be a symbol 
of God Himself. One can see God as much m 
darkness as in light. The takli too does not depend 
particularly un outward light. It is enough if there 
is inward liglit in us. Yon can take God’s name 
no matter how and where you are. Similarly you 
can ply the takli no matter how and where you 
are — sitting, lying down, walking. We can pray 
both individually and congregationally. The whole 
ashram can, if it was so minded, spin on the takli 
congregationally. If the study of the Vedas were 
the only road to salvation, salvation would be con- 
fined to the rarest people. But the saints said 
Rama-nama — repetition of God's name — was an 
equally effective road, and thus made salvation possible 
for the lowliest and the lost and the most ignorant 
and illiterate. In khadi-worship tlic takli is lil.e • 
Rama-nameu And as Rama^ncnna has a potency 
equalled alone by its simplicity, even so the takli 
which is simplicity itself has the potency of supplying 
the clothing need of India, and for that matter ol 
the whole world. And if you have the iaith, it can 
even be a means of salvation, hbr me tlie mother, 
the Gita, and the takli are as good as synonyms.” 

And let it be remembered that he who has . 
said this is no bundle of emotions but one whose 
intellect is equalled only by his passion to reduce 
everything that he preaches to practice, and 
is unsurpassed by that of any other of our 
intellectuals, 

A Tough Lot 

But I had a tough job with another batch 
who appeared to me to have come only tt. 
scoff. But to talk with such people is a good 
exercise in patience, and one ought to have 
plenty of this exercise nowadays. “ What do 
you think of the international situation ? Wbt' 
do you think will win ? ’’ was the question 
with which they started. 

“ You had better reserve that question for 
bigger people, for those who know. I am auv 
ignoramus in these matters, ” 

“ But don’t you think socialism is going to bc: 
the order of the day at the end of the war ?” 

“ What if ? ” 

“ You would welcome it in India ? 

“ I would welcome socialism of Gandhiji’s • 
conception, ” 

“Is Gandhiji’s conception different from 
Jawaharlal’s conception ? “ 

*Tt is different from the prevailing conception. 

“ But what about Jawaharlal’s ? ” 

“Yes, if you please, it is different from. 
Jawaharlal’s. ” 

“ How ? " 



175 


22, 1S40] HARIJAN 


One is based on industrialisation; tbe other, 
e. Gandhiji’s. is based on its opposite, ” 

Oh, oh ! ’* the friend exclaimed banteringly 
or incredulously or both. 

“ But what is that brand of Gandhiji’s socia- 
lism ? Has he written any book on it ? ” 

He has not written a book, but he has 
written enough to explain his attitude. And if 
you have not read his numerous articles in 
Harijan, I am afraid I shall have to ask you 
to read them all before I engage in a discussion 
with you. ” 

Another friend immediately switched on to a 
fresh subject: “ Which of the two you think 
is more communal — the Muslim League or the 
-Hindu Mahasabha ? ’ ” 

'‘How will my answer help you?’' 

“ No, r am a student and I want to know. “ 
“There is nothing to choose between the two/’ 
“ So you think they are equally communal.” 

“ I think so. There may be a diflference of 
degree, but there is no difference of quality. *’ 

“ Oh, is that so ? Without Hindu-Muslim 
-unity, you think, there is no Swaraj, and 
without Hindu-Muslim unity there is no 
■satyagraha either. So there is to be no Swaraj 
for ever?” 

“ Why ? Don’t think I am an unbeliever in 
Hindu-Muslim unity like you.” 

“ But I would put the quekion differently. 
Supposing Swaraj was possible without Hindu- 
Muslim unity, would you reject it?” 

“Swaraj without Hindu-Muslim unity is a 
contradiction in terms, ” 

“ But I say — suppose ? ” 

“ But why should I suppose a contradiction ? ” 
“ Why can’t the Hindus have Swaraj without 
the help of the Muslims ? ” 

“ And the Muslims without the help of the 
Hindus — you might have added ! They would 
have no Swaraj, but either suicidal strife or the 
perpetual domination of a third party to whom 
either will continue to look for help and protec- 
tion. ” 

“But if we continue to quarrel, why do you 
throw the blame on the third party?” 

“ Let the third party disappear and see if we 
can combine or not. If we cannot, then we 
shall have at least the satisfaction of blaming 
■ourselves and not others.” 

“ That satisfaction you will then have to your 
heart’s content, for you will never unite. ” 

“I know that we are not going to unite,” 
'said I a little sharply, “if we go on chopping 
logic. ” 

“Then you are going to unite because you 
-are hoping that you will unite? You think 
hope is better than logic?” 

“I thought your logic at least was your strong 
point, but I was mistaken. You might have 
asked me, ‘ Is want of logic better than logic?’ 
But you ask me, ‘ Is hope better than logic ? ’ 
I say hope is better than hopelessness. ” 


” No, what I meant to say was that you 
seemed to rule out logic altogether, ” 

“If I did, I should not have wasted my breath 
upon you. I have been arguing with you not 
steering clear of all logic, ’* said I. 

“ But I am not without hope. I hope Hindu- 
Muslim unity may come. But it is not coining. 
And if it is not coming, why not do without 
it rather than wait for Swaraj until the Greek 
Kalends ? ” 

“ Again you are arguing for the sake of argu- 
ment, and if you will pardon me, it is either 
hypocrisy or self-deception that speaks in you. 
For you now forget that you started with ridi- 
culing Hindu-Muslim unity. ” 

“But what do you mean by having faith in 
Hindu-Muslim unity ? 

“ Now you have returned to the right track. You 
have no faith in it and you do not work for it. ” 

“ How is one to work for it ? By shouting 
Hindu-Muslim unity ? ” 

“No. By doing concrete acts contributing to 
that unity. I make you a very simple sugges- 
tion. If you have Muslim students in your 
class, try to befriend them and do little acts 
of service for them. You are all five Hindus. 
Supposing there was a sixth amongst you who 
was a Mussalman, I would expect you to 
behave with tbe Muslim friend with more 
courtesy and consideration than with the 
Hindu friends. For the Hindu friends will 
understand you even when you fail in courtesy ^ 
but nor the Muslim who might not understand 
you or forgive you. ” 

“ You reserve all your advice for Hindus ? ” 

“ How obtuse you are ! I am talking to a 
group of Hindu students. If I was talking to a 
group of Muslim students, I should give them 
the same advice with respect to their behaviour 
with a Hindu friend.” 

“ But how will that help the general question 
of Hindu-Muslim unity ? ” 

“ Don’t go about with the burden of the 
whole country upon your head. Be content with 
what you can do.” 

“ But I am behaving well with my Muslim 
friends.” 

“ Behave better, that’s all I can say.” 

Whether it is the defect of our present 
system of education or the prevailing tendencies, 
there appears to me to be a general eclipse of 
faith everywhere. Our appetite for talking and 
argument has been whetted, but somehow we 
have lost our moorings, we fight shy of patient 
plodding and want quick results. One might 
remind these friends of the present generation 
who revel in Western learning that ' it was 
Tennyson who sang : 

Wherefore thou be wise 
Cleave ever to the sunnier side of doubt, 

And cling to Faith beyond the forms of Faith ! 
She reels not the storm of warring wqrds. 

She brightens , at the clash of *yes‘ and *noV 



176 


HARIJAN 


[June 22, 1940 


She feels the sun is hid but for a night, 

She spies the summer through the winter bud. 
She tastes the fruit before the blossom falls, 

She hears the lark within the songless egg. 

She finds the fountain where they wailed ‘Mirage!* 

Sevagram, 10-6-40 M, D« 

QUESTION BOX 

CBy M. K. Gandhi) 

Meaning of Spinning Activities 

Q. It is an admitted fact that constructive 
activity keeps the political atmosphere pure and 
non-violent. You have recommended it for active 
satyagrahis. This activity can be carried on in a 
centre amongst Congressmen as also the villagers 
generally, which may include such people as 
old women etc. who take to spinning as un- 
employment insurance, as is done in A. L S. A. 
production centres. Your writings make one 
infer that you want active satyagrahis to confine 
constructive activity to Congressmen and parti- 
cularly in the direction of making them self- 
spinners and make them wear khadi of their 
own yarn; the khadi in the first instance to be 
brought from A. I. S. A. stores, until the 
Congressmen produce their own yarn. Confining 
attention to Congressmen or political Congressmen 
seems to be more practicable than starting a 
general khadi centre of spinning for wages. Is 
this a correct interpretation of your writing? 

A. Your interpretation is correct so far as it 
goes. I do not want the Congress organisation 
to be an indifferent or glorified copy of the 
A. I. S. A. It has to do the work that the 
A. I. S. A, does not do. Its motive will be pre- 
dominantly political, whereas that of the A. I, 
S. A., although it is a creation of the Congress, is 
purely philanthropic and economic. The Congress 
organisation aims at creating an army of non- 
violent' soldiers or. to drop the military termi- 
nology, a band of non-violent workers for the 
freedom of the country. The spinning work and^^ 
all the allied processes keep Congressmen busy 
and away from mischief. It will knit them to- 
gether in a brotherhood, it will give them an 
insight into village life, it will bring them in 
direct touch with the villagers, it will give them 
a hold on the economic condition of the masses 
as nothing else will do. it will lead them on to 
a study of the whole of the vast village problem, 
it will make them sink their petty or big 
differences and forget class, racial or religious 
distinctions. The charkha may or may not have 
all this potency inherent in it. I want Congress- 
men to impute all these implications to it. 

Test-tube Babies 

Q. You say that motherhood is sublime but sex 
is bad. From the spiritual and eugenic point of 
view donVyou agree that the test-tube technique 
of begetting babies is ideal since it altogether 
eliminates lust and carnality from procreation ? 


A. I would reconcile myself to your method, 
if carnality itself can be eradicated thereby. Sc 
long as I hold to the view that carnality pre- 
vents man or -woman from rising to the fullest’ 
height possible, so long must I rebel against 
these artificial methods of prpereation. Your 
method, as far as I can sec, can only result in 
multiplying idiots or monsters, not human beings, 
thrown into the sea of passions which it should 
be their pride to subjugate. But I own I belong 
to an age that is perhaps dying. The new age 
to come, when men and women will walk, if 
they at all do, only for pleasure but go to 
their work on wheels or ily to it, and when 
the institution of marriage and all it implies 
will be abolished, docs not enthuse me. 

How to Face a Lie 

Q. People believe in your sincerity when you 
sympathise with Britain and France in their 
struggle for existence, but some of us have 
scented a danger that the Indian capitalists may 
continue to employ you as a tool for keeping 
India calm when these capitalists are reaping 
rich profit as a result of this war. What steps 
are you taking to remove this suspicion? 

A. I propose to take no steps, even as I 
took none when I was accused of having one 
crore of rupees in the Bank of England. Lies 
are best left unanswered. They die of inanition. 
They have no * vitality of their own. They 
flourish on opposition. If my whole life is not 
suflScient answer to the lie referred to by you, 
no steps I can take will remove the impres- 
sion created by the lie. Mind you, 1 do not 
dispute the fact that the peaceful atmosphere 
created by my inaction benefits the capitalists, 
but it benefits the masses more than the capi- 
talists, for the inaction enables the masses to 
garner their non-violent strength which will 
enable them to deal effectively with capitalists 
and imperialism which covers them, 

Sevagram, 17-6-40 


Speeches and Writings 
By Gandhiji Rs. 4 + Postage 9 As. 
Available at Harijan Office — Poona 4. 


CONTENTS Page 

Non-violence and Khadi ... 

M. K. Gandhi 

169 

Rural PIumanity 

M. Subetlar 

170 

How TO Combat Hitlerism 

M. K. Gandhi 

172 

The Eclipse of Faith— II ... 

M. D. 

174 

Question Box 

M. K. Gandhi 

176 

Notes ; 



Spinning Competition 



IN Ramgarh 

M. K. G. 

171 

Duty of Indians Overseas M. K. G. 

172 

Caste Hindu Marries 



Harijan Girl 

M. K. G. 

173 

Another^Tribute 

M. K. G. 

173 

Adult Literacy 

M. K. G. 

173 


Aryabhushan Press. 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Pcona 4 
9<iMcni>tu>n Hrtes-lBiAUDrOne year, Rs. 4. Six months, Rs. 2-8. FOEEioiriOne year, Rs. 5-8 or 8 sh. or 2 ». 



Reg. No. B 3092 



Edttoi : MAHADEV CESAI 


VoL. VIII. No. 20 ] POONA — SATURDAY, JUNE 29. 1940 [ ONE ANNA 

THE ONLY CURE 


I propose to revert to one or two of the 
subjects dealt with casually in my talks with 
the students reported recently. The War has 
thrown everything into the melting-pot, including, 
I hope, all the pet theories of modern econo- 
mists. The world, it is said, is weary of violence 
and wars. So was it after the holocaust of 
1914-18, but at the end of 20 years we are in 
the midst of another which is far more terrible 
and which might cast in deeper roots of hatred 
and revenge. The reason briefly is that we are 
longing for the termination of violence but we 
are innocent of the implicatio«ns of that termina- 
tion. There are obvious difficulties in the way. 
There are certain things v^hich have become 
part and 'parcel of on..; life, e. g. machinery and 
industrialisation, which w.. assume havj "o remain 
until the end • ot time. W- agree that unem- 
ployment is a curse, bul: when we seek itn cure 
v;e raL,e <nclusiriahsr;t:u).i :,ia' ed. Capicahsm 
is a curse, but whilsc k has r.o go, vve want 
iiiduEtiialisation to remain. 

The rcsulis of industrialisation may be studied 
:r. a remarkabk aiLicie on Machinery by Father 
Lailcmand in a recent issue of The "H-eiv Review. 
It may be remembered that he deals strictly 
w:tJ the economic results. The conclusions he 
has drawn from his facts are different from 
those I should like to draw. But let us sum- 
marise the fact^ and figures he has taken from 
La Vie Intellectuelle of October 25, 1936. The 
first effect of machinery, he suys, is that it has 
thrown men out of work: 

“ Today excavations are carried out with the 
Ingersoll spade which does the work of four hundred 
men. In 1850 a man with a pickaxe could extract 
800 tons of ore in one year; today with an electric 
drill he could easily extract 24,000 tons; in 1850 
we got 100 h. p. per man in a power station; in 
the Dnieper Electric Central they get 20,000 h. p. 
per worker employed. In short, man has come to 
make himself very cheap, and he works to make 
himself as cheap as possible. ” 

All ‘ progress ’ means an increasing fall in 
man s value. 

“ Motorcar-making took 1,197 hours in 1914, 
but 93 in 1934. In 1932 one worker made 453 
bricks a day ; by 1934 he could make 1,500. At 
the cigarette factory of Ivry ( in France ) which 
turns out 2,500 cigarettes a minute, 250 women 
were required in 1932, but not more than two in 
1935 ; in three years machinery had multiplied pro- 


duction and divided human labour by 125. It has 
been calculated that in 1934, 250 men had to work 
for a total of 2,000 hours to coal a trans-atlantic 
boat ; by the following year two men working 16 
hours in all could supply it with an equivalent total 
energy in the shape of oil ; twelve months had 
sufficed to reduce human labour to a mere fraction 

(4/125 r 

These figures refer to coaling. In other kinds 
of work the reduction may be much greater. 
But the reduction of human labour, far from 
adding .to the flow of milk and honey or to 
the stock of human comfort, or even to the 
stock of energy, has spelt the doom of many. 
The main activity of numerous men is rauscu- 
lar, and machinery has put crowds of them oat 
of action. Even skilled libour is affecced. “With 
the ever-gro^/ing sine of the loachinery which 
produces energy fewer and fewer sldlled hands 
are required; one solitary k-^bourcr can command 
a current of 20,000 .olts ia as kisurr'y r: v^'ly 
as a currenc of 2,000 vch:'/' 

It is an illusion to think that tho uncaiipk)y- 
ment created by increasing machinery is tempo- 
rary as new avenues of employment are creat- 
ed by greacer production. 

“Facts,” says Father Lallemaud, “have repeatedly 
gone against so alluring a theory. In the last period 
of prosperity, unemployment went on rising steadily 
amidst plenty; it rose sharply as early as 1920, years 
before the world-wide economic crisis; it went on in 
the U. S. A. though that country is far €rom being 
exhausted and its Government devised endless 

measures to stop unemployment According to 

M. P. Barraud some thirty million men have 
nothing to rely on but their muscles; up to now these 
thirty millions were maintaining about one hundred 
million dependants. They have now been displaced 
by all sorts of machines and gadgets; who is going 
to feed their dependants? The problem is real and 
can only become more and more acute as progress 
is registered; machinery will more and more encroach 
on the field of human labour, for cheap energy is 
essential to competitive business.” 

Shortening of working hours and giving more 
leisure to the workers creates a problem which 
•‘knows only of expensive solutions”. 

Prof. Lallemand next describes the second 
consequence of machinery. Production has 
become over-abundant: 

“In the course of the last two centuries, as 
productive energy passed from f h. p. to 8 h. p., 
the energy found in the world’s crops grew from 



178 


HAEIJAH [ June 29, 1940 


2i000 calories per head to 160,000. This does not 
imply that all and everybody has that amount at 
hand, but it measures the total stock available in 
1933 all the word over. However much the world’s 
population may have increased, the caloric value of 
each man’s diet has been multiplied by eighty. The 
trouble is that all could not have free access to that 
gigantic stock of foodstuffs; in consequence its value 
went down and production went down as well; hence 
wages fell, the buying power of the working masses 
decreased, and consequently also the demand for 
foodstuffs.” 

Big business believes in the fetish of figures, 
and as soon as the neat equilibrium of their 
balance-sheets is threatened, they destroy surplus 
goods, rarefy the goods, keep up the price and 
produce starvation in plenty. “In 1934 the 
remedy turned into a panacea, they destroyed 

886.000 wagons of wheat, 144,000 wagons of rice, 

32.000 bags of coffee, 12 million tons of sugar, 
6 million pigs, and 800,000 head of cattle. In 
some cases they went one step further: they did 
not only destroy the vine grapes, they rooted out 
the vine stocks. They threw into the manure 
pit, they burned in furnaces, they destroyed at 
will ; but to do so with an easy conscience, 
they forgot that whole districts were starving 
and that thirty million .unemployed and their 
seventy million (hundred million?) dependants 

were looking at them (Thus) overproduction 

was not real, but what looked like overproduc- 
tion was only maldistribution,” 

Father Lallemand touches on another aspect of 
machinery with which we are not concerned, viz. 
the glut and consequent suicide of capital,* The 
tragedy of the whole argument is that, while the 
writer’s facts and figures drive one irresistibly to 
the conclusion that more machinery will simply 
hasten the doom of man, the writer comes to a 
different conclusion. “ We shall never have enough 
machinery,” he says, “until every citizen has 
his full meals every day, his own house, his car, 
his radio, and his television set, his holidays, 
and his old-age pension; we shall not have 
sufficiently rationalized distribution until we see 
to it that everybody has bread before any- 
body is choked with cake. ” Is not this a con- 
tradiction. in terms ? We have seen that ‘the 
progress of machinery has not. enabled every 
citizen to have his full meal, his house, his car, 
etc. It has on the contrary put one man in 
possession of abundance, several houses, several 
cars, and left thousands without any of those 
things. Will rationalized ” distribution do 
the trick? And how can you rationalize distri- 
bution unless and until you prevent a man from 
living on the labour of another ? There is 
something in large-scale machinery which dis- 
ables man from living on his own labour and 
makes him rely on the labour of others. No 
matter how much you rationalize distribution 
and deprive large-scale machinery of its sting, 
you cannot deprive it of its natural property 
of displacing labour. If there are thirty million 


men in America entirely dependent on muscular 
labour with one hundred million people to. 
support out of their earnings, there are in 
India about five times as many people dependent 
entirely on muscular labour and a proportionately 
lai'ger number of dependants to support out of 
their earnings. No amount of rationalization can 
conjure away this unemployment and starvation. 

Father Lallemand goes on to describe “ration- 
alized distribution”. 

“A system of distribution of g;oods, commodities, 
services should start from ihc true view qf man; 
it must be based on the worth of man, and proceed 
from a sincere esteem and respect for everything 
that is human. Were our economic system based 
on man’s value, work would be made easily access- 
ible to all men, the remuneration for work would 
be compatible, with man’s worth and duties, provision 
would be made for an amount of leisure sufficient 
for all non-economic tasks. 

Well, ” tlie true view of mem ” is that he will 
not be made to slave for another, and that he 
will not exploit another for his own gain. This 
is impossible except under a structure of society 
based on handicrafts, ensuring man an honourable 
subsistence for the work that he can cheerfully 
give. Edward Carpenter hid the finger on the 
root cause of our present ills when he said that 
” nothing but the general abandonment of the 
system of living on the labour of others will 
avail. There is no other way- This, whether as 
between individuals or as between nations, is 
and has been since the beginning of the world 
the root cause of war.” 

The mere securing of the ownership of the 
instruments of production by the State will not 
end the evil.' Unless large-scale machinery mak- 
ing giant enterprises possible disappears, exploita- 
tion of man by man or of nation by nation 
will not disappear, and unless large-scale machi- 
nery disappears the devaluation of man’s energy 
and man’s slavery to machine will not disappear. 
The present economic structure has made the 
problem of over-population glaringly visible, not 
because there is real over- population but because 
there is the over-population of idly rich people. 
A communist or socialist structure can eliminate 
the idly rich, but inasmuch as it insists on 
industrialisation it will not eliminate parasitism, 
which is inherent in the ownership, whether by 
the State or by an individual, of large-scale 
machinery, and which is at the root of all 
violence and wars. Unless this curse of parasitism 
disappears there is no end to violence or war 
and no healing of nations. And unless truth and 
non-violence are reflected in all national and 
individual activity,— a thing that is possible only 
under a handicraft civilisation — parasitism will 
not cease. To quote Edward Carpenter again; 

“ Truth and simplicity of life are not mere fads ; 
they are something more than abstractions and private 
affairs, something more than social ornaments. They 
are vital matters which lie at the root of national 
well-being. They are things which in their adoption 



June 29, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


179 


or in their denial search right through the tissue 
of public life. To live straightforwardly by your own 
labour is to be at peace with the world. To Jive 
on the labour of others is not only to render 
your life false at honie^ but it is to emroach on 
those around you to invite resistance and hostility; 
and when such a principle of life is favoured by a 
whole people, that people will not only be in a state 
of internal strife, but will assuredly raise up external 
enemies on its borders who will seek its destruction.** 

In other words, a country organised politically 
and economically on the non-violent principle 
can have no internal strife and no external enemy. 
Sevagram, 24-6-40 M. D. 

CUEIOUS OBJECTIONS 

( By K. G. Mashruwala ) 

I came across recently three persons whose 
objections to khadi and the charkha appeared 
curious to me. One of them, a captain of a group 
of students, told me that while he had prevail- 
ed upon every one of his comrades to sign 
either the Independence or the Satyagraha Pledge 
and ply the charkha regularly as required by it, 
he himself did not sign either of the pledges 
as a protest against the general character of the 
spinning clause which did not make any dis- 
tinction between leaders and followers, i. e. 
men of superior ability or importance and the 
masses, but imposed a common discipline upon 
all. He believed in khadi culture and was con- 
vinced that the economic reconstruction of society 
must be mainly based on khadi and village 
industries, but he was unable to admit that, 
therefore, it was necessary for people like 
Gandhiji, Jawaharlal or Vallabhbhai to spend any 
part of their precious time in themselves spinning. 
He did not believe in leaders who are unable 
to attract followers unless they themselves do 
what they ask their followers to do. I told him 
that when spinning became as widely re-establish- 
ed in the Indian home as, for instance, cook- 
ing or tilling, it was possible that spinning by 
everyone may not retain such importance as to 
become part of. a political organisation. If one 
believed in the importance of the charkha, then 
whether one is a leader or an orderly one 
must prove one’s faith by plying it. But my 
friend insisted that, if twenty years of regular 
spinning by Gandhiji and the Sardar and so 
many alMndia leaders left the Congressmen cold, 
there was something wanting either in the 
leadership or the charkha cult. As he was con- 
vinced of the soundness of the charkha cult, he 
must lay the blame upon the leadership. He, 
for one, hoped to spread the charkha without 
himself or the important members of his group 
being required to spin as a 'condition precedent 
to its acceptance. 

Another friend told me that he was convinced 
that khadi was a good bread-giver to lakhs of 
villagers and should be patronised. But he was 
unable to do it, because khadi had come to be 
associated with high character. It was hypocritical 


to wear khadi without simultaneously becoming a 
man o£ plain living and high thinking”. As he 
led the life of an ordinary worldly man, he dare 
not touch khadi. I told him that it was good 
that he attached to khadi not only economic 
but also spiritual value, hut the economic value 
was capable of being detached from its spiritual 
value, and even men of no character would, 
by wearing khadi to the extent of its economic 
value, render service to their countrymen. More- 
over, since in his mind khadi was associated 
with character, his taking to khadi may without 
any conscious effort on his part elevate his 
character also. As the evolution would be un- 
conscious, it would also be painless, and to that 
extent all the more welcome. But he ended by 
saying that he was unable to feel the call yet. 

The third friend said that he did not require 
any argument to feel convinced of the relation- 
ship between spinning and non-violence, and 
considered the charkha to be indispensable in a 
non-violent civilisation. But he had not yet begun 
to spin, because he did not want to make a 
beginning until he felt convinced that, once he 
began to spin, the charkha would take such posses- 
sion of him that a day without spinning would 
create a blank in his life. If he was not till this 
day feeling something amiss without spinning, 
where was the guarantee that he would not give 
up the charkha after commencing it ? If that was 
possible, the spinning in the interval would be 
an act of hypocrisy. I told him that until he 
began to spin he would not be able to give 
the charkha an opportunity to take such posses- 
sion of him as he desired. But, even at the risk 
of the charkha dropping away again from his 
life, there was nothing wrong in taking to it 
as an innocent hobby or a pleasant relaxation. 
But he, too, did not feel the call as yet. 

All the three visitors were spiritually-minded, 
intelligent young men of promise. All of them 
expressed their conviction about the soundness 
of the khadi doctrine, two of them even more 
forcibly than I myself have the courage to do. 
And *yet they would not do the one thing which 
their convictions would naturally make us expect 
from them. What was wrong here ? I came to the 
conclusion that the incongruity in all the cases 
is attributable to the training which we the 
people of the middle class receive at home and 
in the school. The only labour which we are 
taught to perform is that connected with books, 
paper and pen. For physical development we 
may take walks, go to gymnasiums, play cricket 
or football. For indoor recreation we may 
play chess, cards, etc. But, except during the 
unavoidable absence of a servant or the ladies, 
we may never employ our limbs to produce 
or manage any of our needs ourselves. Not 
only are we not taught to do them, but are 
taught to make our condition worse, we arc 
trained to regard such work as below the 
dignity of an intelligent and ambitious man. 
The same training also inculcates in us love for 



180 


HAEIJAN 


[ June 29, 1940 


flimsy, cheap and tawdry things. The result is 
that even when reason is convinced, the will to 
follow its dictates is lacking if it demands sacri- 
fice. So we find the paradox of men subscribing 
to a general proposition but finding an excuse 
satisfactory to themselves for not enforcing it in 
their own lives. 



‘l-jcLtijan 

1 

June 29 


£940 


BOTH HAPPY AND UNHAPPY 
( M. K. Gandhi ) 

It was on the 18th inst.- that I expressed the 
.following hope in Harijan: 

“If my argument has gone home, is it not time 
for us to declare our changeless faith in non-violence 
of the strong and say we do not seek to defend 
our liberty with the force of arms but we will 
defend it with the force of non-violence ? ” 

On the 21st the Working Committee felt 
unable to enforce such faith in action when the 
time for it came. For the Committee never 
before had an occasion to test their faith. At 
the last meeting they had to lay down a course 
of action for meeting impending anarchy within 
and danger of aggression from without. 

I pleaded hard with the Committee : “ If you 
have faith in non-violence of the strong, now 
is the time to act up to it. It does not matter 
that many parties do not believe in non-violence 
whether of the strong or of the weak. Probably 
that is all the greater reason for Congressmen 
to meet the emergency by non-violent action. 
For if all were non-violent, there could be no 
anarchy and there would be no question of 
anybody„ arming for meeting aggression from 
without. It is because Congressmen represent a 
party of non-violence, in the midst of parties 
who do not believe in it, that it becomes 
imperative for Congressmen to show that they 
are well able to act up to their faith, " 

But the members of the Working Committee 
felt that Congressmen would not be able to act 
up to it. It would be a new experience for 
them. They were never before called upon 
to deal with such a crisis. The attempt made 
by me to form peace brigades to deal with 
communal riots and the like had wholly failed. 
Therefore they could not hope for the action 
contemplated. 

My position was different. With the Congress 
non-violence was always a policy. It was open 
to it to reject it if it failed. If it could not 
bring political and economic independence, it was 
of no use. For me non-violence is a creed. I 
must act up to it whether I am alone or have 
companions. Since propagation of non-violence is 
the mission of my life, I must pursue it in all 
weathers. I felt that now was the time for me 
to prove my faith before God and man. And 


so I asked for absolution from the Committee. 
Hitherto I have been responsible for guiding 
the general policy of the Congress. I could no 
longer do so when fundamental differences were 
discovered between them and me. They readily 
recognised the correctness of my attitude. And 
they gave me the absolution. Once more they 
have justified the trust imposed in them. They 
have been true to themselves. They had not 
the confidence in themselves or those whom they 
represented, that they could express in their 
actions the required measure of non-violence. 
And so they made the only choice they could 
honestly make. It was a tremendous sacrifice 
they made — the sacrifice of the prestige that 
the Congress had gained in the world for 
unadulterated non-violence, and the dissolution 
of the unwritten and unspoken bond between 
them and me. But though it is a break in the 
common practice of a common ideal or policy, 
there is no break in the friendship of over 
twenty years’ standing, 

I am both happy and unhappy over the result. 
Happy because I have been able to bear the 
strain of the break and have been given the 
strength to stand alone. Unhappy because my 
word seemed to lose the power to carry with 
me those whom it was my proud privilege to 
carry all these many years which seem like 
yesterday. But I know that, if God shows me the 
way to demonstrate the efficacy of non-violence 
of the strong, the break will prove to have 
been temporary. If there is no way, they will 
have justified their wisdom in bearing the 
wrench of letting me go my way alone. If that 
tragic discovery of my impotence is in store for 
me, I hope still to retain the faith that has 
sustained me all these years and to have humility 
enough to realise that I was not fit enough 
instrument to carry the torch of non-violence 
any further. 

But this argument and doubt are based upon 
the assumption that the members of the Work- 
ing Committee represent the feeling of the vast 
majority of Congressmen. They would wish and 
I hope that the vast majority of Congressmen 
had in them the non-violence of the strong. 
No one would be more glad than they to dis- 
cover that they had underrated Congressmen’s 
strength. The probability, however, is that there 
is no majority but only a good minority which 
represents the non-violence of the strong. It 
should be remembered that the matter does not 
lend itself to argument. The members of the 
Working Committee had all the argument 
before ' them. But non-violence, which is a quality 
of the heart, cannot come by an appeal to the 
brain. Therefore what is required is a quiet but 
resolute demonstration of non-violent strength. 
The opportunity comes to everyone almost daily. 
There are communal clashes, there are dacoities, 
there are wordy duels. In all these things those 
who are truly non-violent can and will demon- 
strate it. If it is shown in an adequate measure, 
it will not fail to infect their surroundings. 




June 29, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


181 


I am quite clear that there is not a single Con- 
gressman who disbelieves in the efficacy of non- 
violence out of sheer cussedness. Let the Congress, 
men who believe that the Congress should adhere 
to non-violence in dealing with internal disorders 
or external aggression, express it in their daily 
conduct. Non-violence of the strong cannot be a 
mere policy. It must be a creed, or a passion, 
if ‘creed’ is objected to. A man with a passion 
expresses it in every little act of his. Therefore 
he who is possessed by non-violence will express 
it in the family circle, in his dealings with 
neighbours, in his business, in Congress meetings, 
in public meetings, and in his dealings with 
•opponents. It is because it has not expressed 
itself in this way among Congressmen that the 
members of the Working Committee rightly 
concluded that Congressmen were not ready for 
non-violent treatment of internal disorders or 
external aggression. Embarrassment caused by non- 
violent action would move established authority 
to yield to popular will. But such action has 
obviously no play in the face of disorders. We 
have to court death without retaliation and with 
no malice or anger towards those who bring 
about disorder. It is easy enough to see that 
non-violence required here is of a wholly different 
type from what the Congress has known hither- 
to. But it is the only non-violence that is true 
and that can save the world from self-destruction. 
This is a certainty sooner or later, sooner rather 
than later, if India cannot deliver the message 
of true non-violence to a world whiqh wants to 
be saved from the curse of wars and does not 
know how to find the deliverance. 

Sevagram, 24-6-40 

P. S. After the foregoing was written and 
typed, I saw Jawaharlal’s statement. His love 
for and confidence in me peep out of every 
sentence referring to me. The foregoing does 
not need any amendment. It is better for the 
reader to have both the independent reactions. 
Good must come out of this separation. 

M- K. G- 

NON-VIOLENCE CU3£ 
NON-COOPERATION 

( By Kailas Nath Katju ) 

In the war that is now raging nothing has 
affected me more than the plight of refugees 
from war zones. They flee out of fear or are 
evacuated by their own armies. In the midst 
of terrible arms of every kind everywhere they 
are helpless, lost. Contemplation of recent 
happenings has, through the valley of doubts 
and misgivings, led me to the truth that non- 
violence is the weapon of the strong, an d 
that non-violence with non-cooperation at its 
side is the most potent weapon of defence and 
the surest remedy foe the ills of mankind. 
Truly this doctrine is excellent as ,it makes 
warriors even of those who may be feeble of 
body but stout of heart and of mind. It is a 
weapon which can be wielded by all — men, women 
and children — and which does not classify nationals 


into soldiers and civilians, combatants and non- 
combatants. In the war of non-violence every- 
body is a soldier who knows not of flight when 
danger approaches but faces and courts death 
without malice, but in no circumstances co- 
operates with the enemy. Nowadays Govern- 
ments run away leaving the people to obey the 
orders of the invader. People who obey the laws 
of non-violence never obey such orders but die. 

It is said that these are counsels of perfection 
and take no account of human nature. But all 
through recorded history violence has been almost 
deified. Poets have sung of it, and people 
have been taught during ages to acclaim it as 
something grand and noble. Non-violence coupl- 
ed with non-cooperation has had no such adven- 
titious advantages. It has not been boosted. It 
has been often dismissed as being the attribute 
of a perfect yogi, of almost a divine man. 
Humanity has been so far engaged in glorifying 
the act and art of killing. The nobility of 
dying without killing has never been fairly put 
before mankind. 

The futility of dependence upon armed strength 
has been conclusively demonstrated in this war. 
Armaments are increasing strength for destructive 
purposes. Their cost will bleed people white. 
And there is no war to end war. Each war 
leads to another. Hatred breeds hatred, and is 
never killed by more violent hatred. In the midst 
of war imagination is captivated by tales of 
heroism, of matchless bravery in killing the oppo- 
nent. The horrors of war recede to the back- 
ground, for the time being. As for us in India, 
who have no desire to govern others, no imperi- 
alistic ambitions, let us be true to the genius of 
our civilisation and its culture, and renounce any 
desire to kill others as an instrument of national 
policy. Let us, in times of danger, hold fast 
to our homes without fear or terror, wield 
the weapon of complete non-cooperation with 
the enemy, cheerfully pay the price of death, 
if that be demanded. People have nothing to 
fear. Who can part us from our motherland ? 
I am writing this under the shadow of Jagan- 
nath — the Lord of the World — whose temple 
remains across centuries. Wars and warlike 
methods of defence have failed wholly in the 
past — that is the teaching of history. Non- 
violence with non-cooperation with the enemy 
may develop all that is highest .in us, and may 
satisfy the human craving for acts of heroism, 
and gallantry. Let us, under Mahatma Gandhijfs 
leadership, give it a chance. 

Puri, 13-6-40 

Just Published 

The long awaited one-volume cheaper edition of 
Gandhijfs The Story of My Experiments with Truth 
( Autobiography ) has now been published by the 
Navajivan Press, Kalupur, Ahmedabad. This edition 
contains a few photographs which add to the value 
of the book. Price Rs. 4, Postage 10 As. extra. 

Satyagraha in South Africa — by Gandhiji* 
Companion volume to Autobiography, 

Price Rs. 4-8-0 + postage 9 As. extra. 

Available at Harijan Office — Poona 4, 



182 


H AHiU 


GANDHIJI ABSOLVED 

The following is the full text of the Working 
Committee’s declaration of policy: 

The Working Committee have been deeply 
moved by the' tragic events that have taken 
place in Europe in startling succession and in 
particular by the misfortunes that have befallen 
the people of France. These events have already 
had far-reaching consequences, and they arc 
likely to be followed by other happenings 
which will lead to novel situations and complex 
problems. 

Ever since the commencement of the European 
war the Congress has followed a policy which 
was based on its principles and on the attitude 
of the British Government towards the demand 
that India should function as a free and in- 
dependent country. This policy was confirmed 
in the Ramgarh resolution. The manner of the 
application of this policy will necessarily depend 
on the situation which changes from day to 
day. Problems which were distant are now 
near at hand and may soon demand solution. 
The problem of the achievement of national 
freedom has now to be considered along with 
the allied one. its maintenance and the defence 
of the country against possible external aggres- 
sion and internal disorder. 

The war in Europe, resulting from a desire for 
imperialist domination over other peoples and 
countries and a suicidal race in armaments, has 
led to human sorrow and misery on a scale 
hitherto unknown. It has demonstrated the in- 
efficacy of organised violence, on however- vast a 
scale, for the defence of national freedom and 
the liberties of peoples. It has shown beyond 
a doubt that warfare cannot lead to peace and 
freedom; and the choice before the world is 
uttermost degradation and destruction through 
warfare or the way of peace and non-violence 
on a. basis of freedom for all peoples. Mahatma 
Gandhi has presented to the peoples of the 
world, crying for relief from the crushing burden 
of war, a weapon in the shape of organised non- 
violence designed to take the place of war for 
the defence of a people’s rights and freedom 
against armed aggression. He feels that at this 
critical phase in the history of man the Con- 
gress should enforce this ideal by itself declaring 
that it does not want that India should maintain 
armed forces to defend her freedom against 
external aggression or internal disorder. 

While the Working Committee hold that the 
Congress must continue to adhere strictly to 
the principle of non-violence in their struggle 
for independence, the Committee cannot ignore 
the present imperfections and failings in this 
respect of the human elements they have to deal 
with, and the possible dangers in a period of tran- 
sition and dynamic change, until the Congress 
acquired non-violent control over the people 
in adequate nieasure and the people have imbib- 
ed sufficiently the lesson of organised non- 


[ June 29, 1940 


violence. The Committee have deliberated over the- 
problem that has thus arisen and have come to 
the conclusion that they are unable to go the full 
length with Gandhiji. But they recognise that he 
should be free to pursue his great ideal in his 
own way, and therefore absolve him from respon- 
sibility for the programme and activity which 
the Congress has to pursue under the condi- 
tions at present prevailing in India and the world 
in regard to external aggression and internal 
disorder. 

Many of the problems which the Working 
Committee have considered in this connection 
are not of the present, though they may be of 
the near future. The Committee wish to make 
it clear that the methods and basic policy of 
non-violence in the national struggle for freedom 
continue with full force and are not affected in 
the least by the inability to extend it to the 
region of national defence. 

The War Committees that are being formed 
are definitely aimed at increasing the war effort. 
In view of the Congress policy, they cannot be 
supported, and Congressmen cannot participate 
in them or contribute to war funds, nor can 
Congressmen associate themselves, under present 
political conditions, with Government-controlled 
Civic Guards. 

Congress committees should organise, where- 
ever necessary, people in villages and other areas 
for self-defence and in order to maintain a sense 
of public security in their respective areas. This 
should be done on a non-communal basis and 
in full co-operation with all other groups 
interested in this task. 

In view of the difficult times that loom ahead, 
it is essential that the Congress should function 
as an active and disciplined organisation. Provin- 
cial Committees are enjoined to take necessary 
steps for this purpose. They should realise that 
it is of urgent and vital importance that the 
Congress should function in this way in these 
days of crisis, and should not be merely a roll 
of vast numbers of inactive members. All 
members of the executive committees, in particular, 
are expected to take a continuous and active 
part in the Congress work, and those who are 
unwilling or unable to do so are failing in their 
duty to the country and are of no service to 
the organisation. 

The critical situation that faces the world 
today requires vigilant attention and action 
whenever needed. For this purpose the Working 
Committee will meet at frequent intervals, and 
all members must keep in readiness to obey 
an urgent summons. The All India Congress 
Committee should be summoned to meet in. 
the last week of July. 


Congress and War Crisis 

Price Re.* 1+2 As. postage. 

Self-Restraint v, Self-Indulgence Parts I & II. 
Price Ra 1+3 As. postage, for each. 

Available at Harijan Office— Poona 4. 



June 29, 1940 ] HARIJAN iSS 


WHAT THE MASNAVI SAYS 

( B j; M- K. Gandhi ) 

I gladly publish the following sent to me by 
Advocate Rustomji Andhyarujina of Bombay; 

In the latest issue of Harijan while dealing 
with the letter of a Khan Bahadur from Delhi you 
write the following lines of eternal truth : 

‘ Religions are not for separating man from one 
another, they are meant to bind them.’ (Page 157^ 
2nd column ) 

These lines remind me of the immortal words of 
a famous Persian poet put into the mouth of God 
who addresses Moses in verse 14 of the poem. viz. 

‘Thou hast come to this earth to unite; thou 
hast not come to this earth to separate.’ 

Original : 

To barac Vasl kardcrn amadi. 

Na barac Fasl kardan amadu 

I give below a faithful translation of the whole 
poem in order to show the beauty and the grandeur 
of the truth contained in the above verse: 

‘ Moses once saw on the road a shepherd who 
was exclaiming thus; “Oh God Almighty! 

Tell me where Thou art, so that I may become 
Thy servant, stitch Thy heavy shoes, comb Thy hair, 

Kiss Thy hand, rub Thy feet, and sweep the floor 
for Thee to sleep. 

If Thou wouldst fall ill in future, like Thy kith 
and kin I would grieve for Thee. 

Oh my Lord, my life is sacrificed to Thee, to- 
gether with my children and all the property that 
I own. 

Aye, all my sheep are sacrificed to Thee : every 
call of ‘ hae-ha ’ of mine addressed to my wayward 
sheep is for Thy remembrance 1” 

In this strain that shepherd was speaking %vhen 
INIosss sp^e to him thus : “ Whom art thou 

addressing ? *’ 

He replied, “ I am addressing Him who created 
us, the One from whom became manifest this earth 
and this revolving celestial globe (Charkh). ” 

Moses exclaimed : “ Alas, thy head has become 
arrogant and discourteous ; thou hast ceased to be a 
Musalman; thou hast turned an infidel. 

If thou dost not tie up ( stop ) these words in 
thy palate, the fire ( of Hell ) will spread out and 
consume the whole world. " 

The poor shepherd cried in agony ; “ Oh Moses, 
thou hast stitched my mouth; the repentance that 
' thou hast caused in me has consumed my soul. " 

He tore his robe into tatters, heaved a burning 
Sigh, set his face towards the forest and disappeared 
in its midst. 

A voice reached Moses from God saying : Why 

didst thou separate my slave from Me ? 

Thou hast come to this earth to unite ; thou 
hast not come to this earth to separate, 

Knowsst thou that We do not see the exterior 
nor the words ; W-e see only the interior .and the 
real thing.” 

No sooner did Moses hear these words of censure 
from^ the Almighty God than he ran after the 
shepherd in the thickness of the wood. 

At last Moses was able to find Him out in the 
wilderness. The Prophet told him ; “ Good news for 
thee! for, God has given me permission to tell thee, 
do ^ not worry about the conventional modes and forms 
whilst addressing Me, but instead speak out whatever 
thy narrow heart prompts thee to speak. 

( From Masnavi-e-Molavi ) * ” 

How I wish the beautiful truth embedded in 
these verses will be taken to heart by every 
one of us. Is not the Pakistan movement a 
denial of the obvious truth? 

Sevagram, 24-6-40 


QUESTION BOX 

( Bj; M. K. Gandhi ) 

Vows and Will Power 

Q. I am a genuine seeker after brahmacharya. 
But in spite of all my prayerful effort I am 
sinking deeper and deeper into self-indulgence. 
I cannot blame my partner for it. My circum- 
stances do not permit me to enforce the rule 
about segregation. 

You advocate and believe in the efficacy of 
vows. You have said in Harijan that *‘for the 
weak in mind and soul vows are like tonics.” 
But how will you administer this tonic to a case 
like mine who has not the strength of will to 
carry out the vow he has taken? Had I such 
a strong will, the necessity for taking vows 
would not have arisen. 

A, Let me bluntly tell you that I do not 
believe in your genuineness, not that you are 
wilfully lying. You are unconsciously un-genuine. 
If you are genuine, you will at least observe 
the rules of the game. You give up your case 
when you say you cannot segregate yourself 
from your wife for want of room, I have never 
heard such an excuse. If you take the vow, 
you must at least produce the necessary atmos- 
phere around you for its observance. Everyone 
who has successfully carried out the vow has 
invariably observed this first condition. If 
you are living in only one room, you should 
go elsewhere or send away your wife or have 
a relative to sleep in the same room. The 
question is how far you arc determined. It may 
be that you want to observe brahmacharya 
because you have read much about it and would 
like to be classed among brahmacharis. I know 
many sucji young men. If that is your case, 
you should not make the attempt. One must 
have a burning desire to live that life. If you 
have it, you will adopt the measures that all 
aspirants have invariably adopted. You are then 
bound to succeed. If you have not read Self^ 
restraint v. Self-indulgence, you should read it. 

What to Do ? 

Q. The situation in the country is becoming 
graver daily. Everywhere panic is growing. In 
certain parts armed gangs are already organis- 
ing themselves to take advantage of the ensuing 
anarchy in case the central power should dis- 
integrate or weaken. The danger may not be. 
imminent, but it would be folly to ignore its 
possibility. With all the education in non-violence 
which the country has received during the last 
twenty years, you will agree that it has not 
developed the sort of non-violence that can be 
effective in the face of anarchy and gangsterism. 
The Government is taking steps to organise the 
citizens for self-defence. What is the duty of 
those who look up to you for lead and guid- 
ance? Should they take part in these Govern- 
mental activities? If they should not, what else 
are they to do? Surely they cannot sit with, 
folded bands doing nothing. 



184 


HAEIJAN 


[ Jl^NE 29, 1940 


A. I am unable to say what the Congress 
will exactly do, in view of the recent statement 
of the Working Committee. If you believe in 
non-violent treatment of anarchy and the like, 
naturally you will prepare yourself and your 
neighbours and those whom you can influence 
for non-violent defence. I quite agree with you 
that no responsible person can sit idly by in 
these times. Violent preparation would need 
long previous training. Non-violent preparation 
means mental adjustment. Possibility of anarchy 
there undoubtedly is. But if you are non-vio- 
lent, you will not give way to fear. Do not 
anticipate anarchy, just as you do not anti- 
cipate death though you know that it is a 
certainty. If you are non-violent, you will be- 
lieve that there will be no anarchy. But if 
unfortunately it comes, you and your companions 
or followers will give your lives to prevent it. 
Those who give their lives, in trying to kill 
those whom they regard as robbers or mlscbief- 
makers, do no better, possibly they do worse. 
They risk their lives, and there is darkness after 
they are gone. Vv/'bat is more they may leave 
things worse by feeding the fire of violence by 
counter-violcncc. Those who die unresistirigly 
are likely tc still the fury of violence bv their 
wholly inncccnr sacrifice. But this truly no’*- 
violcnt action is not possible un!css it spring;, 
from a hccrc belief that i;e v/hom you fe-r 
and regard as a robber, dacoit, or worse, anti y. .. 
are on:, and th^t therefore it is better that 
you die at Li? hands than that he, j'our i^aoran: 
hrotiiC- , sneiilci clic Vi, youtti-'. 

Q. Tb? tv/j nations ihcory is by w.iy of a 
ccunterbicni to the deixiand for a Constiluenr. 
Assembly which is about as absurd as the other 
thing. To me tbe idea of a Coriaticuent Assem- 
bly ignores the existing conditions. 95 per cent 
of our people are illiterate, and nearly cent per 
cent arc svrayed by religious prejudices; and then 
there is the additional factor or corruption. And 
the fatal objection to a Constituent Assembly is 
that without a genuine desire on the part of 
the majority to give effect to safeguards the 
best of these are bound to prove unreal, 

A. Surely you cannot speak of the Consti- 
tuent Assembly side by side with Pakistan. The 
latter is wrong as I conceive it, in every way. 
There is nothing wrong in the idea of a Con- 
stituent Assembly. At its worst dangers surround 
its formation. Every big experiment is beset 
with dangers. These risks must be taken. Every 
effort should be made to minimise them. But 
there seems to me to be nothing like a Consti- 
tuent Assembly for achieving the common pur- 
pose. I admit the difficulty of illiteracy. Indeed 


effect of corruption because it is so widely dis- 
tributed. Thus in the Congress there are much 
corruption and jealousy, but they are confined 
to those few who run the machinery. But the 
vast body of Congressmen are untouched by 
these defects, though they profit by the good the 
Congress does. The danger you mention about 
safeguards will be reduced to the vanishing point 
if they come through a Constituent Assembly. 
For safeguards laid down by the representatives 
elected by the adult Muslim population will 
depend for their safety not on the goodwill or 
honesty of the majority but on the strength 
of the awakened Muslim masses. Fatality really 
attaches to your wrong conception of the 
majority, not to a Constituent Assembly, There 
is a majority of Hindus undoubtedly, but we 
observe that in popular political assemblies 
parties are not rigidly divided according to reli- 
gious opinions, but they are according to politi- 
cal and other opinions. Tnc curse uf commu- 
nalism became intensified by the niciouuction of 
separate eiccrora‘cs. Tlie cry for p:j*iition is the 
loiUcai outcome, but it ij also the stni-igest 
condemnaiion, of sepauitc cioctora:.,:.'. When we 
Lave leanu whuoin v.e sh;fil coasc think in 
terns of separate elr.ttoralvs r\rd two 
t bciicv'j in I' c ii-nau"- iioouno..:- Ij:. 't,,' f'atLr.:. 

tWM-oft)ie st'/oer h" the C' j:/ 

The Mus'uM vote wiu t\c so 

iar us their specie i internee i conL. 'h Arn' h.; 
communally, tiiereforVy tk:* iV if ihe.'e is u..\, 
t. bone a Coits A.uiC' ■» ‘ -y to 

u/i the pat'i. 0 i the rjMuus, Lur ^ ti’.*' j ^'.,''.111'* 
vo:c goes in lh7..u:‘ of paihhoi, 'lU'.v Lihe 
ckher to subrniiL x';ot co one but r-,. I'.uei:;. 

or to a civil war. As things arc, ah :• ihetn- 
sclvcs by passing rct;olutior'L; seoi 'g :hcir 

names in print. In practice all iX ifs f'cmahi \;!iere 
we are in a state of subjection. A C ions tit .:crit 
Assembly is a reality. It will not be a debating 
or legislative irresponsible body. By registering 
its final decision it will decide the fate of 
millions of human beings. You may oppose it. 
If you are successful in your opposition, there 
is the dread prospect of anarchy, not an orderly 
civil war. There seems to me to be no solution 
of the painful deadlock except through a 
Constitueiit Assembly. 

Sevagram, 24-6-40 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S, Radhakrishnan. (New Edition) Rs, 5-10-0. 
Postage 8 As. Available at Harijan ofiice-Poona 4* 

CONTENTS Page 

The Only Cure ... M. D. 177 

Curious Objections ... K. G. Mashruwala 179 
Both Hatpy And Unhappy LI. K. Gandhi 180 


adult suflEfage was introduced at the instance of 
Muslim nationalists including the late Ali 
Brothers. The danger of corruption is also there. 
The greater the organisation the less felt is the 


Non-violence cum Non- 


COOPERATION 

K. N. 

Katju 

181 

Gandhiji Absolved 


182 

What the Masnavi Says ... 

M. K. 

Gandhi 

183 

Question Box 

M. K. 

Gandhi 

183 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
Subscription Rates — INLAND : One ydar, Rs. 4; six months, Rs. 2-8. FOREIGN : One year, Rs. 5-8 or 8 sh. or 2 3. 



Ediios ; MAHADEV DESA9 


VoL. Viri. No. 21 ] POONA — SATURDAY. JULY 6. 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


TO EVERY BRITON 

(By M. K. Gandhi') 

In 1896 I addressed an appeal to every Briton 
in South Africa on behalf of my countrymen 
who had gone there as labourers or traders and 
their assistants. It had its effect. However im- 
portant it was from my viewpoint, the cause 
which I pleaded then was insignificant compared 
with the cause which prompts this appeal. 
I appeal to every Briton, wherever he may 
be now, to accept the method of non-violence 
instead of that of war for the adjustment 
of relations between nations and other matters. 
Your statesmen have declared that this is a 
war on behalf of democracy. There are many 
other reasons given in justification. You know 
them all by heart. I suggest that at the end 
of the war, whichever way it ends, there will 
be no democracy left to represent democracy. 
This war has descended upon mankind as a' 
curse and a warning. It is a curse i n asmuch as it 
is brutalising man on a scale hitherto unknown. 
All distinctions between combatants and non- 
combatants have been abolished. No one and 
nothing is to be spared. Lying has been 
reduced to an art. Britain was to defend small 
nationalities. One by one they have vanished, at 
least for the time being. It is also a warning. 
It is a warning that, if nobody reads the writing 
on the wall, man will be reduced to the state of 
the beast, whom he is shaming by his manners. 
I read the writing when the hostilities broke 
out. But I had not the courage to say the 
word. God has given me the courage to say it 
before it is too late. 

I appeal for cessation of hostilities, not because 
you are too exhausted to fight, but because war 
is bad in essence. You want to kill Nazism. You 
will never kill it by its indifferent adoption. Your 
soldiers are doing the same work of destruction 
as the Germans. The only difference is that per- 
haps yours are not as thorough as the Germans. 
If that be so, yours will soon acquire the same 
thoroughness as theirs, if not much greater. On 
no other condition can you win the war. In 
other words, you will have to be more ruthless 
than the Nazis. No cause, however just, can 
warrant the indiscriminate slaughter that is going 
on minute by minute. I suggest that a cause 
that demands the inhumanities that are being 
perpetrated today cannot be called just. 

I do not want Britain to be defeated, nor do 
I want her to be victorious in a trial of brute 


strength, whether expressed through the muscle 
or the brain. Your muscular bravery is an 
established fact. . Need you demonstrate that 
your brain is also as unrivalled in destructive 
power as your [muscle ? I hope you do not 
wish to enter into such an undignified competi- 
tion with the Nazis. I venture to present you 
with a nobler and a braver way, worthy of 
the bravest soldier. I want you to fight 
Nazism without arms, or, if I am to retain the 
military terminology, with non-violent arms. I 
would like you to lay down the arms you have 
as being useless for saving you or humanity. 
You will invite Herr Hitler and Signor Mussolini 
to take what they want of the countries 
you call your possessions. Let them take posses- 
sion of your beautiful island, with your many 
beautiful buildings. You will give all these, but 
neither your souls, nor your minds. If these 
gentlemen choose to occupy your homes, you will 
vacate them. If they do not give you free 
passage out, you will allow yourself, man, woman 
and child, to be slaughtered, but you will refuse 
to owe allegiance to them. 

This process or method, which I have called 
non-violent non-cooperation, is not without con- 
siderable success in its use in India. Your 
representatives in India may deny my cldm. If 
they do, I shall feel sorry for them. They may 
tell you that our non-cooperation was not 
wholly non-violent, that it was born of hatred. 
If they give that testimony, I won’t deny it. 
Had it been wholly non-violent, if all the non- 
cooperators had been filled with goodwill towards 
you, I make bold to say that you who are 
India’s masters would have become her pupils 
and, with much greater skill than we have, 
perfected this matchless weapon and met the 
German and Italian friends’ menace with it. 
Indeed the history of Europe during the past 
few months would then have been written differ- 
ently. Europe would have been spared seas of 
innocent blood, the rape of so many small 
nations, and the orgy of hatred. 

This is no appeal made by a man who does 
not know his business. I have been practising 
with scientific precision non-violence and its 
possibilities for an unbroken period of over fifty 
years. I have applied it in every walk of life, 
domestic, institutional, economic and political. 
I know of no single case in which it has failed. 
Where it has seemed sometimes to have failed, 

I have ascribed it to my imperfections. I claim 



186 


HARIJAN [ July 6, 1940 


no perfection for myself. But I do claim to be 
a passionate seeker after Truth, which 2S but 
another name for God. In the course of that 
search the discovery of non-violence came to me. 
Its spread is my life mission. I have no interest 
in living except for the prosecution ot that 
mission. 

I claim to have been a lifelong and wholly 
disinterested friend of the British people. At 
one time I used to be also a lover of youz 
empire. I thought that it was doing good to 
India. When I saw that in the nature of things 
it could do no good. I used, and am still using, 
the non-violent method to fight Imperialism. 
Whatever the ultimate fate of my country, my 
love for you remains, and will remain, un- 
diminished. My non-violence demands universal 
love, and you are not a small part of it. It is 
that love v^hich has prompted my appeal to you. 

May God give power to every word of mine. 
In His name I began to write this, and in His 
name I close it. May your statesmen have the 
wisdom and courage to respond to my appeal. 
I am telling His Excellency the Viceroy that 
my services are at the disposal of His Majesty’s 
Government, should they consider them of any 
practical use in advancing the object of my 
appeal. 

New Delhi, 2-7-1940 

ABOUT WORKING COMMITTEE’S 
DECISION 
( By M, K. Gandhi ) 

I have been receiving several letters both from 
Congressmen and non-Congressmen including friends 
from the West deploring the recent decision of 
the Working Committee, These correspondents 
have nothing but admiration for the courage the 
members have shown in doing what they felt 
was a duty though very unpleasant, but all of 
them deplore the decision and would have the 
Working Committee to reconsider it. Of all 
these letters there is one which is a reasoned 
plea for not abandoning non-violence for internal 
disorders or external attacks. The correspondent 
■encloses also an extract from a letter he wrote 
to a friend of his who ridiculed the method of 
satyagraha. Both the letter to me and the 
extract referred to have intrinsic merit and are 
opportune at this juncture. I have omitted from 
the letter the part that disputes the correctness 
of my tribute to the French statesmen for suing 
for peace. French capitulation, he considers, was 
unjustified. It has given him a great shock. 
“But," says the writer, "the decision of the 
Working Committee has come as a greater 
shock." From the extract too I have omitted, 
for the sake of brevity, a paragraph which 
though very interesting was not strictly neces- 
sary for his argumAit. 

The Letter 

“The enclosed was written to a friend of mine, 
about a month back, in answer to his query whe- 
ther what he called the Gaudhian muddle was not 


serving only to add to the general muddle in which 
we live today. It affirms my absolute faith in 
satyagraha, not only as a convenient instrument for 
regaining independence for our country, but as the 
only law for humanity to follow. 1 have set out 
some of the reasons that have led me recently 
increasingly to place my faith in satyagraha; but 
this faith of mine is held not so much for any 
reasons that I can state as because it answers to 
the deepest part of my nature, i have only learnt 
to recognise it lately, as I did not before. Your 
votings and, even more so, your example have 
played a decisive part in helping me to do so. I 
•mention all this because I wish to present my 
credentials before I go on to the matter which has 
impelled me to address this communication to you. 
It is my belief that the main problem with which 
humanity is faced today is this same — that of 
recognising its deepest nature. My hope is that, in 
its extremity, its eyes may forcibly be turned inwards. 
Perhaps the process has already begun. Will it 
complete its course, or just stop half way ? I find 
it difficult to answer. The decision of the Congress 
Working Committee to adopt measures for national 
defence, in spite of you, has come as a huge 
disappointment to me. I feel India is throwing 
away a great opportunity 

Today it is no longer the example of single 

individuals — even when they happen to be of your 
stature — that can retrieve humanity from the slough. 
The effort of whole communities is required. I repeat 
India is . throwing away a great opportunity, which 
may not recur. She is playing false to her mission. 
It is her mission to set an object-lesson to huma- 
nity. And circumstances have conspired to place 
her in a peculiarly advantageous position to do so. 
The English, while they are engaged in defending 
their hearth and home, in fighting for their very 
existence, cannot be expected to be ‘ disinterested 
The same is true of all the combatants. The Germans, 
especially, have been so drugged by continuous pro- 
paganda that they are proof to every sentiment except 
a militant patriotism. The smaller neutrals are too 
much a prey to panic. The Damoclean sword of a 
likely Nazi invasion hangs continually over thera, 
and this is not a state in which the deepest nature 
of humanity reveals itself. America has ail the handi- 
caps of a rich man, against whom, it is said, the 
gates of the Kingdom of Heaven are barred, Russia 
is already wedded to another ideology, and I, for 
one, w’ould not risk an opinion about it. China and 
India alone remain, of whom the former is already 
engaged in a defensive war. India has the advantage 
of not having to face an imminent invasion as yet: 
so that, while there is time, she can bring a free 
mind to bear upon the problem. Her lone struggle 
with British Imperialism for her independence by 
the method of non-violence has already revealed to 
her, to a great extent, its potentialities. All her 
traditions and philosophy are in her favour. Then she 
has nothing to lose. Of course, I do not commend 
the sort of courage that springs from despair, and 
that would be no asset to those who are fighting 
for satyagraha. But at least a negative advantage 
flows from the circumstance. Above all, she has the 
advantage of your leadership. It is a privilege she 
enjoys to have you to guide her destinies, and every 
privilege, to my mind, carries with it corresponding 
duties, 

^ To declare that preparations should be made for 
national defence, while retaining non-violence as a 
method for national liberation, is, to my mind, to 
make a travesty of non-violence in the sense in 
which every true satyagrahi understands it. I have 
no use for self-determination as such. I agree with 
Clive Bell in thinking that ‘ civilization is an elaborate 
protest of individual intelligence and sensibility against 



July 6, 1940] 


HARIJAIT 


187 


the fiock-instincto’ And patriotism is only flock- 
instinct glorified. Individualism, in its finest sense, 
is not incompatible with either the only right type 
of patriotism or cosmopolitanism. They rather depend 
upon it. Individualism should be our test for judging 
them. What the Working Committee is engaged 
in doing, to my mind* is to put the cart .before 
the horse. It is non-violence that should be the end 
— cr rather at this plane the end and the means 
become identical — . and self-determination the means. 
The question of non-violence not being enough, there- 
fore, simply does not arise. Either non-violence is an 
essential part of the best type of life that man has 
it in his nature to live, or it is not. If the former, 
the assertion that it is not enough becomes mean- 
ingless. If the latter, let us throw away all preten- 
sions of being on a higher moral plane than the 
British, and frankly confess that we are but making 
a virtue of necessity.” 

The Extract 

“ You make an observation to the effect that it 
is the wish of everyone to live according to the 
law of satyagraha, only it is not possible — that is, 
owing to circumstances over which he has no 
control. In a sense, of course, this is true : and a 
ground for optimism. The desire for moral effort 
( which is the correlate of intense, fruitful living ) 
is there in everyone. But that does not mean that 
moral effort is easy, or that everyone will willingly 
take to it. No, an average person, much more so 
a conventional one, definitely does not want it, is 
suspicious of it. It is much more pleasant to 
gratify ones passions. An angry man finds much 
greater satisfaction in his orgy of anger than he 
would if the cause of the anger were removed. The 
majority of us live by our passions. Our love for 
our children, for relations, for friends, when it is 
not tainted by self-interest, is, for the most part, 
mere lust of one kind or another, an emotional 
orgy. Patriotism is the worst kind of emotional 
orgy, because it is abstract in character and cannot 
easily be brought to the test. No, it is not easy 
to live by the law of satyagraha: the very thought 
of it is scarifying to most people. 

To a real satyagrahi evil itself has no existence : 
truth alone is. Man lives only when he is in 

close association with the law of satya or reality. 
In this he resembles the creative artist, who looks 
upon the world as so much raw material for 

shaping into his work of art. The satyagrahi sees 
reality as being created, born every instant as it 

were. At least so it is so far as we, finite 

beings, are concerned. Therefore a satyagrahi has 
no rigid code of morality, for circumstances change 
from moment to moment; and he has no antagonisms, 
for truth is unity. Now you see how foreign it is 
to the spirit of a satyagrahi to nurse grievances : 
for the attitude is a limiting one, and his effort is 

ever to compass more and more of reality. The 

tragedy of a crippled person does not consist in his 
being crippled, but in his spirit getting cramped 
thereby. The fact of being crippled so obsesses him 
that his vision is distorted. That is why it has been 
found that cripples have made the greatest criminals. 
But it is at least possible for* them to get out of 

the obsession, and then their bondage wotild be at 

an end ; and their condition would be superior to 
that of healthy, well-formed young men who go on 
living their lives in obedience -to instinct. Non-violence 
is the attitude of a satyagrahi for whom antagonisms 
do not exist;, it is, as Gandhi has said, while being 
as soft as a petal, also as hard as flint. Don’t 
you confound it with mere sentimental sparing of 
pain to others. That kind of non-violence would 
always be to the advantage of the vested interests and 
would thus defeat its own purpose. Gandhi wants 
to OMSt the British from India, because he believes 


that India has been crippled owing to the British 
connection, and that that has been good neither for 
India nor for Britain: the British imperialism, which 

is, indirectly, no less responsible for the present war 
than German Nazism, is the result of it. That is 
why self-determination. 

But there is self-determination and self-determina- 
tion. Gandhi puts a much higher cocnolation on that 
prefix ‘seif’ than most people evidently do. Otherv/ise 
there would be little justification for his demand for 

it. Matter is infinitely divisible, and there is no limit 
to which self-determination cannot be carried. Jinnah’s 
Pakistan Scheme, and other similar schemes that have 
followed and are following in its wake, are the 
reductio ad absurdiim of the principle. You must not 
forget that self-determination is only a convenient 
formula. To clothe it with flesh and blood, as it 
were, much more is required than a severance of the 
British connection. For that reason there is the 
constructive programme of Gandhi. There is the 
charkha to teach you that economy and self-control 
are the dynamics of a satyagrahi’s life. It will 
restore the lost self-confidence of millions, level false 
distinctions, and bring about a subtle but sure change 
of attitude which can transform the whole national 
life: it will replace competition by co-operation, and 
place at a discount the vain pursuit of power and 
prestige, and force attention to the elements of 
existence, and thus provide us with our roots. There 
is the Wardha Education Scheme with its harnessing 
of handicrafts to the purposes of education, so that 
our children might grow up in close touch with the 
realities, and a syllabus especially designed with a 
view to developing an intelligent comprehension of 
the affairs of the world. There is the Harijan 
Scheme ( if there is a ‘ scheme *)» a symbol of the 
satyagrahi’s belief in social equity. There was the 
affair of Rajkot meant to give strength to the cause 
of the people of the States in a characteristic way. 
There are the satyagrahi camps where special training 
is being imparted. You see, the Gandhian programme 
is comprehensive, and is designed to bring about a 
total change of national mentality.* It is not that 
all the 37 crores of India will turn satyagrahis over- 
night : but that they would be provided with a new 
scale of values, and with adequate discipline and 
marching under leaders of insight and resource they 
can accomplish wonders. 

Now consider what would starting the movement 
at this moment imply. England is at a critical 
moment in her history, and the very existence of her 
empire and even country is threatened. If we take 
advantage of her plight, not to mention the fact 
that success would be very dubious, we shall for ever 
have alienated the sympathies of one of the most 
gifted of nations ( let our grievances against her not 
blind us to the fact that she is gifted), and the 
solution of the world problem will be pushed further 
than ever : our own moral force will be considerably 
weakened. Indeed, it will very probably have vanished. 
For, if the citadel of satyagraha is broken through at 
one place, it will become exceedingly difficult to save 
it from complete destruction. We shall have to begin 
all over again. But I must qualify my statement. 
A satyagrahi never placates another's feelings, except 
where it is required by the law of satya. If there 
were not the sentiment of vengeance so strongly 
lodged in so many of us ( indeed the clamour for the 
movement to be started is a sure sign of it ), it 
would not be harmful to start the movement even 
at this time. The situation cannot be envisaged 
except with an effort of the imagination. The spec- 
tacle would be so enormously impressive that self-deter- 
mination would be ours for the asking. The position 
of the British in our country, under any other con- 
ditions, would become untenable. The next step for 

( Continued on p* 191 ) 



188 


HARIJAN 


I July 6, 1940 



July 6 1940 


SOME VITAL QUESTIONS 

C By M. K. Gandhi ) 

H. E. the Viceroy is again conferring with 
leaders of parties. I was invited, but not as a 
party leader or a leader at all. I was invited 
as a friend to help him, if I could, to come to 
a definite conclusion, especially to interpret the 
Congress mind to him. It is better, in the light 
of what is happening ( and things will presently 
move with lightning velocity), to consider some 
of the questions that will demand quick 
decision, if they will not have been decided 
before these lines are in print. 

The first thing that everyone has to consider 
for himself is whether Dominion Status of the 
Westminster variety can be acceptable to India. 
If it has not become a myth already, it will be at 
the end of the war, Britain herself, victorious 
or defeated, will never be the same as she has 
been for these few hundred years. But this 
much is certain that her defeat, if it must 
come, will certainly be glorious. If she is 
defeated, she will be because no other Power 
similarly situated could have avoided defeat. I 
cannot say the same of her victory. It will be 
bought by a progressive adoption of the same 
means as the totalitarian States have adopted. I 
must say with the deepest pain that British 
statesmen have rejected the only moral influence 
they could easily have got from the Congress 
to turn the scales in Britain’s favour. It is no 
blame to her statesmen that they have not 
availed themselves of that influence. They did 
not see the need of it. It may well be that they 
did not perceive the moral influence itself which 
I have claimed for the Congress. Whatever may 
be the case, it is clear to me that India’s imme- 
diate objective must be unadulterated Independ- 
ence. This is no time for mincing words or hiding 
our thoughts. I cannot think of anyone wanting 
less than Independence for his country, if he 
can get it. No country has ever got it without 
its people having fought for it. Anyway the 
Congress made up its mind long ago. Even if 
India is to render effective help to Britain, it 
can come from a free India. Crores may be 
drained from India as of yore; thousands of 
men may be hired as soldiers or camp followers 
out of her teeming millions. All such con- 
tributions will be from a helpless They 

cannot raise the moral status of Britain. 

The next question for consideration is that of 
providmg for internal disorder and external 
invasion. The raising of private armies will be 
worse than useless. It will never be allowed. 
No Power, whether foreign or swadeshi, can 
tolerate private armies. Those, therefore, who 


believe in the necessity of India having armed 
forces will be driven sooner or later to enlist 
themselves under the British banner. It is the 
logical outcome of the belief. The Wor kin g 
Committee have taken the decision on the point. 
If it is to abide, I have little doubt that they 
will presently have to advise Congressmen to 
enlist in the usual way. That would inean an 
end to the slogan of immediate Independence 
and an end also to non-violence of the true 
brand. I shall hope to the last that, for the 
sake of themselves, India, aye Britain herself, and 
humanity. Congressmen will resolutely decline to 
have anything to do with the use of arms for 
any of the two purposes. I feel strongly that 
the future of humanity lies in the hands of the 
Congress. May God give wisdom and courage 
to Congressmen to take the right step. 

The offer of enlarging the Viceroy’s Council 
is on the tapis. The Congress cannot coun- 
tenance it, so long as it swears by Independence 
and non-violence. But if it sidetracks them, it 
will be logically driven to reconstructing Con- 
gress ministries in the Provinces. This means 
the Congress becoming a vital part of the war 
machine. The Government of India has no other 
occupation but that of preparing India for 
defending Britain. It is an illusion to talk of 
preparing India for self-defence. No Power has 
eyes on India except as a British possession. As 
such she is a rich prize. Is not India the bright- 
est jewel in the British Crown ? But I own that, 
if India is to learn the trade of war, she can 
now have her apprenticeship to the extent that 
the British masters will allow. 

The Congress has to make its choice. The 
temptation is irresistible. Congressmen can 
again become Cabinet Ministers. They may also 
be Ministers or Members at the Centre. They 
will have an insight into the war machine. 
They will watch from inside ( again to the 
extent allowed ) the Englishman at work when 
engaged in a life and death struggle. They will 
have to raise crores of rupees and dispose of 
them in the war effort. If I have my way, I 
would have the Congress to resist the irresist- 
ible temptation and not grudge those who 
believe in the accepted method filling all these 
posts. There will be Muslims, Hindus, Sikhs, 
Christians, Parsis and others taking up these 
posts as they have done before now. They too 
arc our countrymen. W^e must give them 
credit for good faith. Let us who believe in 
Independence and the only way to attain it, 
hold fast to the objective and the means. I can 
see much good coming out of this division of 
functions. For the Congress to merge itself intO' 
the 'stereotyped method would be a flisa stPT of 
the first magnitude. If, on the other hand, the 
Congress sticks to its colours, it is sure to 
fight its way to its goal even before the war is 
over, provided that the fight is purely, truly 
and demonstrably non-violent. 

New Delhi, 1-7-40 




July 6, 1940 ] 


HARIJAIT 


189 


A VALID COMPLAINT 

CBy M. K. Gandhi y 

A correspondent sends me a forcible letter in 
•which he argues that, though I expect great 
■things from my countrymen, I write only for 
Harijan which is edited in English, and utterly 
neglect its Hindustani and Gujarati editions. 
Both Harijanhandhu ( Gujarati ) and Harijan- 
sevak ( Hindustani ) have only translations of the 
writings in Harijan. I must plead guilty to the 
charge. My excuse for writing in English has 
been that I had to address English-educated 
India who could understand neither Gujarati nor 
my faulty Hindustani, and also the ever-growing 
number of Western readers. I hope that the 
excuse will be deemed valid. But it seems to 
me that the time has come for me to confine 
my writings, as far as possible, exclusively to 
Gujarati and occasionally to Hindustani. The 
reason is simple and, I hope, convincing. I have 
before me the most difficult task of reaching 
the message of the non-violence of the strong 
to the masses. They will not understand the 
fineness of the Working Committee’s decision. 
Already I have warnings that they will be 
confused. They will believe that the Congress 
has given up non-violence and wants them 
also to do likewise. Then they would say, “ But 
the Mahatma still believes in it. In the midst 
of these differences whose word are we to 
follow?” If I lose the masses, the mass experi- 
ment in non-violence must be voted down as 
failure. My faith would be still as strong as 
•ever. But my failure will be equally clear. In 
such trying circumstances I must not rely upon 
the translations of my writings to carry . my 
message to the masses. I must use the most 
effective means available. Naturally, therefore, I 
must speak at least to the Gujaratis in their 
own language which is also mine. Moreover 
Gujarati lends itself to correct translation in 
any northern language much more easily than 
English. 

But the decisive reason for the proposed 
■change is that when I write in English the 
English-speaking public is in view. I would not 
have exactly the same message for them as I 
would have for the masses. Past experience, too, 
points in favour of the change. When I began to 
edit Indian Opinion in South Africa, most of the 
Indians there were almost illiterate, I wrote the 
language they could understand. When the weekly 
Indian Opinion reached them, for every twenty 
Indians they had one reader who was of course 
a volunteer. They listened to and devoured every 
word of what appeared in Indian Opinion. In it 
there was no padding, no essays given to the 
readers. I used to reason out for them their diffi- 
culties. I had no time to discuss theories. They 
had weekly instructions as to what they were to 
do. I have no doubt that Indian Opinion had a 
vital part to play in moulding and guiding the 
^atyagrahis. Had I spoken to them through the 
English medium, I should have failed. I should 


never have been able to feel one with them, 
if I had spoken to them in English when I 
knew that I could speak to a large section of 
them through their own tongue. If, therefore, 
I hope, as I do, to carry even a section of the 
masses with me, I must at least speak to them 
through the tongue they and I understand. 

So the English-knowing readers should not be 
surprised if one fine day they get my writings in 
Harijan in translated form. Happily I have very 
able assistance in this direction. Mahadev Desai 
and Pyarelal have often translated my Gujarati 
or Hindustani writings. English-knowing readers 
should know that they have my Experiments with 
Truth and History of Satya£raha in South Africa 
in translation. So is Hind Swaraj, and several 
other writings of mine. After all, however, in the 
matter of non-violence I must rely most upon 
my thought to carry my message to the farthest 
limits of the universe. All thought does not 
possess the same potency. Only thought crystal- 
lised by a pure life and charged with prayerful 
concentration has potency. The purer the life, 
the greater the concentration, the brighter the 
faith in that Unseen Power from whom all 
things are, the greater the potency of thought. 
If I had the purity, the concentration and the 
faith I want, I know that I would do all my 
work without speech or writing, or with the 
least use of either, and the power the thought 
would then carry would be irresistible. That is 
the power which every human being has to 
aspire to and with due effort can attain. The 
voice of Silence has never been denied. 

New Delhi, 1-7-40 

ON THE ROAD TO SIMLA 

On the morning of Thursday last, in soaking 
wet weather Gandhiji set out with his small 
entourage from his mud cottage at Sevagram 
for Simla, in response to the Viceregal invitation. 
It had been pouring the whole of the previous 
day and during the night, turning the road 
into a strip of soft, pappy mass, so much so 
that, till the last moment almost, it was a 
question whether it would be possible to get 
any transport to convey the travelling kit of 
the party to the railway station. Apart from 
these difficulties and considerations of his health 
which can ill bear exposure to wind and weather, 
Gandhiji, as is well known, is as a rule these 
days extremely loath to absent himself from 
Sevagram even for a short time. Nevertheless, 
he gladly responded to the Viceregal invitation, 
as part of his sadhana for 'ahimsa. He knew he 
was going there without any expectations. The 
railway journey was fatiguing to a degree, so 
that when he boarded the car at Kalka he was 
ready to doze off again and “reel off a few 
score miles of sleep ”, as he put it. 

Before the car had proceeded for a couple of 
furlongs, however, a trifling incident happened 
which converted the journey into one of those 
occasions which bum themselves upon you for 



HAEIJAN 


1-90 


life. Without any premeditation or forethought 
I casually dropped , a remark which was of the 
nature of a grievance against a . colleague. The 
grievance was well-founded and merited redress, 
but I proceeded to generalise upon it, and that 
brought down the avalanche : “ You have indulg- 
ed in an unpardonable generalisation. A seeker 
after truth cannot afford to do that,” remons- 
trated Gandhiji. “ Darwin for the greater part of 
his book Origin of the Species has simply massed 
fact upon fact without any theorising, and only 
towards the end has formulated his conclusion 
which, because of the sheer weight of Testimony 
behind it, becomes almost irresistible. Yet I have 
criticised even Darwin’s generalisation as being 
unwarranted. Science tells us that a proposition 
may hold good in nine hundred ninetynine 
cases and yet fail in the thousandth case and 
thus be rendered untenable as a universal 
statement. That is why in Jain philosophy so 
much stress is laid on Syadvad. A proposition 
must not only be able to satisfy the analytical 
test, but must also be proved conversely by 
synthesis before its universal validity can be 
established. And you have dared to build a sweep- 
ing indictment on the strength of a single fact.” 

I was forced to admit that my generalisation 
was unscientific and therefore unwarranted. But 
in my heart of hearts I was sorry only for my 
indiscretion. I felt I had intrinsically a strong 
case, which I could easily make, good on 
another occasion and under better auspices. 
Besides, I did not want to rob Gandhiji of his 
much-needed sleep by prolonging the discussion. 
I kept mum. But I was not destined to enjoy 
my self-complaisance for long. Gandhiji continued; 
“ Your criticism of — is in a way true and yet 
it is not wholly true. It savours of lack of 
charity. It takes no count of .the difficulties 
incident upon one’s birth and upbringing. It 
is up to those who have gathered round me 
in quest of a common ideal to make due allow- 
ance for the temperamental shortcomings of one 
another and strive to break down prejudices 
by the exercise of forbearance, and magnanimity 
and through loving service.” 

I felt stung to the quick. I had, with good 
reason, held myself to be the aggrieve'd party, 
and here tables were being turned upon me. I 
protested: You know the utter contempt in 
which this friend holds me, the campaign of 
calumny to which I have been subjected. Yet 
I have never retaliated. I have never given any 
cause' for complaint. I have even consciously 
striven — not without some success — to be- 
friend him and make myself agreeable to him. 
And yet—.” “I know all that,” interrupted 
Gandhiji. “ I ^ow your grievance which is 
'^^ll"founded. You do not know the flattening 
out I gave — for the wrong done to you, and I 
know too your striving to be friendly of which 
I have myself been witness. My complaint is not 
that your conduct was not correct; the question is 
whether there was overflowing love behind it. 


[ July 6 , 1940 


You refer to the contempt you have experien- 
ced. Was there not hauteur behind what you 
have described as your ‘ correct conduct’, a 
sort of ‘ superior person ’ attitude that regards 
the opponent as beneath contempt or even retail* 
ation ? If you search within yourself, you will 
find that the consciousness that has filled you 
all along has been that of the v/rong you have 
suffered, not that of pity for or sympathy with 
the wrong-doer who in his turn is a victim of 
circumstances- — is not unaware of his defects; 
I know he has striven too to overcome them. 
But one’s innate nature is not so easily over- 
come. The momentum of the past often proves 
too strong for us. Such cases deserve our pity, 
not anger. It is only thus that I am today 
able to extend my sympathies to the Princes. 
Although I have often criticised them unsparingly, 
there is in me that basic understanding of their 
position, and my heart goes out to them. I 
fancy that they too realize that in me they have 
a friend. You talk of contempt, but do not 
you see that, if your heart were flowing with 
ahimsa, contempt won’t touch you ? There was 
hardly an individual held in such contempt 
among certain circles as the late Deciiabandhu 
Andrews. Yet he seemed hardly to be aware of 
it, and acted towards those who despitcfully 
used him, with an ease and naturalness that 
broke down all barriers and made him irresistible. 
If there were no contempt or hatred in question, 
where could be the occasion for the exercise of 
ahimsa ? 

“ I admit it is my weakness,” I fumbled out, 
“ that has prevented me from wooing more 
effectively,” I am afraid it is one's own sense 
of inferiority which makes one so sensitive to 
the feeling of contempt. There have been occa- 
sions when I had an insight into the spiritual 
isolation and forlornness, the inner starvation 
and dreariness of -y. On these occasions I was 
so deeply moved that I went out of my way 
to serve -and befriend him, feeling neither em- 
barrassment, nor even my habitual awkwardness.- 
The fear of contempt did not deter me, and 
my wooing was successful.” To Gandhiji this was 
a case of love casting out fear. “When wc are 
afraid,” he tells xis, “‘it is our ahimsa that is at 
fault. Love and weakness cannot co-exist.” 

Gandhiji had retired within himself. He intros- 
pectively resumed: ‘‘In the ultimate analysis. 
I feel that it is my ahimsa that is at fault. 
Otherwise, why should not my word go straight 
home as soon as uttered, why should there be 
discord and disharmony about me in my little 
world in Sevagram ? If my experiment here 
were successful and I could find a solution for 
the little problems that confront me here, I 
am sure the same formula would provide me a 
solution for the bigger issues that today face us 
in the country. That is why I am so reluctant 
to leave Sevagram. It is my laboratory for 
satyagraha. It is there that I expect to discover 
the key to India’s independence, not in Simla. 



July 6, 1940 ] 


HAEIJA^? 


191 


or New Delhi. I sometimes feel like taking 
shelter in flight, not to seek cloistered peace, 
hut in the stillness of utter isolation to know 
myself, to see where I stand, to catch more 
effectively the faint whispering of the ‘ still 
small voice within’. Then alone my experiment 
in ahimsa would be complete. ” 

I felt smitten into a sense of my utter 
unworthiness to be associated with the great 
experiment in which Gandhiji is engaged. With 
such poor instruments to vrork with, is it any 
wonder that satyagraha has not forged farther 
ahead than it has today? I felt utterly miserable. 
Automatically the episode of . the contrite 
Ancient Mariner came back to my mind : 

I to me did pray: 

Let me, be awake, O Lord. 

Or let me sleep always. 

New Delhi, 1-7-40 * Pyarelal 

ABOUT WORKING COMMITTEE’S DECISION 
( Continued from p. 181 ) 
us would be to ask the British to lay down their 
arms. What would a handful of Prussians avail in 
face of such a strong world sentiment ? It is ideas, 
not arms, that rule the world. But before all this 
can be achieved we have to display the non-violence 
of the strong, of the true satyagrahi. 

To regard the non- cooperation movement as merely 
a device for winning what we cannot by brute might, is 
to degrade the whole significance of satyagraha. If it were 
that and no more, we should be deserving only of 
contempt, and be no better than those beggars v/ho 
would nat move from our door-steps until we have 
given them alms. There is a curious fallacy in ask- 
ing the* Mahatma to start his movement, while dis- 
crediting his ideology. Of course, it is possible to 
contend that his success has been in spite of his 
ideology : but I have not seen it proved. Besides, 
you should read Smuts on the Mahatma. It is at 
the least a presumption to seek to be wiser than the 
Mahatma about his own weapon. And then consider 
the consequences of discrediting the Mahatma’s ideo- 
logy. It inevitably follows that violence is ineradic- 
able from the nature of things, that wars must 
■continue (and they will get more and more terrible 
until humanity will have consumed itself iu one 
gigantic holocaust, and then Nature, having despaired 
of the Homo Sapiens t will get on to the next 
species to carry on her business of evolution ), and 
that — awful conclusion ! — selfishness is the only law 
to follow. Why then blame the British, why blame 
the Germans or Italians or Capitalism or any of the 
numerous objects we vent our spleen upon ? You 
may say, it may all be very depressing but none 
the less inevitable. My answer is simple. Consider a 
beautiful poem or a beautiful song or a beautiful 
painting, consider the way a forest subsists, consider 
the growth of man’s mind — would any of them be 
possible without the harmony of the parts 1 Biology 
tells us that gigantic beasts have perished for want 
of flexibility in them, whereas small animals, with 
greater adaptability, have not only survived, but 
progressed. Man himself is an example. What is 
civilization but the art of living together harmo- 
niously ? He has shown wonderful adaptability, 
but not enough. Keeping his eye fixed on momentary 
ends, compelling themselves upon his attention by the 
necessity of biological evolution, he has not bothered 
■much about the means, so that the virus has accu- 
mulated and, now finally when he has the means of 
realizing the Utopia of his dreams, he finds that his^ 
‘dreams have gone all awry. 


The vast difference in the situation nov/ from that 
in former times must not be lost sight of. Then 
a battle had at least the value of serving as a release 
for the harmful passions of a nation, and although 
feelings between one nation and another were strained 
thereby, each single nation lived at ease within itself. 
And as that served them very well, means of com^ 
munication being few and contacts difficult, war was 
not too much of an evil. Circumstances have entire- 
ly changed nov^r. The world is a nation in itself ; 
and we have to extend the idea of co-operation from 
the nation to the v^rorld. Besides there is to be taken 
into consideration the character of a modern war. 
It is not only that feelings of antagonism are 
generated between the peoples of one nation and 
another, but that no one who has been through the 
infernal orgy of a war can ever be the same man 
again. He becomes spiritually deaf, if not physically 
as well, for the rest of -his life. The leaders suffer 
still more terribly. Anyone who has the misfortune 
to plot cool-headedly the slaughter of millions day 
after day cannot preserve his humanity. Blood-baths 
don't bring any freshness: they only distract men’s 
wits and unfit them for rational exercise. 

You say the Mahatma is a sort of misfit in the 
present-day world. I, on the other hand, believe this 
is the appropriate moment for him and for India. 
Very likely the world today is in the throes of a 
new spiritual birth and what we see is but the 
growing pains. The utmost confusion prevails before an 
act of creation : out of chaos is a dancing star born. But 
faith alone is not enough. A miscarriage has to be 
avoided. The artist has to wage a terrible struggle 
with his mental chaos before the outlines of the 
work of art begin to manifest themselves. However, 
•when that is accomplished, a curious feeling of relief 
and innocency fills one. Similarly we may find the 
influence of Gandhi ( I mean of all Gandhi stands for ) 
secretly permeating and, when things are at their 
worst, a sudden illumination taking possession of 
humanity, bringing home the realization that it was 
greater than it knew. But the work of consolida- 
tion will remain. The new infant will have to be 
nourished to youth and manhood, India has it in 
her power to set the world an object-lesson. It will 
be sheer cowardice for us to arm ourselves in self- 
defence. Let us not fail when it comes to the 
scratch. That will be the supreme demand made 
upon our courage. We have often blamed other 
nations for not resorting to unilateral disarmament. 
Let it not be said of us that we should have done 
the same in their position. If we willingly and 
whole-heartedly and with perfect fearlessness decide 
not to make any defensive preparations, we shall have 
negotiated the last stile in the way of our goal of 
satyagraha. We shall have come into our own. Our 
destiny will then be unmistakable. But this would 
come about only by virtue of that wholesale change 
of mentality that the Mahatma’s constructive pro- 
gramme is calculated to produce.*’ 

New Delhi, 1-7-40 

Just Published 

The long awaited one-volume cheaper edition of 
Gandhi ji’s The Story of My Experiments with Truth 
( Autobiography ) has now been published by the 
Navajivan Press, Kalupur, Ahmedabad. This edition 
contains a few photographs which add to the value 
of the book. Price Rs. 4, Postage 10 As. extra. 

Satyagraha in South Africa — by Gandhiji- 
Companion volume to Autobiography. 

Price Rs. 4-8-0 + postage 9 As. extra. 

Speeches and Writings 

By Gandhiji Rs. 4 + Postage 8 As. extra. 

Available at Harijan Office — Poona 4. 



xaa 


HAKIJAN 


NON-VIOLENCE AND PANIC 
( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

The following from a correspondent s letter 
will be read with interest and perhaps profit : 

“ In the last non-cooperation movement I suspended 
my practice and renewed it in the end of the year 
1925. Now I am only a four anna member of the 
Congress, a practising lawyer at the bar, and a 
habitual wearer of khadi. Since the Allies have begun 
to suffer reverses there is a panic in the country. 
The people have become afraid of the consequences 
of the failure of the British. They apprehend civil 
war, communal riots, looting, arson, plunder and 
goondaism. You are the apostle of non-violence and 
have been preaching it for the last twenty years, 
if not more. So far as I can understand from your 
writings you preach non-violence of the strong, non- 
violence which is the outcome of love for all and 
even for your enemy and aggressor. According to 
you, if I have understood right, we should try to be 
non-violent to the enemy even when we have got 
the power to injure him. 

But, so far as the actual effect of your teaching 
is concerned, I find that in the majority of your 
followers this conception of non-violence is wanting. 
They are non-violent because they believe that, if 
they will use violence to fight a wrong-doer, they 
will provoke him with the result that he will use 
greater violence which they may be unable to stand. 
This seems to be the background of their non-violence 
which is clearly an outcome of fear and cowardice, 
and not of love. For, the idea behind is to save 
one’s life and not to risk it for a higher cause. I 
may give one actual instance : During the non- 
co-operation days of 1921 there was a gentleman who 
is dead now. He was arrested and imprisoned under 
the Criminal Law Amendment Act. He was a 
peace-loving citizen and never political-minded. I did 
not expect that he would ever risk his liberty for 
politics. I was surprised to find him in jail. I 
asked him how he dared to court imprisonment. He 
replied that he was afraid of greater harm outside 
the jail. His impression was that the political agita- 
tion would lead to riots and disturbances everywhere, 
and he was sure that the Government would resort 
to firing. He thought that he would be safe inside 
the jail and escape death. 1 do not think this was 
ever your intention in asking people to court 
imprisonment. In my opinion, if one is non-violent on 
account of any weakness in him, he would never 
face an aggressor. 

In these days of panic and general nervousness I 
strongly believe that a few articles from your pen 
will dispel all fears from our young men and infuse 
a spirit in them which will enable them to resist 
the goonda element in the society. One article of 
this nature has already appeared in the last issue 
of Harijan. But I suggest that a series is necessary 
to bring courage and bravery to those who are 
physically quite fit but are panic-stricken.. In my 
opinion, all fears, all nervousness and panic will dis- 
appear in case you are kind enough to spare a few 


[ July 6, 1940 


lines in Harijan on this subject every week. Our 
nervousness is encouraging the goondas amongst us. 
The moment it disappears, the goondas and bullies- 
of our society will also disappear.” 

The letter gives a correct picture of the 
mentality of the average Congressman. The non- 
violence which it describes can never take us 
to our goal. It will have served us well, if we 
use it as a stepping-stone to the true non- 
violence of the strong — non-violence which 
will stand alone defying the combined might of. 
the mightiest powers of the earth. Let all 
Congressmen ask themselves whether they have 
the courage to take up non-violence of the 
strong. Nothing is needed to reach that much- 
to-be-desired state beyond the will to risk 
all for the sake of one’s cause. The non- 
violence of the person who went to jail to 
avoid a worse fate harmed him and disgraced 
the cause which he used as a shelter to escape 
death. Swaraj-makers are made of sterner stuff. 
And, surely, it is simple enough to see that, if 
we can bravely face death without killing or 
even wishing to kill, we have achieved the 
ability to win and keep Swaraj. 

My correspondent asks me to write a series 
of articles in condemnation of panic. Nothing that 
I can write will alone prevent panic. What 
is required is example more than precept.. 
I have pointed out that the city- dwellers who 
are reported to have given way to panic were 
never non-violent even when they went to jail. 
Our city-dwellers made a handsome contribution 
as jail-goers during the civil resistance campaigns 
launched by the Congress. They should now, by 
resolutely sticking to their posts, steel the hearts 
of the timid against the temptation to flee from 
fancied or real danger. It is foolish to think 
that by fleeing one can trick the dread god of 
death. Let us treat him as a beneficent angel 
rather than as a dread god. We must face and 
welcome him whenever he comes. My host, 
Sheth Ghanshyamdas Birla, tells me that not 
many months ago a whole mercantile family 
which bad converted paper into gold met death 
in a railway accident which overtook the train 
that was carrying the family and its precious 
gold. Verily that gold was a death trap. Let 
us not die before the inevitable hour comes 
as it must come to every one of us, war or 
no war. 

New Delhi, 1-7-40 


CONTENTS 

To Every Briton ... M. 

About Working Committee’s 
Decision ... M, 

Some Vital Questions ... M. 

A Valid Complaint ... M. 

On the Road to Simla 
Non-violence and Panic ... M. 


Page 

K. Gandhi 185 

K. Gandhi 186 
K. Gandhi 188 
K. Gandhi 189 
Pyardal 189 
K. Gandhi 192 


Feinted and Published by Vithal Hati Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
Subscription Ratos — inland: One year,Rs. 4; six months, Rs. 2-8. FOREIGN : One year, Rs. 5-8 or 8 sh. or 2 8, 



Rego No. B 3C92 



Editea ; MAHADEV DESAI 


VoL. Vm. No. 22 ] POONA — SATURDAY, JULY 13, 1940 [ TWO ANNAS 


‘ COPYRIGHT ’ 

It is strange that what I would not do in 
response to' the advice of a correspondent I 
have to do almost immediately after the refusal 
tho’Jigh, I feel, for a very cogent reason. Since 
my main articles will henceforth be written in 
Gujarati, I would not like their unauthorised 
translations appearing in the Press. I have 
s'jffered much from mistranslations when I used 
to write profusely in Gujarati and had no 
time myself to produce simultaneous English 
translations. I have arranged this time for such 
translation in English and Hindustani. I would 
therefore ask editors and publishers kindly to 
regard English and Hindustani translation rights 
as reserved. I have no doubt that my request 
will be respected. 

On the train to Wardha, 8-7-40 M. K. G. 

QUESTION BOX 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

A Muslim’s Dilemma 

Q. We Muslims believe that the Prophet’s 
life was wholly directed by God and truly non- 
violent, though not in your sense of the term. 
He never waged an offensive war, and he had 
the tenderest regard for the feeling of others, 
but when he was driven to a defensive war he 
drew his sword for a holy war, and he permits 
the use of the sword under conditions he has 
laid down. But your non-violence is different. 
You prescribe it under all conditions and cir^ 
cumstances. I do not think the Prophet would 
permit this. Whom are we to follow — you 
or the Prophet ? If we follow you, we cease to 
be Muslims. If we follow the Prophet, we cannot 
join the Congress with its creed of extreme 
non-violence. Will you solve this dilemma? 

A. I can only answer that, since you notice 
the difference, you should unhesitatingly follow 
the Prophet, not me. Only I would like to say 
that I claim to have studied the life of the 
Prophet and the Quran as a detached student 
of religions. And I have come to the conclu- 
sion that the teaching of the Quran is essen- 
tially in favour of non-violence. Non-violence is 
better than violence, it is said in the Quran. 
Non-violence is enjoined as a duty; violence ib 
permitted as a necessity. I must refuse to sit i^ 
judgment on what the Prophet did. I must 
base my conduct on what the great teachers 
of the earth said, not on • what they did. Pro- 
phethood "Came not from the wielding of the 
sword, it came from years of wrestling with 


God to know the truth. Erase these precious 
years of the great life, and you will have robbed 
the Prophet of his prophethood. It is these 

years of his life which made Muhammad a pro- 
phet. A prophet’s life, after he is acknowledged 
as one, cannot be our guide. Only prophets 

can weigh the works of prophets. If a civilian 
can judge the merits of a soldier, a layman of 
a scientist, an ordinary man may judge a prophet, 
much less imitate him. If I handled a motor 
car, I should surely run it and me into the 

danger zone and probably into the jaws of 

death. How much more dangerous would it be 
then for me to imitate a prophet! When the 
Prophet was asked why, if he could fast more 
than the prescribed times, the companions also 
could not, he promptly replied : “ God gives me 
spiritual food which satisfies even the bodily 
wants; for you He has ordained the Ramdan. 
You may not copy me.” I quote from memory. 

Spare the Rod 

Q, I am a teacher. I try to follow the 
principle of non-violence in dealing with my 
schoolboys and my own children. I am success- 
ful to a great extent in case of the school 
children, excepting a bully whom I would send 
to the Head Master. But in case of my own 
children I often feel like beating, though I 
successfully restrain myself. I find that these 
are readily obedient to my uncle who, unlike 
me, believes in the old saying ‘Spare the rod, 
spoil the child.’ What should' I do with my 
own children? How should a non-violent Head 
Master deal with a bully ? 

A. I am quite clear that you must not 
inflict corporal or other punishment’ on your 
children or pupils. You can punish yourself, if 
you like and are qualified, in order to melt 
your children’s or pupils’ hearts. Many mothers 
are known to have corrected their children in 
this manner. I have on many occasions. I had 
to deal with wild boys in South Africa, 
Muslims, Christians, Hindus and Parsis. With 
one exception, I do not remember ever having 
punished a single boy. The non-violent method 
invariably succeeded. When a bond is established 
between a teacher and his pupils, the latter will 
generally yield before' their teacher’s suffering for 
their sake. In [ the case of your ‘ bully ’, if he 
has no respect for you; you can non-cooperate 
with him by sending him away - from your school. 
Non-violence does not compel you to keep in 
your school a student who does not carry out 
disciplinary rules. 



194 


HAEIJAN 


[ July 13, 1940 


The Setmon on fche Mount 

Q. You often refer to the Sermon on the 
Mount. Do you believe in the verse: "If any 
man will take away thy coat, let him have thy 
cloak also ” 7 Does it not follow from the princi- 
ple of non-violence ? If so, then do you advise 
the weak and poor tenant of a village to submit 
gladly to the violent encroachment of the 
zamindar on his ‘ abadi land * or tenancy rights, 
which so often occurs in a village these 
days? 

A. Yes, I would unhesitatingly advise tenants 
to evacuate the land belonging to a tyrant. That 
would be like giving your cloak also when only 
the coat is demanded. To take what is required 
may be profitable; to have more given to you 
is highly likely to be a burden. To overload a 
stomach is to court slow death. A zamindar 
wants his rent, he does not want his land. It 
would be a burden on him when he does not 
want it. When you give more to a robber than 
he needs, you spring a surprise on him, you 
give him a shock although agreeable. He has 
not been used to it. Historical instances are on 
record to show that such non-violent conduct 
has produced a wholesome eiffect upon evil-doers. 
These acts cannot be done mechanically; they 
must come out of conviction and love or pity 
for the other man. Nor need you work out all 
the apparent implications of my answer. If you 
do, you will come across blind alleys. Suffice it 
to say that in the verse quoted by you Jesus 
put in a picturesque and telling manner the 
great doctrine of non-violent non-cooperation. 
Your non-cooperation with your opponent is 
violent when you give a blow for a blow, and is 
ineffective in the long run. Your non-coopera- 
tion is non-violent when you give your opponent 
all in the place of just what he needs. You 
have disarmed him once for all by your appa- 
rent co-operation, which in effect is complete 
non-cooperation. A girl, who rather than give 
her living body to a would-be ravisher presents 
him with her corpse, confounds him and dies a 
heroine’s death. Hers is a stout heart in a 
frail body. 

Compulsory Prayer 

Q. I am a worker in the Rajasthan branch 
of the A, 1. S. A. I believe in prayer but some 
of my colleagues do not. Still they have got to 
join in prayer under the rules of the Sanstha. 
They are afraid that, if they refuse, they would 
lose their job. My view is that the Sanstha 
pays wages to its workers for their eight hours' 
work. What right has it to insist upon includ- 
ing compulsory participation in prayer by their 
workers into the bargain? 

A. There can be no such thing as compulsory 
prayer. A prayer to be prayer must be voluntary. 
But nowadays people entertain curious ideas 
about compulsion. Thus, if the rules of your 
institution require every inmate — paid or unpaid 
— to attend common prayer, in my opinion you 
are bound to attend it as you are to attend to 


your other duties. Your joining the institution 
was a voluntary act. You knew or ought to 
have known -its rules. Therefore your attendance 
at prayer I would regard as a voluntary act, 
even as I would treat your other work under 
the contract. If you joined the institution merely 
because of the wages it offered, you should have 
made it clear to the manager that you could 
not attend prayer. If in spite of your objection 
you entered the institution without stating your 
objection, you did a wrong thing for which 
you should make expiation. This can be done 
in two ways — by joining the prayer with your 
heart in it, or by resigning and paying 
such compensation as may be necessary for the 
loss caused by your sudden resignation. Every- 
one joining an institution owes it to obey the 
rules framed by the management from time to 
time. When any new rule is found irksome, it 
is open to the objector to leave the institution 
in accordance with the provisions made for 
resignation. But he may not disobey them 
whilst he is in it. 

New Delhi, 1-7-40 

OCCASIONAL NOTES 

An American Visitor 

An American visitor, describing herself as 
representative of various women’s associations and 
as a pacifist, came to Sevagram the other day 
in pouring rain and windy weather. She had 
not come by appointment, but the trouble she 
had taken entitled her to some time with 
Gandhiji. She had just three or four questions 
to ask, and she meant business. 

"How can I best prepare in India to help in 
America towards a better understanding between 
Indians and Americans ? " was her first question. 
The next one was : " How could I contribute 
towards this end in America?" 

Gandhiji’s answer covered both the questions: 
"One has to show in one's life one’s country’s 
best traits, and that is how one can bring another 
country to a better understanding of one’s own. 
If you do not show the best in you whilst you 
are here, you make America liable to be mis- 
understood; and the same thing I would say 
about Indians in America. If one wants to 
interpret one country to another, he or she 
has to discover the best in that country and 
place it before the other country. If you, 
for instance, see nothing good in the life here, 
then you certainly are not the best person to 
interpret India to America. In America you 
find a Miss Mayo bringing out all the filth 
from the Indian gutters. You will contradict 
her, and as against one calumny uttered by a 
hasty or a paid or an interested observer you 
will adduce many testimonies gathered out of a 
sympathetic understanding and knock the bottom 
out of that calumny." 

“What can pacifist Americans do to help the 
world situation ? " 



July 13, 1940 ] 


HAKIJAN 


195 


“It is a difficult question. If you mean paci- 
fist Americans in India, they can do precious 
little. But in America they should, I suppose, 
be able to do a great deal. But it is a question 
really outside my depth, and I must not say 
anything more about it.” 

“I do a lot of writing and speaking, especially 
among women. Have you any message to give 
to American women ? ” 

“ Not as a message. I can throw out a sugges- 
tion and, if it appeals to you, you can develop it. 
Woman can play a most important part in the 
work of pacifism. She should refuse to be swept 
off her feet and to imitate man’s language and 
refuse to allow herself and hers to be identi- 
fied with anything connected with war. For she 
must know that she can represent peace more 
than war. She is made for the demonstration 
and exhibition of that silent force which is 
not less effective because it is silent, but the 
more effective because it is silent. ” 

Princes and the Present Crisis 

A few friends, who came from the Princes’ 
India, drew a lurid picture of the state of 
things there — the panic and the insecurity and 
the impending anarchy. What are the Princes 
to do? 

Briefly put Gandhiji’s answer was: “They 
should cease to be Princes and become servants 
of the people.” He developed the answer in the 
course of his conversation: 

“They will have to descend from their pede- 
stal and seek the co-operation of their people. 
If they do so, they need not use force at all 
to put down the forces of disorder. The 
Congress does not want to do away with the 
Princes, and they can seek its co-operation in 
bringing about peace and contentment in their 
States. 

“ They will have to be genuine servants of 
the people. When they do so, no one will think 
of eliminating them. If they are the servants 
and the people are the masters, why should the 
masters do away with the servants? You say 
there are a number of smaller Princes today 
who are anxious to make up with the Congress, 
If they are, what prevents them from doing the 
most elementary things ? ” 

“ They, ” said the interviewers, “ want to do 
certain things, but they are on the one hand 
afraid of the Paramount Power and on the other 
afraid of the people. Some kind of fear seems 
to have seized them that the people will want 
to pay off old scores. ” 

“ Both their fears are groundless. If they 
will do justice, I can scarcely think of the 
people wanting to pay off old scores. Our 
people are not of a revengeful nature. Is the 
ruler of Aundh afraid of any rebellion in his 
State ? He is not, for whom will they rebel 
against when they know that he has divested 
himself of practically all power ? If they want to 
rebel, I think he is capable of saying to them, 
‘Come and take charge of my palace, I shall 


be content to go and stay among the poorest 
of you.* Appasaheb, the son of the Chief of 
Aundh, is slaving away for the people as no 
servant of the State does. 

“ But the fact is that the people have to be 
convinced of their hona fides. Let them do two 
things. One is that they have to purify their 
lives and reduce themselves to utter simplicity. 
The fabulous amounts they spend on themselves 
are unconscionable. I cannot understand how they 
can have the heart to squander the people’s 
money in riotous living, when thousands of their 
people cannot get a square meal a day. Why 
should they not be content with two or three 
hundred rupees a month? But my point is this. 
Let them take what the people will give them. 
Their privy purse must be votable. No reforms 
and no budget can have any value unless the 
people have the fullest right to say how much 
their ruler will take for himself. A new age 
has already begun, and no ruler can conceivably 
be tolerated whose life does not correspond 
largely with the life of his people and who does 
not identify himself with them. 

“ That is one thing. The other thing is that 
their judiciary will have to be above board and 
therefore independent of them, I cannot say 
today with confidence that in any State the 
judiciary is really independent. And there must 
be complete civil liberty. 

“ These, then, are the first steps in the way 
of reform. Their fear of the Paramount Power is 
groundless. That Power dare not openly say or 
do anything to interfere with bona fide reforms. 
Wherever they have interfered they have made 
some flaw in the particular Prince’s character 
an excuse. The deduction is that Princes should 
be, like Caesar’s wife, above suspicion. As 
for the Congress, let them know that it is ever 
ready to come to an understanding with them. 
The Congress is essentially a non-violent organi- 
sation. Let the Princes voluntarily go under 
the authority of their people and the Congress 
will befriend them. If they do not do so, there 
are breakers ahead. The Congress, let me 
repeat, is not out to destroy the Princes, unless 
it be that they do not mend their ways and 
destroy themselves. Even if there is one Prince 
who will be content to be the servant of the 
people, the Congress will stand by him.” 

On the train to Simla, 27-6-40 M. D. 


Some Books by Gandhiji 
Price 

Postage 

Satyagraha in South Africa 

Rs. 4 8 

0 

8 

My Early Life 

1 0 

0 

2 

Speeches and Writings 

4 0 

0 

9 

Cent Per Cent Swadeshi 

1 8 

0 

5 

Hind Swaraj 

0 4 

0 

2 

From Yeravda Mandir 
Self-Restraint v. Self-Indulgence 

0 2 

0 

1 

Part II 

Aavilable at Harijan office — 

1 0 

Poona 4 

0 

3 



196 HARIJAN [ JULY 13, 1940 


WHAT LSD TO THE DECISION 

A Historical Retrospect: 14 Years 

Gandhiji’s decision to be responsible no longer 
to guide the deliberations and policy of the 
Congress may have come upon the members of 
the Working Committee and upon the country 
with a certain amount of suddenness. But it 
was the natural conclusion of a series of events 
since 1934 — or may I say since 1919 ? For his 
warning to the people first came to be uttered 
after the mob violence in Nadiad and Ahmed- 
abad. He shocked his followers and amused his 
critics by proclaiming that in placing the remedy 
of civil disobedience in the hands of people 
who had not learnt the discipline to listen and 
to obey he had been guilty of a Himalayan 
blunder. Then came Chauri Chaura and the 
momentous Bardoli decision suspending satyagraha 
indefinitely. This gave the followers an even 
greater shock than that given by the “Hima- 
layan blunder". But Gandhiji was adamant. 
He knew that the country would realise the 
wisdom of the decision in course of time, and 
that it would be able to prepare itself for 
another struggle. It took the country six or 
seven years — years punctuated by communal 
rioting and internecine strife — to develop non- 
violent strength to hurl defiance against the 
Government. We had learnt the virtue of non- 
violence, but it had with most of us a limited 
meaning and content. And yet it carried us 
through to a certain amount of success. Then 
came more organised repression on behalf of the 
Government, our limited non-violence proved a 
poor match for it, and with that came the third 

milestone on the march to non-violence I 

mean- the Patna decision of 1934 suspending civil 
disobedience and confining it only to himself. 

Throughout this period of fourteen years he 
belonged to the Congress, he was a member 
of it, he attended meetings of the A. I. C. C. 
and of the Working Committee, and actively 
participated in the deliberations. But the Patna 
decision had set him thinking. Always anxious 
to lay the blame principally - on himself, he had 
begun to discover that the arrest in the growth 
of the Congress and the corruption in its ranks 
was due to the fact that the Congress “had 
degenerated into an organisation dominated by 
one personality, and that in it®there was no 
free play of reason.” There were vital differences 
between him and the Congressmen, but his 
personality, he felt, had acted like an incubus on 
them and prevented their self-expression. That 
was unconsciously encouraging hypocrisy and a 
subtle piece of violence. Khadi and the spinn- 
ing wheel were there on the Congress programme, 
‘‘yet only a few Congressmen have a living faith 
in the India-wide potency of the wheel.” And 
as for non-violence, as he said in his historic 
statement issued in September 1934, “ after four- 
teen years of trial it still remains a policy with 
the majority of Congressmen, whereas it is a 
fundamental creed with me. That Congressmen 


do not still regard non-violence as a creed is 
no fault of theirs. It is undoubtedly my faulty 
presentation, and still more its faulty execution, 
that ate responsible for this failure. I have no 
consciousness of faulty presentation or execu- 
tion, but it is the only possible inference from 
the fact that it has not yet become an integral 
part of the lives of Congressmen.” We had 
paid lip-loyalty to non-violence, and even that 
non-violence was not of the strong but of the 
weak. “ If we were non-violent through and 
through, our non-violence would have been self- 
evident. Nor were we able to show to the 
terrorists that we had greater faith in our non- 
violence than they in their violence.” The argu- 
ment led irresistibly to the conclusion that he 
should leave the Congress organization as he 
was convinced that by being outside he would 
serve the Congress and the country better than 
by being in it. That was the fourth milestone — 
the step to withdraw from the Congress being 
solely dictated by the idea of making the 
experiment of non-violence in thought, word 
and deed more intense. “For this experiment,” 
he said, “I need complete detachment and abso- 
lute freedom of action. I can only search Him 
through non-violence, and in no other way, and 
the freedom of my country, as of the world, 
fa surely included in the search for truth. I 
cannot suspend this search for anything in this 
world or another.” The wisdom of the decision, 
which was so to say ratified by the Bombay 
Congress, was proved by a very simple test. The 
amendment suggesting the substitution of the 
words “ truthful and non-violent ” for “ peaceful 
and legitimate” was that simple test. The amend- 
ment was thrown out by the members of the 
A. I. C. C., and proved clearly the thinness of 
the faith of the bulk of Congressmen in truth 
and non-violence. 

1934 — 39 

He retired from the Congress in October 
1934 and threw himself with redoubled zeal 
and vigour into the only kind of work that was 
an expression of non-violence — revival and 
development of village industries, Harijan service, 
education through basic crafts, and fixing up 
one’s abode in a village which offered in a 
nutshell all the problems of an Indian village. 
But this retirement was far from giving him 
the “complete detachment and absolute freedom” 
of action that he was longing for. For three 
years he had a certain amount of respite, but 
the decision to accept offices, taken by the 
Congress on his advice, drew him once again 
into active leadership. 

Every step, throughout the period of fourteen 
or fifteen years, had been for him an experi- 
ment in the pursuit of truth and non-violence, 
and his advice to the Congress to take up the 
burden of office acceptance was another such 
experiment. The office acceptance was not in- 
tended to work the Act of 1935 anyhenv-,, “in 
the prosecution by the Congress of its goal of 



JULY 13, 1^40 ] 


HAEIJAlf 


197 


Complete Independence, it is a serious attempt 
on the one hand to avoid a bloody revolution 
and on the other to avoid mass civil disobedi- 
ence -on a scale hitherto not attempted.” He 
declined to have any authority over the minis- 
ters or to have any power to issue instructions 
to them, but “in matters relating to the struggle 
for Swaraj through non-violent action, I do 
claim special qualifications. For me office accept- 
ance has a special meaning even in terms of 
the Congress manifesto and resolutions.” The 
Congress was not only to replace an alien 
Government, but an alien method of governance. 
It was to rule, he made it clear in the very 
beginning, “ not through the police backed by 
the military but through its moral authority 
based upon the greatest goodwill of the people. 
It will rule not in virtue of authority derived 
from a superior armed power but in virtue of 
the service of the people whom it seeks to 
represent in every one of its actions.” 

That was said in August 1937. Since then 
every pronouncement of his has been a com- 
mentary on the principle of action laid down 
in the very beginning. Trouble in the Sholapur 
Settlement of “Criminal Tribes” and labour un- 
rest in Ahmedabad and Cawnpore gave him the 
first occasion to sound a warning. “ Do we really 
believe in truth and non-violence, in sustained 
work and discipline, in the efiScacy of the four- 
fold constructive programme ? If we are not 
sure of our own chosen aims, we need not 
wonder, if one fine morning we discover that 
we had committed a grave blunder in embark- 
ing upon office acceptance. My conscience as a 
or the prime mover in the direction of office 
acceptance is quite clear. I advised it on the 
supposition that the Congressmen as a whole 
were sound not only on the goal but also on 
the truthful and- non-violent means.” 

In 1938 came further storm signals, and they 
gave Gandhiji the opportunity of making the 
Congress position further clearer. The ministers 
were to rule by moral authority based on the 
greatest goodwill of the people, but what was 
the meaning of that goodwill ? The Congress 
claimed to represent the whole of India, not only 
the so-called Congressmen — to represent meaning 
to serve their interests. And in that sense it had 
to serve the interests of non- Congressmen even 
better than those of Congressmen, if it was to 
be true to its creed of non-violence. “It should 
represent even those who are hostile to it and 
who will even crush it if they can. Not until 
we make good that claim shall we be in a 
position to displace the British Government and 
function as an independent nation.” These words 
were uttered two years ago, but it seems as 
though they were uttered yesterday. The bulk 
of the Muslims and others belong to the non- 
Congressmen’s camp. Have we the power — the 
non-violent power — to represent them today? 
If we have, we can function as an independent 
nation in spite of Britain. 


But to proceed. The riots in some of the 
cities of the U. P. and the steps taken by the 
Congress ministry to quell them made Gandhiji 
pointedly ask the question: Is Congress non- 
violence non-violence of the weak and the 
helpless or of the strong and the powerful ? 
“ If it is the former, it will never take us to 
our goal, and if long practised may even render 
us for ever unfit for self-government. If the 
Congress non-violence does not come out of 
real strength, it would be best and honest for 
the Congress to make such a declaration and 
make the necessary changes in its behaviour. 
To the extent that the Congress ministries have 
been obliged to make use of the police and the 
military, to that extent in my opinion we must 
admit our failure. ” 

His soul had already begun to get impatient. 
How long would this experiment last, how long 
could he continue to give his guidance if it 
was ultimately to be futile ? We discover this 
impatience of the soul in numerous utterances 
of those days. To some co-workers he said : “ I 
am ashamed that our ministries had to call to 
their aid the police and the military. I am 
ashamed that they had to use the langua ge that 
they did in reply to the Opposition speeches. I 
feel as if the Congress had lost and the British 
had won. Why does our non-violence fail on 
such occasions? Is it the non-violence of the 
weak? Even the goondas should not move us 
from our faith and make us say; ‘ We will send 
them to the gallows or shoot them down.’ They 
too are our countrymen. If they will kill us, we 
will allow them to do so. You cannot pit against 
organised violence the non-violence of the weak, 
but the non-violence which the bravest alone 
can exercise. We have, you will say, been 
sufficiently non-violent. We were non-violent 
during the civil disobedience campaign, we re- 
ceived lathi blows and worse. My reply is this : 
We did, but not sufficiently. We could not 
get Independence at the end of the Dandi 
March, as ours was not the unadulterated non- 
violence of the bravest.” 

The question of external aggression has crop- 
ped up just now, but the question of internal 
unrest was already there as alive as today. Had 
we the strength then to say to the goondas, 
“Kill us, we will not kill you”? We had not. 
But Gandhiji lived in the hope that we should 
have that strength soon. “ Supposing, ” he said 
to the Gandhi Seva Sangh people at Delang, 
on the 25th of March 1938, “the Viceroy 
were to invite the President of the Congress 
to meet him and to state the Congress terms, 
do you think he would have the strength to 
say, ‘The Congress is capable of taking charge 
of the administration, the British may . go ’ ? Do 
you think we could tell him that we should 
be able to do without the police and the military, 
that we should be able to come to terms with 
the Princes, the Zamindars emd the Mussalmans ? 
I am afraid we could not honestly say we 



198 


HARIJAN 


[ July 13, 1940 


should easily be able to come to terms with 
these. And yet, if we had real non-violence in 
us, we should be able to say and do these 
things. ” 

But if the situation was bad in the middle 
of 1938, it is worse in the middle of 1940. 
Someone asked Gandhiji the other day : “ You 
think we have not the non-violence of the 
brave. Well, then, I ask you what would you 
do if Independence were to be offered to you 
today ? Would you say No ? ” 

He said : I would say No. I am giving an 
absurd answer to an absurd question. The 
question is absurd, for Independence is not 
going to be offered, because we are not ready. 
If we were ready, it would be there without 
our asking it.” 

But I am anticipating events. There was im- 
patience in the soul, but he was patient with 
the people. He was arguing with the ministries, 
arguing with the people. “In spite of our having 
accepted the volunteer’s pledge for 17 years we 
have not developed the irresistible strength that 
such acceptance of ahimsa means. The reason is 
that we have not troubled, we have not laboured, 
to organise such a non-violent army. If we can- 
not do so, if we cannot carry out the pledge, 
it would be well to reconsider our position. 
The tragedy is that the pledge is still in exis- 
tence but it exists on paper. If we had on a 
sufficient scale such a non-violent army as the 
pledge contemplates, we should not have had 
these riots; and if there had been, we would 
have quelled the riots or immolated ourselves 
in the attempt. We have heard of only one 
man who met his death. I admire his self- 
immolation, But my breast would have swelled 
with joy if there had been several Guptas.” 

“If,” he said in an article written in that 
period, “the Congress non-violence is merely 
confined to abstention from causing physical 
hurt to the British officials and their dependants, 
such non-violence can never bring us Indepen- 
dence. It is bound to be worsted in the final 
heat. Indeed we shall find it to be worthless, 
if not positively harmful, long before the final 
heat is reached.” And then this solemn warning : 
“If we feel that we shall not be able to dis- 
place the British power without a violent strug- 
gle, the Congress must say so to the nation and 
prepare accordingly. We must do what is being 
done all the world over — forbear when we can, 
hit when we must. If that is to be our creed or 
policy, we have lost precious seventeen years. 
But it is never too late to learn and mend.” 

The long tours of the Frontier Province that 
followed were with the sole purpose of prepar- 
ing the promising field for the non-violence of 
the brave. 

- And it was .not that the ministries wholly 
failed. 

What’s done we partly may compute 

But oft not what’s resisted. 


If we were to go minutely into the history 
of the work of the Congress ministries in the 
eight provinces, we would find that they had 
some triumphs of non-violence to their credit. 
But God fulfils Himself in many ways. If the 
ministries had continued, would they have been 
ultimately found wanting ? May it not have 
been providential that the situation created by 
the war came as a godsend and compelled the 
ministries to resign ? Who shall say ? But again 
I am anticipating events 

A Narrow Escape 

The test had nearly come with the inter- 
national crisis of September 1938 and the rape of 
Czechoslovakia. But the dictated peace at Munich 
saved us. The Working Committee sat and 
deliberated for some days, but the test in the 
shape of war did not come. Gandhiji placed the 
implications of non-violence before the Working 
Committee in a manner that could not be 
mistaken, and the Working Committee was 
so unanimously with him that he w'as in a 
position to report : “ The Working Committee 
had almost come to the conclusion that it would 
deny itself the opportunity of striking a bargain 
with England, but would make its contribution 
to the world peace, to the defence of Czecho- 
slovakia and to India’s freedom by declaring 
to the world by its action that the way to 
peace with honour did not lie through mutual 
slaughter of the innocents, but that it lay only 
and truly through the practice of organized non- 
violence even unto death.” 

And in the course of a private conversation 
he used words which had a prophetic ring, at 
least so far as he himself was concerned: 

“ You may rest assured that whatever happens 
there will be no surrender by the Government. 
For me, even if I stand alone, Lhcrc is no 
participation in the ivar even if the Government 
should surrender the whole control to the Consiress... 
Who would have thought aeroplanes to be a 
practical reality fifty years ago? Who would have 
imagined in this country, thirty years ago, that 
thousands of innocent men, women and children 
would be ready smilingly to march to prison ? 
The weapon of ahimsa does not need supermen 
or superwomen to wield it; beings of common 
clay can use and have used it before this with 
success. At any rate fifteen members of the 
Working Committee did express their readiness 
to put their ahimsa to the test. That was more 
than I was prepared for.” 

But we were not weighed, and our honour 
remained intact. At any rate we did not die 
before our death. W^hat the Committee would 
have done if the crisis had actually come it’ is 
difficult to say, but as we have seen it filled 
Gandhiji with great hopes. 

The Crisis 

Exactly a year after this the crisis was upon 
us. In that first hour of trial, the Congress 
was weighed and not found wanting. It did not 
take the Working Committee long to issue its 



July 13, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


199 


mandate to the Congress ministries to resign. 
Gandhiji heaved a sigh of relief. The quescions 
that frequently tormented him ceased to trouble 
his soul. If the Congress had accepted his advice, 
in the initial stage, of offering unconditional 
co-operation, or if later the British Government 
had acceded to the Congress demand for a de- 
claration and the Congress had offered co-opera- 
tion in response, the position for Gandhiji would 
have been the same. For the co-operation he 
had contemplated was moral co-operation and no 
other. But who knows? It may be that even 
there there has been providential intervention. 
If the Working Committee had then taken the 
stand — the very honest stand indeed — that it 
has taken now,, the difficulty both for the 
Committee and for Gandhiji would have been 
immense, the situation more delicate. But as 
I have said God intervened. 

The crisis in the shape of the collapse of one 
European nation after another in quick succes- 
sion came none too soon. Gandhiji had waited 
in patience so long, trying to steer a difficult 
course through rocks and breakers. He had 
voluntarily accepted the position of the General- 
issimo. Was it wise ? The speeches at the 

Ramgarh Congress were a mirror of the struggles 
of his soul. In private he had implored the 
Working Committee and the Maulana to relieve 
him of the position. It was simply with a view 
to being able to render greater service to the 
Congress. “I am putting upon myself an uridue 
strain, but as it is not yet a strain on my 

conscience, I shall continue to serve you, if you 
will insist on my doing so. But it is a terrible 
strain, and I would implore you to free me. 

I should then pursue my experiment of ahimsa 
with absolute freedom.” I am quoting from 
memory, but that was the substance of bis 

entreaty to the Working Committee. And when 
they did not relieve him he poured out the 

depths of his soul in the two speeches at 
Ramgarh. 

But the soul’s impatience continued. Would 
the Working Committee face or quail before 
the coming storm? Perhaps they were taken by 
surprise, but not Gandhiji. The European situation 
had for him a lesson that was unmistakably clear. 
“ It fills me with the utmost non-violence,” he 
said. “ I cannot think of a better thing to offer 
to Britain and the defeated nations than non- 
violence. It is impossible for me to enthuse over 
the deeds of Hitler or of those who fought or 
failed to fight him. There is nothing to choose 
between the victory of Hitler and the defeat of 
others. But I have no doubt in my mind that 
even a patched-up non-violent army would take 
the wind out of Hitler’s sails. I need not have 
his aeroplanes, tanks, etc. He need not destroy 
our homes. Our non-violent army would welcome 
him, and it may be that he would not dare to 
come. I know that this may be a daydream. 
But I cannot belie the principle of a lifetime 
or wipe out my daydreams of the past twenty 
years. If we have not the non-violent strength 


of the brave to figh: anarchy arr] aggression, let 
us say so and reduce ourselves to a small 
minority hoping to develop non-violence of the 
strong in the days to come.” 

The "Working Committee did some fierce 
thinking for days. Those were the da^-s of 
heart-searching for them. The logic of Gandhiji's 
propositions w’as invincible, but could they go 
with those propositions to che people ? Were 
they sc thoroughly satLicaiied cliomscb/es with 
tne spirit of non-violence of :L- 2 e brave to be 
able to carry conviction co the people? Gandhiji 
even drafted a resolution for them. But fain 
as they would have it, sorely as they felt the 
wrench of having to do without his leadership 
and his advice, they could not be untrue to 
themselves. “ We feel we could not accept your 
position with our mind and heart and soul, 
and we feel we should not entangle you. ” they 
said to him in effect. “ And if that is so, why 
should we. accept an untenable position merely 
to retain your connection? It would be a fraud 
on ourselves and others. ” 

But if they could not be untrue to themselves, 
neither could Gandhiji be untrue to himself. 
He said to them: “I must be left free for my 
self-expression. I must be free to pursue my 
search, and I know you will believe me when 
I say that I go only to be of more effective 
service to the Congress, to you and the nation. 
Of course I shall be available when you want 
me. But I can no longer identify myself with 
the direction of your policy and programme. 
You will, therefore, try your best to do without 
me and have your meetings in future not in 
Wardha but elsewhere.” 

It was said of old by a Teacher to his dis- 
ciples: “Ye are the salt of the earth: but if 
the salt have lost his savour, wherewith shall 
it be salted ? ” Had those who for us have 
been “the salt of the earth” lost their savour? 
One cannot say. But there were these words 
also uttered of old: “Ye are the light of the 
world. A city that is set on an hill cannot be 
hid.” And they may yet be those lights. In the 
meanwhile Gandhiji waits and prays in silence. 
“■ I should work single-handed in implicit faith 
that what I fail to make clear to my country- 
men today shall be clear to them some day ’of 
itself or, if God wills it, through some apt 
word He may put in my mouth, or some apt 
work which He may prompt me to do.” These 
words were uttered in 1934, but they might have 
been uttered only the other day. 

New Delhi. 1-7-40 

M. D. 

Autobiography 

The long av/aited one- volume cheaper edition of 
Gandhiji*s The Story of My Experiments with Truth 
(Autobiography) has now been published by the 
Navajivan Press, Kalupur, Ahmedabad. This edition 
contains a few photographs which add to the value 
of the book. Price Rs. 4. Postage 10 As. extra. 

Available at Harijan Office — Poona 4. 



200 


HARUAN 


[ July 13, 1940 



’l-jatijan 


July 13 


1940 


“A CRY IN' THE WILDERNESS”? 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

H ■<W; % ^ <• 

“ With hands upraised I cry : 

(But none listens to me) 

Dharma* yields both Artha® and Kama®; 

Why is that Dharma not observed ? ” 

Bapuji Aney on his way back from Simla 
paid a flying visit to me at Delhi on Saturday. 
Whether we work together or seem to be 
working in opposite directions, his love for me 
endures, and so he never misses an opportunity 
to look in wherever I may be. He expresses 
himself freely before me, and often shares with 
me a verse or two from his inexhaustible store. 
During his Delhi visit he sympathized with me 
for my having had to sever my connection with 
the Congress, but he really congratulated me. 
“They should, I think, leave you in peace,” he 
said, “ and let you go your way. I read your 
appeal to every Briton. It will fall on deaf 
ears. But that does not matter to you. You 
cannot help telling them what you feel to be 
their Dharma ( Duty ). But it is not strange that 
they will not listen to you — seeing that the 
Congress itself did not listen to you at the 
critical moment. W^hen even sage Vyasa failed 
to make himself heard, how should others fare 
better ? He had to conclude his great Epic 
— Mahabharata — with a verse which reveals 
the cry of his soul." With this he cited the 
verse I have quoted at the head of this article. 
He thereby strengthened my feith, and also 
showed how difficult was the way I had chosen. 

And yet it has never seemed to me so diffi- 
cult as it is imagined to be. Though the Sardar's 
way and mine seem to diverge today, it does 
not mean that our hearts also diverge. It was 
in my power to stop him from seceding from 
me. But it did not seem to be proper to do so. 
And it would have been morally wrong to strive 
with Rajaji in what he firmly regarded as his 
clear duty. Instead, therefore, of dissuading 
Rajaji I encouraged him to follow his course. 
It was my clear duty to do so. If I have the 
power to carry my experiment of ahimsa to 
success in an apparently new field, if my faith 
endures, and if I am right in thinking that the 
masKS are fundamentally non-violent, Rajaji and 
the Sardar will again be with me as before. 

What are these apparently new fields for the 
operation of non-violence ? Those who have 
followed the Working Committee’s resolutions 
and writing s in Harijan are now fa miliar •vp-ith 

1 Duty; 2 Wealth; 3 Desire, aspiration. 


these. Non-violence in its operation against 
constituted authority is one field. We have 
exercised this up to now with a fair amount 
of success, and I have always described it as 
the non-violence of the weak. This non-violence 
may be said to have come to stay with 
Congressmen. 

The other field is the exercise of ahimsa in 
internal disturbances — ■ Hindu-Muslim riots and 
the like. We have not been able to show 
visible success in the exercise of ahimsa in this 
field. What then should the Congressmen do 
when internal chaos is so imminent ? Will they 
return blow for blow, or will they cheerfully 
bend their heads to receive violent blows? The 
answer to this is not so easy as we might think. 
Instead of going into the intricacies, I should 
say that Congressmen should try to save the 
situation by laying down their lives, not by 
taking any. He who meets death without 
striking a blow fulfils his duty cent per cent. 
The result is in God’s hands. 

But it is clear that this non-violence is not 
the non-violence of the weak. It does not give 
one the joy of jail-going. One can have that 
joy and also cover thereby the ill-will one har- 
bours in his breast against the Government. One 
can also non-cooperate with the Government. 
But where swords, knives, lathis and stones ace 
freely used, what is a man to do single-handed? 
Is it possible for one to receive these deadly 
blows with ill-will in one’s heart? It is clear 
that it is impossible to do so, unless one is 
saturated with charity. It is only he who feels 
one with his opponent that can receive his 
blows as ..though they were so many flowers. 
Even one such man, if God favours him, can 
do the work of a thousand. It requires soul 
force — moral courage — of the highest type. 

The man or woman who can display this non- 
violence of the brave cam easily stand against 
external invasion. This is the third field for the 
exercise of non-violence. The Congress Working 
Committee were of opinion that, while it might 
be possible for us to exercise ahimsa in internal 
disturbances, India has not the strength to 
exercise ahimsa against the invasion of a foreign 
foe. This their want of faith has distressed me. 
I do not believe that the unarmed millions of 
India cannot exercise ahimsa with success in this 
wide field. It is for Congressmen to reassure the 
Sardar, whose faith in ahimsa of the strong has 
for the moment been shaken, that ahimsa is the 
only weapon that can suit India in the fields 
mentioned. Let no one ask, “But what about the 
martial races in India?" For me that is all the 
more reason why Congressmen should train 
themselves to defend their country with a non- 
violent army. This is an entirely new experiment. 
But who, save the Congress, is to try it — the 
Congress which ■ has tried it successfully in one 
field ? It is my unshakable faith that, if we 
have a sufficient number of non-violent soldiers, 
we are sure to succeed even in this new field. 




July 13, 1940 ] 


HABIJAN 


201 


■apart from the saving of the needless waste of 
crores of rupees. 

I am therefore hoping that every Gujarati 
•Congressite — man and -woman — will declare their 
adherence to ahimsa and reassure the Sardar that 
■they will never resort to violence. Even if there 
is sure hope of success in the exercise of violence, 
they will not prefer it to the exercise of non- 
violence. We are sure to learn by our mistakes. 
“ We fall to rise, are baffled to fight better, 
sleep to wake.” 

On the train to Wardha, 7-7-40 

( Translated from Gujarati ) 

THE DELHI EESOLHTION 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

I have just seen the news that the Working 
■Committee’s fateful resolution has been released 
to the Press. It was passed in my presence, but 
I wanted to say nothing before it was actually 
released for publication. It will be a profound 
mistake to suppose that the members passed the 
■five solid days in wrangling. They had to dis- 
charge a heavy responsibility. Though logically 
the resolution is no departure from the Ramgarh 
resolution, it is an undoubted departure from its 
■spirit. The letter often remains constant, the 
spirit changes. Up to now for one reason or 
another the Congress policy was: No participation 
in the war except for the moral influence that 
the Congress can exercise if the vital demand 
was satisfied of Britain’s own free will. Such 
was not the position of all the members of 
the Working Committee. Hence at the critical 
moment every member had to make up his 
or her mind independently of the rest. The 
five days were days of tremendous heart-search- 
ing. I had produced a draft resolution which 
almost all thought was the best, if they 
could bring to bear a living belief in non-vio- 
lence through and through, or if they could 
truthfully say that such was the belief of their 
constituencies. Some had neither and some had 
"individually the required faith. Only Khan Saheb 
was clear so far as his own faith and that of 
his beloved Khudai Khidmatgars were concerned. 
So he had decided even after the last Wardha 
resolution that he had no place in the Congress. 
He had a special mission and a special duty to 
his followers. So the Working Committee gladly 
permitted him to retire from the Congress. By 
retiring he serves the Congress all the more even 
as I hope to do. Who knows that those of us, 
who retire may not be able to give our com- 
rades the faith they seem, for the moment, to 
have lost ? 

Rajaji was the framer of the resolution. He 
was as certain of his position as I was of 
mine. His persistency, courage and utter humility 
brought him converts. Sardar Patel was his 
greatest prize. He would not have even thought 
of bringing up his resolution if I bad chosen 
to prevent him. But I give my comrades the 
same credit for earnestness and self-confidence 


that I claim for myself. I had long known that 
we were drifting away from each other in our 
outlook upon the political problems that face us. 
He will not allow me to say that his is a 
departure from ahimsa. He claims that his very 
ahimsa has led him to the point which cul- 
minated in his resolution. He thinks that I 
suffer from obsession owing to too much 
brooding on ahimsa. He almost thinks that my 
vision is blurred. It was no use my returning 
the compliment though half joking I did. I 
have no proof, save my faith, to question his 
counter faith. That is evidently absurd. I could 
not carry the Committee with me at Wardha and 
so I got my absolution. I at once saw as clear 
as daylight that, if my position was not accept- 
able, Rajaji’s was the only real alternative. I 
therefore encouraged him to persist in his effort, 
though all the while I held him to be hope- 
lessly in the wrong. And by exemplary patience, 
skill and considerateness towards his opponents 
he got a good majority, five remaining neutral. 
I had a fearful moment. Generally such resolu- 
tions are not carried by the majority vote. But 
at this juncture unanimity was not to be ex- 
pected. I advised that Rajaji’s resolution should 
be enforced. And so at the last moment the 
Committee decided that the resolution should 
go forth to the world. 

It was necessary for the public to have this 
background to the tremendous step the Com- 
mittee have taken for good or ill. Those Con- 
gressmen who have a living faith in the non- 
violence of the strong will naturally abstain. 
For the moment, however, what they can do is 
wholly irrelevant. Rajaji’s resolution represents the 
considered policy of the Congress. Non-Congress- 
men, who were eager for the Congress to be 
free of my religious bias to adopt a purely 
political attitude, should welcome the resolution 
and support it whole-heartedly. So should the 
Muslim League, and even the Princes who think 
of India more than their principalities. 

The British Government have to make their 
choice. Independence they cannot withhold unless 
their wisdom is as much blurred as Rajaji claims 
that mine is. If Independence is recognised, the 
acceptance of the other part of the resolution 
follows as a matter of course. The question is: 
do they want to impress help from India by 
virtue of their rulcrship over India, or will they 
have the help that a free and independent India 
can give ? My individual advice has already 
gone. My help always has been promised. 
Acceptance of that advice can but enhance their 
heroism. But if they cannot accept it, I advise, 
as a disinterested but staunch friend, that the 
British Government should not reject the hand 
of friendship offered by the Congress. 

Sevagram, 8-7-40 


Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radbakrishnan. (New Edition) Rs. 5-10-0. 
Postage 8 As. Avmlable at Harijcm office-Poona 4. 



202 


HARIJAN 


[ July 13, 1940 

MORE ABOUT HANDICRAFTS of social and living conditions in the United 


A Rock Bottom Queiry 

Some time back Gandhiji had an interesting 
discussion with a group of noted economists. 
The theme of discussion was, is khadi economi- 
cal as compared to mill cloth ? Incidentally 
they also covered the subject of handicrafts. The 
view of the economist friends was that khadi 
and handicrafts were all right as a means for 
providing industrial relief to the unemployed in 
the present stage of India’s transition, and as 
such deserved to be supported, but they could 
not be given a central place in national planning. 
It would be wrong in principle, they held, to 
prop up inherently ‘uneconomical industries’, as 
they considered khadi and most other handicrafts 
to be, in order to make them compete with 
machine products to the detriment of the latter 
and thereby curtail the productive capacity of 
the country. Gandhiji’s contention was that it 
was the factory product that was today being 
subsidised by society in a number of ways at the 
expense of handicrafts. For instance, the factory 
system depended for its success on cheap railway 
transport, special municipal facilities, existence and 
collaboration of a number of collateral key indus- 
tries, ample banking and insurance facilities, a high 
level of general technical education to ensure an 
unfailing and plentiful supply of specialised and 
eflBcient labour. All these meant an enormous 
cost. But society did not grudge it as the con- 
comitant conditions of life which resulted from 
it, i. e. quick travelling, motor cars, the cinema, 
radio, electric light, and a thousand and one 
thrills provided by what Stuart Chase has called 
“ the toys of civilization ” are what the city- 
bred intellectual, who today guides our social 
destinies, wants. The handicrafts, on the other 
hand, depend for their success on a different 
system of economics. If a rural-minded society 
provided these, no power on earth would be 
able to compete with handicrafts. But then such 
a society shall have to be content with the 
simple joys and satisfactions which the countryside 
provides and not dream of a utopia in which all 
the villages would be equipped with the latest 
‘modern conveniences’. The so-called economical 
character of factory production as compared 
t;o handicrafts production today is not an 
inherent quality, but only a conferred attribute 
depending on the standard of values which 
society has adopted or considers desirable to 
adopt. The only unalterable and rock bottom 
test of whether an occupation or method of 
production is economical or otherwise, is how far 
it answers life’s vital needs, what the making of 
it means to the producer. 

Value of Handicrafts 

Mr. Ellen H. Eaton examines the case for 
handicrafts from this standpoint in his Russell’s 
Foundation volume Handicrafts of Southern High- 
landst a copy of which he has sent to Gandhiji. 
The Russel Sage Foundation was established in 
1909 by Mr. Russell Sage “for the improvement 


States of America.” In carrying out its purpose, 
the Foundation maintains a staff which, among 
other duties, conducts study of social conditions, 
authorised by the General Director, “ where new 
information, its analysis and interpretation seem 
necessary, in order to formulate and advance 
practicable measures aimed at improvement. ” 
From time to time the foundation publishes the 
results of these studies in book or pamphlet form. 

In the present volume the author furnishes 
some valuable testimony as to the aesthetic, 
educational, therapeutic and recreational value of 
handicrafts. His testimony is all the more valu- 
able since it comes from the representative of a 
nation that has travelled farther on the road to 
mechanisation than any other, and therefore bears 
the hall-mark of experience. “ To a handicrafts 
worker,” observes Mr. Eaton in the introduction 
to his book, “ his work will help him not only 
to perceive much of the beauty of the world 
about him, but what is man’s greatest privilege 
to identify himself with it.. ..Each handicraft has 
its own special reward, but there are a few com- 
pensations which all handicrafts bring to him 
who works at his open windowj First, and 
perhaps greatest of these, “ is the opportunity for 
self-expression which much of life’s work with 
its modern advantages does not give”. Another 
compensation is a growing appreciation of beauty 
in the things of everyday life. The effort to 
make a useful object pleasing to the eye or 
touch gives the craftsman “ an understanding of 
the age-long struggle to bestow on objects of 
daily use that quality that renders their owner- 
ship one of life’s little events. And recognizing 
beauty in things that he had not noticed before 
or looking at had regarded as commonplace, he 
feels himself a joint possessor with those who 
have designed them and with all others who 
enjoy them.” His avocation brings him into close 
touch with nature, “ the source of all the arts”. 

“The lumber with which he builds a house or the 
small block on which he carves a design, opens his 
window upon the trees of grove and forests; through 
weaving he sees the flocks, the ilax and the cotton 
fields; or through his pottery he comes to know the 
many clays and kaolins from which ceramics, porce- 
lains or building bricks are formed. 

From such personal experience the worker in- 
handicrafts will wish for others the privileges which 
have meant so much to him; and he will ask him- 
self if there are not always ways by which the 
sense of beauty could be extended from the some- 
what narrow fields of art to the broader field of 
human relations. And he comes to see that to ask 
the question is in part to answer it. 

He longs to have a share in this larger world. 
Recalling instances in which some of the lowliest 
tasks have been done beautifully... becomes clear 
to him that it is not what one does that deter- 
mines a work of art hut the manner in which it 
is done. An object of art may be a painting on 
canvas, a cathedral in stone, but it may also be a 



JULY 13, 1940 ] 


HAEIJAl^ 


203 


well printed and beautifully bound book, a loaf of 
bread, or a kitchen garden.*' To restate itj he realizes 
that art is just the best way of doing a thing 
that needs to be done — the expression of beauty 
within limitations. These limitations are the use it 
is to serve, the material of which it is made, the 
place it is to occupy." 

Handicrafts Economics 

Because of his insight into this threefold limi- 
tation which is the very soul of handicrafts pro- 
duction the author is able to point out the 
danger of organizing handicrafts production on 
orthodox economic and business principles. He 
enumerates six sets of proposals “ ostensibly 
made to forward the interests of the Highlander 
handicraftsman which result quite differently 
from what has been intended.” 

The first one of these is the riskiest, viz. 
speed of production by installing modern machi- 
nery. “ The advice to apply power to handlooms 
and to use other machines,” observes Mr. Eaton, 

is natural and grows our of the age-long desire 
to save time for other things, and in recent 
years, by saving time, to cut down the cost of 
production.” But this proposal involves a fallacy. 
**Time is a relative matter and is quite a differ- 
ent thing in parts of the Highlands where 
the tempo of living and working differs from 
anything that modern industry and urban life 
know. Good tools, simple machinery, cheap and 
practical power will be a boon to the High- 
lander if gradually introduced on a basis that 
he can afford and become accustomed to and 
if they shall not lessen his skill and undermine the 
quality of his product'' But speed is neither his 
first nor in most cases his most pressing need. To 
utilize time for good work is better than to save it 
for something less important." The argument applies 
mutatis mutandis to India where handloom weav- 
ing and village handicrafts are often sought to 
be reorganised by the Departments of Industries, 
if what was aimed at was to transplant minia- 
ture weaving mills and factories into the villages 
where the competition of mass production cannot 
reach. No wonder they refuse to take root 
or show vitality. 

The other fallacies mentioned by Mr. Eaton are : 

2. Take the work out of homes and establish 
centres where producing and working conditions 
can be controlled. 

The principle of striving for a uniform product 
is in many cases desirable. But there is a strong 
feeling, ” remarks Mr. Eaton, “ among those who 
have pioneered in the handicrafts revival that 
the fireside industries must remain in the home 
and not be turned into small factories ” More- 
over, "as good hand-weaving as has ever been 
done in the mountains has been done on the 
home looms, and it is contended that there is 
no work so difldcult that it cannot be produced 
as well there as in a weaving centre, and at a 
lower cost.” Whatever, therefore, is done to 
finance and develop new and special industries, 
‘^concludes the author, should not take away 


from the handicrafts workers the advantages 
which the slow building up of home work 
has brought to them, ” 

3. Sell in quantity through department and 
ocher commercial stores. 

This is wrong as it demands standardisation 
of products and a heavy overhead charge on the 
cost of production. Under the present circum- 
stances, therefore, it is highly doubtful v;bether 
the regular channels of crade ergnised to respond 
to mass production can be utilized to market 
handicraft to any great extent. 

4. Tnstal efldciency cost systems and make only 
articles that can be sold at a profit. 

This won t do, as normally it is not easy to 
evaluate a handicraft worker’s time because there 
are few standards by which it can be measured, 
" and also because urban time schedules are not 
operative in the mountains. The history of handi- 
crafts in the Southern Highlands presents many 
an instance where, had eflSciency systems of 
measurement been insisted on, the nascent occu- 
pation would have been nipped in the very 
beginning.” 

5. Employ expert designers and use only their 
designs. 

This again is fallacious. Whilst co-operation 
and co-ordination between trained designers and 
workers who are to execute their designs can 
be helpful, sole dependence of "the former will 
discourage new expressions in various kinds of 
work ” which is the soul of handicrafts produc- 
tion and the secret of its vitality. 

6. And above all produce standard articles 
and eliminate sentiment about the craftsman 
from the work. 

To do so is to lose sight of the fact that 
practising a handicraft is not merely an avoca- 
tion — a method of production — but a way of 
life. "A handicraftsman lives as much by his 
work as by what he produces and earns,” 
Anything that impairs the life-giving quality of a 
handicraft chokes the very spring of its vitality.” 

Sevagram, 25-6-40 Pyarelal 


Congress Membership and Non-violence 

A. Punjabi Congressman writes ; " Can those 
who openly declare that they do not believe in 
non-violence be Congress members, can they 
take part in Gulughara celebrations, and what 
should one do if such men be in a majority in 
a Congress committee ?” 

Now that I am out of the Congress guid- 
ance, my opinion has little weight. I cannot 
say what decision the Congress will give on 
your questions. But I am quite clear that those 
who do not believe in non-violence cannot 
belong to the Congress. I am also clear that 
no Congressman can take part in celebrations 
such as Gulughara. If you find yourself in a 
minority, the non-violent way for you is to 
withdraw from the Committee. 

On Delhi-Wardha train, 8-7-40 M. K. G. 

( Translated from Gujarati ) 



204 


HAKIJAN 


[ JULY 13, 1940 


ABOUT THE WAZIEIS 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Waziristan is one of the regions on the bor- 
der of the Frontier Province. Everybody knows 
that there are a number of tribes living on the 
North-Western Frontier of India. The popular 
notion about them is that they are born only 
to rob and plunder and harass the British 
Government. Both these notions are far remov- 
ed from reality. These trans-border tribes are 
bom and bred in extreme poverty. Life among 
their native hills is a tale of chronic hardship 
and internecine strife. India comes handy to 
them for satisfying their pecuniary need by raid- 
ing. Besides, there are not lacking people who 
in order to serve their own political- ends are 
ready to misguide them and set them on the 
wrong path. Our knowledge about these tribes, 
therefore, is almost confined to their raiding 
activities. Khansaheb has told me that these 
tribesmen are very simple and innocent by 
nature. Whenever I have visited the Frontier 
Province I had tried to go across and make 
acquaintance with these tribes. My first effort in 
this direction was made at the time of the 
Irwin-Gandhi Pact. I had to give it up as Lord 
Irwin said his Government would feel embar- 
rassed. I next sought permission through corres- 
pondence but was equally unsuccessful. I renewed 
the attempt at the time of my first Frontier tour 
and interviewed H. E, the Governor in that 
behalf, but he could not give or rather could not 
obtain for me the necessary permission. Recently 
the Frontier Provincial Congress Committee 
tried to send a deputation among the Waziris 
not with any political motive but simply to do 
welfare work. But the permission could not be 
obtained. The Working Committee has now decid- 
ed to send a deputation consisting of Shri Bhula- 
bhai Desai and Janab Asaf AH. Let us hope the 
deputation will be given the necessary permission. 

The object of the Working Committee’s resolu- 
tion is not political. Its purpose simply is to find 
out how help can be rendered to the border tribes 
and friendly relations cultivated with them. It ill 
comports with our dignity to be in constant dread 
of them. Ignorance is at the root of most of our 
fears. If 1 suspected my neighbour, naturally I 
would be afraid of him. But if I cast out my sus- 
picion, the fear would automatically go. For years 
we have proceeded on the assumption that the 
authorities would under no circumstances allow 
us to cultivate friendly relations with the border 
tribes. The Government, on their side, have, under 
the spell of their pet bogey, spent crores of rupees 
on building forts and block houses and on send- 
ing out military expeditions into the tribal terri- 
tory. It should be a duty of the Congress to 
try to cultivate sincere and friendly relations with 
these folk. The proposed step of the W^orking 
Committee is, therefore, to be welcomed. Let 
us hope that the Congress, having begun the 
efiGnt, will pursue it to the end. 

On the train to Wardha, 8-7-40 

( Translated from Gujarati ) 


WORKING COMMITTEE 
AND THE WAZIRIS 

The Congress Working Committee passed the 
following resolution at its session held at Delhi 
this week: 

Khan Abdul GaflFar Khan has reported to the 
Working Committee that an attempt was made 
by the Frontier Provincial Congress Committee 
to send amongst the Waziris a deputation with a. 
view to use their influence with the tribesmen 
and to wean them from dacoities, kidnappings 
and the like. It is the conviction of the Pro- 
vincial Congress Committee of the Frontier 
Province, which conviction the Working Commit- 
tee share, that it is possible to cultivate friendly 
relations with the tribesmen of the surround- 
ing country. With that end in view, the party 
was to proceed to Waziristan to examine their 
economic conditions, and to render them such 
aid for their social welfare as was possible for 
the Provincial Congress Committee to render. 
It was their intention also to find out the causes 
of the dacoities. But the deputation was not 
permitted by the Government to proceed to- 
Waziristan. The deputation had offered to 
take any official with them, if the Government 
thought such a step necessary. But for reasons 
best known to them, the Government of India 
declined to entertain the proposal. The Working 
Committee regret the decision, and take this 
opportunity to declare to all the tribesmen that 
the Congress can have nothing but goodwill 
towards them. The Congress has always sought 
to establish the friendliest relations with them, 
to share their sorrows, and to help them in 
all possible ways, especially in the way of 
educating their children, improvement of their 
economic condition and medical and hygienic 
welfare. The Working Committee hope too that 
the leaders of tribesmen will reciprocate the 
Congress goodwill, and endeavour to the best of 
their ability to wean those tribesmen who resort 
to dacoities and the like, which the Working 

Committee have reason to believe have no 

political or religious motive, but ate prompted 
by poverty or by persons of political machina- 
tions. 

The Working Committee hereby appoint 
Shri Bhulabhai Desai and Janab Asaf Ali, Shri 
Bhulabhai Desai being leader, to proceed to 
Waziristan and carry on the work that the said 
deputation would have done. The Working 

Committee hope that all facilities will be given 
to the deputation to proceed to Waziristan. The 
Working Committee trust that Shri Bhulabhai 
Desai and Janab Asaf Ali will forthwith proceed 
on their mission and report to the Working 
Committee the result thereof. The Working 

Committee advise the people of the Frontier 
Province to discover the causes of the depreda- 
tions from the tribesmen, not to get frightened,, 
but patiently to discover the ways and means 
of cultivating neighbourly relations with the 
tribesmen. 


HARIJAN 


JULY 13, 1940 ] 


205 


MYSORE LAWYERS 

( By M. Ko Gandhi ) 

Several Mysore lawyers who had taken part 
in the Mysore satyagraha struggle have been 
disbarred by the Mysore Chief Court. The last 
victim is Shri H. C. Dasappa, a most respected 
Mysorean and a practitioner of twenty years’ 
standing. Serious as the disbarring of a member 
belonging to a liberal profession must be, such 
cases have happened before now on insufficient 
or purely political grounds. Such injustices have 
to be borne with resignation and fortitude. 
But the order of the Chief Judge in Shri 
.Dasappa’s case as reported in The Hindu has 
■made for me most painful reading. Shri 
Dasappa had the hardihood to defy a magistrate’s 
-order not to address meetings in a part of 
.Mysore, and had the equal hardihood under my 
instruccions to advise satyagrahi prisoners to 
boycott the departmental inquiry by Justice 
Nagesvara Iyer. For these grave oflEenccs Shri 
.Dasappa has been disbarred for ever. He will be 
reduced to penury, if the Judges could help it 
•and if their verdict has any potency beyond 
the paper on which it is written. Shri Dasappa 
becomes a man without a character to be des> 
pised and shunned by society. I happen to know 
Shri Dasappa personally. I hold him to be a 
man of spotless character and unimpeachable 
honesty. He has been manfully striving to prac- 
tise non-violence to the best of his ability. He 
•has done what many patriot lawyers or no 
-lawyers have done in , British India. And nowa- 
days the Judges take no notice of their conduct* 
and the public have made of them heroes. 
Advocate Bhulabhai has been Advocate-General 
of the Bombay High Court. He has defied 
Jaws. So has Advocate Munshi, and so has 
Chakravarti Rajagopalachari. They have not 
been disbarred. Two of them have been 
-Ministers in their Provinces, Public inquiries 
have been boycotted before now with impunity. 
Neither the honour nor the character of those 
who have brought about such boycotts have 
been impugned. In my opinion the Judges of 
the Mysore Court have forgotten themselves in 
delivering their judgment. Shri Dasappa has 
not suffered. He will rise in the estimation of 
the people of Mysore, But I make bold to say 
the Mysore Judges have suffered by allowing 
themselves to be carried away by prejudice. 

Such travesty of justice has happened before now. 
A Durban Magistrate who was carried away by 
•some stupid prejudice had condemned an innocent 
man. His judgment was reversed, and the Supreme 
Court condemned it in such scathing terms that 
■the Magistrate had to be removed. The Judges 
of the martial law days in the Punjab were not 
removed, but many were thoroughly disgraced 
because they had pronounced judgments which 
•could not be supported by evidence before them. 
This Mysore judgment is worse than the Punjab 
jjudgments. Then there was panic. Murders had 
been committed by the mob, and eminent men 


were tried not by ordinary courts but by martial 
law tribunals. In Mysore nothing of the kind has 
happened. The Chief Judge’s order is a cool and 
calculated attack on the honour of a man who 
could not defend himself against reckless state- 
ments from the Bench. Judges sometimes forget, 
as these Mysore gentlemen have done, that there 
is the bar of public opinion which is no 
respecter of persons. 

My condolence and pity go out to the Judges 
who have delivered a judgment which, let me 
hope, in their cooler moments they will regret. 
For Shri Dasappa and his colleagues who have 
been disbarred I have nothing but congratula- 
tions, I would ask them to turn the punishment 
into a blessing. It is well that they cannot appear 
before Judges who can be so grossly prejudiced 
as the Mysore Judges have proved themselves to 
be. Let these lawyers be proud of their -poverty 
which will be probably their lot now. Let 
them remember Thoreau’s saying that possession 
of riches is a crime and poverty a virtue under 
an unjust administration. This is an eternal 
maxim for satyagrahis. The disbarred lawyers 
have a rare opportunity of so remodelling their 
lives that they can always be above want. Let 
them remember that practice of law ought not 
to mean more taking daily than, say, a village 
carpenter’s wage. Let them make redoubled 
efforts to produce such a state of affairs in 
Mysore that the travesty of the nature I have 
described may become impossible. It is no 
pleasure to me to have to write as strongly 
as I have done. But I could do no less if 
I was to serve Truth. 

Sevagram, 9-7-40 

A NOTE 

Parhaps a brief note of facts is necessary to 
explain Gandhiji’s remarks on the extraordinary 
order of the Mysore Chief Judge directing Shri 
H. C. Dasappa to be struck off the rolls of 
the High Court. The first charge against Shri 
Dasappa was that he had disobeyed the Kolar 
District Magistrate’s order prohibiting him from 
addressing meetings in a certain area. The other 
and, in the Judges’ opinion more serious, charge 
was that Shri Dasappa as President of the Mysore 
Congress advised the Congressmen not to parti- 
cipate in an inquiry appointed by Government. 
The inquiry was to be made into serious alle- 
gations of torture made by the Congress against 
police officials. It was entrusted to a Judge of 
the Mysore Court. The Mysore Congress, acting 
on Gandhiji’s advice, decided not to participate 
in the inquiry, as it was not of an impartial 
and independent character. This action on the 
part of Shri Dasappa as President of the Con- 
gress could by no stretch of imagination be 
described as having anything to do with his 
conduct as a lawyer, but it was regarded by 
the Chief Justice as defect of character 
unfitting him to be an advocate of the High 
Court”. 



206 HARIJAN [ JULY 13, 1940 


He was asked by the High Court to explain 
his conduct. He naturally questioned the proce- 
dure as irrelevant, but described in a statement 
the circumstances leading to the decision for 
non-participation in the inquiry. This is what 
Shri Dasappa said in the course of bis statement: 

“ The Government appointed Justice A. R. 
Nagesvara Iyer to carry on what was admittedly 
a departmental inquiry, not open to the press or 
the public. Attempts made to have the inquiry 
postponed with a view to arrive at an amicable 
settlement in the matter, were of no avail. It was 
then that the Mysore Congress was advised by 
Mahatma Gandhi to negotiate for a change in 
the personnel of the inquiry .... The opponent 
submits that the inquiry was only a depart- 
mental one and there was no court constituted 
for the purpose. There was no legal obligation 
whatever on the part of the Congressmen to 
tender evidence at the inquiry. The moral obli- 
gation would only arise in case the tribunal 
was satisfactory.” 

It is these words that provoked the ire of the 
Chief Justice, and in criticising them he has 
made -certain statements of astounding audacity ; 
“ To make a foul allegation against one's neigh- 
bour and to refuse either to withdraw it or 
substantiate it, was a conduct to which no 
decent-minded man who had not lost all sense 
of fairness would descend or advise others to 
descend. ” Again ; “ I understand from the Res- 
pondent’s statement that the aim of his politi- 
cal association is to get Responsible Government 
established in this State. This is a form of 
Government which many of us would admire, 
and all of us, who are not Judges, are at 
liberty to advocate. This is not an occasion on 
which it would be proper to discuss the 
advantages or disadvantages of that form of 
Government. But I think we shall agree that 
that form of Government can have no chance 
of success in any country in which there is not 
a general spirit of fairness throughout the country. 
The Respondent, in this matter of deterring his 
followers from withdrawing or substantiating 
their charges against their fellow-subjects, has 
shown himself devoid of that spirit of fairness. 
He has stated in one part of his statement that 
he did so at the dictates of a person outside the 
State. No man fit to be an advocate of this 
Court can submit his conscience to anyone else 
in that way. It is no excuse for such conduct.” 

Again, The Chief Justice, proceeding, obser- 
ved, says The Hindu report, that “it was surpris- 
ing that the Respondent, the professed votary 
of truth, should have behaved in such a way. 
Perhaps it is because truth is so often degraded 
in this country into nothing more than a 
political catchword that the Respondent has 
lost all appreciation of its meaning and value. 
It was a sad thing indeed for anyone to have 
so degraded himself and tq^ have lowered his 
moral standards. It would not be fair to 
require other members of this honourable profes 


sion to associate in the work of the Courts 
with a man who had allowed his morals to be so 
debased, nor would it be safe to allow litigants 
to allow their cases in his hands. In my opinion 
it is quite clear that the Respondent has become 
by defect of character unfit to remain an advo- 
cate of this Court, ” 

Sevagram, 9-7-40 M. D, 

‘‘FOR HE HAD GREAT POSSESSIONS” 

Rajkumari Amrit Kaur writes from Simla under 
the above heading : 

“ Lovers of English art must be familiar with the 
beautiful picture of one of their great artists entitled 
‘ For he had great possessions *. Those familiar with 
the Bible will know of the story of the rich man 
who came to Jesus to ask him the way of salva- 
tion and how, when the Master asked him to give* 
up all he had and follow him, “ the young man went 
away sorrowful, for he had great possessions. ” This 
picture has been coming vividly before my mind 
during this time of anguish. I love Europe, in 
particular do I love England where some of the 
happiest years of my life have been spent, I owe 
much to her people, to her educational institutions, 
and to her glorious literature. My woman’s heart 
bleeds today when I hear and read of the wanton 
waste of life and ruthless destruction that is rampant 
today in that lovely continent. There is nothing but 
vainglory and boasting and ill-will and hatred talked 
over the radio. The destruction of an aeroplane or 
submarine or battleship on either side is an occasion 
for rejoicing; there is gloating over the loss of life. 
Englishwomen whom one would have thought in- 
capable of hurting a fly are heard to say that they 
would give their souls to kill Hitler or any number 
of Germans. It must be the same in Germany. 

It is heart-breaking to think that the spark of 
love within the people of the warring nations is so 
dead that all sense of kindliness and humanity is 
absent. But if they were to pause and think as to* 
what the war in Europe and tlie war in the Far 
East is being fought for, the answer is as clear as 
daylight. It is for the greed of possession. How 
then can your soul-stirring appeal to every Briton 
have any response ? The eyes of all these warriors 
are blinded with lust, and they will never see th^ 
folly and iniquity of their ways until the idea of 
possession leaves them. The Prime Minister of 
England has talked of ‘ the curse of Hitler being 
lifted from the brows of men/. It is the curse of 
possession that must be lifted from our hearts if 
peace is to be established once again on earth and. 
if it is to be a true and lasting one, * Possession, 
is eleven points in the law and they say there are 
but twelve,’ is a well-known English proverb. But 
as my weak faith daily grows stronger in non- 
violence, I am convinced that non-possession is the 
fulfilment of the law of life. If Britain could only 
realise this today, your appeal to her great people 
would not fall on deaf ears and she would rejoice 
in doing justice by India. And if we in our home- 
land would realise the great truth also, there wouldl 
-be no communal discord and no untruth in us.” 



July 13, 1940 ] 


HAEIJAN 



The Late Changanacherry Pillai 

The readers must have learnt about the death 
of Shri Changanacherry K. Parameswaran Pillai 
of Travancore. He was one of the true and 
consistent Harijan sevaks. He was a retired 
Judge of the Travancore High Court. He was 
a member of the Executive Council of the 
Harijan Sevak Sangh. As a man he was most 
unassuming and lovable. His secretary sends me 
the following pathetic account of his death: 

“I should like to introduce myself as one who 
was Private Secretary to the late Shri Changana- 
cherry K. Parameswaran Pillai. The purpose of this 
letter is to give a description of the sad demise of 
Shri Changanacherryj of which you are already aware. 

After the first stroke of brain paralysis in Novem- 
ber 19393 Shri Changanacherry recovered sufficiently 
well to move about by February 1940. Recently he 
had been taking much care about his body. He 
spent the summer at the Cape- On return from 
there, he looked thoroughly fit and sound. He pur- 
chased a new car and used to go to the Beach very 
often in the evenings. On otl#r days he had 
his evening walks. In fact his constitution had so 
much improved that it seemed he had never- looked 
so well. In spite of all physical improvements, his 
mental defects persisted. He could talk fairly well, 
but could not speak the names of some persons, 
nor remember them when he wanted to. Coherent 
conversation for ten minutes together was also 
impossible. Nevertheless, he began to show interest 
in all the public institutions with which he was 
actively associated till he retired from public life. It is 
interesting to record that the day before his death he 
sent me to his Estate at Vidura where there are a Kani 
Ashram, a weaving school and a primary school, 
which institutions together with ten acres of land 
were given as a gift to the Harijan Sevak Sangh 
some years ago. The institutions except the school 
had not recently been working due to paucity of 
funds. I was deputed to inspect the institutions and 
prepare a scheme to revive them. I had actually 
prepared the scheme but had no opportunity to place 
it before him. The day before his death, he had his 
usual evening walk, and rather unusually, in com- 
pany with his little children. On returning home at 
7"30 P. M. he arranged for a feast the next day, 
wonderful in the case of a man who always ate to 
live. The morning of the fatal day he spent dis- 
cussing the plan for a new building to be erected 
in his property in the town, with a contractor. At 
12-30 he partook of a sumptuous feast and retired 
to his bed-room for a nap. 

His wife was in the room also. At aboutS.P, M. 
he woke up showing some uneasiness. His hands 
and limbs were quivering. Seeing this unusual 
behaviour, the doctor who was living next door was 
sent for. He arrived within ten minutes to find the 
patiezrt without pulse. An injection was administered 
but to no effect. The doctor was preparing to give 
another injection when death lay its icy .hands 
•on the great leader. It is supposed the end was 


207 


due to another stroke of brain paralysis which this 
time proved fatal. The death actually took place at 
3 P. M. on 30th June. 

The cremation took place at 11-30 P. M, in his 
own property at Poojappurai. A large crowd had 
gathered to pay homage to the dead leader. He 
leaves behind his wife and eight children. The 
eldest is a daughter and she was married recently. 

I may also add that Sir C. P. Ramaswami Aiyar 
sent a condolence message the next day morning. 

The consensus of opinion here is that there never 
was a greater Travancorean with such versatile 
genius, who was so remarkably associated with all 
the public activities of his time. The whole country 
is in mourning." 

Death prompted the feast. As the secretary 
truly says he ate to live. But God confounds 
our wisdom when He wants to take us unwary. 
None of us can boast that we would do better 
than the late sevak. It will be creditable if we 
can close our lives as did this great Harijan 
sevak. May God bless his spirit and give courage 
to his widow and family to bear their loss, 
and let me hope that they will follow in his 
footsteps. 

Sevagram. 9-7-40 M. K. G. 

Is Islam Inspired ? 

A writer in a Muslim paper has suggested 
that, if I regard Islam as an inspired religion 
and Muhammad as the Prophet of God, I should 
declare my belief, so that Mussalmans' doubts 
may be dispelled and Hindu-Muslim unity may 
possibly be more easily achieved, I read the 
suggestion about a month ago, but I did not 
think it necessary to respond to it. But as 
nowadays I read as many Muslim papers as I 
can, in order to acquaint myself with the 
Muslim mind, and as I fiind them so full of 
poison and conscious or unconscious untruths, 
I feel it necessary to redeclare my opinion 
about Islam, though I think it is well-known. 
I certainly regard Islam as one of the inspired 
religions, and therefore the Holy Quran as an 
inspired book and Muhammad as one of the 
prophets. But even so I regard Hinduism, 
Christianity, Zoroastrianism as inspired religions. 
The names of many of them have been already 
forgotten, for the simple reason that those reli- 
gions and those prophets related to the parti- 
cular ages for which and peoples for whom 
they flourished. Some principal religions are 
stiH extant. After a study of those religions 
to the extent it was possible for me, I 
have come to the conclusion that, if it is 
proper and necessary to discover an underlying 
unity among all religions, a master-key is needed. 
That master-key is that of truth and non- 
violence. When I unlock the chest of a religion 
with this master-key, I do not find it difl&cult 
to discover its likeness with other religions. 
When you look at these religions as so many 
leaves of a tree they seem so different, but at 
the trunk they are one. Unless and until we 
realize this fundamental unity, wars in the name 




of religion will not cease. These are not confined 
to Hindus and Mussalmans alone. The pages of 
world history are soiled with the bloody accounts 
of these religious wars. Religion can be defended 
only by the purity of its adherents and their 
good deeds, never by their quarrels with those 
of other faiths. 

On the train to Wardha, 8-7-40 M. K. G. 

( T ranslated from Gujarati ) 

SUBHASBABU 

(.By M. K. Gandhi") 

On the return journey to Wardha a young 
man at Nagpur station asked why the Working 
Committee had not taken any notice of Subhas- 
babu’s arrest. I was in silence and so gave no 
reply but took note of the reasonable question. 
I have no doubt that hundreds if not thousands 
must have asked themselves the question the 
young man put at Nagpur. It is true that 
Subhasbabu is an ex-Rasbtrapati of the Congress 
twice elected in succession. He has a record of 
great sacrifice to his credit. He is a leader born. 
All these qualities alone will not warrant a 
protest against the arrest. The Working Com- 
mittee would be bound to take notice of it, 
if it could be condemned on merits. Subhasbabu 
did not defy the law with the permission of 
the Congress. He has frankly and courageously 
defied even the Working Committee. If he had 
asked for permission to raise any side-issue for 
battle at the present juncture, the Committee 
would, I think, have refused it. Hundreds of 
issues of greater importance can be discovered. 
But the country’s attention is for the moment 
riveted upon one single issue. Preparations are 
being made to take up direct action at the 
proper time on that issue. Therefore, if the 
Working Committee had taken any action, it 
would have been one of disapprobation. 
That the Committee would not do. I might 
also have ignored the youth’s remark. But 
I, felt that no harm could occur by my 
putting this arrest in its proper setting. The 
arrest of a big man like Subhasbabu is 
no small matter. But Subhasbabu has laid out 
his plan of battle with deliberateness and 
boldness. He thinks that his way is the best. 
He honestly thinks that the Working Committee’s 
way is wrongs and that nothing good will come 
out of its “ procrastination”. He told me in the 
friendliest manner that he would do what the 
Working Committee had failed to do. He yfras 


action to be correct, he has the right, and it 
is his duty, to pursue it whether the Congress 
likes it or not. I told him he v/ould be more 
in the right if he resigned from the Congress 
altogether. My advice did not commend itself 
to him. Even so, if success attends his effort 
and India gains her freedom, it will justify his 
rebellion, and the Congress will not only not 
condemn his rebellion but welcome him as a 
saviour. 

In satyagraha a courted imprisonment carries, 
its own praise. There can be no protest against 
an imprisonment for a breach of the current 
law' of the land. On the contrary, the practice 
has been to congratulate arrested civil resisters 
and invite Congressmen to imitate them. It is 
obvious that the Committee could not do so in 
Subhasbabu’s case. Let me remark in passing 
that the Committee has taken no notice of the 
numerous arrests and imprisonments that have 
taken place even of prominent Congressmen. It 
does not mean that the Committee docs not feel 
anything about them. But in life’s battle there 
is such a thing as a mute submission to many 
a v/rong. If it is deliberate, it generates strength 
which, if the submission is well conceived, mav 

well become irresistible. 

Sevagram, 9-7-40 

Books on Non-violcncc 

Price Poster He 
Rs. As. As. 

R. B. Gregg — ^The Power of Non- 
violence ... 2 0 7 

A. l-Iuxley — Ends and Means C 6 

J. M . Murry — The Necessity of Pacifism 

- 2 10 3 

J. B. Kripalani^ — Non-violent Revolution 

... 0 4 1 

Dick Sheppard — We Say ‘No’ ... 2 10 3 

G. Murray — The Cult of Violence ... 0 (> 1 

Gandhiji — Hind Swaraj ... 0 4 2 

Available at Harijan Office — Poona 4 

CONTENTS Page 

Question Box ... M. K. Gandhi 193 

Occasional Notes ... M. D. 194 

What Led to the Decision ... M. D. 196 

“ A Cry in the Wilderness” ? M, K. Gandhi 200 

The Delhi Resolution ... M. K. Gandhi 201 

More auout Handicrafts ... l^yarelal 202 

About the Waziris ... M. K. Gandhi 204 

Working Committee and the 


impatient of delay. I told him that, if at the end 
of his plan there was Swaraj during my lifetime 
mine would be the first telegram of congratula^, 
tion he would receive.. If while ; he was conduct- 
ing his campaign I became a convert, I should 
whole-heartedly acclaim him .ss my leader and 


Waziris ... 204 

Mysore Lawyer^ ' ... M. K. Gandhi 

& M. D. 205 

“For He Had GreatPossessions” Amrit Kaur 206 
Subhasbabu ... M. K. Gandhi 208 

Notes’ : 

‘ Copyright ’ ... M. K. G. 193 


enlist under his banner. But I ! warned him that Congress Membership And 
his way was wrong. ■■ ' Non-violence ... M. K. G. 203 

• My opinion, however. , matters little. So long , ^h^ngamacherry jyf tj q 207 

as Subhasbabu Considers a particular course of ' . is Islam Inspired ? m! K. G. 207 

totfd, and Publi^ed by, Viftal Hari Barve at the Aryabhu^an Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
Subscriptiosii Ratc» -- ; One year, Rs. 4; six months, Rs. 2-8. FOREIGN : One yeatf, Rs. 5-8 or 8 sh. or 2 9 . 



Reg, No. B 3C92 




Editw : MAHADSV DESAI 


VoL. VIII, No. 23 3 POONA — SUNDAY. JULY 21, 1S40 [ ONE ANNA 


NOTICE 

Harijan, which was hitherto published every 
Saturday, has changed its day of publication, and 
will hereafter be published every Sunday. Agents 
and readers will please note that, as a result of this 
change, they will get their copies a day later than 
hitherto. Manager 


SOME MISCONCEPTIONS 

Has Gandbiji Changed? 

One question I have heard constantly being 
asked during the past few days is : “ Gandhi ji him- 
self asked people in Bettiah in 1921 and recently 
the people in Sukkur to defend themselves 
violently, if they could not do so non-violently. 
Even courage, backed by the use of force, is 
better than abject cowardice, he has said to us 
times without number. Has he then changed his 
position now ? The Working Committee would 
seem to have gone no further than Gandhiji 
himself did in the two cases mentioned.” 

Gandhiji has not changed in the least. He 
would give the people the same advice, but 
what we forget is the clause with which it was 
coupled: “You may thus defend yourselves, but 
not as Congressmen.” The Working Committee’s 
resolution, to whatever extent it allows the use 
of violence, affects the Congressmen’s position. 
That, Gandhiji holds, is contrary to the position 
we have held for the past 21 years. 

What lif the Working Committee members 
had the same absolute faith in non-violence, but 
passed the resolution as an allowance for the 
weakness of faith of the rank and file of Con- 
gressmen? They could not do so. They had to 
hold to their faith and allow themselves to be 
thrown out by those who had not that faith, if 
these latter were in a majority. Or they might 
have retired voluntarily if they found themselves 
overwhelmed by the others. Thus the position 
taken up by Gandhiji is not new. In an article 
on the growing corruption in Congress ranks 
written two years ago, he made the position 
crystal clear: 

“ With all the earnestness I can command I 
therefore plead with every Congressman who 
believes in his pledge to make his choice: either 
to apply the purge I have suggested, or if that 
is not feasible because of the Congress being 
already overmanned by those who have lost faith 
in its creed and its constructive programme on 
which depends its real strength, to secede from 
it for its own sake and prove his living faith 


in the creed and the programme by practising 
the former and prosecuting the latter as if he 
had never seceded from the Congress of his ideal. 
If one or the other thing is not done, I see 
grave danger of the Congress collapsing by the 
weight of its own weaknesses.” 

In another article last year analysing the res- 
ponsibility of violence if it broke out in the 
Princes’ India, he said: “ The responsibility will 
have to be shared by the Paramount Power, the 
Princes, and above all by Congressmen. The first 
two have never claimed to be non-violent. Their 
power is frankly derived from and based on the 
use of violence. But the Congress has since 1920 
adopted non-violence as its settled policy and has 
undoubtedly striven to act up to it.” The whole 
question at the present critical moment is, are 
we to align ourselves with those who have 
never claimed to be non-violent, or are we to live 
up to our creed? Even the British Government, 
and all Governments for the matter of that, , 
follow the policy of ‘ forbear when we can, hit 
when we must.’ Are we, when we come to 
power, to be like the rest, or are we, by hold- 
ing to the new trail we have blazed for twenty 
years, to make new history ? It is likely that we 
may fail, but let the failure apply to our in- 
ability to govern, not to our inability to abstain 
from the use of force. Let us then step aside, 
and allow those who swear by the use of force 
to govern. 

If the Rank and File Believe 

But if the Working Committee were wrong 
in their assumption that the rank and file have 
lost their belief in non-violence and that they 
cannot come up to the scratch in times of crisis, 
the rank and file have ' to reassure the Working 
Committee. That is what Gandhiji said, with 
special reference to the Gujaratis, in his article 
last week. He explained the whole thing at much 
greater length to the joint meeting of the Gandhi 
Seva Sangh and the Charkha Sangh held soon after 
the Wardha meeting of the Working Committee. 
“Now is the testing time for you,” he said. “ The 
Working Committee, let us say, were weighed 
and found wanting. Can the Gandhi Seva Sangh 
do anything to repair their failure ? The Working 
Committee’s resolution does not mean that you 
cannot appeal to people to declare their faith 
in non-violence. You can do so, and then tell 
the members of the Working Committee, ‘ You 
undervalued our faith. We are going to hold by 
the creed. ’. I tell you the Working Committee 



210 


HAEIJAN 


members will not only not resent this, but will 
simply dance with joy. Some of you are 
members of the Congress. It is the duty of 
those who are members and who believe in 
non-violence to reassure the members of the 
Working Committee, to declare their faith 
before the meeting of the A. 1. C. C., and even 
before the open Congress if the time comes. 
But you may not separate your creed as Congress- 
men and creed as ordinary human beings, your 
behaviour in Congress afFairs and in non-Congress 
affairs. Your non-violence, if it is true, must be 
part of your normal life, must be in your 
thought, word and deed, and must colour all 
your behaviour. Then and then only can you 
give the Working Committee the assurance I 
have referred to, and compel them to alter 
their resolution.” 

The Test of Genuineness 
“But,” he added, “let me explain this further. 
You will examine every action of yours in the 
light of the creed. That does not mean that 
you will be morbid or pernickety. Your conduct 
will have to be natural. When I began observ- 
ing silence it meant an effort on my part. Now 
it has become part of my nature, and to break 
my silence means an effort. In the same way 
acting non-violently must be part of your nature. 
It is likely that your relating everything to 
non-violence may be logically wrong, but it is 
not wrong for you. I may be wrong, in the 
eyes of others, in my belief that with every 
thread that I draw I am bringing Swaraj nearer, 
but for me the belief is as true as the fact that 
I exist. That saves me from losing my sanity. 
This spinning wheel is a symbol of non-violence 
for me. The wheel as such is lifeless, but when 
I ' invest it with symbolism it becomes a 
living thing for me. Its sound, if it is musical, 
is in tune with non-violence. If it is unmusical, 
it is not in tune with it, for it indicates care- 
lessness on my part. The steel spindle one can 
use as a deadly weapon, but we have put it 
there for the best possible use. So we have to 
be meticulously careful about every part of the 
wheel. Then and then only will it produce fine 
music and spinning will be a true sacrificial act. 

“But this kind of sadhana, you will say, may 
take thousands of years. It may take some a 
thousand years, and it may take some others 
only one year. Don’t think that, if in spite of my 
50 years’ practice of it I am .still imperfect, it 
must take you many more years. No, there is 
no rule of three here. You may succeed quicker 
than I. I meant what I said to Frith wising : 
* You had at any rate the violence of the brave. 
I had nothing of it. Now if you believe in 
cultivating non-violence of the brave, you will do 
80 much more quickly than I, and you will leave 
me behind.’ This applies to every one of you. 
In South Africa I was the first to learn shoe- 
making and so I taught it to others. But tho se 
others soon left me behind. It was because I 
•was a true teacher. Now if I am a true teacher 


[ July 21, 1940 


of ahimsa, I am sure you will soon leave behind 
your teacher. If that does not happen, it will 
only mean that I was an unfit teacher„ But if 
my teaching fructifies, there will be teachers of 
ahimsa in every home. 

“I want to know how many of you are with 
me. If none goes with me, I am ready to tread 
my path alone. For I know that I can never 
be alone as God is there with me. You are all 
companion sadlidks (seekers) with me. I am old 
but you have many years before you. And yet 
let me tell you that I do not feel the weight 
of my years. I do not think my power of growth 
or capacity for research has come to an end. 

“So you have to go forth and find out how 
many actual believers in ahimsa there are among 
Congressmen. The Working Committee members 
are your representatives. If they were mistaken 
in assessing the faith of their electors, you have 
to correct their judgment. My position was 
different from theirs. I consider myself a con- 
firmed representative of ahimsa, and so I severed 
my connection with the Congress in 1934. I 
could not help doing it. If I had not done so» 
I should have been untrue to my creed. 

“No one knows my imperfections better than 
I, but what little power I possess is derived 
from my ahimsa. What is it but my ahimsa 
that draws thousands of women to me in fear- 
less confidence? But neither you nor I can 
trade on our capital. We have to be up and 
doing every moment of our lives, and go forward 
in our sadhana. We have to live and move and 
have our being in ahimsa, even as Hitler docs 
in himsa. It is the faith and perseverance and 
single-mindedness with which he has perfected 
his weapons of destruction that commands my 
admiration. That he uses them as a monster 
is immaterial for our purpose. We have to 
bring to bear the same single-mindedness and 
perseverance in evolving our ahimsa. Hitler is 
awake all the 24 hours of the day in perfecting 
Ws sadhana. He wins because he pays the price. 
His inventions surprise his enemies. But it 
is his single-minded devotion to his purpose that 
should be the object of our admiration and 
emulation. Although he works all his waking 
hours, his intellect is unclouded and unerring. 
Are our intellects unclouded and unerring? A 
mere belief in ahimsa or the charkha will not 
do. It should be intelligent and creative. If 
intellect plays, a large part in the field of 
violence, I hold that it plays a larger part in 
the field of non-violence.” 

With this he referred to the work of Richard 
Gregg in this direction, and described how the 
latter had come to the conclusion that spinning 
as a symbol of non-violence is good enough not 
only for India but for the world. 

Continuing he said: “The Working Committee’s 
decision was simply an echo of the atmosphere 
around them. My decision could not be its 
echo. For ahimsa is my special sad/wna, not that 
of the Congress, I congratulate the members on 



July 21, 1940 ] 


HARIJAH 


211 


their honesty and their courage^ though I am 
sorry for myself that I could not inspire them 
with confidence in our creed and in my leader- 
ship. We have now to show that we have faith 
in the non-violence of the brave. It does not 
mean the development of the capacity to go to 
jail It means increasing faith in the potency of 
constructive work to bring about Swaraj, and 
in constructive work being a vital part of the 
programme of ahimsa." 

Why an Imperfect Man Chosen ? 

To those who have been saying that, if Gandhiji 
has failed in perfecting his ahimsa, failure is 
certain in their case, he had already given the 
answer. But in the concluding part of the speech 
he presented another aspect of his imperfection. 
He said : “ In placing civil disobedience before 
constructive work I was wrong, and I did not 
profit by the Himalayan blunder that I had 
committed. I feared that I should estrange my 
co-workers, and so carried on with imperfect ahimsa. 
But I am not sorry for my blunders. My imper- 
fections and failures are as much a blessing from 
God as my successes and my talents, and I lay 
them both at His feet. Why should He have 
chosen me, an imperfect instrument, for such a 
mighty experiment? I think He deliberately did 
so. He had to serve the poor dumb ignorant 
millions. A perfect man might have been their 
despair. When they found that one with their 
failings was marching on towards ahimsa, they too 
had confidence in their own capacity. We should 
not have recognised a perfect man if he had 
come as our leader, and we might have driven 
him to a cave. Maybe he who follows me will 
be more perfect and you will be able to receive 
his message. Maybe some one of you may be 
that perfect teacher who is to come. ” 

An Impossible Ideal ? 

But are we not being driven to philosophical 
anarchism? Is that not an impossible ideal? 
These questions were asked by a philosophic 
friend some months ago, and Gandhiji gave him 
replies which I think will be useful today. 

* Docs anyone know true non-violence ? ” he 
asked. 

Gandhiji immediately replied: “ Nobody knows 
it, for nobody can practise perfect non-violence.’ 

“Then how can it be used in politics?* 

“It can be used in politics precisely as it 
can be used in the domestic sphere. We may 
not be perfect in our use of it, but we definitely 
discard the use of violence, and grow from 
failure to success.” 

“ You would govern non-violently. But all 
legislation is violence.” 

“No, not all legislation. Legislation imposed 
by people upon themselves is non-violence to 
the extent it is possible in society. A society 
organised and run on the basis of complete 
non- violence would be the purest anarchy. ” 

“Do you think it is a realisable ideal?” 

“ Yes. It is realisable to the extent non- 
violence is realisable.. That State is perfect and 


non-violent where the people are governed the 
least. The nearest approach to purest anarchy 
would be a democracy based on non-violence. 
The European democracies are to my mind a 
negation of democracy. ” 

“ Do you think that non-violence or the 
democracy that you visualise was ever realised 
in the olden times?” 

“I do not know. But if it was not, it only 
means that we had never made the attempt to 
realise the highest in us. I have no doubt in 
my mind that at some stage we were wiser, 
and that we have to grow wiser than we are 
today in order to find what beauties are hidden 
in human nature. Perfect non-violence is im- 
possible so long as we exist physically, for we 
would want some space at least to occupy. 
Perfect non-violence whilst you are inhabiting the 
body is only a theory like Euclid’s point or 
straight line, but we have to endeavour every 
moment of our lives. " 

Sevagram, 15-7-40 M. D. 

Mysore Justice 

After I had sent my note on Shri H. C 
Dasappa’s case, I received the following from a 
Bangalore advocate ; 

You have now material which is sufficient to give 
an indication of the independence of the Mysore Judi- 
ciary. It is undoubtedly under the control and lead of 
Sir D’Arcy Reilly. The other Judges in the High 
Court follow in his footsteps, and no single instance can 
be recalled when any Puisne Judge of the High Court 
of Mysore has had the strength to demur to even the 
excesses committed by the Chief Justice in the language, 
form and tone of his judgments. The Government, 
which professes not to interfere with either the High 
Court or the Judiciary is evidently well satisfied 
about the Judges of the High Court of Mysore. For a 
dozen years important judgments have come from the 
Judges of the High Court which have clearly shown 
that they have yielded to the pressure of the bureau- 
cracy while professing fear of God and of no man. 
Probably it is this practical docility that has made the 
Government Order on Political Reforms in the State 
silent to the point of being sinister as regards re- 
commendations for the reform of the Judiciary in 
the State. To cap all comes the pronouncement in 
Shri H. C. Dasappa’s case that *in this country 
truth is so often degraded into a political catch- 
word.* The reference to the country is wide enough 
in its mischief and implication so as to embrace all 
people whether Congressmen or others and whether 
they reside in the States or in British India. What 
basis had Sir D’Arcy Reilly for such an assumption? 
And what evidence had he fer such a general charge 
against a whole country? Is it moral on the part 
of Sir D’Arcy Reilly to condemn Sri H. C. Dasappa 
and debar him on the ground that he preferred a 
charge that he could not prove, and do the same 
thing under a different guise in a judgment ? ” 

My correspondent’s complaint is right. But 
Judges are above all law, at least in Mysore. 
Like kings they can do no wrong. 

Sevagram, 1^7-40 M* K. G. 



212 


HAEIJAN 



-l-latijdn 


July 21 


1940 


UNREPENTANT 

{By M. K. Gandhi) 

By writing that ‘Appeal to Every Briton’ I 
have invited upon my head an extra load of 
work which without God’s help I would be ill 
able to bear. If it is His will that I should 
shoulder it, He will give me the strength to 
carry on. 

When I decided to confine myself mostly to 
writing in Gujarati or Hindustani, I had no 
notion that I would have to write the appeal. 
It came to me like a flash, and the courage to 
write it came with it. I had resisted till then 
all pressure from English and American friends 
to give guidance. But I could not see my way. 
Now having addressed that appeal, I must follow 
up the reactions to it. A large amount of 
correspondence is pouring in upon me. Save for 
one angry telegram, I had nothing but friendly 
criticism from Englishmen and even appreciation 
from some, 

I was grateful to H. E. the Viceroy for 
forwarding my offer to His Majesty’s Govern- 
ment. The correspondence with regard to it, 
the readers have already seen or will see in 
this issue. Though no better response to the 
appeal was to be expected, I cannot help saying 
that it was the knowledge of the determination 
to carry the war to a victorious end that had 
prompted my appeal. No doubt the determina- 
tion is natural and worthy of the best British 
tradition. Nevertheless the awful slaughter that 
the determination involves, should induce a 
search for a better and braver way to achieve 
the end. For peace has its victories more glori- 
ous than those of war. The non-violent method 
would have meant no abject surrender. It would 
have confounded all modern tactics of war, 
indeed rendered them of no use. The new world 
order which all dream of would surely have 
been found, I hold a new order to be impossible 
if the war is fought to a finish or mutual 
exhaustion leads to a patched-up peace. 

Let me, therefore, examine the argument 
advanced in a letter received from a friend. 
Here it is: 

“Two English friends who admire you, say your 
appeal to every Briton cannot have any effect just 
now. It is impossible to expect the man in the 
street to do a complete volte face with any degree 
of understanding — indeed it is impossible for the 
understanding to do, as you say, without a heart’ 
belief in non-violence. The time to mould a new 
world on your lines will be after the war. They 
realise^ your way is the right one, but they say it 
needs endless preparation and instruction and big 
leadership ~ none of which they possess. Regarding 


[July '21, 1940 


India they say the attitude of the present authority is 
deplorable. Long ago India should have been declared 
as independent as Canada, and her people should be 
allowed to work out their own constitution. But 
what they are extremely perplexed about now is 
that you want absolute Independence straight away, 
and the next step you will take is ‘ no further 
help to Britain in the prosecution of war, surrender 
to Germany, and opposition to her by non-violent 
means. You must explain what you mean in more 
detail so as to remove this misunderstanding. This 
is an honest reaction.” 

The appeal was intended to produce the effect 
now. It could not come out of a mathematical 
calculation. If the conviction could have come, 
action was an easy matter. The mass mind 
responds under pressure. That the appeal has 
not produced the intended result shows that 
either my word has no power or that God 
has a purpose of which we have no knowledge. 
The appeal has come from an anguished heart. 
I could not suppress it. It was not written for 
the moment, I am quite sure that it enunciates 
a truth of eternal value. 

If the ground is not] prepared from now, there 
may be no time left after a dismal termination 
of the war for evolving a new order. Whatever 
the order, it will be in response to a conscious 
or unconscious effort from now. Indeed the 
effort began before my appeal. I hope that it 
has stimulated it, perhaps given it a definite 
direction. I suggest to the non-official leaders 
and moulders of British opinion, if they are 
convinced of the truth of my position, to work 
for its adoption. Compared to the big issue 
raised in my appeal, the question of Indian Inde- 
pendence pales into insignificance. But I hold 
with the two Englishmen that the British Govern- 
ment’s attitude is deplorable. The two friends arc 
wholly wrong in the deduction they have drawn 
from the assumed recognition of India’s Independ- 
ence. They forget that I am out of the picture. 
Those who are responsible for the Working Com- 
mittee’s last resolution have meant free India’s 
co-operation with Britain. With them, there is 
no question of surrender to Germany or non- 
violent opposition. 

But I must not here tarry on Indian 
Independence and its implications, tempting 
though the subject is. 

The cuttings and correspondence before me 
say that the Congress rejection of my advice 
to abstain from preparation for military defence 
of India precludes me from making the appeal 
to Britain or from expecting a favourable 
response. The argument is plausible, but only 
plausible. The critics say that, if I have failed 
with my people, I have no right to expect Bri- 
tain whilst she is in the midst of a life and 
death struggle to listen to me. I am a man 
with a mission. India’s millions have never tasted 
the bitters of war as the British have. Britain, 
if she is to fulfil her declared purpose, needs a 
radical change in her policy.. I feel that I know 




JULY 21 , 1940 ] 


KAmSAN 


Zi’6 


the change that is needed. My inability to per- 
suade the Working Committee is irrelevant to 
the theme under discussion. There is no analogy 
between India’s case and Britain’s, I am there- 
fore wholly unrepentant, I maintain that in 
issuing my appeal I have acted wholly as a 
lifelong friend of Britain. 

A writer, however, retorts: ‘Address your 
appeal to Hitler,’ In the first place, I did write 
to Herr Hitler. My letter was published in the 
press some time after 1 addressed it. In the 
second place, there can be no meaning in my 
appeal to Herr Hitler to adopt non-violence. He 
is marching from victory to victory. I can only 
appeal to him to desist. That I have done. But 
to Britain, which is just now on the defensive, 
I can present the really effective weapon of non - 
violent non-cooperation. Let my method be re- 
jected on merits, not by bringing inapt analogies 
or untenable argument. The issue raised by me, 
I venture to think, is of universal importance. 
The usefulness of the non-violent method seems 
to be granted by all the critics. They gratui- 
tously assume the impossibility of human nature, 
as it is constituted, responding to the strain 
involved in non-violent preparation. But that is 
begging the question. I say, ‘ You have never 
tried the method on any scale. In so far as it 
has been tried, it has shown promising results.’ 

Sevagram, 17-7-40 

KHANSAHEB’S AHIMSA 

CBy M, K. Gandhi} 

In the storm that shook most of the members 
of the Working Committee Khansaheb Abdul 
Gaffar Khan stood firm as a rock. He had 
never any doubt about his position, and his 
statement which I reproduce below should serve 
as a beacon light to all of us ; 

" Some recent resolutions of the Congress Working 
Committee indicate that they are restricting the use 
of non-violence to the fight for India’s freedom 
against constituted authority. How far and in what 
manner this will have to be applied in the future 
I cannot say. The near future will perhaps throw 
light on this. Meanwhile it is difficult for me to 
continue in the Congress Working Committee, and 
I am resigning from it. I should like to make it 
clear that the non-violence I have believed in -and 
preached to my brethren of the Khudai Khidmatgars 
is much wider. It affects all our life, and only this 
has permanent value. Unless we learn this lesson 
of non-violence fully we shall never do away 
with the deadly feuds which have been the curse of 
the people of the Frontier. Since we took to non- 
violence and the Khudai Khidmatgars pledged them- 
selves to it, we have largely succeeded in ending 
these feuds. Non-violence has added greatly to the 
courage of the Pathans. Because they were previ- 
ously addicted to violence far more than others, 
they have profited by non-violence much more. We 
shall never really and effectively defend ourselves 
except through non-violence. Khudai Khidmatgars must, 
therefore, ’be. what our name implies — pure servants 


of God and humanity — by laying down our own 
lives and never taking any life.” 

It is worthy of the Khansaheb and all that 
he has stood for during the past twenty years. 
He is a Pathan, and a Pathan may be said to 
be born with a rifle or sword in his hand. 
But the . Khansaheb deliberately asked his Khudai 
Khidmatgars to shed all weapons when he asked 
them to join the satyagraha against the Rowlatt 
Act. He saw that this deliberate giving up of 
the weapons of violence had a magical effect. 
It was the only remedy for the blood-feuds 
which were handed down from sire to son and 
which had become part of the normal life of a 
Pathan. They had decimated numerous families, 
and non-violence seemed to the Khansaheb to 
have come as a longed-for salvation. The violent 
blood-feuds would otherwise have no end 
and would spell the end of the Pathans. He 
saw as clear as daylight that, if he could 
persuade his people not to retaliate, the suicidal 
feuds would cease and the Pathans would be 
able to give a better account of their bravery. 
They took up his message, and put into practice 
what with them became non-violence of the 
brave. 

Being so clear about his own faith and that of 
the Khudai Khidmatgars, there was^for him no 
escape from resignation of his membership of the 
Congress Working Committee. His continuing on 
it would have been anomalous and might have 
meant an end of his life’s work. He could not 
ask his people to join as recruits in the army 
and at the same time forget the law of tribal 
retaliation. The simple Pathan would have argu- 
ed with him — and the argument would have been 
irresistible — that the present war was a war of 
retaliation and revenge, and that there was no 
difference between it and their blood-feuds. 

I do not know how far the Khansaheb has 
succeeded in carrying his message to his people* 
This I know that with him non-violence is a 
matter not of intellectual conviction but of 
intuitive faith. Nothing can therefore shake it. 
About his followers he cannot say how far they 
will adhere to it. But that does not worry him. 
He has to do his duty which he owes to them. 
The result he leaves to God. He derives his 
ahimsa from the Holy Quran. He is a devout 
Mussalman. During his stay with me for over a year 
I never saw him miss his Namaz (prayers) or his 
Ramzan fast except when he was ill. But his 
devotion to Islam docs not mean disrespect for 
other faiths. He has read the Gita. His reading 
is slight but selective, and he immediately 
assimilates what appeals to him. He loathes long 
argument and does not take long to make up 
his mind. If he succeeds in'" his mission, it would 
mean the solution of many another problem. 
But the result no one can predict. ‘The lot is 
cast into the lap, but the whole disposing 
thereof is of the Lord.’ 

Sevagram, 16-7-40 . 

(Adapted from Gujarati) 



214 


HAEIJAN 


THE BEST FIELD- FOR AHIMSA 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Last week I wrote about three fields for the 
operation of ahimsa. I propose to invite attention 
today to the fourth and the best field for the 
operation of non-violence. This is the family 
field, in a wider sense than the ordinary. Thus 
members of an institution should be regarded as 
a family. Non-violence as between the members 
of such families should be easy to practise. If 
that fails, it means that we have not developed 
the capacity for pure non-violence. For the 
love we have to practise towards our relatives 
or colleagues in our family or institution, we 
have to practise towards our foes, dacoits, etc. If 
we fail in one case,:, success in the other is a chimera. 

We have generally assumed that, though it 
may not be possible to exercise non-violence in 
the domestic field, it is possible to do so in the 
political field. This has proved a pure delusion. 
We have chosen to describe our methods adopt- 
ed so far as non-violence, and thus caricatured 
non-violence itself. If non-violence it was, it 
was such poor stuff that it proved useless at the 
critical moment. The alphabet of ahimsa is best 
learnt in the domestic school, and I can say from 
experience that, if we secure success there, we 
are sure to do so everywhere else. For a non- 
violent person the whole world is one family. 
He will thus fear none, nor will others fear him. 

It will be retorted that those who satisfy 
such a test of non-violence will be few and far 
between. It is quite likely, but that is no reply 
to my proposition. Those who profess to believe 
in non-violence should know the implications of 
that belief. And if these scare them away, they 
are* welcome to give up the belief. Now that 
the Congress Working Committee has made the 
position clear, it is necessary that those who 
claim to believe in non-violence should know 
what is expected of them. If, as a result, the 
ranks of the non-violent army thin down, it 
should not matter. An army, however small, of 
truly non-violent soldiers is likely some day to 
multiply itself. An army of those who are not 
truly non-violent is never likely to yield any use 
whether it increases or decreases. 

Let no one understand from the foregoing that 
a non-violent army is open only to those who 
strictly enforce in their lives all the implications 
of non-violence. It is open to all those who accept 
the implications and make an ever-increasing 
endeavour to observe them. There never will be 
an army of perfectly non-violent people. It will 
be formed of those who will honestly endeavour 
to observe non-violence. For the last fifty years 
I have striven to make my life increasingly non- 
violent and to inspire my co-workers in the 
same direction, and I think I have had a fair 
amount of success. The growing darkness around, 
far from damping my zeal and dimming my 
faiths brightens them, and makes the implications 
of non-violence more clearly visible to me. 

Sevagxam^ 15-7-40 i Translated from Gujaratiy 


[ July 21, 1940 
THE CORRESPONDENCE 

The following correspondence between Gandhiji 
and His Excellency the Viceroy is released for 
publication : 

Gandhiji’s letter to Lord Linlithgow dated 
Delhi, July 3: 

“ You must have seen in the press my public 
appeal to every Briton. Nevertheless, for the 
sake of courtesy, I enclose herewith a copy. 
You will note the last sentence of my appeal. 
Will you please convey the contents of it to- 
the proper quarters ? The appeal and the offer 
at the end represent my personal and humble 
contribution to Britain’s cause. It is the best I 
could give.” 

Lord Linlithgow’s letter to Gandhiji dated 
Simla, July 10: 

‘*I duly conveyed your letter of July 3 and your 
appeal to His Majesty’s Government. I have now 
heard from them that with every appreciation of 
your motives they do not feel that the policy 
which you advocate is one which it is possible 
for them to consider, since in common with the 
whole Empire they are firmly resolved to prosecute 
the war to a victorious conclusion,” 


The Annual Spinning Sacrifice 
Shri Narandas Gandhi has issued his usual 
appeal for intensive spinning during the 71 days 
before my seventyfirst birthday. He began this, 
way of celebrating it six years ago with an appeal 
for 66 thousand yards. Last year he made an 
appeal for 70 lakhs of yards, and the response 
was beyond his expectation — over 4 crores of 
yards of yarn were spun, 

I commend his appeal to all. The response to 
his appeal should increase with my increasing 
years. If the annual quota of the National 
School in Rajkot is any index, the response 
would seem to be on the increase. But the 
appetite of Daridranarayan is insatiable, and it 
demands still greater response. It is a Herculean 
task to liquidate the unemployment and starva- 
tion of crores of people. Let me hope that 
every lover of the wheel will contribute his or 
her quota to this task and make the sacrifice 
a worthy one. Let them approach the task 
intelligently and with a proper regard for its 
sacredness. Let them, therefore, devote not only 
more time to spinning, but also endeavour to do 
it better by keeping all their spinning tackle in- 
proper trim, and thus increasing their speed. If 
they will watch the revolutions of the spindle 
and find out the secret of putting up the speed, 
I am sure that at the end of the sacrifice 
they will have nearly doubled the speed. 

Se Vagram, 16-7-40 M. K. G. 

( Abridged from Gujarati ) 

Autobiography 

The long awaited one- volume cheaper edition of ■ 
Gandhiji’s The Story oj My Experiments with Truth 
(Autobiography) has now been published by the 
Navajivan Press, Kalupur, Ahmedabad. This edition 
contains a few photographs which add to the valuer 
of the book. Price Rs. 4. Postage 10 As. extm. 
Available at Harijan Ofiice — Poona . 4. 



July 21, 1940 ] 


215 


HAEIJAN 


QUESTION BOX 

How to Cuittivate Ahimsa ? 

Q, What is the good of your crying ‘ahimsa, 
ahimsa * in season and out of season ? Will it 
by itself teach people to be non-violent ? Would 
it not be better, instead, to tell people how 
pure ahimsa or the ahimsa of the strong can be 
cultivated ? 

A. Yours is a very timely and opportune 
question. I have attempted before this on more 
occasions than one to answer it. But my effort 
has, I confess, been rather desultory. I have not 
concentrated upon it, or given it the weight I 
might have. This was all right while I was 
devoting all my energy to forging means to give 
battle to the Government. But it had the result 
of retarding the growth of pure ahimsa, so that 
today we are not even within ken of the ahimsa 
of the strong. If we now want to advance fur- 
ther, we ought, at least for some time,- to com- 
pletely forget the idea of offering non-violent 
resistance to constituted authority. If non-vio- 
lence in the domestic field is successfully achieved, 
we shall surely see the non-violence against 
constituted authority revived in its purified 
form, and it will be irresistible. 

Now that I am no longer in the Congress, I 
may not offer civil disobedience even in my own 
person in its name. But I am certainly free to 
offer civil disobedience in my individual capacity 
whenever it may be necessary to. No one need 
suppose that all civil disobedience will necessarily 
be taboo while the country is still being educated 
in the ahimsa of the strong. But those who 
may want to join the non-violent force of my 
conception should not entertain any immediate 
prospect of civil disobedience. They should under- 
stand that, so long as they have not realized 
ahimsa in their own person in its pure form, 
there can be no civil disobedience for them. 

Let not the mention of pure ahimsa frighten 
anybody. If we have. a clear conception of ic 
and have a living faith in its matchless efficacy, 
it will not be found to be so bard to practise 
as it is sometimes supposed to be. It will be 
well to remember the immortal Mahabharata 
verse in this connection. The Seer Poet there- 
in loudly proclaims to the whole world that 
Dharma includes within itself both legitimate 
-Artha and Kama, and asks why men do not 
follow the royal road of Dharma that leads to 
both earthly and spiritual bliss. Dharma here 
does not signify mere observance of externals. 
It signifies the way of truth and non-violence. 
The scriptures have given us two immortal 
maxims. One of these is: “ Ahimsa is the supreme 
Law or Dharma"' The other is: “There is no 
other Law ox, Dharma than truth-** These two 
maxims provide us the key to all lawful Artha 
and Kama. Why should we then hesitate to 
act up to them? Strange as it may appear, the 
fact remains that people find the easiest of things 
'Oftentimes to be the most difficult to follow. 


The reason, to borrow a term from the science 
of physics, lies in our inertia. Physicists tell us 
that inertia is an essential, and in its own place 
a most useful, quality of matter. It is that 
alone which steadies the universe and prevents 
it from flying off at a tangent. But for it 
the latter would be a chaos of motion. But 
inertia becomes an incubus and a vice when 
it ties the mind down to old ruts. It is 
this kind of inertia which is responsible for 
our rooted prejudice that to practise pure ahimsa 
is difficult. It is up to us to get rid of this 
incubus. The first step in this direction is firmly 
to resolve that all untruth and hiinsa shall 
her cafe er be taboo to us, whatever sacrifice it 
might seem to involve. For, the good these 
may seem to achieve is in appearance only, but 
in reality it is deadly poison. If our resolve is 
firm and our conviction clear, it would mean 
half the battle won, and the practice of these 
two qualities would come comparatively easy 
to us. 

Let us confine ourselves, to ahimsa. We have 
all along regarded the spinning wheel, village crafts, 
etc. as the pillars of ahimsa, and so indeed they 
are. They must stand. But we have now to go 
a step further. A votary of ahimsa will of 
course base upon non-violence, if he has not 
already done so, all his relations with his parents, 
his children, his wife, his servants, his dependants, 
etc. But the real test will come at the time of 
political or communal disturbances or under the 
menace of thieves and dacoits. Mere resolve to 
lay down one’s life under the circumstances is 
not enough. There must be the necessary qualifica- 
tion for making the sacrifice. If I am a Hindu, 
I must fraternise with the Mussalmans and the 
rest. In my dealings with them I may not make 
any distinction between my co-religionists and 
. those who might belong to a different faith. I 
would seek opportunities to serve them without 
any feeling of fear or unnaturalness. The word 
‘fear* can have no place in the dictionary of 
ahimsa. Having thus qualified himself by his 
selfless service, a votary of pure ahimsa will be 
in a position to make a fit offering of himself 
in a communal conflagration. Similarly, to meet 
the menace of thieves and dacoits, he will need 
to go among, and cultivate friendly relations 
with, the communities from which thieves and 
dacoits generally come. 

A brilliant example of this kind of work is 
provided by Ravishanker Maharaj. His work 
among the criminal tribes in Gujarat has evoked 
praise even of the Baroda State authorities. 
There is an almost unlimited field for this kind 
of work, and it does not call for any other talent 
in one besides pure love. Ravishanker Maharaj 
is an utter stranger to English. Even his know- 
ledge of Gujarati is barely sufficient for everyday 
use. But God has blessed him, with unlimited 
neighbourly love. His simplicity, easily wins all 
hearts, and is the envy of everybody. Let his 
example provide a cue and inspiration to all 



216 


HABIJAN 


i July 21, 1940 


those who may be similarly engaged in other 
fields of satyagraha. 

Sevagram, 16-7-40 

i Translated from Gujarati') 

TRAVANCORE 

( By M. K- Gandhi ) 

Some Travancoreans have thought I had neg- 
lected them. But I had not. It is no pleasure 
to me to criticise any State. Much of my work 
is done by negotiation. I criticise when I must. 
So when I was told by common friends that 
Sir C P. Ramaswami Aiyar would like to meet 
me if an opportunity occurred, I stopped all 
reference to Travancore affairs. But the meeting 
was not to be. In reply to my inquiry I have 
the following extraordinary wire from him: 

“ Have just received your telegram. In view deve- 
lopments in India including your recent statement and 
resolution of Working Committee with similar aims 
though different programmes, and also having regard 
to the close though unacknowledged connection 
existing between many of the leaders of Travancore 
State Congress and communist activities which have 
come to light after arrest of K. C. George, and in 
view of the openly hostile activities of Mr. T. M. 
Verghese and of Mr. G. Ramachandran who has 
been chosen by you to give advice as to Travancore, 
no useful purpose is likely to be served by any 
meeting. In these circumstances you are of course 
free to comment on Travancore affairs, but it is 
hoped that you will not accept versions furnished 
by persons who are discredited here and who depend 
for their influence, collection of funds, and their 
political existence, on possibility . of getting periodical 
statements from you on one-sided data furnished by 
them. Most of the leading members of State Con- 
gress including Messers V. K. Velayudhan, M. N. 
Parameswaran Pillai and others have openly dis- 
sociated themselves from State Congress activities. 
They number over 60.” 

I fail to see the connection between the 
Working Committee’s resolution and my recent 
statement on the one hand and Travancore 
affairs on the other. The Working Committee 
have not' even interested themselves in Travan- 
corc affairs. The idea of our meeting did not 
originate with me. Sir C. P. Ramaswami Aiyar 
thought of it months ago. Even a date was 
fixed. But ' owing to a pressing engagement he 
had to keep, our meeting was postponed. As 
late as the 3rd of April he had wired saying 
he was writing to me about the interview. Have 
the' Working Committee’s resolution and my 
statement’ so altered the situation that our meet- 
ing has become undesirable? The other things 
the worthy Dewan refers to are the very things 
which would have made our meeting fruitful. He 
had but to convince me that the State Congress 
was involved in communist activities of a danger- 
,ous nature, and I would have washed my hands 
clean of the' local Congress and its doings. All 


communism is not dangerous. I do not kno^ 
that Shri K. C. George is a communist. I warn 
the Dewan against being prejudiced by the mere 
name. I know many friends who delight ia 
calling themselves communists. They are as harm- 
less as a dove. I call myself a communist in 
their company. The underlying belief of com- 
munism is good and as old as the hills. But I 
have strayed. 

If Shri T. M, Verghese and Shri G. Rama- 
chandran are untrustworthy, again our meeting 
is necessary to convince me of their untrust- 
worthiness. I must confess I have profound 
admiration for their courage, self-sacrifice, ability 
and integrity. Shri Ramachandran is an old 
member of Sabarmati who has never given me 
cause for distrusting him. Sir C. P. Ramaswami 
Aiyar knows me enough to feel sure that I 
would not hesitate to own my mistake if I 
discovered it. It was his duty, as it still is, to 
make an effort to convince me that the sources 
of my information are tainted. The extraordi- 
nary telegram has made me conclude that Sir 
C. P. Ramaswami Aiyar has nothing against the 
Congress or its members except that they are 
patriots without reproach and without fear. He 
hates their philosophy and seeks to crush them, 
All the evidence in my possession points that 
way, and the telegram confirms my impression. 

I have made an offer which I repeat. Let 
there be an impartial open inquiry into the 
whole conduct of the State Congress and its 
treatment by the State. Let the judge or judges 
be outsiders of known integrity. I shall advise 
the State Congress tO' accept the findings of 
such a court. 

If this simple offer is not accepted, I must be 
pardoned for rejecting the interested denials by 
officials of the State Congress allegations and 
believing them and asking the public to do 
likewise. 

Sevagram, 17-7-40 

Handmade Paper 

Our purchases and sales of handmade paper for 
the month of June have amounted to Rs. 2,743-15*3 
and Rs. 1,591-1-9 respectively, bringing the total 
figures of purchases and sales from January 1 to 
Rs. 11,591-15-9 and Rs. 7,665-3-6 respectively. Rs. 
1,069-9-0 have been given for paper-cutting and 
envelope-making. Manager, Harifan 

CONTENTS Page 

Some Misconceptions ... M. D. 209 

Unrepentant' ... M. K. Gandhi 212 

Khansaheb’s Ahimsa ... M, K. Gandhi 213 

The Best Field for Ahimsa M. K. Gandhi 214 

The Correspondence .... . 2H 

Question Box ... M. K. Gandhi 215 

Travancore ... M. K. Gandhi 216 

Notes: 

Mysore Justice ... M. K. G. 211 

■ The annual ’Spinning 

Sacrifice M. K. G. 214 


printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
Sttbsetiption' Rates ---liniAlO): One year,Rs:4; six months, Rs. 2-8. FOREIGN; One year, Rs. 5-^8 or 8 sh. or 2 «. 



Rag, No. B 3C92 



Editor : NiAHAOiiV OEbAi 


VoL. vni, No. 24 ] POONA — SUNDAY, JULY 28, 1940 


[ ONE ANNA SIX 


PIES 


NOTICE 

The next issue, to be published on 4th August, "will 
contain twelve pages and will be priced at one anna 
six pies per copy. Agents will please notify changes in 
their requirements, if any, by Friday next. Manager 

SERVANTS OF INDIA SOCIETY 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

I have avoided mention of the tragedy that 
has overtaken Gokhale’s greatest creation. Through 
the kindness of Pandit Kunzru I was kept 
informed Oi every happening while the Society 
was going through the agony. It was no small 
matter for the Society to have to expel members 
or to lose one of its oldest members by resig- 
nation. The trouble had been brewing for many 
months. But the chief members were putting 
oflF what to them was the evil day. They tried 
to bridge differences. They failed. They tried 
to evolve discipline out of what had almost 
become a state of anarchy. 

The Society has a high ideal. To serve India 
so as to purify politics and without a selfish 
motive or the desire to attain power' for the 
sake of it, is itself a noble ideal. Gokhalc creat- 
ed a certain standard of conduct and tradition 
for the Society. Those who could not carry it 
out obviously should not seek to enter the 

Society, or on having changed their viewpoint 
after entering it, should not remain in it. Such 
was the case with Shri Parulekar and Miss 
Gokhale. They subscribe to a philosophy which 
includes advocacy of violence for the redress of 
wrongs economic, political and other. There was 
no questioning their ability or their sacrifice. 

Both are inestimable qualities no doubt. But 
they were irrelevant to a consideration of con- 
formity to certain tradition or discipline. The 
quality of the tradition too would be irrelevant 
to such consideration. So when the Society could 
not induce these members to resign, it had to 
perform the very painful duty of expelling them, 
if the Society was to function as a properly 

organised body with one purpose and one policy. 

I know that the President and the other mem- 
bers left no stone unturned to avoid the crisis. 
They invited the associates to examine the whole 
situation. The President put himself at their 
disposal. And it was on their unanimous recom- 
mendation that the Society took the final step. 

So far as Shri Joshi is concerned it is wrong 
to say, as has been said, that he was compelled 
to resign. For valid reasons the President and 


the Council thought ihit he should he trans- 
ferred from Bombay. Shri Joshi, however, would 
not move from Bombay, and resigned. And the 
Society voted a pension and regretfully accepted 
the resignation. Such is the unvarnished version 
of the crisis through which the Society has passed. I 
have felt it a duty to take notice of the incident 
because there has been unkind criticism and 
because I consider myself an unofficial and sleeping 
member of the Society. The reader may not know 
that immediately after the Chiefs death I might 
have myself become a cause of a grave crisis. 
My name was suggested for membership. Some 
members were afraid of my entry as for them, 
and truly, I was an unknown quantity. As soon 
as I came to know of differences, I withdrew 
my name, and everything went off happily. We 
came closer to one another by this natural 
restraint. How nice it would have been if Shri 
Parulekar and Miss Gokhale had followed the 
example set before them in 1915 ! If they have 
the welfare of the Society at heart, they could 
serve it in a variety of ways in matters in 
which they have no differences of opinion. 

Sevagram, 22-7-40 

QUESTION BOX 

C By M. K. Gandhi ) 

One More Faction ? 

Q. Does not the resolution of the Working 
Committee mean that it adds one more to the 
existing factions? 

A. I do not think there is room for such a 
fear or doubt. Let us see what happens in the 
A. I. C. C. If it is found that a large majority 
of the members are believers in strict non-violence 
I have no doubt that Sardar Vallabhbhai and 
others will be extremely delighted. It was no 
pleasure to them to arrive at the decision they 
did, and they acted in their representative capa- 
city. They acted in the belief that there were 
very few Congressmen with a genuine faith in 
non-violence, and they had sufficient reasons for 
their belief. Had it been a question of their 
individual belief, I am sure they would have 
unhesitatingly voted for non-violence. Assuming, 
therefore, that the truly non-violent are in a 
minority, it will be their duty to leave the 
Congress and thus serve the Congress all the 
better. Their continuance in the Congress would 
lead to friction, for the majority would, in 
carrying out their policy, have to adopt many 
resolutions which the followers of out and out 



218 


HARIJAN 


[ July 28, 1940 


non-violence could not accept. That would lead 
to clashes which should be anything but non- 
violence. The out and out non-violent, therefore, 
will gladly retire and devote themselves exclu- 
sively to constructive work. They will also co- 
operate with the Congress wherever they can 
do so without a clash, and yet they will not 
think of being in any committee, I am firmly 
of opinion that, if we can bring into being an 
army of truly non-violent persons, the Working 
Committee’s decision will be found to be a 
blessing in disguise- If every province has its 
band of truly non-violent soldiers, they will not 
only add to the glory of the Congress but contri- 
bute effectively to bringing the Congress nearer 
to non-violence than ever before. 

What Else Besides Spinning ? 

Q. What work besides spinning can an active 
satyagrahi do in cities, especially in Bombay? 

A. I shall reply to your question by a cross- 
question, Why do you want anything else be- 
sides spinning? If you have no interest in spin- 
ning, you can be no satyagrahi, active or passive. 
For all satyagraha presupposes the qualification 
of spinning, and this has been before the country 
for twenty years. You can, therefore, do no 
better than give all your spare time to spinning. 
Do it in a scientific way. If there is no room 
for a spinning wheel, you can ply the takli. A 
way has now been devised for easily increasing 
the speed on the takli. It costs a trifle, and it 
can be plied in any little corner of the house. 
If you are not doing your own carding, you must 
do so now. You may have no space for a card- 
ing bow in your room. You should in that case 
card according to the Andhra method adapted 
by Vinoba. If you can interest yourself in this, 
it will add considerably to your useful knowledge. 
When you come to think of the romance of cotton, 
you will get out of it an interest the best novel 
cannot give you, and you will probably discover 
the solution of the problem of Indian poverty. 
Therefore, if you want to be a true satyagrahi, 
if you want to cultivate true ahimsa, I would 
suggest to you spinning and nothing but spin- 
ning, no matter where you may be. Take it 
from me that without sacrificial spinning non- 
violent Swaraj is impossible. 

But if you have enough time on your hands 
and you are already doing all the spinning that 
would satisfy me, and if you are longing to do 
some additional act of service, I can suggest 
quite a number of things. For instance, there 
is Harijan service. Try to enter Harijans’ life, 
go and stay in Harijan quarters, teach them, 
nurse those who are ill, show them the ways 
and means of improving their economic condition. 
All this offers a wide field of work. Thakkar 
Bapa is now going to spend a lot of time in 
Bombay. Go and seek his guidance. 

Then J, would askj you to cultivate disinterested 
friendship of the Mussalmans, Jt is likely that 
you do not even know your next-door neighbours. 
:Make their acquaintance and try to render what 


service you can to them. If you do not know 
those of other faiths, try to cultivate acquaintance 
with them. Your contacts will be the test of 
your broad-mindedness. 

Then you can help in the khadi propaganda. 
Go to Kakubhai of the main Khadi Bhandar in 
Bombay and ask him if he can utilise your 
services for khadi-hawking and similar work. 

These are but a few samples. The field of ser- 
vice is limitless. In a city like Bombay, especially, 
the mountain of service is so immense that you 
can never compass it. 

Do Not Judge 

Q. Many Congressmen in Bombay have joined 
the Congress for the sake of offices. They never 
spin. Some have spinning wheels in their homes 
just for show. What about this? 

A. Do not judge others. Be your own judge 
and you will be truly happy. If you will try to 
judge others, you are likely to burn your fingers. 
If I Vv^ere secretary of a Congress committee, 
I should see that those who do not observe 
discipline are struck off the Congress register. 

May Harijans Enlist as Recruits? 

Q. I am a Harijan sevak. I believe in military 
training. May I encourage Harijans to enlist as 
recruits ? Those who join the army arc rid of 
fear and untouchability and learn self-respect. 
What is your advice? 

A. You have gone to the wrong man with 
this question. You know that I do not believe 
in military training. Nor do I believe with you 
that Harijans who join the army are so suddenly 
transformed. But I should not make an attempt 
to dissuade those Harijans who voluntarily want 
to enlist as recruits. If sons of the well-to-do 
go in for military training and if Harijans would 
like to follow their example, how can I prevent 
them ? It is a difficult thing any day to teach 
the lesson of ahimsa. How can one inculcate 
ahimsa to those who are doubly suppressed ? 
The wonder to me is that even among the 
suppressed there are some Harijans who have 
truly learnt the lesson of ahimsa. 

Chivalry v. Duty 

Q. You have decided not to launch civil 
disobedience in order that you may not embar- 
rass the British when they are engaged in a 
life and death struggle. Don’t you think this 
chivalry is misplaced, and that you are failing 
in your duty to carry on the fight for Swaraj? 

A. I do not think so. If I were to launch 
•civil disobedience, my ahimsa would be at fault, 
and the disobedience would cease to be civil. 
•I should never think of reaping Swaraj out of 
British defeat. It would be anything tjut 
chivalry. Mine is, therefore, not misplaced. 
Chivalry is a vital part of ahimsa. Ahimsa 
without it is lame, it cannot work. 

Iinplicati<ms of Untouchability 

Q. In satyagraha. camps there ofeen crops up 
the question of the implications of untouchabi- 
lity. In Bihar this certainly is the case. If 
abolition of untouchability consists simply in 



July 28, 1940 ] 


HARIJAI5 


219 


touching the Harijans, untouchability does not 
exist in Bihar, But if it includes letting the 
Harijans use your water pot and exchange water 
with non-Harijans, if it includes interdining and 
allowing them to enter your dining room and 
kitchen, even Congressmen are not free from 
this untouchability. What do you say to this ? 

A. Abolition of untouchability in me will be 
really achieved only when I behave towards 
Harijans as I should towards my own kith and 
kin. There is no untouchability today in Con- 
gress kitchens. And so if Congressmen in Bihar 
observe untouchability as regards eating, I should 
be disagreeably surprised. Believe me that Swaraj 
will be delayed in proportion to our failure and 
half- hearted ness in carrying out the different items 
of the constructive programme. It is impossible 
to attain Swaraj non-violently unless there is 
self-purification. I do not often use this word 
nowadays, but it is there in an important Con- 
gress resolution. It has been a vital part of 
Congress politics since 1920. Letters of the late 
Pandit Motilalji and other leaders, written during 
that period, are worth perusal. Their lives had 
undergone a conversion. Have we descended 
from that high pedestal? 

Donation of Tainted Money 

Q. Supposing a man has earned millions by 
exploiting millions of his poor brethren and made 
a gift of them to a Mahatma like you, and 
supposing you use that money for the benefit 
of humanity, is the exploiter absolved from 
sin? Does not some blame attach to you too 
for having accepted this ill-gotten wealth ? How 
can one remain blameless in this unending 
vicious circle? How is ahimsa to cope with 
this immoral exploitation? 

A. Let us assume for the purpose of this 
riddle that I am really a Mahatma, and then 
try to solve it. The gift of what you assume 
to be ill-gotten gains cannot lessen the guilt of 
the exploiter. If he had kept the money for 
himself, that would have been an additional 
count against him. If instead he makes a gift 
of it to me from pure motives, he escapes 
the additional sin. It is also likely that a good 
use of his gift may wean the exploiter from 
immoral means of making money. But no blame 
attaches* to me for having accepted the gift. 
As the foul waters from drains flowing into the 
sea partake of its purity, even so docs tainted 
wealth become pure when put to the purest 
use. There is one condition, however, that we 
have assumed, viz. that the gift is made and 
accepted out of pii^e motives. 

Exploitation of the poor can be extinguished 
not by effecting the destruction of a few mil- 
lionaires, but by removing the ignorance of the 
poor and teaching them to non-cooperate with 
their exploiters. That will convert the exploiters 
also. I have even suggested that ultimately it 
will lead to both being equal partners. Capital as 
such is not evil ; it is its wrong use that is evil. 
Capital in some form or other will always be needed. 


A Flaw in Ahimsa 

Q. You have appealed to Britons to lay down 
arms and to adopt non-violence. But that raises 
a moral difficulty. A’s ahimsa provokes B to 
himsa and makes him impervious to appeal to 
his heart. If a non-violent man comes up 
against an inanimate thing, his non-violence will 
have no effect on it. There is, therefore, some 
flaw somewhere in your belief. It is likely that 
ahimsa may have success in a restricted field. If 
so, what use is it for universal purposes ? Your 
claim, therefore, of its universal use falls to 
the ground. 

A. Ahimsa cannot be dismissed so lightly as 
you think. Ahimsa is the strongest force known. 
But if all can use the strongest force with equal 
ease, it would lose its importance. We have not 
been able yet to discover the true measure of 
the innumerable properties of an article of daily 
use like water. Some of its properties fill us 
with wonder. Let us not, therefore, make light 
of a force of the subtlest kind like ahimsa, and 
let us try to discover its hidden power with 
patience and faith. Within a brief space of 
time we have carried to a fairly successful con- 
clusion a great experiment in the use of this 
force. As you know I have not set much store 
by it. Indeed I have hesitated even to call it an 
experiment in ahimsa. But according to the legend, 
as Rama’s name was enough to float stones, even 
so the movement carried on in the name of ahimsa 
brought about a great awakening in the country 
and carried us ahead. It is diflScult to forecast 
the possibilities when men with unflinching faith 
carry this experiment further forward. To say 
that those who use violence are all insensible 
is an exaggeration. Some do seem to lose their 
senses, but we are bound to be mistaken if we 
try to base a moral law on those exceptions. 
The safest course is to lay down laws on the 
strength of our usual experience, and our usual 
experience is that in most cases non-violence 
is the real antidote of violence, and it is safe 
to infer from it that the highest violence can 
be met by the highest non-violence. 

But let us consider for a moment inanimate 
objects. He will surely break his head who 
strikes it against a stone. But supposing a stone 
comes against us through space, we can escape 
it by stepping aside, or if there is nowhere to 
step aside, we can bravely stay where we are 
and receive the stone. That will mean minimum 
injury and, in case it proves fatal, the death will 
not be as painful as it would be if we made 
an effort to ward it off. 

Extend the thought a little further, and it is 
easy to see that, if a senseless man is left alone 
and no one tries to resist him, he is sure to 
exhaust himself. Indeed it is not quite inconceiv- 
able that the loving sacrifice of many may 
bring an insane man to his senses. Instances 
are not wanting of absolutely insane people 
having come back to their senses. 

Sevagram, 22-7-40 ( Translated from Gujarati ) 



220 HARIJAN [ JULY 28, 1940 


OPEN LETTER 

Muttra, India 
July 17, 19^10 

My Dear Gandhiji, 

After all these ni:;nlhs of hopeful expectancy and 
suspense my i\Iis 3 ionary Bo.ird has at last cabled : 

Your missionary efiecliveness seriously impaired, 
making necessary v/ith regret immediate recall. ” 

I had already contemplated ’vvriting you about your 
recent stand, and now that the scene o£ our little 
part in the coming ” War without V iolence is 
about to change from India to the United States, I 
v;ish more than ever :o do so. We arc accepting 
it as God’s closing of one door and the opening of 
another. We are content to trust His judgment as 
to the “effectiveness” of our work here or there. 
The present world is not in the mood to judge 
effectiveness. As the great Lowell expressed it, 

“ We see dimly in the present what is small 
and what is great, 

Slow of faith how weak an arm may turn 
the iron helm of fate. ” 

I am still hoping and praying daily that Congress 
may see that its supreme opportunity is not to win 
a doubtful political victory over a foe but, in an 
hour like this, to win the lasting friendship of 
all who love liberty, in England and in all the 
world, by revealing the only adequate zeal for 
India's defence or defence of democracy in the world — 
the non-violent war to the finish against the zvliolc 
stYuctnre of man's inhumanity to man. The com- 
bined might of India, building a third-rate military 
force, can at best but become the sport of force- 
mad and damnably efficient international gangsters. 
But defence committees and those who know no 
better way should not be discouraged. What I do 
mean is that, at the same time, those who under- 
stand and love peace should build up a non-violent 
defence force for the precise purpose for which mili- 
tary force is being established. Like the military 
forces, these should also be non-political and volun- 
tary. Besides being negatively harmless to the in- 
terests of the Defence of India, such a force should 
at the very outset place itself at the disposal of the 
Government for the purpose either of defence or 
offence against all the foes of liberty in India or 
elsewhere, as the non-violent army of India- The 
great hope should be that such an army would lead 
directly and speedily to the organization of a vast 
Peace Army for the whole world. I believe that 
there are hundreds in every land ready to flock to 
the standards of such an army. Governments will 
soon be in a mood to trust a force that has 
already in many ways revealed itself as unconquer- 
able. The need is urgent. 

I think that this war has already revealed that 
armed force cannot defend even the institutions of 
democracy without first nullifying them and second 
destroying them. Further, the very strongest military 
defence force in the world has not been able to 
make its nation secure in this war-mad world. I 
am convinced that a non-violent war against all 
aggression, the economic as well as the political, not 
only will prove more effective than all the armies 


but can very rapidly be made available, if the non- 
violent of the world will but put their minds and 
hearts to the matter. It matters not tliat they are 
few. The first step is to approach the Viceroy for 
his “Godspeed" to the movement. I believe it will 
be readily forthcoming. 

Is there any other way that the priceless treasures 
of civilization can be preserved ? Military force cannot 
save democracy because violence, even without being 
overt, is the way to democracy’s demise. When it 
becomes overt the process is but hastened. Because 
present Western society is actually organized around 
vlclence* not only is war inevitable, but democracy 
had, before the outbreak of war, only a hollow pretence 
of life. The violent society and its democracy were 
in compatibles. Two ways have been found out of 
this. The laying down of democratic institutions, 
Fascism, and the laying down of violent organization, 
Communism. But violent organization could not be 
laid down with violent methods. The result is that 
communism neither trusts life nor serves it at its 
highest. It remains for the better way of Love for Life 
to show that these priceless treasures of civilization, 
liberty, equality of opportunity, justice and brother- 
hood can be re-established. The world’s task is far 
more than preserving this liberty. It is the task of 
re-establishing liberties already dead in most of the 
world, the task of bringing lliem out of our mouldy 
parchments and enshrining them a, gain within our 
hearts. We cannot at the same time defend our 
liberties and defend our comfort and privileges. Defend- 
ing liberties means essentially surrendering all advan- 
tages over other people. Until we will do that, we 
cannot say our struggle is sincere.- 

Traditional democracy theoretically reserved the 
right of violent rebellion to aggrieved people whose 
will was no longer represented in their government. 
But pure democracy must repudiate the violence, while 
reserving the right of rebellion. This is because 
violence, however employed, is the antithesis of 
democracy, and cannot be indulged in without at 
least temporary extinction. But non-violent resistance 
to the foes of democracy, on the other hand, can 
release the democratic spirit of mutual trust in friend 
and foe alike. This has already been revealed again 
and again in the non-violent warfare waged in the 
interest of the national cause in India. As long as 
the development of abolition in the United States re- 
mained non-violent, as it did between 1830 and 1844 
under a great saint, Theodore Dwight Weld, there 
was always a liberal show of conversions among 
slave-holders of the South, Furtlier than that it is 
interesting to know that historically neither the free- 
dom of the first thirteen colonies, nor that of the 
American negro, was actually won by v;ar. The 
war of rebellion only served to sover a connection. 
There followed twentyfive years of worse slavery than 
they had ever known and actual border bloodshed- 
The way of freedom was a way of non-violent con- 
stitutional advance, most remote from the method of war. 
War had only produced confusion, strife and chaos. 
The pertinent question about that war is : Could that 
connection have been severed in a better way to 
have avoided all that misery of a full quarter of a 



July 28, 1840 ] 


221 


HASIJAl^ 


century. I believe that it could, had that way been 
known. As for the American negroj he is still not 
yet free. Such freedom as he now knows has been 
wrought out since the Civil War, in the conquest 
of non-violence over the violence in human hearts^ 
of both North and South. The most unyielding foe 
this non-violence has had to face in all the years 
since has been the bitter spirit of violence created 
by defeat in war on one side and a towering desire 
for revenge on the other, so intense it put the great 
Lincoln to death because he sought the w^ay ci 
reconciliation, I do not think there is a single 
instance in history where defensive war has ever 
settled the problems for which the defenders have 
supposed they fought. But Denmark, on the other 
hand, is the supreme illustration of a nation setting 
itself on the road to liberty by the deliberate repu- 
diation of the “ glory ” of imperial conquest or 
defence of integrity. 

Kristagraha has already taken its unequivocal stand 
for the non-violence of Christ its Master, in its two 
manifestos. It will perhaps be reviewing its stand 
shortly in order to make its present position fully 
clear in the face of the new turn of events, though 
that may seem unnecessary. Many missionaries have 
recently received copies of Memorandum A, under 
which all non-British missionaries serve in India. It 
was a surprise to most of them to note that the 
Government had provided for them to “ influence ” 
politics in the interest of assisting in the preservation 
of the nation’s security and well-being. Here then, I 
believe, is the supreme opportunity for Christian lovers 
of freedom, missionary and non-missionary, to serve 
their nation and the world while adhering to their 
Master’s injunction not to take up the sword. I 
can only say for myself that I am prepared to 
surrender fulb’' to this great cause, and do hereby 
pledge to follow your leadership if you decide to 
launch the Satyagraha Army of the World. I do 
this because I believe it is the only way that the 
real aggression can ever be uprooted from its soil 
in mankind’s unbrotherliness and the world estab- 
lished on a basis of justice, equality and peace. 

Whatever the ardent supporters of armed defence 
maintain about the need to resist aggression or all 
other foes of liberty, is true. I would not say to 
them, “ Do not resist.” I VN^ould say, “ Resist with 
the only finally effective method.” Both violence and 
non-violence are methods only because overt. Both 
are in reality something more psychological, inner, 
more entrenched and serious. Violence is ** method ” 
only because thought has found expression in its 
deed. But it is first the thought that has divided 
brother from brother. So also non-violence is method 
only when thought has found expression in its deed. 
But it is first and always essentially the thought 
that unites brother to brother, even to enemy 1 
Democracy is but a part of this essential non-violence. 
Non-violence is, therefore, the only possible answer 
to the violent structure of our present world. If 
this organized structure of violence in thought and 
life is not conquered, its violent deed, war, can 
never end. This means an end of the present social 
system so far as it is possible within it for anyone 


to secure and maintain advantage or superiority of 
opportunity. It is because these are the exact opposite 
of democracy. The strange thing about this age is 
that there are people who cannot see this truth 
that you cannot have democracy and aristocracy in 
the same place. 

The war in 1914-18 produced the war ( its con- 
tinuation ) in 1939 following. That sequence in 
events is inevirable sc long as the non-violent war 
against this violence in the present structure of 
man’s thought and life is not carried to its ultimate 
victory. Like domestic slavery of the last century, 
this entrenched evil must be completely uprooted, 
whatever the accompanying convulsions. Most of us 
will not live to see the day of that final victory. It 
is for us all to do that which God calls us to do 
in our own day. We can all pray : “ I do not ask 
to see the distant scene; one step enough for me. ” 
We can well stake our future, our security and our 
lives in this War without Violence', for without it 
there will remain no civilization v/orth the name. 

I can see no hope whatever in the way the 
United States and England have so far taken. The 
war of 1940 will never be won. Chaos can win 
over order, barbarity over civilization, autocracy over 
democracy, darkness over light, and violence over 
goodwill. That has already transpired over a large 
part of the world and is fast coming in the rest. 
But generous application of goodwill can still arrest 
this in every part, especially when men in large 
numbers are ready to lay down their lives for the 
Truth that is in them. They can reveal that the 

Spirit-Dawn ” has already broken in the darkness 
of the world’s present despair. 

I pray that God may lead you in His own way. 
You have countless friends encircling our earth. 
Through the instrumentality of non-violent resistance 
to the mountainous lovelessness and stupidity of our 
age, the way may yet open into the new day and 
a peace of full justice prevail among the nations. 

With the deepest appreciation of your single- 
minded devotion to Truth, and with the sincerest 
afiTection, I am 

Yours for the World Satyagraha Army, 
Ralph T. Templin 

[ I gladly publish this letter, Mr. Templin 
represents a growing number of Western satya- 
grahis. There are just two reflections arising out 
of this letter. I wish to say that Denmark's is 
not an illustration of non-violent action. It was 
most probably the most prudent course to adopt. 
When armed resistance is vain, it is folly to 
spill blood. The second is that I do not expect 
to lead any satyagraha army of the world. So 
far as I can see at present, every country will 
have to work out its own programme. Simul- 
taneous action is possible, 

Sevagram, 23-7-40 M. K- G. ] 

The Power of Non-violence by Richard B. Gregg. 
Rs. 2 + 7 As. 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radbakrishnan, (New Edition) Rs. S-10-0. 
Postage 8 As. Available at Harijan office-Poona 4. 



222 


HARIJAN 



NOT QUITE SO BAD 


C By M. K. Gandk ) 

A friend quotes from a letter recei^ved from 
an English friend : 

“Do you think that Mahatma’s appeal to every 
Briton is going’ to produce right reactions in the 
mind or heart of a single Briton ? That appeal has 
probably created more ill-will than anythiang else 

recently. We live in astonishing and critical times, 

and it is frightfully difficult to decide what should 
be done. At any rate we should try to avoid 
obvious dangers. So far as I can see, IMahatma s 
unadulterated policy must inevitably lead to disaster 
for India. How far he himself intends follo^ving it 
I do not know, for he has a wonderful way of 
adapting himself to his material.” 

Well, I happen to know that many more 

than one single heart have been touched by my 
* Appeal to Every Briton I know that many 
English friends were anxious for me to take 

some such step. But I do not want to take 
comfort from the approbation, however pleasing 
in itself, of English friends. What is of value 
for me is to know that at least one Englishman 
thinks as stated in the extract. Such knowledge 
should put me on my guard. It should make 
me more careful, if possible, in the selection of 
the words I use to express my thought. But no 
displeasure even of the dearest friends can put 
me off the duty I see clearly in front of me. 
Aijd this duty of making the Appeal was so 
peremptory that it was impossible for me to put 
it off. As certain as I am writing this, the 
world has to come to the state to which I have 
invited Britain. Those who will be witnesses of 
that happy and not far-off event will recall my 
Appeal with gladness. I know that the Appeal 
has hastened its advent. 

Why should a single Briton resent an appeal 
to him to be braver than he is, to be better 
than he is in every respect ? He may plead 
inability, but he cannot be displeased by an 
appeal to his nobler nature. 

Why should the Appeal breed any ill-will at 
all ? There is no cause given for it by the 
manner or the matter of the Appeal. 3 have 
not advised cessation of fight. I have advised 
lifting it to a plane worthy of human nature, 
of the divinity man shares with God Himself. 
If the hidden meaning of the remarks is that 
by making the Appeal I have strengthened Nazi 
hands, the suggestion does not bear scrutiny. 
Herr Hitler can only be confounded by the adop- 
tion by Britain of the novel method of fighting. 
At one single stroke he will find that all his 
tremendous armament has been put out of action. 
A warrior lives on his wars whether offensive 


[ July 28, 1940 

or defensive. He suffers a collapse if he finds 
that his warring capacity is unwanted. 

My Appeal is not from a coward to brave 
people to shed their bravery, nor is it a mockery 
from a fair-weather friend to one in distress. I 
suggest to the writer to re-read my Appeal in 
the light of my explanation. 

One thing Herr Hitler, as every critic, may 
say. I am a fool without any knowledge of the 
world or human nature. That would be a harm^ 
less certificate which need excite neither ill-will 
nor anger. It would be harmless because I have 
earned such certificates before now. This one 
would be the latest of the many editions, and 
I hope not the last, for my foolish experiments 
have not yet ended. 

So far as India is concerned, my unadulterated 
policy can never harm her, if she adopts it. If 
India as a whole rejects it, there can be no 
harm accruing except to those who may foolishly 
pursue it. The correspondent has lighted upon 
my strong point when he says : “ Mahatma has 

a wonderful way of adapting himself to his 
material.” My instinctive knowledge of my 
material has given me a faith which cannot be 
moved. I feel within me that the material is 
ready. My instinct has not betrayed me once. 
But I must not build much upon past experience. 
“One step enough for me.” 

Sevagram, 24-7-40 

A WORTHY EDUCATIONAL 
EFFORT 

{By M, K. Gandhi) 

The Birla family have been running an insti- 
tution called the Birla College at Pilani in Jaipur 
State. I have been often asked to visit it, but 
in spite of my keen desire to do so I have 
never been able to find time for it. Thakkar 
Bapa visited the institution and gave me a glow- 
ing account and pressed me to visit it. Seth 
Ghanshyamdas Birla has now issued a booklet 
to acquaint the public about the origin and 
growth of the institution. The object is to invite 
criticism and to present the public with its 
novel features, maybe for adoption. The writer 
has lavished on the booklet all his art of writ- 
ing, aided by fine printing, beautiful illustrations 
alluringly arranged, making the whole thing very 
attractive. For two months Mahadev waited for 
a suitable opportunity to place it before me, 
and imagining that I should have some spare time 
on our journey to Simla he ventured to give 
it to me on the train. The moment I took it 
up to read, it gripped me. It is a quarto size 
booklet of 47 pages, and I could not give it up 
until I had read it from cover to cover. I would 
ask all interested in education to write for it 
to the Secretary of the Birla College. Pilani. 

A brief history of the enterprise may be given 
here. The institution has grown out of a small 
school called Birla Pathshala opened 40 years ago 
in an insignificant little building. Now it is a 
big institution with an Intermediate College, 




July 28, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


223 


•splendid buildings for school, college and hostels, 
and vast playgrounds. It has 33 staff quarters, 
and 5 hostels accommodating 295 students ( in- 
cluding 27 Harijans). There are 18 playgrounds, 
a library with 3,608 Hindi and 6,772 English 
books. There is a high school with 791 boys, 
a college with 165 boys, and a girls school with 
157 girls. The Birla Educational Trust runs be- 
sides 128 village schools with 4,636 boys and 200 
girls. Physical instruction and games are com- 
pulsory, and so is music. There is an agricul- 
tural farm with a dairy on modern lines. Among 
the crafts and vocations taught are spinning 
and weaving, carpentry, tailoring, dyeing, print- 
ing, book-binding, weaving, carpet-making, shoe- 
making and leatherwork. The agricultural farm 
and dairy have numerous cows, sheep and goats. 
The basic education scheme is also being given a 
trial. Hardly anything has escaped the attention 
of those in charge — prayer, intellectual and indus- 
trial training, balanced diet, health examination, 
and health preservation. An endeavour is made to 
develop individual contact between the students 
and teachers on a family basis. 

The whole institution has grown out of Seth 
Shivnarayanji Birla s desire to provide for the 
•education of his two grandsons Rameshwardas 
and Ghanshyamdas. He did not like the provi- 
sion to be confined to the needs o£ his grand- 
•sons, and so he established a school in 1900 with 
a village teacher on Rs, 5 a month for all the 
children of the village. This was called the 
Birla Pathshala — the seed out of which has 
grown the vast tree that the institution now has 
become. It combines family interests with philan- 
thropy which has now become a distinctive 
trait of the Birla brothers. But Ghanshyamdas, 
of all the brothers, made a special interest of 
education, health and kindred topics, and the 
growth of the institution at Pilani is mainly due 
to his perseverance, resourcefulness, and interest 
in education. Sir Maurice Gwyer and other 
.distinguished people have visited the institution 
and spoken in high terms about it. Ghanshyam- 
dasji’s ambition is to make a Degree College of 
the Intermediate College, and he has been trying 
to do so for some years. But things move 
slowly in Princes' India, and so his ambition 
still remains unfulfilled. It is hoped that the 
Jaipur State will lose no time in encouraging 
this worthy enterprise and accord permission to 
turn it into a full-fledged college. In my opinion 
there arc few institutions in India run with such 
oare and attention. If we assume the necessity 
for modern colleges, the Birla college has suc- 
ceeded in combining several features which are 
scarcely to be seen elsewhere in India. 

Sevagram, 15-7-40 

( Translated fr om Gujarati ) 

Autobiography 

The long awaited one- volume cheaper edition of 
Gandhiji’s The Story of My Expenments with Truth 
( Autobiography ) has now been published by the 
Navajivan Press, Kalupur, Ahmedabad. 

Price Rs. 4. Postage 10 As. extra. 

Available at Harijan Office — Poona 4. 


TWO JUST COMPLAINTS 

( 3y M. K. Gandhi ) 

I 

Right of Translation 

A Calcutta telegram protests against the reser- 
vation of copyright in translations of my Gujarati 
articles, saying that my articles are the property 
of the nation and therefore there could be no 
copyright in them, and that I myself had taught 
that Hindustani v/as the lingua franca of India, and 
that I should therefore reconsider my decision. This 
grievance appears on the face of it to be just. 
But it is forgotten that I have prohibited trans- 
lation from Gujarati into all other languages. 
Experience had taught me that English transla- 
tions of my articles written in any Indian lan- 
guages were faulty, but it would not have been 
proper to confine the copyright to translations 
into English. All important Gujarati articles 
would be translated simultaneously into English 
and Hindustani and published almost the same time. 
There is, therefore, no hardship involved, for 
there is no copyright in the translated articles 
which can be and are being reproduced. 

My object was clear and unexceptionable. If 
I wanted to enter the hearts of the Indian masses, 
I should write in an Indian language, and that 
language could be no other than that in which 
I could write with the greatest ease. If I had 
the same command over Hindustani as over 
Gujarati, I should have written only in Hindustani. 

II 

Are Gujaratis More Non-violent? 

The other complaint is this: 

“You could not have begun to write in Gujarati 
out of your partiality for Gujarat, but it would seem 
as though you believed that you would be able to 
influence the Gujaratis more quickly than others. 
That is to say, you have assumed that they are 
more non-violent -than others. I doubt that they are. 
You may have more workers in Gujarat, but you 
do not seem to have a greater hold on the Gujarati 
than on other masses. Belief in non-violence, you 
have always emphasised, presupposes removal of 
untouchability and universalisation of khadi. Now I 
suggest that no other province in India has the 
curse of untouchability to the extent that one finds 
in your Gujarat, especially your beloved Kathiawad. 
Indeed we have heard you have expressed this opi- 
nion. Again according to you khadi fares no better 
there. Gujarat is the seat of the textile industry. I 
admit that the large number of workers in Gujarat 
are all khadi-lovers and they have all personally 
shed untouchability. But my complaint is against 
the masses in Gujarat. Where the masses are not 
ready, what hope is there of your influencing them 
more than others? Why not, therefore, address the 
Indian masses in your imperfect Hindustani than in 
your more perfect Gujarati ? For the number of 
Hindustani-knowing masses is much larger than the 
Gujaratis, and I make bold to say that your- influ- 
ence on them is certainly the same as on the 
Gujaratis, if not even greater.*’ 



224 


HARIJAN 


L July 28, 1940 


This complaint is couched in sweet Hindu- 
stani and made in all sincerity. I have summa- 
rised it in my. own words. The correspondent 
will, I hope, admit that in doing so I have not 
only not been unfair to him, but have even put 
his argument more forcefully. This I have done 
with a purpose as my reply to him will reveal. 

I claim that consciousness on my part of my 
belonging to Gujarat has never meant any ex- 
clusiveness. I have always believed and described 
myself as an Indian. When I went to South 
Africa I found that there were divisions among 
our countrymen into Tamils, Telugus and 
Gujaratis. Immediately on my landing I abolish- 
ed the divisions. For myself I knew that all 
the immigrants from India were Indians, and 
that provincial or religious divisions between them 
were improper. It was true that they belonged 
to different provinces and to different faiths 
and that they spoke different languages, but all 
belonged to the same country, all had the same 
joys and sorrows, and all were under the same 
alien rule. Besides even the people of the country 
where they had gone did not know and did not 
recognise the distinctions of caste, religion, langu- 
age or province- To them we were all Indians, 
all coolies, all samis, and all to be governed by 
the same law. We have ceased to be called 
coolies and samis^ but we have not ceased to 
be Indians, Thus alike by temperament and from 
experience I have been against these divisions, 
as I think everyone should be. 

Nevertheless when I begin to think in terms 
of the talents God has given me and of the use 
I should make of them for the service of the 
motherland, I cannot afford to ignore the pro- 
vince of my birth- As Gujarati is my mother- 
tongue and as I know the Gujaratis more inti- 
mately, I could serve India best through Gujarat 
and the Gujarati language. It was this consi- 
deration that was at the back of the choice of 
Gujarat as my place of abode on my return 
from South Africa., But I deliberately did not 
choose Porbandar or Rajkot, though I had in- 
vitations from and facilities in both the places. 
For I had ceased to belong to Porbandar and 
Rajkot, ceased to belong to my caste. My choice 
has been proved to be cent per cent right. It 
could not be otherwise, as I believe that my 
footsteps are guided by God, and all my life 
is based on this belief. 

If the argument presented above appeals to 
the reader and to the co-worker who has made 
the complaint in Question, I need not labour it 
any more. But something more I must say for 
the sake of the work I want from Gujarat and 
from the other provinces of India. 

I do not enjoy elsewhere the same intimacy 
and extent of contact as I do with the Gujarati 
workers. And so if I succeed with them, I 
should have confidence regarding the rest of India. 
Some of them believe that I should again fix 
up my abode in Gujarat, but I do not think 
so. If I stayed in their midst, they would lose 


initiative, and cease to work independently. 
They have a tried leader like the Sardar to 
guide them at every step, and I feel that if I 
stayed in Gujarat my talents would not be put 
to the fullest possible use. It is God who has 
guided my steps to Sevagram. It may be a 
difficult field of work. If it is, surely I may 
not shirk it, Seay in Sevagram has taught me, 
is teaching me, a lot that is new. If I can be 
one with its six hundred souls, if I can engage 
them in constructive work and in the necessary 
work of reform, and if I can easily make a 
satyagrahi army of them, I should discover the 
key to do the same work in the whole of 
India. If I chose a big city, I should get lost, 
puzcled and perplexed. Much of what has been 
done and planned in Sevagram has been done 
from the point of view of India. It is, there- 
fore, but meet that I must deliver my message 
through Sevagram and in Gujarati. 

There is one fact which can upset the plan 
of burying myself in Sevagram. The Khansaheb 
can summon me to his province whenever he 
likes for his work, which indeed is also ray 
work. If he succeeds in expressing real ahirasa, I 
firmly believe that the wliole country can suc- 
ceed. For the experiment there is out and out 
that of iion-violencc of the brave. God alone 
knows whether it will or will not succeed. This 
I know that wherever I go 1 will do His work, 
I regard the winning of Indian Independence by 
non-violent means as God’s own work, and if 
that is achieved, the whole world would be 
saved from being drowned in a sea of bloodshed. 

The reader will now see that I am prompted 
by partiality for neither Gujarat nor anything 
else. If there is any partiality, it is for UTM 
and NON-VIOLENCE. It is through these that 
I can have some glimpse of God, Truth and 
non-violence are my God. They are the obverse 
and reverse of the same coin. 

My co-worker’s complaint is true that in the 
abolition of untouchabiliLy and in love of khadi 
Gujarat lags behind other provinces. But that 
does not mean that I should leave Gujarat alone. 
If these two items cannot be accomplished in 
Gujarat, Gujarat will be an obstacle to the 
Independence of India. If I can inspire the 
Gujaratis to lay down their lives for the aboli- 
tion of the curses of untouchability and un- 
employment, what a glorious thing it would be! 
It would be a sight for all India to see and 
copy. Hindu-Muslim troubles would automati- 
cally come to an end, for the moment we cast 
out untouchability from our hearts Hindu-Muslim 
unity will be an accomplished fact and many 

another good thing would follow as a matter 
of course. 

All this is only a dream today. But it is in 
order to realise that dream that I have under- 
taken in my old age this Gujarati enterprise. 
If it is God’s will thus to take work from me^ 
age will be no bar. 

Sevagram, 22-7-40 

i Translated from Gujarati^ 



JULY 28, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


225 


TRAVANCORE 

(.By M. K. Gandhi ) 

In the hope of having a talk with Sir C. P. 
Ramaswami Aiyar and possibly arriving at some 
way out of the impasse, I was suppressing the 
manifestos sent to me by succeeding acting 
Presidents. The last received was from Shri 
Achutban, a Harijan advocate, about the last 
week of June. From the manifesto I extract 
only statements of facts, omitting as far as 
possible all argument and inferences: 

“Processions and meetings have been violently 
broken up by the special police and the oidinary 
police without even the semblance of prohibitory 
orders. To quote from the speech of Shri 
K. Santhanam M. L. A. (Central) which he delivered 
at Madras after a brief visit to Travancore, he 
said: 'My impression is there is police raj in 
Travancore. No one could speak with any sense of 
security or discuss matters even with friends. The 
■Government appear determined not to allow any 
discussion on responsible government, and are willing 
to resort to any methods to prevent it. All normal 
channels of public expression have been stopped.” 

Repression has worked ruthlessly along three main 
lines : 1 Legal terrorism, 2 Police terrorism, 3 
Complete muzzling of the Press. 

1. Legal terrorism has taken the shape of ‘ the 

Defence of Travancore Proclamation It is not the 
actual number of those arrested and detained for 
indefinite periods under this Act, but the threat of 
it against every man and woman with any active 
sympathy towards the State Congress that has 
created a grave situation. Several people have been 
arrested under this Act and then let off, just to 
show that the authorities can do anything with 

anybody. Many important leaders have been imprison- 
ed under this Act without trial and for indefinite 
periods. 

2. Police terrorism has meant more than what 

will be ordinarily understood by that term. In 
Travancore it has meant more than the forcible dis- 
persal of processions and meetings. It has meant 

■secret as well as open goondaism by what are called 

the special police who wear no uniforms and who 
get only Rs. 5 a month. This body of special police 
contains in many cases the worst rowdies and 
drunkards in various localities. Their special busi- 
ness is to quietly mix with the crowds and start 
sudden goondaism. It has become physically im- 
possible to hold any decent meeting or procession or 
demonstration in the face ©f such goondaism. In 
Neyyattinkara, Alleppey, Palai, Karunagapilly and 
many other places such goondaism has appeared 
openly. 

3. Muzzling of the Press. No doubt there are 
several papers in Travancore which appear regularly. 
Not one of them would publish reports or news of 
State Congress meetings and demonstrations. State- 
ments issued by Acting Presidents of the State 
Congress or by State Congress leaders never appear 
in them. In many cases people in one part of the 
State never knew anything of what happened in 
^auother part except from news appearing in the 


English papers at Madras. This was proved when 
police frightfulness occurred in Nsy^’attinkara and Palai. 

Bur the Travancore Government did net rest con- 
tent V)7ith the above items of repression. Every officer 
from the highest to the lowest went about the 
country treating every State Congressman or sympa- 
thiser not merely as one belonging to a disturbing' 
political party but as an enemy to be hunted down 
by every means ir: their power. Another severe trial 
for those engaged in the struggle has been police 
'/iolenco in iock-ups. Volunteers who are under arrest 
and awaiting trial are rnsrcilessly beaten and very 
often discharged after several weeks of detention 
without trial. 

Every time State Congress leaders published allega- 
tions against the Travancore police, the Govern- 
ment as often came out with categorical and whole- 
sale denials. But Shri G. Ramachandran’s specific 
allegations regarding police terrorism at Neyyattinkara 
and Palai published in The Hindu of Madras 
supported by unimpeachable data have at last com- 
pelled the Government to order an official enquiry. 
It is significant that the enquiry has been ordered 
long after the Government had published categorical 
and wholesale denials of the allegation ! The public 
are still awaiting the findings of the enquiry. 

The most disquieting development in the present 
situation has yet to be related. This is the direct and 
open encouragement given to the various communal 
organisations in Travancore by the authorities 
including the Dewan, Sir C. P. Ramaswami Aiyar 
himself. At one time Sir C. P. Ramaswami Aiyar 
used to say that it was the presence of various 
communal organisations in Travancore which prevented 
him from inaugurating any scheme of responsible 
Government in Travancore. But today his policy 
clearly appears to be to encourage each and every 
communal organisation to develop along separate lines 
and thus make political unity impossible. Officers of 
Government including the Dewan take part in 
meetings of the various communal organisations. 
Lovers of Travancore know that, if this process is 
allowed to continue, Travancore will soon become 
a battle ground for the various communal organi- 
sations. ” 

I know that there will be an official contra- 
diction. I have already suggested that such con- 
tradictions can have no value unless they are 
backed by a definite promise of an impartial 
inquiry. Officials stake nothing when they 
issue unprovable contradictions, whereas State 
Congress Presidents stake their liberty and the 
prestige of their institution when they make 
rash statements. 

The balance of probability, therefore, must be 
in their favour. The quotation given by Shri 
Achutban from Shri Santhanam’s speech in his 
support is not to be lightly brushed aside. 

I sent a copy of Sir C. P. Ramaswami Aiyar s 
v;ire to Shri Ramacliandran. He sends a comment 
from which I take the following : 

“ I can show that our Working Committee kept 
‘ communist tendencies ’ clearly and absolutely out 
of the struggle, Mr. K. C. George who is referred 



HABIJAN [ July 28, 1940 


to was one of the severest critics of our Working THE JOURNEY BACK 

Committee, and considered our work and programme “ Theisrs Not to Reason Why 

as thoroughly useless ... It is absolutely false to say Gandhiji did not prolong his stay at Simla 

that we depend on Bapu’s periodical statements for for a minute longer than was absolutely neces. 
collecting our funds and for our existence. If this sary for the Viceregal appointment, and left for 
were so, there should be today no State Congress. Delhi the same evening. The idea was to take 
During the last eight or nine months Bapu has not from Delhi the next train to Wardha. This- 
said a word about Travancore. Our cause is so would have meant four consecutive nights of 
patently just that it does not depend even on tiring train journey. But the urge to be back 
Bapu. It depends on its own inherent justice. Bapu in Sevagram with the least delay was irresistible, 
can of course help our cause. But that is different Providence, however, the unpredictable ‘fifth 


from saying that our movement depends on Bapu.... 

Most of the leading members of the Travancore 
State Congress including Shri V. K. Velayudhan and 
M. N. Parameswaran Pillai and others have openly 
dissociated themselves, says Sir C. P. Yes, these 
two gentlemen have done so. But neither of them 
has said that the State Congress is in the wrong. 
Shri Velayudhan stated that he withdrew in obedi- 
ence to the Mandali of the Ezhava communal 
organisation which has now been captured by the 
friends of Sir C. P. Ramaswami Aiyar. Shri M. N- 
Parameswaran Pillai has nearly apologised and 
recovered his sannad to practise law. How do these 
actions touch the demand and the programme and 
the stand of the State Congress ? But besides these 
two gentlemen no prominent leader of the State 
Congress has gone back in any sense. The number 

60 requires close analysis Then there is my 

second statement on the Palai atrocities which 
The Hindu published and a copy of which I 
am enclosing. It was then stated on behalf of the 
Travancore Government that there would be an 
official enquiry and a press communique. It is 
weeks now since this appeared, and no enquiry or 
communique has been heard of. It was a tight corner 
into which the Travancore Government was pushed 
by specific and unchallengeable allegations. They had 
denied everything in their first communique. Then 
when I replied, they said there would be an enquiry 
and a communique. But nothing has happened yet. 

I believe every word of what Shri Rama- 
chandran says. The terrible repression may thin 
the ranks of the State Congress. But even if 
there is one true representative left to hold 
aloft the torch of npn-violent liberty, he will 
be quite enough to multiply himself till every 
Travancorean becomes an apostle of life-giving 
freedom, A friend sent me the other day a 
hon mot of an American President : “ One true 
man of courage represents a majority.” I have 
quoted from memory. But there is no mistake 
about the meaning. Let every member of the 
State Congress take it to heart, and believe that 
nothing is lost if one true man survives the 
repression. As it is I know that there are 
numerous men and women of the State Congress 
who are seasoned enough to stand the most 
rigorous repression that the wit of the resource- 
ful Dewan of Travancore and his advisers can 
devise. Sevagram, 23-7-40 

Issues of Vols. I to VI of Harijan, with certain 
^exceptions, can be had from us for 3 As. per copy 
(including postage). Issues of Vol. VIII will be 
‘had at the published price plus * postage. MANAGER" 


cause’ as the Gita calls it, once more upset his 
man-made plans. He had suggested to the 
Maulana Saheb to call a meeting of the Work- 
ing Committee at Wardha at the earliest, and 
the Maulana Saheb had agreed to have it on 
the 4th inst., but later he changed his mind 
and sent a message over the phone from 
Nainital that, if Gandhiji could at all have it, 
he would like the Working Committee to be 
held at Delhi on the 3rd. Gandhiji felt the 
choice of the venue to be unhappy. New Delhi 
was synonymous with ‘ high politics and an emer- 
gency meeting of the Working Committee held 
there at this juncture would naturally give rise 
to all sorts of unwarranted popular expectations- 
and speculations which it was best in the 
country’s interests to avoid. But the President’s 
orders were orders and must be obeyed. Gandhiji; 
reiterated to himself his favourite line from Tenny- 
son ‘ Theirs is not to reason why ’, and reconciled 
himself to the altered plan unreservedly. 

Sweet Old Memories 

With all its sins of omission and commission 
Delhi to Gandhiji can never cease to be the city 
of the late Hakim Ajmal Khan Saheb, the late* 
Dr, Ansari, and the Ali Brothers who symbolised 
in their persons Hindu-Muslim unity in the hey- 
day of the non-cooperation movement. Before 
leaving for Simla, Zohra Begum Ansari, the late 
Doctor Saheb’s daughter, and her husband Dr. 
Shaukat Ullah Ansari had insisted on Gandhijjf 
being their guest for a day on his return. Gandhiji 
unhesitantly complied with the request, and it 
was to their residence that he motored straight 
from the station. Before leaving Delhi he had, 
too, the privilege of a prolonged visit lasting 
for nearly one hour to Begum Mohamed Ali 
who had been ailing for some time. It was of 
too sacred and personal a character to bear 
detailed description here. It should be enough 
to mention here that it recalled some of the 
sweetest memories of good old times when the 
whole of India stood united as one man in the 
fight for freedom. 

No C. D., No Spinnipg? 

Shri Brijkrishna Chandiwala has organised a 
small spinning club in Delhi. The opening cere- 
mony was performed on the 26th of January last 
by Shrimati Kasturba Gandhi. The rules of the 
club require each member to wear khadi exclu- 
sively and propagate the same, and to contribute 
a monthly quota of 1,000 yards to the club. At 
Shri Brijkrishna’s request Gandhiji bad promised 



JULY 28, 1940 ] 


HARIJA'N 


227 


to give them five minutes, but he actually gave 
them half an hour which he devoted to spin- 
ning himself with the members. One of the 
members asked Gandhiji the question : “ Why 
should we spin now that there is no definite 
civil disobedience in the offing ? Some satya- 
grahis have actually given up spinning since civil 
disobedience has receded into the background.” 
^‘That to me shov/s,” replied Gandhiji, “ that they 
would have made but poor satyagrahis, and it is 
for the best that they have dropped out. I doubt 
if these ‘fair-weather’ customers could be good for 
anything. For good or for ill. we have adopted the 
spinning wheel as the weapon for our non-violent 
struggle. A soldier who will practise his 
weapons only when action is in sight will surely 
come a cropper at the time of the test. A 
satyagrahi soldier always looks and plans far 
ahead of him. If we have faith in the efficacy 
of the weapon we have chosen, we shall never 
give it up or lay it down but keep it always 
Tefurbished and ready. Today our non-violence 
is on its trial. The Working Committee's 
resolution is based on the assumption that the 
country is today not ready for the practice of 
pure ahimsa. They would be but too glad to 
discover that their assumption was wrong and 
revise their decision accordingly. It is for those 
who have a living faith in non-violence to 
prove the same and convert the Working 
Committee to their view instead of catching at 
the first excuse to resile , from their faith. If 
the fiftytwo members who are on the register 
of your club have the right faith in them, 
they will soon multiply into fiftytwo hundred. 
But mere shilly-shallying won’t do. ‘ If the salt 
loseth its savour, wherewith shall it be salted ?’ 

“ I have not a shadow of doubt that 
through the spinning wheel we can develop the 
non-violence of the strong which recks ^no odds 
however overwhelming and knows no defeat. 
Weapons forged out of iron and steel do not 
interest me. They might enable you to scatter 
death over the enemy and to capture a measure 
of the power he today wields over you. But that 
will not leave the masses any the better. They 
will continue to groan under the yoke of the 
powerful and the mighty, I am not interested 
in an order which leaves out the weakest — the 
blind, the halt and the maimed. My Swaraj is 
even for the least in the land. This can come 
only through non-violence. 

“Non-violence of the weak is bad. But 
violence of the impotent — impotent violence — 
is worse. That is w'hat is today vitiating the 
atmosphere. Mere spinning a la mode will not 
purge the atmosphere of this poison.” 

Discipline v. Faith 

Another member of the club remarked that 
they could not pretend to have a faith in the 
spinning wheel which Gandhiji had, but they 
were prepared to spin for discipline, which was 
<^uite honest a stand to take up, Gandhiji, 
^hile admitting that spinning for discipline ‘ had 


value at one time, contended that it was alto- 
gether inadequate to the need of the hour 
today. To create a truly non-violent atmosphere 
in the country spinning with faith was neces- 
sary. Supposing there were riots imperilling the 
lives of thousands of innocent women and 
children and the conflagration threatened to 
spread over the whole country, it would be up 
to those who had true faith in non-violence to 
interpose themselves between the lust-maddened 
rioters and quell their fury by their self-immo- 
lation. Spinning for discipline will not' give 
them that faith.” 

“ Discipline,” he continued, has a place in 
non-violent strategy, but much more is required. 
In a satyagraha army everybody is a soldier and 
a servant. But at a pinch every satyagrahi 
soldier has also to be his own general and 
leader. Mere discipline cannot make for leader- 
ship. The latter [ calls for faith and vision. That 
is why I have said that spinning for discipline, 
whatever else it might be capable of achieving, 
cannot help us to win the satyagraha fight 
which requires the non-violence of the strong.” 

Under Thakkar Bapa’s Wing 

The Harijan Industrial Home at Kingsway, 
nestling under the fostering wing of Thakkar 
Bapa, is another redeeming feature of the Impe- 
rial City, and claimed from Gandhiji two casual 
visits. The second occasion was at the time of 
the evening prayer in which Gandhiji joined. He 
was much impressed by the progress that the 
boys had made in the recitation of the prayer 
verses and their correct pronunciation. At the 
end he addressed them a few words to commend 
to them the practice of regularly congregating 
at the morning and evening prayer. “There can 
be no better cement to weld scattered and 
isolated units into a homogeneous society than 
heart-union through prayer. It purifies us and 
gives us the true strength — the strength that 
comes from purity and high resolve. May God 
bless you with both in an ample measure. ” 

A Pertinacious Questioner 

A little girl asked Gandhiji the question as to 
how satyagraha could avail against raiders from 
the sky who would deal death from above and 
with whom the satyagrahis would not be able 
even to make contact. “By dying non-violently 
rather than submitting,” replied Gandhiji. “But 
who will then live to enjoy freedom?” asked the 
pertinacious little questioner. “ The survivors, 
if there are any,” replied Gandhiji. “ But may 
I put you a counter- question ?” he continued. 
“Who enjoys the freedom when whole divisions 
of armed soldiers rush into a hail-storm of bul- 
lets to be mown down? Why, those who might 
succeed in capturing the citadel by passing over 
their dead bodies. The soldier who fights never 
expects to enjoy the fruits of victory. But in 
the case of non-violence, everybody seems to 
start with the assumption that the non-violciit 
method must be set down as a failure unless he 
himself at least lives to enjoy the success thereof. 



228 


HAEIJAl^ 


[ July 28, 1940 


This is both illogical and invidious. In satyagraha 
niore than in armed warfare, it may be said 
that we find life by losing it.” 

Back to Sevagi'am 

Th-e bulk of the time in Delhi was. of 

course, taken up by me Working Committee s 
deliberations which were both long and arduous. 
We entrained for the journey back to Sevagram 
on the evening of the 7th. Almost the first 
question which Gandhi ji was asked at a wayside 
station was whether the Working Committee had 
given the go-bye to non-violence and whether 
people were now expected to c:;change the 
rifle for satyagraha and offer themselves as tne 
King’s recruits. Gandhiji had gone off to sleep 
when the train made the next considerable halt. 
A swarm of people gathered at the window 
and began to ask, “ Why is not Mahatmaji, 
according to his wont, asking for contributions 
for the Harijans ? ” I told them that he was 
too tired to keep awake at that hour, but he 
expected them just the same to contribute their 
mite to the Harijan cause. A gleam of satisfac- 
tion lit up their faces at the remark, and almost 
to the man they contributed generously to the 
Harijan fund. 

Sevagram, 17-7-40 Pyarelal 

Notes 


about the defence of India. Even if I believed ' 
in armed defence. I should never v/ant a foreign i 
general to lead my army. I ina:?* have foreign ; 
instructors but nor officers. If, therefore, Dr. * 
Eddy secs these lines, and instead of collecting 
himself persists in his statement, I can only say y 
I must have been absent-minded when I made 1, 
the statement imputed to me. I cannot say I 
must have been drunk, because I do not drink. : 

Sevagram, 16-7-40 M. K. G. 

Our Textile Wants 

I summarise the following from an article of 
Shri Vinoha in the Marathi Gram-Seva-Vniia of 
Wardba : ! 


“ Ten or twelve years ago* India consumed U : 
yards of cloth per head. Now it is reckoned at 16 | 
or 17. A mocleiatc standard demands the consumpticn I 
to be raised to 20. Pt. Jawaharlal would like to ’ 
raise it to 30. ' 


f 


It is necesfaty to consider this question from a 
different standpoint. A rise from 14 to 16 does not j 
necessarily mean that the consumer is now more I 
‘cloth-ful’ than belore. Per clotli-fuincss does not I 
depend upon the total length of cloth used in the I 
year, but upon the number of forms in which it j 
has been used simultaneously. Thus, for instance, if j 
A has used ore pair of geed stout dhotis (10 ^ards) | 
during the year, while B has used two pairs 
( 20 yards ) of less durable ones, apparently B’s 
consumption is twice , that of A. But if both of 
them have used only one pair at a time, it has not 
made B more * cloth-ful ’ than A. 


Impossible 

Miss Muriel Lester writes : 

“See how you are misquoted by Sherwood Eddy 
in his latest book 1 Saw God Do It, I have been 


So it is necessary to mention not only how 
much yardage is consumed per head per annum, but 
also of what durability, and in fixing the standard 
of rainimum textile want, both the dimensions should 
be mentioned, i. e. 15 yards of 12 months’ durability. 


asked to send you this cutting from it so that you 
may reply to it if you want to. Here is the extract: 

*We have maintained throughout this chapter that 
some are called to be conscientious objectors as abso- 
lute pacifists to challenge the whole war system, but 
that the majority will feel it to be their duty forci- 
bly to defend their country when it is attacked or 
its vital interests are threatened. Gandhi himself, 
the most effective and the greatest living pacifist, is 
not an absolutist but a relativist, a realist and, to 
a large degree, a practical statesman. He is effec- 
tively using non-violent resistance to achieve the 
independence of India, but he recognizes that a 
modern State cannot be maintained without both a 
police force and an army. When the writer asked 
him personally how a divided Indian army could be 
commanded by a Moslem, a Hindu, or a Sikh, he 
told me they could first ask an American or some 
foreign neutral to lead their army. But Gandhi 
pacifists and Indian nationalists would defend their 
country if attacked by Japan or Soviet Russia or 
any other foreign power by the full force of their 
army* So, I believe, should our own country.” 

I can only say that I have no recollection of 
my having ever made such a statement. I know 
Dr. Sherwood Eddy well. I remember too his 
visit. The astounding statement put into my 
mouth belies all I have ever written or said 


To this must also be added the important infor- 
mation whether the increase in consumption has 
reached the poorest. For, meie increase of the 
average does not signify much. If, in a village of 
500 souls, there is a very rich family of ten which 
has increased its textile consumption from 500 yards 
to 2,500 3 ’ards per year, the average of the village 
will show a very great advance. But only ten would 
have got the advantage of the increase. Between the 
Nizam and the Gaekwar at the one end and the 
Adibasi and the Harijan at the other, the hiatus is 
so great that the figures cf i>cr ca’Pita income, con- 
sumption etc. hardly give any picture of the reality- 
Therefore reality demands a knowledge of how the 
naked fare. This is clone by the khadi method.” 

K. G. Mashruwala 


CONTENTS Page 

Servants of India Society ... M. K. Gandhi 217 


Question Box 
Open Letter 
Not Quite So Bad 
A Worthy Educational 
Effort 

Two Just Complaints 

Travancore 

The Journey Back 

Notes: 

Impossible 

Our Textile Wants 


... M. K. Gandhi 217 
... R, T. Templin 220 
... M. K. Gandhi 222 

... M. K. Gandhi 222 

... M. K. Gandhi 223 

... M. K. Gandhi 225 

... Pyarelal 226 

... M. K. G. 228 

... K. G. M. 223 


"-Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4 
Subscription Ratos — iNLAim : One year, Rs. 4; six months, Rs. 2-8. FOREIGN : One year, Rs. 5-8 or 8 sh. or 2 8. 



Reg. No. B 3092 



** 



Editor : MAHADEV DESAl 


VoL. VIII, No. 26 ] POONA — SUNDAY, AUGUST 11, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


WHAT OF THE “WEAK MAJOEITY”? 

( By M, K- Gandhi ) 

Prof. Timur, of Islamia College, Peshawar, writes; 

“ The world is indebted to you for revealing to it 
in these hard times the hidden values of non-vio- 
lence. The experiment which you want to make of 
defending India against foreign aggression without 
the use of arms would be the boldest moral experi- 
ment of all times. There are two possible results 
of such a course. Either the conscience of the 
invaders may be awakened by the love of the in- 
vaded and they may repent of their sin. Or the 
proud invaders may take non-violence as a sign of 
physical weakness and degeneration and may think 
it right to subjugate, rule over, and exploit, a weak 
people. This is the doctrine of Nietzsche which is 
followed in practice by Hitler. A great loss is 
involved in such conquest of the physically weak by 
the physically strong, A few strong-willed members 
of the conquered nation may refuse to own allegiance 
to the conquerors, but the large majority always 
submits and adopts servile manners to preserve its 
existence. Among them may be found great scientists, 
philosophers and artists. Genius and moral strength 
are not always combined in the same man. The 
strong man does not need armies to defend his 
liberty. Pie sacrifices his body to preserve his soul. 
Such men are, however, few and far between. It 
is the weak majority which needs protection. The 
question is how to protect it by non-violent methods. 
This is the real difficulty which every patriot feels 
when he thinks of adopting non-violence for the 
defence of his country. 

I hope you would be kind enough to throw light 
on this point in an early issue of Harijan'^ 

The weak majority no doubt needs protection. 
If all were soldiers either of ahimsa or himsa, 
no such questions as call for discussion in these 
columns would arise. There is always a weak 
majority that would want protection against man’s 
mischief. The orthodox method we know. Nazism 
is its logical outcome. It is an answer to a 
definite want. A terrible wrong wantonly per- 
petrated against a whole nation cried out for 
redress. And Hitler arose to avenge it. What- 
ever the ultimate fortune of the war, Germany 
will not be humiliated again. Humanity will not 
stand a second outrage. But in seeking to avenge 
the wrong by the wrong method of violence 
brought to very near perfection. Hitler has 
brutalised not only Germans but a large part of 
humanity. The end of it we have not yet 
reached. For Britain, so long as she holds to 


the orthodox method, has to copy the Nazi 
methods if she is to put up a successful defence* 
Thus the logical outcome of the violent method 
seems to be increasingly to brutalise man includ- 
ing “the weak majority”. For it has to give its 
defenders the required measure of co-operation. 

Now imagine the same majority defended after 
the method of non-violence. As it admits of 
no grossness, no fraud, no malice, it must raise 
the moral tone of the defenders. Hence there 
will be a corresponding rise in the moral tone of 
the “ weak majority” to be defended. No doubt 
there- will be difference in degree, but not in kind. 

But the snag comes in when we consider the 
ways and means of working the non-violent 
method. In working the other, is no 

difficulty in getting the human material. There- 
fore that way seems easy. In getting non- 
violent defenders, we have to pick and choose. 
Money cannot buy them. The non-violent pro- 
cess is wholly different from the one commonly 
known. I can only say that my own experi- 
ence in organising non-violent action for half a 
century fills me with hope for the future. It 
has succeeded in a marked measure in protecting 
the “ weak majority ”. But half a century is 
nothing in discovering the hidden possibilities 
of this force and working them out. Those, 
therefore, like the correspondent who are attract- 
ed to non-violence, should, according to their 
ability and opportunity, join the experiment. It 
has entered upon a most interesting, though at 
the same time a most difficult", stage. I am my- 
self sailing on uncharted waters. I have to take 
soundings every half-hour. The difficulty only 
braces me for the struggle. Sevagram, 6-8-40 

Hopeful 

One reads the following in the daily press: 

“ A call for passive resistance by French men and 
women was made by General De Gaulle in a broad- 
cast last night. He urged all free Frenchmen in 
France not to help in the war against Britain.” 

I know that this is not a case of conver- 
sion. The gallant general will deal destruction 
to the ‘enemy’ to the best of his ability when- 
ever he is able to. Nor can this passive resist- 
ance be called non-violent by any stretch of 
meaning. I simply cite General De Gaulle’s 
advice to his countrymen to show that the 
world is irresistibly and unconsciously being 
drawn towards non-violent action. 

Sevagram, 5-8-40 


M. K. a 



242 


HARIJAN 


THE BISWA AFFAIR 

C By M. K, Gandhi ) 

Though late in the day I must redeem my 
promise to give my opinion on this unfortunate 
case. I have letters containing angry protests 
against the five Congress Ministers in C. P., 
chiefly the Prime Minister. I have carefully read 
both the judgments, that of the learned Chief 
Justice and of the concurring Judge. There is 
no doubt whatsoever that there has been a gross 
miscarriage of justice due to the police bungl- 
ing. I hold Pandit Shukla and his fellow-minis- 
ters to be wholly free from blame. These are 
the remarks of the Chief Justice about Pandit 
Shukla : “ In the course of the debate the then 
Prime Minister himself did not hesitate to use 
the word ‘ murder ’ and to indicate that this 
was not a case of riot but a carefully planned 
murder ruthlessly carried out.” I can find nothing 
objectionable in this statement. He made use 
of the information then in his possession. He 
might have used the orthodox prefix ‘ alleged ’ 
in connection with ‘ murder ’ *and used guarded 
language. But there is nothing in his statement 
to justify the wrath poured upon his head. 
The judges’ finding, however, is that there was 
a murder and that it was worthy of condemna- 
tion. Their natural regret was that because of 
want of reliable evidence the crime had to go 
unpunished. I have not, therefore, been able to 
understand, much less to appreciate, the rejoicing 
over what is a manifest failure pf justice. So 
far as the discharge of the prisoners was con- 
cerned, it was a matter for common, not com- 
munal, rejoicing that no man suffered unless there 
was conclusive evidence. All must accept the un- 
equivocal judgment of the final court of appeal. 
But there should have been common regret too 
that there was failure of justice. It cannot be 
to the advantage of any community that a 
murderer should be screened. Panditji has written 
a long letter to the Maulana Saheb about the 
affair. I have seen -the letter. I do not know 
what the Maulana Saheb has said on the letter, 
I hold it to be quite convincing. I take from 
the letter the following Muslim testimony 
quoted by him : 

As Khan Saheb Abdul Rahman stated on the floor 
of the House, I ‘in spite of governmental duties and 
ill-health went to the place.’ I was accompanied by as 
many Muslim M. L. A.s as Hindu M. L. A.s of Berar. 
After visiting Biswa I proceeded to Khamgaon. The 
Muslim M. L. A.s who were still with me invited 
•me to visit the Muslim high school at Khamgaon, 
and I took tea with them. When I addressed a 
public meeting of Hindus and Muslims I was pub- 
licly questioned about my having visited the school 
and taken tea there so soon after the murder of 
Jugdeorao. In reply I stated publicly that as Con- 
gress Premier I was the Premier of all the com- 
munities, and that I would accept as many times 
the invitation of the Muslims as it was extended to 
me. I appealed to both the communities to restore 
harmony and goodwill. It was in reference to this 


[ August ll, 1940 

public statement of mine that Khan Saheb Abdul 
Rahman said in the Assembly : ' I was so pleased 
to hear the Hon’bie Premier in Khamgaon. I only 
wish my friends had only followed him in the noble 
sentiments he has expressed and the lead he has 
given.’ ” 

I hope that my opinion will not revive the 
dying embers of an unfortunate controversy 
which should never have arisen. If the two 
communities must quarrel, is it not possible to 
fight fair ? Charges without foundation can but 
add to the existing bitterness. 

Sevagram, 6-8-40 

DRAWBACKS OF NON-VIOLENCE 

( By K. G. Masluiiwala ) 

The other day 1 was talking with a distin- 
guished friend about the non-violent bravery dis- 
played by men and women satyagrahis in Bardoli, 
Dharasana, Bombay and other places during the 
no rent and civil disobedience campaigns. “ It is 
all right, ” he said, “ when we speak to foreign- 
ers or our people. But I do not regard this 
heroism as of much value. You have really no 
idea of the substance of which true bravery is 
made. Just picture to your mind, if you can, a 
dozen enemy ’planes hovering over Dunkirk. Sud- 
denly you see an English youth dashing in their 
midst alone from the other side of the Channel 
with his ’plane and trying to brings down as 
many of them as possible. Practically speaking, 
he has not the least chance of returning alive. 
He has never hoped to. The same picture holds 
true of the adventure of a submariner or a 
parachutist. Is there any common ground between 
this bravery and that of your lathi-charge rcsist- 
ers? And, even there, we never had had to 
taste the worst kind of torture which militarism 
can inflict. All that we have been able to 
achieve by our non-violent campaigns is to carry 
our Brahman, Bania and Kisan lads just one 
step forward from their age-long timidity. If 
we had been Kshatriyas, and had, like Ashoka, 
grown from violence to non-violence, there would 
have been something to be proud of. But the 
non-violence of our brand is merely the result 
of our incapacity to inflict violence, I doubt if 
we shall adhere to it after we have tasted the 
strong wine of violence.” 

The non-violence of Gandhiji himself has been 
questioned by some on similar grounds. In the 
birth-day volume on Mahatma Gandhi, compiled 
last year by Sir S. Radhakrishnan, Mr. Edward 
Thompson writes : 

“He is a Gujarati, one of a race that is un- 
warlike and has been often overrun and pillaged, 
especially by the Marathas. His origins are rarely naeto- 
tioned in the West, which does not understand their 
significance, but they are rarely forgotten in India- 
Pie has laid himself open to the retort (and it is 
part o£ his moral courage that he is aware of this, 
and does not let himself be deflected by awareness) 
.that his emphasis on ahimsa, ‘non-violence’, is a 
badge of his unmartial origins. The Marathas, I think, 
rarely forget that they are Marathas, and that he is 



AUGUST 11, 1940 ] HAEIJAl^ 243 


a Gujarati; among them his vogue has been fitful 
and wavering. It has been the same with the 
Rajputs, another warlike nation. *To me, as a Rajput,' 
said a Central Indian Prince to mcj ‘ the doctrine 
of aliimsa is inconceivable! It is a Rajput's duty 
to kill and to be warlike!” 

This is not a new argument. It has been put 
forth again and again, ever since Gandhiji appear- 
ed on the Congress platform. Only a few 
days ago Dr. R. P. Paranjapye is reported in the 
press to have said that the spirit of ahimsa 
can never be accepted by Maharashtra. And so 
I have often asked this question to myself: Is 
the non-violence, which Gandhiji is teaching and 
which appeals to people of my temperament, as 
if instinctively, the indication of my congenital 
Bania-timidity, further nourished by the teachings 
of Vaishnavism or Jainism ? Or is it the result 
of the grov7th of higher virtues such as love, 
reverence for life, compassion, forbearance, etc. ? 
And has not the non-violent training produced 
in me some deficiency of character also ? 

After several years thinking, I have come to 
the following conclusion: 

I must unhesitatingly admit that pacifism or 
dislike of bloodshed is a hereditary instinct in 
me, further nurtured by later training. It is 
difficult to say how many generations old it 
is. Just as I never had any necessity to resist 
the temptation to drink or to eat meat, so also 
I did not have personally to pass through the 
experiences of an Asboka, or to put a great 
strain upon my intellect or instinct to accept 
the philosophy of non-violence. No doubt, 
those amongst my predecessors who, centuries 
ago, relinquished a violent mode of eating and 
living, when they became converts to Buddhism, 
Jainism or Vaishnavism, deliberately passed from 
violence to non-violence. There must have been 
a transition stage before the later generations 
settled down to the non-violent mode to 
which T was born. 

I consider it my good luck that I have inherited 
non-violence. But that should make me fitter 
for taking my non-violence a stage further. 
I need not go through the experiences of my 
forefathers. My argument has no value for 
those who consider that violence and not 
non-violence is the law of our being. 

I must therefore find out how I could add 
to the riches I have inherited. And this is what 
Gandhiji is doing for all of us. He is exploring 
the hidden possibilities of non-violence. Here I 
want to clear up the fallacy in my friend’s argu- 
ment. Bravery has a double meaning. The bravery 
of the non-violent is itself non-violent. It will 
never be called upon to compete with the bravery 
of the young airman who, certain of his own death, 
dashes into the enemy planes to destroy them. 
The motive prompting the violent man is wholly 
different from that of the votary of non-violence. 
I hold that the imaginary English airman will 
never be able to show the cool courage of the 
Dharasana young men. He will be ashamed of 
facing the charge of the men behind the fence 


when he can make short work of them and 
take possession of the salt works. Similarly the 
non-violent man Vv’ill feel ashamed to intoxicate 
himself with the lust for the imagined enemy’s 
blood and to develop his recklessness. It is a 
misnomer to call it bravery. 

Than is not to say that the non-violent man 
of today has nothing more to learn in the way 
of bravery. He has to learn the art of facing 
bullets without a rremble and without any anger 
against the wrong-doer. I say again that this 
bravery is any day superior to any known to 
the world except of course that shown by the 
non-violent martyrs of old. 

Of course it is possible, nay it is highly 
probable, that a large number of people accept- 
ed the creed of non-violence with only a partial 
understanding of it. This is not a matter of 
surprise. It is possible that a future teacher of 
non-violence will say the same about what we 
are attempting now. To a certain extent, the 
principle of non-violence is founded on Respect 
for life ” and “ Do unto others as you would 
have others to do unto you.” Both taken 
together mean that the respect for another’s 
life is founded on respect for one’s own. So, 
respect for one’s own life grew along with 
respect for another’s life. Consequently, instinc- 
tively life came to be so organised by the 
votary of non-violence that he kept all danger 
to his own life at a safe distance. And the 
word “ life ” became restricted to the body. In 
other words, “ respect for life ” became equiva- 
lent to ** safety first of the body Regard 
for what we know as self-respect fell at a 
discount. It did not matter if one was abused, 
insulted, slapped, at times robbed, if on the whole 
he was allowed to lead a life of some safety and, 
if possible, also of affluence. And, of course, trade 
and commerce provided plenty of opportunity 
for that. All this has become a part of the 
connotation of the word “ bania 

If non-violence is to be restored to its unique 
status amongst virtues, it must be refined of im- 
purities. To speak in educational technology, pro- 
jects should be discovered in our training, which 
will develop boldness in man, consistently with 
non-violence. And non-violence must not mean 
mere respect for another’s life as one respects 
one’s own, but it must mean such respect at 
the risk of one’s own; and that the respect for 
one’s own life means respect for one's own 
honour and not body. So that the command- 
ment means — you should respect another’s life 
and honour as and because you respect your own. 


Some Books by 

Gandhiji 

Price 

Postage 

Satyagraha in South Africa 

Rs. 4 8. 

0 

8 

My Early Life 

1 0 

0 

2 

Speeches and Writings 

4 0 

0 

9 

Cent Per Cent Swadeshi 

1 8 

0 

5 

Hind Swaraj 

0 4 

0 

2 

From Yeravda Mandir 
Self-Restraint v. Self-Indulgence 

0 2 

0 

1 

Part II 

Aavilable at Harijan office - 

1 0 
- Poona 4 

0 

3 



244 


HARIJAN 



Aug. 11 1940 I 


IS NON-VIOLENCE IMPOSSIBLE? 

( By M, K. Gandhi ) 

One may admit that in theory non-violence is an 
infallible weapon, and that no power on earth can 
be a match for the man who has achieved non- 
violence to the fullest extent. But is this possible ? 
There may be a rare yopfi who can tame wild 
beasts like lions and tigers and render them meek 
as lambs, but the average man must resort to a 
rifle or similar weapon to protect himself against 
such beasts. You with your wonderful power may 
convert others by the sheer force of your thought, 
but the average man has to have recourse to worldly 
remedies like a law court, pleaders and so on. 
Even in the dim and distant past we rarely hear 
of men who practised ahimsa in daily affairs. Lord 
Buddha tried for a time to lead people along the 
path of ahimsa, but what happened after him ? 
Society went back to its old ways, forgetting Buddha’s 
teaching. The past, therefore, offers little promise, 
for the future, of society going along the lines 
of ahimsa any more than it has done before, and 
our sages, therefore, must have wisely left the world 
and resorted to the forest for practising truth 
and non-violence. You may inspire a few persons to 
study ahimsa, but society as a whole is not likely to 
take to it. The same argument applies to India as 
a nation. She must needs seek means other than 
those of ahimsa in order to win her liberty. It is 
idle to expect an infant learning his primer to under- 
stand a book like Tilak’s Gita. Even so is it idle 
to expect people steeped in worldly pleasures to 
understand the infallibility of ahimsa. Besides ahimsa 
is the final goal, the attainment of which requires 
much greater preparation than is required in order 
to obtain a degree in medicine or engineering. We 
shall have to have numerous colleges and universities 
for the teaching of the science and art of truth and 
non*violence. Today society directs its energies to 
creating new wants and satisfying them. How do 
you expect it to turn those energies in the direction 
of researches in ahimsa?”- 

The doubts and difficulties raised by this cor- 
respondent occur to others also, and I have on 
various occasions tried to solve them too. But 
when the Working Committee of the Congress 
has been instrumental in making of ahimsa 
a live issue, it seems necessary to deal with 
these doubts and difficulties at some length. 

The correspondent doubts in substance the 
universal application of ahimsa, and asserts that 
society has made little progress towards it. 
Teachers like Buddha arose and made some eflfort 
with some little success perhaps in their life- 
time, but society is just where it was in spite 
of them. Ahimsa may be good enough to be 
the duty of an individual; for society it is good 


[ AUGUST 11, 1940 


for nothing, and India too will have to take 
to violence for her freedom. 

The argument is, I think, fundamentally wrong. 
The last statement is incorrect inasmuch as the 
Congress has adhered to non-violence as the 
means for the attainment of Swaraj. It has 
indeed gone a step further. The question having 
been raised as to whether non-violence continues 
to be the weapon against all internal disturbances, 
the A. I. C. C. clearly gave the answer in the 
afl&rmative. It is only for protection against out- 
side aggression that the Congress has maintained 
that it would be necessary to have an army. 
And then even on this matter there was a con- 
siderable body of the members of the A. I. C. C. 
who voted against the resolution. This dissent 
has got to be reckoned with when the question 
voted upon is one of principle. The Congress 
policy must always be decided by a majority 
vote, but it does not cancel the minority vote. 
It stands. Where there is no principle involved 
and there is a programme to be carried out, the 
minority has got to follow the majority. But 
where there is a principle involved, the dissent 
stands, and it is bound to express itself in 
practice when the occasion arises. That means 
that ahimsa for all occasions and all purposes 
has been recognised by a society, however small 
it may be, and that ahimsa as a remedy to be 
used by society has made fair strides. Whether 
it will make further strides or no is a diflferent 
matter. The Working Committee’s resolution, 
therefore, fails to lend any support to the corres- 
pondent’s doubts. On the contrary it should in 
a certain degree dispel them. 

Now for the argument that I am but a rare 
individual, and that what little society has done 
in the matter of ahimsa is due to my influence, 
and that it is sure to disappear with me. This 
is not right. The Congress has a number of 
leaders who can think for themselves. The 

Maulana is a great thinker of keen intellect 
and vast reading. Few can equal him in his 
Arabic and Persian scholarship. Experience has 
taught him that ahimsa alone can make India 
free. It was he who insisted on the resolution 
accepting ahimsa as a weapon against internal 
disturbances. Pandit Jawaharlal is not a man to 
stand in awe of anyone. His study of history 
and contemporary events is second to none. It 
is after mature thought that he has accepted 

ahimsa as a means for the attainment of Swaraj. 
It is true that he has said that he would not 
hesitate to accept Swaraj if non-violence failed 
and it could be won by means of violence. But 
that is not relevant to the present issue. There 
are not a few other big names in the Congress 
who believe in ahimsa as the only weapon at 
least for the attainment of Swaraj. To think 
that all of them will give up the way of 

ahimsa as soon as I am gone, is to insult them 

and to insult human nature. We muse believe 
that everyone can think for himself. Mutual 
respect to that extent is essential for progress. 
By crediting our companions with independent 



AUGUST 11, 1940 ] 


HAEIJAN 


245 


judgment we strengthen them and make it easy 
for them to be independent-minded even if 
they are proved to be weak. 

I hope neither the correspondent nor anyone 
else believes that the Congress or many Con- 
gress leaders have bidden good-bye to ahimsa. 
To the limited extent that I have pointed out 
faith in ahimsa has been reiterated and made 
clear beyond any doubt by the Congress. I 
agree that the limit laid down by the Congress 
considerably narrows down the sphere of ahimsa 
and dims its splendour. But the limited ahimsa 
of the Congress is good enough for the purpose 
of our present argument. For I am trying to 
make out that the field of ahimsa is widening, 
and the limited acceptance of ahimsa by the 
Congress sufficiently supports my position. 

If we turn our eyes to the time of which 
history has any record down to our own time, 
we shall find that man has been steadily pro- 
gressing towards ahimsa. Our remote ancestors 
were cannibals Then came a time when they 
were fed up with cannibalism and they began to 
live on chase. Next came a stage when man 
was ashamed of leading the life of a wandering 
hunter. He therefore took to agriculture and 
depended principally on mother earth for his 
food. Thus from being a nomad he settled down 
to civilised stable life, founded villages and 
towns, and from member of a family he becam e 
member of a community and a nation. All these 
are signs of progressive ahimsa and diminishing 
himsa. Had it been otherwise, the human species 
should have been extinct by now, even as many 
•of the lower species have disappeared. 

Prophets and avatars have also tiught the 
lesson of ahimsa more or less. Not on? of them 
has professed to teach himsa. And how should 
it be otherwise ? Himsa does not need to be 
taught. Man as animal is violent, but as Spirit 
is non-violent. The moment he awakes to the 
Spirit within he cannot remain violent. Either 
he progresses towards ahimsa or rushes to his 
doom. That is why the prophets and avatars 
have taught the lessons of truth, harinony , 
brotherhood, justice, etc. — all attributes of 
ahimsa. 

And yet violence seems to persist, even to 
the extent of thinking people like the corres- 
pondent regarding it as the final weapon. 
But as I have shown history and experience 
.are against him. 

If we believe that mankind has steadily pro- 
gressed toward^ ahimsa, it follows that it has 
to progress towards it still further. Nothing 
in this world is static, everything is kinetic. If 
there is no progression, then there is inevit- 
able retrogression. No one can remain without 
the eternal cycle, unless it be God Himself. 

The present war is the saturation point in 
violence. It spells to my mind also its doom. 
Daily I have testimony of the fact that ahimsa 
was never before appreciated by mankind as it 
is today. All the testimony from the West that 


I continue to receive points in the same direc- 
tion. The Congress has pledged itself to ahimsa 
however limited. I invite the correspondent and 
doubters like him to shed their doubts and 
plunge confidently into the sacred sacrificial Fire 
of ahimsa. Then I have little doubt that the 
Congress wfill retrace its step. “ Ic is always 
v/illin’.” Well has Pritam, our poet, sung: 
Happiest are those that plunge in the Fire 
The lookers-on are all but scorched by flames, 

Sevagram, 5-8-40 

(Translated from Gujarati) 

THE TEST OF NON-VIOLENCE 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Those who regard themselves as out and out 
votaries of non-violence and believe the step 
taken by Rajaji and others to be wrong, have 
to pass through a severe test. I have expressed 
my opinion in the clearest possible language. I 
believe that Rajaji has gone off the track. He 
believes that I have. The future alone will 
decide who is right. 

But as I have not the slightest doubt about 
the correctness of my position, I have not hesi- 
tated to advise those who think with me to 
leave the Congress. But this does not mean 
that they have to do so forthwith. It is enough 
if they ' are ready to retire when I decide upon 
the date. Before the actual step is taken, we 
shall have to make sure of certain things. Their 
retirement must be such as to cause no shock 
to fellow Congressmen. If these do not appre- 
ciate the step, I have to explain it to them 
patiently, and to convince them that it is in 
the interest of the Congress that it should be 
taken. It is common cause between them and 
us that it would be an ideal thing if wc could 
protect the country against foreign aggression by 
non-violence. It is therefore desirable that there 
should be a group of people pledged to devote 
their lives to proving the efficacy of non-vio- 
lence, If the existence of such a group is good 
for the country, it is apparent that they should 
remain outside the Congress, and that the 
Congress should not only tolerate them but 
welcome them, render them as much help as 
possible, and regard them as their own. That 
means that far from there being any estrange- 
ment or misunderstanding between the Congress 
and this group, their relations should, if 
possible, be sweeter than before. 

To bring about this happy consummation, the 
out and out votaries of non-violence should not 
even mentally find fault with their erstwhile 
comrades. They may not remind them of their 
previous statements. It is their duty to revise 
their statements if they feel that they were 
erroneous, and it is possible that they may not 
read in them the same implications as others 
discover in them. The best thing, therefore, is 
to bear joyously with one another. This mutual 
tolerance presupposes their choosing different 
spheres of* action and working in co-operation 
wherever possible. 



246 


HARIJAN 


It will be some time before we can create such 
an atmosphere, but we are sure to succeed 
if we make a serious endeavour in this direction. 
In the meanwhile let everyone occupy himself 
with the constructive activities I have suggested, 
and make steady progress therein. One or more 
leaders in each province should prepare a list 
of the seceders. I intend to convene a meeting 
of the principal seceders at the proper time. 
But I vr^^ill not take a single step without mature 
deliberation. 

Sevagram, 5-8-40 

{Translated from Gujarati ) 

THE LIVE ISSUE 

Wait, Watch, and Pray 

A few members of the A. I. C. C. who are 
out and out believers in non-violence visited 
Sevagram the other day. Some of them had 
remained neutral on the Delhi resolution, some 
had opposed it. What was the right attitude? 
What were they to do next ? What was the 
programme before them ? Should they not retire 
forthwith ? These and other questions were 
troubling them, and they did not know what 
to do. In response Gandhiji began to do 
some loud thinking. 

" Wait, watch, and pray,” said he, and re- 
mained silent for a while. Then he said; “ You 
must carefully follow what I am writing from 
week to week. You must be absolutely sure 
that you are out and out believers in non- 
violence. Can your ahimsa stand the test ? 
Rehearse to yourselves what you would do in 
case of a riot. Those who have diflFered from 
us are no cowards. If they say that they cannot 
do without an army and police, they deserve 
a respectful hearing. I myself do not know 
what I should do in a difficult situation. You 
know I have capitulated on the question of 
the desirability of maintaining a police force. 
But what I can say is that I shall hope to 
behave non-violently, should the occasion arise. 
I should not like to die before my death, I do 
not want to prepare India for military defence 
from today. We should never forget that we 
are not the whole of India. The Congress is 
without doubt a powerful organisation, but the 
Congress is not the whole of India, The 
Congress may not have an army, but those who 
do not believe in non-violence will. And if the 
Congress too surrenders, there is no one to 
represent the no-army mentality. This was my 
argument in a nutshell. But I failed to carry 
conviction. Therefore I must find fault not with 
my comrades but with myself. There must be 
some weakness in my argument, and so I must 
prepare myself to carry conviction to those 
who difier from me. ” 

“But,” he added, I have digressed. What 
you and I have to do is to show our ahimsa 
when there is rioting or similar disturbance. If 
every one of us, wherever he is, begins doing sd 
there will come into being a non-violent army. 


[ August 11, 1940 

Even the limited non-violence that all are 
subscribing to would not have come into being 
if we had seen no successful demonstrations 
of it. So we have to bold on to our faith, even 
if when the time comes v/e may fail. There is 
no use arguing with the comrades who have 
differed from us, I hope only temporarily. The 
question is one of demonstrating the truth in 
us, and we won’t do it, unless we show that 
we have no malice, no bitterness, no inclination 
to find faults. We have to prepare ourselves 
for the terrible ordeal. The testing time may 
come sooner than we imagine. I am sailing on 
an uncharted sea. I have no cut and dried pro- 
gramme, and I am brooding from moment to 
moment. In the meanwhile follow my weekly 
writings and carry out the constructive pro- 
gramme. The time for resignation is not yet. 
We must not be misunderstood,” 

“ But, ” said a worker, “ you have asked us to 
retire immediately, and all of us are ready.” 

“Your readiness is good, and it is enough for 
me for the time being. If you conscientiously 
voted against the Delhi resolution, you did 
nothing wrong; if you remained neutral, you did 
nothing wrong. You would have been wrong if 
you had joined hands with those who sought 
to defeat the resolution on any but the ground 
of non-violence. For having given your vote on 
the Wardha resolution and having lost, you 
could not vote against the Delhi resolution 
which was the natural corollary of the Wardha 
resolution. ” 

“ But it was by accident that those who voted 
against the Delhi resolution, did so. ” 

“ No, it was by design. They are no believ- 
ers in non-violence to the extent you are, but 
they wanted to defeat the resolution for the 
sake of their policy. ” 

“ But then how long are wc to remain in the 
Congress ? ” 

“ I cannot give a definite answer. I shall have 
a talk with the Maulana. We must not rush 
the Maulana and the Working Committee. If 
they find that the out and out non-violence 
people were the sustaining part of the Congress 
organisation, they will retrace their step.” 

“ Then how long shall we wait ? ” 

“ Until I give you the word. ” 

“ But. “ said one of them, “ I disliked the 
Wardha resolution and wanted to resign at once.” 

“ You might have done so. Then you would 
have been within your rights. But to do so 
now might savour of violence .and self-right- 
eousness. You must remember that I waited for 
more than a year before taking the final step, 
and then too I took it with the full approval 
of the friends of the Working Committee.” ’ 
Power Politics or Swaraj Politics? 

The non-violence issue has drawn out many a 
quiet worker from his shell. Shri Vinoba, who was. 
immersed in his experiments on the takli and 
organising standard wage spinning, and latterly 
in his study of Arabic and the Quran to qualify- 



247 


AUGUST 11, 1940 ] HAEIJAF 


liimself better for Hinda-Muslim unicy* v/rites 
legularly. He has written a long article full of 
trenchant reasoning under the above-mentioned 
caption. Some of his arguments may be 
summarised here ; 

“The whole trouble arises out of the fact that we 
have not yet won Swaraj. But for the ■ attainment 
of Swaraj even the Working Committee is 
pledged to non-violence. Now how can complete 
Swaraj be won without complete non-violence, i. e. 
without organising the masses in a completely non- 
violent way ? And if the masses are completely 
non-violently organised, where remains the bugbear 
of anarchy and internal disturbance? We are thus 
begging the whole question.” 

And then: 

“Once you are caught in the war-machine there 
is no getting out of it, there is no question of 

justice or injustice, wrong or right. You resent to- 
day the closing by the British of the Burma road 
to Chinese traffic at the dictation of Japan. After 
you are caught in the machine, you will have to 
swallow many camels like that. For everything will 
depend on whether you can militarily resist an 
opponent or not. Again India promising to help for 
defence only has no meaning. Does defence mean 
internal defence ? By no means. The frontiers of 

India are the African Coast, the Mediterranean and 
so on, and so there is no limit to your being 

involved in the war. Which means that you will 
throw away capital built after 20 years’ labour 
without a thought. In doing so you will create a 
multitude of enemies, for all the enemies of England 
become ipso Jacto our enemies. Now all this we 
will do if we are promised Swaraj. When we come 
to think of it, will it be in' anything but the name ? 
For no sooner than the declaration of Swaraj is 
made you will have mortgaged it to the British. 

For you cannot have the military training to fight 
•all the enemies you will have created without being 
under the eternal military tutelage of Britain. 

The trouble is that we want Swaraj withoui any 
sacrifice. We want it to drop into our hands. We 
have to labour patiently, silently, non-violently* for 
It, and when it comes it will come as inevitably as 
the dawn of day. The sun rises in the east but 
fioods the remotest corners of the west with his 
light and heat. Even so when Swaraj of our own 
making comes it will enable the whole world to 
find out the means of its freedom.” 

“ But,” some people object, “we may in course 
of time acquire the capacity of non-violent 
administration. But by the time we are ready, 
others will get into power and we shall be back 
numbers.” Vinoba s reply to them is : 

“ Gandhiji has already given the answer. Those 
who will get into power will also be our brethren. 
I would add this that our concern is with Swaraj- 
politics and not power-politics. I do not mind our 
having to be back numbers, our being consigned to 
oblivion. I should be content if God does not 
'Consign us to illusion and delusion. We want 
Swarajya, not any rajya." 

Sevagram, 7-^40 M. D. 


SPINNIJ^G ANNIYERSAPY 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Shri Narandas Gandhi v/rites from Rajkot as 
follows about the Spinning Anniversary: 

“The 71 days’ programme for the forthcoming 
anniversary was commenced on the morning of 20th 
July with prayers and the song of the ‘ True 
Vaishnava'. Spinning is in full swing. Some begin 
from 4 A. M. Amritlal gets up at 3-30 A. M. and 
begins spinning Ixom 4 A. M., and by 3-30 F. M.. with 
a break for breakfast and lunch spins nearly 6,000 
yards in 11 hours. After this he learns music, has 
his walk and rest. He has resolved to spin 400.000 
yards in 71 days. We have the evening prayer at 
6-30. About 75 people attend. Tho following figures 


of collections for Daridranarayan made 

on the last 

five birthdays may be of interest : 



Collections 

Expenses 


( In contributions coins 


Rs. of Copper, Nickle or 

Rs. 


Silver ) coins 


1935 

2555—3—3 

66 

43—0—0 

1936 

7348-12-0 

67 

155—4—6 

1937 

16396-12—6 

68 

184—4—6 

1938 

16228—4—3 

69. 

250-5-0 

1939 

16S77— 9— 4 

70 

266-11—3 

Total 

Q AH A Q— A 



oyTUo — y t 


oyy y — o 

Purposes for which collections were used 

Kathiawad Harijan Khadi 

Rajkot 

National 

Famine 

Sevak Sangh Work 

School 

Relief 


Rs. Rs. 

Rs. 

Rs. 

1935 

2512-3-3’ 



1936 

7193-7-6 



1937 10000-0-0 6212-8-0® 



1938 

9000-0-0 3500-0-0’’ 

3477-15-3 


1939 

2140-0-0 1390-0-0' 

1390-0-0 f 

10,189-14-0* 


1001-0-0® 

\ 

soo-o-o® 

[l.For work in Rajkot through Narandas Gandhi. 

2. For 

10 khadi centres in Kathiawad. 3. 

Khadi work 

in Porbandar through Chhaganlal Joshi. 

4. Famine 


relief through the national school. 5. Famine relief in 
Porbandar through Chhaganlal Joshi. ] 

Figures are usually uninteresting and I rarely 
give details of these collections. But I have 
given these in detail as they are of striking 
interest. They are an eloquent testimony to the 
work that can be done by the single-minded 
devotion and efficiency of a single man. This 
annual spinning sacrifice goes on without fuss 
and advertisement. It is worthy of emulation 
everywhere for it means automatic propagation 
of khadi. 

Sevagram, 5-8-40 

( Translated front Gujarati ) 

Autobiography 

Gandhiji’s The Story of My Experiments with Truth 
Price Rs. 4. Postage 10 As. extra. 

Satyagraba m South Africa 
Companion volume to Autobiography. Rs. 4+9As*. 
Available at Harijan Office — Poooa 4*., m 



248 


HAEIJAN 


[ August 11, 1940 


AUNDH 

(By M. K, Gandhi ) 

Who does not know little Aundh ? Little it is 
in size and income, but it made itself great 
and famous by its Chief having bestowed, un- 
asked, the boon of full self-government on bis 
people. Its chief minister Appasaheb Pant has 
brought out an attractive pamphlet of nine pages 
describing the experiment, from which I repro- 
duce the following : 

“Village democracy is the basis -of the new Con- 
stitution. Every village elects by the vote of all of 
its adults a panchayat of five persons. One of these 
five is elected by the panchayat unanimously as their 
president. If this unanimity is not possible, then all 
the adults of the village elect the president out of 
the panchayat. 

Duly elected presidents of a group of villages 
constitute the taluka panchayat. The taluka panchayat 
decides in its meetings the way in which it would 
spend the money that it receives. It receives as 
near as possible half the revenue that is collected 
in that taluka. The villages prepare their budgets 

and present them through their presidents to the 
taluka panchayat. These are discussed and a budget 
for the whole taluka is prepared. The villages can 
spend the money they get as they think fit. As yet 
education and public works constitute the chief 
items of expenditure. 

The members of the Assembly know not only 
about the affairs of the Central Government, but 
they are intimately connected with the everyday 

work in the villages, and they get acquainted with 
the work of other villages in their taluka at the 
meetings of the taluka panchayat. The member of 
the Legislative Assembly, in this way, is an active 
worker almost 12 hours of the day. It is not that 
he stands for election, gets elected on certain issues, 
and does not worry about these till the next elec- 
tion. He has to face the villagers every day. The 

Constitution gives the power of recall to the villagers. 
4/5ths of the voters can ask for a re-election of the 
panchayat. 

The panchayats dispense justice. The villager 

need not spend money, go out of his village, and 
spend days at the taluka town to get a hearing. 

The panchayat decides his case on the spot. The 

peasant can get witnesses in the village. And in 
the cases that are difficult and involve intricate 

points of law, a sub-judge comes to the village and 
assists the panchayat with the dispensation of justice. 
The sub-judge not only gives expert advice to the 

panchayat, but also acts as a guide to the peasant 
who many a time is completely ignorant of his 

legal rights and is therefore liable to be misguided 
by the vested interests — the goondas.” 

Justice in Aundh is therefore cheap, swift, and 
eflfective. In the panchayats of two talukas alone 

197 criminal and civil suits have been disposed 

of. In 75 per cent of civil suits and 50 per 
cent of criminal cases no pleaders were engaged. 
The witnesses had to be paid nothing, being 


themselves on the spot There was thus great 
saving of time and money. Most cases were 
decided at a single sitting. The whole village 
turns out at the hearing of cases. Hence lying 
is rare, because it can be easily detected. There- 
fore many cases are compromised out of court. 
This method of dealing out justice is itself 
great adult education. 

There are 88 village schools for 72 villages. 
After the introduction of adult franchise, 35 
per cent of the adult populaticn received educa- 
tion. Basic education is not neglected, nor is 
physical. The Rajasbeb himself takes a keen 
interest in the physical development of his 
people. It is done through SiiryanamaskUrs It 
is a special style. 

If Appasaheb has shown the bright side of 
the experiment, he has not lost sight of the. 
difficulties and troubles. I omit notice of these. 
For they are the usual difficulties that attend 
all such experiments. The leaders of the people, 
if they retain their faith, will surely surmount 
them. This is how the pamphlet closes: “Little 
has been done. Much remains to be done. It’s 
an important work we are doing. We want 
sympathy and advice,” 

I am sure everybody sympathises with the 
Aundh people. Let those who have any to give 
send Appasaheb their thoughts. Let them be 
sure that they are sound and relevant. 

Sevagram, 6-8-40 
Not A Harijan 

Shri Ramachandran draws my attention to the 
fact that Shri Achuthan should not have been 
described as a Harijan. Whilst he is too big 
to resent the description, h^s fellow Ezhawas- 
are likely to take offence. I ought to have 
known this. For when I was touring in Travan- 
core I bad this delicate matter brought to my 
notice. All those whose feeling has been hurt by 
my use of the word will please believe me when 
I say that no oJffence was intended by me, 
I have never regarded the word as a term of 
reproach. But I am aw'are that there are many 
who do not look at things with my eyes. 
Sevagram, 7-8-40 M. K. G. 


CONTENTS Page 

What of the “ Wkai: 

Majority”? ... M. K. Gandhi 241 

The Biswa Affair ... M. K, Gandhi 242 

Drawbacks of Non-violence K. G. Mashruwala 212 
Is Non-violence Impossible? ... M. K. Gandhi 244 
The Test of Non-violence ... M. K. Gandhi 245 
The Live Issue ... M. D. 246 

Spinning Anniversary ... M. K. Gandhi 247 

Aundh ... M. K. Gandhi 248 

Notes : 


Hopeful 
Not a Harijan 


M. K. G. 241 
M. K. G. 24S 


Print^ and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson Collegie Road, Poona 4 
Subscription Raftsa — INLAND : One year, Ra. 4; six months, Bs. ^8. FOREIGN : One year, Rs. 5-8 or 8 sh. or 2 8. 



Editor ; MAHADEV DEGAl 


VoL. Viri, No. 27 ] POONA — SUNDAY, AUGUST 18, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


MORAL SUPPORT 

By M. K. Gandhi') 

A friend writes as follows : 

“ On the declaration of war you had advised giving 
moral support to Britain. Many persons never under- 
stood the implications of such support. You have 
never explained them either so far as I know. I 
am a regular reader of Harijanbccndhu, but I have 
not seen a clear explanation there. Everyone puts 
his own interpretation on the words. At the last 
sitting of the Gujarat Provincial Congress Committee 
the leaders said: ‘ Bapu was ready to give moral 
support to Britain. What else has the Congress done 
in its latest resolution ? As a matter of fact the 
Congress asks for more than it promises to give. 
Bapu was willing to give all for nothing.’ If war 
is itself a wrong act, how can it deserve moral 
support or blessings ? In the Mahabharata, was the 
help that Lord Krishna gave to Arjuna moral, or 
was it more destructive than the deadliest weapons 
of war ? 

I did explain in Harijan what I meant by 
moral support. It is possible that the explana- 
tion did not appear in Harijanbandhu, In my 
English writings things are often left to be 
understood. iTbe ellipses need, however, to be 
brought out in translations. 

Broadly speaking, Britain could have had moral 
support from the Congress, if only she had 
acted justly towards India. There was no spirit 
of bargaining in my proposal because the help 
was not oflfered in exchange for anything. 

Suppose my friend possesses moral strength 
which he has acquired through tapasya. And 
suppose I am in need of this strength. I shall 
not get it from him for the asking. He may 
always be ready to give it to me, but if I 
have not the capacity within me to take it 
from him, how shall I ever obtain it? Moral 
support cannot really be given in the sense 
of giving. It automatically comes to him who is 
qualified to take it. And such a one can take 
it in abundance. 

The Congress has this moral reservoir. The 
acceptance of the creed of truth and non- 
violence has been its tapasya. It has acquired 
world prestige through the acceptance of truth 
and non-violence for the attainment of its goal. 
If the Congress could have given its blessings to 
Britain, the world would have adjudged Britain’s 
cause 'to be just. The masses over whom the 
Congress holds sway would also have acknow- 
ledged justice to be on Britain’s side. But in 


all this the Congress would have had nothing 
material to give. The British Government would, 
by its own action, have acquired moral prestige 
or strength. Though the Congress would not 
give one man or one pice as material aid, its 
moral support and blessings would definitely 
have turned the scales in favour of Britain. 
This is my belief. That my belief may be ground- 
less and that the Congress never had any moral 
prestige is quite possible. The determination of 
this question is unnecessary for my argument. 

But the opportunity for rendering moral support 
now seems almost to have gone. The Congress 
felt itself unable to adopt my course. It cannot 
be taken mechanically. It presupposes a living 
faith in truth and non-violence. The greatest 
quality in the Congress is this that it has never 
claimed to have what it really does not possess, 
And therefore its resolutions are dignified and 
carry force with them. 

The help that the Congress in its latest reso- 
lution promises to give is material and for a 
consideration, eminently just, no doubt, but it is 
not and cannot be unconditional. I do not 
suggest that this position is either untenable or 
morally wrong. The resolution has dignity because 
it is the considered opinion of the majority. But 
by passing it the Congress has, in my opinion, 
surrendered the prestige it had or was supposed 
to have. Many Congressmen say that while they 
firmly believed that they could attain Swaraj 
through non-violence, they had never meant it to 
be understood that they could retain it also 
through non-violence. The entire outside world, 
however, believed that the Congress was show- 
ing the golden way to the abolition of war. No 
one outside India ever dreamed that, if the 
Congress could wrest Independence from a mighty 
power like Britain purely through non-violence, 
it would not be able to defend it also by the 
same means. 

In my opinion Lord Krishna’s help to Arjuna 
cannot be said to be moral, because he himself 
had an army and was an expert in the art of 
war. Duryodhana acted foolishly in that he 
asked for Krishna’s army, while Arjuna got what 
he wanted in the person of the expert in the 
science of war. Therefore, if we interpret the 
Mahabharata literally, Lord Krishna’s strength was 
certainly more destructive than that of his army. 
Because of his scientific skill Krishna was able 
with an army of seven divisions to destroy 
Duryodhana s army of eighteen. But it is well 



250 


HARIJAN [ August 18, 1940 


known that I have never looked upon the 
Mahabharata as a mere record of earthly warfare. 
In the garb of an epic the poet has described 
the eternal warfare within the individual as 
well as in society^ between Truth and Untruth, 
Violence and Non-violence, Right and Wrong. 
Looking at the epic even superficially one can 
understand how the great Vyasa has demonstrated 
that in this war the victor was no better oflF 
than the vanquished. Out of that vast con- 
course of warriors only seven remained to tell 
the tale. And the poet gives a true picture of 
the woeful state of mind also of these seven. 
The author has shown clearly too that in armed 
warfare the contending parties are certain to 
stoop to meanness and trickery. When occasion 
arose even the great Yudhishthira had to resort 
to untruth to save the battle. 

One more question of the writer remains to 
be answered. If war is itself a wrong act, how 
can it be worthy of moral support or blessings? 
I believe all war to be wholly wrong. But if 
we scrutinise the motives of two warring parties, 
we may find one to be in the right and the 
other in the wrong. For instance, if A wishes 
to seize B’s country, B is obviously the wronged 
one. Both fight with arms. I do not believe 
in violent warfare, but all the same B, whose 
cause is just, deserves my moral help and 
blessings. 

Sevagram, 12-8-40 *( Translated from GujaratO 

Notes 

‘ One Step Forward ’ 

I have before me two neatly bound volumes 
in English and Hindustani, being a report of 
the first Conference of Basic National Education 
held at Poona in October 1939. The English 
volume is entitled One Step Forward. It covers 
292 pages in English and 290 in Hindustani. The 
price is Rs. 1/4 per volume. Besides instructive 
introductory pages the report is divided into, three 
parts. The first contains general speeches and 
discussions. The second is devoted to various 
interpretations of basic education, and the third 
part is devoted to a description of the exhibi- 
tion of basic education for which Shrimati Asha- 
devi made herself mainly responsible. There is an 
appendix which* contains the names and addresses 
of delegates and invited guests. In the concluding 
part of his brief introduction Shri Aryanaykam 
says: 

“The conference and . the exhibition have finally 
lifted the scheme of basic national education above 
the realm' of controversy and proved to the education- 
al world that as regards the fundamental principles, 
contents and method, the claims of this new educa- 
tion are justified by a year’s experience of work 
with the teachers and children.’* 

The proceedings of the conference are proof 
of that claim. I must resist the temptation to 
quote from the body of the report. Those who 
are interested in education should not be with- 
out a copy. For me it is a matter of comfort 


that this the latest, though perhaps not the 
last, effort of mine has met with almost univer- 
sal approbation. The years record promises a 
bright future for the experiment. I must review 
the annual report in another issue. 

Sevagram, 5-8-40 
A Convincing Argument 
This is what an Englishwoman who knows 
what war means says about the Working Com- 
mittee’s decision to insist on non-violence for 
dealing with internal disturbances while fearing 
to trust non-violence to defend India : 

“ Though 1 have said nothing all these days 
about the developments in the country regarding 
non-violence, you can be sure I have been watch- 
ing them with the deepest interest and emotion. But 

there is one thing at this stage I want to try and 

put down on paper. To throw non-violence over- 
board when it comes to facing external aggression 
seems to me ti be throwing it away at the very 
moment when its efficacy is the most sure and its 
benefit to mankind the greatest. I have been trying 
to make out why I instinctively feel that non- 
violence would be more effective in such circum- 
stances, and the reasons appear to be these: In 

internal disorder — loot, robbery, rioting, etc., it is more 
often than not a case of dealing with unintellectual 
and lower types of humanity, whose ignorance or 
loose passions must be firmly dealt with, just as a 
child must be saved by its parents. But in the 
case of external aggression, the two elements you 
are dealing with are intellectually developed leaders 
of nations and masses of innocent soldiers- On both 
of these non-violence is bound to have its reactions. 
Mass non-violent defence by the brave would win 
over the innocent enemy-soldiers' in a day, and the 
leaders, especially men of such intelligence as Hitler, 
would be deeply moved by its grandeur, and their 
very commonsense would tell them to refrain from 
forcing their soldiers to such a conflict, where 
repugnance, remorse and revolt against orders would 
be the inevitable consequence. That this would bring 
to the suffering world a glorious light and a glorious 
hope, goes without saying. ... Of course you may 
say that in what I have written I appear to 
advocate force for the suppression of internal disorder. 
What I mean is parental firmness — restraining action 
invoked by love. 

The point working in my -mind at this moment is: 
If the Working Committee members ever thought 
non-violence should be and could be the ideal for 
internal affairs, then how much more it should be 
and could be the ideal for external affairs ! The very 
frightfulness of Europe today, which appears to 
have shaken their faith, makes me feel all the more 
ardent about non-violence.” 

Sevagram, 4-8-40 M. K, G. 

Books on Basic Education 

Price Postage As. 
One Step Forward Rs. 14 4 

^ ^ 3n5t 14 4 

Educational Reconstruction 14 4 

Basic National Education 0 8 3 

J. B. Kripalani-The Latest Fad 10 2 

C. J. Varkey-The Wardha Schcrene 1 14 3 

Available at Harijan Office — Poona 4 



AUGUST 18, 1940 1 HAEIJAI? 251 


ADULT EDUCATION 
THROUGH HANDICRAFTS 
I 

During the Congress regime adult education 
drives were organised in almost all the provinces. 
In most cases they were restricted to teaching 
grown-up people to read and write, and were 
even referred to as ” anti-illiteracy drives The 
experience was not always encouraging. For 
instance, it was found that those who 
were thus educated did not keep up their 
interest in education after the education course 
was over, and quite a number of cases lapsed 
back into illiteracy after a longer or shorter 
period. All the same, the balance of opinion 
here is still in favour of this kind of adult 
education. In America, however, where they 
have gone through the whole gamut, there is 
beginning to be experienced a swing round in 
favour of using handicrafts as a medium for 
educating both young and old. In fact Mr. 
Allen Eaton, whose volume Handicrafts in the 
Southern Highlands I noticed in Harijan recently, 
has devoted one of the most illuminating chap- 
ters in his book to examining the utility of 
handicrafts as a means for giving adult education. 

Adult education is comparatively a later growth 
even in America. The idea that everyone should 
continue education throughout life has only re- 
cently been generally adopted. The most impor- 
tant contribution made to adult education in the 
present generation, according to Mr. Eaton, was 
“ the convincing proof offered by Edward L. 
Thorndike and associates of the Columbia Uni- 
versity that adults could learn on the average 
as readily as children.’* But the fact that adults 
can learn carries with it no assurance that they 
will, and so search is continuing with new 
zest for those things that stimulate learning. 
From this search have emerged two definite 
schools with variants between — the old school 
which would teach all the facts to children 
while they are young, and the new school which 
would give them the tools of learning while 
young but would provide the facts and tech- 
niques as near as possible to the time when they 
will need to use them. As that great educationist 
John Dewey observed, “ First the need, then the 
knowledge or technique to satisfy that need.” 
Adult education, according to this school, is 
the continuation of the process of learning 
among men and women regardless of age or 
previous experience in school. In the words of 
another savant, “ adult education presumes that 
the creative spark may be kept alive through- 
out life, and moreover that it may be rekindled 
in those adults who are willing to devote a 
portion of their energy to the process of 
becoming intelligent. ” 

An outstanding advantage that is claimed for 
handicrafts in the process of adult learning is that 
they can be used as a starting point, as a centre 
of interest for a large number of individuals 
regardless of their level of intelligence or experi- 


ence. ‘They hold potentialities for the doctor 
of philosophy on one end of our educational pro- 
cession, and for the man who does not read or 
write on the other end, and, of course, for the 
far larger number in between.” Mr Eaton enu- 
merates the following five classes of people in 
U. S. A., by whom at least the handicrafts may 
be used for advancement in experience: 1. The 
graduate of college, university or professional 
school ; 2. the adult, who may have had 
only a grammar or high school training; 3. 
the grown-up who has not gone to school 
much, but who has learned to read and write 
after a fashion ; 4. the immigrant who cannot 
read or write the English language, but who 
may have had schooling in his homeland; 5. the 
adult who because of lack of opportunity has 
never learned to read or write. 

A person can get along without an education 
while young, it has been observed, but as he 
grows older, he feels the need for learning more 
and more. “ You can add much to your own- 
happiness,” observed Ambassador Howard in one 
of his addresses, “ if you will learn not only to 
appreciate beautiful things, but also create them 
within the measure of your capacity.*’ 

An excellent example of the educational 
potentialities of spinning and weaving is 
recorded by Mr. Eaton on p. 307 of his book : 

“ Several mountain women, acting upon the sug- 
gestion of two of their companions that they try to 
learn something about weaving as done in other 
places and in other times; soon found themselves 
engaged in a study embracing all the basic pro- 
cesses of textile-making. Their quest for knowledge 
carried them into the beginning of history, and in 
their studies' they travelled round the globe, making 
contacts with every continent and seeing interesting 
and sometimes rare examples of weaving from the 
handlooms of many countries. For more than three 
years they have been on this quest.... Theirs is an 
ever-widening search which has opened up the fields 
of history, literature, geography, anthropology, agri- 
culture, and art, with glimpses into botany, chemistry, 
and other branches of learning until, as one of the 
number said recently, ‘it appears like if ^ you knew 
all there is about to know about spinning and 
weavings you would know about all there is to 
kfiow about everything' ” 

{To he concluded ) 

Sevagram, 17-7-40 Pyarelal 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radhakrishnan. (New Edition) Rs. 5-10-0. 
Postage 8 As. 

Home and Village Doctor 
By Satish Chandra Dasgupta 

1384 pages. 18 chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages. 
219 illustrations. Price Rs. S cloth-bound; by V.'P. 
P. Rs. 6- Rs. 6 leather-bound; by V. P. P. Rs. 7. 

Available at Harijan office — Poona 4. 

Issues of Vols. I to VI of Harijan^ with certain 
exceptions, can be had from us for 3 As. per copy 
( including postage ). Issues of Vol. VIII can be 
had at the published price plus postage. Manager 



252 


HAEIJ'AN 


[ August 18, 1940 



4-lcLtij(in 


Aug. 18 


1940 


IMPLICATIONS OF 
CONSTRUCTIVE PROGRAMME 

(_By M.K. Gandhi ) 

A correspondent writes : 

“ What are the qualities that you intend to incul- 
cate in people by laying stress on the constructive 
programme ? What are the qualifications necessary 
for a constructive worker in order to make his 
work effective ?” 

The constructive programme is a big under- 
taking including a number of items: ( 1 ) Hindu- 
Muslim or communal unity; ( 2 ) Removal of 
untouchability; ( 3 ) Prohibition; ( 4 ) Khadi: ( 5 ) 
Other village industries; ( 6 ) Village sanitation; 
( 7 ) New or basic education; ( 8 ) Adult educa- 
tion; (9) Uplift of women; (10) Education in 
hygiene and health; (11) Propagation of Rashtra- 
bhasha; ( 12 ) Cultivating love of one’s own 
language; (13) Working for economic equality. 
This list can be supplemented if necessary* but 
it is so comprehensive that I think, it can be 
proved to include items appearing to have been 
omitted. 

The reader will see that it is the want of all 
these things that is responsible for our bondage. 
He will also see that the constructive programme 
of the Congress is not supposed to include all 
the items. That is understood to include only 
four items, or rather six, now that the Congress 
has created the All India Village Industries 
Association and the Basic Education Board. But 
we have to go further forward, we have to 
stabilise and perfect ahimsa, and so we have to 
make the constructive programme as compre- 
hensive as possible. There should be no room 
for doubt that, if we can win Swaraj purely 
through non-violence, we can also retain it 
through the same means. In the fulfilment of 
the constructive programme lies the non-violent 
attainment of Swaraj. 

The items I have mentioned are not in order 
of importance. I have put them down just as 
they came to my pen. Generally I talk of khadi 
only nowadays, because millions of people can 
take their share in this work, and progress 
can be arithmetically measured. Communal unity 
and the removal of untouchability cannot be thus 
assessed. Once they become part of our daily 
life, nothing need be done by us as individuals. 

Let us now glance at the various items. 
Without Hindu-Muslim, i. e. communal, unity 
.we shall always remain crippled. And how can 
a crippled India win Swaraj ? Communal unity 
means unity between Hindus, Sikhs, Mussalmans, 
Christians, Parsis, Jews. All these go to make 
Hindustan. He who neglects any of these com- 
munities does not know constructive work. 


As long as the curse of untouchability pollutes 
the mind of the Hindu, so long is he himself 
an untouchable in the eyes of the world, and 
an untouchable cannot win non-violent Swaraj. 
The removal of untouchability means treating the ‘ 
so-called untouchables as one’s own kith and kin. 
He who docs treat them so must be free from 
the sense of high and low, in fact free from all 
wrong class-sense. He will regard the whole 
world as one family. Under non-violent Swaraj 
it will be impossible to conceive of any country 
as an enemy country. 

Pure Swaraj is impossible of attainment by 
people who have been or who are slaves of 
intoxicating drinks and drugs. It must never be 
forgotten that a man in the grip of intoxicants 
is generally bereft of the moral sense. 

Everyone now may be said to believe that 
without khadi there is no just and immediate 
solution of the problem of the starvation of our 
millions. I need not therefore dilate upon it, I 
would only add that in the resuscitation of khadi 
lies the resuscitation of the ruined village arti- 
sans. Khadi requisites ( wheels, looms, etc, ) have 
to be made by the village carpenter and black- 
smith. For unless these requisites are made in the 
village it cannot be self-contained and prosperous. 

The revival of khadi presupposes the revival 
of all other village industries. Because we have 
not laid proper stress on this khadi-wearers 
see nothing wrong in using other articles which 
are foreign or mill-made. Such people may be 
said to have failed to grasp the inner meaning 
of khadi. They forget that by establishing the 
Village Industries Association the Congress has 
placed all other village industries on the same 
level as khadi. As the solar system will be dark 
without the sun, even so will the sun be lustre- 
less without the heavenly bodies. All things in 
the universe are interdependent. The salvation 

of India is impossible without the salvation of 
villages. 

If rural reconstruction were not to include 
rural sanitation, our villages would remain the 
muck-heaps that they are today. Village sanita- 
tion is a vital part of village life and is as 
difficult as it is important. It needs a heroic 
effort to eradicate age-long insanitation. The 
village worker who is ignorant of the science 
of village sanitation, who is not a successful 
scavenger, cannot fit himself for village service. 

It seems to be generally admitted that with- 
out the new or basic education the education 
of millions of children in India is well-nigh 
impossible. The village worker has, therefore, to 

master it, and become a basic education teacher 
himself. 

Adult education will follow in the wake of 
basic education as a matter of course. Where 
this new education has taken root, the children 
themselves become their parents’ teachers. Be 
that as it may, the village worker has to under- 
take adult education also. 

Woman is described as man's better half. As 
long as she has not the same rights in law as 




AUGUST 18, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


253 


man, as long as the birth of a girl does not 
receive the same welcome as that of a boy. so 
long we should know that India is suffering 
from partial paralysis. Suppression of woman is 
a denial of ahimsa. Every village worker will, 
therefore, regard every woman as his mother, sister 
or daughter as the case may be, and look upon 
her with respect. Only such a worker will 
command the confidence of the village people. 

It is impossible for an unhealthy people to win 
Swaraj. Therefore we should no longer be guilty 
of the neglect of the health of our people. 
Every village worker must have a knowledge of 
the general principles of health. 

Without a common language no nation can 
come into being. Instead of worrying himself 
with the controversy about Hindi-Hindustani 
and Urdu, the village worker will acquire a 
knowledge of the rashtrabhasha, which should 
be such as can be understood by both Hindus 
and Muslims. 

Our infatuation for English has made us un- 
faithful to provincial languages. If only as 
penance for this unfaithfulness the village worker 
should cultivate in the villagers a love of their 
own speech. He will have equal regard for all 
the other languages of India, and will learn the 
language of the part where he may be working, 
and thus be able to inspire the villagers there 
with a regard for their own speech. 

The whole of this programme will, however, be 
.a structure on sand if it is not built on the solid 
foundation of economic equality. Economic equa- 
lity must never be supposed to mean possession 
of an equal amount of worldly goods by every- 
one. It does mean, however, that everyone will 
have a proper house to live in, sufficient and 
balanced food to eat, and sufficient khadi with 
which to cover himself. It also means that the 
cruel inequality that obtains today will be remov- 
ed by purely non-violent means. This question, 
however, requires to be separately dealt with. 
Sevagram, 13-8-40 {^Translated from Gujarati') 

Deeply Distressing 

In response to The Heivs Chronicle's request 
Gandhiji has cabled the following statement: 

Having retired from participation in Congress 
politics, I have refrained from expressing opinion 
on the recent Viceregal pronouncement. But pres- 
sure from friends in England and fellow workers 
here demands response from me. The Viceregal 
pronouncement is deeply distressing. It widens 
the gulf between India, as represented by the 
Congress, and England. Thinking India outside the 
■Congress, too, has not welcomed the pronounce- 
ment. The Secretary of State’s gloss soothes 
the ear, but does not dispel suspicion. Neither 
does the pronouncement take note of the smoul- 
dering discontent. My own fear is that democracy 
is being wrecked. Britain cannot claim to stand 
for justice, if she fails to be just to India. 
India’s disease is too deep to yield to any make- 
believe or half-hearted measures. 

Sevagram, 13-8-40 


QUESTION BOX 

(By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Can He Stand Alone? 

Q. You are anxious that there should be be- 
lievers in complete non-violence in every pro vince . 
Is there not need then to organise a Sangh of 
such persons ? Or are you of opinion that ahimsa 
is a force that enables individuals to stand alone? 

A. Complete non-violence needs neither the 
aid of speech nor of the pen. And if it does 
not require the help of these two means, it 
certainly does not stand in need of organised 
strength. A man or woman who is saturated 
with ahimsa has only to will a thing and it 
happens. I can picture this truth in my imagi- 
nation. It is stated in the scriptures too. But 
my experience can qnly be reckoned as meagre ; 
so meagre that I cannot ask anyone to build on 
it. Hence my desire to build an organisation 
pledged to unadulterated non-violence. At the 
same time I believe that true believers in out 
and out non-violence should have the strength 
to stand alone. They will thus be soldiers and 
their own generals at the same time. If the 
non-violent army of my dreams can be set up, 
it will put an end to the existing disbelief in 
the power of non-violence. Indeed the Congress 
will itself be converted to complete non-violence. 
What Should He Bo? 

Q. I am a Congressman and I believe in out 
and out non-violence. I am also a member of 
Congress committees. You have advised people 
like me to leave the Congress. I am in touch 
with the villagers in my area. Should I con- 
tinue to bring these into the Congress fold or 
allow them to remain outside ? 

A. This is not a good question. So long as 
you are in the Congress, it is your duty to 
persuade others to join its ranks. You should 
explain the Congress policy to them. Those 
who join the Congress with an understanding of 
the real difference between himsa and ahimsa 
will do so knowingly. They will join the Con- 
gress either with the desire to try to bring the 
Congress on to the path of complete non- 
violence or to support it in its present policy . 
Your duty is to explain the position fully to 
them and freely admit as many as wish to join. 
You may resign from the Congress only when 
the date for leaving it is fixed. Until then you 
are to carry on as you have been doing heretofore. 
What Should a Briton Do and Not Do? 

Q. In your appeal to ‘Every Briton’ you say: 
“You will invite Herr Hitler and Signor Mussolini 

to take what they want You will give all 

your ‘earthly possessions’ but never your souls 

or your minds You will refuse to own 

allegiance to them.” Please explain clearly what 
a Briton should or should not do. I ask the 
question because your answer will have a bear- 
ing on the duty of every satyagrahi. 

A. Not to yield your soul to the conqueror 
means that you will refuse to do that which 
your conscience forbids you to do. Suppose the 



254 HARIJAN { August 18, 1S40 


enemy ’ were to ask you to rub your nose on 
the ground or to pull your ears or to go through 
such humiliating performances, you would not 
submit to any of these humiliations. But if he 
robs you of your possessions, you wull yield 

them because as a votary of ahimsa you have 
from the beginning decided that earthly posses- 
sions have nothing to do with your soul. That 
which you look upon as your own you may 

keep only so long as the world allows you to 

own it. 

Not to yield your mind means that you will 
not give way to any temptation. Man is often- 
times weak-minded enough to be caught in the 
snare of greed and honeyed words. We see this 
happening daily in our social life. A weak- 

minded man can never be a satyagrahi. The 
latter’s ‘ no ’ is invariably a ‘ no ’ and his ‘ yes ’ 
an eternal ‘yes’. Such a man alone has the 
strength to be a devotee of truth and ahimsa. 
But ' here one must know the difference between 
steadfastness and obstinacy. If after having said 
‘ yes ’ or ' no ’ one finds out that the decision 
was wrong and in spite of that knowledge clings 
to it, that is obstinacy and folly. It is necessary 
to think things out carefully and thoroughly 
before coming to- any decision. 

The meaning of refusal to own allegiance is 
clear. You will not bow to the supremacy of 
the victor, you will not help him to attain his 
object. Herr Hitler has never dreamt of possess- 
ing Britain. He wants the British to admit 
defeat. The victor can then demand anything 
he likes from the vanquished, and the latter 
has perforce to yield. But if defeat is not ad- 
mitted, the enemy will fight until he has killed 
his opponent. A satyagrahi, however, is dead to 
his body even before the enemy attempts to kill 
him, i. e. he is free from attachment to his body 
and only lives in the victory of the soul. There- 
fore, when he is already thus dead, why should 
he yearn to kill anyone? To die in the act of 
kiUing is in essence to die defeated. Because, if 
the enemy is unable to get what he wants from 
you alive, he will decide to get it after killing 
you. If, on the other hand, he realises that you 
have not the remotest thought in your mind of 
raising your hand against him even for the sake 
of your life, he will lack the zest to kill you. 
Every hunter has had this experience. No one 
has ever heard of anyone hunting cows. 

You may find that I have not answered the 
questions that you had in your mind. I have 
made a humble effort and dealt with your general 
question by giving you a few homely examples. 
I hope that from them you will be able to 
deduce answers to the questions left unanswered. 

Dignity of the soul and self-respect ate inter- 
preted differiently by different persons. I *am 
aware that self-respect is often misinterpreted. 
The over-sensitive man may see disrespect or 
hurt in almost everything. Such a man does not 
really understand what self-respect is. That has 
been my experience in many cases. But no harm 


accrues even if a non-violent man holds mistaken 
notions of self-respect. He can die cheerfully for 
the sake of what he believes to be his dignity 
and self-respect. Only he has no right to injure 
or kill the supposed wrong-doer. 

Sevagram, 13-8-40 

The Case of My First Son 

Q. You have failed to take even your own 
son with you, and he has gone astray. May it 
■not, therefore, be well for you to rest content 
with putting your own house in order? 

A. This may be taken to be a taunt, but I 
do not take it so. For the question had occurr- 
ed to me before it did to anyone else. I am 
a believer in previous births and rebirths. All 
our relationships are the result of the samskars 
we carry from our previous births. God’s laws 
are inscrutable and are the subject of endless 
search. No one will fathom them. 

This is how I regard the case of my son. I 
regard the birth of a bad son to me as the 
result of my evil past whether of this life or 
previous. My first son was born when I was 
in a state of infatuation. Besides, he grew up 
whilst I was myself growing and whilst I knev/ 
myself very little. I do not claim to know 
myself fully even today, but I certainly know 
myself better then I did then. For years he 
remained away from me, and his upbringing 
was not entirely in my hands. That is why he 
has always been at a loose end. His grievance 
against me has always been that I sacrificed 
him and his brothers at the altar of what 
I wrongly believed to be public good. My 
other sons have laid more or less the same 
blame at my door, but with a good deal of 
hesitation, and they have generously forgiven 
me. My eldest son was the direct victim of my 
experiments — radical changes in my life and so 
he cannot .forget what he regards as my blunders. 
Under the circumstances I believe I am myself 
the cause of the loss of my son, and have there- 
fore learnt patiently to bear it. And yet it is 
not quite correct to say that I have lost him. 
For it is my constant prayer that God may 
make him see the error of his ways and for- 
give me my shortcomings, if any, in serving 
him. It is my firm faith that man is by nature 
going higher, and so I have not at all lost hope 
that some day he will wake up from his slumber 
of ignorance. Thus he is part of my field of 
experiments in ahimsa. When or whether I 
shall succeed I have never bothered to know. 
It is enough for my own satisfaction that I do 
not slacken my efforts in doing what I know 
to be my duty. • ‘To work thou hast the 
right, never to the fruit thereof’ is one of 
the golden precepts of the Gita. 

Sevagram, 5-8-40 

( Translated from Gujarati ) 

Wanted Agents 

For selling copies of Hanjan in various towns o£ 
India. For terms apply to the Manager, Harijan— 
Poona 4. 



HARIJAN 


AUGUST 18, 1940 


NAZISM IN ITS NAKEDNESS 

(By M. K. Gandhi ) 

A Dutch friend writes: 

‘‘You will perhaps be able to remember me having 
made a drawing of you at Rom. Rolland’s in 1931. 
Even before meeting you in person I followed the 
Indian movement with interest, in particular your 
leadership and your methods of combat. I am a 
Dutchman and lived for many years in Germany, 
where I had built up a living as an artist. Nazism, 
which gained hold in Germany seven years ago, 
caused me many conscientious doubts, especially with 
regard to the schooling of my three children. I 
oft3n thought of writing to you to ask your advice; 
I knew, however, how fully your time was occupied 
■and did not want to embarrass you with my difficul- 
ties. Eventually I managed to settle my affairs to 
my own, satisfaction. 

' It is just one year ago since I left my house in 
Munich to spend some time in Holland. When war 
broke out in September we did not return to Germany 
but remained in Holland, since I had no wish to 
expose my children to the mental state of a country 
at war. On 10th May, by the use of every possible 
subtle trick, Holland was overpowered. After four 
■days of the most ruthless bombing we fled to England 
and are now on our w^ay to Java, the country of 
my birth, where I hope to find work, not as one of 
the group which exploits the colony but as a guest. 

Europe has put its trust in violence, but for 
centuries past in the wars of soldier against soldier 
certain rules of chivalry were observed. Nazism has 
thrown that code overboard, and I can say with a 
clear conscience that no country has ever made use 
of such vicious treachery, villainy and cowardice in 
attaining its ends as modern Germany. The upbring- 
ing even of little children is based on the exercise 
of violence. Nazism systematically trains children to 
cunning and treachery even tov/ards their own parents, 
to immorality and much more in the same spirit. 
When Indian students, who in the course of years 
have visited me at home, enthused about Germany, 
they were merely deceived by the gloss which Nazism 
knows so well how to lay on. A short explanation 
always convinced them of the tremendous difference 
between * Indian National Socialism’, as they often 
called your movement, and Hitler’s Nazism. 

Two books, The Revolution of Destruction and 
Hitler Speaks, have been written by Hermann 
Rauschning, a former intimate of Hitler. These books 
give a very clear impression of the movement in 
Germany, and should be read by all thinking people. 
Hitler aims at nothing less than the destruction of 
all moral values, and in the bulk of German youth 
he has already attained that end. 

Your article in Harijan about the Jewish problem 
in Germany particularly interested me since I had 
many Jewish friends there. You say in it that, if 
ever a war were justified, it is this one against 
Germany. In the same article, however, you write 
that, if you were a Jew, you would attempt to 
soften the hearts of the Nazis by non-violence. 
Recently you also advised Britain and the British 
:people to surrender their “ beautiful island to the 


^55 


German invader, without resistance by force^ and to 
conquer him afterwards by non-violence. There is 
probably no man in the whole history who has a 
better knowledge of the practice of non-violence 
than yourself. Your views have awakened veneration 
and love for you in millions of hearts not only in 
India but in the outside world as well. Even your 
opponents are compelled eventually to honour you 
and admit the rightness of your aims and methoos. 
But your opponents are the British, a people that, 
though like every other it has its weak points, in 
spile of its business sense, retains a heart. 

Through Nazism, the German youth has lost ail 
individuality of thought and feeling. The great mass 
of young people has lost its heart and is degraded 
to the level of a machine. The German conduct of 
the war is absolutely mechanical; machines are 
driven by robot men who have no qualms of con- 
science about crushing under their tanks the bodies 
of women and children, bombing open towns, killing 
hundreds of thousands of women and children, and 
on occasion using them as a screen for their advance, 
or distributing poisoned food. These are all facts, the 
truth of which I can vouch for. I have spoken 
with many of your followers about the possibility of 
applying non-violence against Germany. A friend cf 
mine, whose work it is to cross-examine German pri- 
soners of war in England, was deeply shocked by the 
spiritual narrowness and heartlessness of these young 
men, and agreed with me that non-violence could not 
be applied with any success against such robots. The 
most terrible side of the question is the fact that 
Hitler has been able in the short space of seven 
years to sink German youth to such depths of de- 
moralisation. A glance at either of the books mentioned 
above will convince you of that. I know of no other 
example in history of a people sinking spiritually 
so low. ^ 

I hope that my letter has not trespassed too much 
upon your time. On the return journey to Europe 
in a happier time which, if God wills, may soon be 
possible, I shall try to bring my wife and children 
for a short visit to you.” 

The friend has sent his name and address. 
But I withhold both for fear of harm coming 
to him through unnecessary publicity. The letter 
must be valued on its own intrinsic merits. 

What, however, concerns me is not so muck 
his characterisation of Nazism as his belief that 
non-violent action may have no eflfect on Hitler 
or the Germans whom he has turned into so 
many robots. Non-violent action, if it is ade- 
quate, must influence Hitler and easily the duped 
Germans. No man can be turned into a perma- 
nent machine. Immediately the dead weight o£ 
authority is lifted from his head, he begins to 
function normally. To lay down any such general 
proposition as my friend has, betrays ignorance 
of the working of non-violence. The British 
Government can take no risks, can make no 
experiments in which they have not even a 
workable faith. But if ever an opportunity could 
be given to me, in spite of my physical limita- 
tions. I should not hesitate to try what would 



256 


HARIJAN 


[ august 18, 1940 


appear to be impossible. For in ahimsa it is 
not the votary who acts in his own strength. 
Strength comes from God. If, therefore, the way 
is opened for me to go, Ke will give me the 
physical endurance and cbthe my word with 
the needed power. Anyway all through my 
life I have acted in that faith. Never have I 
attributed any independent strength to myself. 
This may be considered by men who do not 
believe in a higher Power than themselves as a 
drawback and a helpless state. I must admit 
that limitation of ahimsa, if it be accounted 
as such. 

Sevagram, 6-S-40 

TRAVANCORE 
( By M. K, Gandhi ) 

Shri P. J. Sebastian sends me the following 
‘ true copy ' of the press note of the Travancore 
Government ; 

“ The Government of Travancore have observed 
with regret that, in the columns of his newspaper 
*Harijan’, Mr. Ghandi has afforded hospitality to 
statements emanating from Messrs. Achuthan and 
G. Eamachandran, the former being the latest Presi- 
dent and latter the propagandist of the moribund 
Travancore State Congress, Evidently it is hoped by 
these statements and the comments of Mr. Ghandi 
to force an outside enquiry and outside mediation 
upon the State. Mr. Achuthan who is a Travancore 
subject is reported to be moving between British 
Malabar and Cochin and his statement was published 
some weeks ago. This Government had resolved to 
ignore it realising as they did that such statements 
have been merely variants of the baseless assertions 
made by Mr. Eamachandran repeated in different 
phraseology. 

In view'^owever to the publicity which accom- 
panies statements associated with Mr. Ghandi and 
in order that the public may not be misled, as Mr. 
Ghandi allows himself to be misled by such state- 
ments, the Travancore Governm.ent propose to take 
appropriate legal proceedings against Messrs. Achuthan 
and G. Eamachandran in the course of which the 
truth or falsity of their averments can be tested. 

Huzur Cutchery, Trivandrum, 

29th July 1940. 

(Sd.) M, K. Nilakanta Aiyar. 

Chief Secretary to Government” 

I have published the text without interfering 
with the spelling or the grammar. In sending 
the copy Shri Sebastian says: 

“ It has not up to now appeared in any of the 
Madras papers. The object of the press note seems 
to be to warn the Travancore papers not to copy 
the article on ‘Travancore’ in the Harijan of the 
28th July. It is worthy of note that none of the 
Travancore papers has published the Harijan article 
of the 28th, though the article of the 21st together 
with the reply of the Dewan had been published.” 


I am publishing everything important coming 
to me about Travancore because I believe it 
to be true. The threatened proceedings against 
Shri Eamachandran and Achuthan will not 
disprove the statements published. They will 
confirm the impression that the Travancore State 
authorities are determined by all means at their 
disposal to crush the movement for liberty. If 
past experience is any guide, this Travancore 
repression will fail to crush the movement. 
Note how the issues are evaded in the press 
note. There is no demand for an ‘ outside 
inquiry’ or ‘outside mediation’, nor is there 
any question of force. The Dewan himself and 
many others in Travancore are outsiders. But 
they are not forced upon the State when the 
Maharaja engages them, and the use of the word 
‘outsider’ ceases to have any meaning for the 
appointed It is preposterous to use the word 
‘ force ’ for friendly suggestions by the Press or 
appeals by State subjects, or to use words ‘out- 
siders ’ and * outside mediation * fer suggestions to 
the State to bring impartial judges from outside. 
Were Justice Hunter, himself a non-Punjabi, 
and his non-Punjabi colleagues forced upon the 
Punjab Government when in response to public 
agitation Government appointed the Hunter 
Committee ? Or was Justice Ramesam forced 
upon Sir Mirza Ismail when he appointed that 
learned outsider to conduct an inquiry into the 
Viduraswatham shooting ? The public is bound 
to give a sinister meaning to this gross misuse 
of the language by the Travancore authorities. 
Again, if the Travancore people arc hostile to 
or apathetic to the doings of the State Congress, 
where is the occasion for the suppression of the 
State Congress bulletins and newspaper comments? 
Just causes truthfully and non-violently conduct- 
ed have always survived repression and drawn 
sympathy from unexpected quarters. I call such 
sympathy divine help. God works in mysterious 
ways. Let the persecuted State Congress people 
have faith that God is with them. 

Sevagram, 4-8-40 

Empire or Democracy ? by L. Barnes. 

Price Rs. 5“10 + Postage 4 Annas. 

Available at Harijan Office — Poona 4 


CONTENTS Page 

Moral Support ... M. K. Gandhi 249 

Adult Education through 
Handicrafts — I ... Pyarelal 251 

Implications of Constructive 
Programme ... M. K. Gandhi 252 

Question Box ... M. IC. Gandhi 253 

Nazism in Its Nakedness ... M. K. Gandhi 255 

Travancore ... M. K. Gandhi 256 

Notes : 

‘ One Step Forward ’ ... M, K. G. 250 


A Convincing Argument M. K. G. 250 

Deeply Distressing ... M. K. G. 252 

Printed and Published by Vitbal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushau Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
Subscription Rates — INLAND : One year, Es. 4; six. months, Rs. 2-8. FOREIGN : One year, Rs. 5-8 or 8 sh. or 2 8. 



Equal 


Reg. No. B. 3092 



Editor ; MAHADEV DESAa 


VoL. VIII No. 28 ] POONA — SUNDAY, AUGUST 25, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


Dr. LOHIA again 

( By M- K* Gandhi ) 

By courtesy of Shri Achut Patwardhan I have 
a copy of Dr. Lohia’s statement before the 
court and the judgment of the presiding magis- 
trate. The whole of Dr. Lohia’s statement is 
sound, but I resist the temptation to give it in 
full. Here, however, is its permanent part : 

In all our activities we have to be non-violent. 
Non-violence is dictated not only by the circumstances 
in our country but by considerations that operate 
throughout the world. It is not only a practical 
necessity, it is an ethical desirability. Whatever 
little confusion there might be on this point due to 
faulty reporting is set aside by the reporter himself, 
I am reported to have said : ‘ When we have re- 
course to weapons we become weak of heart. Those 

who rely on weapons do not rely on their hearts. 
They turn into slaves of their own weapons. They 

have no strength left in themselves.’ 

I am an opponent of the old cult of the lathi, 
and its modern equivalent the cult of the aeroplane. 
There is an inner contradiction between these cults 
and the enduring of human life, a contradiction 

which is daily becoming more fierce. The next 
twenty years will show which wins, and the dualism 
cannot last longer. 

Should human life endure, there can be only one 
form of organisation. Adult democracy must obtain 
throughout the world, and there will be no place in 
it for imperialism, nor for capitalism. I have given 
an indication in my speech of this form of govern- 
ment as it will affect the Indian people. It was 
with a view to bring' into the foreground this principle 
of adult democracy that I suggested an immediate 
peace plan to Mahatma Gandhi. I claim no origina- 
lity for this plan whose items are: 

1. All peoples will be free. Those newly acquiring 
freedom will determine their constitution through a 
constituent assembly. 

2. All races are equal, and there will be no racial 
privileges in any part of the world. There will be 
no political bar to anyone settling wherever he likes. 

3. All credits and investments owned by the 
Government and nationals of one country in another 
will be scrapped or submitted for impartial review to 
international tribunals. They will then be owned not 
by individuals but by the State. 

When these three principles will have been accept- 
ed by the peoples of the world, a fourth will 
automatically come into operation. 

4. There will be total disarmament. 

I am happy in the knowledge that Mahatma 
Gandhi has endorsed this peace plan. 


Let me in conclusion state that I have no ill- 
will towards any people. I have lived among the 
German people and liked their thoroughness of 
enquiry, the scientific bent of their mind, and their 
efficiency in action. I am unhappy that they have 
today to carry on their shoulders a system which 
results in war and conquest. I have no intimate 
knowledge of the British people. I dare say that 
they have their virtues. I may be permitted to 
quote from my speech: *1 do not want the destruc- 
tion of Britain. The British have done evil to us, 
but I do not want to do evil to them.’ Again, I am 
unhappy that the British people have to carry on 
their shoulders today a system which has enslaved 
the peoples 'of the world.” 

Of Dr. Lohia this is what the court has to say : 

“The accused is a highly intellectual and cultured 
gentleman, perhaps with a doctorate degree of some 
European University, a man of high principles and 
morals whose honesty of purpose nobody can doubt. 
He does not mind suffering for his convictions and 
does not care much for his sentence or its duration.. 
We certainly do not punish him for holding certain 
political views about the present Government, for the 
very claim of the Government that it is democratic 
and run on public opinion entitles the public to criti- 
cise it according to his light by constitutional means, 
but we must protect such Government from embar- 
rassment in her relation with the masses who are 
bound to be disaffected by a speech like the one 
the accused has delivered in Dostpur, and parti- 
cularly when the British nation and Empire is in 
grip with the most unscrupulous enemy. I therefore 
consider that his detention in ^ail for a long 
duration or until the present cloud is drifted away is 
very desirable and to that end in view I sentence him 
to two years R. I. He is recommended for B Class.'^ 

Then why has he been rewarded with rigor- 
ous imprisonment ? The duration of the term I 
understand. He must be kept from the sup- 
posed mischief. I wonder whether the fact of 
the imprisonment will not aggravate the mischief. 
Of this, the Government must be the judge. But 
the people will remember that love of one’s 
country and outspokenness are a crime in a 
country where the State is irresponsible to the 
people. Dr. Lohia and other Congressmen s im- 
prisonments are so many hammer-strokes that 
must weaken the chain that binds India. The 
Government is inviting the Congress to start civil 
disobedience and deliver the last blow it would 
fain have reserved for a better day — better 
for the British. It is a pity. 

Sevagram, 21-8-40 



258 HARIJAN [ AUGUST 25, 1940 



GANDHI SCHOLARSHIPS 



33 

B. V. Kamble 

I. A. Sr. 

5 


List of Harijan students who have been granted 


33 

B. D. Kamble 

B. A. Jr. 

5 



Gandhi Scholarships for 

the year 1940-41. 


93 

N. N. Pendhari 

I. A. 

7 

8 


Name Course of study Amount p, m. 

1, 

N. M. Dhivde 

S, T. C. 

5 



Andhra Rs. As. 

31 

S. A. Pote 

31 

5 


Shri 

D. Venkanna 

B. A. Jr. 

5 



Mysore 




»» 

K. Venkateshwarlu 

L. I. M. II yr. 

10 


Shri 

M. R. Narasimhiah 

Practical Electric 


51 

A. Hanumanthu 

I. A. Sr. 

5 




Training 

5 


35 

E. C. Venkiah 

Veterinary Course 

7 

8 

33 

B. M. Nachiketha 

Vedic Culture 

10 


33 

G. Anandayya 

I. A. Sr. 

5 



Nizam Dominion 



. 33 

L. Bullayya 

B. A. Jr. 

5 


Shri 

K. Veeraswamy 

I. A. Sr. 

5 


13 

U. Ram Rao 

B.Sc. Agriculture 10 


33 

B. S. Rajarathnam 

B. A. Sr. 

5 


33 

M. Ramanuja Doss 

L. I. M. 

10 


31 

B. Pantiya 

M. B. B. S. 

10 



Assam 




•3 

T. Hanumaiah 

I. A. Sr. 

5 


Miss 

Surabala Das 

B. A. Jr. 

10 



Orissa 




Shri 

Maheshwar Das 

Overseer’s course 

7 

8 

Shri 

Purushottam Sethi 

I. A. Jr. 

7 

8 

33 

Krishna Lai Biswas 

„ 2nd yr 

7 


93 

Anant Naik 

I. Sc. Jr. 

7 

8 

13 

Bhabendra Nath Das 

M. Sc. 

15 


33 

Purushottam Das 

Medical 

15 


33 

Hemeshwar Das 

B. A. Jr. 

7 

8 

31 

Sitaram Svain 

B. A. Jr. 

10 


^ 13 

Dhirendra Nath Das 

L. M. P. 

7 


31 

Dinbandhu Bhoi 

I. A. Sr. 

10 


33 

Narendra Nath Barooah 

I. A. Sr. 

7 

8 


Punjab 





Bemr 




Shri 

Khushi Ram 

I. A. Jn 

5 


Miss 

C. M. Borkar 

I. A. Sr. 

7 

8 

11 

Surat Singh 

I. A. Sr. 

6 


Shri 

R. T, Chin 

33 31 

5 


11 

Ram Narayan 

I. A. Sr. 

6 



Bihar 




31 

Charan Singh 

Medical 

20 


Sfari Jagdis Narayan Choudhary 

Shastri Course 

10 


11 

Gugan Ram 

I. A. Sr. 

6 



C. P. Hindi 



11 

Sardar Singh 

B. A. Sr. 

10 


Shri 

Chhotelal Katiya 

Engineering 

10 


31 

Sant Ram Perkashi 

I. A. Jr. 

10 


33 

Shivlal Mahobia 

B. A. Sr. 

7 

8 


Sind 




33 

Jugal Kishor Katia 

B. A. Sr, 

7 

8 

Shri 

N. P. Oad 

Law Final 

15 


33 

D. J. Madke 

Engineering 

10 



Tamil Nad 



« 33 

Laxminarayan J. Jharia 

L Sc. final 

7 

8 

Shri 

K. Atmanathan 

Veterinary 

10 



C. P. Marathi 



33 

G. Venkatappa 

M. B. B. S. 

20 


Shri Udhao Venkat Rao Kamble 

I. A. Jr. 

7 

8 

If 

M. S. Mani 

Sanitary 



, If 

U. S. Charbhe 

B. A. Sr. 

5 



Inspector's Course 

10 


-If 

M. D. Panchbhai 

B. A. Sr. 

7 

8 

11 

M. V. CheUiah 

Power Spinning 



S. S. Nikhade 

B. A. Sr. 

5 




and Weaving 




S. T. Ramteke 

L.M.P. 4th yr. 

10 




Supervisor’s 



33 

M. A. Chavan 

B. A. Sr. 

7 

8 



Course 

7 

8 

Miss 

S. H. Shinde 

I. Sc. Sr. 

5 


91 

A. Vein 

Sanitary Inspec- 



. 

Central India 





tor’s Course 

10 


Shri K. C. Yadava (Gwalior St) L A. Jr. 

10 


Shri C. N. Rathnam 

Vidwan 

7 

8 

31 

Anant Ballal ( Indore ) 

I. A. Jr. 

10 


33 

K. S. Perumal 

L. 1. M. 

10 



Delhi 




Miss 

G. Deveerammal 

I. A. Sr. 

5 


Shri 

Ram Krishna Rajar 

I. A. Sr. 

7 

8 


U. P. East 




Gujarat 




Shri 

Vishwanath Ram 

I, Sc. Final 

7 

8 

Shri 

Br. Bhismadeva 

Vedic Course 



31 

Chokheylal 

I1 39 

10 



at Gurukul Kangri 

10 



U. P. West 



33 

I. N. Bhagat 

LA. 

5 


Shri Jahan Singh 

Engineering 

10 


*■ 

Karnatak 



39 

Sitaram Jatava 

Advanced 



Shri 

Y. C. Shankaranand * 

M. A. 

15 




Ayurvedic 

12 


3* 

K. Honnappa 

B. Sc. 

12 


11 

Swami Ramanand 

Shastri 

5 



Kerala 






— 










Total Rs. 

662 

8 

Miss 

K. J. Jankibai 

M. B. B. S. 

25 


Note: 1. Some cises from 

Berar, Bihar, 

C. 

P- 

33 

T. K. Narayani 

B. A. Jr. 

5 


Hindi, Karnatak, Kerala, U. 

P. East and 

u. 

P. 

Shri 

T. Prabhakara Sharma 

Secondary Trainin 



West are still under consideration. 



31 

K. R. Narayanan 

B. A. ( Hons. ) 

5 


2. 

All applications from Bengal are still 

under 


Maharashtra 



.consideration. The aggregate amount of scholarships 

Shri 

S. R. Kamble 

I. Sc. Jr. 

5 


will 

be Rs. 70 p. m. 




S3 

M, D. Kamble 

I. A. Sr. 

5 


3. 

All scholarships in Tamil Nad are for a period 

93 

D. S. Budhaji 

1| 33 

5 


of 10 months only. 




93 

S. K. Dige 

B. A. Sr. 

7 

8 



Shyamlal 


19 

S. R. Kharat 

I. A. Jr. 

5 


Delhi, 6-7-40 Asst. Secretary, H. 

S. S, 




AUGUST 25, 1940 1 HARIJAN 


VILLAGE RECONSTRUCTION 
IN THE SOUTH 

Shri N. S. Varadachari sends reports of rural 
reconstruction work in five centres which are 
worthy of notice. He says the heartening factor 
is that the initiative and labour is all due to 
the spirit that has animated the villagers 
themselves. Not much money has been spent. 
Whatever was needed came from the villages. 
In some cases Government grants were also 
available. The work was started two years ago 
in the Rajaji centre and a year ago in the 
others. The new centres sprang up because the 
people asked for help and have shown an 
eagerness and willingness to learn how to 
better their living conditions and surroundings. 

From one village in the Rajaji centre in 
1938 the work is now carried on in 12. The 
total population of all the villages is 2,532- 
Thirty furlongs of new roads have been laid. 
Government has contributed a certain amount 
towards this work. But the villagers have made 
themselves responsible for keeping the roads in 
good condition. The streets are kept clean by 
the women in one of the centres. The sanitary 
condition of the neighbourhood has changed 
beyond recognition. The Rajaji centre has 9 
silage pits which arc well kept. These arc 
being installed in the other centres wherever 
possible. Well water is protected from pollu- 
tion, and wherever there is not an ample supply 
efforts are being made to make the deficiency 
good. 4 wells and 1 bore well for Harijans 
have been sunk. Where drainage water can be 
utilised with advantage small kitchen gardens 
are encouraged, both private and community. 
In the Rajaji centre each Harijan family has 
got its own garden. In one village every house 
has a manure pit in its backyard at a suitable 
distance from the living quarters. Care of 
cattle is an important part of the programme. 
In one centre the cattle shed is dug to a depth 
of 18 inches and filled with soft fine sand 
which forms a soft porous bed for the animals. 
Once in 2 or 3 days the sand is turned over, 
and every month or six weeks when it requires 
to be changed it is all carted into manure pits. 
There is thus no wastage and no smell or dirt 
in the shed itself. There are 6 schools and 352 
boy and girl pupils in all the centres. A literacy 
campaign has been commenced among the 
adults. There are 519 literates in these centres 
at the moment. The Rajaji centre boasts a 
library with 620 books for which there is 
ample demand. 

Existing industries in the Rajaji centre are 
basket-making, pottery, date palm weaving, black- 
smithy and carpentry. It has not been possible to 
get figures of the actual amounts earned through 
these. Malt and hand-pounded rice have been 
introduced. The entire process of manufacturing 
malt from ragi and cholam and biscuit-making 
from malt was taught by the Asst. Agricultural 
Chemist, Coimbatore, with the result ^,that 3 


259 


families are regularly making malt and selling 
it in Chittoor. They have sold Rs. 91/12/- 
worth since last October. 416 putties of paddy 
were pounded and used in the Rajaji centre 
villages since the last report. Spinning has been 
started in all the centres, and some villagers are 
growing their own cotton. There are 386 spinners, 
108 charkhas, 138 carders, and 309 square yards 
of cloth have so far been produced. Attempts 
at bee-keeping and paper-making from bamboo 
have also been made. For various reasons these 
have not so far met with success, but they are 
not going to be given up. 

Shri N. S. Varadachari is confident that as 
the villagers are keen the work will endure 
and grow. 

Sevagram, 19-8-40 

i Abridged by A. FC.) 

Asoka and Non-violence 

Principal Thadani sends me the following lines 
which should be read with interest: 

“ The general policy of the Congress has undergone 
a radical change, and one does not know what this 
War may bring about. I am not a politician; but 
it was during the last Great War that I thought 
of what you have advised the British people today. 
And then I conceived of Asoka^ which I wrote 
during the course of the War, but published later. 
I felt during the last War that, if one side suffered 
itself to be destroyed without touching its opponent, 
not only would the War be over, but a new order 
of life would ensue. And then I thought of Asoka’s 
conversion after the conquest of Kalinga, and imagined 
that the people of that country had offered such a 
non-violent opposition to Asoka, suffered themselves 
to be slain without slaying a single soldier of the 
King, and it was this that brought about the change 
in the heart of Asoka. 

I do not know if you ever read that little book 
of mine, but perhaps it might interest you now. I 
have been reading it, and perhaps you might find 
time for a few lines if not the whole poem : 

Go forth and die upon the battlefield; 

Go forth and live immortal in your deed; 

Go forth and die, to live for evermore. 

Be slain, but slay not — die, but do not yield; 

Nor fight, nor fly, nor kill, nor cause to bleed; 

But suffer and be saved for evermore. 

The world is wounded — let her heart be healed; 

The world is fettered — let her soul be freed; 

And free and whole, 'live on for evermore- 

Go forth and die, ye earth’s unbroken shield; 

Go forth and die — thus have the gods decreed; 

Go forth, to live anew for evermore.” 

Sevagram, 13-8-40 M. K. G. 

Home and Village Doctor 

By Satish Chandra Dasgupta 

1384 pages. 18 chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages. 
219 illustrations. Price Rs. 5 cloth-bound; By V. P. 
P. Rs. 6. Rs. 6 leather-bound; By V. P. P. Rs. 7 

Available '‘at Harijan oificei — Poona 4- 



260 


HARIJAN 


[ August 25, 1940 



4~l atij 


Aug. 25 


1940 


EQUAL DISTRIBUTION 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

In last week’s article on the Constructive 
Programme I mentioned equal distribution of 
wealth as one of the 13 items. 

The real implication of equal distribution is 
that each man shall have the wherewithal to 
supply all his natural needs and no more. For 
example, if one man has a weak digestion and 
requires only a quarter of a pound of flour for 
his bread and another needs a pound, both 
should be in a position to satisfy their wants. 
To bring this ideal into being the entire social 
order has got to be reconstructed. A society 
based on non-violence cannot nurture any other 
ideal. We may not perhaps be able to realise 
the goal, but we must bear it in mind and 
work unceasingly to near it. To the same 
extent as we progress towards our goal we 
shall find contentment and happiness, and to that 
■extent too shall we have contributed towards the 
bringing into being of a non-violent society. 

It is perfectly possible for an individual to 
adopt this way of life without having to wait 
for others to do so. And if an individual can 
observe a certain rule of conduct, it follows 
that a group of individuals can do likewise. It 
is necessary for me to emphasise the fact that 
no one need wait for anyone else in order to 
adopt a right course. Men generally hesitate to 
make a beginning if they feel that the objective 
•cannot be had in its entirety. Such an attitude 
of mind is in reality a bar to progress. 

Now let us consider how equal distribution 
can be brought about through non-violence. 
The first step towards it is for him who has 
made this ideal part of his being to bring 
about the necessary changes in his personal 
life. He would reduce his wants to a minimum, 
bearing in mind the poverty of India. His 
•earnings would be free of dishonesty. The 
desire for speculation would be renounced. His 
habitation would be in keeping with the new 
mode of life. There would be self-restraint 
■exercised in every sphere of life. When he has 
done aid that is possible in his own life, then 
■•only will he be in a position to preach this 
ideal among his associates and neighbours. 

Indeed at the root of this doctrine of equal 
distribution must lie that of the trusteeship of 
the wealthy for the superfluous wealth possessed 
by them. For according to the doctrine they 
may not possess a rupee more than their neigh- 
bours. How is this to be brought about? Non- 
violently ? Or should the wealthy be dispossessed 
of their possessions ? To do this we would 
naturally have to resort to violence. This violent 


action cannot benefit society. Society will be the 
poorer, for it will lose the gifts of a man who 
knows how to accumulate wealth. Therefore the 
non-violent way is evidently superior. The rich 
man will be left in possession of his wealth, of 
which he will use what he reasonably requires 
for his personal needs and will act as a trustee 
for the remainder to be used for the society. 
In this argument honesty on the part of the 
trustee is assumed. 

As soon as a man looks upon himself as a 
servant of society, earns for its sake, spends for 
its benefit, then purity enters into his earnings 
and there is ahimsa in his venture. Moreover, 
if men’s minds turn towards this way of life, 
there will come about a peaceful revolution in 
society, and that without any bitterness. 

It may be asked whether history at any time 
records such a change in human nature. Such 
changes have certainly taken place in individuals. 
One may not perhaps be able to point to them 
in a whole society. But this only means that 
up till now there has never been an experiment 
on a large scale in non-violence. Somehow or 
other the wrong belief has taken possession of 
us that ahimsa is pre-eminently a weapon for 
individuals and its use should therefore be limited 
to that sphere. In fact this is not the case. 
Ahimsa is definitely an attribute of society. To 
convince people of this truth is at once my 
effort and my experiment. In this age of wonders 
no one will say that a thing or idea is worth- 
less because it is new. To say it is 
because it is difficult is again not in consonance 
with the spirit of the age. Things undreamt of 
are daily being seen, the impossible is ever 
becoming possible. We are constantly being 
astonished these days at the amazing discoveries 
in the field of violence. But I maintain that 
far more undreamt of and seemingly impossible 
discoveries will be made in the field of non- 
violence. The history of religion is full of such 
examples. To try to root out religion itself from 
society is a wild goose chose. And were such 
an attempt to succeed, it would mean the des- 
truction of society. Superstition, evil customs and 
other imperfections creep in from age to age and 
mar religion for the time being. They come and 
go. But religion itself remains. Because the exis- 
tence of the world in a broad sense depends on 
religion. The ultimate definition of religion may 
be said to be obedience to the law of God. God 
and His law are synonymous terms. Therefore 
God signifies an unchanging and living law. No 
one has ever really found Him, But avatars 
and prophets have, by means of their ‘tapasya’, 
given to mankind a faint glimpse of the 
eternal law. 

If, however, in spite of the utmost effort, 
the rich do not become guardians of the poor 
in the true sense of the term and the latter 
are more and more crushed and die of hunger, 
what is to be done? In trying to find the 
solution to this riddle I have lighted on non- 




August 25, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


261 


violent non-cooperation and civil disobedience as 
the right and infallible means. The rich cannot 
accumulate wealth without the co-operation of 
the poor in society. Man has been conversant with 
violence from the beginning, for he has inherited 
this strength from the animal in his nature. 
It was only when he rose from the state of a 
quadruped (animal) to that of a biped (man) 
that the knowledge of the strength of ahimsa 
..entered into his soul. This knowledge has 
jrown within him slowly but surely. If this 
knowledge were to penetrate to and spread 
emongst the poor, they would become strong 
and would learn how to free themselves by 
means of non-violence from the crushing 
inequalities which have brought them to '*^the 
verge of starvation. 

I scarcely need to write anything about non- 
cooperation and civil disobedience, for the 
readers of Hanjanbandhu are familiar with 
these and their working. 

Sevagram, 19-8-40 

(.Translated from Gujarati) 

AN INTERESTING DISCOURSE 

I 

The Scope of Ahimsa 

“ You see that I am answering every one of 
your questions straightaway without the slightest 
hesitation. That is because the great question 
underlying your questions possesses me and I 
have rehearsed to myself every one of the situ- 
ations arising out of the various implications of 
ahimsa.*’ These words were uttered by Gandhiji 
towards the close of a long and interesting dis- 
course with a number of friends from Poona 
who had come for the sole purpose of clearing 
their doubts on ahimsa. They were all out and 
■out believers in non-violence, or if they were 
not, they had come all the way from Poona, in 
order to be such believers, after their doubts 
were cleared. Balasaheb Kher, the ex-Prime 
.Minister of Bombay, accompanied them. They 
had drawn up an exhaustive questionnaire, even 
■ at the risk of making some of their questions 
trite, for they did not want to leave any room 
.for doubt. 

The first question was about the limits and 
implications of ahimsa and the extent of its 
application. Should one stop with the human 
.species or extend it to all creation ? 

Gandhiji said : “I was not prepared for this 
question. For the Congress ahimsa is naturally 
‘Confined to the political field and therefore only 
to the human species. Hence out and out non- 
violence means for our purpose every variety 
•of non-violence on the political field. In concrete 
terms it covers family relations, relations with 
• constituted authority, internal disorders and exter- 
nal aggression. Put in another way it covers 
all human relations.” 

” Then what about meat-eating and egg-eating ? 
-Do they consist with] non-violence ? ” 


“They do. Otherwise we should have to exclude 
Mussulmans and Christians and a vast number 
of Hindus as possible co-workers in ahimsa. 
I have known many meat-eaters to be far 
more non-violent than vegetarians.” 

“ But what if we had to give them up for 
the sake of a principle ? ” 

“ Oh yes, we would, if we had to compro- 
mise our principle. Our principle is defined as 
I have shown already. ” 

A Wrong Analogy 

“ If, as you have said, Polish resistance to the 
German invasion was almost non-violent, and you 
would thus seem to reconcile yourself with it, 
why do you object to the Wardha resolution 
of the Working Committee ? ” 

“Surely,” said Gandhiji, “there is no analogy 
between the two cases. If a man tights with 
his sword single-handed against a horde of dacoits 
armed to the teeth, I should say he is fighting 
almost non-violently. Haven’t I said to our 
women that, if in defence of their honour they 
used their nails and teeth and even a dagger. 
I should regard their conduct non-violent ? She 
does know the distinction between himsa and 
ahimsa. She acts spontaneously. Supposing a 
mouse in fighting a cat tried to resist the 
cat with his sharp beak, would you call that 
mouse violent? In the same way, for the Poles 
to stand valiantly against the German hordes 
vastly superior in numbers, military equipment 
and strength, was almost non-violence. I should 
not mind repeating that statement over and over 
again. You must give its full value to the word 
* almost’. But we are 400 millions here. If we 
were to organise a big army and prepare our- 
selves to fight foreign aggression, how could 
we by any stretch of imagination call ourselves 
almost non-violent, let alone non-violent? The 
Poles were unprepared for the way in which 
the enemy swooped down upon them. When 
we talk of armed preparation, we contemplate 
preparation to meet any violent combination 
with our superior violence. If India ever prepared 
herself that way, she would constitute the 
greatest menace to world peace. For if we take 
that path, we will also have to choose the 
path of exploitation like the European nations. 
That is why I still regret the moment when 
my words lacked the power of convincing the 
Sardar and Rajaji. By having passed that resolu- 
tion we proclaimed to the world that the ahimsa 
we had subscribed to all these years was not 
really ahimsa but a form of himsa.” 

Administering Non-violently 
Q. “ How will you run your administration 
non-violently ? ” 

A. “If you assume that we would have won 
independence by non-violent means, it means that 
the bulk of the country had been organised non- 
violently. Without the vast majority of people 
having become non-violent, we could not attain 
non-violent Swaraj. If, therefore, we attain 
Swaraj by purely non-violent means, it should 



262 


HARIJAN 


[ August 25, 194& 


not be difficult for us to carry on the adminis- 
tiation without the military. The goondas too 
will then have come under our control. If, for 
instance, in Sevagram we have five or seven 
goondas in a population of seven hundred who 
are non-violently organised, the five or seven 
will either live under the discipline of the rest 
or- leave' the village. 

“But you will see that I am answering the 
question with the utmost caution, and my truth 
makes me admit that we might have to main- 
tain a police force. But the police will be 
afrei* our pattern, and not the British pattern. 
As we shall have adult suffrage, the voice of 
even the youngest of us will count. That is 
why I have said that the ideally non-violent 
State will be an ordered anarchy. That State 
will be the best governed which is governed 
the least. The pity is that no one trusts me 
with the reins of government I Otherwise I would 
show how to govern non-violently. If I maintain 
a .police force, it will be a body of reformers. ” 

“But,” someone retorted, “you had the power 
in the , Congress ? ” 

“ That was a paper-boat, ” said Gandhiji. “And 
then you must not forget that I never spared 
the . Congress ministries. Munshi and Pantji came 
in for a lot of strictures from me. As I have 
said- in another connection even the dirty water 
from the gutter, when it mixes with the water 
of the Ganges, becomes as pure as the Ganges 
water; even so I had expected even the 
goondas would work under Congress discipline. 
But evidently our ministers had not attained 
the purifying potency of the fabled Ganges.” 

“ But,” said Shri Kher, intervening at this 
stage, “the Congress ministers had no non- 
violent power with them. Even if 500 goondas 
had run amok and had been allowed to go 
unchecked, they would have dealt untold havoc. 
I do not know how even you would have dealt 
with them.” 

“Surely, surely,” said Gandhiji, “I had 
rehearsed such situations. The ministers could 
on such occasions have gone out and allowed 
themselves to be done to death by the goondas. 
But let us face the fact that we had not the 
requisite ahimsa. We went in with our half- 
baked ahimsa, I do not mind it, inasmuch as 
we. gave up power the moment we felt we 
should give it up. I am sure that, if we had 
adhered to strictest non-violence during these 
two or three years, the Congress would have 
made a tremendous advance in the direction of 
ahimsa and also independence.” 
f “ But, ” said Balasaheb, “ four or five ■ years 
ago when there was a riot, and I appealed to 
the,, lea.ders ' to go and throw themselves into 
the . conflagration, no one was ready. ” 

. “ So you are supporting my- argument. You 
agree- that our loyalty to ahimsa was lip-loyalty 
jind not- heart-loyalty. And if even the half- 
h?.ke4 ^ipisa^ carried us a long way, does it not 
that thorough aMm?a woul^^ have carried 


us very far indeed, even if it had not already . 
brought us to the goal? ” 

Non-violent Army 

“ But we cannot visualise how you will stand 
non-violently against a foreign invasion. ” 

“ I cannot draw the whole picture to you 
because we have no past experience to fall back 
upon and there is no reality facing us today. We 
have got the Government army manned by the 
Sikhs, Pathans and Gurkhas. What I can con- 
ceive is this that with my non-violent army of, 
say, two thousand people I should put myself 
between the two contending armies. But this, 

I know, is no answer. I can only say that we 
shall be able to reduce the invader’s violence 
to a minimum. The general of a non-violent' 
army has got to have greater presence of mind 
than that of a violent army, and God would 
bless him with the necessary resourcefulness to 
meet situations as they arise.” 

Shri Kher now raised a philosophical question. 
“ The world, ” he said, “ is made up of pairs 
of opposites. Where there is fear, there is 
courage too. When we walk on the edge of a 
precipice we walk warily, for we have fear. 
Fear is not a thing to despise. Will your non- 
violent army be above these pairs of opposites ?” 

“ No, ” said Gandhiji, replying in the same 
philosophical terminology. “No, for the simple 
reason that my army will represent one of the pair 
— ahimsa — out of the pair of himsa and ahimsa. 
Neither I nor my army is above the pair of 
opposites. The state of gunatita, in the language 
of the Gita, rises above himsa and ahimsa both. 
Fear has its use, but cowardice has none. I may ' 
not put my finger into the jaws of a snake, 
but the very sight of the snake need not strike 
terror into me. The trouble is that we often 
die many times before death overtakes us. 

“ But let me explain what my army will be 
like. They need not and will not have the 
resourcefulness or understanding of the general, 
but . they will have a perfect sense of discipline 
to carry’ out faithfully his orders. The general 
should ’ have the quality which commands the 
unquestioning obedience of his army, and he 
will expect of them nothing more than this 
obedience. The Dandi March was entirely my 
conception. Pandit Motilalji first laughed at 
it, he thought it to be a quixotic adventure, 
and Jamnalalji suggested instead a march on the* 
Viceroy’s House ! But I could not think of 
anything but the salt march as I had to think 
in terms of millions of our countrymen. It was 
a conception that God gave me. Pandit Motilalji 
argued for some time, and then he said he must 
not argue as after all I was the general, and he 
must have faith in me. Later when he saw me 
in Jambusar, he was completely converted for he saw 
with his own eyes the awakening that had come 
over the masses. And it was an almost magical 
awakening. Where in history shall we find, 
parallels of the cool courage that our women- 
displayed in such larg^ numbers ? ” 



August 25 , 1940 ] 


• ‘263 


HAEIJAIT 


“ And yet none of the thousands who took 
part in the movement were above the average. 
They were erring, sinning mortals. God has a 
way of making use of the most fragile instru- 
ments and remaining Himself untouched by 
everything. Only He is gu 7 iatita” 

The Real Equipment 

“ And then what after all is the army that 
wins ? You know Rama’s reply to Vibhishana 
when the latter wondered how E.ama would be 
able to conquer a foe like Ravana, when he had 
no chariot, no armour, nor any shoes to his 
feet ? Rama says 

“The chariot, my dear Vibhishana, that wins the 
victory for Rama is of a different sort from the 
usual one. Manliness and courage are its wheels; 
unflinching truth and character its banners and 
standards; strength, discrimination, self-restraint and 
benevolence its horses, with forgiveness, mercy, 
equanimity their reins; prayer to God is that 
conqueror’s unerring charioteer, dispassion his shield, 
contentment his sword, charity his ^axe, intellect his 
spear, and perfect science his stout bow. His pure 
and unwavering mind stands for a quiver, his men- 
tal quietude and his practice of yama and niyama 
stand for the sheaf of arrows, and the homage he 
pays to Brahmanas and his guru is his impenetrable 
armour. There is no other equipment for victory 
comparable to this; and, my dear friend, there is no 
enemy who can conquer the man who takes his 
stand on the chariot of dhayma. He who has a 
powerful chariot like this is a warrior who can con- 
rquer even that great and invincible enemy — the 
world. Hearken unto me and fear not. ” 

“That is the equipment,” added Gandhiji, “that 
can lead us to victory. I have not retired from 
the world, nor do I mean to. I am no recluse. 

I am content to do what little work I can 

in Sevagram and give what guidance I can to 

those that come to me. What we need is faith. 
And what is there to be lost in following the 
right path ? The worst that can happen to us 
is that we shall be crushed. Better to be 
crushed than to be vanquished. 

“ But if we had to equip ourselves violently, 

I should be at my wit’s end. I cannot even 
think out an armament plan, much less work 
it. On the other hand my non-violent plan is 

incredibly simpler and easier, and with God as 

our Commander and Infallible Guide where is 
there cause for any fear ? ” 

Sevagram, 21-8-40 M. D. 

(To be concluded in the next issue ) 


Gandhiji only made a reference to these verses 
from Tulsidas’ l^amayan. I translate them here 
fully for the benefit of the reader. M. D. 


Some Books by Gandhiji 


Salyagraha in South Africa Rs. 4 8 
My Early Life ] 0 

Speeches and Wrilingii 4 0 

Cent Per Cent Swaclc^shi ] 8 

Hind Swaraj CJ 4 

Self-Restraint v. Solf-'lndulgcnce 

Parts I cVs 11 (each) 1 0 


Avilable at Harijaji oflicc — Poona 4 


0 8 
0 2 
0 9 
0 5 
0 2 


0 3 


ADULT EDUCATION THROUGH 
HANDICRAFTS 
II 

A case of the effective use of s handicraft 
in strengthening the dull memory o£ a girl is 
described in chapter V entitled “ Spinning and 
Weaving for Home and Market At a settle- 
ment school in the Southern Highlands, several 
children had been bringing rugs that they bad 
made on their family looms. Inquiry revealed 
the fact that all the family had taken a hand 
in weaving except the dull girl, who could 
never remember how to do anything. When 
asked if she would care to come to school and 
learn to weave, she was delighted, but her 
expression changed immediately. “It is no use, 
I can’t learn anything," she said. 

“ The teacher encouraged her to try. At first she 
would sit at the loom and do only what she was 
told; when it came to a change, she could not 
remember, and either stopped or continued in the 
same way. But whatever she completed was well 
done.... The girl was always on hand before weav- 
ing started, always stayed at her loom as long as 
she could, and little by little she learned how to 
remember. Finally she could make a simple rug 
entirely by herself. She was then asked to help 
beginners. This opened up a new world to her, and 
stimulated by the hope of showing others how to 
weave, she learned to warp up a loom, and then 
taught others. All this required a long time, but 
whatever she learned she retained, and now she 
weaves several kinds of articles... including the old 
mountain coverlets which she likes best.** 

The capacity of handicrafts to provide “fresh- 
ness to body and mind" has given birth to 
the science of “occupational therapy”, and they 
have come to be an indispensable feature of 
treatment in the best American hospitals, parti- 
cularly in mental hospitals and among the 
feeble-minded. 

The educative value of handicrafts rests on a 
deep scientific foundation. As Charles Eliot has 
observed, “ We have lately become convinced 
that accurate work with carpenter s tooZ, or lathe 
or hammer and anvil, or violin, or piano^ or 
pencil, or crayon, or cameVs hair brush, trains well 
the same nerves and ganglia with which we do 
what is ordinarily called thinking." The practice 
of the handicrafts has thus two distinct func- 
tions in adult education; one, as an incentive to 
participation in the generally accepted forms of 
learning, the other as having strong potentiality 
for learning within itself. “ In the former, a 
handicraft may encourage reading, writing, 
inquiry, analysis, discussion, and other activities 
associated with formal education.. ..but a handi- 
craft in its practice also provides training in 
estimating, measuring, in judging the yielding and 
resisting qualities of materials, the powers and 
limitations of tools, and it affords exercise in 
the choosing of colour, form, texture and other 
qualities both practical and aesthetic. Thus wc 
may experience through a handicraft the cultural 



264 


HARIJAN 


[ AUGUST 25, 194a 


satisfaction which comes through knowing, and 
also which comes through doing"' 

‘‘ This double advantage/" concludes Mr. Eaton, 
“cannot be too highly esteemed. In our systems 
of formal schooling and in our general attitude 
toward education we have overemphasized intellec- 
tuality, the thinking of things, and have neglected 
the educational importance of the doing of things- 
In life the two cannot be entirely separated, nor should 
they be; it is through their happy and constructive 
blending that we grow, experience and advance. As 
Ernst Harms so well expressed it, ‘ Human life 
and human culture as well consists not only of 
thoughts but also of feelings and impulses that 
spring from aesthetic and moral sources.* And from 
wide observation and experience he has concluded 
that * of all the means by which we can educate 
the whole personality none seems more effective 
than the home crafts and other types of handicraft^ ” 

Educationists and organisers of adult education 
drives in this country would do well to seriously 
consider and ponder these words of wisdom. We 
arc accustomed to associate learning or education 
with books, classes and schools. Is it not possible 
that we tend to overlook the great amount of 
learning that comes through doing, and especially 
doing work with the hands which calls for skill, 
thought and artistry ? Learning through books 
and the wide use of reading and writing are, 
as Mr. Eaton points out, “for the vast masses 
of our people comparatively recent achievements; 
making things with the hands has been in 
everyday practice for ages/* 

Sevagram, 17-7-40 Pyarelal 

Notes 

Debt Bondage of A Hill Tribe 

Shri Mandeswar Sarma, who is working among 
the hillmen of Madugole Agency area in the 
Vizagapatam District, writes : 

“ I am glad to inform you that the debt bondage 
system prevailing from ages in these areas has been 
abolished very recently by the Government of Madras 
as the result of the efforts of the Hill Tribes’ 
Association and the Provincial Zaim Ryots ’ Associa- 
tion. Debt bondage means that the hill muttahdars 
and employers advance some money, say Rs, 50 or 
60, to tribesmen and exact whole-time services of the 
meek hillmen for 5, 10 and even 20 years, and at 
times for generations together. By this new regula- 
tion thousands of hillmen have been set free. We 
are leading the hillmen in all these matters in a 
non-violent groove. I am helping them to realize 
non-violent values by themselves. It is our ambition 
to take you to this area after three thousand persons 
actively take to the spinning wheel and the takli. 
For this we need your blessing. They are about 
twenty thousand. At present twelve hundred hillmen 
are spinning. We are also trying to wean them 
from drink.” 

Though the Madras Government have taken 
long to redress the glaring wrong referred to 


here, they deserve to be thanked on the prin- 
ciple that it is better to be late than never. 

It should now be easier for the workers like 
Shri Sarma to carry out ameliorative measures 
among the hillmen. My blessing he has. I do 
not know that I can hold out any hope of 
visiting his area even if he succeeds in getting 
three thousand charkhas going among the hill- 
men. He should have no difficulty in realising 
his modest ambition. 

Sevagram, 4-8-40 

Improper Use 

There is in Kashmir a firm called Ganju 
House. I do not know any of its partners or 
the nature of the business done by the Company. 
Shri H. Kotak who was for some time in the 
Ashram at Sabarmati and later in the A. L S. A.,, 
having ceased connection with the latter, joined 
the Ganju House and advertised it and his 
connection with it by using without my permis- 
sion a private and personal letter written to him 
by me. My attention was drawn to the improper 
use. I rebuked Shri Kotak for such use of my 
letter. He has realised his mistake and sent the 
following notice to the Lahore Tribune for 
publication : 

‘‘A notice was published in the name of this 
House (meaning Ganju House) mentioning my 
name and connected witli it a letter from Gandhiji 
which had no connection with the House. I had 
made use of a private and personal letter. My 
action was highly improper and wholly unauthorised, 

1 am in iny present work solely on my own. He 
is not interested in it.’* 

I am glad that Shri Kotak has repaired the 
blunder. 

Sevagram, 21-8-40 M. K. G. 

Wanted Agents 

For selling copies of Harijan in various towns of 
India. For terms apply to the Manager. 

Song Celestial by Edwin Arnold. Price 12 As + 
Postage 2 As. 

Bhagavadgita by Rajaji. Paj^er cover 6 As. + 2 As. 
Dc luxe Rc. 1 + 3 As. 

Empire or Democracy? by L. IJarnes. Price 
Rs. 5-10 + Postage 4 Annas. 

Available at Harijan Office — Poona 4 

CONTENTS 

PAGE- 

Dr, Lohia Again ... ... M. K. Gandhi 257 - 

Gandhi Scholarships ... Shyamlal 258 
Village Reconstruction in 


THE South 

A. K. 

259. 

Equal Distribution 

M. K. Gandlii 260 

An Interesting Discourse-I 

M. D. 

261 

Adult Education through 

Handicrafts— II 

Pyarelal 

263’ 

Notes : 

Asoka and Non-violence 

M. K. G. 

259' 

Debt Bondage of a 

Hill Tribe 

M. K. G. 

264- 

Improper Use 

M. K. G. 

264- 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
Subscription Rates — INLAND : One year, Rs. 4, Six months, Rs. 2-8, FOREIGN : One year, Rs. 5-8 or, 8 sh. or 2 $. « 



Reg. No. B. 3092 





of the Brave 



Editor: MAHADEV DESAI 


VoL. VIII No. 29 ] POONA,- SUNDAY, SEPTEMBER 1. 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


MY IDEA OF A l^LICE FOECE 

( By M. JSL Gandhi ) 

A friend writes as follows: 

“The English sister, whom you recently quoted, 
rightly says that efforts should always be made to 
stem external aggression by non-violent means, and 
that present circumstances offer a peculiarly suitable 
opportunity for demonstrating that it is possible to 
secure better results through non-violence than through 
armed force. But ahimsa as a weapon to counter 
internal disorders presents difficulties. In our country 
there can be three types of internal disturbances, viz. 
communal, industrial, and dacoities. The root causes 
of these are .mutual distrust, social injustice, and 
grinding poverty due to economic exploitation and 
unemployment. So long as these causes exist, the 
threefold disturbances will take place in spite of 
armed forces. Your constructive programme is the 
only means of removing these root causes. But it 
will take time. What is to be done in the mean* 
time ? Can non-violence solve the difficulties ? 

Can we envisage an order of society in which we 
will not have to resort to himsa in any. form what- 
soever ? Suppose for argument’s sake that there 
exists a society where the majority does not possess 
goods that would excite envy and where everyone 
has the wherewithal to live contentedly. Even then 
it does not seem possible that there will be no dis- 
putes over proprietorship of land, lending and borrowing 
of money, and other business dealings. For these, 
therefore, we must provide the means of justice and 
see that the decisions of the courts or arbitration 
boards are carried out. For this it will be essential 
to have a police force. You have yielded this point. 
But I should like to know what restrictions you 
would place on the police force. If there were a 
non-violent Government in power today, would it use 
the police force for quelling internal disorders? And 
are you willing to maintain it for all time at only 
temporarily ? My mind refuses to go so far as to 
envisage a time when a police force will be a 
superfluity. There seems to me to be no escape 
from placing this limitation, as it were, on ahimsa.” 

The questions asked in this letter are of the 
utmost importance and deserve notice. If true 
ahimsa had come into being within us, and if 
our so-called satyagraha movements had been 
truly non-violent, these questions would not have 
arisen because they would have been solved. 

For one who has never seen the arctiq, regions 
an imaginary description of them, however 
elaborate, can convey but an inadequate idea of 
the reality. Even so is it with ahimsa. If all 


Congressmen had been true to their creed, we 
would not be vacilladng between violence and 
non-violence as we are today. The fruits of 
ahimsa would be in evidence everywhere. There 
would be communal harmony, the demon of 
untouchability would have been cast out, and, 
generally speaking, we should have evolved an 
ordered society. But the reverse is the case just 
now. There is even definite hostility to the 
Congress in certain quarters. The word of 
Congressmen is not always relied on. The Muslim 
League and most of the Princes have no faith 
in the Congress and are in fact inimical to it. 
If Congressmen had true ahimsa in them, there 
would be none of this distrust. In fact the 
Congress would be the beloved of all. 

Therefore I can only place an imaginary 
picture before the votaries of ahimsa. 

So long as we are not saturated with pure 
ahimsa we cannot possibly win Swaraj through 
non-violence. We can come into power only 
when wc are in a majority or, in other words, 
when the large majority of people are willing 
to abide by the law of ahimsa. When this 
happy state prevails the spirit of violence will 
have all but vanished and internal disorder will 
have come under control. 

Nevertheless I have conceded that even in a 
non-violent State a police force may be neces- 
ary. This, I admit, is a sign of my imperfect 
ahimsa. I have not the courage to declare that 
we can carry on without a police force as I 
have in respect of an army. Of course I can 
and do envisage a state where the police will 
not be necessary; but ,whether we shall succeed 
in realising it, the future alone will show. 

The police of my conception will, however, 
be of a wholly different pattern from the 
present-day force. Its ranks will be composed of 
believers in non-violence. They will be servants, 
not. masters, of the people. The people will 
instinctivey render them every help, and through 
mutual co-operation they will easily deal with 
the ever-decreasing disturbances. The police force 
will have some kind of arms, but they will be 
rarely used, if at all. In fact the policemen will 
be reformers. Their police work will be con- 
fined primarily to robbers and dacoits. Quarrels 
between labour ’ and capital and strikes will be 
few and far between in a non-violent State* 
because the influence of the non-violent majority 
will be so great as to command the respect of 
the principal elements in society. Similarly there 
will he no room for communal disturbances. 



■266 


HAEIJAIT 


[ Septembee 1, 1940 


Then we must remember that when such a 
Congress Government comes into power the 
large majority of men and women of 21 years 
and over will have been enfranchised. The rigid 
and cramped constitution of today has of course 
no place in this picture. 

Sevagram, 20-8-40 

( Translated from Gujarati ) 

AN INTERESTING DISCOURSE 

II 

A Sister’s Questions 

Now came questions of practical difficulty. 

Q. “ May a non-violent man possess wealth, 
and if he may, how can he keep it non- 
violently ? ” 

A. “He may not own any wealth, though 
he may possess millions. Let him hold it in 
trust. If he lives among dacoits and thieves, he 
may possess very little, indeed little beyond a 
loin-cloth. And if he does this, he will convert 
them. . , 

“But' youi-.- must not generalise.- In a non- 
violent State, there will be very few dacoits. 
For the individual the golden rule is that he 
will oM'n! nothing, .If I decided to settle and 
work among the so-called criminal tribes, I 
should go to, them without any belongings and 
depend on them for my food and shelter. The 
moment they feel that I am in their midst in 
order to serve them, they will be, my friends. 
In that attitude is true ahimsa. But I have 
discussed this question at length in a recent 
•article in Harijan." 

Q. “ How is one to protect the honour of 
women ? ” 

A. “I am afraid you do not read Harijan 
regularly. I discussed this question years ago, 
and have discussed it often since. The question 
may be discussed under two heads: ( 1 ) how 
is a woman to protect her own honour? and 
•(2) how are her male relatives to protect it? 

“As regards the first question, where there 
is a non-violent atmosphere, where there is the 
constant teaching of ahimsa, woman will not 
regard herself as dependent, weak or helpless. 
She is not really helpless when she is really 
pure. Her purity makes her conscious of her 
strength. I have always held that it is physi- 
cally impossible to violate a woman against her 
will. The outrage takes place only when she 
gives way to fear or does not realise her moral 
strength. If she cannot meet the assailant’s 
physical might, her purity will give her the 
strength to die before he succeeds in violating 
her. Take the case of Sita. Physically she was 
a weakling before Ravana, but her purity was 
more than a match even for his giant might. 
He tried to win her with all kinds of allure- 
ments but could not carnally touch her without 
her consent. On the other hand, if a woman 
depends on her own physical strength or upon 
a weapon she possesses, she is sure to be discom- 
fited whenever her strength is exhausted. 


“The second question is easily answered. The 
brother or father or friend will stand between 
his protege and her assailant. He will then 
either dissuade the assailant from his wicked 
purpose or allow himself to be killed by him 
in preventing him. In so laying down his life 
he will not only have done his duty, but given 
a new accession of strength to his protege who 
will now know how to protect her honour." 

“ But,” said one of the sisters from Poo na 
“ there lies the rub. How is a woman to lay 
down her life? Is it possible for her to do so?” 

“ Oh ! ” said Gandhiji, “ any day more possible 
for her than for man. I know that women are 
capable of throwing away their lives for a much 
lesser purpose. Only a few days ago a young 
girl of twenty burnt herself to death as she 
felt she was being persecuted for refusing to 
go in for ordinary studies. And she perished 
with such cool courage and determination. She 
ignited her sari with an ordinary oil-light and 
did not so much as raise a cry, so that the 
people in the neighbouring room were unaware 
of the happening until all was over. I do not 
give these details to commend her example, but 
to show how easily woman can throw away 
her life. I at any rate am incapable of this 
courage. But I agree that it is not the external 
light but the inner light that is needed.” 

The same sister wondered how one was to 
avoid anger and violence altogether in dealing 
with children. “ You know our old adage, ” 
said Gandhiji laughing heartily, “play with him 
till he is five, hammer him for ten years, treat 
him as your friend when he is sixteen. ” “ But,” 
he added, “don’t you worry. If you have to 
be angry with your child on occasions, I shall 
call that anger non-violent anger. I am speaking 
of wise mothers, not the ignorant ones who do 
not deserve to be mothers. ” 

Central Teaching of the Gita 

The discussion again took a serious turn with 
a challenging question on the philosophy of the 
Gita: “Is the central teaching of the Gita 
selfless action or non-violence?” 

“I have no doubt that it is awasafeiz — self- 
less action. Indeed I have called my little trans- 
lation of the Gita Anasdktiyoga. And aiiUsakti 
transcends ahimsa. He who would be anasabta 
(selfless) has necessarily to practise non-violence 
in order to attain the state of selflessness. 
Ahimsa is, therefore, a necessary preliminary, it' 
is included in anasaktU it does not go beyond it.” 

“ Then does the Gita teach himsa and ahimsa 
both ?” 

I do not read that meaning in the Gita. 

It is quite likely that the author did not write 
it to inculcate ahimsa, but as a commentator 
draws innumerable interpretations from a poetic 
text, even so I interpret the Gita to mean that, 
if its central theme is anasakti, it also teaches 
ahimsa. Whilst, we are in the flesh and tread 
the solid earth, we have to practise ahimsa. !<* 
the life beyond there is no himsa or ahimsa.” 



HARIJAN 


267 


Septembee 1, 1940 ] 


“ But,” said Balasaheb Kher, Lord Krishna 
actually counters the doctrine of ahimsa. For 
Arjuna utters this pacifist resolve: 

Better I deem it, if my kinsmen strike, 

To face them weaponless, and bare my breast 
To shaft and spear, than answer blow with blow’. 

And Lord Krishna teaches him to answer blow 
with blow.” 

What to Do ? 

“ There I join issue with you,” said Gandhiji. 

Those words of Arjuna were words of preten- 
tious wisdom. ‘ Until yesterday,’ says Krishna 
to him, ‘ you fought your kinsmen with deadly 
weapons without the slightest compunction. Even 
today you would strike if the enemy was a 
a stranger and not your own kith and kin!’ 
The question before him was not of non-violence, 
but whether he should slay his nearest and 
dearest.” 

Again the questioners came down to solid 
earth, and began to put questions about the 
Congress and the attitude of those who believed 
in complete non-violence. Gandhiji explained that 
' they should refrain till he gave the word. He 
wanted still to plead with the leaders who had 
passed the Poona resolution. He expected to 
.show them that the* Congress would lose all 
its prestige if they adhered to the new policy. 
But the question had to be dealt with patiently. 
On the other hand it did not matter even if 
the Congress resolution received no response. 
The resolution was as good as enforced, when 
it was deliberately passed, and their duty did 
not alter with the refusal of the Government 
to respond. “Besides,” he added, “there is an 
inherent flaw in the Poona resolution. It should 
be obvious to the meanest understanding that, 
if you think that you cannot do without arms 
in meeting foreign aggression, they would 
a fortiori be needed in dealing with daily distur- 
bances — internecine feuds, dacoities and riots. 
For organised unarmed resistance against an 
organised invasion is any day easier than 
deliberate ahimsa in face of a dacoit who breaks 
into your house at night. That calls for ahimsa 
of the highest type.” 

Miscellaneous Questions 

Now came a few miscellaneous questions. “ Can 
one work in two capacities — one’s own indivi- 
dual capacity and one’s representative capacity ?” 

“ Yes, but theiy should not be in conflict with 
.'eadh other. And how can a leader follow the 
people? He has to lead them, and they have 
to follow him. A newspaper may both lead 
and follow the public, but not a leader of the 
people.” 

“Then, how is it that the Sardar is reported 
to have said in Ahmedabad that individually he 
would follow Mahatmaji but otherwise he would 
act as a representative of his province?” * 

“ I do pot believe that he said this. Can one 
think of the Sardar taking up the sword as a 
representative of Gujarat, and abandoning it in 
his individual capacity?” 


“ You have told us how to behave in case of 
riots. May we know how you acted in 1921 
when there was rioting on the day the Prince 
of Wales arrived in Bombay?” 

“There were two occasions. The first was the 
Rowlatt Act Satyagraha. Then as I was discharged 
near Marine Lines I heard that rioting was 
going on near Pydhunie. I got into a car, drove 
straight to the scene, and was able to restrain 
the crowd. The second was at the time of the 
Prince of Wales’ visit when the people were 
burning motors, tram cars, etc. I went to the 
scene and pacified them. But riots broke out 
at Byculla and spread in other parts. The anger 
was against Congressmen. I did not go myself, 
but I sent Congressmen to face the angry crowds 
and pacify them. That was a most delicate 
situation. I purposely did not go myself, because 
I thought an injury to me by the angered 
crowd would be attended with much bloodshed 
instead of resulting in pacification. 

“That, however, is not to say that I am a 
brave man. I am by nature timid, but God has- 
always come to my rescue and blessed me with 
the courage needed for the occasion. The one 
occasion on which my courage was put to the 
■severest test was on 13th January 1897 when, 
acting against Mr. Escombe’s advice not to 
disembark until dusk, I went ashore and faced 
the howling crowd determined on lynching me. 
I was surrounded by thousands of them, I was- 
pelted with stones and kicked, but my courage 
did not fail me." I really cannot say how the 
courage came to- me. But it did. God is great.”" 
Sevagram, 26-8-40 M. D. 

For details see Aiitohiography^ part III chaps. 1 — 3- 

ANDREWS MEMORIAL FUND 

( Statement of donations received up to 20th August 
1940 towards the Deenabandhu C, F. Andrews 


Memorial Fund) Rs. 

Shri Ram Kishore, Lucknow 10 

Shri A. V. Thakkar, Delhi 50 

Shri Prakash Nath, Lahore 50 

Shri Ganga Prasad, Ramgarh 50 

Dr. Kanwar Shamshere Singh, Simla 500 

Smt. Rajkumari Amrit Kaur, Simla 500 

Mrs. Vimala Setalvad, Bombay 100 

Seth G. D. Birla, Calcutta 500 

Mrs. Urmila Joshi, New Delhi 2 

Shri Gurdial Mallick, Santiniketan 101 

Shri Shiva Prasad Gupta, Benares 51 

Shri Amir Chand Khanna, Delhi 50 

Shri H. Sakharam Rau, Poona 11 

Shri A. Srinivasa Pai, Kasaragod 5 

The Dowager Maharanee of Vizianagaram 200 
Shri Damodardas V. Patwari, Palanpur 100 

Mr. & Mrs. Shantikumar N. Morarjee 100 

Seth Ambalal Sarabhai, Ahmedabad 100 

Shri Rameshwardas, Dhulia 25 

Shri Tulsi Mooranjun 5 

Shri Kalidas Topiwala 10 


Rs. 2,520 



368 


JdAKiJAJN 


[ OJiiFTEMtJjUK 1, 1940 



-f-jcLtijan 


Sep. 1 


1940 


NON-VIOLENCE OF THE BRAVE 

( By M. K> Gandhi ) 

A correspondent writes: 

“You say non-violence is for the brave, not for 
cowards. But, in my opinion, in India the brave are 
conspicuous by their absence. Even if we claim to be 
brave, how is the world to believe us when it knows 
that India has no arms and is therefore incapable 
of defending herself? What then should we do to 
cultivate non-violence of the brave?” 

The correspondent is wrong in thinking that 
in India the brave are conspicuous by their 
absence. It is a matter for shame that because 
foreigners once labelled us as cowards we should 
accept the label. Man often becomes what he 
believes himself to be. If I keep on saying to 
myself that I cannot do a certain thing, it is 
possible that I may end by really becoming 

incapable of doing it. On the contrary, if I 
have the belief that I can do it, I shall surely 
acquire the capacity to do it even if I may not 

have it at the beginning. Again it is wrong 

to say that the world today believes us to be 
cowards. It has ceased to think so since the 

satyagraha campaign. The Congress prestige has 
risen very high in the West diuring the past 
twenty years. The world is watching with 
astonished interest the fact that although we 
have no arms we are hoping to win Swaraj, 
and have indeed come very near it. Moreover, 
it sees in our non-violent movement rays of 
hope for peace in the world and its salvation 
from the hell of carnage. The bulk of mankind 
has come to believe that, if ever the spirit of 
revenge is to vanish and bloody wars are to 
cease, the happy event can happen only through 
the policy of non-violence adopted by the 
Congress. The correspondent’s fear and suspicion 
arc, therefore, unfounded. 

It will now be seen that the fact that India 
is unarmed is no obstacle in the path of ahimsa. 
The forcible disarmament of India by the British 
Government was indeed a grave wrong and a 
cruel injustice. But we can turn even injustice 
to our advantage if God be with us, or if 
you prefer, we have the skill to do so. And 
such a thing has happened in India. 

Arms are surely unnecessary for a training in 
ahimsa. In fact the arms, if any, have to be 
thrown away, as the Khansaheb did in the 
Frontier Province. Those who hold that it is 
essential to learn violence before we can learn 
non-violence, would hold that only sinners can* 
be saints. 

Just as one must learn the art of killing in 
the training for violence, so one must learn the 
art of dying in the training for non-violence. 


Violence does not mean emancipation from fear, 
but discovering the means of combating the 
cause of fear. Non-violence, on the other hand, 
has no cause for fear. The votary of non- 
violence has to cultivate the capacity for sacrifice 
of the highest type in order to be free from 
fear. He recks not if he should lose his land, 
his wealth, his life. He who has not overcome 
all fear cannot practise ahimsa to perfection. The 
votary of ahimsa has only one fear, that is of 
God. He who seeks refuge in God ought to 
have a glimpse of the Atman that transcends the 
body; and the moment one has a glimpse of the 
Imperishable Atman one sheds the love of the 
perishable body. Training in non-violence is thus 
diametrically opposed to training in violence. 
Violence is needed for the protection of things 
external, non-violence is needed for the protec- 
tion of the Atman, for the protection of one’s 
honour. 

This non-violence cannot be learnt by staying 
at home. It needs enterprise. In order to test 
ourselves we should learn to dare danger and 
death, mortify the flesh and acquire the capacity 
to endure all manner of hardships. He who 
trembles or takes to his heels the -moment he 
sees two people fighting is not non-violent, but 
a coward. A non-violent person will lay down 
his life in preventing such quarrels. The bravery 
of the non-violent is vastly superior to that of 
the violent. The badge of the violent is his 
weapon — spear, or sword, or rifle. God is the 
shield of the non-violent. 

This is not a course of training for one in- 
tending to learn non-violence. But it is easy to 
evolve one from the principles I have laid down. 

It will be evident from the foregoing that 
there is no comparison between the two types 
of bravery. The one is limited, the other is 
limitless. There is no such thing as out-daring 
or out-fighting non-violence. Non-violence is 
invincible. There need be no doubt that this 
non-violence can be achieved. The history of 
the past twenty years should be enough to 
reassure us. 

Sevagram, 27-8-40 

( Translated from Gujarati ) 

QUESTION BOX 

(By M. K. Gandhi) 

A. 1. S. A. Employees 

Q. The Secretary of the Bhiwani Congress 
committee asks : Is there a ban on A. I. S. A. 
employees as far as signing the satyagraha pledge 
is concerned? They fulfil all the conditions of 
the pledge, but they may not offer themselves 
for jail without the permission of the A. I. S. A., 
and therefore they cannot sign the form. Is it 
then permissible for them to retain their 
membership of Congress executive committees, 
or should they resign from them ? 

A. Your interpretation of the rule of the 
A. I. S. A. is correct. No one can work ih 
two spheres at the same time. The work of 
the A. I. S. A. too is Congress work. None 




SEPTEMBER 1, iy4U J 


HAKiJAJN 




■of its employees can be allowed to court 
imprisonment. His absence must harm khadi. 
Therefore, granted that the rule is necessary, it 
is plain that no A. 1. S. A. employee may remain 
,a member of a Congress committee. The entire 
.committee may be arrested, or if the com- 
mittee so desires, it can order any of its 
members to court imprisonment. 

( Translated from Hindustani ) 

Uncertified Khadi 

Q. The Secretary also asks: Members of Con- 
gress local executive committees sometimes sell 
uncertified khadi. They give the same wages to 
spinners and weavers as the A. I. S. A. Only 
their khadi is not certified. According to Con- 
gress rules are they entitled to remain on 
Congress committees or should they resign from 
them? 

A. In my opinion they are not entitled to 
membership of Congress committees. The official 
.answer must be officially secured. If it is correct 
that they give the same wages to spinners and 
weavers, why do they not get the necessary 
certificate from the A. I. S. A.? 

( Translated from Hindustani ) 

How to Convert Atheists 

Q. How can one convert atheists to belief 
in God and religion? 

A. There is only one way. The true servant 

• of God can convert the atheist by means of his 

• own purity and good conduct. It can never be 
done by argument. Innumerable books have been 
written to prove the existence of God, and if 
.argument could have prevailed, there would not 
be a single atheist in the world today. But the 
opposite is the case. In spite of all the literature 
on the subject, atheism is on the increase. Often, 
however, the man who calls himself an atheist 
is not one in reality; and the converse also is 
•equally true. Atheists sometimes say, “If you 
,are believers, then we are unbelievers.” And they 
have a right to say so, for self-styled believers 
are often not so in reality. Many worship God 
because it is the fashion to do so or in order 
to deceive the world. How can such persons 
have any influence on atheists? Therefore let 
the believer realise and have the faith that, if 
he is true to God, his neighbours will instinct- 
ively not be atheists. Do not let him be 
troubled about the whole world. Let us 
remember that atheists exist by the sufferance 
■ of God. How truly has it been said that those 
who worship God in name only are not believers 
.but those who do His will ! 

( Translated from Hindustani ) 

Living Wage 

Q. You once wrote in Harijan to the effect 
that villagers are at liberty to buy yarn spun 
.in their own villages without reference to the 
living wage, and that the A. 1. S. A. should 
let them go their way in this matter. Are 
those who wear khadi woven from such yarn 
eligible as Congress delegates ? And what is the 
village worker to do in this regard ? He natur- 


ally does propaganda in favour of a living 
wage. There are always a certain number of 
villagers who buy A. I. S. A. khadi, but at the 
same time there are many who cannot afford to 
do so. And even if they pay less than the 
living wage, there is no doubt that the spinners 
get some relief and khadi finds a certain place 
in village life too. Is the village worker there 
to encourage such khadi ? 

A. If we were always careful enough not to 
read into a writer’s sentences a meaning which 
defeats his very purpose, such questions v^ould 
rarely arise. Where no wages are paid and the 
yarn is self-spun, no ban of any kind can be 
applied. It is of course assumed that the 
A. I. S. A. rule is not broken on a false plea of 
self-sufficiency. The same applies to the village 
worker. 

But there is one important issue raised in 
your questions. The A. 1. S. A. worker in a 
particular village cannot pay a living wage if 
he is to use the village khadi. Therefore he 
will buy yarn at a lesser rate and give some 
work to the spinners who would otherwise get 
nothing. But he may not become a member of 
the Congress. He will serve the Congress from 
without. Sometimes such persons serve the Con- 
gress far better, and they are moreover saved 
from the ambitions that membership often 
carries with it. It is clear that such khadi 
cannot be sold outside the village. It should 
all be absorbed locally. The moment uncertified 
khadi is put into the market the A. 1. S. A, 
law is broken and real khadi receives a setback. 
The A. I. S. A. is labouring under great stress 
in trying to raise the spinners’ wages. Never 
in the world have I heard of wages being 
increased from one or two pice to 8 or 12 
pice per day without the wage-earners having 
asked for a rise in pay. The A. I. S. A. has 
done monumental work in this matter. 

(Translated from Hindustani') 

Will It Fail ? 

Q. You say that the Congress is not cent 
per cent non-violent today. If that is so, will 
not -a satyagraha movement launched by it be 
unsuccessful ? 

A. It is not possible for a large popular 
organisation like the Congress to be wholly non- 
violent, for the simple reason that all its members 
cannot have attained a standard level of non- 
violence. But it is perfectly possible for some 
of its members, who truly understand the impli- 
cations of pure ahimsa and observe its law in 
their lives, to lead a successful satyagraha move- 
ment. This truth has even been demonstrated 
so far by the Congress. 

Sevagram, 27-8-40 ( Translated from Gujarati). 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radhakrishnan. (New Edition) Rs. 5-10-0 
Postage 8 As, Available at Harijan office-Poona 4. 

Empire or Democracy ? by L. Barnes. 

Price Rs. 5-10 + Postage 4 Annas. 



4 V 




I kjnir iiLiVJ jDJiiii 1, 


ANDREWS MEMORIAL 
( By M. K, Gandhi ) 

A friend, who is himself trying to collect 

for the Andrews Memorial, has written a letter 
from which I take the following relevant 
paragraphs : 

‘‘As I read it there are four objects of the appeal 
(you will kindly correct me, if I am wrong): 

(i) Ensuring the permanence of the present establi- 

shed work by an endowment to enable Santiniketan 
to fulfil Andrews’ high hopes for it, unhampered 

by the constant financial anxiety whth which it is 
now burdened. 

This is obviously the first need, for it would be 
doubtful wisdom to add new developments to an 

institution which itself is insecure. At the same time 
the amount required for this purpose is nowhere 

specified. 

If there is a sufficiently generous response to the 
appeal, providing more than is required for this first 
need, then it will be possible to go on to the other 
three parts of the scheme, viz. 

( ii ) A small but properly equipped hospital ; 

{ iii ) The provision of ‘ Deenabandhu wells ’ in the 
district ; 

( iv ) The provision of the Hall of Christian culture. 

Now, if I am right in this, it must surely occur 
to the reader of the appeal that, if, as seems likely, 
the institution requires a considerable sum for its 
endowment fund, the chances that any contributions 
made now will actually be available for either of the 
second, third or fourth part of the scheme are some- 
what remote. It is not stated whether contributors 
are allowed to earmark tlieir gifts for any of the 
special objects in the scheme; and obviously, if a 
large proportion of contributors did so, the primary 
object of the appeal — the placing of Santiniketan 
on a sound basis financially — may be defeated. 

My second difficulty was about the statement of 
the aims, and I had in view particularly those of 
the proposed hall of Christian culture, in which I am 
naturally interested. 

That is first described as providing for India’s 
thought contact with the Western world, on the 
analogy of the ‘Cheena Bhavan’ and China. This 
suggests a doubtful identification of ‘Christian culture’ 
and ‘Western culture.’ 

The statement then goes on to speak of (a) the 
application of the teaching and character of Christ to 
international problems, and ( b ) the task of interpret- 
ing in Eastern modes of thought the spirit and 
mind of Christ. 

What we have, therefore, seems to be three rather 
different aims, all very important and relevant. 
Perhaps it may be necessary to leave it in this 
rather wide form; and yet I cannot help thinking 
that a more careful wording might make clear the 
relation of the other two aspects of the aim to that 
which is described as the ‘central purpose’. 

Thirdly, I raised the question of trustees and a 
sound basis for confidence in the future running of 
the scheme. If I understand your letter rightly, the 
trustees of this special fund are to be the trustees 
'of Santiniketan and Sriniketan, mentioned at the end 


of the appeal. The appeal itself does not seem tc 
make this clear. 

Does this imply that the disposal and allocation of 
the special fund raised is directly in the hands of 
these trustees of Santiniketan, so that, in effect, the 
fund becomes an additional part of the corpus of 
the Trust ? 

It seemed to me that for a scheme of the impor- 
tance and magnitude of that contemplated in the 
appeal there would be a place for some special 
committee or body of trustees related a little more 
definitely both to the special objects and to the 
wider interests to which the appeal will extend.” 

The enquiry is pertinent and deserves a proper 
answer. As I happen to be one of the signa- 
tories to the appeal for funds, what I write may 
be taken as authoritative. The present trustees 
have made a rough calculation of the expenses 
in connection with the three definite additions 
to Santiniketan. After providing for them, a 
surplus is expected to be available which will 
go into the general funds. But naturally these 
three items will have precedence. Nevertheless 
it is open to donors to earmark their funds 
for any of the three additions, and the money 
will be so used. Therefore there need be no 
apprehension about the additions, whether dona- 
tions are earmarked or not. If I may let out 
a secret, I may say that the general appeal was 
my idea. Gurudev, who first thought of the 
memorial being identified with Santiniketan, had 
in mind only two things — the hospital and - the 
hall, the latter being the suggestion of a Christian 
friend. Deenabandhu wells were to be built out 
of Santiniketan funds. Taking the cue from 
Gurudev, I felt there should be no hesitation 
whatsoever in identifying the whole of Santi- 
niketan with Andrews’ memory. The Poet is a 
host in himself. He has an established inter- 
national fame which will grow with time. 
Nevertheless Andrews was its best advertiser. 
Gurudev has no advertising ability. He simply 
works, wishes, and then leaves his wishes 
to fate. Not so the practical Englishman. 
He felt attracted to the Poet, and found his 
peace and permanent abode in Santiniketan. 
England was his birth-place; he never tore 
himself away from her. But his soul found its 
full expression and home in Santiniketan, and 
I know, because I was his co-worker, that he 
went literally from door to door in order to 
get funds for Santiniketan. And he would often 
say to me ; ‘ Never mind Santiniketan, but you 
must get so much money for me. You know 
what Santiniketan means to me and what the 
Poet means to the world.’ And I succumbed tc- 
his advance whenever he made it, even though 
I could ill afford the time. His love for Santi- 
niketan was greater — I say this without any 
offence to anyone living in Santiniketan — than 
theirs. It was certainly as great as the Poet’s, 
and Santiniketan, as it is at present, is due 
as much to Andrews as to the Poet. Probably 
Andrews was the more persistent of the two. 



September 1, 1940 ] HARIJAN 271 


With this knowledge at the back of my 
mind I had no hesitation in suggesting that the 
appeal should be general. Hence I would say 
to would-be donors that they would miss the 
central fact of the memorial if they detached the 
three additions from Santiniketan. For the three 
together would be a poor memorial to Deena- 
bandhu if Santiniketan were no more. And let 
me say at once that Santiniketan will never 
owe its permanence to the five lakhs that may 
be collected. It will be permanent because 
the Poet has breathed life into it and the 
spirit of Andrews hovers over it. If it keeps 
up the character imparted to it by its founders, 
including Andrews, it will never die. 

The second difficulty is easily answered. The 
interpretation of Christ in the Hall of Christian 
culture will bear the imprint of the Poet’s all- 
embracing soul, and therefore Christian culture, 
as it will flourish in Santiniketan, will never 
be exclusive. Much will depend upon the Christ- 
ians who might be attracted to Santiniketan. A 
more careful wording in defining the scope of 
the Hall of Christian culture was not possible, 
was not intended. I suggest to my correspondent 
that such matters are better left in a liquid 
state. Who shall say what the future has in 
store for any of the big things of the world? 

The third difficulty is also easily disposed of. 
It had occurred even to me, but I felt that it 
would not be right to create a new trust for 
the memorial funds. The names of the present 
trustees are given in the appeal. If they are good 
enough to be made responsible for the manage- 
ment of the vast international Estate, called 
Santiniketan and Sriniketan, they might well be 
entrusted with the additional responsibility of 
dealing with the funds that may be collected 
for the memorial. 

Finally I may mention that the response hither- 
to made through the memorial appeal has been 
very poor. I know that the organisation of the 
fund rests principally upon my shoulders. I have 
done nothing in the hope that Deenabandhu’s 
solid work for submerged humanity would need 
no organised effort, and that it would evoke 
spontaneous response. I have not yet lost that 
hope. I publish the meagre list of donations 
hitherto received. The reader will notice, as I 
have noticed, that as yet there is no collection 
from the student world nor any coppers from 
the labour world. 

Sevagram, 27-8-40 

Wanted Agents 

For selling copies of Han j an in various towns of 
India. For terms apply to the Manager. 

Home and Village Doctor 
By Satish Chandra Dasgupfa 

1384 pages. 18 chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages. 
216 illustrations. Price -Rs. 5 cloth-bound; By V. P. 
P. Rs. 6. Rs. 6 leather-bound; By V. P. P. Rs. 7. 

Available at Harijan office — Poona 4. 


NON-VIOLENT CRAFTS 

The joint meeting of the A. 1. S. A. and the 
Gandhi Seva Sangh that was held last June discussed 
several questions relating to a wider understand- 
ing of the economics of khadi. At one sitting 
Gandhiji spoke at length about the non-violent 
aspect of the development of handicrafts. “As,” 
he said, “ a non-violent man’s actions will all 
be coloured by non-violence, his occupational 
activity will necessarily be non-violent. Strictly 
speaking, no activity and no industry is possible 
without a certain amount of violence, no matter 
how little. Even the very process of living is 
impossible without a certain amount of vio- 
lence. What we have to do is to minimise it 
to the greatest extent possible. Indeed the very 
word non-violence, a negative word, means that 
it is an effort to abandon the violence that is 
inevitable in life. Therefore whoever believes 
in ahimsa will engage himself in occupations 
that involve the least possible violence. Thus, 
for instance, one cannot conceive of a man be- 
lieving in non-violence carrying on the occupa- 
tion of a butcher. Not that a meat-eater cannot 
be non-violent — there are many among meat- 
eaters who are better observers of non-violence 
than those who abstain from meat, e. g. Deena- 
bandhu Andrews — but even a meat-eater 
believing in non-violence will not go in for 
shikar, and he will not engage in war or war 
preparations. Thus there are many activities 
and occupations which necessarily involve 
violence and must be eschewed by a non- 
violent man. But there is agriculture without 
which life is impossible, and which does involve 
a certain amount of violence. The determining 
factor therefore is — is the occupation founded on 
violence ? But since all activity involves some 
measure of violence, all we have to do is to 
minimise the violence involved in it. This is 
not possible without a heart-belief in non- 
violence. Suppose there is a man who does 
no actual violence, who labours for his bread, 
but who is always consumed with envy at 
other people’s wealth or prosperity. He is not 
non-violent. A non-violent occupation is thus that 
occupation which is fundamentally free from, 
violence and which involves no exploitation or 
envy of others. 

“ Now I have no historical proof, but I believe 
that there was a time in India when village 
economics were organised on the basis of such 
non-violent occupations, not on the basis of the 
rights of man but on the duties of man. Those 
who engaged themselves in such occupations did 
earn their living, but their labour contributed 
to the good of the community, A carpenter, 
for instance, ministered to the needs of the 
village farmer. He got no cash payment but was 
paid in kind by the villagers. There could be 
injustice even in this system, but it would be 
reduced to a minimum. I speak from personal 
knowledge of the life in Kathiawad of over 
sixty years ago. There was more lustre in. 



272 


HARIJAN 


[ September i, 1940 


people’s eyes, and more life in their limbs, than 
you find today. It was a life founded on 
unconscious ahimsa. 

“ Body labour w-as at the core of these occu- 
pations and industries, and there was no large 
scale machinery. For when a man is content to 
own only so much land as he can till with his 
own labour, he cannot exploit others. Handicrafts 
exclude exploitation and slavery. Large scale 
machinery concentrates wealth in the hands of 
one man who lords it over the rest who slave 
for him. For he may be trying to create ideal 
conditions for his workmen, but it is none the 
less exploitation which is a form of violence. 

‘^‘When I say that there was a time when 
society was based not on exploitation but on 
justice, I mean to suggest that truth and ahimsa 
were not virtues confined to individuals but 
were practised by communities. To me virtue 
ceases to have any value if it is cloistered 
or possible only for individuals.” 

Sevagram, 26-8-40 M. D. 

Notes 

Sindh 

The position of Congressmen in Sindh is by 
no means enviable. They have a most difficult 
time before them. Their non-violence, if they 
have it in them, has not benefited those who 
live in fear of their lives. It is true that no 
one else has helped them. I warned them at 
the very outset that they must learn the art 
of helping themselves as others do, or by non- 
violence as Congressmen are supposed or expect- 
ed to do. In some places they are organising 
national guards. Those who do, look up to 
Congressmen for help and guidance. For the 
latter have been their helpers and guides hither- 
to. Some Congressmen feel that without any 
intention themselves of taking up arms they 
can put courage into the people, if they train 
them in the art of self-defence whether with or 
without arms. The question has attained impor- 
tance and demands immediate answer in view 
of the unequivocal resolution of the A. I. C. C, 
recently held at Poona. I am quite clear that 
no Congressman, so long as he is even a four 
anna member of the Congress, can take part 
in organising or aiding self-defence groups with- 
out committing a breach of the Poona resolu- 
tion. But I am equally clear that it is the duty 
of those Congressmen who feel the need for 
helping self-defence groups and have the capa- 
city for doing so, to, go to the rescue of the 
terror-stricken men. This they can do by 
resigning their membership of the Congress. By 
doing so they will enhance the prestige of the 
Congress and their own usefulness. The fact 
that they feel the call to help is the decisive 
factor in determining t.h^ir course of action. 


Peaceful Methods ? 

A correspondent sends a leaflet published by- 
the Madras Provincial War Committee and' 
printed at the Government Press, which enu- 
merates the seven “great ideals” for which 
“war is being waged” today by England. The 
second of the ideals runs thus : 

“The ideals for which England is fighting are the- 
ideals of India. Our philosophy of life, our traditions 
of domestic and international policy have had: 

Peace for its ideal — as exemplified in the teaching 
of the Lord Buddha and Mahatma Gandhi. 

Peaceful methods and tolerance — as the means of 
political progress and international relations, as 
symbolised by the policy of India’s ideal king Asoka. 

In fighting with England we shall be fighting for 
what we hold most precious in our o^vn national 
heritage.” 

My correspondent says these leaflets are issued 
in the provincial languages and are widely dis- 
tributed among the villagers. I suggest to the 
Madras War Committee that they remove clause 
2 altogether as being untrue. For my ideal as put 
before the British people is well known. If Lord 
Buddha was on earth in the body at this- 
moment, such a war would be impossible. It 
is a travesty of truth to call English methods, 
methods of peace. Asoka’s is perhaps the only 
instance of a great king having voluntarily aban- 
doned war and adopted peaceful methods. 

It is no reflection on the British people that 
they do not accept my advice or follow Asoka’s^ 
way. These things cannot be done mechanically. 
But it is not right to give them the credit 
they do not deserve or want. Well may the 
British people who read the leaflet say : ‘ Save 
us from our friends. ’ 

Sevagram, 28-8-40 M, K. G. 

NOXiCE 

• Harijansevak ( Hindustani ), which was hitherto 
published at Delhi, has now been transferred to- 
Poona and will hereafter be published at Poona 
every Saturday. Intending subscribers are requested 
to remit their subscriptions ( Rs, 4 for one year^. 
Rs. 2-8-0 for six months inland; Rs. 5 annually 
for Burma; and Rs. 5-8-0 for foreign countries) to 
the Manager, Harijansevak — Poona 4. The retail 
price per copy is one anna, and in places where 
we have agents readers can arrange to get copies, 
through them. Agents who wish to get copies of 
Harijansevak also will please write to the Manager* 
as early as possible. Manager 


CONTENTS 


PAGE 

My Idea of a Police Force... 

M. K, Gandhi 265 

An Interesting Discourse-II 

M. D. 

266 

Andrews Memorial Fund ... 


267 

Non-violence of the Brave 

M. K. Gandhi 

268 

Question Box 

M. K. Gandhi 

268 

Andrews Memorial 

M, K. Gandhi 

270. 

Non-violent Crafts 

Notes : 

M. D. 

271 

Sindh 

M. K. G. 

272, 

Peaceful Methods ? 

M. K. G. 

272. 


Printed and Published by Vithal-Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4, 
Subscription Ridw — INLAHD ; One year, Es. 4, Six months, Es. 2-8. FOREIGN : One year, Rs. 5^8 or, 8 sh. or 2 dollars. 



Edito* i MAHADEV DESAl 


VoL. VIII No. 30 ] POONA — SUNDAY, SEPTEMBER 8, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


AHIMSA IN DAILY LIFE 

A Merchant’s Story 

If we once make up our minds to examine 
ourselves at every step, we shall find that we 
frequently infringe the law of ahimsa, and that 
we should be ever so much happier if we 
were vigilant. The need for the soft answer that 
tumeth away wrath arises every moment, but 
we scarcely realise it. Just a little exercise of 
silence, and you well may quench the wrath 
that a retort would surely have provoked. I 
have an annoying letter. I feel like replying to 
it sharply, but I sit silent over it for a couple 
of days and don’t feel like replying to it at all. 
That saves me from an unending series of darts 
and counter-darts. 

A merchant, who does not claim to be a 
“ satyagrahi ” or to have been a jail-goer, but 
who reads Harijanbandhu carefully, narrates a 
little incident in his life which has a lesson for 
every one of us. I summarise his Gujarati letter. 
*‘Ohe morning,” he says, “my younger brother, 
who was a stranger to my place, came from the 
station in a tonga. On asking him what hire 
was to be paid to the tongawalla, he said he 
had agreed to pay 14 annas. I was considerably 
irritated and said to the tongawalla: ‘That is 
how you would deceive strangers. Eight annas 
is the usual hire, and I am not going to give 
you a pice more.’ But the tongawalla said : 
‘That is not my concern. The fact is that he 
agreed to pay fourteen annas.’ It made me more 
angry. There was plenty of altercation, and at 
last I offered to pay him ten annas which was 
the- hire fixed by the Municipality. But the 
man refused to budge. I then threatened to 
take him to ' the police station. He said : ‘ I am 
going to do nothing of the kind, I will have 
my fourteen annas and not a pie less. Why do 
you fling the schedule of rates in my face ? 
Supposing I agree to accept six annas to drive 
you to the station, and at the station insist on 
the scheduled ten annas, would you give it to 
me? Would it be proper for me to insist on 
accepting nothing less than the scheduled rate?’ 
That was an argument to which there was no 
reply. But anger had blinded me, and I was 
hurt that a mere tongawalla could get the 
better of me in an argument. 

“My younger brother now intervened and 
said the tongawalla was entitled by rights to 
fourteen annas and it was no use my talking 
of the schedule. But anger had taken full. 


possession of me. I asked my brother to keep 
quiet. But if I was ready to waste time over 
a false sense of right, the tongawalla was not. 
After about an hour’s hot altercation he accepted 
ten annas and left cursing and swearing at me. 

“ But my brother was far from happy over the 
incident. When he found - that I had regained 
my calm, he reverted to the subject, and asked 
me why I had failed to appreciate the most 
convincing argument of the tongawalla. Sense 
had now cohie back to me, and I was sorry to 
have given myself to the devil in sheer pride 
and a false notion of superiority. I decided to- 
find out the tongawalla and to pay him his 
four annas. For some days I hunted for him 
in vain. One day at last I found him and asked 
him to come to my shop. He hesitated, lest 
I should scold him for that day’s conduct. But 
I told him that I wanted to make amends for 
my own stupid behaviour. I paid him his four 
annas and apologised to him. His surprise knew 
no bounds. He accepted the four annas with 
some reluctance and left in grateful joy. A sort 
of remorse had been gnawing into my mind all 
these days, and I was now at peace with myself. 
That day I had been guilty of grave himsa. 
There was not only the disinclination to do the 
right thing, there was contempt in my mind 
for the tongawalla who, I thought, was lower in 
the social scale than I. I was thoroughly ashamed 
of myself, and am hoping that God may rid me 
of any sense of high and low that may still be 
left in me.” 

A Personal Incident 

And here with some apology I propose to 
revive an incident that happened in my own 
life in the satyagraha days of 1930, Readers of 
Young India may know the story as told by 
Miraben, but I shall give it again in my own 
words. I was on the crest of a wave of 
popularity, having been ‘dictator’ for about a 
month, and crowds followed the prison-van in 
which I was being taken to the prison after 
my conviction. Some of them wanted to load 
me with garlands, but the English sergeant on 
the back of the van would not stop. I was 
appealing to the crowds to go back, but they 
chased the car, and when they found that it 
was a futile chase they flung a stone at the 
sergeant. It hit him right on the chin and 
gave him a nasty cut. “ Ah, ” he exclaimed in 
agony, catching the stone as it fell from his 
face. “See what your wretched people do ! If 


274 


HAEIJAN 


[ September 8, 1940 


they adhered to non-violence we, should have 
nothing to say, but they exploit Gandhi and 
his non-violence.” I expressed my intense sorrow 
and begged him to stop the van, so that I 
might ask the crowds to apologise to him and 
make amends. But it was useless, and he again 
began to curse our people and ‘ satyagrahis 
“But,” I pleaded with him, “what can I do 
shut up in this van? I can assure you I am 
deeply pained and ashamed and would do what- 
ever amends you would suggest. Come along, 
hit me with the stone, it will he good.” “No, 
no,” said the sergeant, now relenting. I said, 
“I mean what I say, you give me the stone, 
and I shall inflict pain on myself with it, if 
only it will pacify you.” But there was a 
wire-netting between him and me, and he 
laughed. “I know you mean what you say,” 
he said, “but it is these folks that spoil your 
game. Very few are like you. Look at what 
they have done at Peshawar. Why can t such 
people clear out of the movement?” He had 
read the newspapers and had believed the 
reports attributing violence to the Khudai 
Xhidmatgars. “I know nothing about it,” I said, 
“all I can do is to offer you my heartfelt 
apologies.” “No, please,” he said, “I under- 
stand. I am not blaming you. I am blaming the 
people who are ruining your movement.” The 
van now went past the Sabarmati Ashram, and 
1 invited him to come to my house in better 
•days. “I should be delighted if you came. And 
now perhaps you would give me your name ? ” 
1 said. He repeated it twice but I could not 
catch it. “Wont you write it down?” I asked. 
“ Certainly,” he said, “ but I have neither pen 
nor pencil.” I handed him my fountain pen 
through the wire-netting, and he wrote his name 
down on a slip of paper. In a moment we 
were at the jail gates. He proceeded to return 
to me my pen. But I said: “No, I would ask 
a favour of you, as you have been so good. 
You have that stone in your pocket. Give it to 
me and keep the pen instead. Don’t you think 
it will be a better memento ? ” “ Most gladly ” 
he said, and gave me the stone, and with over- 
flowing appreciation put the pen away in his 
pocketl I took the stone and threw it away. 
“Pray fling even the memory of it away,” 
I said. “It is gone,” he said and rushed away. 

Two years after the incident, I was being 
transferred from one jail to another and at 
Poona station wa^ put into a taxi by the Police 
Inspector in charge. As the taxi was moving, 
a sergeant came running towards it, asking the 
men to stop. I thought there was fresh trouble. 
But lo and behold, it was the same Sergeant 
Dangerfield who had recognised me and simply 
came to shake hands with me. “Well, well,” 
he said, “that incident appeared in the papers, 
and i was as a result immediately transferred 
from Ahmedabad.” “But, I do not mind it,” 
he addecj with a smile, and waved good-bye, 

I saw that a slight gesture of ahimsa had 
won me a friend that day. 


Another Discourse 

Bharatanandji, whose acquaintance the reader 
will make in another column, demurred to the 
compliment given to his countrymen, the Poles, 
by Gandhiji. “You say that the Poles were 
‘ almost non-violent’. I do not think so. There 
was black hatred in the breast of Poland, and 
I do not think the compliment is deserved.” 

“You must not take what I say, so terribly 
literally. If ten soldiers resist a force of a thou- 
sand soldiers armed cap-a-pie, the former are 
almost non-violent, because there is no capacity 
for anything like proportionate violence in them. 
But the instance I have taken of the girl is more 
appropriate. A girl who attacks her assailant 
with her nails, if she has grown them, or with 
her teeth, if she has them, is almost non-violent, 
because there is no premeditated violence in 
her. Her violence is the violence of the mouse 
against the cat.” 

“ Well then, Bapuji, I will give you an 
instance. A young Russian girl was attacked 
by a soldier. She used her nails and teeth 
against him and tore him, so to say, to pieces. 
Was she almost non-violent ? ” 

“ How can it cease to be non-violence, if 
offered on the spur of the moment, simply 
because it was successful ? ” I interposed. 

“No,” said Gandhiji almost inadvertently. 

“Then I am really puzzled,” said Bharata- 
nandji. “You say there should be no premedi- 
tated violence and no capacity to offer propor- 
tionate violence. Here in this case she by her 
success proved that she had the capacity.” 

“I am sorry,” said Gandhiji, “that I inadver- 
tently said ‘no’ to Mahadev, There was 
violence there. It was equally matched.” 

“ But, then, is not intention ultimately the 
test ? A surgeon uses his knife non-violently. 
Or a keeper of the peace uses force against 
miscreants in order to protect society. That too 
he does non-violently,” said Bharatanandji. 

“Who is to judge the intention? Not we. 
And for us the deed in most cases is the test. 
We normally look at the action and not at the 
intention. God alone knows the intention.” 

“Then God alone knows what is himsa and 
what is ahimSa.” 

“ Yes, God alone is the final judge. It is likely 
that what we believe to be an act of ahimsa is 
an act of himsa in the eyes of God. But for us 
the path is chalked out. And then you must 
know that a true practice of ahimsa means also 
in one who practises it the keenest intelligence 
and wide-awake conscience. It is difficult for 
him to err. When I used those words for 
Poland, and when I suggested to a girl believing 
herself to be helpless that she might use her 
nails and teeth without being guilty of violence, 
you must understand the meaning at the back of 
my mind. There is the refusal to bend before 
overwhelming might in the full knowledge that 
it means certain death. The Poles knew that 
they would be crushed to atoms, and yet they 



HAEIJAN 


September 8, 1940 ] 


275 


resisted the German, hordes. That was why 
I called it almost non-violence.” 

“But, Bapuji, I cannot somehow forget that it 
is God who is the judge, and God permits 
violence. There is a Puranic story I should 
like to tell you. God Shiva once suddenly dis- 
appeared as he and Parvati were in the midst 
of a conversation. But soon he appeared again. 
On being asked where he had been, he said he 
had gone to the rescue of a bhahta who had 
been attacked, but he had come back on finding 
that the bhakta had helped himself by striking 
his assailant with a stone.” 

“Well, well, no amount of argument can teach 
us ahimsa. And you must not forget that one 
cannot be sure of the purity of one’s intention 
until one has gone through the whole course of 
spiritual training laid down by masters of yoga 
like Patanjali. Perfect chittashiiddhi (purification 
of mind ) cannot be achieved in any other way.” 

Here Bharatanandji seemed to be at one with 
Gandhiji, and he agreed that anyone might 
easily deceive himself. But he came with another 
poser. “ Ahimsa, brahmacharya, spinning are all 
sadhanasT he said, “and whereas one may suit 
one, it may not suit another. Why have you 
made of ahimsa a universal precept?” 

“When a means has been tried by a scientist 
and he has found it of infallible effect he puts 
it before all. You know the maxim 

What is true of the individual is 
true of the universe.” 

“But you lay down the same law for a saint 
and a robber ! ” 

“ The law is the same; the way may be 
more difficult for the robber than for the saint. 
The law is the ideal, no matter how much 
individuals may fall short of the ideal. ” 

“ But you forget the reality before the ideal.” 

“No. The reality is always present before me, 
but my striving is always to reach the ideal. 
Euclid’s straight line exists only in our concep- 
tion, but we have always to postulate it. We 
have always to strive to draw a true line 
corresponding to Euclid’s imaginary line.” 

As I listened to this I was put in mind of 
the exactly similar words of Carlyle : “ Ideals 

can never be completely embodied in practice. 
And yet it is never to be forgotten that Ideals 
do exist; that if they be not approximated to at 
all, the whole matter goes to wreck ! Infallibly. 
No bricklayer builds a wall perfectly perpendi- 
cular; mathematically this is not possible ; a 
certain degree of perpendicularity suffices him ; 
and he, like a good bricklayer who must have 
done with his job, leaves it so. And yet if he 
sway too much from the perpendicular ; above 
all if he throw a plannet and level quite away 
from him, and pile brick on brick heedless, just 
as it comes to hand Such a bricklayer is in a 
bad way. He has forgotten himself; but the 
Law of Gravitation does not forget to act on 
him; he and his wall rush down into confused 
welter of ruin.” 

Sevagram, 2-9-40 M. D* 


HANDICRAFTS IN AMERICA 

Miss Muriel Lester writes from America to 
Gandhiji : 

“ I am trying to get people here to spin, as it 
seems to me awful waste to see hand-weaving done 
fairly widely but all the yarn used hideously coloured, 
dully regular, and machine-made. 

A Canadian friend, who was an engineer before he 
settled down in the country to revive handcrafts has 
worked for years on bettering the handloom. He took 
the English — Mrs. Thackeray’s — model with her consent 
and has given it some new modification that would 
please you. It is foolproof enough to permit even 
me to set up work and to get going on it with 
little or no trouble. I have promised to present one 
of these to an East End People’s House here in 
which I am much interested. But I will only give it 
when they begin to spin, even though they look upon 
this condition as putting the cart before the horse. 
I told them about our people in Bow ( East End of 
London), how in much less space than these people 
have, they made sandals, printed Christmas cards, did 
wood-cuts, made toys, received a lamb’s fleece, cleaned 
the wool, carded it, dyed it in God’s own colours, 
rich and varied, spun it, had it woven and made up 
into good serviceable mufflers to keep the winter cold 
out of their systems. On hearing about all this they 
showed more eagerness to pursue further their own 
crafts, and I am hopeful of gradually converting them.. 
This ‘ Housey Hospitality ’ is run by the Pax 
people. They are Catholic, complete pacifist, ‘ Non- 
Theft* people, possessing nothing. They feed 1,000 
men with a modest breakfast consisting of a bit of 
dry bread and one cup of coffee every morning. 
They serve them humbly, honouring them as God’s 
children, their brothers, whom they are proud to serve. 
The movement is spreading all over the U. S. A. 
Their wood-cuts and carving are charming. I was 
anxious to buy some for a friend but they do not 
sell. Dorothy Day, their founder, says : Directly you 
start selhng, people get upset, discuss relative skills 
and put forward claims, and count up hours spent on 
production instead of giving the whole of themselves 
joyfully to their craft.” 

It is an ill wind that blows nobody any good. 
While the mighty war lords are organising large- 
scale destruction with all the ingenuity at their 
command, humbler folk are thinking out simple 
ways and means of bringing joy into the lives 
of the poor. Who knows but that when the 
lust for blood is sated the lust for possession 
too will abate, and, among other monumental 
changes that must take place for the new order 
where war shall not be, cottage industries will 
be given their proper position in the life of the 
nation. For they give to man opportunities of 
self-expression and self-development in the realms 
of art, beauty and the spirit which the giant 
machine with its inevitable cut-throat competi- 
tion and desire for accumulating wealth cannot 
possibly give. 

Sevagram, 1-9-40 A. K. 

Empire or Democracy ? by L. Barnes. Rs. 5-10 -1- 
4 As, Available at Harijan office-Poona 4 



m 


HARIJAN 


[ September 8, 1940 



BISWA MISCARRIAGE AGAIN 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Moulvi Saheb Fazlul Haq, the Premier of the 
largest Province in all India, has done me the 
honour of addressing an open letter holding the 
National Congress, of which he was at one time 
an ardent follower and admirer, to public ridi- 
cule. In his opinion the Congress has done 
everything to wound Muslim feeling. Says the 
Moulvi Saheb : 

" On several occasions I have published instances 
of the manner in which the Congress chariot wheels 
of democracy have ridden roughshod over the feelings 
and sentiments of countless Muslims and other mino- 
rities, and in many cases with your connivance, 
approbation and consent.” 

I must plead not guilty so far as the indict- 
ment concerns me. I have claimed to have 
inquired into every case of alleged injustice 
brought to my notice. I have never hesitated 
to condemn Congress acts when facts have 
demanded condemnation. 

Let us, however, examine the latest illustration 
quoted by the .Bengal Premier in support of his 
charge. He deals at length with the notorious 
Biswa miscarriage of justice. I am invited to 
give my opinion on it. The Moulvi Saheb 
evidently had not my opinion before him when 
he penned the open letter. I refer him to Hanjan 
dated 11th ultimo (p. 244) wherein he will find 
my opinion. I adhere to every word of that 
opinion. 

If the cases of injustices quoted by him are 
on a par with the Biswa case, his indictment 
.singularly fails. The Congress Ministry had as 
much to do with the miscarriage of justice as 
the Moulvi Saheb. No judge has suggested that 
the police were under the influence of the Con- 
gress Ministry and that the latter used it to 
procure the miscarriage. The fact is that the 
ministers were in no way responsible for the 

conduct of the police or the prosecution. Mis- 
carriages, like the one under examination, have 
occurred before now in India. But in every 
case the police were held blameworthy, not 

the Government-, except when a clear case of 
Government complicity was made out. The 
Moulvi Saheb has produced no evidence what- 
soever in support of his statement that the 

ministers had in any way interfered with the 

conduct of the prosecution. 

He has produced certain remarks of the court 
on Pandit Shukla’s speech in the C. P. Assembly. 
It amounts to no more than a reflection on the 
political unwisdom of making a speech which 
would seem to prejudge the case. The court’s 
stricture in no way connects Pandit Shukla 


with the police or the prosecution. Moreover 
it is an obiter dictum which has no judicial 
value. I doubt if the court was wise in making 
the stricture without having called upon Pandit 
Shukla to explain his speech. This explanation, 
however. Pandit Shukla has given in his letter 
to the President of the Congress. 

The Moulvi Saheb has omitted to notice the 
outstanding fact that the appellate court has 
found as a matter of fact that Jagdevrao was 
killed and that many persons were seriously 
injured. Their regret is that the guilty ones 
got off scot-free. Surely the ministers cannot be 
blamed for this untoward result by the Muslims. 
If a complaint can be legitimately made by any- 
body, it is the Hindus who can make it. So far 
as I am aware there were no Hindus tried, and 
there were no serious injuries sustained by the 
Muslims. The Sessions Judge may have erred 
in weighing evidence. But the fact that he 
condemned six Muslims to the gallows is a 
matter that demands serious thinking by all 
right-minded men. For if the ones condemned 
were not guilty, some other Muslims were. 

I miss in the Moulvi Saheb’s open letter any 
regret for the murder of a Hindu leader and 
for serious injury to other Hindus, and the fact 
that the culprits who were responsible for the 
murder and injuries had gone unpunished. Pandit 
Shukla was a fellow Premier in ^ a neighbouring 
Province. I suggest to the Bengal Premier that 
courtesy required him to ask for Pandit Shukla’s 
explanation before condemning him. 

Sevagram, 3-9-40 

QUESTION BOX 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

A Riddle 

Q. You have said that a non-violent person 
should at all times be ready to renounce every- 
thing, for the things of this world pertain to 
the body and not to the spirit. If we were all 
thus prepared, the question of violent or non- 
violent warfare would not arise. Wars arc 
fought in order to protect life and property, 
should these be endangered. You also say that, 
so long as the desire to protect life and property 
remains within us, our ahimsa cannot be said 
to be pure. How can we reconcile the two ? 

A. Yours is a good question. I wrote with 
reference to the satyagraha army. Take our 
own country for instance. Its entire population 
will not enlist in the army. But those who arc 
willing to protect the millions by means of 
non-violence will have to renounce all worldly 
attachment. 

Khadi and Purity 

Q. Can one whose heart .is not pure wear 
khadi ? 

A. It appears you do not read the ixipers. 

I have said and written times without number 
that khadi, as cloth, is there for everyone to 
use; the drunkard, the immoral, the thicf and 
the dacoit included. But inasmuch as khadi has 
been accepted as the symbol of our freedom, it 




'September 8, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 




is obligatory for all those who wish to gain 
.and protect that freedom to wear it. And what 
jou say is, therefore, applicable to such persons, 
because a satyagrahi must be pure in heart. 
He must shun drink and {immorality, and for 
•him the wearing of khadi is a duty, 

A Quandary 

Q. I was walking along the railway line some 
■distance from the station when *I saw a young 
man standing on the lines with the obvious 
intent of committing suicide. I tried to dissuade 
him from carrying out his intention, but he 
was adamant. Thereupon I dragged him away 
and held him until the train had passed, but 
inflicted some bodily injury on him by so 
doing, r acted spontaneously. Was my action 
violent or non-violent ? I cannot decide for myself. 

A. It is good that you acted spontaneously. 
We act truly only when we act spontaneously. 

I have no doubt that your action was non- 
violent and brave. You are to be congratulated 
‘On saving the young man s life. You acted as a 
true friend, just as a surgeon does when for the 
.sake of the good of the patient he does not 
•hesitate to operate even though the operation 
‘inflicts temporary pain. 

Sevagram, 2-9-40 

( Translated from Hindustani ) 

HOW TO QUENCH IT? 

C By M, K* Gandhi^ 

Elsewhere in these columns the reader will 
see “A Seeker’s ” letter in which he has asked 
a question which must have occurred to every- 
one. The beauty lies in the way in which he 
has introduced the question. He has depicted 
the present conflagration in such lurid colours 
that violence cannot but stink in our nostrils. 
The reader is sure instinctively to exclaim : 
“ Even if it were possible to win the kingdom 
of the world by means of such violence, I 
would not have it.” 

But this exclamation will be of no avail to 
quench the conflagration. No doubt it will some 
.day quench itself, but it means mutual fratri- 
cidal slaughter like that of the Yadavas of old 
who destroyed themselves and relieved the earth 
of so much burden. And such a consummation 
would any day be preferable to a perpetual 
.conflagration. But no one would wish for this. 
What one would devoutly wish for is some 

brave step to stop the conflagration before there 
is total destruction. This can only be • a non- 
violent step. How and when it can be taken 
has to be discovered. The “ Seeker ” will be 

satisfied when the discovery is made. In my 
opinion the discovery has already been made. If 
India can win Swaraj non-violently even while 
this conflagration is going on, the latter is bound 
to be extinguished by that one event. That 
being my firm faith I fought the Wardha reso- 
lution tooth and nail, and secured my freedom 

not indeed to tickle my vanity but for the 

success of the experiment. And if I have to 


forego this freedom — as is quite likely — it will 
be for the same purpose. 

We read in our religious books that when- 
ever, in the days of old, all ordinary means 
failed to secure release from an ordeal or a 
calamity, people resorted to tapasya ( penance ), 
i. e. actually burnt themselves. I do not regard 
these stories as legendary. Tapasya is of various 
kinds. Misguided men can resort to it, as we 
find them doing today. The wise also can do it. 
It is worth while understanding the implication of 
tapasya. It was by dint of tapasya that Western 
scientists made their discoveries. Tapasya does not 
simply consist of betaking oneself to the forest 
and sitting down there surrounded by blazing 
fires. That tapasya may even be the height of 
folly. We have therefore to discriminate. 

The question asked by “A Seeker” does not 
arise out of despair. It is intended to quicken 
the conscience of those who believe in ahimsa. 
I have already shown the way. It is the fulfil- 
ment of the thirteenfold constructive programme 
described in a recent article. Those who will 
carry it out in faith, in full knowledge, and 
without the slightest fuss will have done I their 
share in the tapasya to quench the conflagra- 
tion. They will achieve two ends at the same 
time. They will make India free, and will also 
quench the conflagration. It is likely that the 
number of such people is limited, so limited 
that it can have no effect. I have maintained 
that, even if there is one individual who is 
almost completely non-violent, he can put out 
the conflagration. But I have suggested a tapasya 
which can easily be performed by the average 
individual. In this age of democracy it is essen- 
tial that desired results are achieved by the 
collective effort of the people. It will no doubt 
be good to achieve an objective through the 
effort of a supremely powerful individual, but 
it can never make the community conscious of 
its corporate strength. An individual’s success 
will be like a millionaire doling free food to 
millions of starving people. We should, there- 
fore, bend our energies to a fulfilment of the 
thirteenfold constructive programme. It may or 
may not bring Swaraj, but we shall surely have 
the satisfaction of having done our best. 

There is a warning in the “ Seeker’s ” letter 
to which I should like to draw the reader s 
attention. He says papers and broadcasts des-' 
cribe with devilish pleasure the amount of 
injury each is able to inflict upon the other, and 
suggests that such news should sicken people 
instead of providing pleasure, if they are to take 
part in the propagation of peace. I agree. Such 
people will not be able to carry out even the 
constructive programme, for they will have no 
faith in it. 

However that may be, it is as clear as day- 
light that, if this conflagration is to be put out 
through non-violent effort, it will be done only 
by India. Sevagram, 2-9-40 

{Translated from Gujarati') 



278 


HARIJAN 


[ September 8, 1940 


A VILLAGE ENGINEER 

In Delhi last month speaking to the members 
of the Charkha Club Gandhi ji said : “ Mere disci- 
pline will not do. What will discipline do 
without understanding and a living faith in the 
spinning wheel ? It cannot make for leadership. 
Discipline is undoubtedly an essential qualification, 
but what will happen to khadi if all spun for 
discipline without believing in the virtue of 
spinning? Discipline without faith is a mockery. 
It is faith that makes all the discipline in the 
world. As I speak to you I think of Bharata- 
nandji ( formerly Maurice Frydman ) and his 
invention called the DhanushtaklL He was able 
to make his invention because he had put a 
living faith in handspinning.” 

This brief preamble is needed in order to 
introduce Shri Bharatanandji to the readers. He 
belongs to Poland, a land that was physically 
wiped out by the German hordes that carried 
devastation in their train, but which is alive in 
the creative souls who are still working for its 
regeneration. Bharatanandji is an engineer, and 
like the distinguished electro-physicist Moscicki 
who had 500 inventions in the field of electro- 
physics and chemistry to his credit and held 
scores of patents before he became President of 


Poland, he too has an inventive genius. In 
Poland he would have worked along the lines . 
of Moscicki and geniuses of his kind. But he 
has imbibed the true spirit of the Indian masses, 
and his invention cannot run along any other 
line than that of a non-violent society based ' 

on a handicraft civilisation. And who knows 
his inventions may mean more for our people 
than Moscicki’s mean for his ? But to come to 
his inventive spirit. We met him first in 
Bangalore some five years ago when he was at 
the head of a technical department in Mysore 
and came to visit Gandhi] i in order to study 

the wheel and in order to be able to make 

the prise-wheel which might produce ten times 
the output of an average wheel. Ever since 

his mind has been at it. But instead of pro- 
ducing that prize-wheel he has produced another 
type of a prize-wheel which is perhaps more 
precious from the point of view of the poor 
people of India. 

His invention is not a wheel but a cross 
between a takli and a wheel, if I may say so. 

It consists of two pieces of bamboo, a strap of 
leather and a simple takli spindle — all of which 
can be had for two or three annas. I will let 
Bharatanandji himself explain the construction 
of his Dhanushtakli : 



HARIJAN 


279 


SEPTEMBEE 8, 1940 ] 


‘‘The principle of construction and v^orking of the 
DhannshtakU ( spinning bow ) is similar to that of 
an ordinary takli. While a takli vertically liangs 
loose or stands on its bottom tip, and is kept 
revolving by a twirl given to it with the fingers or 
the palm of the hand, the Dhanushtakli is horzion- 
tally fixed on two spindle-holders like the charkha 
spindle, and has no pulley in the middle. The twirl 
is given to it by the stroke of a strap of leather 

stretched on a bamboo-bow. The strap is treated 

with a mixture of resin and oil boiled together. 
One stroke is enough to keep the spindle revolving 
until you spin a thread of the usual length. The 

fly disc gives it the proper momentum, and keeps 

the spindle revolving after a stroke. The spinning 
is exactly like on a charkha, and the winding and 
removing of the yarn is quick and easy. The out- 
put of the Dhamishtakli is 50 to 75 percent more 
than that of a takli, and comparable with that of a 
standard charkha.” 

The whole contrivance is so incredibly simple 
that an amateur carpenter can make it in the 
course of a couple of hours. It is incredibly 
cheap, and incredibly easy to learn. That is why 
Gandhiji thinks that it may mean a revolution 
in our rural economics. 

Bharatanandji’s mind is busy thinking of an 
■equally simple device of a carder, of a spindle- 
truer, and so on. He has made for himself a 
septic tank costing not more than a couple of 
rupees. Whatever he turns his hand to, he 
does in terms of the poor villager whose 
welfare is his sole concern. 

Sevagram, 28-8-40 M. D. 

Notes 

Travancore 

There has regularly appeared for some time 
now in the Indian Press a series of scares con- 
cerning the internal situation in Travancore cal- 
culated to startle the public and emanating from 
the side of the authorities in Travancore. First 
the public were informed that the Travancore 
State Congress was working in close alliance 
with the Communists, and that what was afoot 
was a conspiracy for an immediate overthrow of 
the existing order and Government in Travan- 
core. Hardly had the public time to recover 
:om this astounding discovery, then came the 
jcond. So was the presence of a ‘fifth column’ 
nearthed somewhere in Travancore. Now, the 
Dmmunists arc not fond of Hitler and the Nazis, 
ad are not likely to raise a ‘fifth column’, 
'his was of course followed by the news of 
le finding of a Fascist-cell. There were other 
atements that the Government had information 
the collection, in many places far and near 
bd outside Travancore, of vast amounts of 
oney for stirring up trouble inside the 
:ate, and there was the pungent insinuation 
lat some State Congress workers were mis- 
^propriating funds so collected. The latest is 
le threat to prosecute Shri A. Atchuthan, the 
‘ting president of the State Congress, and my- 


self for the publication of certain matters in 
the columns of Harijan. Nothing, however, has 
appeared in support of the statements, some of 
which are self-contradictory. Do the Travancore 
authorities expect the public to believe these 
unsupported allegations ? 

G. Eamacharadraiis 

Ahimsa, India's Heritage 

“ H. G. Wells says of this remarkable monarch 
Emperor Asoka that he is the only military monarch 
on record who abandoned warfare after victory. After 
the invasion of Kalinga he was so disgusted by the 
cruelties and horrors of war that he declared he would 
no longer seek conquest by war but would do so by 
religion. He seems to have ruled his vast empire 
in peace and '^vith great ability. He was no mere 
religious fanatic. Wells, however, goes on to say 
that India has abandoned Asoka’s doctrine. But this 
accusation is not wholly correct, for Hinduism absorb- 
ed ’all that was best in Buddhism, and the impress 
of Asoka was not of a transient nature. His heri- 
tage still lives. 

The Indian idea is that the State exists for just 
administration of society, and hundreds of examples 
can be given to prove this. The story of Shivaji 
furnishes one such. Shivaji could not understand 
why his guru Ramdas went out daily to beg in spite 
of the fact that he had made him rich beyond 
avarice. Therefore he went and made a gift of his 
entire kingdom to the saint. Ramdas accepted the gift, 
appointed Shivaji as his vicar, bade him rule the realm 
not as an autocrat but as a servant, responsible for 
ail his acts to a higher authority. From then onwards 
Shivaji adopted tbe robe of a Hindu sannyasi as his 
standard. Likewise in the seventh century, a thou- 
sand years before Shivaji, King Harsha, who was 
ruler of the whole of Northern India from Kashmir 
to Assam and as far South as the Narmada river, 
used to make a five-yearly offering of all his pro- 
perty to his subjects. This king reigned for 30 

years, and Hiuen Tsang was present at the last of 
his Sarvaswayajna at Prayag. It used to take some 
months to give away the accumulated wealth of five years.” 

V. A. Smith in his ‘Early History of India’ says ; 

“Except the horses, elephants and military accou- 
trement, which were necessary for maintaining order 
and protecting the royal estate, nothing remained. The 
king freely gave away his gems and goods, his 

clothing and necklaces, earrings, bracelets, chaplets, 
and neck jewels, and bright head jewels without stint. 

All being given away he begged from his sister 

an ordinary second hand garment, and having put it 
on he paid worship to the ‘Buddhas of the ten 

regions’, and rejoiced that his treasure had been 
bestowed in the field of religious merit.” 

The above interesting information, gleaned from 
an article entitled ‘Of cows and kings’ in Rasktra-- 
vani, is seasonable as showing that attempts 
have been made in India to enforce non-violence* 
on a mass scale not without success. If our 
Princes could enter into the spirit that animated 
Shivaji and Raja Harsha, there would be na 
States problem. 

Sevagram, 2-9-40 A. K* 



280 


HAEIJAN 


[ September 8 ^ 1940 - 


EEPRESENTATIVE CAPACITY 

( K. G. Mashruxmla ) 

I understand that at the last A. 1. C, C> 
meeting some Congressmen said that, though in 
their personal capacit^^ they whole-heartedly 
believed in non-violence and regarded it as 
the only ultimate solution of the world’s ills, in 
their representative capacity they had to confess 
that the country was not prepared to go to 
that length, and that the Working Committee’s 
resolution was more in accordance with the 
general Congress opinion than that of Gandhiji. 

In my humble opinion, there is some unsound 
reasoning in this assumed conflict between per- 
sonal and representative capacities. If properly 
analysed, it will be found that this is really a 
conflict between unreasoned and reasoned opinion. 
When a representative says that personally he 
accepts Gandhiji’s position, the question is, why 
does he do so ? If Gandhiji’s position is only 
ethically perfect but as a practical proposition it 
is tantamount to committing national suicide, then 
why should he accept it even in his personal capa- 
city ? As an intelligent person his only ground can 
be that, on careful thinking, he is convinced of 
the soundness of Gandhiji’s position. What, there- 
fore, he means to say by contrasting it with 
his representative opinion is that, if one has 
to represent only an opinion based on careless 
thinking or the first impression or the upper- 
most instinct of the average person, he would 
have to admit that they think in terms of 
the Working Committee’s resolution. But the 
duty of a representative is to represent what 
he thinks will be the considered opinion of 
the people, and not their ill-considered opi- 
nion. And, if he admits that his personal 
opinion is the sounder one, he must proceed 
on the assumption that the people will be 
able to understand that reasoning if it is 
properly explained to them. It is possible that 
he may be unable to carry conviction to the 
people. In that case, he has to resign, instead of 
raising his hand in favour of a resolution with 
which his reasoning is not in agreement. This 
is, I think, the only right attitude when great 
principles and responsibilities are involved. 

When Gandhiji suddenly cancelled the Bardoli 
satyagraha on account of Chauri Chaura, the 
majority of Congressmen were opposed to the 
decision. But when he reasoned with them, they 
gradually became converted to his view. One’s 
considered opinion is the only opinion which 
can be represented. A representative cannot 
represent an opinion which does not satisfy his 
own reason. Even if he thinks that a question 
is capable of being argued on both sides with 
equal force, he must adhere to what satisfies 
his own reasoning. 

Autobiography 

Gandhiji’s The Story of My Experiments with Truth 
Price Rs. 4. Postage 10 As. extra. 


“A SEEKER’S’’ QUESTION 

The Editor, Harijan 

Sir, 

You must be reading in the papers how the^ 
war between Germany and England is being 
waged. Aeroplanes filled with thousands of 
incendiary bombs do untold havoc, and news- 
papers and broadcasts describe with pleasure the- 
amount of injury each side is able to inflict on- 
the other. The general public is consoled by 
being told that the damage done in the enemy 
country is greater than what the enemy has- 
done in theirs. It is said that military objectives, 
are the sole targets of the raiders; but it is- 
impossible to believe that, flying at great heights - 
and often through smoke screens, the bombers can 
really take proper aim. And then we hear from. 
both sides of the ‘ successful ’ blockades, the 
object of which is to spread famine; and famine 
must necessarily, more than even bombs, hurt 
the civilian population. 

Is it impossible for these belligerents to think 
in terms of humanity and stop this carnage? 
How can any good even come out of war? 
And must we not, therefore, declare ourselves- 
unreservedly against war for or against anybody 
or any ideology ? 

There must be many godly people in the 
warring countries who think in this way but 
have not the strength to raise their voice in 
protest. May we not help them to do so and 
at the same time rouse the sleeping conscience. 
of all thinking people? 

Yours 
A Seeker 

( Translated from Gujarati ) 

Handmade Paper 

Our purchases and sales of handmade paper for 
the month of August have amounted to Rs, l,755-6-6- 
and Rs, 2,158-14-9 respectively, bringing the total- 
figures of purchases and sales from January 1 to August 
31 to Rs. 15,432-14-3 and Rs 12,129-12-6 respectively.- 
Rs. 1,403-12-0 have been given for paper-cutting 
and envelope-making. 

Manager 

Wanted Agents 

For selling copies of Harijan in various towns of 
India. For terms apply to the Manager. 


CONTENTS 


Ahimsa in Daily Life 
Handicrafts in America 
Biswa Miscarriage Again 
Question Box 
How TO Quench It? 

A Village Engineer 
“Representative Capacity” 
A Seeker’s Question 
Notes : 


page- 
M. D, 275- 
A. K. 275 
... M. K. Gandhi 276 
... M. K. Gandlii 276 
... M. K. Gandhi 277 
M. D. 278 
K. G. Mashruwala 280 
280 


Travancore G. R. 279^ 

Ahimsa, India’s Heritage ... A. K. 279^- 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
Sabscription Rates — INLAND : One year, Rs. 4, Six months, Rs,- 3-8. FOREIGN : One year, Rs. 5-8 or, 8 sh. or 3 dollars 



Reg. No. B. 3092 



Editor ; MAHADEV DESAS 


VoL. VIII No. 31 ] POONA — SUNDAY, SEPTEMBER 15, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 

SEVAGRAM NOTES 


A Caw-protector 

Here in Sevagram a strange kind of brother- 
hood and identity of interests are springing up. To 
outward seeming we are so unlike one another, 
for we have come from varying strata of society, 
and belong — or rather used to belong — to all 
kinds of classes, castes and creeds. But an identity 
of interests now binds us and makes us work 
towards an ideal order of society. 

A new-comer, whose acquaintance I am sorry I 
had not so far made because of my preoccupa- 
tions, must now be introduced to the reader. 
Prabhakar hails from Andhradesh. He came as a 
Harijan student to Maganwadi, received training 
there in paper-making, bee-keeping and soap- 
making, and then came here to spend some time 
before he went back to his part of the country. 
It was found that he had given up milk, and 
Gandbiji wanted to know the reason why he had 
done so. He said he was born in a community 
which did not scruple to cat beef, meat, carrion 
and pork. “ And carrion too of the worst type, 
if there can be degrees in badness,” he said, with 
visible emotion. “The carcass would be rotting 
for days in the earth. We would stealthily un- 
earth it and dry the carrion for days and feast 
upon it, I was lost to all feeling in this matter, 
I took a peculiar delight in eating it and also 
mutton. Toddy I loved, and my widowed mother 
would spend her hard-earned income to get me 
toddy. She also drank it. With dijSiculty I went 
to school, failed twice in the matriculation 
examination, and, thank God, thought of going to 
the Andhra Jateeya Kalasala. It was there that 
I began to read and understand Young India. I 
read Gandhiji’s and other articles on cow-protec- 
tion and my eyes were opened. I gave up the 
hateful ‘delicacies’ and decided never to return 
to my folly. After finishing my course in rural 
re-construction I came to Maganwadi. There I spent 
sleepless nights over the offence I had done to 
the mother cow. I could not possibly persuade 
myself to take milk, and I abjured it in expiation 
for the sin I had committed.” “I had to say all 
this in order to explain to Bapu why I had given 
up milk,” he added. 

“ Was Bapu convinced ? ” I asked him. And in 
reply he narrated a discourse which was as 
striking as instructive: 

“ I said to Bapu that I had realised that the 
.cow was like our mother. ‘Mother gives us milk 
for a couple of years. Mother cow gives us milk 


the whole of our life.’ But Bapu said : ‘ I am pre- 
pared to go one better than you. Mother cow 
is in many ways better than the mother who 
gave us birth. Our mother gives us milk 
for a couple of years and then expects us to- 
serve her when we grow up. Mother cow 
expects from us nothing but grass and grain. Our 
mother often falls ill and expects service from us* 
Mother cow rarely falls ill. Hers is an unbroken 
record of service which does not end Tvith 
her death. Our mother when she dies means- 
expenses of burial or cremation. Mother cow is 
as useful dead as when she is alive. We can 
make use of every part of her body — her flesh, 
her bones, her intestines,, her horns and her skin. 
Well I say this not to disparage the mother who 
gives us birth, but in order to show you the 
substantial reasons for my worshipping the cow* 
Although I am such a cow- worshipper, I ask you 
to take milk. I don’t take cow’s milk as I took 
a vow about it, but yours is not a vow. But you 
see what I am doing to expand the dairy here. If 
you feel so much for the cow, you can dedicate 
yourself to her service.’ I was amazed at the 
manner in which Bapu described his zeal for 
cow-protection, and I accepted his] advice as a 
word of command.” 

“ What a story ! ” I said. “ What about your 
mother ? Does she know all this ? ” 

“ She knows much of it. She has given up toddy 
and carrion. She wants me badly at home. I have 
not seen her for three years. She is a hospital 
attendant. She used to receive tips from patients. 
I have persuaded her to resolve to accept them 
no more. She gets clothes from Government. I 
have asked her not to receive them as I would 
make enough clothes out of my yarn for her. I 
propose to go about from village to village with 
the dhanushtaklU and with the message of handi- 
crafts, cow-protection, and of peace.” 

The Bullocks* Festival 

That story is, I think, a good preamble to the 
description of an evening of Gandhi ji with the 
cows and bullocks in Sevagram. A group of villa- 
gers now comes every Sunday morning to see 
Gandhiji who talks to them and answers any ques- 
tions they may have to ask. On the 1st of this 
month they invited him to go and see their cattle 
parade, and Gandhiji readily agreed. That one day 
is the only gala day in the year for the poor 
beasts. No work is taken from the bullocks that 
day, so much so that if there is anything urgent 
to do the men will do it themselves. The bullocks 



HAEIJAN 


282 


SEPTEMBEE 15, 1940, . 


are garlanded and decorated, but I do not know 
whether they are given any special feed that day. 
But as one sees them standing in beautiful array 
munching their grass and lowing, one wishes they 
had a voice to speak to us and we had some more 
< for them ) useful way of expres'sing our grateful- 
ness to them. 

So Gandhiji gladly spent the evening with them. 
He told them how happy he was that they cele- 
brated this ancient custom of giving a holiday to 
their cows and bullocks. “ In ancient India,” he 
said to them, “ a man’s wealth was reckoned 
according to the number of cows he possessed, 
not according to the gold and silver he owned. 
The cow was worshipped as mother, for she 
sustained us with milk and her male progeny 
helped us to carry on agriculture which kept us 
.alive. Cows are there in the West also, and they 
arc, kept very well indeed. But their male pro- 
geny is not used for agricultural purposes, it is 
turned into beef. From time immemorial this 
idea has been repugnant to us, and we have wor- 
shipped the cow and her progeny. The bullocks 
are the means of transport everywhere in our 
villages and have not ceased to be such even in a 
place like Simla. The railway train and the motor 
■car go there, but all along the mountain road I 
found bullocks trudging up and down dragging 
heavily-laden carts. It seems as if this means of 
transport is part of our lives and our civilisation. 
And the bullock has to endure if our handicraft 
civilisation is to endure. 

“But we have fallen on evil days. Our idea 
of wealth has changed, we reckon it in terms of 
hard cash, and have come to neglect our cattle 
which have been progressively deteriorating. I am 
.glad that you are celebrating this day, but you 
must know its implications. A day’s celebration 
would have no meaning if you neglected them 
the rest of the year. You have to find out whose 
.animals are the best and to discover how he 
manages to keep them so well. You will find 
out whose cow gives the largest amount of milk 
and discover how he keeps, her and feeds her. 
You may fix some prize for the best bullock and 
the best cow in the village. We are here for 
your service. Parnerkarji, who is a qualified dairy- 
man, and Balwantsing, known for his love and 
care of the animals, are at your disposal. The stud 
bull is being maintained for the benefit of the 
village. You must make use of all the facilities 
we have provided. But you can do so only when 
you have a genuine love for your animals.” “Here,” 
he said, showing a spiked stick that is used in 
order to prod the bullocks, “ here is a thing of 
which you and I should be ashamed. Supposing I 
were to prod one of your children with this stick, 
would you let me do it ? And if you will not, how 
dare you treat these useful animals so ? Nowhere 
else in the world, to my knowledge, is such an 
instrument of torture used. You should either give 
this up or not invite me to these shows. You 
should treat them so kindly and handle them so 
geiitly that they will understand a word or a 


gesture from you without the use of any stick 
at all. Address yourselves to the task from today, 
and see what progress you. can make by the time 
we have the next festival: Our aim is to make of 
Sevagram a model village. I have on another 
occasion told you what to 'do in other matters. 
Today I am telling you that without model cattle 
we cannot have a model village. Our service is 
at your disposal, but; Our service too cannot be of 
much use without your co-operation. I hope you 
will, therefore, meet together at once and frame 
a programme of immediate action.^’ . 

A Marriage 

In the midst of daily work and other preoccu- 
pations it was no easy matter for Gandhiji to agree 
to celebrate the marriage of a Harijan worker 
from South India. But he almost went out of his 
way to do so, because he was a Harijan worker 
and had come all the way for the purpose from 
Malabar. Shri Velayudhan of Travancore is a 
graduate and a diploma-holder from the Tata Post- 
graduate School of Sociology, and is a research 
scholar appointed by the Harijan Sevak Sangh for 
South India. Shrimati Dakshayani from Cochin is a 
B.A., L.T., and both belong so separate sub-castes 
among Harijans. Marriage between them is against 
orthodox usage, and Shri Velayudhan had set his 
heart on having his marriage performed through 
Gandhiji according to strictly religious riteg. So 
they came here on the morning of the 4th and 
announced their intention. For a moment Gandhiji 
was wondering whom to invite to ofi&ciate as the 
priest. We could easily have got a friend from 
Wardha. But almost in a flash he decided that Shri 
Parchure Shastri, than whom we could not expect 
to get a more learned priest, should officiate. A 
sufferer from leprosy he has been with us for 
some time, and is spending his days in worship 
and meditation and teaching Sanskrit. He readily 
agreed, and the ceremony was performed right in 
front of his hut on the morning of the 6th. It 
was so charming with all its simple solemnity, 
though the ignorance of Hindi on the part of the 
bride and bridegroom lent a touch of humour to 
the occasion. The Shastriji, however, knew enough 
English to explain the meaning of everything that 
he said to them. ‘Please repeat the shloka I have 
recited,’ he said to Gandhiji, as he asked him to 
. give the girl away in marriage. ‘ Not so quick 
please, repeat it word by word, so that I can 
follow,’ said Gandhiji, and as he repeated the 
simple words, he warned the couple; ‘Do you 
know what this means ? I am being asked to 
give away the bride to you for the purpose 
of service and for the protection of religion.’ 
Then the marriage vow was explained to them, 
and it was solemnly taken in front of the 
sacrificial fire and with all the gods and heavenly 
bodies as witness. The whole thing was perform- 
ed in about an hour, and Shastriji then enjoined 
upon them to keep a vow of silence until even- 
ing when they might break it after Gandhiji had 
shown them the Saptarshis — the Seven Stars' — ^ 
especially Vasishtha with his wife Arundhati. 



’Septsl^ 3:?-5. 15i,: 1:940 |j 


/HABIJAN 


'283 


Shastriji had been punctilious in these 'details. 
Jde had himself fasted and advised the couple to 
fast before the ceremony. At the close of the 
ceremony he himself sang an abhang from 
Tukaram soulfully — an abhang which is on the 
lips of every Maharashtri and which Gokhale 
described as the favourite hymn af Ranade — 
” (He who declares as one’s own 
the lowly and the lost — know him to be a 
saint, know that God abides in him ). It was so 
beautifully appropriate. 

The couple were delighted, Velayudhan said to 
me: “ If I had celebrated the marriage at home, 
there was no question of getting a Brahman to 
officiate as priest, not to think of a revered 
Shastri like our Shastriji here, and certainly we 
should never have known the solemn meaning of 
this great rite.” And Gandhiji was ^delighted in 
that he had discovered that day that whenever in 
future there was a marriage to celebrate, he need 
not go out of Sevagram to look for a worthy 
priest. “ I think I have not yet come across a 
Shastri like Parchure Shastri who has done the 
thing with so much understanding and without 
the slightest fuss, so expeditiously and so 
intelligibly,” he said to me. 

Sevagram, 9-9-40 M, D. 

QUESTION BOX 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

Indian States and Congress Activity 

Q. Should Congress members be enrolled in 
Indian States ? 

A. This question has been frequently put and 
answered by me. I have always held that it 
would be inadvisable to enrol Congress members 
in the States. There is danger of friction and 
clash with authority, and the latter interfering 
with • this work of organisation. Indian States 
subjects who may be anxious to become Congress 
members can enrol themselves on the register of 
the nearest Congress office of their province in 
British India. But it would be better for them 
not to bother about membership and to confine 
themselves to such activity as is possible within 
their own States. This can be largely only con- 
structive work. It will arouse self-consciousness 
and solidarity among the masses. In fact it may 
on the whole be better to make people Congress- 
minded in the true sense of the term than to 
enrol them as Congress members. 

A. I. S. A. Workers 

Q. Supposing members are enrolled in the 
States for the Congress, should not workers of the 
Charkha Sangh or the Praja Mandals participate 
or co-operate in Congress political work ? 

A, Neither of these organisations may go out- 
side its allotted field. The Charkha Sangh workers 
are already precluded from doing so by the exist- 
ing rules. Although it is a creation of the Con- 
gress, it has no connection with Congress politics. 
It is purely an economic and philanthropic 
'iprganisation and cannot be made to subserve a 
dual purpose. The Praja Mandals should be ruled 


by their peculiar position. They are functioning 
under heavy odds. It would not be fair or proper 
to burden them with Congress work. It follows 
from this that they cannot be asked to lend co- 
operation to the Congress organisation, unless it 
be in the sense of silent homage expressed in the 
constructive work. All these organisations can 
help one another by each rendering true service 
within its well-defined ambit. Thus if the Con- 
gress is successful in the political field, the Charkha 
Sangh and the Praja Mandals would profit thereby. 
Similarly the success of the Charkha Sangh equally 
serves the Congress. Any single Praja Mandal 
that achieves success in its mission strengthens 
the Congress to that extent. By straying from 
our allotted fields we are likely to do more harm 
than good. 

Sevagram, 9-9-40 ( Translated from Hindustani ) 

Students and Satyagraha 

Q. Why do you object to students participating 
in the satyagraha campaign, if it is launched ? And 
why must they leave school or college for good, 
in case they are permitted ? Surely students in 
England are not silently looking on when their 
country is engaged in a war. 

A. To withdraw students from schools and 
colleges is to encourage them in a programme of 
non-cooperation. It is not on our programme today. 
If I were in charge of the satyagraha campaign, I 
should neither invite nor encourage the students 
to leave their schools and colleges. We have seen 
by experience that the students have not yet got 
over their passion for Government schools and 
colleges. That these institutions have lost their 
glamour is a gain, but, I do not set much store 
by it. And if the institutions are to continue,, 
withdrawal of students for satyagraha will do 
them no good and will be of little help to the 
cause. Such withdrawal will not be non-violent. 
I have said that those who intend to join the 
campaign should leave their schools or colleges 
for good and resolve to devote themselves to the 
nation’s service even after the struggle is over. 
■There is no comparison between the students 
here and those in England. There the 'whole 
nation is involyed in the war. The institutions 
have been closed down by the managers. Here, 
on the contrary, students leaving their schools 
and colleges would do so in spite of the heads 
of those institutions. 

Are Not All Fasts Violent? 

Q. Are not all fasts violent ? Do I not coerce 
a friend when I try to prevent him, by means of 
my fast, from doing a wrong act? 

A, Fasts undertaken according to the “ rules 
,governing them are truly non-violent. There is no 
room there for coercion. If a friend of mine is 
going astray, and if I impose suffering on myself 
by fasting in order to awaken his better instincts, 
it can be only out of love. If the friend for 
whom I fast has no love in him, he will not res- 
pond. If he has it and, responds, it is all to the 
good. This is how I would, analyse his act:^ He 
valued his love for me more than his bad ways. 
There is a possible risk, I admit, namelv’ that as 



284 


HABIJAN 


[.'September 15, 1940 


soon as the effect of the fast is over he would be 
tempted to go back to his old ways. But then I 
can iast' again. Ultimately the increasing influence 
of my love will either convert the friend to the 
extent of weaning him completely from his evil 
ways, or repeated fasts may lose their novelty, 
blunt his mind, and make it impervious to my 
fasting. It is my conviction that a fast undertaken 
out of genuine love cannot have such an un- 
toward result. But because such a result is not 
impossible we cannot afford to disregard this pure 
instrument of moral reform. The risk, however, 
makes it clear that he who fasts should be 
properly qualified, and that it should not be 
lightly undertaken. 

Penance 

Q. Is not the realisation of one error and the 
resolve never to repeat it a penance in itself? Is 
any further penance necessary ? 

A. Realisation of an error, which amounts to a 
fixed resolve never to repeat it, is enough penance. 
One casts away his evil habits as a snake casts off 
his skin, and thus purifies himself. Such self-puri- 
fication is itself complete penance. But he who 
gets into the habit of committing errors cannot 
•easily shed it. For all such, penance in its accept- 
ed §ense, if undertaken with discrimination, is 
likely to be a great help. 

Sevagram, 10-9-40 ( Translated from Gujarati ) 





Sept. 15 


1940 


ECONOMIC RUIN IN SINDH 

( By Af. K, Gandhi ) 

The following printed letter has been circu- 
lated by Shri Tarachand D. Gajra and Shri 
C, T. Valecha : 

“ We trust, you received our previous communica- 
tion, ‘,A note on the present state of lawlessness in 
Sindh *. Herewith follows another one, * Economic ruin 
due to the lawlessness in Sindh*. It is a sad story of 
■silent misery that has befallen those who are migrating 
without any financial aid from the public or the autho- 
rities. Elsewhere such a thing would evoke wide inter- 
national public support and sympathy. We hope your 
interest in our province will grow,” 

I take: the following from the statement referred 
to in the letter : 

“ Great havoc has been wrought in the economic life 
of the province by the present lawlessness in Sindh. 
The village life is almost at the brink of total ruin. 
The peasantry, whose only property and means of sus- 
tenance are the bulls and the milch cattle, find them- 
selves without both on account • of depredations ' by 
thieves, as thefts of cattle have risen to abnormal pro- 
portions. The lot of the cultivator has come to this 
that he passes the day of toil followed by a night of vigil. 

The Hindus in the villages do not feel themselves 
strong enough to face thieves and dacoits. Hence they 


have taken to migrating from smaller villages to bigger 
villages, and those who hre in bigger villages are 
leaving for urban areas. 

With a view to having some idea of this migratory 
movement, herein below are given figures about one of 
the sixtyone tahsils in Sindh, namely Hyderabad taluka. 
These have been collected by Prof. Ghanshyam M.L. A, 
(Congress — Hyderabad Rural Constituency). From 
several villages almost all Hindu families have left, and 
from most of the remaining ones nearly fifty per cent 
of the Hindus have migrated.’* 

Then follow the figures about the migration 
from 42 villages in the single tahsil of Hyderabad. 
Of these all the Hindu families in 17 villages have 
migrated. Of the rest some villages had only one 
family left. More than 50 per cent of the families 
had left all the other villages. 

The framers of the statement thus comment 
on the figures : 

“To fully grasp the significance of the above figures 
it should be borne in mind that Hyderabad tahsil is in 
one of the best situated parts of the province. It is 
immediately round the district headquarters, while the 
Hyderabad district itself is the central district of the 
province — both the eastern desert boundary and the hilly 
western border of the province lying far away. Even 
the Sukkur district, which witnessed the recent abomi- 
nable atrocities, is far distant from Hyderabad, If that 
is the state of affairs in the safest part of the province* 
the extent of migration from villages in the tahsils in 
other districts such as Dadu, ' Jacobabad, Larkana and 
Sukkur can easily be imagined.” 

I need not reproduce the other paragraphs of 
the statement. The whole of it is a dignified and 
dispassionate narrative of the calamity that has 
overtaken the Hindus. The narrative shows that 
it has begun to affect the Muslims also. The 
Hindus of Sindh are enterprising. They supply 
the felt wants of the Muslim agriculturists. The 
two are closely intertwined. Communalism of the 
virulent type is a recent growth. The lawlessness 
is a monster with many faces. It hurts all in the 
end including those who are primarily responsible 
for it. 

The writers of the covering letter arc right in 
saying that the Sindh calamity is an all-India con- 
cern. It is as much the duty of the Congress as 
of the Muslim League and the Hindu Mahasabha 
to deal with the situation in the right spirit. The 
Government of Sindh will be judged by the 
manner in which they handle the situation. Nor 
can the Central Government look on indifferently 
while a province of India, which is watered by the 
mighty Indus and which contains the remains of 
our proud and ancient past, is being devastated by 
• lawlessness which, if not checked in time, may 
travel beyond the imaginary boundary of Sindh. 
For what happens in India, whether good or bad, 
in one part, must ultimately affect the whole of 
India. 

On the train to Bombay, 11-9-40 

Wanted Agents 

For selling copies of Harijan in various towns of 
India. For term's apply to the Manager, 




^September 15, 1940 •] 


HAEIJAN 


28§ 


Notes 

Congress Ahimsa 

I' am being inundated with letters complaining 
that by giving my definition of ahimsa before the 
Poona Congressmen, who saw me recently at 
Wardha, I have seriously circumscribed the scope 
-of ahimsa. These friends forget that my remarks 
were confined to Congress ahimsa only. Personally 
I would not kill insects, scorpions or even snakes. 
Nor would I under any circumstance take meat. 
But I may not impose the creed of such ahimsa 
on the Congress. The Congress is not a religious 
institution; it is a political organisation. Its non- 
violence is limited to human beings. If it were 
to be further extended, only Hindus, and among 
• even them only Vaishnavas and Jains, would be 
left tp participate in it. Millions of Hindus who 
eat fish and meat would be excluded. My proposi- 
.tion, to my mind, is so simple and straight that 
I never thought that anybody could object to it. 

My critics should further understand that many 
'Mussalmans have not accepted even the limited 
ahimsa of the Congress as their creed, and that 
the Congress itself has, by its Wardha and Poona 
resolutions, so cramped its scope as to render it 
.almO|St meaningless. It follows, therefore, that any 
attempt to widen its scope as to include the sub- 
human species will defeat its purpose. Unlimited 
.ahimsa will take time to be universalised. We 
w,ill have ample cause, to congratulate ourselves if 
we learn to substitute the law of love in society 
for that of the jungle, and if instead of harbouring 
ill-will and enmity in our bosoms against those 
whom we regard as our enemies we learn to love 
them as actual and potential friends. It should 
be remembered too that jivadaya (kindness 

to animals) does not enable us to overcome the 
‘‘si?: deadly enemies’ within us, namely lust, anger, 
greed, infatuation, pride and falsehood. Give me 
the man who has completely conquered self and 
is- full of goodwill and love towards all, and is 
ruled by the law of love in all his actions, and I 
for one will offer him my respectful homage even 
though he be a meat-eater. On the other hand 
the jivadaya of a person who is steeped in anger 
and -lust but daily feeds the ants and insects and 
refrains from, killing has hardly , anything in it to 
recommend itself. It is a mechanical performance 
without any spiritual value. It may even be worse 
— a hypocritical screen for hiding the corruption 
within. 

.'Non-violence during Riots 

• ■ A friend writes: 

“ How can non-violence be efficacious during riots ? 
By self-immolation we can influence only those with 
whom we have already established living contacts. But 
the hooligans who perpetrate violence during riots are, 
■as a rule, hirelings imported from outside. How can 
they have any scruples about hurting those whom they 
have never known before and for whom they can have 
no regard or consideration ? ” 

The question deserves careful consideration. The 
friend who has put it is a valiant worker who 


nearly lost his life in trying to do his duty during 
a riot. I have often written on this question 
before. The pity of it is that Congressmen have 
never seriously thought over the question of find- 
ing a non-violent way of quelling riots. Their 
non-violence was restricted to the sole purpose of 
offering civil resistance to the authorites. In my 
opinion the non-violence that goes so far and no 
further scarcely deserves the name ‘ahimsa’. You 
may, if you like, call it unarmed resistance. So far 
as it is a device for embarrassing the Government 
it is, a species of himsa. To quell riots non-violently, 
there must be true ahimsa in on’s heart, an ahimsa 
that takes even t’ne erring hooligan in its warm 
embrace. Such an attitude cannot be cultivated. 
It can only come as a prolonged and patient effort 
which must be made during peaceful times. The 
would-be members of a peace brigade should come 
into close touch and cultivate acquaintance with 
the so-called goonda element in his vicinity. He 
should know all and be known to all and win the 
hearts of all by his living and selfless service. No 
section should be regarded as too contemptible or 
mean to mix with. Goondas do not drop from 
the sky, nor do they spring from the earth like 
evil spirits. They are the product of social disorga- 
nisation, and society is therefore responsible for 
their existence. In other words, they should be 
looked upon as a symptom of corruption in our 
body politic. To remove the disease we must 
first discover the underlying cause. To find the 
remedy will then be a comparatively easy task. So 
far we have not even attempted a proper begin- 
ning. But it is never too late to mend. It is 
enough that we are at last alive to the necessity 
of it. We have now to follow it up with prompt 
action. Let everyone who is interested make a 
prompt beginning in his own neighbourhood. The 
difficulty mentioned by my correspondent will 
automatically resolve itself, if we proceed with 
our effort in the right spirit. 

How to Universalise Khadi? 

A correspondent writes: 

“ 1. The spinning propaganda is going on in every 
part of India; but I wish the A. 1. S. A. would simul- 
taneously open khadi production centres where people 
could send or take their yarn, without much' expense, 
for weaving, and where they could sell their yam if 
they wished. 

2. The A. i, S. A. should allow every spinner to have 
his or her yarn woven locally and also to sell it locally. 

3. Khadi bhandars in big towns and cities mean 
heavy overhead charges due to house-rent, electric light- 
ing, management, and other office expenses, and that 
makes khadi too dear. It ought to be possible for 
people to purchase cheap khadi in villages or taluka 

centres.” , 

All the three suggestions are good. But the 
great difficulty in carrying them out is that we 
have not enough workers. There is no doubt 
that all the yarn should be woven where it is 
spun, and that, the . khadi should be disposed of 
there and then. Therein lies the beauty of khadi. 
The economics of khadi are to a great extent 




HARIJAN 




(JOnfrary to those of mill cloth. Cloth manufac- 
tured in Manchester is meant for use not in 
Manchester or England or Europe, but to be ex- 
ported to Asia or Africa for the use of the people 
there. On the contrary khadi is meant to be 
made for the millions by the millions living in 
villages. Mills use cotton imported from all 
parts of the world. Cotton for khadi should 
be produced where it is turned into khadi. We 
have not yet attained the ideal of the science 
of khadi, and to that extent the foundation of 
khadi must be regarded as weak. There was no 
science of khadi when we began to use khadi. It 
has evolved with the progress of khadi, and even 
now it is far from being perfect. But ever-watch- 
ful khadi servants are constantly thinking about 
it and going on perfecting it in the light of ex- 
perience. I am afraid it will be some time before 
we can reach the ideal pictured by the correspond- 
ent. The A. I. S. A. is not slack in its effort, 
but it is faced with difficulties at every step. The 
main thing needed for the universalisation of khadi 
is the co-operation of the people. Machine manu- 
facture can be planned in an office and can be 
carried out according to plan. Where people have 
to-be converted to an idea it does take time. We 
have therefore, for the time being, to put up 
with khadi bhandars in towns and cities. Most of 
these are self-supporting. But for them there 
would not be the demand for khadi that there is 
today. While, therefore, we should make every 
attempt to reach the ideal, we cannot jump to 
.it at one bound. 

Sevagram, 9-9-40 M. K, G. 

(Translated from Gujarati} 

Not Quite New 

Apropos of my suggestion that a successful non- 
violent defence against aggression from without is 
not so fantastic as is supposed, a correspondent 
sends me the following extract from a writing in 
Vismhharti of 1927 : 

“ Of course, we must not think that killing one 
another is ^the only form of war, Man is pre-eminently 
a moral being. His war instinct should be shifted to 
the moral plane and his weapons should be moral 
weapons. The Hindu inhabitants of Bali, while giving 
up their lives before the invaders, fought with their 
moral weapons against physical power. A day will 
come when men’s history will admit their victory. It 
was a war. Neverthless it was in harmony with peace, 
'and therefore glorious.” 

Sevagram, 11-9-40 M. K. G, 

A Praiseworthy Endeavour 

Begum Kulsum Sayani sends an instructive 
report of her nine months’ literacy work among 
Muslim women in Bombay. She started by em- 
ploying two teachers for two months, on a salary 
of* Rs. 20 per mensem, and made over three cen- 
tres each to them where they had to hold classes 
fof two hours daily. The response was not too 
good to begin with, as is generally the case with 
women, and Begum Sayani came to the conclusion 
that, in addition to mere literacy, other subjects 
bt utility and interest should be taught and per- 


1940 


sonal contacts with the women’ made in order tc 
attract them. Later Begum Sayani organised centres 
for the Bombay branch of the All India Women s^ 
Conference and the Anjuman-i-Islam on behalf of 
the Adult Education Committee. In the former 
350 out of 400 women were made literate and in' 
the latter 220 out of 288. Begum Sahiba has, 
endeavoured to keep the level somewhat higher 
than the accepted standard of literacy. She insists' 
on her literates being able to count up to 100, do 
a little simple arithmetic, and read the 2nd primer 
in Urdu. For general knowledge she has been 
giving regular talks on cleanliness, punctuality, 
truth, religious and communal tolerance, social 
duties, etc. Newspapers have been read to them 
in order that they may learn to take an in- 
terest in national and foreign affairs. The spirit 
of nationalism is sought to be inculcated. 
Iqbal’s famous ‘Hindustan Hamara' is compul- 
sory in every class. The women have responded 
in a wonderful way to recitations of poetry. In 
addition Begum Sayani is issuing a post- literacy 
journal every month called Rdhbar. The danger 
of lapsing back into illiteracy is ever present, and 
some suitable literature for freshly made literates’ 
is very essential. Rahbar is a useful little paper 
and should therefore fulfil a much felt need. This 
sister’s example may well be emulated by women' 
workers elsewhere. Begum Sayani is to be con- 
gratulated on having published Rahbar without 
disfiguring it with a single advertisement. 

Sevagram, 7-9-40 A. K. 

Town-dwellers and Village Industries 

The following is a summary of a contributioit 
from Shri Gajanan Naik : 

“ It is essential to study the root cause of the 
appalling poverty and unemployment that prevails in 
the country. Inasmuch as the use and consumption 
of machine-made articles takes the bread out of the 
mouths of our artisans, those who use these goods 
are guilty of adding to our misery. 

A middle class family in Bombay spends Rs. 125 
annually on food as against Rs. 30 on clothing. 
But even those who wear khadi forget that, their 
nutritive value apart, it is just as essential from the 
economic point of view also to use hand- pounded rice, 
hand-ground flour, ghani oil, gud or hand-made sugar, 
etc. The Navjivan Sangh in Bombay ha\'e sold Rs. 
20,549 worth of hand-made foodstuffs during 1939-40,. 
but this is a mere drop in the ocean in the city of 
Bombay. It is interesting to know that for every 
maund ( 28 lbs. ) of flour sold ten annas go to the 
labourer for grinding. The argument that these articles 
are more expensive does not hold water because of 
the benefit to health and consequent saving ^ in 
medicines and doctors’ bills, and the fact that in 
the long run a lesser quantity of these foodstuffs is 
consumed. 

There are many lodging houses in Bombay where 
hand-made foodstuffs could easily be used with 
advantage. A small one which houses 32 boarders 
has spent Rs. 663 worth of hand-ground flour, hand- 
pounded rice, hand-made dal and ghani oil in' six 
months. The monthly cliarge is Rs. 17 includin 



September 15, 1940 i] HARIJAN 2S7 


^ pure , cow's ghee and milk. This does not compare 
’ unfavourably with boarding houses where mill products 
are used. Boarders may insist on being supplied with 
these nutritive articles of food, A small investment 
of Rs. 200 only is needed to conduct small dining 
clubs. Restaurants too may follow suit. The educated 
-unemployed may earn a little money by hawking the 
products of village industries from door to door in 
our towns. In this way a great impetus could be 
given to the work of the A. L V. I. A.” 

^ C Abridged by A. K,) 

Old Mind v. Old Age 

,, The v7ord ‘ old ’ is generally applied to those 
who are well advanced in years. In our land there 
cannot be many such for our average age is only 
24 -years. England and other Western countries, 
however, where the average span of life is twice 
as much as ours, can number many old people in 
their population. 

But if we cannot boast of many ‘old in body’, 
we can certainly boast of plenty who are ‘old in 
mind’. And I agree with the sage who said that, 
in his opinion, the term ‘old age’ is far more 
-applicable to those who have lost the will and 
energy to improve themselves by constant research 
in new fields of endeavour. This unfortunate inert- 
ness of mind prevails among both literate and 
illiterate — possibly even more among the 
so-called educated. 

I once happened to say to a teacher in a 
national school that, as we were trying to make 
Hindustani the national language, he should make 
.an effort to learn it. As it was an*easy language 
he would be able to learn it during the summer 
vacation. But he told me that he was quite in- 
capable of doing so. It was not possible at his 
;agc (he was only middle-aged) to undertake any 
new endeavour, and he had had so much to learn 
he was tired of it ! And if one suggests that in 
order to work towards Hindu-Muslim unity it is 
^ essential that one should have a fair knowledge of 
each other’s culture, history and customs and it 
would, therefore, be a good thing for teachers in 
national schools to learn both Hindi and Urdu 
scripts, the answer one gets is; “Well, this is the 
-limit! How can we possibly learn a script which 
is so wholly different from ours ? ” In the matter 
of spinning the general excuse is; “We have not 
the time to spare, and even if we had, how can 
we suddenly take up something we have never 
put our hands to up till now ? ” 

This mental debility is indeed tragic, and it is 
real old age. It is good to live to a ripe old age. 
But that cannot be an end. We must live to 
purpose. And if we do, we are never too old 
to learn. 

Sevagram, 8-9-40 

( Adapted from Shri Vinoba’s writings ) 

Autobiography 

Gandhiji’s The Story of My Experiments with Truth 
Price Rs. 4. Postage 10 As. extra. 

Mahatma Gandhi 

•By S. l^dhakrishnan. (New Edition) Rs. 5-10-0 
Postage 8 As. Available at Harijan office-Poona 4. 


KATHIAWAD FAMINE WORK ,, 

( By G- Ramachandran ) 

I sojourned recently for a few days in Rajkot, 
so full of poignant memories now. There I met 
my old friend Shri Chhaganlal Joshi whom I 
had known intimately at the Satyagrahashram, 
Saharmati, many years ago. We were pleased to 
meet each other, and he brought Dhebarbhai to 
see me. 

On the second day the latter offered to take 
me with him on a tour to inspect the famine 
relief centres they were conducting. I jumped 
at this chance of taking a peep into rhe 
heart of Kathiawad. I spent some time that 
day at the office of the All Kathiawad Famine 
Relief Committee. I found out there with 
what wonderful regularity and throughness 
this wholly non-offiicial committee was conducting 
famine relief operations throughout Kathiawad. 
Shri Darbar Gopaldas is the President of that 
committee, with Shri Becharlal Kalidas Jasani as 
Vice-President and Dhebarbhai and Chhaganlalji as 
Secretaries. Over 80 centres were working under 
the committee. The weekly reports and accounts 
were in perfect pattern furnishing a wealth of 
detail regarding every aspect of the work and 
expenditure. Relief work was. going on under 
four heads ; sale of grain at cheap prices, labour 
employment of unemployed villagers, relief to 
the old and infirm, and cattle relief. The extent 
of work under each of these items astonished 
me. Grain was being sold at over 80 centres 
at less than the cost price, and this item alone had 
cost nearly three lakhs of rupees. Under the 
second item some fifty thousand men and women 
had found employment in deepening village tanks, 
building tank-bunds, and constructing village 
roads at 51 centres. Within two and a half 
months the committee had given out Rs. 30,000 
worth of grain in wages. Rs. 27,000 had been 
spent in giving relief to the old and infirm, 
and Rs. 15,000 in providing fodder and cotton 
seeds for the famished cattle. All this extensive 
relief work was being carried on almost entirely 
through some 300 honorary workers. This earnest 
band is a worthy offspring of the fine leader- 
ship and inspiration of the Sardar of Gujarat. 

Now to the brief story of our tour. We left 
Rajkot at noon on the 6th of August. Our first 
stop was ,at Anandpur, 28 miles from Rajkot. 
Here we saw a tank and a stream embankment 
on which some four hundred village men and 
women had been employed at a cost of Rs. 1,200. 
All wages were paid in grain. We saw a well 
which the Harijan Sevak Sangh had, constructed 
for the Harijans and which was one of the 
many ‘* Gandhi wells” I saw in the tour. The 
second stop was at Chobari. Here in the midst 
of a barren hard tract, I was shown a very old 
well. It was a beautiful well though in thorough 
disrepair. Steps led into it from all four sides. 
You could walk over the top of the well on 
beautifully carved stone beams. Inside and at 
the water level too were stone blocks and beams 



288 


HARIJAN 


[ September 15, 1940' 


with faded but beautiful carvings. Some ancient 
banyan trees stood nearby. A little beyond was 
the dried-up bed, surrounded by a stone em- 
bankment, of a lake with a little stone-carvcd 
Mandap in the centre. Who knows but some 
flourishing group of villages or an ancient town 
had once existed there under some chieftain who 
had an eye for creating things of beauty in the midst 
of his desolate lands. The next stop was at the 
village of Sanosra. It was in this village that Bechar- 
lalji, who was also with us, was born, and where he 
had once worked as a poor boy long before he 
became the wealthy man that he now is. Here, 
besides a cheap grain shop of the relief committee 
there was a free kitchen for starving villagers. At 
a little distance from the village we inspected 
another tank embankment on which some three 
hundred unemployed villagers had found labour 
costing Rs. 750. The next stop was at Chotila. 
Here we saw a big tank embankment and a tank 
which had been deepened at a cost of over 
Rs. 2,000 and employed over six hundred men 
and women for several days. In fact at the 
time of our visit, some five hundred men and 
women were at work giving finishing touches 
to the embankment. 

At Than I was delighted to see an excellent 
school built and run by the Harijan Sevak Sangh, 
and also a big well dug by the Sangh. At Sara 
in the Sayla State we saw a cheap grain shop. 
At Mathak in Dhrangadhra State, and at 
Devalia which we next visited, work on tanks 
and bunds had given labour to hundreds of 
people at a cost of Rs. 300 and 800 respectively. 
We then entered the Maliya State. The Miyanas 
of the Maliya State are known throughout 
Kathiawad. They are Muslims and live under 
the C. T. Act. They own lands but are heavily 
indebted. They are a tall, sturdy and fierce- 
looking people. For a long time many of them 
had lived by dacoity and looting. The Kathia- 
wad Relief Committee had a somewhat tough job 
in organising famine relief work among them. 
But the Chief of the Maliya State willingly 
co-operated with the Relief Committee and 
consented to bear half the charges of all relief 
operations. It was at Maliya that I saw the 
largest labour employment work, A huge tank, 
almost like a beautiful lake, had been deepened 
and three of its sides elevated as high embank- 
ments at a cost of nearly Rs. 2,500. This work 
had given employment for some weeks to about 
400 Miyanas. We visited some of the Miyanas in 
their own houses. Dhebarbhai, who was welcome 
everywhere^, discussed with them his spinning 
scheme for their women. At Maliya the cheap 
grain shop had for weeks sold grain at the rate 
of over a hundred maunds a day. Grain worth Rs. 
40,000 had been already sold. Seeds worth Rs. 1,000 
had been distributed at six annas cheaper per 
maund than the market price. 


Now that famine conditions have ceased, the* 
Relief Committee has begun to close down its« 
centres. But they are planning permanent relief 
for the unemployed in the hundreds of villages 
they have already touched, through a spinning, 
scheme. Kathiawad appears to be a dry, hard 
and grim country. I should imagine that spin- 
ning has a great future in its villages. 

One Aspect of the Cloth Industry 
The following figures, gleaned from the* 
A. I. S. A. Report of 1938 and the Indian Cotton- 
Textile Annual for 1939 • arc interesting. They- 
show that 633:^ crores of square yards of cloth 


are consumed annually in India. 

This need is* 

supplied as follows; 

From Foreign sources 

... 63 crores 

„ Indian mills 

... 409 „ 

„ Handwoven cloth 

••• 

Woven from foreign and 

home mill yarn 

... 160 „ 

Woven from Kliadi 

... Iv ,, 


It is obvious from the above that handspun and 
handwoven cloth could be increased 500 times and 
4 times respectively, if it were to supply the 
entire present need of the country. It has been 
stated that the total cost of the cloth works out 
at 200 crores of rupees. If it were all produced 
from handspun yarn, it would be worth about 
Rs. 120 crores, after deducting the cost of 
cotton, dyeing, etc. In other words, 12 crores of 
our villagers would be richer by that amount of 
money. If the mills were to produce all the cloth, 
Rs. 40 crores would be given in wages to mill 
employees. The remainder, 80 crores, would go 
into the pockets of capitalists or be spent on iron, 
stone, coal, etc., to feed big industry. And the 
money would be distributed entirely in the cities, , 
But if the villagers were to get the Rs. 120 crores, 
it would mean an increase in income of Rs. 10 
per head per annum for them. 

These figures are thought-provoking. Shall we 


minister to the needs of the many or cnricli a 
Sevagram, 8-9-40 

(Adapted from Shri Krishnadas Gandhi’s 
in Maharashtra Khadi Patnka) 

L few? 

article 

CONTENTS 


PAGE 

Sevagram Notes 

M. D. 

281 

Question Box 

M. K. Gandhi 

283 

Economic Ruin in Sindh ... 

M. K. Gandlii 

284 

Kathiawad Famine Work G. Ramachandran287 

Notes : 



Congress Ahimsa 

M. K. G. 

285 

Non-violence during Riots 

M. K. G. 

285' 

How to Universalise Khadi ? M. K. G. ' 

285 

Not Quite New 

M. K. G. 

286' 

A Praiseworthy Endeavour 

A. K. 

286 

Town-dwellers and Village 


Industries 

G. Naik 

286 

Old Mind v. Old Ace 

Vinoba 

287 

One Aspect of the Cloth 



Industry 

K. G. 

288 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhuslaan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
Subscription Rates — INLAND : One year, Rs. 4, Six months, Rs. 2-8. FOREIGN : One year, Rs. 5-8 or, 8 sh. or 2 dollars 



Editoff : MAHADEV DESAI 


VoL. VIII No. 32 ] POONA — SUNDAY, SEPTEMBER 22, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


SEVEN DAYS IN BOMBAY 

The Five Days 

An author of the history of the Russian Revo- 
lution wrote some years ago, in diary form, a 
history of the happenings of the ten days that 
preceded the birth of Soviet Russia. He gave that 
book the title Ten Days That Shook the World, 
May it not be that the seven days in Bombay — • 
12th to 18th — may come to be recorded in history 
as the Seven Days that Shook the World ? And in 
a better sense perhaps ? The days in Russia had all 
the colour and terror of a revolution. The Seven 
Days here had a different character altogether. 
They were as peaceful as anything can be, and 
they mark a distinct stage not only in India’s 
march towards peaceful freedom but also perhaps 
in the march of the world towards peace. 

The whole setting was one of peace and not of 
war. For even if it was a gathering of men who 
were determined on war for the assertion of their 
right to self-existence, it was a gathering of people 
who would not hurt even a fly. The Government 
had, therefore, no need for any elaborate police — 
not to say of military — preparations in anticipation 
of what might happen. Those who met were the 
guests of a most peaceful body of people — the 
East India Cotton Association, who do not usually 
interest themselves in politics but who at this 
unique juncture in the history of India braved the 
risk of being regarded as having identified them- 
selves with politics. For they knew that the issue 
at stake concerned them no less than the rest of 
India, perhaps more. 

The Working Committee was facing the hour 
of the greatest crisis in Congress history. The 
days since June 18 when they issued what is 
known as the Wardha Statement had been days 
of excruciating travail both for them and for 
Gandhiji. For Gandhiji they had been days also of 
intense prayer. I may not produce here a diary 
of the seven days, but Pandit Jawaharlal in his 
speech at the A. 1. C. C. described in one or two 
sentences what had happened. He was in bitter 
pain over the wild and irresponsible utterances of 
a handful of the members of the Committee, and 
was trying to plead with them to see the error of 
their ways. “You know,’' he said, “what Gandhiji 
has done? He has accepted full responsibility for 
the resolution. But do you know how it came 
into being? How great he spiritually is I do not 
know. But I know that politically he is without 
a peer. So far as matters of principle are con- 
cerned his iron will will not bend to any appeal 
for a compromise. But he listened to us for 


hours, let every aspect and argument that we bad 
to press work upon his mind. He produced one 
draft and then another and then a third until he 
saw that he had met the considerations advanced 
by every one of us, and was not content until the 
result was a resolution that was as far as possible 
the collective reflection of the minds of us all.’* 
(I am not quoting his words, I took no notes, 
but I am giving the impression left on my mind 
by his moving speech.) 

And as one could see it, Gandhiji seemed to 
grow from moment to moment. He took two 
hours to produce the first draft which became the 
basis of the resolution as it ultimately emerged. 
He did not know that in spite of the intense 
mental labour that he had devoted to it his draft 
reflected the minds of the members. When he 
addressed the house in Hindi, though he spoke in 
firm and measured tones there was trepidation and 
hesitation. “The responsibility I am assuming,” he 
said, “ is perhaps the greatest I have ever assurned 
in my life. I do not know whether I shall succeed 
in satisfying you or even satisfying me. Nor have 
I the vaguest notion of the result. But for over 50 
years I have trained myself never to be concerned 
about the result. What I should be ‘concerned 
about is the means, and when I am sure of the 
purity of the means, faith is enough to lead me 
on. All fear and trembling melt away before that 
faith, and once we have launched forth there is 
no looking back.” In the English speech the firm- 
ness seemed to have increased, the soul in him cried 
out: “We have waited long enough. Now comes the 
moment when the virtue of waiting has become 
vice.” And yet he said: “There is impenetrable 
darkness before me regarding the future course of 
action. Would you trust your ship to a captain 
who is groping? If you would, well and good. 
Otherwise reject his generalship summarily.” For 
days he had waited for light, but beheld obscurity. 
A glimmer had appeared on the horizon with the 
confidence with which he advised the Working 
Committee. But still there was a pall of haze. 
The next day it had lifted, and he was able to 
declare almost in the exaltation of certitude : “The 
thing I have placed before you is not small. I 
myself had thought it was small. But it was not 
so. It has not come from my intellect. It has 
come from recesses of the heart where dwelleth 
the Innermost, It is He who has given it. It was 
born at the end of infinite travail.” 

Verily once more the words of the Psalmist 
had come true : ‘ Light is sown for the righteous 
and gladness for the upright in heart.’ 



290 


HAEIJAIT 


[ September 22, 1940 


Whea Virtue Becomes Vice 

I have in brief given the setting in which the 
event happened. I shall now proceed to give the 
outstanding portions of his three utterances. They 
have appeared at length in the press, but as they 
are unpruned and unauthorised, one is apt to miss 
the wood for the trees. Mine will be a rapid 
summary with pauses at passages of outstanding 
importance. 

An esteemed friend had sent him a telegram on 
the eve of the decision reminding him of the 
attitude of sympathy and of unconditional co- 
operation that he had adopted at the beginning of 
the war. He had not forgotten it. But if he 
could not take the mind and the heart of the 
Congressmen with him, that attitude would have 
been useless. “ If what I said did not find an echo 
in their hearts, they would have been of no use 
whatsoever to the Viceroy, to the great British 
Nation and to India. ” But even after the first 
resolution on the War adopted at Wardha they 
had waited for exactly a year. He was not sorry 
that they had waited, the waiting had been all to 
the good, it had given him at any rate the strength 
to adopt the attitude he was taking. Why did the 
very man who had day in and day out advised 
non-embarrassment now stand before them with 
the latest resolution? He said: “There comes a 
time in man’s life when virtue itself becomes vice. 
Virtue which was virtue in its time, when torn 
from the purpose to which it was dedicated, be- 
comes vice. The exercise of self-restraint was good 
-enough, but when it threatened our very existence, 
the national spirit, whether it abided in Congress- 
men or non-Congressmen, when it threatened to 
kill the very spirit which enabled us to exercise 
self-restraint, then that virtue becomes vice. ” 
He proceeded: “I am speaking not only for the 
Congress, but for all who stand for national 
freedom — Muslims, Parsis, Hindus, Christains — even 
for those who are against the Congress, so long 
as they represent Indian aspirations, viz. unadul- 
terated Independence. I should be untrue to all 
•of them if I said now, ‘No embarrassment to the 
British’. My repetition of it would be just as 
useful for my salvation and for the guarding of my 
virtue as the repetition by a parrot of God’s name 
which is but a mechanical vocal effort without 
intelligence, and which cannot take him near to 
God. Therefore, if I exercised that self-suppression 
at this critical moment in the history of the 
nation, it would be suicidal, I should be untrue to 
myself. We cannot sit still when we see men 
like Dr. Ram Manohar Lohia and Jaiprakash 
Narain, than whom I know no braver or straight- 
er men, being marched to jail not because they 
preached violence but because they carried out 
the behest of the Ramgarh resolution. It had be- 
come a point of honour with them. It is not 
satyagraha to watch thus people being marched 
to jail in the exercise of their right of freedom of 
speech. If we looked on, the Congress would dis- 
appear and with it the national spirit. India, said 
the Maulana, at the time of Nan-Kana tragedy. 


was one vast prison, and therefore if we delivered 
her we would easily be able to free not one but 
all the Gurudwaras. If our liberty of speech is 
choked, the movement for the freedom of our 
country from bondage is choked. Then as I have 
said the virtue of self-restraint is going to become 
vice. The virtue cannot be exercised, as the 
resolution says, to the extent of self-extinction — 
extinction of the national spirit, wherever it 
resides, whether amongst Congressmen or non- 
Congressmen. ” 

We Learsst It from You 

Further exercise of self-suppression, he explained, 
would be an act unfriendly to Britain. We have 
learnt, from Englishmen, to value the priceless 
boon of freedom of speech. In expressing his 
sympathy for Britain and his admiration of the 
bravery of the British, Gandhiji brought this point 
out in a striking way: “We have sympathy for 
all the suffering nations in this war. I wish well 
of Britain. The destruction of a single innocent 
child in England shocks me. When I heard of the 
impending damage to St. Paul’s I felt as much as 
I should have if the Kashi Viswanath and the 
Jumma Masjid were in a similar plight. I know 
the sentiment that surrounds St. Paul’s. The news 
therefore shocked me. But what can I do beyond 
saying that it has shocked me? In spite of the 
shock, the British people are playing and dancing 
and carrying on their business as usual, and we 
are told that an eleven year old lad writes to his 
father that he would far rather be destroyed in 
England with his parents than seek refuge in 
Canada. That fearlessness is in their bones, and if 
we have learnt anything from them it is that. 
Even if /London and the whole of the British 
Isles were to fall, they have the courage to carry 
on the fight from Canada, Australia or New Zea- 
land. Therefore let us emulate their bravery, let 
us not be carried away by our sympathy to 
the extent of neglecting our clear duty. ” 

That duty is to declare from the house-tops 
that we shall have none of this war, we shall 
do nothing by way of providing men, money or 
ammunition for the conduct of the war. To let the 
Viceroy tell the world that the whole of India is 
with Britain in this war, is to allow him to de- 
ceive the world. If the war was being fought for 
democracy, with what justice can that claim be 
advanced when democracy was being trampled to 
death in India? Dominion Status was being promi- 
sed, but the Provincial Autonomy that was given 
to the provinces under their own Act was reduced 
to a mockery. In his impassioned Hindi utterance 
he asked: “Was Punjab consulted ? Was Bengal 
consulted ? Was Sind consulted ? Was the Fron- 
tier Province with a population of over 90 per 
cent Musalmans consulted before India was declared 
a belligerent? Were the people in these provinces 
asked whether they wished to join the war ? How 
can one man, however good, be invested with so 
much power over nearly 40 crores of people ? I 
am a friend of the Viceroy and hope to remain 
his friend until the end of my days, but the situa- 



Septembee 22, 1940 ] 


HAEIJAN 


291 


tion created by imposing him as a virtual dictator 
on. India is intolerable. It is a negation of demo- 
cracy. ” 

The Demand 

The Congress has during the past one year 
exhausted all the means in its power to bring about 
an understanding with Britain. It asked for a 
declaration of India’s Indpendence. It declared 
that it would be content if British Government 
were prepared to accept a Constitution framed by 
a Constituent Assembly. It offered a third alter- 
native and in doing so almost stultified itself, nearly 
went back, as it seemed to me, on the solemn 
professions of the past 20 years of its existence. 
It was pledged to winning Swaraj by non-violence; 
it forgot that in promising Britain its active co-ope- 
ration in the war-effort in case Britain recognized 
India’s indpendence, it was contradicting itself and 
offering to pay the price of its principle — for the 
sake of Independence. But happily even that offer 
was rejected. Now comes the fourth offer in the 
field: “Simply declare that India is free to carry 
on, non-violently and openly, anti-war propaganda, 
India is free to preach non-cooperation with 
Government in their war effort, and we will 
have no civil disobedience.” 

That is the lowest possible test of their honesty. 
Civil liberties are the very foundation of demo- 
cracy, and if you deny them you deny democracy. 
Only the other day a British judge defined the 
essence of democracy. Delivering judgment in 
an action brought against The Daily Worker, Mr, 
Justice Stable observed : “ The expression of 
views, no matter how unpopular, how fantastic or 
how wrong-headed they may appear to the majo- 
rity, is a right, and a right which I, among others, 
arc paid to see preserved. I subscribe whole- 
heartedly to the words that fell from the lips of 
Mr. D. N. Pritt, K. C, (defending Counsel), that 
it is those views which are held by only a few, 
those views that are unpopular, those views which 
do run counter to the views of the great majority 
of mankind, particularly in times of national 
emotional crises, such as war, it is those views 
whicli this court should be particularly zealous to 
protect.” It would seem that what is going on in 
India is the most flagrant negation of this 
elementary principle of democracy. 

This is how Gandhiji put it in his direct simple 
language: “In order completely to clarify our 
positic)!!, 1 propose to approach the Viceroy, if he 
will be g(’>od enough to see me, — and I have no 
doubt that he will ' * and to place my difficulties 
before him. I will approach him in your name. 
I will tell him thac this is the position to vrhich 
we have been reduced. We do not want to em- 
barrass you and deflect you from your purpose in 
regard to war effort. You go your way, and w'e go 
ours, undeterred, the common ground being non- 
violence. If our advice prevails, there will be no 
war effort on tlic part of our people. If, on the 
other hand, without your using any but moral 
pressure you find that they respond, then wc 
cannot help it. If ynu get assistance from the 
Princes, from the zamindars, from anybody high 


or low, you can have it; but let our voice also 
be heard. If you do .so, it will be eminently 
honourable; it will certainly be a feather in your 
cap. It will be honourable of you — although you 
are engaged in a life and death struggle — that 
you have recognised this liberty. It will be 
honourable of you that you do so although you 
have limitless powers to choke our voice and 
give us the fullest possible freedom, consistently 
with the observance of non-violence, to tell the 
people of India not to join the war effort.” 

That is the position that would put the Con- 
gress and the British Government at ease with 
one another. As Gandhiji put it : “ The British 
can then say to the world, ‘ Judge us by our con- 
duct. Here in India we are playing the game.’ ” 
What of Freedom ? 

Then, it may be asked, what about our demand 
for Independence ? Independence is contained in 
the right to declare and preach non-cooperation 
with the war effort. “ That liberty, ” he said, 
towards the close of his speech, “ is the founda- 
tion of your Swaraj. If that foundation-stone is- 
in danger, you have to exert the whole of your 
might to defend that single stone.” He explained 
this thought at greater length in his closing 
speech : 

“ I am sorry that your mind has failed to grasp 
a very simple but a very important point that I 
made yesterday. I described the right of free 
speech as the foundation-stone of Swaraj. Let mo 
explain this. I have yet to come across a complete 
definition of Swaraj. I do not think I have been 
able to give it myself. I do not think even 
Jawaharlal has ever given it. It is possible that some- 
one from amongst you may be able to give it, as it 
has often happened that others have defined for me 
things I have been labouring for. If anyone can 
do so, I shall gladly make him my ‘guru’. But this 
resolution contains the seed of Swaraj. If you hold 
fast to it, all that the movers of the various amend- 
ments desire is automatically attained. If we can 
win this liberty of free speech — either by fighting 
for it or by negotiation — we have secured every- 
thing — free speech for a communist like Dr. Ashraf 
and free speech for a Forward Bloc- wallah like 
Sardar Sardul Singh. If I give it a religious colour,, 

I can call it full religious liberty, the liberty cul- 
tural and religious that the Muslims are asking for. 
You say you want independence. But you forget 
that it is beyond their power to give it to us. 
Nor can we be independent by simply declaring 
that we arc independent. We can be independent 
only, when after the British have left, we can 
remain unafraid and rule ourselves unafraid of any 
attack from any foreign power — Japan, Germany, 
Russia or Afghanistan. It is absurd to launch civil 
disobedience today for Independence. How arc we 
to fight for independence with those whose own 
independence is in grave peril ? Even if independ- 
ence can be given by one nation to another, it is 
not possible for the English, Those who arc them- 
selves in peril cannot save others. But if they 
( Continued on p. 293 ) 



292 


HARIJAN 


[ September 22, 1940 



I WAS UITJUST BECAUSE WEAK 


(^By M. K. Gandhi) 

I know Rajaji enough to understand that he is 
too brave to need any support from anybody, he 
is too philosophic to harbour an injury for many 
hours, if not minutes. I know also that his fine 
sense of humour enables him to enjoy a joke at 
his expense. Therefore this confession must be 
taken as one for my own satisfaction only. 

I have told the public that, had I not egged 
him on, Rajaji would never have brought forward 
his resolution at New Delhi. Having great regard 
for his judgment and his honesty, when he asserted 
with amazing assurance that I was wrong and he 
was right in the implications and application of 
non-violence, I allowed myself to doubt the 
correctness of my interpretation to the point of 
allowing and encouraging him to act on his. I 
showed weakness and became unjust to him. A 
weak man is just by accident. A strong but non- 
violent man is unjust by accident. I was unjust 
to Rajaji because I exposed him to ridicule and 
unkind attacks. Though no ultimate harm has 
come to the Congress because what I still consider 
was an error has been rectified, it is riot a good 
thing for a great leader to have his work undone 
all of a sudden, for I know that Rajaji still feels 
that he was right. If his view had prevailed, the 
resolution that now holds sway would not have 
taken the shape it has. I would still have been 
out of the Congress. For I was out of it at 
Wardha before the Delhi resolution was taken as 
the natural outcome of Wardha. 

If I was unjust to Rajaji, I was also unjust to 
the Working Committee. For had I remained 
firm, the Wardha resolution too would not have 
been passed. I hold that, so long as I am accepted 
as the sole authority on satyagraha and its impli- 
cations, they must not be a matter • of vote. My 
colleagues may debate ’the pros and cons with me 
and try to convince me that their interpretation 
is right. If I cannot accept it, my judgment should 
prevail because I am both the author of satyagraha 
and general in satyagraha action. The only way 
the colleagues can avoid my judgment is by 
absolving me from guidance. They did in so many 
words at Wardha. But it is plain that the absolu- 
tion was not what the word means. They were 
most unwilling to give me absolution. It was 
given because I wrung it from them. My weakness 
began at Wardha. When a serious crisis arose, 
I should have raised the issue of jurisdiction. It 
was outside the Working Committee’s jurisdiction 
to decide upon the meaning and application of a 
matter which belonged to their expert who was 
their interpreter and executive oflEcer. 

I am aware that all the members of the Working 
Committee do not accept my opinion as to juris- 


diction. The matter has not come up for decision. 
But before the Committee and I came to the 
resolution now before the country I had made 
the confession I have now published for the sake 
of an esteemed co-worker. 

It is my conviction that, owing to a series of 
fortunate combination of acts of the members at 
the last Wardha meeting, the present resolution 
was conceived and we have been saved from a 
national disaster. We have come to a decision 
which, if Congressmen react to it as they should, 
must raise India to a position which it has never 
yet occupied, and brings it nearer to her goal as 
nothing else could have done. 

Whether my estimate is right or wrong time 
alone can show. But this is merely by the way. 
Nor is the purpose of this confession to invite 
the reader to accept my judgment as to the 
jurisdiction of the Working Committee. The men- 
tion of it was relevant to show the nature of my 
error. It is unpardonable for a general to 
surrender his judgment to a fellow oflScer unless 
the conviction goes home to him that the latter 
is right — not may be right. 

I hope I have given the public enough material 
to show that in all that Rajaji did he was 
throughout brave and correct. The incorrect- 
ness was due to me. 

And I wish to say the same thing about his 
‘ sporting offer ’. It is no part of this confession 
to defend it. But so far as I can see, the offer 
was truly sporting, if the correctness of the Poona 
resolution be accepted. It should be remembered 
that the Muslim League is a great organisation 
wielding influence upon the Muslims of India. 
The Congress has dealt with it before, and I have 
no doubt it will deal with it in future. However 
mistaken Qaid-e-Azam may be in our estimation, 
let us give him the same credit for honesty of 
purpose as we claim for ourselves. When the war 
cloud is lifted and when India comes to her own, 
surely Congressmen would just as much welcome 
a Muslim, a Sikh, a Christian, or a Parsi as 
Premier, as they would a Hindu, and even a 
non-Congressman, no matter of what faith he may 
be. I am sure that Rajaji’s ‘sporting offer ’ meant 
no more and no less than this. When passions 
have died, critics will read his offer in its proper 
light. It is wrong to misjudge a public worker, 
and doubly so when he happens to be of Rajaji’s 
calibre. He has lost nothing by the mis judgment. 
But a nation may easily harm itself by misjudging 
its true servants and denying itself their services. 
Above all, when the Congress may have to embark 
upon a great non-violent struggle for fundamental 
liberty, it behoves Congressmen to guard against 
harsh, hasty and uncharitable judgments. 

On the train to Weirdha, 18-9-40 


A Correction 

In the article entitled * Moral Support* which appeared 
in Harijan on August 18, Duryodhana’s army is 
inadvertently described as consisting of 18 divisions* It 
should have been 11. 




:SEPTEMBEE 22 , 1940 ], 


HARIJAN 


293 


SEVEN DAYS IN BOMBAY 
( Continued from p, 291 ) 

fight unto death for their freedom, if they are at 
all reasonable, ‘ they must recognise our right of 
free speech. This they can certainly do. It is 
•our duty to fight for that right. If they resist it 
and we have to fight, and they are embarrassed, 
they will have invited embarrassment themselves. 

‘’This liberty is a concrete issue which needs no 
defining. It is the foundation of freedom, especially 
when it has to be taken non-violently. To surrender 
it IS to surrender the only means for attaining 
freedom. 

“When Rajaji told me that his own offer was 
easier for the British to accept than mine, he was 
-expressing half the truth. It may be easy indeed 
for them to recognise our Independence, but I can 
understand, during the war, their reluctance to 
grant us central responsible government. For once 
they grant it, they have to carry on through us. 
■One day it may be Rajaji, another day it may be 
Jawaharlal, and then it may be a Damodar Menon. 
This co-operation that we offer them would be 
to them a commodity of doubtful value, for they 
do not trust us, and if I was in the Viceroy’s posi- 
tion, I should understand his misgivings. It is 
risky for them to carry on war through those 
whom they do not trust. But where is the risk in 
'letting everyone declare that he is free to refuse 
all co-operation in war and preach that non- 
cooperation to everyone he comes across, unless 
■they want to enforce co-operation at the , point 
of the bayonet?” 

The Only Limiting Condition 

But the right sought to be asserted is subject to 
' the condition that wc observe non-violence. “ The 
condition is necessary because a Government that 
is based on violence cannot tolerate violence.- 
That is the unavoidable logic of violence. But 
• even those who arc violently inclined^ need not 
despair, if they will listen to me today. For if 
wc win Swaraj through non-violence, even the 
violent, if there are any, will have not only the 
liberty to preach but to do violence. There would 
be no army. But that will not prevent a Sikh or 
a Khaksar from possessing a sword or swords. If 
the rest are all believers in non-violence, what 
■violence can these indict? The restraint of speech 
and action of the majority will automatically 
exercise similar restraint on those who are con- 
trarily inclined. At any rate, if I had my way as 
the President of a non-violent Indian republic, I 
should not hesitate to give those who are violently 
inclined, the liberty of violent speech. On the 
other liand, let mo tell them that under a violent 
State they cannot expect that liberty. 

“ Let me tell those who want mass civil 
disobedience, strikes, no rent campaigns, that 
they forget that all those things arc there in our 
■old resolution of 1920, In fact I have been striv- 
ing all these years to prepare the country for all 
these things. We should have been able to do all 
of them and to bring about a new social order by 
•now, if only we had observed the conditions. And 


if we did not observe the conditions and were not 
ready, none but we were to blame. 

“ But you are free to organise mass civil dis- 
obedience if you like, though you will then be 
guilty of indiscipline. But as I said to Subhas 
Babu who put me the same question, I shall 
gladly congratulate you if 37’ou succeed, but you 
cannot have my blessings. Of course, the 
honourable course for you would be to leave the 
Congress. 

“But you know that you cannot organise mass 
disobedience at the present stage without vio- 
lence. For similar reasons I am asking students 
not to leave colleges to join satyagraha, unless 
they will leave them for good. Similarly about 
strikes. Dr. Suresh Bannerji, who was once a co- 
worker but who has for some 3 ^ears strayed away 
from me but seems now to be coming back, 
said to me some time ago that only I could 
conduct a labour strike to a successful conclusion. 

I can do all these things if I had your full 
cooperation and complete discipline.” 

The Effect 

As regards the immediate effect Gandhiji said: 
“When we come to our own, the Government 
will be in charge not only of the Congressmen but 
of non-Congressmen. There will be adult suffrage, 
and the Government will be formed by the elected 
representatives of all the adult voters — Hindus, 
Muslims, Parsis, Christians, Jews, and those whom 
we foolishly have regarded as untouchables. What 
a mixed Parliament of these representatives will 
do I do not know. But I hope that the Congress 
vote will always be in favour of non-violence. If 
it is in a minority, it will record its vote; if it is 
in a majority, it will administer the State non- 
violently. For the Congress as Congress can do 
nothing else. Supposing the Government accepts our 
demand tomorrow and says: ‘Do what you like 
in future, but now please do help us with men 
and money. ’ I am afraid even then we shall have 
to say to them: “We are sorry we cannot give 
the co-operation. We wish you well, and may God 
help you. But committed as we are to the policy 
of non-violence, nothing that you can offer can 
persuade us to give you violent assistance. * 

In the interval between now and Gandhiji’s 
return from a visit to the Viceroy, what is to be 
done? Gandhiji said: ‘T am going to see the 
Viceroy, but I may fail in my mission. I have 
never approached a mission in despair. I have 
approached it with the consciousness that I may 
be faced with a blind wall. But I have often 
penetrated blind walls. But if I fail, we shall be 
free to assert our right to carry on anti-war pro- 
paganda and take the consequences. You are of 
course free to carry on the propaganda from now, 
but it will not be fair, it will not be restraint. 
I would therefore ask you to be patient until 
my return from the Viceroy. ” 

Since this was written, the Working Committee 
passed the following resolution which leaves no 
manner of doubt about the Congressmen’s duty 
during the interval: 



294 


HARIJAN 


[ September 22, 1940 


“ In view of the resolution just passed by the 
A. I. C. C., the Working Committee calls upon all 
Congress organisations to stop all civil disobedi- 
ence, individual or other, pending definite 
instructions of Gandhiji. He regards this suspension 
as indispensable for his pending interview with 
H. E. the Viceroy, and as a test of the discipline 
of registered and unregistered Congressmen and all 
Congress-minded men and women, and also as a 
short course of obedience to law before recourse 
to civil 'disobedience should become necessary/’ 
The Hindu-Muslim Question 
In his closing speech Gandhiji referred to the 
Hindu-Muslim question, as it had been raised 
during the debate. He said : “ If a conflict is 
there in store for us, who can prevent it ? We 
have to be prepared even for anarchy and chaos, 
but we must have the faith that non-violence 
cannot result in chaos. But if somehow disorders 
take place, they will be a test of our non-violence. 
Non-violence is a force that gains in intensity 
with the increase in the violence that it has to 
deal with. I hope that you will get that power 
of non-violence before I die. But there is a 
message I^should like to reach the ears of every 
Mussalman. India cannot win Independence if 
eight or more crores of Mussulmans arc opposed 
to it. But I cannot believe that all of them are 
so opposed, until it is proved to me by the vote 
of every adult Mussalman. Let them declare that 
they want to have their political salvation apart 
from that of the Hindus. India is a poor country 
full of Hindus and Mussulmans and others staying 
in every corner of it. To divide it into two is 
worse than anarchy. It is vivisection which cannot 
be tolerated — not because I am a Hindu, for I am 
speaking from this platform as representative of 
Hindus, Muslims, Parsis and all else. But I will 
say to them, ‘Vivisect me before you vivisect 
India. You shall not do what even the Moghuls, 
who ruled over India for over two centuries, did 
not do. ’ What I have said about the Muslims 
applies equally to Sikhs. If 30 lakhs of Sikhs will 
obstruct Indian Independence, we shall deal with 
them non-violently. Non-violent Swaraj cannot be 
won except by non-violence. There arc other 
obstacles too imposed by the existence of an alien 
power. But we must strain every nerve to achieve 
communal peace. Islam means peace. That peace 
cannot be confined to the Muslims. It must mean 
peace for the whole world.” 

Implications of the Resolution 
The representative of the American Associated 
Press saw Gandhiji in Bombay within twentyfour 
hours of the termination of the A. I. C. C. and 
said; “Hundreds of our papers have printed the 
A. I. C. C. resolution, and a summary of your speeches 
wired by me, and have commented on it. Four 
questions emerge out of these comments, and I seek 
your answers to the questions.” Gandhiji was 
immersed up to the ears in work, and was actually 
attending a meeting of the Working Committee 
when Mr. Stimson arrived. He interrupted the 
meeting and dictated his answers to the four 
questions. 


The first question was: “How do you desire not 
to embarrass Britain with your demand to preach 
anti-war propaganda in a non-violent way ? ” 

Gandhiji said: “ Because non-violence is the 
Congress creed which involves Congress hostility 
to all war. Hence it is a vital necessity for the 
Congress to dissociate itself from identifying itself 
with any war. Hence my desire not to embarrass 
Britain w-as necessarily limited and conditioned by 
the counter necessity of preserving the Congress 
existence, and therefore civil disobedience is defi- 
nitely restricted to freedom of speech and action, 
provided they are absolutely non-violent. There- 
fore I have claimed in my speech that, if the 
full import of Congress action is understood, it 
must in the end help Britain and the world.” 

“ Why,” wondered Mr. Stimson. 

“Because in the midst of the conflagration all 
round there is one powerful body pinning its faith 
to uttermost non-violence. If it succeeds, then 
the groaning world can heave a sigh of relief and 
find a way out of these monstrous armaments.” 

The second question was: “How do you 
visualise the future of India in the event of a 
Nazi victory ? ” 

A. All I can say is — I am not dismayed by 
the prospect, if my country remains true to the 
cult of non-violence. But that does not mean 
that I should be in any way pleased with the 
prospect of a Nazi victory. What terrifies me is 
that as things are going on at present defeat of 
Nazism will be bought at a terrific price, viz. 
superior Nazism, call it by any name you like. 

Q. In view of what has happened in Malabar, 
is there any hope of mass civil disobedience 
being carried on non-violently ? 

A. Not at present, and therefore, as you must 
have noticed, in my speech I made an emphatic 
declaration that so far as I was concerned there 
was no prospect of my embarking on mass civil 
disobedience. But if you ask me whether it is. 
possible to conduct mass civil disobedience 
without its resulting in violence, I would empha- 
tically say ‘ yes ’. But my country is not at 
present ready for mass action, and in a way 
I am thankful that the unfortunate events in 
Malabar have come as a warning to the country 
and a pointer for me also. 

Mr. Stimson’s last question was : Does your 
policy mean disapproval of America’s help to 
Britain in the shape of planes and munitions ? 

A. Not in the slightest. For the simple reason 
that America does not believe with the Indian 
National Congress in non-violent action, I wish it 
did. Then America’s contribution to peace and 
help to Britain would be infinitely more substan- 
tial than any number of planes and any amount of 
material that America can supply to Britain. And 
if the weekly correspondence I receive from Ame- 
rica and visits from Americans who come to see 
me is any index to American opinion, I expect 
America to take a leaf out of the Congress book 
and outrun the Congress in the race for the 
estabhshment of peace on earth through universal 
disarmament. 



HAEIJAN 


295 


September 22, 1940 ] 


Am I Inconsistent? 

The correspondent of The Tiews Chronicle, who 
interviewed Gandhiji in Bombay on the 18th, saw 
him when he had already had a heavy day on the 
top of a night of insufficient sleep, and when he 
had heavy engagements yet to fulfil. But as he 
presented a conundrum on behalf of the British 
people Gandhiji gladly found time for him and 
replied to his question which was as follows: 
** While expressing your sympathy with the British 
people in their plight, don’t you think there is an 
inconsistency between your earlier decisions and 
your latest decision ? ” 

“ I thought,” said Gandhiji replying to the ques- 
tion, “that I had clearly and sufficiently explained 
my position in my speech, in anticipation of the 
■charge of inconsistency. If there is any incon- 
sistency, it is due in this particular instance to 
changed circumstances. My sympathy is not only 
the same as it had been expressed in Simla on 
the declaration of war, it has become deeper 
because what was imaginary has become vividly 
real. In Simla almost a year ago I had expressed 
my grief over what might befall Britain. Today 
the dreaded thing has happened and is still going 
on. By nature I am so framed that every cala- 
mity moves me irrespective of the people whom 
it may overtake. But my sympathy, even though 
it is deeper today than a year ago, has undoubted- 
ly changed in form. L was unprepared for the 
recent Government declarations, and I claim that 
it ib the genuineness cjf my sympathy wliicli has 
made me single out the one fact which Britain can 
-easily recognise and yield without any hitch in her 
prosecution of war. I readily grant that there 
might be some reason for not dividing the respon- 
sibility for the conduct of the war with those 
who are the determined opponents of British impe- 
rialism and all it implies, and therefore I felt that, 
if the Congress continued to abide by its policy 
ot nou-embarrassment which is inherent in its 
non-violence, the Ccingrcss should for the moment 
abate agitation by way of direct action for inde- 
pendence. But freedom of speech and correspond- 
ing action is the breath of democratic life. Free- 
dom of propagating non-violence as substitute for 
war is the nicest relevant when indecent savagery 
is being perpetrated by the warring nations of 
Europe. The Congress will forfeit all its right to 
be considered a non-violent organisation, if out of 
false sympathy or what would be w'orse — fear of 
coiisequences — 'it ceased to agitate against the in- 
humanity that is being perpetrated in Europe and 
which, if nor checked by somebody or some orga- 
nisation, may overtake the whole world. 1 hope 
this statement of C!ongress policy as I interpret 
it, as its S(jle ginJe, will not only satisfy the 
British public opinion, but will make it range 
itself on the side of the Congress, so as to enable 
the Viceroy to recognise the justice of the 
Congress clamu winch is a claim not for .itself 
but which is a cliiiin for freedom of speech no 
matter by whom e:verci>eJ so long as it docs 
not promote violence in any .shape or form.” 
Bombay, JS-9-40 M. D. 


Khadi Patrikas 

Several Khadi Patrikas are being published these 
days by the various branches of the All India 
Spinners’ Association. I have not seen all of them. 
But of those that I have seen the Maharashtra 
Khadi Patrika alone has captured my attention. 
The rest, so far as I have seen them, are not up 
to much. If all the provinces will send me their 
respective Khadi Patrikas, I will gladly have 
them examined and send them the result. Besides 
these there is too the “Gram Seva Patrika” 
published on behalf of the Nalwadi (Wardha) 
Karyalaya which is always well worth reading. It 
is published in Marathi. Shri Vinoba is the in- 
spiration behind it. As a rule, it contains at least 
one article by him. In my opinion no Patrika 
should be brought out for its own sake. They 
should be self-supporting, notwithstanding the 
fact that their readers are likely to be mostly 
workers of the publishing organisation. The latter 
will and must pay for the publications if they 
are really needed, since they will be getting back 
many times the worth of money spent on them in 
the form of useful knowledge. 

The August issue of the Maharashtra Khadi 
Patrika is lying before me. One item out of it, 
viz. “One aspect of khadi”, has already been re- 
produced in these columns. The Patrika is mostly 
in Hindi, partly in Marathi. Each issue is priced 
as. 2; the subscription for the year being Rs. 1/4/-. 
It is princed on handmade paper. It is published 
from Chanda and can be had from the Khadi 
Karyalaya, Wardha. 

The Patrika is filled with useful knowledge 
about khadi. The issue under review contains the 
following articles: “The thickness of yarn and 
width of cloth.” “The care of slivers.” “Some 
experiments of Gandhi Ashram Raniwa.” “The 
curriculum of the Vastra Vidyalaya, Mool.” “The 
village service scheme of the Gandhi Seva Sangh.” 
“For spinners on the Yeravda and the Kisan Char- 
khas”, “Dhanush Takli”, “The arithmetic of spin- 
ning,” “Organisational Notes." No student of 
khadi can afford to go without this Patrika. 

Sevagram, 9-9-40. M. K. G. 

( Translated from Hindustani) 


For Subscribers 

Subscriptions for our three weeklies — Harijan 
( English ), Harijanhandhii ( Gujarati ), and Harijan- 
sevak ( Hindustani ) — can be paid at the following 
places besides the Poona office : 

(l) Navajivan Karyalaya, 130 Princess St., Bombay, 
( 2 ) Navajivan Karyalaya, Kalupur, Ahmedabad, ( 3 ) 
Gujarat H. S. Sangh, Harijan Ashram, Sabarmati, 
(4) IL S. Sangh, Kingsway, Delhi, (5) Punjab 

H. S. Sangh, Lajpatrai Bhavan, Lahore. ( 6 ) A. 1. V* 

I. A. Bengal P)ranch, 249D, Bow Bazar, Calcutta* 
(7) Shuddha Khadi Bhandar, 132/1 Harrison Rd* 
Calcutta. ( 8 ) Tamil Nad H. S. Sangh, Teppakulam^ 
Trichy. (9) A. I. V. L A., Maganwadi, Wardha. 
(lOj Sliri Kanu Gandhi, Sevagram, Via Wardha. 

Manager 



296 


HARIJAN 


[ September 22, 194G 


A. I. C. C. RESOLUTION 

The follovv’ing resolution was passed by the 
A. I. C. C. at Bombay on the 16th inst. : 

The All India Congress Committee has given its 
careful attention to the events that have taken 
place since its last meeting held in Poona on July 
27, 1940, and to the resolutions passed by the 
Working Committee at Wardha in August last. 
The Committee approves of and endorses these 
resolutions. 

In order to end the deadlock in India and to 
promote the national cause, in co-operation with 
the British people, the Working Committee, even 
at the sacrifice of Mahatma Gandhi’s co-operation, 
made a proposal to the British Government in 
their Delhi resolution of July 7th, which was sub- 
sequently approved by the A. I. C. C. at Poona. 
This proposal was rejected by the British Govern- 
ment in a manner which left no doubt that they 
had no intention to recognise India’s independence, 
and would, if they could, continue to hold this 
country indefinitely in bondage for British exploi- 
tation. This decision of the British Government 
shows that they will impose their will upon India, 
and their recent policy has further shown that 
they will not even tolerate free expression of 
public opinion in condemnation of their associat- 
ing India in the war against Germany, against the 
will of a vast body of the people of India, and of 
exploiting her national resources and man power 
for this purpose. 

The All India Congress Committee cannot sub- 
mit to a policy which is a denial of India’s natu- 
ral right to freedom, which suppresses the free 
expression of public opinion, and which would 
lead to the degradation of her people and their 
continued enslavement. By following this policy 
the British Government have created an intoler- 
able situation, and are imposing upon the Congress 
a struggle for the preservation of the honour and 
the elementary rights of the people. The Congress 
is pledged under Gandhiji’s leadership to non- 
violence for the vindication of India’s freedom. 
At this grave crisis in the movement for national 
freedom, the All India Congress Committee, there- 
fore, requests him to guide the Congress in the 
action that should be taken. The Delhi resolution, 
confirmed! by the A. I. C. C. at Poona, which 
prevented him from so doing, no longer applies. 
It has lapsed. 

The A. 1. C. C. sympathise with the British 
people as well as the peoples of all other countries 
involved in the War. Congressmen cannot with- 
hold their admiration for the bravery and endur- 
ance shown by the British nation in the face of 
danger and peril. They can have no ill-will 
against them, and the spirit of satyagraha forbids 
the Congress from doing anything with a view to 
embarrass them. But this self-imposed restraint 
cannot be taken to the extent of self-extinction. 
The Congress must insist on the fullest freedom 


to pursue its policy, based on non-violence„ 
The Congress has, however, no desire at the* 
present moment to extend non-violent resistance, 
should this become necessary, beyond what is 
required for the preservation of the liberties of 
the people. 

In view of certain misapprehensions that have* 
arisen in regard to the Congress policy of non- 
violence, the A. I. C. C. desire to state this afresh, 
and to make it clear that this policy continues, 
notwithstanding anything contained in previous ^ 
resolutions which may have led to these misappre- 
hensions. This Committee firmly believes in the 
policy and practice of non-violence not only in 
the struggle for Swaraj, but also, in so far as this 
may be possible of application, in free India. The 
Committee is convinced, and recent world events, 
have demonstrated, that complete world disarma- 
ment is necessary, and the establishment of a new 
and juster political and economic order, if the 
world is not to destroy itself and revert to barbar- 
ism. A free India will, therefore, throw all her 
weight in favour of world disarmament and should 
herself be prepared to give a lead in this to the 
world. Such lead will inevitably depend on exter- 
nal factors and internal conditions, but the State 
would do its utmost to give effect to this policy 
of disarmament. Effective disarmament and the 
establishment of world peace by the ending of 
national wars, depend ultimately on the removal 
of the causes of wars and national conflicts. These 
causes must be rooted out by the ending of the 
domination of one country over another and the 
exploitation of one people or group by another. 
To that end India will peacefully labour, and it 
is with this objective in view that the people of 
India desire to attain the status of a free and 
independent nation. Such freedom will be the 
prelude to the close association with other 
countries within a comity of free nations for the* 
peace and progress of the world. 


Some Books by 

Gandhi ji 




Satyagraha in South Africa 

Rs. 4 

8 

0 

8 

My*. -Early Life 

1 

0 

0 

2 

Speeches and Writings 

4 

0 

0 

9 

Cent Per Cent Swadeshi 

1 

8 

0 

5 

Hind Swaraj 

0 

4 

0 

2 

Self-Restraint v. Self-Indulgence 





Parts I & II ( each ) 

1 

0 

0 

3 


Home and Village Doctor 

By Satish Chandra Dasgupta 


1384 pages. 18 chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages,- 
216 illustrations. Price Rs. 5 cloth-bound; By V. P.. 
P. Rs. 6. Rs. 6 leather-bound; By V. P. P. Rs. 7 
Available at Harijan office — Poona 4. 

^contents" page 

Seven Days in Bombay ... M. D. 289 
I Was Unjust because Weak M. K. Gandhi 292 
A. 1. C. C. Resolution ... 296- 

Note: 

Khadi Patrikas . . M. K. G. 295i 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press,* 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
Subscription Rat'eo — INLAHID : One year, Rs. 4, Six months, Rs. 2-8. FOREIGN : One year, Rs. 5-8 or, 8 sh. or 2 dollars 




Editor : MAHADEV DESAI 


12 Pages 


VoL. Vin, No. 33 ] POONA — SUNDAY, SEPTEMBER 29, 1940 [ ONE ANNA SIX PIES 


I WONDER 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

“For some time you seem to have made it a point 
to strengthen your arguments in favour of non-violence 
by frequent but invariably vague references to the Holy 
Quran and the teachings of Islam. It is quite obvious 
that you only seek to impress the Muslims thereby. No 
doubt your right to preach your cherished doctrine is 
beyond all question. Similarly, it is quite understandable 
that you should pat the fifth columnist IMussalmans like 
Khan Abdul GhafFar Khan and Abul Kalam Azad on the 
back. But can't you realise that nothing can offend the 
religious susceptibilities of a Mussulman more than to 
see a non-Muslim citing the scripture for his own 
purpose ? Well, the Mussulmans have had thirteen 
centuries to know what the Quran teaches and to 
practise what it means. The Muslims, of course, do 
not need a Mahatma to interpret their own holy book. 
It would be better, indeed, if you take it from the Muslims 
what they have throughout the last thirteen centuries 
believed to bo the tca('hings oi their religion, rather than 
indulge in your own wishful interpretation. I hope you 
realise full well that you as well as your Muslim satel- 
lites have entirely forfeited the confidence of the Mussal- 
mans. Your references to the Quran are futile except 
that they cause the greatest pra\’Ocation to the Muslims. 
Muslims have always shown themselves self-respecting 
enougii not to allow their holy book becoming an instru- 
ment in non- Muslim hands, ^’our ilattcring words about 
Islam are of no avail. The hu't stands out that you are 
a non-Muslim. Hence the Quran cannot be the source of 
your ideas or ideals. You only turn to the Quran afterwards 
in order to popularise them among the Muslims. It is 
my friendly advice to you to stop fortiiwith all reference 
to the Quran, lii the meantime f would ask you to read 
what Abul Kalam wrote 1 before he reconcilal himself to 
be tlui Quisling of Muslim India.” 

This letter is from an M. A. (Aligarh ). He is 
a research scholar in the Muslim University. The 
letter was received some time ago. I kept it in 
my file so long, for I was debating whether it 
would serve the cause of unity to publish it. But 
having received another from the same friend more 
unbalanced than this one, I decided to publish the 
foregoing in order to enable me to expostulate 
with those wdio in Aligarh or outside hold views 
similar to the writer's. 

I have sweet memories of Aligarh. I have more 
than once visited the great University, I have 
still associations with it, I think I am an hono- 
rary member of their club. I received the honour 
the hands of the late Dr. Sir Ross Masood 
when he was Vice-Chancellor of the University. 


As for the holy Quran, it was my Muslim clients 
and friends in South Africa who invited me to 
read it. They furnished me with Islamic litera- 
ture. On my return to India, Muslim friends sent 
me copies of translations of the holy book. Among 
the senders was Dr. Mahomed Ali himself a 
translator, and the late Mr. Pickthall also a trans- 
lator of the book. I was presented by the late 
Hakimsaheb Ajmal Khan with Maulana Shibli^s 
translation. Have I changed or have the times so 
changed that it has become a crime for a non- 
Muslim like me to read and even dare to put his 
own interpretation upon the Quran ? Many pious 
Muslims have remarked that I am a better Muslim 
than most Muslims in that I act in the spirit of 
the Quran and know more of the life of the 
Prophet than most Muslims. Whose testimony 
am I to accept — these Muslim friends’ or the 
research scholar’s and of those who think like 
him? I wonder. 

The research scholar is right in imputing to me 
the desire to read my meaning into the Quran. 
Surely there is no harm in it so long as I remain 
absolutely faithful to the text and approach my 
task with a prayerful and open mind. My corres- 
pondent should know as a scholar that an inter- 
pretation of a life or a book is not necessarily 
correct because it has been handed down for 
generations. An error does not cease to be one 
after a given number of repetitions by a given 
number of men for a given number of years. The 
Biblical texts arc still being corrected. And many 
good Christians believe that the Christianity of 
the West is a negation of Christ’s central teach- 
ing. It is just possible that the research scho- 
lar’s views about the qualifications required for 
reading and interpreting the Quran and his 
own interpretation arc wrong, and that my 
being a -non-Muslim is no bar to my reading 
the Quran or interpreting it. And it is not at 
all impossible that my interpretation may be 
found to be right. It will be an evil day if the 
reading and interpreting of religious books are to 
be confined only to those who wear particular 
religious labels. I ask my correspondent and his 
companions, as their friend, to shed what in my 
opinion is their gross intolerance and give the 
same credit to others for seeing truth as they 
claim for themselves. No one has a monopoly of 
truth. All truth represented by imperfect humans 
that we are is relative. We can each act accord- 
ing to our lights. God alone knows the reality. 
That being so, it behoves research scholars at 
least to be humble and tolerant. Fanaticism and 



298 


tlAHUAJS 




intolerance can neither conduce to research work 
nor advance the cause they represent. 

Sevagram, 25-9-40 

KHADI WEEK 

iBy M. K. Gandhi') 

It is a happy thing that the khadi week coincides 
with my pending visit to H. E. the Viceroy. I 
want the prayers of all who believe in the efficacy 
of prayer that the result of my visit may prove 
fruitful to India, the British people, and ultimately 
conduce to peace between the warring nations. 
I feel that though the issue raised by the 
A. I. C. C. resolution seems small it has in it great 
potency for the good of mankind. 

‘Khadi Week’ is the name given by me to my 
birthday celebration. Birth and death are twins. 
I should be sorry if the annual celebration was 
forgotten with my death. Therefore, I have popu- 
larised the birthday celebration as Khadi Week. It 
enables me to deal with the event impersonally. 

I shall strain every nerve to avoid a civil dis- 
obedience struggle. But it would be wrong for 
Congressmen to go to sleep while an effort for 
peace is being made. I hope no Congressman 
thinks that because I have undertaken command 
of the struggle, if it comes, the spinning and khadi 
conditions are waived. Those who do not strictly 
conform to these and other conditions will find them- 
selves left out if civil disobedience faces us. More- 
over, what will the millions do who will never 
have to court any kind of suffering ? The con- 
structive programme is as much for them as for 
the civil resisters. Indeed if it was confined to 
the latter only, the imprisonment of a few could 
never deserve to be called a national struggle. 
But voluntary suffering of even one person in the 
name of an organisation or the nation, if backed 
by their unreserved co-operation in all manner 
prescribed by the commander, must ensure success. 
Khadi and spinning are the visible symbols that 
all can show. I would therefore expect a pheno- 
menal rise in khadi sales, spinning and village 
handicrafts during the celebration week. I may 
also mention that the A. 1. S. A. having given up 
the policy of taking loans, it has become neces- 
sary to receive donations, if the work is not to be 
curtailed. The unexampled and unexpected rise 
in the wages of spinners has meant an increase of 
spinners. These cannot be provided for without 
more capital. Fortunately workers have come 
forward to collect funds for the A. I. S. A. I hope 
that there will be an automatic response to the 
appeal. All, whether Congressmen or others, 
should liberally support the appeal. The A. I. S. A. 
is a purely humanitarian economic institution. 
As such it has no politics, even though it has 
received its charter from the Congress. It is a 
purely autonomous body. All can, therefore, 
help it without any scruples. Khadi has no doubt 
a political, as it has an economic and humanitarian, 
significance. And viewed as a symbol of non- 
violence, even its political significance in no way 
detracts from its moral appeal. For genuine and 


unadulterated non-violence can have no colour of 
party politics. And the Congress will cease to be 
a party label but will be universally acknowledged 
as a national institution having no quarrel with 
any party or nation. 

Sevagram, 23-9-40 

AN AMERICAN’S QUESTIONS 

An American journalist had important questions 
to ask arising from the latest decision of the 
A. I. C. C. in Bombay — questions not merely 
political, but dealing with international relations 
and commercial and social intercourse. 

“What is India’s contribution towards making 
the world safe from Hitlerism?” was his first 
question. The reply was, perhaps as he had ex- 
pected, short and sweet: “If the Congress succeeds 
in its non-violent effort, Hitlerism and all such 
isms will go as a matter of course.” 

“Don’t you think,” he next asked, “ India should 
do something to make facts better known in 
America and thus promote the interchange of 
goods and ideas? What do you think should be 
done in this connection?” 

“First let us take up goods. America has had 
her bit, irrespective of Indian conditions and India’s 
wishes. So far as ideas are concerned, my unhappy 
experience is that anti-Indian propaganda carried 
on in America has held undisputed sway, so much 
so that even the visit of an outstanding personality 
like Tagore produced little impression on the 
American mind.” 

“But why does not India endeavour to make 
herself better known in America?” 

“ If America really wanted to know what Indian 
opinion is at a given time, there is ample litera- 
ture which is growing from day to day to which 
they have access If you have in mind an Indian 
agency which should do propagandist work on 
behalf of India, again our bitter experience has 
been that imperialist propaganda that is carried 
on with much ability and perseverance and at a 
lavish expenditure is such that we can never 
overtake it, and the work of any such agency has 
up to now proved fruitless. ” 

His next question was rather strange: “Why 
not have Indian people use Indian handspun cloth 
and keep her mills busy for the export of manu- 
factured cloth and yarn? Don’t you think that 
this would help the cotton-grower ?” He evidently 
was thinking of a free India. 

“ I would not mind such a thing, ” said Gandhiji, 
“ but it must be in order to supply the felt needs 
of the country which received our cloth. I have 
no idea of exploiting other countries for the 
benefit of India. We are suffering from the poison- 
ous disease of exploitation ourselves, and I would 
not like my country to be guilty of any such 
thing. If Japan, say, as a free country wanted 
India’s help, and said we could produce certain 
goods cheaper, and we might export them to 
Japan, we would gladly do so. But under my 
scheme of things all dumping of goods by one 
country in another, supported by her army and 
her navy, has to cease.” 



September 29, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


299 


“ Apart from export of merchandise what has 
India to give America, and in turn what does 
India expect from America?” 

“ I must correct your question for you. India 
sends no merchandise to America, she sends only 
raw material, and that is a matter for serious 
consideration for every nationalist. For we cannot 
suffer our country remaining an exporter of raw 
produce, for it means ( as it has meant ) extinction 
of handicrafts and art itself. I would expect 
America to treat India not as though India was a 
country for American exploitation but as if India 
was a frfie country, although unarmed, and deserv- 
ing, therefore, the same treatment that America 
would wish at the hands of India.” 

“ You are repeating, Sir, the message of Jesus, ” 
said the correspondent. 

“I agree,” said Gandhiji. “We are poor in 
technical skill, but as soon as you accept and con- 
sent to follow Jesus teaching I would not have 
to complain of all the skill being monopolised 
by America. You will then say, ‘Here is a sister 
country poor in technical skill, let us offer our 
skilled assistance not for exploitation, not for a 
terrific price, but for its benefit, and so for 
nothing.’ And here let me say a word about 
your missionaries. You send them here for nothing, 
but that also is part of imperialist exploitation. 
For they would like to make us like you, better 
buyers of your goods, and unable to do without 
your cars and luxuries. So the Christianity that 
you send us is adulterated. If you established 
your schools, colleges and hospitals without the 
object of adding to the number of the so-called 
Christian population, your philanthropy would 
be untainted. 

“As regards technical skill, I cannot afford to 
do what the Tatas arc doing. They can afford 
to bring an American expert manager at Rs. 20^000 
a month. But whilst they represent the spirit of 
adventure, they do not represent poor India. India 
has seven lakhs of villages which take in 90 per cent 
of her population. America has to think of these. 
America ought, if she will be of real help, to 
exercise her resourcefulness in this direction. And 
for that purpose America will have to cease to 
be the premier exporting country that she is. My 
views on national planning differ from the pre- 
vailing ones. I do not want it along industrial 
lines. I want to prevent our villages from catch- 
ing the infection of industrialisation. American 
exploitation has added neither to the moral height 
of the exploited countries nor of the exploiting 
country. On the contrary it has impeded their 
march towards spiritual progress, and deadened 
America’s real spirit of philanthropy. A pheno- 
menon like the one that America witnessed can- 
not happen in India. I mean the destruction of 
tons of sugar and other agricultural products. You 
might have supplied other countries the sugar and 
the wheat or fed America’s own unemployed. 

“But,” said the correspondent, laughing, “you 
could not have taken our pigs ! ” 


“ I know. But all do not think like me. Pandit 
Nehru wants industrialisation because he thinks 
that, if it is socialised, it would be free from the 
evils of capitalism. My own view is that the 
evils are inherent in industrialism, and no amount 
of socialisation can eradicate them.” 

“ We have seen what Germany has done to 
Belgium and to the other countries. You would 
still say ‘ non-violence ’ ? And yet you ask the 
Congress to fight because it is in danger of 
extinction. England also is in such danger and 
therefore fights.” 

“ Don’t you see the obvious difference ? England 
would have to out-Hitler Hitler in defeating him. 
We do not want to use any of the weapons used 
by those who would crush us. I would say to an 
aggressor : ‘ You may destroy my churches, my 
hearths and my homes, everything but my soul. I 
won’t come to your country to destroy your 
churches, hearths and homes. I will not defend 
my country with your weapons. I will simply 
refuse to co-operate with you, refuse to owe any 
allegiance to you, in a word I will say ‘ no ’ to 
you.’ He may take possession of India, but if I 
have my way, he will not impress a single Indian 
in his service. 

“Then you must see another distinction. If we 
were fighting Government with Government’s 
weapons, it would be the best chance for us to 
surprise the enemy and making their difficulty 
our opportunity. But we have been for over a 
year laying the utmost stress on non-embarrass- 
ment. It ought not to be turned against us. But 
we shall not use Britain’s weapons, and that is 
how we shall help Britain against her will. I can 
understand the Viceroy’s reluctance to surrender 
the reins of Government to us while he has to 
fight Germany; but I cannot understand the 
Government’s desire to suppress the non-violent 
spirit of the nation.” 

“But you again speak like Christ on earth, and 
they cannot understand that language,” said the 
correspondent. 

“I must persist at the peril of my life. In my 
opinion non-violence is not an individual virtue, 
but a course of spiritual and political conduct 
both for the individual and the community. 
Sevagram, 23-9-40 M. D, 

Books on Gandhi ji’s Life and Work 

Price Postage 



Rs. 

As. 

As. 

S. Raclhakrlshnan — Mahatma Gandhi 

5 

10 

8 

J. Dokc — M. K. Gandhi 

I 

0 

2 

Romain Rolland — Mahatma Gandhi 

1 

8 

4 

Mrs. Polak — Mr. Gandln the Man 
Rene Fullop-Miller — Gandhi — 

2 

10 

3 

the Holy Man 

2 

10 

4 

K. M, Munshi — I Follow the Mahatma 2 

8 

4 

D. F. Karaka — Out of Dust 

C. F. Andrews — Mahatma Gandhi’s 

5 

8 

8 

Ideas 

Krishnadas — Seven Months with 

2 

10 

6 

Mahatma Gandhi 

Available at Harijan Office — Poona 

3 

4 

8 

6 



300 


HAEIJAN 


[ Septembee 29, 1940 


MORE ABOUT THE RESOLUTION 

For the Masses 

In my hurried notes last week on the A, L 
C. C. resolution there were certain points that 
I omitted and would like to take up this week. 
What had pained Gandhiji most about the Delhi 
resolution and the Poona resolution was not only 
that we would contradict ourselves by paying non- 
violence as the price of independence, when we had 
had all along been declaring that we would win 
independence by non-violence ; worse than that 
contradiction was the fact that the resolutions, if 
acted upon, would have been a sad betrayal of the 
masses whom for twenty years we had made non- 
violence-minded and whom we would now make 
war-minded. It is for the sake of them, he ex- 
plained in his Hindi speech, that he welcomed the 
Bombay resolution. “For,” said he, “the Congress 
strength is derived not from the members on the 
Congress registers but from the millions who have 
never entered the Congress but who feel that the 
Congress represents them. It is that character 
that makes the Congress speak for the Hindus, 
Muslims, Parsis, Christians, Jews and all. Through- 
out its history of over fifty years it has had not 
only Hindu presidents but Muslim and Parsi pre- 
sidents, who made no distinction between diflFerent 
communities, and who proved that those who 
rendered the highest service to the nation and 
who desired its freedom could take charge of it. 
The Congress had been described by some of its 
critics as a fascist organisation. But if they admit 
that the Congress has no other weapon but non- 
violence, they disprove their charge. For Fascism, 
Nazism and Imperialism depend for their existence 
on violence. The Congress could not hold together 
without non-violence. Non-violence and satyagraha, 
its active principle, constitute the sovereign 
remedy which could be applied by all the minori- 
ties in the country, and which was for even the 
smallest minority a sure safeguard against the 
tyranny of the majority however big it might be. 
Non-violence was thus bound up with the very 
existence of the Congress, and to give it up would 
be to betray it and the masses for whom it stood.” 

A visitor recently asked Gandhiji if his re-entry 
meant that the Congress had become again non- 
violent at heart. “ So far as I can say from things 
in the Punjab,” said the visitor, ‘T think that, 
.though there is a good deal of self-restraint, there 
is little non-violence.” 

Gandhiji replied: “I agree. The resolution is the 
result of several days’ full-fledged debate among 
the members of the Working Committee. I may 
confess that many of the members have no inde- 
pendent faith in non-violence but they are trying 
to imbibe it. But you must know that the 
Congress is not merely the Working Committee, 
nor the A. I. C. C., nor the members on the 
Congress registers, but the dumb millions. They 
arc all peace-loving, and we have to represent 
them truly. These millions, before the Congress 
identified itself with them in 1919, had taken no 
part in any violent or non-violent or even a so- 


called constitutional fight. But they rose like one 
man on the 6th of April 1919. They took up 
peaceful rebellion as their mantra, and without 
any organisation, without any country-wide tour — 
for I had not then toured in the interior — they 
instinctively took up the call, and the Congress 
organisation became a peaceful rebel organisation. 
The Bombay resolution had these masses in mind.” 

No Threat 

It is surprising that a paper should have accus- 
ed Gandhiji of an intention to go to the Viceroy 
with the threat of civil disobedience. The very 
same paper published copious extracts from 
Gandhiji’s speech from which the following arc 
enough to prove that there was no such intention: 

“There is one thing which is not mentioned in the 
resolution. In giving me the authority that the Working 
Committee has done, there is a reservation. I do not want 
to hurl civil disobedience or anything in the face of the 
Government without making my meaning clear, the 
meaning I attach to the sum total of Government 
actions — actions beginning with the declaration of the 
Viceroy, then the statement of the Secretary of State 
for India, and then the series of actions and the policy 
that the Government have pursued since. 

^ The sum total of all these things has left an indelible 
impression on my mind that there is something wrong, 
some injustice, being perpetrated against the whole nation, 
and that the voice of freedom is about to be stifled. It 
is there in the resolution, not in the exact language which 
I am using now, but you will see the meaning clear as 
daylight. In order completely to clarify our position, I 
propose to approach the Viceroy with a request that 
he will be good enough to see me, and I have no doubt 
that he will. I will place my difficulties before him; I 
will place the Congress difficulties before him. I will 
approach him in your name. I will tell him that 
this is the position to which we have been reduced: 

We do not want to embarrass you and deflect 

you from your purpose in regard to war effort. 
We go our way, and you go yours, undeterred, 

the common ground being non-violence. Left free to 
ourselves, there will be no war effort on the part of our 
people. If, on the other hand, without your using any 
but moral pressure you find that they respond, then we 
cannot help it. If you get assistance from the Princes, 
from the Zamindars, from anybody high or low, you 

can have it; but let our voice also be heard. If you 
do so, it will be eminently honourable, it will certainly 
be a feather in your cap. It will be honourable of you, 
although you are engaged in a life and death struggle, 
that you have given us this liberty. It will be honour- 
able of you that you take this great step although you 
have limitless powers to choke our voice, and give us 
the fullest possible freedom, consistently with the obser- 
vance of non-violence, to tell the people of India not 
to join the war.” 

The Demand 

W'hilc some have regarded the Congress demand 
as too difl&cult to be accepted, some have regarded 
it as too trifling, A talk that Gandhiji had with 
an ashram youngster may be summarised for the 
benefit of both. “ If,” asked the youngster, “ the 
Congress demand is complete, it means that we 



Septembee 29, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


301 


do not need Swaraj, and that we shall be content 
with the liberty of speech and the press.” 

“ Our objective is Complete Independence, as you 
know. But do you know the means to attain it ?” 

“ Carrying out the constructive programme.” 

“ That is one of the principal branches of the 
tree. But what is the root ? ” 

“ Truth and non-violence.” 

“ Well, then, we want the right to preach truth 
and non-violence.” 

“ But will newspaper articles and speeches be 
enough for the propagation of truth and non- 
violence ? ” 

“No, we have to do much more. But the right 
to preach truth and non-violence is threatened. 
The law seems to say that we may not tell people 
that they have every right not to co-operate in 
the war effort, and that it is their duty as a 
non-violent people not to co-operate thus. ” 

“ But you have yourself said that we can get 
Swaraj if we fulfil the constructive programme. 
Why then this trivial issue ? ” 

“ It is not a trivial issue, it is a concrete and 
all-important issue. If we surrender it, a time will 
come when we may have to surrender all, when 
we may have to forget even the name of truth 
and non-violence. To preach these is our birthright, 
and to forfeit it is to forfeit our existence. ” 
“But what I am troubled about is the emphasis 
on mere speech and writing. ” 

“ It is the liberty we claim. How and when 
to use it and whether to use it or no is our con- 
cern. If we cannot stand a strong breeze, we 
shut the windbws and even doors. But how 
should we feel if someone were to shut us up ?” 

“ I see. But may it not be imaginary ? If you 
ask a little child not to eat earth, it will eat it. 
It is the inhibition that is galling. Do you want 
to remove the inhibition ? ” 

“The analogy is wrong, for the little child has 
no right to cat earth, whereas no one has a right 
to prevent us from enjoying free air. But let me 
take another example for you, as you are a child. 
Prahlad was ordered by his father not to take the 
name of Rama ( God ). He might have argued 
with himself, ‘ I lose nothing by not repeating the 
name of Rama, for Rama is in my heart.’ But if 
he had resorted to this argument, he would have 
deceived himself. He did not do so, and he defied 
his father to do his worst, he was not going to 
give up repeating Ramanam- And because he 
braved the most fearful hardships and dared even 
death for that sacred right, wc have today a 
living faith in Rarnanam. If he had yielded, that 
faith would have vanished from the earth. Even 
so, if wc give up our right to preach truth and 
non-violence, we give it up for ever.” 

“ But abstract truth and non-violence no one 
prevents us irom preaching.” 

“No principle exists in the abstract. Without 
its concrete application it has no meaning. And 
when I wanr to i>reach non-violence I want to 
preach it as an etlhcrive substitute for war, and 
thereby to be able to wean Britain and other 
warring countries from viijlence and barbarism.” 


Why foir All ? 

“ But,” someone argued, “ why do you claim 
that right for all? In your speech you said that 
you would speak as a conscientious objector, but 
that others might use any reasoning they liked 
e, g. the financial or the imperialistic argument.” 

“I have no business to claim the right only for 
myself and for those who are conscientious objec- 
tors. For some other grounds may be as important 
as, if not more than, conscientious grounds; and 
if I may not be smothered, how can I suffer 
those others to be smothered? If, moreover, the 
liberty was restricted to conscientious objectors, 
we should compel a number of our people to be 
hypocrites, for they would take shelter under the 
conscientious argument. All that is necessary is 
the acceptance by all of the condition of non- 
violence. That cannot be relaxed.” 

A ' Columbus * 

Twice during the past few days Gandhi ji likened 
himself to Columbus- — first after the last Wardha 
meeting of the Working Committee, and then in 
his speech at the close of the A. I. C. C. pro- 
ceedings. On this second occasion he went into 
some detail in giving the comparison ; “ I do not 
ask you to appoint me your captain as a favour. 

I would entreat you to do a number of other 
things, but I do not entreat you to make me your 
captain. If you with eyes open and your minds 
clear feel that you should make me your captain, 
you may do so, not otherwise. For unless I have 
your minds and hearts with me, we cannot reach 
the promised land. I am in the same predica- 
ment as Columbus when he started on his voyage 
to discover India. Perhaps I am in a worse plight 
in that I have no chart and no compass which 
Columbus had. I therefore ask for your implicit 
obedience and discipline as the ship’s officers 
and crew. We have to be an army in action 
tomorrow, and unless you give unflinching disci- 
pline, we shall be , no where. A ship’s captain 
never brooks indiscipline, and may even relieve 
the ship of the insubordinate crew.” 

It would be interesting for a moment to see the 
points of similarity and dissimilarity in the com- 
parison. Columbus before he started on his voyage 
made himself admiral and assumed full powers as 
Gandhiji has done. His journey was perilous, and 
though he had a chart and compass, the journey 
was over uncharted seas. But the comparison ends 
there. The bulk of his 88 crews were criminals 
and vagabonds who had been given the choice 
between and this perilous voyage. 

They were so indisciplined and wrong-headed 
that they did threaten to mutiny and even to push 
Columbus overboard some dark night. To control 
these men Columbus had to have recourse to 
deception, threats, promises ! The very nature of 
our struggle makes these conditions impossible, 
and Gandhiji has promised in advance to make 
room for a better captain in case he fails, or even 
without, if people do not want him. 

Sevagram, 23-9-40 


M. D. 



302 


HARIJAN 


[ September 29, 1940 





Sept. 29 


1940 


SOME CRITICISM ANSWERED 

C By M. K. Gandhi ) 

The recent resolution of the A. I. C. C. and 
my speeches before the meeting have come in for 
much criticism, if they have earned some praise. 
Of the criticism there arc two items v;hich I must 
attempt to answer. For they are of permanent 
interest. The Times of India of the 17th inst. in 
its temperate criticism takes me to task for my 
statement that ‘ the peoples of Europe do not 
know what they are fighting for.’ It was bound 
to be resented. But truth, though seemingly 
harsh, has to be uttered when utterance becomes 
relevant, indeed imperative. I believe that the 
utterance had become overdue. I must say why I 
think that the warring nations do not know what 
they are fighting for. I had used the expression 
* warring nations ’, not ‘ peoples of Europe ’. This 
is not a distinction without a .di®etence. I have 
distinguished between the nations and their leaders. 
The leaders of course know what they are fighting 
for. I make no admission that they are right. 
But neither the English nor the Germans nor the 
Italians know what they arc fighting for except 
that they trust their leaders and therefore follow 
them. I submit that this is not enough when the 
stake is so bloody and staggering as during the 
.present war. It is perhaps common cause that 
Germans and Italians do not know why English 
children should be slaughtered in cold blood and 
beautiful English homes should be destroyed. But 
The Times" claim probably is that the British peopZe 
know what they are fighting for. When I asked 
the British soldiers in South Africa during the 
Boer War they could not tell me what they were 
fighting for. ‘ Theirs was ’ surely not to reason 
why’. They did not even know where they were 
being marched to. The British people would not 
be able to give me a more satisfying answer, if I 
happened to be in London and asked them why 
their soldiers were working havoc in Berlin. If 
the press accounts are to be relied upon, British 
skill and valour have wrought more havoc in 
Berlin than have the Germans in London. What 
wrong have the German people done to the 
British people ? Their leaders have. Hang them 
by all means, but why destroy German homes and 
German civilian life ? What difference does it make 
to the dead, the orphans and the homeless, whether 
the mad destruction is wrought under the name of 
totalitarianism or the holy name of liberty or demo- 
cracy ? I assert in all humility, but with all the 
strength at my command, that liberty and demo- 
cracy become unholy when their hands are dyed 
red with innocent blood. I hear the living Christ 
saying; “These so-called children of mine know not 
what they are doing. They take my Father’s name 
in vain, for they disobey the central command 


of my Father !” If my ears do not deceive, I have 
erred in good company, if I have erred at all. 

And why have I uttered the truth ? Because I 
am confident that God has made me the instru- 
ment of showing the better way. If Britain seeks 
justice, she must appear before the imperial court 
of God with clean hands. She will not defend 
liberty and democracy by following totalitarian 
methods so far as war is concerned. She will not 
be able to retrace her steps after out-Hitlering 
Hitler in war. The last war is a resounding lesson. 
Her victory, if attained, will be a snare and a 
delusion. I know mine is a voice in the wilderness. 
But it will some day ring true. If liberty and 
democracy are to be truly saved, they will only 
be by non-violent resistance no less brave, no less 
glorious, than violent resistance. And it will be 
infinitely braver and more glorious because it will 
give life without taking any. 

Now I come to The Statesmans article of 18th 
September. I am sorry to say it is intemperate 
and written in anger. It is full of palpable 
mistakes (to use a mild word), no doubt uncon- 
scious. But I am not concerned with the intem- 
perance of language. In the fierce heat of 
battle unknown before, the wonder is that the 
intemperance one sees sometimes is not much 
greater than it is. 

Here is the cream of the heavy indictment: 

“ We have often expressed our view about the 
fundamental immorality and contradictory character of 
the doctrine. Non-cooperation is a meth^ of war and 
not of peace.— It carries with it a pretentious claim to 
spiritual value which involves sanctimonious insincerities 

and mass hypocrisy masking intensified hatreds 

A nation which accepted this doctrine would doom 
itself to slavery.*' 

This is all contrary to the history of our own 
times in India. I claim that there is nothing 
immoral in non-violent non-cooperation. Violent 
resistance is itself non-cooperation, and it is 
immoral because of its violence. It becomes moral 
when it is non-violent. Non-cooperation with 
evil is a sacred duty. It is essentially spiritual 
because of its non-violent character. The adjectives 
used by the writer would be deserved if it was 
non-violent in name only. For the present argu- 
ment I must take the genuine article. Now for 
the facts. Non-violent non-cooperation, however 
imperfect it was, has redeemed India at least 
somewhat from the slavery under which she was 
groaning. It has raised India from the slough of 
despond, and has brought her prestige which 
nothing else could have. I make bold to say that, if 
the non-violence offered had been not adulterated, 
its effect would have been still more visible. My 
greatest claim, however, is that it is this despised 
non-violent resistance which hitherto saved India 
from anarchy and red ruin. It is not yet entirely 
saved. If it is to be saved, it will only be by the 
non-violent method. I invite The Statesman 
writer to test the truth of my statement. He 
will have many infallible proofs in its support. 
A dispassionate study will enable him to serve 
both Britain and India. 

On the way to Simla, 25-9-40 




September 29, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


303 


GANDHIJI’S SPEECH 
AT THE A. I. C. C. 

[Here is. the full text of Gandhiji’s English 
•speech at the A. I. C. C. meeting in Bombay on 
15th September. It is revised by Gandhiji and is 
thus an authorised version. M. D. ] 

I know that you have listened to me with the 
■greatest patience, I am specially grateful to you to- 
day, for the simple reason that I have said many 
things which may have displeased you. But it 
was never my intention to displease those whom 
I want to harness for the great work that lies 
before you and before me. I have to speak to 
you at length because I have to shoulder this 
burden. I have not come with a prepared speech 
■at all. The thoughts will come as I proceed. 

Let me begin with a thought which has been 
weighing with me for a considerable time. When 
■the war broke out and I went to Simla to see 
the Viceroy I issued a statement the next day, not 
in a representative but in my individual capacity. 
A friend has now reminded me how good it would 
bave been if I had simply hung on to that state- 
ment although I could not take the Congress with 
me ; and on the eve of my shouldering this respon- 
sibility, he prayed that I should be guided by 
'God to take up that original position and retire. 
I have very great regard for him. I have not for- 
Jotten that statement, nor have I any regret or 
apology to offer. If such a thing occurs — and 
history often repeats itself — and I happen to 
go to another Viceroy, I should make the same 
statement. 

Although I spoke only for myself, deep down 
in me there was the Congressman speaking. The 
Viceroy also did not send for me because I was 
M. K. Gandhi. M. K. Gandhi has absolutely no 
.place in his books. The man who wields the 
•sceptre can have no room for individuals. He 
sent for me because he thought I would represent 
.the Congress view and I would be able to carry 

* conviction to Congressmen. 

I withdrew from that position, not as an indi- 
vidual but as a Congressman, and because I failed 
to carry conviction even to a single Congressman. 
Happily you have got on the Working Com- 
mittee men with sterling honesty who had 
the courage to tell me that, although it was 
my statement, they did not feel like accepting it. 
They added that they had had bitter experience 
behind them, and that therefore they would not 
be able to take that position. Thus you had the 
resolution that was passed by the Congress imme- 

• diately after the war. And I agreed with the 
resolution as a representative, although I said to 
them that, if I could carry conviction, my original 
position was the best possible one to take up. If 
I had pressed the members of the Working Com- 
mittee to accept my position, they would have 
done so, but it would have been only mechanical. 
The statement was not made to deceive the Vice- 
roy or, for the matter of that, a single soul. It 
.came straight from the heart. It was not a 


theatrical display. It was the opening up of the 
secret recesses of the heart before the world, the 
Viceroy and the Congress. If these words of mine 
could not find an echo in their hearts, they would 
have been of no use whatsoever to the Viceroy, 
to the great English nation or to India. That still 
remains my sentiment. If I could not convince 
the Congress of my attitude, it would not carry 
us further. It would have been a wrong step to 
take, and hence it was not taken. With that 
background I approach this resolution. 

I have made repeated statements that I would 
not be guilty of embarrassing the British people 
or the British Government when their very exist- 
ence hung in the balance, that I would not be 
true to my satyagraha, would not be true to non- 
violence, would not be true to the truth which I 
hold dear if I did so, and therefore could not do 
so. That very man now stands before you to 
shoulder the burden of satyagraha. Why ? There 
comes a time when a man in his weakness mis- 
takes vice for virtue; and virtue itself, when taken 
away from its context and from the purpose for 
which it was dedicated, becomes vice. I felt that, 
if I did not go to the assistance of the Congress 
and take the helm even if it be in fear and 
trembling, I would be untrue to myself. 

I feel that in taking the step that we are doing 
we are rendering a great service not only to 
the Congress but to the whole of India. And we 
are rendering a service not only to the whole 
of India. History will record — and Englishmen 
will be able to grasp this statement some 
day — that we rendered help to the English 
nation, and they will find that we were true to 
our salt and had the same bravey and fearlessness 
of which the Englishman is proud and for which 
he is renowned. I, who claim to be a fast friend 
of the British people, will be guilty of unfriendly 
conduct if, under a false sense of modesty, or 
because people may think otherwise about me, or 
because Englishmen themselves will be angry with 
me, I do not issue a warning that the virtue of 
self-restraint now becomes vice, because it will 
kill the Congress organisation, and it will kill the 
very spirit which is exercising thjs restraint. 

When I say this, I am speaking not only for 
the Congress, but for all who stand for national 
freedom — Muslims, Parsis, Christians and even 
those who are against the Congress, , so long as 
they represent the aspiration of India, namely, 
unadulterated independence. I should be untrue to 
all of them, if at this time I said, ‘ no embarrass- 
ment to the British’. I must not repeat parrot- 
like ‘no embarrassment’. Then that repetition 
would be just 'as useful for my salvation or for 
the guarding of my virtue as the repetition by a 
parrot of God’s name which cannot bring him 
salvation, because it is only a mechanical and 
vocal effort without any intelligence behind it. 
Therefore, if I exercise that suppression at this 
critical moment in the history of the nation, it 
would be useless. I should be perfectly untrue 
to myself if I hid myself in Sevagram and said. 
“No, I have told you, ‘ no embarrassment’.” 



304 


HAEIJAN 


[ September 29, 1940 


The language of this resolution is in the main 
mine. It appealed to Pandit Jawaharlal Nehru. 
I used to be the Congress draftsman. Now he 
has taken my place. He saw it was inevitable, if 
we were to be true to non-violent resistance to 
the extent to which we wanted to go. The 
Working Committee has accepted this phraseology 
deliberately, well knowing its implications. The 
result is this: If we can get a declaration from 
the British Government that the Congress can 
carry on anti-war propaganda, and preach non- 
cooperation with the Government in their war 
effort, we will not have civil disobedience. 

I do not want England to be defeated or 
humiliated. It hurts me to find St. Paul’s Cathe- 
dral damaged. It hurts me as much as I would 
be hurt if I heard that the Kashi Vishvanath 
temple or the Juma Masjid was damaged. I would 
like to defend both the Kashi Vishvanath temple 
and the Juma Masjid and even St. Paul’s with my 
life, but would not take a single life for their 
defence. That is my fundamental difference with 
the British people. My sympathy is there with 
them nevertheless. Let there be no mistake on 
the part of Englishmen, Congressmen, or others 
whom my voice reaches, as to where my sympathy 
lies. It is not because I love the British nation 
and hate the German. I do not think that the 
Germans as a nation are any worse than the 
English or the Italians are any worse. We are all 
tarred with the same brush; we are all members 
of the vast human family. I decline to draw any 
distinctions. I cannot claim any superiority for 
Indians. We have the same virtues and the same 
vices. Humanity is not divided into water-tight 
compartments so that we cannot go from one to 
another. They may occupy one thousand rooms, 
but they are all related to one another. I would 
not say, ‘ India should be all in all, let the whole 
world perish,’ That is not my message. India should 
be all in all, consistently with the well-being of 
other nations of the world. I can keep India intact 
and its freedom also intact only if I have good- 
will towards the whole of the human family and 
not merely for the human family which inhabits 
this little spot of the earth called India. It is big 
enough compared to other smaller nations, but 
what is India in the wide world or in the universe ? 

Let there be no mistake as to what I am about. 
I want my individuality to remain unimpaired. If 
I lose it, I would be of no service to India, much 
less to the British people, still less to humanity. 
My individual liberty is the same as the nation’s, 
convertible with national liberty. I do not claim 
any greater liberty for myself. Hence my liberty 
is equal to the liberty of all of you and no greater. 
I feel that, if my liberty is at stake, yours is also 
at stake. I claim the liberty of going through the 
streets of Bombay and say that I shall have nothing 
to do with this war, because I do not believe in 
this war and in" this fratricide that is going on in 
Europe. I admire the bravery. But what is the 
use of this bravery ? I deplore the foolishness and 
the crass ignorance. These people do not know 
what they are fighting for. That is how I look 


at this war that is going on across the seas. I 
cannot possibly take part in it. Nor do I want 
the Congress to do so. 

The part that I would like to take- is the part 
of peace-maker. If the British people in their 
wisdom had recognised the independence not of’ 
the Congress but of all India, and if other parties 
in India had also co-operated with us, we would 
have taken the honourable place of peace-makers 
between these nations. Such is my ambition. But 
today I know that it is a day-dream. But some- 
times a man lives in his day-dreams. I live in 
mine, and picture the world as full of good human 
beings — not goody goody human beings. In the 
Socialist’s language, there will be a new structure 
of society, a new order of things. I am also 
aspiring after a new order of things that will 
astonish the world. If you try to dream these 
day-dreams, you will also feel exalted as I do. 

And now I come to our ‘tin-pot’ Congress — 
tin-pot in the estimation of others, not my own. 
If we do not take care, the Congress will dis- 
appear, and if the Congress disappears, the 
national spirit disappears. One after another Con- 
gressmen are being selected and jailed. It is not 
satyagraha to watch people being taken away. It 
is much better for all of us to rush into the jg^ws- 
of the opponent. After all, as the Maulana Saheb' 
once said, India is a vast prison. Let us get out 
of this slave-prison by breaking the prison bars. 
He said to the Sikhs at the time of the Nankana 
Saheb tragedy: “You may protect one gurdwara; 
but what about the vast gurdwara that is India ?' 
We have to deliver it from bondage.” Those words 
ring true even today in my ears. If this liberty of* 
the nation or the movement for freedom is likely 
to be choked, then I say that the virtue of self- 
restraint is going to become a vice. That virtue 
of restraint cannot be carried to the extent of 
the extinction of the national spirit wherever it 
may reside, whether among Congressmen or non- 
Congressmen. 

I do not want to hurl civil disobedience or 
anything in the face of the Government without 
making my meaning clear, the meaning I attach 
to the sum total of Government actions — actions^ 
beginning with the declaration of the Viceroy, the 
statement of the Secretary of State for India, and 
the series of actions and the policy that th6r 
Government have pursued since. The sum total 
of all these has left an indelible impression on my 
mind that there is something wrong, some injustice. 1 , 
being perpetrated against the whole nation, and 
that the voice of freedom is about to be stifled^ 
This is implied in the resolution, not in the exact 
language which I am using now, but you will see 
the meaning clear as daylight. 

In order completely to clarify our position, t 
propose to approach the Viceroy with a request 
that he will be .good enough to see. me, and I 
have no doubt that he will. I will place mydijE- 
culties before him; I will place the Congress diffi- 
culties*before him. I will approach him in your 
name. I will tell him that this is the position to- 
which we have been reduced: We do not want 



Septembee 29, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


305 


to embarrass you and deflect you from your pur- 
pose in regard to war effort. We go our way, 
.and you go yours, undeterred, the common ground 
being non-violence. If we carry the people with us, 
there will be no war effort on the part of our 
people. If, on the other hand, without your using 
any but moral pressure, you find that the people 
help the war effort, we can have no cause for 
grumbling. If you get assistance from the Princes, 
from the zamindars, from anybody high or low, 
.you can have it; but let our voice also be heard. 
If you accept my proposal, it will be eminently 
honourable, it will certainly be a feather in your 
cap. It will be honourable of you, although you 
are engaged in a life and death struggle, that you 
have given us this liberty. It will be honourable 
of you that you take this great step, although 
you have limitless powers to choke our voice, and 
that you give us the fullest possible freedom, con- 
sistently with the observance of non-violence, to 
tell the people of India not to join the war effort. 

Let the people use any reasoning they like for 
refusal to help the war effort. My reasoning is the 
only one which will sit well on Congressmen’s 
lips. But I do not expect all to restrict them- 
selves to that reasoning Those who have conscien- 
tious objection, as I have, will adopt my reasoning. 
Those who are tired of British imperialism will 
use that argulnent. There may be others who will 
have other arguments. All these should be covered 
under this freedom of speech, provided, however, 
that they all accept ; non-violence, provided also 
that what they say is said openly and not secretly. 
These are the implications of my generalship. If 
these do not satisfy you, you must reject this 
resolution summarily. So long as you can preach 
non-cooperation with war effort in men and money, 
there should be no civil disobedience. But if you 
have not that liberty, there is no Swaraj but 
perpetual bondage. I would like the British people 
and the Viceroy to be able to tell the world that 
they have given the leaders of the Indian people 
liberty to preach to their people what they like. 
The British cam then say to the world: “ Judge us 
by our conduct. Here in India we are playing 
the game.” 

I do not mind the British not responding to the 
Delhi resolution. They may say, “At the present 
moment you cannot interfere with the manage- 
ment of affairs as they stand. Deliverance will 
•come to you in its own time. At this critical 
juncture do not worry us. ” I will understand that 
argument. I will sympathise with it. I will hold 
my hand so long as there is no fraud or falsity in 
what they say. It is impossible for them to give 
us freedom. If freedom has got to come, it must 
be obtained by our own internal strength, by our 
closing our ranks, by unity between all sections of 
the community. It cannot descend from heaven, 
nor can it be given as a gift from one nation - to 
another. I do not know whether I am represent- 
ing the feelings of the members of the Working 
Committee, because I have not discussed these 
things with them. But you have to take me with 
all my limitations, with the workings of .my mind. 


The Viceroy may say, “You are a visionary.” I 
may fail in my mission, but we will not quarrel. 
If he says he is helpless, I will not feel helpless. 
I will make good my position. I cannot sit still 
when I see Ram Manohar Lohia and Jaiprakash 
Narain in jail, than whom I do not know braver 
or straighter men. They have not preached 
violence, but simply carried out the behests 
of the Ramgarh resolution. It was a point of 
honour with them. 

I have restrained myself, and will restrain my- 
self. I will not seek imprisonment. I do not want 
to offer civil disobedience. I will not place myself 
in peril. In this battle I will not expose myself to 
imprisonment. But if the Government chooses, it 
will not be difficult to take me away. I will not 
be able to seal my lips or restrain my pen. It will 
be difficult for them to keep me in prison, not 
because India will rise in rebellion. India will be 
wrong if it does so. My own instinct is that they 
will not be able to keep me in jail. 

I will place my argument before the Viceroy. I 
may fail in my mission. But I have never approa- 
ched a mission in despair. I may have approached 
it with the consciousness that I may be faced with 
a blind wall. But I have often penetrated blind 
walls. I shall approach the Viceroy in the confi- 
dence and hope that he will understand the great 
reasonableness of the request of the Congress for 
full liberty to preach ‘no war’ in India. Everyone 
should have perfect liberty to preach by pen and 
tongue, ‘We cannot aid imperialism, we cannot 
help spoliation. ’ 

I shall strain every nerve to avoid satyagraha 
in your name. What shape it will take, when 
it comes, I do not know. But I know that there 
will be no mass civil disobedience, because mass 
civil disobedience is not required for this occa- 
sion. I have impenetrable darkness before me 
regarding the future course of action. I have 
no mysteries. I do not know how I shall lead you, 
what action I shall put before you. I hope that 
any action that we may take will be worthy of 
the Congress traditions and of the occasion. 

I have often said that I do not know the 
Congress mind as I have buried myself in Sevagram. 
It is because of the Congress difficulty that I haye 
dragged myself to Bombay, and immediately I am 
released from this duty you will find me in Seva- 
gram. But I have got strength and resourcefulness 
enough to lead this battle, although I am buried 
in Sevagram. I shall do better and clearer thinking 
in Sevagram than anywhere else, simply because 
I have built up there an atmosphere for my growth. 
With the march of time my body must decay 
but, I hope, not my wisdom. I seem to see. things 
more clearly with the advance of age. It may be 
self-deception, but there is no hypocrisy. Self- 
deception is good sometimes in that it helps one 
to remain cheerful and not to give way to despair. 
It will be, therefore, wrong of you to drag me 
from Sevagram; a.nd I promise that I shall give a 
good account of my stewardship. 

There are many parties in the Congress. We 
axe not all of the same opinion. There is indis- 



306 HARIJAN [ SEPTEMBER 29, 1940-. 


cipline in the Congress. I know it is inevitable 
in a mass organisation which is growing from day 
to day. If it is all indiscipline and no discipline, 
the organisation is on the downward path. Let it 
not be said of you that you come to the Congress 
although you do not believe in non-violence. How 
can you possibly sign the Congress pledge with 
violence in your breasts?! want complete obedi- 
ence to the policy of non-violence. While the 
policy lasts, it is the same as though it was a creed, 
for so long as it holds good it is as good as a 
creed. My creed holds me for life; yours so long 
as you hold it. Resign from the Congress, and 
you are free from it. Let us be clear regarding 
the language we use and the thoughts we nurture. 
For, what is language but the expression of thought? 
Let your thought be accurate and truthful, and 
you will hasten the advent of Swaraj even if 
the whole world is against you. You will have 
won Swaraj without having to spend nine million 
pounds a day or without burning a single home. 
If you are true to your policy, I am sure that 
without doing any of these things you will 
build up the majestic edifice of freedom. 

“ Now for the violence party. Do not mix up 
the methods if you can help it. You have res- 
trained yourselves for some years. Restrain your- 
selves for some more years. Ours is not a small 
battle. If you restrain yourselves, you will lose 
nothing. 

“ Freedom of speech and pen is the foundation 
of Swaraj. If the foundation-stone is in danger, 
you have to exert the whole of your might in 
order to defend that single stone. May God help you. 

SIKHS AND THE SWORD 
( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

The reader will find in another column copies 
of correspondence between Master Tarasingh and 
myself. My letter was addressed to him as a 
friend, I had no wish to see it published as it 
certainly compromised him, as did also his letter 
to the Maulana Saheb. Master Tarasingh has 
turned to me for advice on several occasions, my 
relations with the Sikhs being of the friendliest 
nature. I flatter myself with the belief that on 
occasions I have saved the community against itself 

But Master Tarasingh asked me for permission 
to publish the correspondence which I readily 
gave. I would still have refrained from entering 
into a public discussion of it but for the fact that 
my advice is being grossly distorted, and that I 
have received a pressing letter from nationalist 
Sikhs who do not share Master Tarasingh’s views 
and who accept the Congress non-violence and its 
discipline. In their letter they say: 

“Your letter to Master Tarasingh is grossly misinter- 
preted in the Punjab Press and especially in the Akali 
circles. They say that you wrote to Master Tarasingh 
that the whole Sikh Panth is a believer in violence, 
hence useless and unsuitable to remain in the Congress. 
We think that your letter was a personal one and 
referred to Master Tarasingh or his party only. But 
the Akali party has raised a storm of agitation on this 
account.’* 


My letter is absolutely clear. It applies only 
to Master Tarasingh and those whom he repre- 
sents. It can apply to the whole of the Sikh, 
community only if they accept Master Tarasingh 
as their undisputed leader. I knew when I ans- 
wered the letter that at best he represented only- 
a portion of the great community. I knew then 
that there were many nationalist Sikhs who are 
as much nationalist as I. My letter to Master 
Tarasingh lays down general propositions of uni- 
versal application, though stated in connection’ 
with a concrete case which was put before me* 
for advice. Shorn of its concreteness it simply 
means that (1) The Congress is pledged to a- 
non-violent policy ; (2) Therefore no one who^ 
does not believe in that policy can belong to the- 
Congress; (3) The Congress is a purely nationalist, 
non-communal organisation ; (4) Therefore no one 
with a communal bias should belong to it ; 
(5) The Congress being a non-violent organisation- 
and being a determined opponent of Imperialism, 
anyone belonging to it will have little hearing, 
from Imperialist Britain so long as the Congress, 
retains its policy and is ‘at war with’ Imperialism. 

Those, therefore, who misrepresent my letter in 
the way they are reported to have done, cannot 
harm me, but deprive themselves of the services* 
and advice of one who has been -their faithful 
servant for practically twenty years. 

Master Tarasingh has sent me an angry letter in- 
reply to mine. As it contains no new argument* 
I refrain from publishing it in these columns. But 
it is necessary to correct one error. In my attempt 
to solve the Hindu-Muslim tangle I have been 
represented as having abandoned the Congress 
position as stated in its famous Lahore resolution 
on the communal question. That resolution is a 
sacred trust, and so far as I am concerned, when 
and if the time arrives for a solution of the com- 
munal problems, full eflEcct will be given to the 
Lahore resolution. No non-violent solution is 
possible without the association of all parties 
concerned. I therefore urge Sikh friends not to 
come to hasty conclusions but to judge every- 
thing dispassionately. Anger is short madness*, 
and it hurts those that are consciously or 
unconsciously betrayed into it. 

On the way to Simla, 25-9-40 

Home and Village Doctor 
By Satish Chandra Dasgupta 
Written at Gandhiji’s request, and he hopes every 
village -worker will possess a copy. 1440 pages, 18 
chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages, 216 illustrations. 
Price Rs, 5 cloth-bound; By V. P. P. Rs. 6. Rs. 6. 
leather-bound; By V. P. P, Rs, 7. Available at 
Harijan office — Poona 4. 


Some Books by Gandhiji 


Satyagraha in South Africa 

Rs. 4 

8 

0 

8 

My Early Life 

1 

0 

0 

2 

Speeches and Writings 

4 

0 

0 

9 

Cent Per Cent Swadeshi 

1 

8 

0 

5 

Hind Swaraj 

!o 

4 

0 

2 

Self-Restraint v. Self-Indulgence 
Parts I & II (each) 

L 

0 

Q. 

3. 



HARIJAN 


307 


SlP'r'^IlBEE 29, 1940 ] 


CORRESPONDENCE 

Amritsar, 9ih August, 1940 
Dear Maulana Sahib, 

I feel that it is impossible to ignore reality of 
war. Independence is synonymous with power. 
Only nations that are fully organised and have a 
disciplined army are able to preserve their 
independence. We who are seeking to secure 
independence cannot afford to neglect the opportu- 
nity which the war offers of entering the army 
and learning both the meaning of sacrifice, unity, 
command and obedience and art of offence and 
defence. 

The fate of nations is in the balance. I trust 
you will agree with me, as we claim to be arbiters 
of our own future, that we must do all we can 
to help the mobilisation of our man power and 
•our resources, with one object only that, whatever 
the result of war, we may be able to attain and 
maintain independence. 

I am, therefore, of opinion that we should not 
-only do nothing to prevent recruitment but 
demand that India should be in a position to 
produce the modern armament in factories under 
Indian control only. To leave the responsibility 
■of defence to Britain is to accept continuance of 
/dependence. 

It is Britain’s interest, at the moment, to pre- 
.pare India for her own defence. England is no 
more in a position to spare any force for Indian 
Defence. It is a rare opportunity for us to raise 
India from a position of helplessness to a position 
to be able to help herself. It is the interest to 
England to defeat her enemies by raising India to 
•a position which England could never have con- 
templated before. It is in the interest of India to 
make the most of the opportunity which circum- 
stances have created. 

It is ray considered opinion that, even if the 
'Congress is compelled to have recourse to Civil 
Disobedience to exert moral pressure on the 
'Government, it should do nothing to prevent 
recruitment to the army but confine its activities 
to spheres which do not infringe on the morale of 
■our troops or dissipate our powers of defence. 

In our present preoccupation of wresting 
power from Britain, wc must not close our eyes 
to dangers internal and external to which our 
country would be exposed if England fails in the 
war. We must prepare ourselves for all contin- 
gencies. No other preparation can take the place 
of an Indian army, officered by Indians, ready 
to meet all eventualities. 

I am writing to you to make the position of 
my community and my own clear. I am definitely 
of opinion tliat Sikhs should join the Army in as 
large a number as possible in the interest of 
their Motherland and their own. They can only 
then maintain their position in any Government. 
1 cannot be a party to anything which is likely 
to weaken the position of my community. To be 
strong is the essence of independence. 

In my anxiety to help the Congress and remov- 
ing the last obstacle in the path of recruitment 
to the army I made a conditional oiEFer to provide 


a hundred thousand recruits in case a Congress- 
Government agreement was reached. The chances 
of an agreement appear to be far from encourag- 
ing, while the world situation is worsening. I 
therefore see no alternative but to support full 
and free recruitment of the Sikhs to the army. I 
am, therefore, inclined to give public expression 
to these views, unless otherwise advised by you 
and other friends. 

Need I say that in all other matters you can 
rely on my full co-operation and support including 
Civil Disobedience? 

I may add here that I have information that 
indiscipline is spreading in the Sikh army. There 
have been desertions and disobedience. Innocent 
people are suflfering under wrong notions. Some 
of the deserters from the army have reached 
villages in the Punjab where they are committing 
murders and dacoities and are proving a terror to 
the countryside. This has alarmed us, and immediate 
action has to be taken. If we start civil disobe- 
dience without positively advising the army not 
to participate in such disobedience, the civil dis- 
obedience is apt to turn into military disobedience, 
which means bloodshed and mutiny. Under these 
circumstances civil disobedience will fail, and 
impending anarchy will be suppressed by the 
British with a strong hand, thus reversing the 
course of the progress of India. 

I seek your advice and that of Mahatma Gandhi ji, 
at this critical juncture, to whom I am sending a 
copy of this letter. I know Mahatmaji’s. views on 
non-violence, but I still hope he can give me 
valuable advice at this critical juncture. 

Yours sincerely 
( Master ) TarasingH 

To Mahatma Gandhiji for information with the 
request that the Mahatmaji may kindly give advice 

immediately. TaraSINGH 

* 

:Ic 

Dear Sardarji, 

I am glad you have sent me a copy of your 
letter to Maulana Saheb. As I have told you, in 
my opinion, you have nothing in common with 
the Congress nor the Congress with you. You 
believe in the rule of the sword; the Congress 
does not. You have all the time ‘my community’ 
in mind. The Congress has no community but 
the whole nation. Your civil disobedience is 
purely a branch of violence. I am quite clear in 
my mind that being in the Congress you weaken 
‘your community’ and weaken the Congress. With 
your mentality, you have to offer your services to 
the British Government unconditionally and look 
to it for the protection of the rights of ' your 
community’. You do not suppose for one moment 
that the British will take your recruits on your 
conditions. They would commit suicide if they 
did. You have to be either fully nationalist or. 
frankly communal and therefore dependent upon 
the British or other foreign power. 

This is the considered opion of one who loves 
you and the Sikhs as he loves himself and in 
reality more. For I have ceased to love myself. 

Yours sincerely 

Sevagram, 16-8-40 M, K, Gandhi 



308 


HARIJAN 


[September 29, 1940* 


RAJAJI’S POSTSCRIPT 

My dear Gandhiji, 

I had the advantage of reading the leading 
article of September 22nd in manuscript at Poona 
through the courtesy of Shri Chandrashanker. I 
quite understand why you wrote the article, but 
I wished I could stop its publication or add my 
remarks to it. Reading the article in print now 
I think I had better explain my position. 

I do not feel that you exposed me to any ridi- 
cule. I was not worried over the attacks made 
at Bombay on the Poona resolution. I am not 
the least bit sorry for the Poona resolution. It 
expressed what we felt was the right thing to do 
under the circumstances. The British Govern- 
ment did not agree, and in consequence the 
proposal has failed. That, however, does not 
make any difference as to the validity of the 
reasons that led to it. Almost the entire body 
of intelligent public opinion in India welcomed 
the Poona resolution. You, of course, considered it 
wrong because it involved participation in war, be 
it even for the defence of India. There were some 
who feared that the resolution might be accepted 
by the British Government and involve us in 
co-operation with Britain which was distasteful 
to them. There are some people for whom the 
deciding consideration is success. They feel it a 
disgrace to make a proposal which is turned down. 
There are again some who desire the maturing of 
chaos in which alone they sec hope for the future 
of our country, and they would oppose anything 
that would retard the progress of this fermentation 
of chaos. Barring these groups the vast body of 
enlightened opinion in the country enthusiastically 
approved of the proposal made at Poona, namely, 
that if Britain acknowledged the right of India to 
the status of an independent nation and set up a 
truly National Government composed of leaders 
of the various groups among the present elected 
legislators in the Central Assembly, the deadlock 
should stand resolved. You hold the view that 
the Congress should as from now work for the 
abolition of war. The fulfilment of our national 
goal is inextricably connected, according to you, 
with that mission. You are, therefore, of opinion 
that it is a grievous error to participate in the 
present war effort under any conditions. I believe 
also that the world should reach peace and abolish 
wars as soon as possible. But the pathway to it 
lies, in my opinion, in education in the highest 
sense im international co-operation and not in 
finding alternative weapons to defeat one another’s 
ambitions and aims. Unlike you I do not feel 
glad that the British rejected our offer on the 
ground that it has saved us our pacifism. 

I do not support the Bombay resolution because 
the Poona resolution was wrong. My support is 
based on the following grounds. 

It is wrong for the British to declare that the 
Indian people were in a state of war against any 
other nation without asking them about it. War 


does not mean only payment of some money and 
manufacturing munitions. It can easily lead up to 
all that is happening in London, and should be 
dealt with on that footing. Four hundred millions 
of human beings cannot be thrown into such a 
condition against their own will or without asking' 
them. It is possible for us to recognise the 
justice of Britain’s case against Germany without 
having to join in it and extend the tragedy beyond 
the necessary limits. America refuses to enter the 
war though it may give judgment in favour of 
Britain. We have not entered the Sino-Japanese 
war in spite of the justice of China’s cause. 

The Poona proposal sought to make participa- 
tion consistent with self-respect and fruitful. But 
the proposal was rejected by the British Govern- 
ment. India is, therefore, entitled to refuse to 
participate in the war. But she is forced to 
contribute and participate on the basis that India 
is an imperial possession without any independent 
status or the right to choose between war and 
neutrality. The case for Britain is that the help 
taken from India is voluntary. This claim can 
be justified, or at least the objection can be 
reduced to the minimum, if those who preach 
non-participation are not suppressed by imprison- 
ment. It could then be claimed that such Indian 
co-operation that comes in spite of such appeals 
against participation is truly voluntary. This 
much should be conceded to mitigate the offence 
of dragging the Indian people into the horrors ^ 
of a modern war without their consent. 

Madras, 23-9-40 C. Rajagopalachar 

[Rajaji would not be Rajaji, if he took notice 
of ridicule. From his own standpoint his position 
is unassailable. But it therefore does not cease to 
be a denial of the last twenty years’ past of the 
Congress. If the Poona gesture had received the 
response it deserved, from being peace-minded 
the Congress would suddenly have become war- 
minded — a feat which even Rajaji would have 
failed to perform. But all this is past. Nor is it 
relevant to my confession and Rajaji’s postscript. 

On the train to Simla, 25-9-40 M. K. G.] 


Wanted Agents 

For selling copies of Harijan, Harijanhandhit and 
Harijansevak in various towns of India. For terms- 
apply to the Manager. 


CONTENTS 

I WONDICR 

Khadi Week 

An American’s Questions 
More about the Resolution... 
Some Criticism Answered 
Gandhiji’s Speech at the 
A. I. C. C. 

Sikhs and the Sword 
Correspondence 

Rajaji’s Postscript 


PAGE 

M. K. Gandhi 297 ' 
M. K. Gandhi 298 
M. D. 298- 
M. D, 300 
M, K. Gandhi 302' 

303 

M. K, Gandhi 306 • 
Tarasingh & 

M. K. Gandlii 307 
3QS> 


Printed and PabUshed by Vitbal Had Barve at the Aryabbushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road. Poona 4. 
SubaniptioQ. lUtes — INLAND : One year, Es, 4, Six months, Bs. 2-8. Foreign : One year, Rs, 5-8 or, 8 sh. or 2 dollars 


Reg, No. B. 3092 



Eilitor : MAHADEV DESAI 


VoL. Vlir, No. 34 ] POONA — SUNDAY, OCTOBER 6, 1940 


SINDH HINDUS 


{By M. K. Gandhi) 

Shri Shamlal Gidwani writes a letter on the 
situation in Sindh from which I quote the 
following : 

“ Most of us Sindh Hindus have not been able to 
follow the advice you thought fit to tender regarding 
non-violence. We find that this advice is in direct 
conflict with the teachings of Lord Shri Krishna. We 
ha\’e also been advised by you to migrate somewhere 
else if we are not able to protect ourselves. This advice 
again we are unable to follow for practical reasons. 

You know several of the reasons, and you ha\^e 
yourself mentioned some of them in your recent article 
in Harijan which we all greatly appreciate. You 
also know that Hindus in Sind, though only 27 per cent 
of tlie population, own fifty per cent |of the land. We 
are scattered all over the province, and our population 
in some of the villages is between two to ten per cent. 
W'e pay nearly the whole of the income-tax revenue in 
the ])rovince; we contribute fifty per cent of laud 
revenue and nearly the whole of the customs revenue. 
If we follow your advice, we shall be not only cowards 
but l)ccome landless and countryless. There is also a 
danger in our migrating to other provinces, for it will 
mean a public confession of the failure of a community 
to protect itself merely because an aggressive commu- 
nity thought fit to tyrannise over us and the protecting 
arms of law and order were not made available for us. 
Tliat would again be a confession of the failure of 
democracy. On the other hand, what we feel is that, if 
you had advised the people of Sindh — particularly the 
Hindus — to train themselves in the use of arms, they 
would ii£U(: been able to better protect themselves and 
would luue been saved all the series of murders that 
had been wantonly committed on the Hindus in recent 
months.’* 

At the same time that I received this letter, I 
saw in the papers that five Hindus were shot dead 
openly while they were pursuing their normal 
business. As usual the murderers have not been 
traced. Is this a plan of terrorism to drive the 
Hindus out of Sindh, or is it something else? 
Someone in Sindh ought to be able to answer 
the question. 

Shri Gidwani docs not subscribe to non- 
violence. He thinks that my advice is contrary 
to tlie tcachingi? of Lord Krishna. He thinks, 
for ( himself ) very good reasons, that the Hindus 
cannot act non-violcntly. For equally good 
reasons he thinks they cannot migrate. But he 
would like me to advise them to defend them- 
selves by arra<. This is like asking a nature cure 


[ ONE ANNA 


physician to prescribe allopathic drugs. Can he 
be trusted to prescribe the right drugs? And 
what will my advice be worth when my own 
hands are incapable of wielding arms ? Shri Gidwani 
should go to a physician who knows the business 
and will, on due occasion, run to the rescue and 
always be ready to give the necessary training. I 
have said that for those who do not believe in 
non-violence armed defence is the only remedy. 
But if I am asked to advise how it can be done, 
I can only say, “ I do not know.” 

But Shri Gidwani is trifling with the crisis when 
he lazily looks up to me to guide Sindh Hindus 
on impossible terms. If he sincerely believes in 
the solution he has proposed, he must himself 
take the training at once and lead the terrified 
Hindus of Sindh along the path of armed defence. 
It is wrong for the leaders of Sindh to look for 
outside help. They should cease to write. They 
should- seriously think out a plan of action, 
violent or non-violent, and follow it up firmly 
and bravely. 

I venture also to suggest to the responsible 
Muslims of Sindh that their reputation is at stake. 
If they cannot stop those senseless murders of 
innocent people, history will find them guilty. 
They will never persuade anybody that they are 
helpless to deal with the mischief. Such acts are 
impossible without the silent sympathy of the 
society to which the perpetrators of murders 
belong. Simla, 28-9-40 

OCCASIONAL NOTES 

‘*The Most Important Convert” 

When Gandhiji issued on July 2 his ‘Appeal 
to Every Briton’ no paper in the British Isles 
published it, except in bits. In about a fortnight, 
however. The Peace News got the full text and 
published it with Mr. Carl Heath’s appreciative 
commentary. But those British papers had much 
more room for the statement issued by the Work- 
ing Committee on June 21, and indeed some of 
them hailed the “Indian Congress” as “the most 
important convert of all”, in that it had “over- 
ruled its adored leader, Mr. Gandhiji.” What 
they will now say about the Bombay resolution it 
is difficult to say. They may not regard it as a 
full reconversion, and may even describe it as “a 
virtue of necessity.” Very much will depend upon 
our future conduct, for we are now pledged to 
“the policy and practice of non-violence not only 
in the struggle for Swaraj, but also, in so far as 
this may be possible of application, in free India, ” 
and to giving a lead in disarmament to the world. 




310 


HARIJAN [ October 6 , 1940 


The “ RecanftaftioES ” 

In this connection a reference to those who have 
recanted their belief in pacifism is likely to be 
useful. Among the most prominent of these 
ex-pacifists are Dr. C. E. M. Joad and ( Lord ) 
Bertrand Russell. They have decided that “non- 
violence is no use now that Hitler is loose. ” Dr. 
Joad describes himself as a “utilitarian pacifist”, 
and the onrush of Nazism has shaken his belief: 

“ If the Nazis win, then I know that all the things 
I hold to be important will not only be imperilled, as 
they are imperilled by war, but will certainly be destroy- 
ed. The Nazi regime has exorcised culture, burnt books, 
exiled artists, scientists, writers and philosophers, and 
made war upon the mind of man. It gags and muzzles 
its people; ii taps telej^hones and opens letters; it sets 
spies and eavesdroppers to overhear and report upon 
the most casual conversation; it plants its secret police 
and their creatures in cages, restaurants, shops and even 
private households to arrest its citizens and imprison 
them without trial, or after a trial in a party court for 
offences hitherto unknown to any code of law.” 

The question is: how are these things to be met? 
By counter-violence? Most of the things are even 
now being actually done by those who want to 
extirpate the Nazi curse ; and as the war advances 
it will be nothing short of a race in clever and 
successful brutality. Here is a report of the air 
raid on Mogadishu ( Italian Somaliland ) : 

“ The Italians had collected in one park at least a 
thousand motor lorries, and their almost complete destruc- 
tion represents a severe blow to enemy mobility and 
transport... Three waves of bombers were employed in 
the raid which lasted two liours. 'The attack' was con- 
centrated on the vehicle park and is described as having 
been very severe. The lieaviesL types of high explo- 
sives were used, and smoke from the burning machines 
rose into the sky. The pilots left fire behind them 
which one of them described as being like a furnace 
and the most amazing blaze he liacl ever seen.” 

In a recent broadcast talk Air Commodore A. 
Claud Wright explained the way in which the 
British have been able to maintain their air supe- 
riority, with the result that “the proportion of 
enemy aircraft casualties proved to have been 
brought down, in relation to our own casualties, 
varies from day to day, sometimes from 10 to 1, 
down to about 3 to 1, but the average is about 
5 to 1.” And a writer in The Times (London) 
makes out a case for “ compulsory, univeral pre- 
military training for all boys between 16 and 20, 
like that of the Finnish Youth.” The scheme 
would be developed on a county basis, but “com- 
mon to all would be the war games which give a 
boy the experiences and adventure for which he 
pines and the future soldier the appreciation of 
ground, distance, and cover that he needs. ” That 
is where the militarist is inevitably driven to. But 
the ex-Pacifist says : “ Our first business is to win 
the war no matter what happens, and pacifism 
will not win the war.” There is the weakness of 
the intellectual pacifist. The intellectual pacifist 
depends upon his intellect for his pacifist philo- 
sophy, and comes a cropper when faced with grim 


reality. The intellectual pacifist is no better than 
the writer who is no pacifist but who said the 
other day : “ Pacifism and disarmament are good 

in peace-time and not in war.” 

Beware of the Trap 

It is this intellectual pacifism that has led to 
the defection of Joad, Russell and Co., and we, 
who have looked upon non-violence as our sheet- 
anchor, had lost hold of it for a moment and have 
grasped it again, have to beware of this intellec- 
tual pacifism. If our pacifism is merely intellec- 
tual, it will not serve the purpose. It will 
vanish at the first touch of reality. When there 
was no war those who have now recanted were 
among the front rank pacifists. When the war with 
all its horrors has come to their very door, they 
have ceased to be pacifists, forgetting that pacifism 
has no value unless it is tested in the fierce 
furnace of war raging around it. As Mr. John 
Todd has put it: 

“ Joad and Russell have made it very difficult for a 
popular pacifist movement ever to be formed again. But 
that is as it should be. We must throw over, I think, 
much of this facile (it is now revealed as such ) in- 
tellectual propaganda. People must ask themselves, man 
for man, Avhethcr they know war is wrong absolutely. 
If they start always with intellectual reservations and 
arguments, the thing is useless. Pacifism is within 
us like the kingdom of God. Secondly, when we pro- 
ceed to argument we must do so with imagination 
seeing clearly that about which we argue. But first we 
must know pacifism in our whole divine selves. We 
must live on creating and renewing again and agaim 
remoulding the particular things of life as they come 
to us.” 

That is where “the living faith in God”, on 
which Gandhiji places so much emphasis, comes 
in. Seeing non-violence as the only salvation with 
the eye of faith cannot come otherwise. 

Resisting without Arms 

Mr. Carl Heath in his commentary on Gandhiji’s 
appeal has put his finger on the right spot when 
he says that in his appeal Gandhiji 3 s 

“ suggesting no tame submission to tyranny, least of 
all as mere escape from the suffering of war. What 
he calls for is resistance to violent evil with all the 
force of man’s free soul and bodily courage. But vio- 
lence apart, Gandhiji is here supplying the strong and 
virile element modern i)acifism too often lacks. It is 
no easy path that he offers. For the body it is a deve- 
loped and corporate discipline; and for the soul it is an 
utter love of and faith in God.” “ If,” he goes on, 
“there were in truth no other way of resisting tyranny 
and all the acts of evil and of cruelty, the man of 
courage would needs embrace the last evil of war. That 
is the pathetic belief of so many brave men.. -But the 
answer of the satyagrahi is that there is indeed another 
way, one that is not destroying but constructing. 
Beginning with a faith that sees the divine essence in 
men, evil concept and evil act are to be resisted both 
personally and corporately. Come what may, there can 
be no submission to evil, ruthlessness, tyranny and 
cruelty. All allegiance to the foreign invader must be 
refused whatever be the violence he may use. Does he 



HARIJAN 


311 


October 6, 1940 ] 


inflict wounds and death ? These are met by the soldier 
without llinching. But the satyagrahi seeks to overcome 
by a love that is no sentimentalism, and like Christ is 
possessed by a deep concern for the thwarted life of 
God in the champion of wrong, and for the undoing of 
the evil will that rules him.” 

But it means a new life, a transvaluation of all 
values. 

“ This challenge of Gandhiji, if it can sink deep into 
the soul of Europe, will in acceptance transform all 
social existence. The tension of life, international and 
social, will begin to vanish. Humanity will be on the 
march to a new world and a vita nuova. Is this a 
dream ? All such dreams are^ vain till men rise up in 
courage, and decide to answer ‘ yes ’ to the challenge of 
the great idea that one such dream contains.” 

But those who will share the dream must share 
the faith that inspires the dream. 

No Room for Passengers 
The ranks of the pacifists in London have thin- 
ned down following the defections. No news agent 
would accept The Peace l^eivs, and the total 
membership is less than one-third. But those with 
living faith are undaunted. Mr. J. Middleton 
Murry, who has assumed the editorship of the 
little weekly, says; 

“ There is no room for passengers in our movement. 
Thirty thousand ]ieople united in the determination to 
keep the basic human value alive are worth more than 
a million who ha\'e merely put their names to a pious 
declaration. Tlie signing of a pledge ‘ I renounce war ’ 
is no longer a sufficient bond for a pacifist movement. 
Indeed in a period of total war it has an air of un- 
reality and ir: At such a tiin;.' oiu; u 

well say ‘renounce society’. That would at least give 
us a clue to our real purpose : for since we cannot live 
a human life without a society to live it in, it follows 
that our business is to create a society in which we 
can live — a society of peace in the midst of a society 
at war.... Membership must be recognised as demand- 
ing sonui real and continual sticrificc for the consolida- 
tion of the brotherhood itself. When we have knit a 
solid bond between ourselves we shall be better able to 
withstand thc^. constantly increasing pressure of the war- 
society around us.” 

Inexpedient to Continue 

When Gandhiji wrote his ‘Appeal to every 
Briton’, he requested the Viceroy to convey the 
contents to “the proper quarters”, for it repre- 
sented “his personal and humble contribution to 
Britons cause”. His Majesty’s Government com- 
municated their reply, through the Viceroy, that 
the policy advocated by Gandhiji could not be 
considered, “since in common with the whole 
Empire they arc firmly resolved to prosecute the 
war to a victorious conclusion.” Gandhiji dki ^Qt 
for a moment doubt their resolve, but he feared that 
Britain, to win the War, would have to adopt 
“ witli greater thoroughness the same work of des- 
truction as the Germans, which would be an undigni- 
fied competition.” That consideration evidently did 

not weigh with them, for once war is accepted 
the consideration of dignity docs not enter there. 
But while Gandhiji addressed his appeal on the 
highest ethical ground, he was not oblivious of 
the fact that the highest ethics necessarily meant 
the highest expediency. The events are fast prov- 
ing it. A decisive military defeat of Germany 
after the collapse of France, seems now out of 


the question, and even a technical victory depends 
upon Britain’s success in blockading the whole of 
Europe, including Britain’s former allies and neutral 
countries — a ghastly, even if a possible, prospect. 
Captain B. H. Liddell-Hart, one of the foremost 
authorities on military science, urges a termination 
of hostilities on other but no less important 
grounds : 

“ As to peace, we must always remember that a long 
war tends to a bad peace. Britain has only won two 
wars decisively m a thousand 3 "ears — against Napoleon 
and Kaiser — and, certainly, in the last case the ‘fight 
to a finish ’ had bitter fruits. You may call me a 
defeatist, as some do, but I still insist that victory has 
less to offer than an indecisive war which ends with an 
agreed peace. The idea of complete and overwhelming 
victory is the greatest folly on earth; such victories only 
lead to bankruptcy, moral as well as economic. The 
frequent assertion that we must first ‘ win the war 
before considering the peace is most fallacious. The 
object of war is to obtain a better peace, even if only 
from your own point of view. Hence it is essential to 
conduct war with constant regard to the peace you 
desire. As I emphasised in The Defence of Britain^ 
if you concentrate exclusively on victory, with no 
thought of the after-effects, you may be too exhausted 
to profit by the peace, while it is almost certain that 
the peace will be a bad one, containing the germs of 
another war. Tliis is a lesson supported by abundance 
of experience.” 

Sevagram, 24-9-40 M. D. 

’interesting Parallel 

Shri A. Choudhary. who has come to non- 
violence after much travail, sends the following 
interesting letter: 

“ Looking through some press articles about Trotsky 
after his recent murder, I came across the following 
remarkable fact. When tlie Bolsheviks captured power 
after the October revolution in 1917 the Soviet (xovern- 
ment negotiated for peace with Germany. The German 
Government offered very severe terms. Trotsky thought 
that the moral effect of the revolution was so great 
that the German Government would find it impossible 
to move their armies against Russia. So, rather than 
submit to those terms, lie declared that the Soviet 
Government considered war to be at an end and so 
would demobilise their armies, and actually proceeded 
to do so. The Germans continued to advance and 
later on they concluded a severer treaty. 

Do you not think this to be an unconscious and 
partial realisation by tlie revolutionaiy leader of tlie 
possibility oi resisting foreign aggression witliout an 
army ? 'Phe cause of the failure is obvious. 'Phey had 
never consciously accepted non-violence or prepared 
for it. 'Prutsky’s action amounted to non-resistance, 
not active non-violent appeal. 

There are instances in the history of Ihe Russian 
Revolution of unarmed masses or workers facing the 
military forces in face of rifle fire in the hope of 
winning them over and actually doing so. These T 
hold to bti an unorganised and unconscious adojition of 
the non-violent technic|ue, by tlie masses in the streets. 
But Trotsky’s instance shows that a responsible revolu- 
tionary statesman, having nothing to do with non- 
violence, could, in llie light of revolutionary e.xperience, 
Ihink tlie ‘silly’ course now advocated by you to be a 
possible one, and actually experiment with it. 

Wliy should not we, with twenty years’ tradition of 
non-vioicnt action, not only experiment with it, but 
Jio}>c for certain success ? 1 for myself havtj begun to 
believe', that of all forms of non-violent action, resist- 
ance to ibreign aggression is the easiest one, and the 
first one likely to be completely successful.” 

Simla, 28-9-40 mir ^ 



312 


HARIJAN 



DISGRACEFUL IF TRUE 

(By M. K. Gandhi) 

A correspondent sends me a bitter letter 
which I reproduce after removing some choice 
adjectives which he has used: 

On the eve of your meeting the Viceroy on the 
issue of civil liberties, I hope this letter would be of 
some use to you. 

At present hundreds of Australian soldiers are moving 
about in the city of Bombay. Like you, I have no 
prejudice against any man, whatever nationality or 
community he may be belonging to. But after observ- 
ing the behaviour of these soldiers for a week, I am led 
to the conclusion or misconclusion that they do not 
belong to the ‘ human ’ race. I have solid reasons for 
saying so. The Britishers call Germans * brutes ’ and 
their own soldiers * brave *, ‘ gallant ‘ heroic ’ and what 
not; but the scenes I have witnessed tell a different tale. 

Serious molestation is going on in Bombay by these 
‘ soldiers They give a slap on the face of even the 
policeman. I would cite here some concrete examples, 
which would give you an idea of the extent to which 
this soldier menace is prevalent in the city of Bombay ; 

1. One soldier caught hold of a Gujarati girl and 
compelled her to dance with him in the ball-dance 
fashion on the open road. Seven other soldiers encircled 
the pair and made merry. It was on an unfrequented road. 

2. Another bit a high school girl on her cheeks and 
left her in a blood pool, 

3. Four soldiers were seen dragging away a ‘Vaghari’ 
woman in the evening near the Prince of Wales Museum. 

4. About twenty soldiers came out of the Army and 
Navy Stores with brandy bottles in their hands, fully 
drunk. One of them removed his pants and became 
naked in the open road. 

5. Harassing the taxi and victoria drivers has become 
too common now to describe. A batch of six to eight 
soldiers packed up in a taxi or victoria is an everyday 
sight throughout the city. They compel the drivers to 
take them round the whole city and pay nothing. I 
cannot imagine the torture of the poor horses carrying 
their overload. 

6. They enter any hotels, eat, drink, enjoy, and 
leave without paying anything. 

7. A traffic policeman was given a slap by a soldier, 
because he tried to prevent his car from proceeding further. 

3, 4, 5, 6 were seen with my own eyes. The remain- 
ing were narrated by friends. 

I hope you will let the Viceroy know with what 
* stuff * they are fighting the war ! ! I do not mean to 
say that all the soldiers are like this, but what is going 
on in Bombay gives me to think.” 

I have several letters in comfirmation of the 
general charge of indecent behaviour of these 
‘soldiers’. One letter says that a philanthropic 
lady had invited these and Indian soldiers to tea. 
The Indians responded.. Of over 250 Australians 
invited about eight responded. The poor lady, it 


f October 6, 194® 

is said, was frantic with grief, and phoned to know 
why her Australian guests had not turned up. 
‘ They have gone out, they are not ready’, was 
the answer. 

When I was in Bombay I had heard of this 
wild behaviour. I was inclined to discount the 
stories that came to me of their alleged misbeha- 
viour. Some of them were at the station when I 
took the train for Wardha. I mentioned to them 
the complaints that were brought to my notice. 
They promised to set things right. Evidently they 
had no influence over their companions. They did 
say to me they had not been in touch with one 
another before their enlistment. 

Be that as it may, the menace should be sternly 
dealt with. I did mention the matter to H. E. 
the Viceroy. He promised ro investigate. He 
admitted that the thing was serious, if it was 
true. I suppose colour prejudice is as strong in 
Australia as in South Africa. The coloured man 
is dirt. There shall be no equality between the 
whites and the coloured races. Thus runs the South 
African constitution. The white man thinks that a 
nation containing forty crores of people and ruled 
by one hundred thousand white men can only be 
treated as the Australian soldiers are reported to 
have regarded our girls, the victoriawallas, and 
even the Indian police. The war has made no 
difference in the behaviour of the white man. 

Two questions emerge from the incidents, assum- 
ing them to have happened as reported. All the 
letters received by me cannot be inventions of 
fertile brains. What notice have the immediate 
authorities taken of the allegations ? The Viceroy 
is but one man. If every ugly incident has to go 
up to him for redress, the system under which 
this has to happen is bad. There is gross indis- 
cipline among the subordinates in so far as justice 
to the people is concerned. It is plain sailing 
when the power of the bayonet is to be exhibited. 
Then the Viceroy and the subordinate service can 
act as one man. The sinister inference from this 
phenomenon is that the subordinate service is the 
supreme authority and the Viceroy a mere figure- 
head. The most striking though painful illustration 
of the truth was furnished by the subordinate 
authority combining to break to pieces the Gandhi- 
Irwin pact. Had it not been wantonly disregarded 
by the subordinate service, history would certainly 
have been written differently. But there was no 
Irwin spirit behind the service. The question, 
therefore, is, in the present instance, what has the 

G. O. C. of the Australian contingent done with 
his men? Had he issued instructions to them as 
to their behaviour in the midst of a mild popu- 
lation? What did the Commissioner of Police 
do ? What did the Collector do ? And what did 

H, E. the Governor do ? 

The second question is equally important — what 
have the people done to protect girls from the 
barbarity to which they were exposed? What has 
the Mayor done to vindicate the honour of the 
women living within his jurisdiction? True, he 
has no executive authority. But he is not the 
mere chairman of the Corporation. His status 




HARIJAN 


313 


October 6, 1940 ] 

■ carries with it a dignity and prestige which should 
enable him to move the authorities concerned in 
the right direction. What has the Bombay Con- 
gress Committee done? What has the man in the 
street done ? If the facts are correctly represented, 
they constitute a serious blot on everyone con- 
cerned. If there was public spirit, violent or 
non-violent, no one, white or brown, would dare 
to touch a girl against her will. 

The matter demands thorough investigation. 
Simla. 29-9-40 

VICEROY-GANDHI 

CORRESPONDENCE 

The correspondence that passed today between 
the Viceroy and Gandhiji on the Congress demand 
for freedom of speech has been released to the 
Press (Simla, September 30): 

Viceroy’s Letter 

Dear Mr. Gandhi, 

I think it will be convenient if I record very 

■ briefly in writing the origin of the talks we have 
had on the 27th and 30th September and their 
' outcome. 

As you will remember, you wrote to me on the 
18th September to ask that I should grant you an 
interview, and you explained in your letter that 
you were anxious to discuss the situation covered 
by the recent resolution of the All India Congress 
'Committee, not only in your capacity as guide of 
the Congress but as a personal friend. I was, I 
need not say, most ready to talk things over with 
you, and we have now had the advantage of two 
‘ conversations. 

In the course of these conversations the situation 
has been exhaustively discussed, with particular 
reference to the question of free speech in time 
‘ of war. On that matter, while professing yourself 
most anxious to avoid in any way embarrassing 
His Majesty’s Government in the prosecution of 
the war, you made it clear to me that you regard- 
• ed it as essential that the Indian National Con- 
gress and other members of the public should be 
in a position to give full expression to their views 
in relation to the war effort, provided only that 
such expression was fully non-violent. 

I indicated to you the nature of the special 
treatment laid down by law in the United King- 
dom for dealing with conscientious objectors — 
which I may broadly describe as an arrangement 
under which, while the conscientious objector is 
■absolved from the duty of fighting and is allowed 
even to profess his faith in public, he is not 
permitted to carry his opposition to the length of 
endeavouring to persuade others, whether soldiers 
■or munition workers, to abandon their allegiance 
•or to discontinue their effort. 

You made it clear to me that you would not 
regard treatment of that nature as adequate in the 
conditions of India, and that you regarded it as 
essential that in India, where in your judgment 
conditions were wholly different from those exist- 
ing in Great Britain, the Indian objector, either to 
*all war as such, or to the participation of India in 


the present war, should be untramelled * in rbc 
expression of his views. 

It emerged further from our ^conversation that„ 
while you would not yourself preach to workers 
engaged on war work at the actual works, in an 
endeavour there to dissuade them from working 
on war equipment, you would regard it as essen- 
tial that it should be open to Congressmen and 
non-Congressmen alike to deliver addresses and 
otherwise to call upon people throughout rhe 
country to refrain from assisting India’s war effort 
in any way which would involve India’s participa- 
tion in bloodshed. 

I listened with the utmost care and attention 
to your argument, and our examination of the 
situation has been full and close. I felt bound, 
however, in the outcome, to make it clear to you 
that action such as you suggest would certainly 
amount not only to the inhibition of India’s war 
effort, but to that embarrassment of Great Britain 
in the prosecution of the war which the Congress 
state that they are anxious to avoid ; and that it 
would clearly not be possible in the interests of 
India herself, more particularly at this most criti- 
cal juncture in the war, to acquiesce in the inter- 
ference with the war effort which would be 
involved in freedom of speech so wide as that 
for which you had asked. 

Gandhiji’s Reply 
Dear Lord Linlithgow, 

I have your letter of even date. It fairly sets 
forth the Congress position as I placed it before 
you. It is a matter of deep regret to me that 
the Government have not been able to appreciate 
the Congress position, meant just to satisfy the 
bare requirements of the people, whether 
Congressmen or others, who felt a conscientious 
objection to helping a war to which rhey were 
never invited and which they regard, so far as 
they are concerned, as one for saving Imperialism, 
of which India is the greatest victim. Their 
objection is just as conscientious as mine as a war 
resister. I cannot claim greater freedom for my 
conscience than for that of those I have named. 

As I made it plain in the course of our talks, 
the Congress is as much opposed to victory for 
Nazism as any Britisher can be. But their objection 
cannot be carried to the extent of their participa- 
tion in the war. And since you and the Secretary 
of State for India have declared that the whole 
of India is voluntarily helping the war effort, it 
becomes necessary to make clear that the vast 
majority of the people of India are not inte- 
rested in it. They make no distinction between 
Nazism and the double autocracy that rules 
India. Had His Majesty’s Government recognised 
the freedom required in the special condition of 
India, they would have justified the claim that 
they were receiving from India only such effort 
as they could voluntarily. The war party and the 
no- war party would have been placed on an equal 
footing so far as each worked fully non-violently. 

As to the last paragraph of your letter, I wish 
to remind you that it was never contemplated to^ 



314 


HARIJAN 


[ October 6, 1940 


carry non-embarrassmenr to the point of self- 
extinction or, in other words, stopping all national 
activities which were designed to make India 
peace-minded and show that India’s participation 
could not benefit anyone, not excluding Great 
Britain, Indeed I hold that, if India were left 
free to make her choice which freedom of speech 
implied, India would probably have turned the 
scales in favour of Britain and true liberty by the 
moral prestige which Britain would have then 
gained. 

I must, therefore, repeat that the Congress does 
still want to refrain from embarrassing the British 
Government in their war effort. But it is impossi- 
ble for the Congress to make of the policy a 
fetish by denying its creed at this critical period 
in the history of mankind. If the Congress has 
to die, it should do so in the act of proclaiming 
its faith. It is unfortunate that we have not been 
able to arrive at an agreement on the single issue 
of freedom of speech. But I shall hug the hope 
that it will be possible for the Government to 
work out their policy in the spirit of the 
Congress position. 

I should like to touch upon the other points I 
raised in our talks. But for fear of burdening this 
reply, I refrain. I shall hope to make a public 
statement on them as early as I can. 

In conclusion, let me thank you publicly for 
the great courtesy and patience with which you 
listened to my very long statement and argument. 
And though our ways seem to diverge for the 
moment, our personal friendship will, as you have 
kindly said at the time of saying farewell, bear 
the strain of divergence. 

As arranged I am handing our correspondence 
to the Press for publication. 

‘ COME THOU IN A SHOWER 
OF COMPASSION ’ 

This visit to Simla is unlike the three previous 
visits to these heights during the year since the 
outbreak of the war. Those visits were at the 
Viceroy’s invitation. This one is at Gandhiji’s 
request. On the previous occasions he came 
neither as M. K. Gandhi — ‘a private individual 
can have no place in a satrap’s books’ — nor 
as a plenipotentiary of the Congress. He came to 
represent as best he could the Congress position 
as he understood it. And indeed when he came 
at the end of June he had gently to remind 
the Viceroy that, though he was always willing 
to obey his summons, His Excellency had to 
know that the Wardha decision of the Working 
Committee had meant a complete political break 
between him and the Committee. This time he 
comes as the accredited guide and captain of the 
Congress, and also, as he made it clear in his 
letter of request, as Lord Linlithgow’s friend, which 
the latter had always been good enough to permit 
him to call himself. In fact the Viceroy’s prompt 
telegraphic reply to Gandhiji’s letter was nothing 
less than an act of friendship. For he well might 
have ^aid ‘ no \ and Gandhiji would have under- 
stood it. 


Again this visit is unlike the previous visits, in 
that Gandhiji came with no hurry in his mind to 
get back, and so when His Excellency asked for 
his programme he said he was at his disposal for 
as long as he liked, as his mission was his supreme 
work. He had come as a beggar knocking at the 
Viceregal door, and so he might not choose. 

As the guide of the Congress he came indeed 
with a very simple and restrictedly concrete issue. 
But as Lord Linlithgow’s friend, and as a friend 
of the British people, he had innumerable things 
to talk about, and he wanted to unbosom himselL 

For while he had written frankly and freely 
during the past few months, he had deliberately 
left more things unsaid than said. Often enough 
his faith had been at breaking point, he had 
missed the ring of sincerity in utterances from 
great places, and he was sore distraught over 
happenings in the country. 

He had unburdened himself at the Bombay 
meeting of the A. I. C. C., and yet I know that 
he had deliberately “ half revealed and half 
concealed” the agitated soul within. He said he 
would submit to the Viceroy his interpretation 
of the sum total of the Government’s activities 
beginning with the Viceroy’s pronouncement, but 
he gave no inkling of the interpretation. In just a 
few measured phrases he had given his opinion 
about Col. Amcry’s speech, but he had not laid 
bare his soul. 

And he had said nothing in Harijan about the 
distressing news from all parts of the country 
that his correspondents had been giving him — 
about arrests, exactions, savage behaviour of the 
Australian soldiers recently dumped into Bombay, 
and so on. 

He had stored up that agony. On the train to 
Delhi he went into silence in order to do his 
writing for Harijan, and finished three articles in 
the wretchedly jolting carriage. Wc had little 
talk on the way. In Delhi friends showed him a 
summary of Col. Amery’s speech throwing out a 
ray of hope for an understanding. But who 
knows? It may be as deceptive as the Blackpool 
speech which preceded the outrageous pronounce- 
ment that he made a day or two later. And the 
full text of the latest speech did indeed seem a 
revised edition — ■ pitched in a lower key perhaps 
— .of that pronouncement. 

Who could say what was to be the outcome of 
the Simla visit? In the car that brought us up 
to Simla he finished part of the arrears of his 
sleep, and we talked somewhat desultorily. I 
asked him twice if he would not like to go off to 
sleep again. He said ‘ no. ’ And the stored up 
agony broke out in an unexpected and touch- 
ingly sweet way. Almost abruptly he asked me : 
“ Mahadev, what is the meaning of lukaye jay ? ” 
I knew the words of that life-giving song of our 
Poet, and he knew that I had translated the 
Bengali into Gujarati parallel tunes. I said: ‘The 
words mean : is lost, is missing.” “ Just repeat the 
two lines,” he said. ‘T remember Jivan jakhan 
shukUye jay, and what does the Poet describe as 



HARIJAN 


315 


October G, 1940 ] 


being lost?" I gave him the substance of the 
two lines : When the spring of life dries up, 
come thou in a shower of compassion. When 
sweetness lies hidden, come Thou in the Heavenly 
dew of song." And he beamed, as though sweet- 
ness and compassion had come to him. Then I 
repeated the last stanza and gave my crude trans- 
lation of it : “ When stormy passions rage within 
and blind me, O Thou sleepless Purifier! come in 
an awakening flash of lightning." “ He is a rishi 
i seer ), exclaimed Gaiidhiji, and we have no 
.idea how much we owe to him." I was in a 
reminiscent mood. I reminded him how, in spite 
of his frail health, the Poet had come rushing 
from Santiniketan to the Yeravda jail where 
Gandhiji lay fasting for the Harijans, and how 
within a few hours of the Poet’s auspicious entry 
in the prison the good news of the revision of 
the Premier’s decision came, how we sat down 
to pray before Gandhiji broke his fast, and how 
I requested the Poet to sing this very song. It 
was a sacred memory. Gandhiji remembered the 
whole of the moving scene, but he did not remember 
the song. Since then he had heard the isong from 
me more than once, and the thought, and even 
some of the words, had stayed with him, as 
he recalled them when he was thinking of his 
dijEcult mission. 

As on reaching Simla I have found Gitanjali, 
let the reader have the Poet’s authentic version: 

“ When the heart is liarcl and parched up, come 
upon me willi a showii of mercy. 

When grace is lost from life, come with a burst of 
song. 

When tumultuous work raises its dm on all sides 
shutting me out from beyond, come to me, niy lord 
of silence, with thy peace and rest. 

When my ]:)eggarly heart sits crouched, shut up in a 
corner, break open the door, my king, and come Avith 
the ceremony of a king. 

When desire blinds the mind with delusion and dust, 
O thou holy one, thou wakeful, come with thy light 
•and thy thunder.” 

And with the memory of the song the fear 
that the knock may not be heard fled from my 
heart. For after all the knock was to be made 
at no human door. And as the Poet has sung in 
another of his songs : 

“If Thou speakest not, I will fill my heart with thy 
silence and endure it. I Avill keep still and wait like 
the night with starry vigil and its head bent low with 
patience. 

The morning will surely come, the darkness will 
vanish, and thy voice pour down in golden streams 

breaking through the sky.” 

Simla, 28-9-40 M. D. 

Postscript 

Mysterious are the ways of God. After the 
above was typed and sent to the post, the follow- 
ing telegram was received from Shri Anil Kumar 
Chanda : 

“ Gurudeva dangerously ill. Being removed Calcutta 
tonight accompanied by Calcutta doctors,” 

To which Gandhiji immediately sent the follow- 
ing reply: 


“Your telegram. May God pull Gurudeva through and 
keep him yet a while for humanity as He has done 
before.” 

Who knows when we were remembering the 
Poet and the debt humanity owed to him, as we 
were coming up to Simla, we were offering our 
prayers for his long life, though we did not know 
that he was so ill. M. D. 

Notes 

The Breach 

It is my firm conviction that British statesmen 
have failed to do the right thing when it was 
easy to do it. If India is wholly in favour of 
participation in the war, they could have easily 
disregarded any hostile propaganda. But the 
determination to gag free expression of opinion, 
provided it w-as not in the least tainted with 
violence, shatters Britain’s claim that India’s parti- 
cipation is voluntary. Had the Congress proposal 
been accepted, such aid as Britain would have got 
from India would have been an asset of inestimable 
value. The non-violent party w^ould have played 
an effective part for honourable peace when the 
proper time for it was in sight, as it must be some 
day. I have been shown The Times comment 
on the breach. I accept the compliment about 
my resourcefulness. But great as I believe it to 
be, I own that it has its limitations. There must 
be willingness on the other side. I regret to have 
to say I wholly missed it at the interview. The 
Viceroy was all courtesy, but he was unbending, 
and believed in the correctness of his judgment, and 
as usual had no faith in that of nationalist India. 
The Britisher is showing extraordinary bravery on 
the battle-field in a marvellous manner. But he 
lacks bravery to take risks in the moral domain. 

I often wonder whether the latter has any place 
in British politics. Sevagram, 3-10-40 

To Satyagrahis 

Satyagrahis will not be impatient with me and 
argue with me or with themselves and say, 
“When will you give the word? You have had 
your interview with the Viceroy. You have got 
what many of us had told you you would get." 
Your telling me this or that mattered little. The 
attempt was worth making. I had told you that, 
even if I did not get what I wanted from the 
Viceroy, I would bring from Simla added strength 
for myself Who knows that to have added 
strength is not better than weak success. But my 
wisdom will be tested by the manner in which I 
use the strength. Maulana Saheb has called the 
Working Committee for the 11th inst. I hope I 
shall be ready then with my plan of action. But 
whatever it is, it will be good only if it carries 
with it the united will of all Congressmen, if not 
the whole nation. Then the visible action even of 
one man will be enough for the purpose intended. 
Meanwhile please remember there is to be no 
civil disobedience, direct or indirect. Any breach 
of this will weaken the cause because it will 
unnerve your general who is susceptible to the 



HAEIJAN 


3i6 


[October 6, 1940 


siighcesc indiscipline. A general in action has no 
strength but what is given to him by his people. 

On the train to Wardha, 2-10-40 

Iliegai Levy? 

A problem has arisen at Alibag, the headquarters of 
the Kolaba District near Bombay, and I am afraid it 
exists in many other districts. I place the facts in detail 
and seek your advice. 

Motor buses run from Alibag in three directions. 
There is no other means of travel. Each service is 
organized and conducted by a union of the bus-owners. 
Trie fare charged was and even today is less than 
wliat could be levied under the Government schedule. 

Sometime in the third week of August the District 
Superintendent of Police, Kolaba, wrote a letter to all 
the bus-owners in the District. In this letter he inti- 
mated to them the decision of the District War Gift 
Committee to affix half anna War Gift stamp to every 
ticket issued to a bus passenger. He further asked 
them whether they were willing to do the same. In 
this connection it may be noted that the District Super- 
intendent of Police is neither the chairman nor any 
office-bearer of the War Committee. Presumably he 
wrote this letter to bring pressure on the bus-owners 
who are under the control of the Police Department in 
every respect. 

Since 1st: September the unions increased the fare by 
half an anna per passenger irrespective of distance. They 
at times attribute this to the rise in the price of petrol. 
But in fact this half anna they have to credit to the 
War Gift Fund. In order to see that full amount is 
credited, the union account books are to be checked by 
the Police Office and account struck. Such are the facts. 
What could and should be done to resist this forcible 
lev'v exacted from every passenger ? What should bus 
pa.>sengers who don’t want to pay the extra levy do ? ” 

This is a typical letter. In some shape or other 
things go on like this. I call it an illegal levy. 
Any passenger who will take the trouble can 
decline to pay the levy and tender the scheduled 
fare and demand a seat in the bus. If he is re- 
jected, he has a cause of action. So far as I know, 
it is not the Government policy to compel people 
to give donations. There is legal compulsion 
enough for the purposes of the war. Even that 
is being carried too far and is causing resentment. 
But it becomes intense when to this legal levy 
is added the illegal one miscalled donations. It 
is indecent to legalise arbitrary exactions. It is 
doubly indecent to connive at illegalities. I can 
only hope that these will be stopped altogether. 

"There should be no engineering of war contribu- 
tions. If they are to be spontaneous, let the 
people send what they like to the appointed 
depots. This will be a true test of the strength 
of voluntary effort. Simla, 29-9-40 

A Christian Student’s Complaint 

An Indian Christian student from a Missionary 
college in Bengal writes: 

Missionary colleges are meant to be centres of 
preaching and conversion to Christianity. The Mission- 


aries talk of the Bible, Christ and Christianity, bui: 
when any matter of national importance to India arises 
they are suprisingly reactionary'. We have annual 
socials in our college. On the evening of 7th September 
one such was held, and the opening item in our pro- 
gramme was the singing of Bande mataratn by a group 
of boarders. The Principal objected on the ground that 
it was difficult for Europeans to stand for ten minutes 
in honour of an Indian national song and that, if the 
practice of singing Bande mataram were allowed, it 
would mean official recognition of it by them as a 
national song which they do not care to give. No 
compromise was possible in spite of every argumenc ou 
the part of the students. The students have called a 
strike. In the same way the Congress should also resort 
to satyagraha and non-cooperation, for Imperialist 
Britain will never understand our point of view.’' 

Of late I have written a great deal against strikes 
by students. I do not know the name of the 
college. Had I known it, I would have sought 
verification from the authorities. Therefore I base 
my opinion on the assumption that the facts are 
correctly stated by my correspondent. If they are, 

I am happy to be able to say that this strike was 
thoroughly justified. And I hope that it was 
wholly spontaneous and successful. Whether the 
song is in fact national or not is not for the 
Missionaries concerned to determine. For them 
it is surely enough to know that their students . 
recognise the song as national. Professors and 
teachers, if they are to be popular with their 
pupils, have to identify themselves with their 
activities and aspirations so long as they are not 
unhealthy or immoral. 

Simla, 29-9-40 M. K. G. 

Handmade Paper 

Our purchases and sales of handmade paper for the 
month of September amounted to Rs. 542-8-9 and 
Rs. 1,245-2-3 respectively, bringing the total figures, 
of purchases ' and sales from January' I to September 30 ■ 
to Rs. 15,975-6-3 and Rs. 13,375-10-9 respectively. 
Rs. 1,403-12-0 have been given for paper-cutting 
and envelope-making. 

Manager 

Gitanjali by Rabindranath Tagore. Price Re. 1 * 
postage 2 As. extra. Available at Harijan Office. 


CONTENTS 

PAGE 

Sindh Hindus 

M. K. Gandhi 309 

Occasional Notes 

M. D. 

309 

Shameful If True 

M. K. Gandhi 

312 

Vicekoy-Gandhi Correspon- 

DENCE 


3L3 

‘Come Thou in a Shower op’ 

Campassion' 

M. D. 

314 

Notes : 

Interesting Parallei. 

. M. K. G. 

311 

The Breach 

. M. K. G. 

315 

To Satyagrahis 

. M. K. G. 

315 

Illegal Levy? 

. M. K. G. 

316 

A Christian STur>ENT’^ 

Complaint 

, M. K. G. 

316 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
Subscription Rates — IlffLAND : One year, Rs. 1, Six months, Bs. 2-8. FOREIGN : One year, Rs. 5-8 or, 8 sh. or 2 dollars 



Reg. No. B. 3092 





Editor : MAHADEV DESAI 


VoL. Vin, No. 35 ] POONA — SUNDAY, OCTOBER 13, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 


TWO THOUGHT-PROVOKING 
LETTERS 

( By M. K, Gandhi ) 

A friend writes thus: 

‘'When you asked for the names of out and out be- 
lievers in non-violence I wanted very much to send 
in mine, but something within compelled me to refrain. 
First because I felt there was lack of ahimsa in my 
personal conduct, and secondly because there was the 
opposite of love for the English in my heart. I rejoice 
when 1 read in the papers of the destruction wrought 
on London and Britain, and I inwardly want the 
British to be defeated in the war. I am impelled to 
confess this, for I could not deceive you.” 

The second letter is from South Africa. I take 
a fev/ sentences from it : 

“I am puzzled as to what should be the attitude of 
Indians at the present juncture. The 'white’ races 
are so utterly callous in regard to ‘ coloured ’ people, 
and in spite of the war colour prejudice continues 
unabated, \^^ly tlien should we give our lives for them ? 
Quite recently an Indian student who returned here 
from Europe was telling us that in spite 'of the fact 
that the steamer was not croweded the British Company 
hesitated to give accommodation to Indians. Such treat- 
ment leads us and also the African people to believe 
that there is no difference between the Nazis, the Boers 
and tlie British, so far as we are concerned. If there 
were Nazi rule in South Africa, we could not be worse 
treated than wc are today. Many of us think that the 
British are sweet-tongued but they pursue their own 
ruthless policy in spite of honeyed words, whereas 
Hitler would be more frank. He at any rate says 
exactly \Viiat he feels. Is there not truth in this ? 
Anyhow wc ought to know where we stand. Please 
tell us.” 

Thougli differently worded the two letters betray 
the same thought. It is difficult for those who 
suffer at British hands to shed either their dislike 
of, or a disinclination to help, them. But the 
present is a real testing time for ahimsa which 
alone can throw light on our path. 

First of all we must distinguish between the 
British people and their policy. We must have 
full liberty thoughtfully and with reason to criticise 
the latter, but we may not dislike them. To err 
is human. All have their good as well as bad 
points. It is in human nature, even if we are in the 
wrong, to resent bitter, often unjust, criticism. But 
if we were lovingly shown our faults, we would 
perhaps be willing to listen. We must behave 
thus towards the British. Let us tell them where 
they are in the wrong, but do not let us wish 


them any harm. We may demand a mental and 
heart change in their outlook, but we may not 
pray for their downfall. 

Such an attitude is indispensable in satyagraha 
which demands that, while we may neither speak evil 
of wrong-doers nor wish them ill, we must at the 
same time show them the error of their ways and 
non-cooperate with them in their wrong-doing. The 
Congress has been trying to follow this great prin- 
ciple for the last twenty years. I believe 'that we 
have benefited greatly therefrom. Moreover there 
is no reason why we should wish the British to 
be defeated in this war. The writer from South 
Africa rightly says that there is not much to 
choose between the British and the Nazis. This is 
as clear as daylight in South Africa, in particular, 
where coloured races are treated as definitely inferior 
in every way. What more than this could the 
Nazis say or do ? The defeat of the British would 
connote the victory of the Nazis, which, again, we 
do not and must not desire. Therefore we should be 
impartial. We are desirous of our own indepen- 
dence. For that there is no reason why we should 
want the destruction of Germany. We have to 
achieve as well as maintain our freedom through 
our own strength. Wc do not need British or any 
outside help for it. Those of us who have full faith 
in ahimsa believe that we can win it through non- 
violence and keep it thereby also. 

There is, however, a section amongst us who 
believe in winning and maintaining our independ- 
ence through force of arms. Their position is a 
difficult one. As a matter of fact we have still to 
gain our freedom. If we win it through violence, 
we will not do so by helping Britain in the war. 
For if we help the war effort, we really come more 
under their sway than we are today. And if in 
spite of our help they lose, we would then come 
under the rule of another foreign power. So that,- 
if Britain and India were jointly defeated, we would, 
so to speak, be jumping from the frying pan into 
the fire. Moreover India has no enmity towards 
any nation. Hitler and others have no illusions. 
They know full well that India is not a willing 
partner in the war, that we are a slave country, 
and that our wishes do not count. It was 
really the Congress who raised this question 
because the Congress has adopted non-violence as 
its weapon. At the same time we have no quarrel 
with those who do not believe in non-violence. 
Each of us must go his own way. By doing so we 
shall know where India stands. If the Congress 
had not spoken out its mind, it would have com- 



318 


HARIJAN 


[ October 13, 1940 


mitred suicide, that is to say, it would have given 
up its right to follow out its policy of non-vio- 
lence. It is its duty to keep itself alive. Therefore 
the Congress has to take some action. What that 
action will be will shortly become known. I suggest 
to the two writers that they should try to rid their 
hearts of all anger and hatred. These are in reality 
signs of weakness. Non-violence is an active force. 
If they were to follow it, they would be active 
and they would be spreading the leaven of ahimsa. 
The Congress demand is not for itself only. It 
extends far beyond even India and embraces the 
world. Let us therefore wish well from the bottom 
of our hearts to ail the warring nations. 

Sevagram, 7-10-40 ( Translated from Gujarati ) 

PHYSICAL TRAINING AITD AHIMSA 
( By M. IC. Gandhi ) 

Part of the course in physical training 
schools and gymnasia is a training in the use of 
the sword, the spear and similar weapons. The 
Congress volunteers are taught various kinds of 
drill, and in many places are given also the train- 
ing I have mentioned. I have received a number 
of letters asking for my views on the subject 
from the point of view of ahimsa. 

Before I proceed to state my vievv^s, it is neces- 
sary to mention an important fact, vie. that 
physical fitness is the only thing examined in case 
of candidates intending to be recruited for a vio- 
lent army. Old men, women, and raw youth are 
not regarded as eligible. Nor are those suffering 
from disease ht to be chosen. And it is necessaiy 
to insist on this rule in selecting those recruits. 

But the standard is quite the contrary for select- 
ing recruits for a non-violent body. The chief 
thing to test is the candidate's mental fitness. And 
so such a body may have old men, women, raw 
youth, the blind and the lame, and even lepers, 
and it would bid fare to win. The ability to kill 
requires training. The ability to die is there in 
him who has the will for it. One can conceive of 
a child of ten or twelve being a perfect satyagrahi; 
indeed we come across such in daily life. But for 
such a child to be recruited for a violent army is 
out of the question. In spite of the best will in 
the world he cannot have the physical fitness. 

But to say that lepers and children are eligible 
for a non-violent army is not to say that a non- 
violent person need have no regard for physical 
fitness. Ahimsa requires certain duties which can 
be done only by those with a trained physique. 
It is therefore most necessary to consider 
what kind of physical training a non-violent 
person should receive. 

Very few of the rules applying to a violent army 
will apply to a non-violent body. A violent army 
will not have its arms for show but for definitely 
destructive purposes. A non-violent body will have 
no use for such weapons and -will therefore beat 
its swords into plough-shares and spears into 
pruning hooks, and will shrink from the thought 
of using them as lethal weapons. The violent 
soldier will be trained in the use of violence by 


being taught to shoot. The non-violent soldier will 
have no time for this pastime. He will get all his 
training through nursing the sick, saving those in 
danger at the risk of his own life, patrolling places 
which may be in fear of thieves and dacoits, and in 
laying down his life, if necessary, in dissuading 
them from their purpose. Even the uniforms of 
the two will differ. The violent man will wear 
a coat of mail for his protection, and his uniform 
will be such as can dazzle people. The uniform 
of the non-violent man will be simple, in confor- 
mity with the dress of the poor, and betokening 
humility. Its purpose will be just to keep him 
from heat and cold and rain. A violcuc soldier’s 
protection will be his arms, no matter how much 
he takes God’s name. He will not shrink from 
spending millions on armaments. The first and last 
shield and buckler of the non-violent person will 
be his unwavering faith in God. And the minds 
of the two will be as poles asunder. Tlie violent 
man will always be casting about for plans to 
work the destruction of his enemy and will pray 
to God to fulfill his purpose. The national anthem 
of the British people is worth considering in this 
connection. It prays to God to save the King, to 
frustrate the enemy’s knavish tricks, and to des- 
troy him. Millions of Englishineu sing this anthem 
aloud with one viocc standing respectfully. If 
God is the Incarnation of Mercy, He is not likely 
to iistea to such prayer, but it cannot but affect 
the minds of those who sing it, and in limes of 
war it simply kindles their hatred and anger to 
white heat. The one condition of winning a 
violent war is to keep the indignation agamsc 
the enemy burning fiercely. 

In the dictionary of the non-violent there is no 
such word as an external enemy. But even for 
the supposed enemy he will have nothing but 
compassion in his heart. He will believe that no 
man is intentionally wicked, that there is no man 
but is gifted with the faculty to discriminate bet- 
ween right and wrong, and that if that faculty 
were to be fully developed, it would surely mature 
into non-violence. He will therefore pray to God 
that He may give the supposed enemy a sense of 
right and bless him. His prayer for himself will 
always be that the spring of compassion in him 
may ever be flowing, and that he may ever grow 
in moral strength so that he may face death 
fearlessly. 

Thus since the minds of both will differ as the 
poles, their physical training will also differ in 
the same degree. 

We all know more or less what military 
training is like. But we have hardly ever 
thought that non-violent training must be of a 
different kind. Nor have we ever cared to dis- 
cover whether in the past such training was given 
anywhere in the world. I am of opinion that it 
used to be given in the past and is even now 
being given in a haphazard way. The various 
exercises of Hatha Yoga are in this direction. The 
physical training given by means of these imparts 
among other things physical health, strength, 



OCTO i ) 1 3, ] 940 j HARIJAN 319 


agilit-y, ana the capacity to bear heat and cold. 
Sliri KuvalayananJji is making scientific researches 
in the tcchiiiQue and benefits of these exercises. 
I have no knowledge of the progress he has 
made, nor do I know whether he is making his 
experiments with ahimsa as his goal. My refer- 
ence to Hatha Yoga is meant only with a view 
to showing that this ancient type of non-violent 
training still exists, though I know that there is 
room in it for improvement. I do not know 
either that the author of this science had any 
idea of mass non-violence. The exercises had at 
their back the desire for individual salvation. The 
object of the various exercises was to strengthen 
and purify the body in order to secure control of 
the mind. The mass non-violence we are now 
thinking of applies to people of all religions, 
and therefore the rules that may be framed 
must be such as can be accepted by all believers 
in ahimsa. And then as wc are thinking of a 
non-vioient army, that is to say of bringing into 
being a Satyagraha Sangha, we can but build 
anew accepting the old as our foundation. Let 
us then think of the physical training required 
by a satyagrahi. If the satyagrahi is not healthy 
in mind and body, he may perhaps fail in 
mustering complete fearlessness. He should have 
the capacity to stand guard at a single spot day 
and night; he must not fall ill even if he has to 
bear cold and heat and rain; he must have the 
strength to go to places of peril, to rush to scenes 
of fire, and the courage to wander about alone in 
desolate jungles and haunts of death; he will bear, 
without a grumble, severe beatings, starvation and 
worse, and will keep to his post of duty without 
flinching; he will have the resourcefulness and 
capacity to plunge into a seemingly impenetrable 
scene of rioting; he will have the longing and 
capacity to run with the name of God on his lips 
to the rescue of men living on the top storeys of 
buildings enveloped in flames; he will have the 
fearlessness to plunge into a flood in order to 
rescue people being carried off by it or to jump 
down a well to save a drowning person. 

This list can be extended ad libiiim. The sub- 
stance of it all is that we should cultivate the 
capacity to run to the rescue of people in danger 
and distress and to suffer cheerfully any amount 
of hardship that may be inflicted upon us. He 
who accepts this fundamental principle will easily 
be able to frame rules of physical training for 
satyagrahis. I have a firm conviction that the 
very foundation of this training is faith in God. 
If that is absent, all the training one may have 
received is likely to fail at the critical moment. 

Let no one poohpooh my statement by saying 
that the Congress has many people who are 
ashamed to take the name of God. I am simply 
trying to state the view in terms of the science 
of satyagralia as I have known and developed 
it. The only weapon of the satyagrahi is God, 
by whatsoever name one knows Him. Without 
Him tlic Latyagrahi is devoid of strength before 
an c;ppo[\ent armed with monstrous weapons. Most 


people lie prostrate before physical might. But 
he who accepts God as his only Protector will 
remain unbent before the mightiest earthly power. 

As faith in God is essential in a satyagrahi, even 
so is brahmacharya. Without brahmacharya the 
satyagrahi will have no lustre, no inner strength 
to stand unarmed against the whole world. 
Brahmacharya may have here the restricted mean- 
ing of conservation of the vital energy brought 
about by sexual restraint, and not the compre- 
hensive definition I have given of it. He who intends 
to live on spare diet and without any external 
remedies, and still wants to have physical strength, 
has need to conserve his vital energy. It is the 
richest capital man can ever possess. He who 
can preserve it ever gains renew'ed strength out 
of it. He who uses it up, consciously or uncon- 
sciously, will ultimately be impotent. His 
strength will fail him at the right moment. I 
have often written about the v/ays and means of 
conserving this energy. Let the reader turn to 
my writings and carry out the instructions. He 
who lusts with the eye or the touch can never 
conserve his vital energy, nor the man who lusts 
after flesh-pots. Those who hope to conserve this 
energy without strict observance of the rules will 
no more succeed than those who hope to swim 
against the current without being exhausted. He 
who restrains himself physically and sins with 
his thoughts will fare worse than he who, without 
professing to observe brahmacharya, lives the life 
of a restrained householder. For he who lusts with 
the thought will ever remain unsated and will end’ 
his life a moral wreck and burden on the earth. 
Such a one can never be a full satyagrahi. 

Nor can one who hankers after wealth and fame. 
This is the foundation of the physical training for 
a satyagrahi. The detailed structure of the course 
can easily be built in consonance with this 
foundation. 

It should now be clear that in the physical 
training of a satyagrahi there is no room for lethal 
weapons like the sword - or the spear. For far 
more terrible weapons than we have seen are in 
existence today, and newer ones are being invented 
every day. Of what fear will a sword rid him who 
has to cultivate the capacity to overcome all fear 
— real or imaginary? I have not yet heard of a 
man having shed all fear by learning sword-play. 
Mahavir and .others who imbibed ahimsa did 
not do so because they knew the use of weapons, 
but because in spite of the knowledge of their 
use they shed all fear. 

A slight introspection will show that he who* 
has always depended on the sword will find it 
diflScult to throw it away. But having deliberately 
discarded it he is likely to find his ahimsa more 
lasting than that of him who, not knowing its use, 
fancies he will not fear it. But that does not mean 
that in order to be truly non-violent one must 
beforehand possess and know the use of arms. By 
parity of reasoning, one might say that only a 
thief can be honest, only a diseased person can 
be healthy, and only a dissolute [person can be a 



320 


HARIJAIT 


[ October 13, 1940 


brahmachari. The fact is that we have formed 
the habit of thinking along traditional grooves 
and will not get out of them. And as we cannot 
take a detached view, we cannot draw the right 
conclusions and get caught in delusive snares. 

If I have the time, I hope to present the reader 
with a model course of training. 

Simla, 29-9-40 {Translated from Gujarati} 



I Oct. 13 1940 I 

HYDERABAD 

( By M. K, Gandhi ) 

“ What do you say to the right of Hyderabad 
to the territories that have been taken away by 
the English under some pretext or other, e. g. 
Berar, Ceded Districts, Karnatak, etc. ?'* 

This question demands an answer. So far as 
they have been taken away by the English the 
right accrues against the English. If I am asked 
as a matter of equity, I can only say that the 
people of the respective parts should be asked to 
make their choice. That is the only equity I know. 

But I suggest that all such discussion is academic. 
If India, the geographical unit, gets independence, 
as it must some day, it means that every com- 
ponent part has its independence. If independence 
is won non-violently, all the component parts will 
be voluntarily interdependent working in perfect 
harmony under a representative central authority 
which will derive its sanction from the confidence 
reposed in it by the component parts. If indepen- 
dence is taken by force of arms, then the strongest 
power will hold sway over all India. And this 
may be Hyderabad for aught I know. All the 
big and the petty States will be free willynilly 
from the British yoke. They will each fight for 
their existence and succumb to the strongest 
who will be the Emperor of India. This pre- 
supposes unarmed millions lying prostrate at the 
feet of the combination of armed States. Many 
other things are, however, conceivable. The Indian 
part of the British army will probably have cons- 
ciousness of strength and an independent existence. 
There may be Muslim arms, Sikh arms, Gurkha 
arms, Rajput arms and what not. They may fight 
among themselves or, having allied themselves to 
some nationalist party, may present a united front 
to the Princes. There may also be the descent 
upon India of the warring tribes from the Frontier 
to share the spoils or the sovereignty itself. 

The Congress, if it still has anything of its non- 
violence left in it, will die in the attempt to 
establish universal peace in India. It is not im- 
possible that all the warring elements will find it 
profitable in more ways than one voluntarily to 
surrender themselves to the moral authority of a 
central power. This means universall suflEfage exer- 
cised by a disciplined and politically intelligent 
electorate. It also means a decent and permanent 
burial to communal and other discord. 


But this may not happen. The existing state of 
things does not warrant an optimistic outlook. But 
I am a man of faith. And to faith all things 
are possible. But supposing the worst happens and 
there is anarchy in the land, if there is God upon 
earth as He is in heaven, then you may depend 
upon it that I shall not live to make any choice. 

I shall die in the anarchic flame whilst I am vainly 
attempting to still it with my tiny shaky hands. 
But if you ask me in advance whether I would 
face anarchy in preference to foreign orderly rule, 
either British or any other, I would unhesitatingly 
plump for anarchy, say, the rule of the Nizam 
supported by Chiefs become feudatory to him 
or supported by the border Muslim tribes. In my 
estimation it will be cent per cent domestic. It 
will be home rule though far, far from self-rule 
or swa-raj But you must let me repeat 

that, while I can write thus academically, if the 
reality faces me, my choice will be death or the 
rule of the people by the people for the people. 
This means the rule of unadulterated non-violence. 
So you see my non-violence is made not of 
cotton wool but of a metal much harder than 
steel and yet softer than cotton wool. You can 
compare it only with itself. 

You will naturally then ask what place have 
the Princes in my scheme of things. Such a ques- 
tion should not arise if you had fully realized the 
implications of non-violence. For the Princes 
obeying the moral authority of a central body not 
sustained by arms will find an honourable place as 
servants of the people. No one will have any 
rights but what are inherent in a willing perfor- 
mance of one’s duties. Thus H. E. H. the Nizam 
will then be the chosen servant of people. Only, 
then, his people will not be merely those confined 
willy nilly within his present borders but may be 
all India. You must not dismiss this as a utopian 
scheme. I claim to be a practical man. If the 
Congress proves true to its policy, what may 
seem today to be an airy nothing may tomorrow 
become an agreeable reality. In my scheme there 
is no waste of either human talent or creative 
effort. Let me quote here my cable to H. G. 
Wells in reply to his on the Rights of Man : 

“ Received your cable. Have carefully read your five 
articles. You will permit me to say you are on the 
wrong track. I feel sure that I can draw up a better 
charter of rights than you liave drawn up. But what 
good will it be ? Who will become its guardian ? If 
you mean propaganda or popular education, you have 
begun at the wrong end. 1 suggest the right way. 
Begin with a charter of Duties of Man, and I promise 
the rights will follow as spring follows winter. 1 write 
from experience. As a young man I began life by seek- 
ing to assert my rights, and I soon discovered I had 
none — not even over my wife. So I began by discover- 
ing and performing my duty by my wife, my children, 
friends, companions and society, and 1 find today 
that I have greater rights, perhaps, than any living 
man I know. If this is too tall a claim, then I say 
I do not know anyone who possesses greater rights 
than L” 

Sevagram, 8-10-40 




OCTOBEll 13, 1940 ] 


HARIJAN 


321 


Notes 

Thanks 

I am i^ratcful to the numerous senders cJ birth- 
day lArcctings from India as well as remote parts ot 
the earth. Many have this time also sent me 
strands of yarn some of which is of great hneness, 
strength and evenness. Needless to say I shall 
make the wisest use of all these ( to me ) precious 
gifts lor they betoken a labour of love for Daridra- 
narayan. Some have sent monetary gifts either for 
Harijans or for the A. 1. S. A. All these have 
been sent to the proper quarters. 

Sevagram, 8-10-40 

" A Stab in the Back ' ? 

I have read Sir Sikandar Hayat’s reported speech 
on the correspondence between H. E. the Viceroy 
and myself. I was sorry for it. Where is the stab 
in the back when everything is done openly after 
full discussion and with the utmost consideration 
for the party affected ? He is a bad advocate who 
overproves his case, and I promise that Sir 
Sikandar will be proved as such. Sir Sikandar 
says that ninetyninc per cent of the Punjab is for 
participation in the war. No doubt he is a popu- 
larly elected member of the Punjab Assembly and 
he is the undisputed Premier of the Punjab. Never- 
theless it is a big claim that he puts forth for the 
Punjab. Sir Sikandar's cause will lose nothing by 
being true to facts. And the facts are that the 
Punjab has been one of the best recruiting grounds 
for the British rulers. This docs not necessarily 
prove that the Punjab is the most patriotic of the 
provinces. In tliis vast country of ours there 
are many professions. Soldiering is one of them. 
These professionals will lend their services to 
whomsoever will pay them good wages and enough 
practice for their profession. Therefore, in my 
opinion, Sir Sikandar can prove no more than that 
the Punjab has the pride of place so far as the 
recruiting ground for the British is concerned. But 
the Punjabi soldier is as much intersted in the issue 
as the black soldiers trained by General Franc® 
were interested in his politics or in his ambition. 
They served him because of the pay and the practice 
in the use of arms which he offered them. But 
politically speaking, if Sir Sikandar can claim that 
ninetynine per cent of the Punjab is for participa- 
tion in the war, it can be claimed wdth much greater 
force perhaps that ninetynine per cent of the seven 
provinces where the Congress has an overwhelming 
majority are against such participation. Only I do 
not want to advance any such argument. I suggest 
that those who want and those who do not want 
to participate in the war may follow their respec- 
tive courses without being acclaimed as patriots. 
It may well be left to the historian of the future 
to pronounce judgment. 

Australian Soldiers 

The Mayor of Bombay has sent me a letter com- 
plaining of my reference to him as if he had 
neglected his duty as the first citizen of Bombay. 
He tells me too that he acted in the promptest 
manner possible and entered into correspondence 


with the Government. As a responsible citizen he 
could not rush to the Press or inform the public 
what he was doing. All this is creditable to the 
Mayor. I know him to be businesslike and anxious 
to render service without fuss. But it is strange 
that he lias read a meaning into my writing which 
the context shows I could not have meant. I have 
put to him the same question that I have put to 
all the other parties concerned. Surely I must not 
be taken to have cast any reflection on any single 
one of them. For aught I know they might have 
taken effective steps without niy warning. When 
a series of complaints came to me from various 
sources I was bound to draw attention to them 
and show how, from a private citizen to the 
Governor, the various units in a society would 
be expected to act in emergencies of the character 
described by me. The latter might, if not handled 
effectively and in time, give rise to a first class 
crisis ending in an exhibition of racial passions 
of a most undesirable type. 

I am happy, therefore, to note that almost all 
parties seem to have acted as they should- have. A 
college girl, who was among the first to complain 
to me, tells me that, whilst there is no doubt about 
the general truth of the complaints, the improper 
behaviour stopped after a few days. She- tells me 
that it had stopped altogether before my writing 
appeared in the Press. Whilst, therefore, I am not 
sorry for what I wrote, as I should have in the 
public interest, it gives me as much pleasure to 
note that the mischief was nipped in the bud, as it 
had caused me pain to give publicity to it. I am 
no believer in a hush hush policy. Such incidents, 
if they are not to be repeated, demand publicity 
and an effective and immediate remedy. 

Jaipur 

Seth Jamnalalji is trying to cut his way through 
a thick forest of difficulties in Jaipur. He had 
thought that after a settlement, to which he had 
contributed not a little and which had brought 
much credit to the State and freedom from embar- 
rassment, he would have fair weather and smooth 
sailing. But such was not to be the case. In Raja 
Gyan Nath he has to face a Prime Minister who, 
according to Sethji, is thoroughly unreliable and 
reactionary. He has failed to give any satisfaction 
to the long-suffering ryots of Jaipur. He has put 
back the hands of the clock of progress, and there 
is an agitation for his removal and the appointment 
of a Minister who would be responsive to public 
opinion. It is the duty of the Paramount Power 
to see to it that when it imposes a Minister on a 
Prince, it gives one who would be sympathetic to 
public demands. It is time to remove him when 
he is more autocratic than the Prince in whose 
name he is supposed to administer the State. 

Sevagram, 9-10-40 M. K. G. 

Mahatma Gandhi 

By S. Radhakrishnan. (New Edition) Rs. 5-10-0 
Postage 8 As. Available at Harijan office-Poona 4* 

The Power of Non-violence by Richard B. Gregg, 
Rs. 24-7 As. postage. AvSiilable at Harijan office- 
Poona 4 



322 


HAEIJAIST 


[ October 13, 1940 


FASTING IN SATYAGEAHA 

(By M. K. GandhO 

I note that in connection with the imminent 
satyagraha the possibility of my fasting has been 
hinted at in the papers. Pandit Malaviyaji has a 
soft corner for me. He is always deeply concerned 
about my health, my politics, and my morals. V/c 
have differences of opinion, but our love cheerfully 
stands the strain. The day before I left Sevagram 
for Simla I received a letter from him, urging me 
to avoid at all cost the reported fast. 

I have to admit that there is a certain measure 
of truth in the report. I have told my friends of 
the Working Committee of my premonition that I 
may have to undertake one more fast during my 
life, and that this may even take place sooner than 
I had thought. But the fact is that so far as I 
can remember I have never undertaken a single 
one of my public fasts with any premeditation on 
my part. All my fasts have come to me on the 
spur of the moment, gifts from God as I have 
called them. Their results have been invariably 
good. And in any event I have no regrets regard- 
ing them. I hope, therefore, that readers will 
entertain no anxiety on reading these lines. If God 
has a fast in store for me, it will surely come 
and it will bring good in its wake. In all things 
His will be done. 

Now what is the place of fasting in satyagraha? 
Nowadays quite a number of fasts arc undertaken 
in the name of satyagralia. Many of the known 
fasts have been meaningless, many may be said to 
have been impure. Fasting is a fiery weapon. It 
has its own science. No one, as far as I am aware, 
has a perfect knowledge of it. Unscientific experi- 
mentation with it is bound to be harmful to the 
one v/ho fasts, and it may even harm the cause 
espoused. No one who has not earned the right 
to do so should, therefore, use this weapon. A 
fast may only be undertaken by him who is asso- 
ciated with the person against whom he fasts. 
The latter must be directly connected with the 
purpose for which the fast is being undertaken, 
Bhagat Fulsinghji’s recent fast was such a one. 
He was closely connected with the people of 
Moth village; he had served the Harijans of the 
place too. The wrong that was being enacted was 
done by the villagers to the Harijans. When every 
means of obtaining justice had failed there was 
no option left for a man like Fulsinghji except to 
resort to fasting. He did and succeeded. Success 
or failure depends entirely on the will of God and 
is not relevant to the issue under discussion. 

All my public fasts have been of this category. 
Out of all of them perhaps there -is most to be 
leairnt from the Rajkot one. It has been roundly 
condemned by many people. Originally it was pure 
and necessary. The blemish crept in when I asked 
the Viceroy to intervene. Had I not done so, I 
am convinced that its result would have been 
brilliant. Even as it was, the result was a victory 
for the cause. Because God wanted to open my 
eyes, he took the bread out of my mouth, so, to 
speak. The Rajkot fast is thus a useful study for 


the satyagrahi. In regard to its necessity there is 
no doubt, assuming that the principles for fasting 
which I have laid down are accepted. The 
important thing to note about it is how a pure 
undertaking can become tainted owing to lack 
of watchfulness on the part of the doer. There 
can be no room for selfishness, anger, lack of 
faith, or impatience in a pure fast. It is no 
exaggeration to admit that all these defects crept 
into my Rajkot fast. My selfishness lay in the 
fact that inasmuch as its being given up depended 
on ccrtaiii conditions being fulfilied by the late 
Thakorc Saheb, I had in me the selfish desire 
for the realisation of the fruit of my labour. If 
there had been no anger in me, I Vvould not have 
looked to the Viceroy for assistance. My love 
should have deterred me from doing so. For if he 
was really as a son to me, why should I have 
complained about him to his overlord? I betrayed 
want of faith in that I thought the Tliakore Saheb 
would noc be melted by my love and I was im- 
patient to break the fast. All these shortcomings 
were bound to make my fasc impure. It would be 
irrelevant here to ponder over the many results 
of the Rajkot fast, and I therefore refrain from 
doing so. But we have learnt how infinitely watch- 
ful and prayerful he who fasts has to be and how 
even a little carelessness can damage a good cause. 
It is now apparent that in addition to truth and 
non-violence a satyagrahi should have the con- 
fidence that, God will grant him the necessary 
strength and that, if there is the slightest impurity 
m the fast, he will not hesitate to renounce it at 
once. Infinite patience, firm resolve, single-minded- 
ness of purpose, perfect calm, and no anger must 
of necessity be there. But since it is impossible 
for a person to develop all these qualities all ar 
once, no one who has not devoted himself to 
following the laws of ahimsa should undertake 
a satyagrahi fast. 

I should like readers to note that I have not 
here dealt with fasts undertaken for bodily or 
spiritual purification. Nature cure doctors should 
be consulted for the former. The greatest of sinners 
can undertake the latter. And for this type of fast 
we possess a varitablc mine of literature. Fasts for 
spiritual purification have really been forgotten in 
our day. If they are ever undertaken, they are 
either purely imitative or merelyj for the sake of 
tradition, and we cannot therefore derive the benefit 
from them that we should. Those who want to 
go in for a satyagrahi fast should certainly possess 
some personal experience of fasts for spiritual puri- 
fication. Fasts for ridding the body of impui*itics 
are also beneficial. In the end, of course, there is 
only one basis of the whole ideal of fasting, and 
that is purification. Sevagram, 8-10-40 

( Translated from Hindustani) 


Autobiography 

Gandhiji’s The Story of My Experiments with TruLlio 
Price Rs. 4. Postage 10 As. extra. 

Gandhi j Is Satyagraha in South Africa Ks. 4-S- + 9ASn 
Available at Harijan Office — Poona 4 



HARIJAN 


323 


Octobkh 13, 1040 ] 


MORK ABOUT THE SIMLA VISIT 

( By M. K. Gandhi ) 

In die correspondence between H. E. the Viceroy 
and myselF announcing the breakdown in the talks, 
I have said in niy letter that I would make a 
public statement covering matters not referred to 
in rny letter. 

Before I do so I think it is necessary for 
my purpose to say a few words regar'-ling* Lord 
Linlithgow. He is straight in his talk, rdways 
deliberate, and economical in his language. He is 
never equivocal, never leaves you in doubt as to 
his meaning. He conveys the most unpalatable 
decisions with a calmness and courtesy;; which, 
for the moment, make you think that you have 
heard no harsh or hard decision. He listens to 
your argument with a patience and attention I 
have never known any other Viceroy or high 
functionary to show in an equal measure. He is 
never ruffled and never discourteous. With all 
tliis, however, he is not to be easily moved from 
his posifion. He meets you with his decision on 
the matter under discussion already made. He 
takes care not to let you think that it is so, but 
there is no doubt about it that his decision is un- 
changeable. He is not receptive. He has amazing 
confidence in the correctness of his judgment. He 
docs not believe in a gentleman s or any other 
agreement. I have ahvays felt that after the 
Gandhi-Irwin Pact Br’tish satraps decided that 
there should be no more such pacts. V/liatcvcr 
tl'iey wanted to do, they should Jo independently. 
It shows either a Iiigh sense of justice or boundless 
self-assurance. I tliink it is the latter. He and I 
have become friends never to be parted, be the 
differences between us as great as they can be. 

Holding such an opinion about the Viceroy, it 
pains me to have to relate what I must of my 
imp'-cssion of the talks which have ended in a 
divergence which, in my opinion, v/ns ^/iiolly 
avoidable. Acceptance of my proposal would have 
been no less h««ncficial to England than to India. 

I went to Simla in the capacity of a representa- 
tive and as a friend. As a friend I presented him 
with my doubts as to certain acts of the British 
Government. To have them dissolved was necessary 
to enable me to determine my mental attitude 
which to me is more than any visible act. I felt 
that the putting up by the Viceroy, and then the 
Secretary of State, of want of agreement by the 
Congress with the Princes, the Muslim' League 
and even the Scheduled Classes as a barrier to 
the British recognition of India’s right to freedom 
was more than unjust to the Congress and the 
[iidi'in people. I told the Viceroy that these three 
represented class or communal interests, whereas 
the Congress represented no particular class. .-Jit 
v/as a purely national organisation striving- to 
represent India as a whole; and therefore the -Con- 
gress had always maintained that it would abide by 
the verdict of a hmtional assembly elected on ■ the 
basis of the broadest franchise. It had further 
declared its intention to abide by the votejof the 
separate Muslim electorate, so far as special 


Muslim rights were concerned. Therefore it was 
wrong to speak as if Muslim rights needed special 
safeguards as against the Congress. The same 
thing applied to the Sikhs. 

The Princes of the present day were a creation 
of the British Government to subserve British 
interest. As against the plea that the British 
were bound by special treaty obligations, I con- 
tended that the Congress did not ask the British 
Government to disregard them. Only they could 
not be used to bar Indian progress, and it was 
wholly wrong to expect the Congress to produce 
an agreement with them. The Princes were not 
like other parties free to conclude any agreement 
with the Congress even if they wished. Moreover, 
the treaties, if they oblige the British Government 
to protect the Princes, equally compel them to 
protect the rights of the people. But it has been 
abundantly proved that the British had rarely 
interfered with the Princes purely on behalf of 
the people. If they had been as careful of the 
peoples’ right as they were bound by the treaties 
to be, the people’s condition would not have been 
as miserable as it is today. Had they been true 
to the treaties of their own making, the people 
of States India should be more advanced than 
those of British India. I -cited some telling 
illustrations of this neglect of duty. 

The introduction of the Scheduled Classes in 
the controversy has made the unreality of the case 
of the British Government doubly unreal. They 
know that these are the special care of the Con- 
gress, and that the Congress is infinitely more 
capable of guarding their interests than the British 
Government. Moreover, the Scheduled Classes are 
divided into as many castes as the Caste Hindu 
society. No single scheduled class member could 
possibly and truthfully represent the innumerable 
castes. 

I had sought the interview with the Viceroy to 
see if my interpretation of the British argument 
had any flaw, I failed to get any satisfaction on 
the points raised. The Viceroy would not be 
drawn into a discussion. I can have no grievance 
about his disinclination to enter into any argu- 
ment. He had every right to rely upon the fact 
that that was a matter of high policy not admit- 
ting of argument. There is a certain cold reserve 
about the British ofiScial world which gives them 
their strength and isolation from surroundings and 
facts. They do not want to be too frank. They 
politely refuse to enter into embarrassing argu- 
ment. They leave you to draw what inferences 
you like while they continue to maintain their 
inflexible attitude. I suppose that is what is meant 
by the steel frame. For me, this side of British 
policy has been the least attractive. I had hoped, 
against the warning of friends, that I might be 
able to break through this steel wall of reserve 
and get at the naked truth. But the imperialist 
Britisher is firmly fixed in his saddle. 

Nevertheless, I will not accept defeat. I must 
strive to have the truth admitted by the British 
people that the bar to India’s freedom lies not 
in the Congress or any other party’s inability to 



324 


HARIJAN 


[ October 13, 1940 


produce an agreement which is in its nature 
impossible, but that it undoubtedly lies in the 
British disinclination to do the obviously right 
thing. 

The unreality of the British reasons for refusal 
to treat India as a free country was not my only 
grouse. I drew the Viceroy's attention to certain 
irregularities in the prosecution of the war policy. 
There was agreement between us that there should 
be no compulsion as to war contributions. He has 
promised to examine all cases of hardship and 
all other* difficulties. My purpose was to leave no 
ground for misunderstanding and to fight, if there 
w^as to be a fight, only on well-defined issues and 
without bitterness. I want to enter upon the fight 
with the hope that its very fairness will compel 
the recognition that India deserves better treat- 
ment, not merely from the British but from all 
the nations of the earth. 

Lest it might be said that the Congress fights 
because it has failed to get power, I told His 
Excellency in the plainest words possible that the 
Congress had no desire to mount to power at the 
expense of a single national interest. It seeks no 
power save for the whole nation. Therefore he 
will have no opposition from the Congress if he 
forms a Cabinet composed of representatives of 
different parties. The Congress would be content 
to be in opposition so far as the war effort is con- 
cerned and so long as the machinery of Government 
has to subserve Imperialist ends. The immediate issue 
is not independence. The immediate issue is the 
right of existence, i. e. the right of self-expression 
which, broadly put, means free speech. This the 
Congress wants not merely for itself, but for all, 
the only restraint being complete observance of 
non-violence. I hold that that condition answers 
all the difficulties by whomsoever raised. 

Seva gram, 5-10-40 

A RIGHTEOUS FAST 

Shri Viyogi Hari has written an account for 
Hcui'ijansevak of a fast recently undertaken by 
Bhagat Fulsingh on behalf of water-bereft Harijans 
in a village in Hissar District. The following is a 
summary of it : 

Moth is a village composed of 300 houses of 
Rangar Jats (Mussalmans) and 200 of Caste Hindus 
and others. Most of the village is owned by Sir 
Chhajju Ram who recently gave permission to the 
Harijans to construct a well for themselves on a 
piece of common ground. The Harijans in this 
locality are hard put to it for their drinking water- 
supply. -.A water carrier usually pours water into 
their vessels* from a respectful distance, and in 
return for this service the Harijans give him either 
a quarter Jor half a seer of grain. The well was 
begun to* be made nearly four months ago, but 
owing to the?strong opposition of Caste Hindus and 
Mmssalmans its construction had to be abandoned. 
The Harijans could get no redress in spite of efforts 
at persuasion by Punjab leaders and the Harijan 
Sevak Sangh. 


On 2nd September last Bhagar Fulsingh went to 
the village and tried his utmost to get the obstruc- 
tionists to listen to reason. But even his appeals 
on humanitarian grounds fell on deaf cars. He 
therefore resolved to fast, if necessary to death. 
He was turned out forcibly from the village on 
the fourth day of the fast, but continued it in a 
neighbouring village where he was received with 
affection. Shri Viyogi Hari, who saw Fulsinghji 
on the 15th day of the fast, says that his face was 
beaming with joy and there was no anger or 
bitterness visible. The fast was impelled by a firm 
religious conviction. Fulsinghji wanted those in 
sympathy with him to try to win over the Rangars 
and others with love so that they might feel that 
they were as blood brothers. He advised no one 
who was angry to go to Moth. Those who went 

there should carry no weapons, not even a stick, 

and it would be better for only those above 50 
years of age to go. No harsh words were to be used. 

In this way alone, lie felt, they would help him 

and also help tiic cause of communal unity which 
was so essential in these troublous times. He was 
confident that God would see liim through the trial. 

And indeed his wonderful faith did save him 
and the hearts of the obstructionists were melted. 
Permission for the well work to be continued iias 
been obtained. Fulsinghji was carried in a doolie 
and broke the fast in Moth. One of the Mussalman 
brothers who had helped to evict him gave him 
the orange juice witlt which he broke it. The 
incident is a proof of how no-anger can conquer 
anger. Fulsinghji has appealed to the villagers to 
lift entirely the existing ban on Harijans in regard to 
drawing water. Let us hope his appeal will go home. 

It is interesting to know that Fulsinghji was a 
Patwari, a native of a village in Rohtak District. 
Like most officials of this type he used to take 
bribes until he came under the influence of the 
late Swami Shraddhanandji when he took a vow to 
refrain from doing so in future and actually resigned 
his post. On resignation he sold all his property 
and thereby restored to every man his due. The 
sum total was Rs. 4,500, and to the man VN^hom he 
had actually beaten when he was a Patwari he 
offered a public apology Bhagatji runs a boys’ 
school in one of the villages in his district, while lii? 
daughter is conducting a girls school in another place. 

Sevagram, 6-10-40 A. K. 


CONTENTS 

Two Thought-provoking 
Lkttkrs 

Physical Training and 
Ahimsa 
Hyderabad 

Fasting in Satyagraha 
More about the Simla 
Visit 

A Righteous Fast 
Notes : 

Thanks 

‘ A Stab in the Back ’ ? 
Australian Soldiers 
Jaipur 


PAGE 

M. K. Gandhi 317 

M. K. Gandhi 318 
M. K. Gandhi 320 
M. K. Gandhi 322 

M. K. Gandhi 323 
A. K. 324 

M. K. G. 321 
M. K. G. 321 
M. K. G. 321 
M. K. G. 321 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
SabMnpUon Rates — IHLAMI) : One year, Ri,. 4, Six months, Bs. 8-8. FOREIQir : One year, Rs. 5-8 or, 8 sh. or 2 dollars 



Reg. No. B. 3092 



VoL, Vlir, No. 36 ] POONA “ SUNDAY, OCTOBER 20. 1940 . [ ONE ANNA 


AN ACCEPTABLE SACRIFICE 

In a few chosen phrases Gandhiji has explained 
why he has selected Shri Vinoba as the first 
satyagrahi. It is impossible to improve on that 
thumb-nail sketch. But it may not be inappro- 
priate to add a few more facts about his busy 
life, in which all the twentyfour hours of the day 
have been given to activity of prayerful service 
which alone, in his opinion, can take one to self-- 
realisation. It is this that makes of his sacrifice 
“a sacrifice acceptable, well-pleasing to God”. 

Within three years of his joining the Satyagraha 
Ashram at Sabarmati he was invited by Shri 
Jamnalalji to be at the head of the only branch of 
the Ashram at Wardha which he had opened. 
Vinoba*s services were lent by Gandhiji, and wheri^ 
he went there he chose as his co-workers people 
who were pledged to a strict observance of the 
vows. In 1923 he threw himself heart and soul' 
into the Nagpur Flag Satyagraha- movement, and 
distinguished himself as a model prisoner. After a 
visit to Nagpur Shri Rajagopalachari wrote about 
Shri Vinoba : * 

*‘Look at Vinoba, gentle as an angel, whose soaring 
spirit has reached the heights of scholarship, philosophy 
and religion, and yet whose humility is so genuine and 
successful that no official who does not know him can 
discover his greatness. He breaks his stone metal 
according to the ‘class’ the jailor has put him in, and’ 
no one knows the physical torture he silently bears.' 
But we at the prison gate who heard about the treat- 
ment accorded to him gave way to an involuntary 
shudder.” 

In the same issue .of Young India 17 years ago 
I wrote a long article about him from which I. 
condense the following: 

“You may stay days and days with him without 
knowing him, and even when you know him you only 
begin to know him. You meet with a reserve which 
you cannot easily break. He does not talk much, 
rarely does he say anything about himself. And yet 
if you could get at the bottom of his profound 
depths, you are sure to exclaim, ‘ Nowhere have 
I struck such treasures.’ I do not think there is 
anyone in the C. P. Jails today who can be compared 
to Vinoba with his sturdy asceticism, his profound reli- 
gious and philosophic learning, his matchless power of 
penance and self-discipline, and a rare humility which 
probably is a product of all the rest. We hear of the 
grim determination of the child Dhruva to realise God, 
the simple faith, unbending before all odds, of the boy 
Prahlad, and of the rare strength of the lad Nachiketas 
marching to the God of Death to be devoured up, and 


we wonder what these spiritual prodigies must have 
been like. You see Vinoba and you will not find it 
difficult to imagine any one of them doing the things 
they did. 

In 1917 when Mr. Andrews was at the Ashram I 
remember Gandhiji describing to him Vinoba in these 
terms : ‘ He is one of the few pearls in the Ashram. 
They -do not come, like others, to be blessed by the 
Ashram but to bless it, not to receive, but to give.’ 
He devoted the first eight months in the 'Ashram to 
self-discipline — giving eight hours in the kitchen and 
doing scavenging work. Not a thought crossed his 
brain that his scholarship would rust away. 

Early in his life he decided that a life of brahma- 
charya is essential to a life of service. His father 
wanted him to be a barrister or a big chemist for 
which he wanted to send him to Germany. He was 
set to learn French, therefore, so that it may be useful 
to him abroad. But on leaving home, apparently to 
appear for , his intermediate examination, he left for 
Benares, and! it was long afterwards through the C.I.D. 
that his father learnt that he had fled there. He 
devoted all his time to a study, of Sanskrit, especially 
the Gita and the Upanishads. Though Gandhiji said 
that he had gone to the Ashram to give and not to- 
receive, this is what Vinoba said in a talk: ‘Only I 
can know what I have got in the Ashram. It was an 
early ambition of mine to distinguish myself by a 
violent deed in the service of the country. But Bapu 
cured me of’ that ambition.- It is he who extinguished’ 
the volcano of anger and other “passion in me. 
I have been progressing every day of my life in the 
Ashram. Eveiy year I have b^n making’ one of the 
Mahavratas my own.* 

In one of his articles in Maharashtra Dhdrina, a 
Marathi monthly issued by him from Wardha, he thus 
explained Samartha Ramdas’, and incidentally his own, 
philosophy of life : ' 

‘We sleep, we walk, we work, we live and we die«' 
All these' are passive processes. Do we have sleep, or 
does the sleep devour us ? We live because we cannot 
die, and die as soon as we cannot exist. Panini has 
said swatantrah karta — the ‘subject’ is independent • 
But there. is', no independence in any one of our acts. 
None of our acts is,' therefore, active, it is all passive. 
Is that life worth living ? Shri Ramdas Swami wanted to 
teach independent action — all action in the active mood, 
not in. the passive; he wanted to die to flesh before his 
death, he wanted liberty, and therefore he left home and 
all, and told the youth of the world to resort to life in 
the hermitages in the prime of their youth. He prac- 
tised the Bhagawai Dharma in his childhood and youth, 
like Prahlad; and set an. example to Maharashtra.' 



326 


HABIJAN 


[ October 20, 1940 


And look at his way of study. ‘ I have read a lot of 
Sanskrit,’ he says, ‘but I have not read the ShakuntczL 
The speech of the gods, which is the name of Sanskrit, 
is for freedom — Moksha — not for intellectual delight 
and luxury. I learnt Sanskrit not to read Shakuntal, 
but to learn the Gita, Vedas, Upanishads, Brahma- 
sutras; for things that make for freedom of the soul, 
and not for poetry and literature. Philosophy and 
mathematics are my subjects, not literature.” 

That was what I wrote 17 years ago, and the 
interval has been but a demonstration of the way 
in which he has translated his principles into 
practice, pressed all his philosophy and mathe- 
matics into the aid of the constructive programme 
which he has believed to be the external symbol 
of non-violence. He has trained under him 
students who are masters of the science and art 
of khadi-making, he has trained workers who have 
been content with a miserable pittance to bury 
themselves in villages working the constructive 
programme, and he has given, as Gandhiji has said, 
an ideal servant to the lepers. ‘Proficiency in all 
action’ is the Gita’s definition of yoga, and every- 
thing that Vinoba has done proves that he is one 
who has mastered that yoga. An ideal spinner, 
both on the wheel and the takli and with both 
the left and the right hands, he is an ideal village 
worker. Though highly intellectual, the villagers 
feel completely at home with him and are 
enraptured by his simple perfervid eloquence full 
of telling homely parables and illustrations. He 
has produced a Marathi translation of the Gita in 
parallel verse which reproduces the haunting music 
of the original in an amazing degree, and over a 
hundred thousand copies of it have been sold in 
Maharashtra. While carrying on in the village of 
Pavnar the experiment of the standard spinning 
wage, he found time to devote five hours each day 
to the study of the Quran in the original, and 
when yesterday Gandhiji asked him to repeat 
Al Fateha before the Maulana he did so with a 
pronunciation and intonation which the Maulana 
skid were flawless. 

It is to such a one that the honour has come 
of being the first satyagrahi in a campaign that 
Gandhiji will strivjs to make the most unsullied 
from the point of view of non-violence. To be 
chosen for the honour is a great thing; to have 
been chosen without having ever desired it is 


greater still. 

' Sevagram, 16-10-40 M. D. 


Andrews Memorial Fund 

( Received at -the Harijan Office ) 

Shri Shankar, Kumbakonam Rs. 3 

„ Madhavdas Nenumal, Badin 5 

An admirer, Bombay 15 

Shri V. P, Limaye, Poona 100 

•Through Shri Nanabhai Bhatt, Ambla 10 

Shri M. S. Desai, Gadhsisa 5 

„ Ghelabhai Hathibhai, Bombay 10 

An admirer, Baroda 50 


Total Rs. 198 


THE LIBERTY WE WANT 

Unser Kampf (Our Struggle) is the title fashion- 
ed after Hitler’s “Mein Kampf' (My Struggle) 
of a book by Sir Richard Acland, M. P., a baron 
belonging to a distinguished English family that 
has fought on the side of the people the battle 
for their liberty. In this Penguin Special the author 
pleads for “a complete change in our hearts”, 
if England is still to be turned back from the road 
to ruin. “If we have to fight for twenty years, we 
can fight, we can pay, we can face the sacrifice,” 
say some of the war-mongers. But Sir Richard 
Acland asks: “Who is going to pay? What are 
the sacrifices going to be? What guarantee have 
we that they will be worth while? Is there no 
other way?” And pace The Times of India which 
expressed its surprise the other day at Gandhiji’s 
statement that the British people did not know 
what they were fighting for. Sir Richard Acland 
asks : 

“ For what are we asked to make these sacrifices ? 
What is the moral stimulus which is to drive our 
people on to bear these sacrifices ? We are fighting 
against something which is hellish enough in all con- 
science, and that will carry us a long way* To oppose 
this thing our people will suffer much. But is this 
enough ? What, after all, are we fighting and sacri- 
ficing for ? If we could be quite certain that all 

this suffering would bring us something which would 
be worth while, and if there was no other alternative 
but to endure it, then there is no doubt that as a 
people we could face it. But nobody has yet given us 
any sort of assurance that all this suffering is going to 
lead to anything better tlian we know today.” 

He suggests a new and a better way, a ‘ new 
morality’ by which humanity can be saved from 
this hedious massacre, and he appeals to every 
Britisher to throw in “ the whole of your strength, 
the whole of your mind, the whole of your 
courage” to work along the new way he has tried 
to show. 

His new way consists in throwing overboard 
monopoly capitalism; in throwing away the hypo- 
critical claim that “we are fighting from the 
bigness of our hearts in order to restrain aggression 
and restore Poland, when we have done nothing 
to restrain aggression or to restore Manchuria, 
Abyssinia, Spain, China, Austria, Czechoslovakia, 
Lithuania or Albania; ” in disarming and accepting 
and enforcing the principle of common ownership 
by means of an international organisation working 
out the manufacturing costs of different commodi- 
ties and directing various Governments what com- 
modities to concentrate on, what to export, and 
what to import; in banishing all armies, navies, 
and air forces owned by individual countries; in 
having an international armed force; in a new 
Cabinet with a changed heart and determined to 
carry out the new plan, and having achieved self- 
purification (I am using a word familiar to us) 
to appeal to the Germans to stop the War. 

I will not go into the details of this plan, not at 
any rate in this article. Two details I will mention. 
The authot declares; 






October 20, 1940 ] HARIJAlsr 327 


ptn'KuiicIc the i>eopIe of Germany that 
we fifj-htin';' to free Europe unless we set out at 
o«ce to free India, "i'hoy all believe we are fighting to 
prescr\'o our C'olonial possessions and theirs unless we 
iiet out at onve to transfer these possessions to the 
only people who have any right to them. They will be- 
lieve we are lighting to hold them in military subjection 
unless we set out at once to create a system in which 
no one can hold anyone in military subjection. They 
will believe we are fighting to impoverish the workers 
of all Europe for the benefit of our financiers and 
industrialists unless we set out at once to create a 
system in which no industrialists or financiers can 
impoverish any workers.’* 

Let us back our words and ideas by deeds and 
they will surely have eflfect, says the author. How, 
he asks, did Hitler succeed when he set out to 
rearm Germany and make her master of Europe? 
Because he had vision, he had will, and the courage 
to translate his thought into deed. It may have 
been a task directed to dire results. But, “ can we 
not find, for good, the same courage in the face 
of diflSculties which he found for evil? If not, 
what are the chances of defeating him ? ” 

For India he suggests the appointment 
“as Secretary of State and as Viceroy two men 
who are known to be determined that British economic 
and political control in India shall end at the earliest 
possible moment. Community problems in India no 
doubt present difficulties which are very useful to those 
who do not desire to abandon our control. But in the 
hands of men determined that they should be solved 
and backed by a Government equally determined, they 
would be overcome. The fact must be faced that the 
new Viceroy would have to encounter the fierce opposi- 
tion of all those Indians who enjoy the highest regards 
of the present order, just as we should at borne. This 
opposition would have to be overcome.*’ 

How is the “new morality” to begin, who is to 
disarm, who is to start the process of self-purifica- 
tion? “What we need now is the adoption,” says 
the author, “in our public and political life, of 
those elementary ethical principles to which we 
have long paid lip-service in our churches. Our 
change of heart must be translated into action at 
once... If we cannot persuade all men at once to 
accept our new morality, at least we shall make 
sure that the destiny of our nation and of mankind 
is in the hands of those who do accept it, and not 
in the hands of those who do not.” And then he 
goes on to suggest a number of concrete measures 
to be adopted — two I have already mentioned — by 
the new Government, and an appeal to be made 
by it to the German people. Two small para- 
graphs from this suggested appeal I shall allow 
myself to quote: 

“All arms in the exclusive possession of separate 
nations we desire to destroy. We ask you to send 
your people to us to watch us destroy our own arras. 
We ask that our people shall come over to watch you 
destroy yours.” ■ 

' And : 

“ If we beat you, what sliall we gain ? You will 
fight again, and your youngest children, those on 


whom all your hopes are fixed, will die as we and -you 
are dying now. If you beat us, what will you gain ? 
We shall fight you in the future, and our youngest 
children, on whom we fix our hopes, will die in killing 
yours.” 

But a Government with a changed heart has yet 
to come into being. To do so Sir Richard suggests 
no rebellion, no violently aggressive propaganda. 
What part will you play, the author asks every 
Briton. 

“ Will you take your part in the struggle to create 
the i^rill for this early peace and this new world ? Will 
you this week persuade ten more people to understand 

the position in which we find ourselves ? «... 

If you mean to take the courageous course, then take 
courage. Reject the taunts of those who will tell you 
that you are diverting the nation from its war effort'' 
This last sentence in Sir Richard Acland’s appeal 
is worth noting. There is no question of diverting 
the nation from its war effort, no question of 
embarrassing Government, to use the phrase we are 
using here — for there is no violence there. Accord 
to us the same liberty to work for a new order 
as that you are exercising in order to march the 
nation to its doom. 

Studied in this light the Bombay resolution and 
Gandhiji’s mission to the Viceroy were but a 
corollary to his appeal to every Briton, which has 
a close parallel in Sir Richard’s appeal (made, by 
the way, in point of time, slightly earlier than 
Gandhiji’s appeal, for his book was published in 
February 1940.) 

When we come to think of it, it is not only a 
right we claim, it is a sacred duty we have to 
perform. For if we do not speak out, if we do 
not proclaim against the ruinous process, we are 
being guilty of abetting the crime and the outrage 
that the present order and the war that is being 
fought to bolster it up constitute. 

Sir Richard Acland describes in a chapter on 
‘Liberty’ how the Conservative Party that happens 
to rule Britain is “chiselling away into our liber- 
ties”; how by various potent means — the Law 
Courts, the Police, and the Army — they are depriv- 
ing men of their liberties; how in fact the resour- 
ces of those who are interested in maintaining the 
present order are being used to curtail the 
liberties of those who are opposed to that order. 

That, some of our reactionaries here will say, 
makes it clear why in India we cannot expect to 
enjoy more liberty than people in England. It 
does not follow so’ easily. The Conservative Party 
is elected there by a majority of their own people, 
and speaks and acts in the name of the people. 
Here the Government is an alien imposition with 
no right but that of force to speak on behalf of 
our people. There may be some excuse there for 
the ‘chiselling away’ into the people’s liberties. 
Here there is none whatsoever. Day in and day 
out the pretence is being maintained and proclaim- 
ed to the world that India is with -Britain in this 
War with a shamelessness of which the only excuse 
#>is a violent war. Are we to go on believing when 
we are told by one interested in maintaining 



328 


[ OCTOBEE 20, 1940 


the present order that “at least 99 per cent of the 
people” of the Punjab want to participate in this 
war? 

Sir Richard’s book is the expression of the 
righteous indignation of a soul who is outraged by 
the action of a section of his countrymen. What 
the Congress claims is the liberty to exercise its 
right, or as I have shown, to perform its duty to 
speak out against Indians being drawn into a war 
which has no purpose for them and which means 
the moral and material ruin of the nation. If the 
right is not accorded, the duty has to He perform- 
ed, cost what it may. And all matters of duty 
are matters of conscience. 

Calcutta, 3-10-40 M. D. 



‘fjcLtijnn 


Oct. 20 

■ 

1940 


A BRITISH ENDORSEMENT 

(By M.K. Gandhi ) 

Mr. Stephen J. Thorne, Secretary to the Society 
of- Friends, sends me the following letter: 

“ We, a group of Friends, want to send you our 
deep gratitude for your impressive appeal to every 
Briton to adopt the way of non-violence and bring 
about a cessation of hostilities. We drew together 
immediately on receiving the short version of your 
statement, and were later able to obtain a fuller text* 

■ You have received through the Viceroy the response 
of the British Government to your proffer of help, a 
response that from your knowledge of the situation you 
will easily understand. To most Britons the call to 
throw down their arms in a moment of supreme 

national peril and in face of imminent aggression is 
indistinguishable from cowardice and reason; it is an 
invitation to save their lives by the surrender of 

principles of liberty and justice that are dearer than 

life itself. But to those of us who in the peace move- 
ment share your faith in non-violence, you present a 
tremendous challenge. Few of us are fully prepared to 
stand up to it; and we are conscious of our own failure 
to convince our fellow countrymen of the value and 
practicability of this “more excellent Way”. The 
technique of non-violent resistance as you have practis- 
ed it is little understood in the West; especially in its 
positive and reconciling sense; and for that reason 

apart from any other, your appeal has. not yet met 
with any wide response. 

Though the British Government’s reply must have 
been disappointing, we are anxious to make full use of 
your offered help. .Your appeal gave expression to a 
spirit that is moving, we are certain, in the hearts of 


Your friends sincerely, 

Horace G. Alexander Percy W. Bartlett 
Anna Bidder W. Maude Brayshaw 

Robert Davis A. Ruth Fry 

Carl Helth Elizabeth Fox Howard 

James H. Hudson Francis E. Pollard 
J. CUTHBERT WiGHAM ALEXANDER C. WiLSON 
PS. The Council of Christian Pacifist Groups 
associates itself with this letter, and looks forward to 
an early opportunity of discussing the deep issues 
involved.” 

I am thankful to the signatories for their sup- 
port of my appeal. I can assure them that immedia- 
tely I see the psychological moment I shall act 
up to the signatories’ expectation that I should 
address the spiritual leaders of the world. It is 
quite evident that the very thoroughness of the 
Nazi method makes them think that nothing but 
counter-violence can check the terror. I have 
suggested that counter-violence can only result in 
further brutalisation of human nature. Drastic 
diseases require drastic remedies. In this instance 
nothing but non-violence can cure Nazi violence. 
Sevagram, 16-10-40 

Two Points of View 

The publication of .the correspondence between 
the Mayor of Bombay and H. E. the Governor on 
the behaviour of the troops from Australia andhjew 
Zealand is proof of the fact that the Mayor lost 
no time in writing to tj. E. the Governor, nor did 
the latter in responding to the Mayor’s warning. 
It is also a striking illustration of the same thing 
appearing contrariwise when looked at from differ- 
ent angles of vision. The English mind excuses in 
soldiers many things which would be inexcusable 
in an ordinary citizen. In India the soldier is 
regarded as a nuisance to be tolerated. His pranks 
are hardly appreciated. It is therefore a matter 
of pity that the paragraph defending the be- 
haviour complained of should have found place 
in a letter which is otherwise admirable as show- 
ing prompt attention to the Mayor’s studiously 
courteous and temperate letter. The sheaf of 
correspondence received by me docs not show that 
my correspondents took the behaviour lightly. 
The girls who came in for the attention of the 
troops were too pure not to resent the molestation 
which fell to their lot. I have never been able to 
understand why the art of killing should receive 
indulgence which men going through harder trials 
than soldiers never claim nor receive. 

.Sevagram, 16-10-40 M. K. G. 

Autobiography 

Gandhiji’s The Story of My Experiments with Truth 
Price Rs. 4. Postage 10 As. extra. 


men all over the world. We believe that it would be 
a step forward if you were willing to address a further 
message to certain of the spiritual leaders of the world, 
urging them to act together in taking hold of the 
situation before the winter brings fresh disaster. . 

. We hope you will maintain the closest contact with 
us, sending direct the full text of anything you may 
say in the days ahead. 


, Home and Village Doctor 

By Satish Chandra Dasgupta 
.Written at Gandhiji’s request. He hopes every 
vUlage worker will possess a copy. 1440 pages, 18 
chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages. 216 illustrations. 
Price Rs. 5 cloth-bound; Rs. 6. By V. P. P. Rs. 6. 
leather-bound;Rs. 7. By V. P. P. Available at Harijan 
office — Poona 4. 






October ^o, 1940 1 HAEIJAN 329 


CIVIL DISOBEDIENCE 

(,By M. K. Gandhi) 

I have had three days’ discussion with the 
Working Committee. During it I unfolded my 
plan of civil disobedience in so far as I was able 
to envisage it. Although I have sole charge of 
the campaign I could not think of taking the first 
step without consultation with the members of 
the Working Committee. In non-violent action 
one has to carry the co-workers with one through 
the mind and the heart. There is no other way 
to enforce discipline or obedience to instructions. 
I must admit that it was not plain sailing for me. 
There w,as stubborn dissent from two members. I 
•tried ha^d to carry conviction to them but I fear 
I failed. They will, however, yield obedience so 
far as it is possible for them for the sake of 
discipline. The difference of opinion solely centr- 
ed round the quantity of civil disobedience and 
the restrictions with which it was hedged. 

I disclose this part of the discussion to show 
that my plan will fall short of the expectations 
of those whom the dissenters represent. I would 
simply say to them, “Wait patiently and see what 
happens. Carry out instructions to the best of 
.your ability. Do nothing to thwart the plan. If 
your reason rebels against it, you will serve the 
•cause by seceding and educating the people along 
your own lines. That would be straight, brave 
and stimulating in that the people will learn to 
appraise the value of different methods. You will 
• cause confusion by preaching from the Congress 
.platform anything contrary to the official pro- 
gramme, especially when the whole organisation 
becomes like an army. It matters little whether 
one person offers civil disobedience or many. The 
rest have to render such support as they may be 
called upon to do.” 

The plan is simply this. Direct action will be 
commenced by Shri Vinoba Bhave and for the 
time being confined to him only. And since it is 
to be confined to individual civil disobedience and 
that too of him only, it will be so conducted by 
him as to exclude others directly or indirectly. 
But since it is concerned with freedom of speech 
the public will be involved to an extent. It is 
ropen to them cither to listen to him or not. 

But much will depend upon what the Govern- 
ment wish to do. In spite of all attempt to con- 
fine civil disobedience to individuals and for the 
moment to one only, they can precipitate a crisis 
by making it a crime to listen to him or read any- 
thing written by him. But I think and believe 
that they do not want to invite any trouble, 
though they hold themselves in readiness to cope 
with every trouble that may face them. 

I have discussed with Shri Vinoba various plans 
$0 as to avoid all unnecessary friction or risks. The 
idea is to make all action as strictly non-violent as 
is humanly possible. One man s violence, veiled or 
open, cannot go beyond a certain .limit, but within 
that limit it would be effective. One man’s non- 
violent action would be despised and ridiculed 
by the non-believer in it. In truth, while the effect 


of a given violent action can be reduced to mathe- 
matical terms, that of non-violent action defies all 
calculation and has been known to falsify many 
that have been hazarded. How far I shall be able 
to present an example of unadulterated non-violence 
remains to be seen. 

Who is Vinoba Bhave and why has he been 
selected ? He is an undergraduate having left 
college after my return to India in 1916. He is a 
Sanskrit scholar. He joined the Ashram almost at 
its inception. He was among the first members. 
In order to better qualify himself he took one 
year’s leave to prosecute further studies in Sanskrit. 
And practically at the same hour at which he had 
left the Ashram a year before he walked into it 
without notice. I had forgotten that he was due 
to arrive that day. He has taken part in every 
menial activity of the Ashram from scavenging to 
cooking. Though he has a marvellous memory 
and is a student by nature, he has devoted the 
largest part of his time to spinning in which he 
has specialised as very few have. He believes in 
universal spinning being the central activity which 
will remove the poverty in the villages and put 
life into their deadness. Being a born teacher he 
has been of the utmost assistance to Ashadevi in 
her development of the scheme of education 
through handicrafts. ‘ Shri Vinoba has produced 
a text-book taking spinning as the handicraft. It 
is original in conception. He has made scoffers 
realise that spinning is the handicraft par excellence 
which lends itself to being effectively used for 
basic education. He has revolutipnised takli- 
spinning and drawn out its hitherto unknown 
possibilities. For perfect spinning probably he 
has no rival in* all India. 

•He has abolished every trace of untouchability 
from his heart. He believes in communal unity 
with the same passion that I have. In order to 
know the best mind of Islam he gave one year to 
the study of the Quran in the original. He there- 
fore learnt Arabic. He found this study necessary 
for cultivating a living contact’ with the Muslims 
living in his neighbourhood. 

He has an army of disciples and workers who 
Would rise to any sacrifice at his bidding. He is 
responsible for producing .a young man who has 
dedicated himself to the service of lepers. Though 
an utter stranger to medicine this worker has by 
singular devotion mastered the rdethod of treatment 
of lepers and is now running several clinics for 
their care. Hundreds owe their cure to his labours. 
He has now published a handbook in Marathi 
for the treatment of lepers. Vinoba was for years 
Director of the Mahila Ashram in'^Wardha. His 
devotion to the cause of Daridranafayan took him 
first to a village near 'W'&.rdha, and now he has 
gone still further and lives, in Pavriar,. five miles 
from Wardha, from where he has ‘ established 
contact with villagers through the disciples he 
has trained. • , , . 

He believes in the necessity o^ the political indc-. 
pendence of tiidie. lie is an . accurate student of 
history. But he believes that real , independence of 



330 


HAKIJAN 


I October 20, 1940 


the villagers is impossible without the constructive 
programme of which khadi is the centre. He be- 
lieves that the charkha is the most suitable outward 
symbol of non-violence which has become an inte- 
gral part of his life. He has taken an active part 
in the previous satyagraha campaigns. He has never 
been in the lime-light on the political platform. 
With many co-workers he believes that silent con- 
structive work with civil disobedience in the back- 
ground is far more effective than the already heavily 
crowded political platform. And he thoroughly 
believes that non-violent resistance is impossible 
without a heart belief in and practice of con- 
structive work, 

Vinoba is an out and out war resister. But he 
respects equally with his own the conscience of 
those who, whilst not being out and out war 
resisters, have yet strong conscientious objection to 
participation in the present war. Though Vinoba 
represents both the types I may want to select 
another who will represent only one type, namely 
conscientious objection to participation in the 
present war. 

It was necessary to introduce Vinoba at length 
to the public in order to justify my choice. This 
will perhaps be the last civil disobedience struggle 
which I shall have conducted. Naturally I would 
want it to be as flawless as it can be. Moreover 
the Congress has declared that it will avoid all 
avoidable embarrassment to the Government con- 
sistently with its own existence. For that reason 
too I had to strive to produce the highest quality 
irrespective of quantity. 

But Vinoba must fail, as I must, if we do not 
represent the Congress, let alone the whole nation. 
And we shall certainly not represent either if they 
do not give us full-hearted co-operation which is 
ceaseless prosecution of the constructive programme. 
It is not vocal co-operation that is required. It is 
co-operation in work that is needed. The signs of 
such co-operation will be phenomenal progress in 
spinning, complete disappearance of untouchability, 
and increasing friendliness between communities, and 
an increasing sense of justice in every walk of life. 
Unless rock bottom justice and equality pervade 
society surely there is no non-violent atmosphere. 
Above all, there should be no civil disobedience 
but what is sanctioned by me. This is peremptory 
obligation binding on every Congressman. If it is 
d isregarded, there is no co-operation. The representa- 
tive character belonging to Vinoba and me is then 
challenged. And I can say with confidence that, if 
the full-hearted co-operation I want is forthcoming, 
not only, will the issue of freedom of speech be 
decided -in our favour but we shall have gone 
very near Independence. Let those who will, take 
me at my word. They will have lost nothing and 
will -find that they had contributed greatly to the 
movement of freedom through truthful and non- 
violent means. 

Let me repeat the issue. On the surface it is 
incredibly narrow — the right to preach against 
war as war [or participation in the present war. 
"mth are matters of conscience for those who hold 


either view. Both are substantial rights. Their 
exercise can do no harm to the British if their 
pretension that to all intents and purposes India is 
an independent country is at all true. If India is 
very much a dependency in fact as it is in law, 
whatever the British get from India can never be 
regarded as voluntary, it must be regarded as 
impressed. This battle of life and death cannot be 
won by impressed levies, however large. They 
may win if they have the moral backing of an 
India truly regarded as free. Non-violent Congress 
cannot wish ill to Britain. Nor can it help her 
through arms since it seeks to gain her own free- 
dom not through arms but through unadulterated 
non-violence. And the Congress vanishes if, at the 
crucial moment, it suppresses itself for fear of 
consequences or otherwise by ceasing to preach 
non-violence through non-violent means. So when 
wc probe the issue deep enough we discover that 
it is a matter of life and death for us. If we 
vindicate that right, all is well with us. If we do ■ 
not, all is lost. We cannot then win Swaraj 
through non-violent means. 

I know that India has not one mind. There 
is a part of India that is war-minded and will 
learn the art of war through helping the British, 
The Congress has no desire, therefore, to sur- 
round ammunition factories or barracks and prevent 
people from doing what they like. We want to 
tell the people of India that, if they will win 
Swaraj through non-violent means, they may not 
co-operate militarily with Britain in the prosecution 
of the war. 

This right of preaching against participation in 
war is being denied to us, and we have to fight 
against the denial. Therefore while that right 
will be exercised only by those whom I may select 
for the purpose, all the other activities of the 
Congress will continue as before unless the 
Government interfere with them. 

A question has been asked why, if I attach so- 
much importance to quality, I do not offer civil 
resistance myself. I have already said that unlike 
as on previous occasions I do not wish to do so 
for the very good reason that my imprisonment 
is likely to cause greater embarrassment to the 
authorities than anything else the Congress 
can do. I want also to remain outside to cope 
with any contingency that may arise. My going, 
to jail may be interpreted as a general invi- 
tation to all Congressmen to follow suit. They 
will not easily distinguish between my act and, 
speech. Lastly, I do not know how things will 
shape. I myself do not know the next step. I do 
not know the Government plan. I am a man of 
faith. My reliance is solely on God. One step is. 
enough for me. The next He will make clear to 
me when the time for it comes. And who knows 
that I shall not be an instrument for bringing 
about peace not only between Britain and India 
but also between the warring nations of the Earth.. 
This last wish will not be taken for vanity by 
those who believe that my faith is not a sharoi 
but a reality greater than the fact that I am 
penning these lines. Sevagram, 15-10-40 



October 20, 1940 ] 

WAR RESISTEES 

Political Conscience 

In the very first issue of Harijan this year I 
referred to two cases of “ political pacifists ” which 
had come up before the Appellate Tribunal for 
conscientious objectors. Mr. H. A. L. Fisher, the 
chairman of the tribunal, contended that the law 
could not give protection to any but those who 
belonged to the category of the “ honest, conscien- 
tious pacifist, that is to say, the man who objects 
to war as a thing evil in itself. That was the in- 
tention of the statute, not to protect every form 
of conscientious objection.” Mr. Fenner Brock way, 
who appeared for the objectors, relied on the 
statements of the Prime Minister and Labour Mini- 
ster in the House of Commons on the implications 
■of the statute. The term “conscientious objector” 
was not defined in the statute, but the Prime 
Minister had said that the Act was meant to 
exclude “ only shirkers ”, and the Labour Minister 
had said that “ Conscientious objection is not 
defined in the Act, and local tribunals have to use 
their own judgment in deciding whether an appli- 
cation, on whatever ground it is based, is or is not 
of a conscientious nature.” In reply to a question : 
“ Can the Minister say that he agrees that this 
House, in giving the right to conscientious objectors, 
meant to do so on all those grounds — ethical and 
political?” the Minister replied: “That is still 
the idea.” Mr. Fenner Brockway was obviously on 
very strong ground when he relied on these 
statements, and contended : “ The pacifist’s supreme 
loyalty is to his conception of God or of the 
universe. The socialist’s supreme loyalty is to the 
workers of all lands with whom he feels a unity, 
equivalent to the unity which a patriot feels with 
his nation. To a political objector it would be 
morally wrong to kill his fellow-workers in the 
interests of the possessing class. It is a matter of 
conscience to him no less than to the pacifist.” 

The question which then had only an academic 
importance has now a live importance, inasmuch 
as the Government, if they will honestly face the 
issue, have to dispassionately consider the case of 
the Congress. The Labour Minister, as I have 
shown above, said that the law in England protect- 
ed both the objectors -the ethical and the poli- 
tical. In India the case for the political objector 
is infinitely stronger. The British political objector 
has objection to the war policy of his own 
Government, a Government which, legally speak- 
ing, he has been responsible for having brought 
into being. The political objector here is 
opposed to the present war in that it has been 
imposed on the country by a Government which 
owes no responsibility to it. In fact the term 
political objector is rather inappropriate to the 
objectors hero, for it is as much a matter of 
conscience to have no part in killing as to have 
no part in killing which is thrust upon one 
against' one’s will. It is even possible that the 
intensity of the conscientious objection in the 
latter case may be very much greater than in the 
former. As a matter of fact all objectors in India 


HARIJAN 331 

are conscientious objectors; only the “ethical” 
ones have a double objection. 

Dr. Dadoo 

News has come from South Africa of the im- 
prisonment, under the Emergency Regulations, of 
Dr. Y. M. Dadoo, for publishing a statement cal- 
culated “to incite a section of the public — non- 
Europeans — to resist or oppose the Government 
on a measure relating to the state of emergency as 
a result of the war”, the measure being the 
recruiting of members of the public for the 
Army. This is the statement issued by Dr. Dadoo: 

An Appeal to All Non-European People of 
South Africa 

“ You are being asked to support the war for Free- 
dom, Justice, and Democracy. Do you enjoy the fruits 
of Freedom, Justice and Democracy? 

What you do enjoy is — Pass and Poll Tax laws^ 
segregation, white labour policy, low wages, high rents, 
poverty, unemployment and vicious colour bars. 

European recruits receive 3/6 per day. White inter- 
nees receive 1/- per day ( Beer Allowance ). What ? 
Yes ! You are expected to give your life for 1/- a day. 
We answered the call in 1914-1918. What was the 
reward? Misery, starvation and unemployment. This 
time we must demand: The right to live as human 
beings; the right to work in skilled trades; recognition 
of African trade unions; the abolition of the white 
labour policy; the abolition of all anti-colour legislation; 
full rights of citizenship. Don*t support this war* 
where the rich get richer and the poor get killed.” 

The leaflet, thus, is not an implacable opposi- 
tion to the war but is a demand for certain 
elementary rights of democracy, before the non- 
European community can respond to the call. 
Even with regard to the war, it merely points out 
certain glaring injustices to the non-European 
participant. 

The imprisonment of Dr. Dadoo is a triple wrong. 
First, because his leaflet was no unconditional 
opposition to the war. Secondly because it in no 
way infringed the provision of the Emergency 
Regulations of which the object was “to prevent 
opposition to a particular measure of the 
Government and not the Government’s war policy 
as a whole.” Thirdly it is one more case of glar- 
ing injustice to the Indians inasmuch as the 
European community enjoys the freedom, thanks 
to the neutrality party led by General Hertzog, 
of opposing the war policty as a whole. 

As a matter of fact, as Mr. Bloom, Counsel for 
defence, pointed out the Europeans there do some- 
thing much worse. He said: “If Europeans arc 
allowed to go about the country preaching rebel- 
lion and talking of future storm troopers, it 
surely cannot be held that it is an oflEence for 
non-Europeans to voice their desires for equal 
rights, the abolition of poll tax, the right to vote 
and to own property.” 

But evidently the law in South Africa respects 
the European and is no respecter of the non- 
European. Indeed if this objection is raised, it is 
alleged to arouse or aggravate feelings of hostility 
against the Europeans! 



'332 


HAEIJAN 


[ October 20, 1940 


TIais ‘Democratic* Empire 

Dr. Dadoo merely mentioned some of the wrongs 
under which the non-Europeans in South Africa 
were labouring. As it was, the Bishop of Johan- 
nesburg was unconsciously supporting Dr. Dadoo 
when within a few days after the action against 
Dr. Dadoo he said in the course of a sermon: 

“ Let us think of this issue as it affects our own 
country. Do we in this country believe in the infinite 
value of the individual ? Are our social and economic 
arrangements designed to give each individual a real 

opportunity of self-government ? Our policy is 

based on fear, fear of economic competition, fear of 
racial admixture. We talk of trusteeship. But if we 
are trustees, -^ve are false to our trust. Neither for his 
health, nor for his food, nor for the care and nurture 
pf his children, do we make adequate provision.” 

Very like Nazism 

And the same issue of Indian Opinion as published 
the Bishop’s sermon, .publishes from The Sunday 
Times (South Africa) the report of a case in 
which a European policeman and a South African 
constable were let off with a fine of £ 50 and £ 25 
.respectively ( 12 months being the period in 
'which to pay the fine) for having caused the 
'death of a bushman, “ by hitting him with a 
sjambok and stick over the face and head and to 
have kicked him or struck him with the spoke of 
,a wheel as a result of which he sustained 
broken ribs. It was also alleged that they tied 
his hands above his head at 7-30 in the evening 
and fastened them to a tree, and that every 15 
minutes they threw water over him until 2 o’clock 
the following morning. They were also accused of 
burning him because they allowed him to remain 
close to a fire when he was either so frozen that 
he was unable to feel the burns or too powerless 
to move. Crown evidence stated that the following 
day Elias was forced to run 15 miles alongside the 
police horse, during which time he fajnted three 
times and coughed up blood. He was brought to 
hospital on June 2 at Grootfontein in a hopeless 
condition and died on June 9 of tetanus.” 

The oflfence, let it be remembered, was committed 
by policemen whose function it is to guard the 
person and property of the citizens, and was there- 
fore graver than the same offence if it had been 
committed by anyone else. But £ 50, to be paid 
within 12 months, is the price that a white police- 
mm has had to pay for brutally causing the death 
of, another- human being. But in a “democratic 
Empire”, for which those belonging to the Empire 
are called upon to fight, a dark-skinned bushman 
is no human, being,, and his murder costs the 
murderer nothing more than the death of a £50 
worth dog, caused by accident, would have cost 
him. The case is on a par wi^h that of the I.C.S. 
magistrate, Alexander of Bareilly who imposed a 
!sentence o£.w;hipping on a lad of 14 for shouting 
objectionable slogans at recruits, and who execut- 
ed the sentence personally in the court with his 
hands, depriving the accused of all redress 
Tby^ a court of appeal. 

Sevagram, 16-10-40 . ' M. D. ' 


Uniouchability In Kotah 

News comes from a worker in the Rajputana 
Harijan Sevak Sangh that the Maharaja Saheb of 
Kotah has recently rescinded a section of a law 
relating to Harijans. The writer says this section 
was never used, so far as he knows, until recently 
when the magistrate of Kotah fined a sweeper for 
keeping buffaloes. The sweeper appealed, and His 
Highness thought it undesirable to keep such a 
section on the statute book. The fine was remitted. 

The section says that no sweeper may keep a 
cow or a buffalo, nor sacrifice buffaloes without 
permission. No sweeper may on occasions of 
marriage or mourning or any festival or festivity 
use ghee for frying or take out a bridal proces- 
sion through public streets. 

The sweeper cannot be arrested without a war- 
rant under this section. But a warrant may be 
issued. It is a bailable offence, not compoundablc. 
A fine up to Rs. 50 may be imposed. Any magis- 
trate is entitled to try such cases. 

It is a question whether to congratulate the 
Maharaja for the removal of the atrocious prohi- 
bitions against Harijans or to demand why he slept 
over the atrocity for so long. It is said that such. 
prohibitions are common to most States of Rajpu- 
tana. If so, it is to be hoped that the States con- 
cerned will follow the example of Kotah. May I 
also suggest that the statute books of the States 
should be purged of all indefensible restrictions 
against Harijans? 

Sevagram, 15-10-40 ■ A. K.* . 

WORKING COMMITTEE’S 
STATEMENT 

The Working Committee issued the following 
statement at Wardha on the 13th inst.: 

The Working Committee met at the instance of 
Mahatma Gandhi and listened to the account of 
his talks with the Viceroy and the plan of cam- 
paign in so far as he has been able to envisage it. 
The Working Committee approve of what he has 
done, and repeat the instructions given to Congress- 
men and Congress Committees by the- A. 1. C. C. 
at it last meeting in Bombay, that they should 
give him the fullest possible co-operation in all 
that he may require or expect them to do. 


CONTENTS 

PAGE 


An Acceptable Sacrifice ... M. D. 325 

The Liberty We Want ... M. D, 326 

I 

A British Endorsement ... M.' K. Gaudhi 328 
Civil Disobedience ... M. K. Gandlii329' 

War Resisters ... M. D. 331 , 

Working Committee’s 

Statement ... 332 

Notes : 

Two Points of View ... M. K. G. 328 

Untodchability in Kotah A. K. 332 


\ ij^rinted and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
Subscription Rates — INLAND r pne year, Es. .4,; Six mon^s, E?. 8^8. FOREIGN : One year, Rs. 5-8 or, 8 sh..or 2 dollars 



Reg. No. B. 3092 



Editor : MAHADEV DESAI 


VoL. VIII No. 37 ] POONA — SUNDAY, NOVEMBER 10, 1940 [ ONE ANNA 

To the Reader 
( E y m. K. ) 

You must have seen through my press notice that the publication of Harijait 
and the other two weeklies had been suspended. In it, I had expressed the hope 
that the suspension might be only for a week. But I see that the hope had no 
real foundation. I shall miss my weekly calks with you, as I expect you too will 
miss them. The value of those talks consisted in their being a faithful record of 
my dc-:- 'cst thoughts. Such expression is impossible in a cramped atmosphere. As I 
have no desire to offer civil disobedience, I cannot write freely. As the author of 
satyagraha I cannot, consistently with my professions, suppress the vital part of myself 
for the sake of being able to write on permissible subjects such as the constructive 
programme. It would be like dealing with the trunk without the head. The whole 
of the constructive programme is to me an expression of non-violence. I would be 
denying myself if I could not preach non-violence. For that would be the meaning 
of submission to the latest ordinance. The suspension must, therefore, continue while 
the gagging lasts. It constitutes a satyagrahi’s respectful protest against the gag. Is not 
satyagraha giving an ell when an inch is asked for by the wrong-doer, is it not 
gj ving the cloak also when only the coat is demanded ? It may be asked why this 
reversal of the ordinary process ? The ordinary process is based on violence. If my 
life were regulated by violence in the last resort, I would refuse to give an inch 
lest an ell might be asked for. I would be a fool if I did otherwise. But if my 
life is regulated by non-violence, I should be prepared to and actually give an ell 
when an inch is asked for. By so doing I produce on the usurper a strange and 
even pleasurable sensation. He would also be confounded and would not know what 
to do with me. So much for the ‘enemy’. I, having made up my mind to surrender 
every non-essential, gain greater strength than ever before to die for the defence 
and preservation of what I hold to be essential. I was therefore wrongly accused 
b 5 '’ my critics of having advised cowardly surrender to Nazism by Englishmen when 
I suggested that they should lay down external arms, let the Nazis overrun Britain 
if they dare, but develop internal strength to refuse to sell themselves to the Nazis. 
Full surrender of non-essentials is a condition precedent to accession of internal strength 
to defend the essential by dying. 

But I am not writing this to convert the English to my view. I am writing 
this to suggest to you that my surrender to the framers of the gagging ordinance is 
an object-lesson to you, the Reader, in satyagraha. If you will quietly work out in 
your own life the implications of the lesson, you will then not need the weekly 
aid from the written word in Harijan. Even without your weekly Harijan you will 
know how I shall myself work out the full implications of giving an ell when an inch 
is wanted. A correspondent pleads with me that on no account should I suspend 
Harijan, for he says his non-violence is sustained by the weekly food he gets 
therefrom. If he has really done so, then this self-imposed restraint should teach 
him more than a vapid continuation of weekly Harijan, 

One word as to the practical question. You are a subscriber to one of the 
weeklies. 1 do not know when, if ever, they will be resumed. You are entitled to 



334 HAEIJAN [ NOVEMBER 10, 1940 

the return of the unused balance of your subscription. On receipt of a post card 
from you to the Manager Harijan, Poona for a refund, a money order for it will be 
sent to you. Those who do not ask for a refund will have their paper sent to them if 
it is resumed. If it is not, the unused balance will be spent in covering any loss that 
may be caused in winding up. And then the balance, if any, will be sent to the 
Harijan Sevak Sangh for use in the service of Harijans. If Harija?i is not resumed 
within six months, it will be deemed to have been finally wound up. Meanwhile 
good-bye. 

Sevagram, 31-10-40 

WHY SUSPENSION 


Gandhiji issued the following statement to the 
press on 24th October : 

On the 18th inst. the Editor of Harijan 
received the following notice from the District 
Magistrate’s office, Poona : 

“ I am directed by Government to advise you that no 
account of incidents leading up to satyagraha by Vinoba 
Bhave and no report of his speeches or any subsequent 
developments should be published without previous 
reference to the Chief Press Adviser, Delhi. 

I would like to bring to your notice that this is in 
your own interest to avoid prosecution under rule 38 
of the Defence of India Rules.” 

Thereupon I entered into correspondence with 
H. E. the Viceroy. Correspondence is still going 
on. But it is necessary for me to take a decision 
today for, if I did not, there may be waste of 
public money. In view of the reply hitherto 
received I have no course left open but to suspend 
publication of Harijan, Harijanbandhu and Harijan- 
sevak. I cannot function freely if I have to send 
to the Press Adviser at New Delhi every line I 
write about satyagraha. It is true that the notice 
is only advisory, and that therefore I am not 
bound to act up to it. But the consequence of 
disregard of advice is also stated in the notice. I 
have no desire to risk a prosecution against the 
Editors. The three weeklies have been conducted 
in the interest of truth and therefore of all parties 
concerned. But I cannot serve that interest if the 
editing has to be done under threat of prosecution. 
Liberty of the Press is a dear privilege, apart from 
the advisability or otherwise of civil disobedience. 
The Government have shown their intention 
clearly by the prosecution of Shri Vinoba Bhave. 
I have no complaint to make against the pro- 
secution. It was an inevitable result of the 
Defence of India Rules. But the hberty of the 
Press stands on a different footing. I am unable 
to reconcile myself to the notice which, although 
in the nature of advice, is in reality an order 
whose infringement will carry its own consequence. 

I am sorry to have to disappoint the numerous 
readers of the three weeklies. Next week I shall 
be able to let the public know whether it is to 
be merely a suspension or an indefinite stopping 
of the three weeklies. I shall still hope that it 
will be merely a suspension and that my fear will 
prove to be groundless. But should it prove other- 
wise, I may inform the public that satyagraha is 
independent of press advertisement. If it is real, 


it carries with it its own momentum; and I believe 
the present satyagraha to be very real. It will go 
on. I will not be provoked into any hasty action. 
I am still not ready with the next move. But as 
I have said in my previous statement, every act 
of civil disobedience is complete in itself. This 
press notice shows how effective it has been. Every 
act of repression adds strength to the reality. 
Satyagraha thrives on repression till at last 
the repressor is tired of it and the object of 
satyagraha is gained. Whether, therefore, I take 
the next step or not and when I take it is a 
matter of no consequence to the public. Let 
those who sympathise with it follow implicitly 
the instructions I have issued. I believe, and my 
belief has been tested repeatedly, that a 
thought deliberately thought and controlled is a 
power greater than speech or writing and any day 
greater than steam which is husbanded and con- 
trolled. We see the latter every day carrying 
incredible weights even across steep precipices. 
Thought power overcomes much greater obstacles 
and easily carries greater weights. But let me give 
a practical hint to the non-believer in the power 
of thought husbanded and controlled. Let every- 
one become his own walking newspaper and carry 
the good news from mouth to mouth. This does 
not mean what boys used to do in the past, 
viz. trumpeting about of bits of news. The idea 
here is of my telling my neighbour what I have 
authentically heard. This no Government can 
overtake or suppress. It is the cheapest newspaper 
yet devised, and it defies the wit of Government, 
however clever it may be. Let these walking 
newspapers be sure of the news they give. They 
should not indulge in any idle gossip. They should 
make sure of the source of information, and they 
will find that the public gets all the information 
that they need without opening their morning 
newspaper which, they should know, will coirtain 
garbled, one-sided information and therefore not 
worth the trouble of reading. For it may be that 
even the public statements such as I am now 
issuing may also be stopped. It is the condition 
of life under an autocratic Government, whether 
foreign or indigenous. 

OLD ISSUES 

Issue of Vols. I to VIII of Harijan, with certain 
exceptions, can be had from us for 3 As. per copy 
(including postage). 


Manager 



4. Education 


M. K. Gandhi 21 
28 

29, 49, 159, 193, 283 


What I Saw in Santinikctan ... 

Clear Injustice 
Question Box ,, 

Acharya Kripjilani’s Inaugural 
Address 

The Basic Education Court ... 

Sevagram Khadi Yatra 
Basic Education 
Favouritism 

Missionary Education in Assam 
Adult Literacy 
A Worthy Educational Effort 
Spinning -and Character 
■ One Step Forward ’ 

Adult Education through 
Handicrafts I-II 
A Praiseworthy Endeavour ... 

A Christian Student’s Complaint 

5. Removal of Untouchability and Service 
of Harijans 

A Curious Situation ... M. K. Gandhi 

Harijan Sevak Sangh ... A. V. Thakkar 

Scholarships for Harijan Girls ... „ 

Harijan Work in Indore ... A. K. 


67 

75 

79 

130 


A. K. 

S. N. 
Ashadevi 
M. K. Gandhi 131 
166 
173 

„ 222 

231 
250 

Pyarclal 251, 263 
A. K. 286 

M. K. Gandhi 316 


D 

39 

75 

77 


M. K. Gandhi 89, 93, 137, 159, 217 


Question Box 
•Commendable 

Curse of Untouchability ... M. 
Untouchability 

Comilla Municipality and Harijans 
Harijans of Garhwal 
A Walking Tour 
Caste Hindu Marries Harijan Girl 
The Journey Back 
Titbits 

[iidorc State aud Flarijans 


M. D. 

K. Gandhi 


143 

149 

153 

154 

165 

166 
173 
226 


andhi Scholarships 


... Pyarelal 
... A. V. Thakkar 230 
... M. K. Gandhi 236 
... Shyainlal 
... M. K. Gandhi 
A. K. 


258 

322 

324 

332 


Fa^^ing in Satyagraha 
A Righteous Fast 
Untouchability in Kotah 

6, Communal Unity 

Communal Decision M. K. Gandhi 9 

Question Box: „ 9, 29, 41, 49, 101, 109, 123, 129, 

137, 159, 183, 193, 234 


My Advice to Noakhali Hindus 
The Old Game 
My Answer to Qaid-c-Azam 
A Baffling Situation 
All on Trial 
My Position 

The Hand of the Devil ? 

An English Suggestion 
Wanton Destruction in Bidar 
Hindu Muslim Tangle 
Occasional Notes 
Occasional Notes 
God-speed 
Non-rcsistance 
Bidar 

Curse of Untouchability 
Hindu-Muslim 
The Eclipse of Faith — ^II 
Wliat the Masnavi Says 
Is Islam Inspired? 

The Biswa Affair 


Pyarelal 
M. K. Gandhi 


21 
62 
65 
76 
86 
92 

M. D. 112 
M. K. Gandhi 115 
115 
117 

Pyarelal 119 
M. D. 133 
141 

M. K. Gandhi 144 
149 
349 
156 

M. D. 174 
M. K. Gandhi 183 
207 
242 


Biswa Miscarriage Again 
Economic Ruin in Sindh 
Seven Days in Bombay 
I Wonder 
Sindh Hindus 


276 

284 

M. D. 289 

... M. K. Gandhi 297 
309 


7. Village Industries 
Adulteration of Ghee ... M. K. Gandhi d 

Skimmed Milk ... „ 23 

Gandhi Seva Sangh-III ... M. D. 42 

What Big Employers Can Do M, K. Gandhi 107 
The Beneficent Bee — V. G. D. 152 

Handmade Paper ... M. K. Gandhi 153 

Rural Humanity ... M. Subedar 170 

More about Handicrafts ... Pyarelal 202 

Non-violent Crafts ... M. D. 271 

Handicrafts in America ... A. K. 27 d 

Town-dwellers aad village 

Industries ... G. Naik 286 

8. Village Reconstruction 
Village Reconstruction in the 

South ... A. K. 259 

Debt Bondage of a Hill Tribe... M. K. Gandhi 264 

Sevagram Notes ... M. D. 281 

Kathiawad Famine Work G. Ramachandran 287 

9- Khadi 

Question Box ... M. K. Gandhi oO, 

73, 145, 159, 176, 217, 268. 276, 283 
Gandhi Seva Sangh I-III ... M. D. 17, 25, 42 
‘ Khadi Banks ’ ... M. K. Gandhi 48 

Women and Voluntary 

Endeavour — ^0 

Raragarh ... M. D. 57 

A Creditable Record ... C. S. 74 

Khadi Can K. G. Mashruwala 77 

Sevagram Khadi Yatra ... S. N. 79 

Charkha — Swaraj — ’Ahimsa ... M. K. Gandhi 85 

Spinning Wheel in China ... C. S. 91 

What Big Employers Can Do... M. K. Gandhi 107 
Example Better than Precept... M. D. 113 

Khadi Work in Tamil Nad I-II C. S. 135, 138 
Charkha v. Takli C. A. Aiyamuthu 138 

A Feast for the Eyes ... M. D. 139 

Gwalior and Khadi ... M. K. Gandhi 165 

Non-violence and Khadi ... ,, 169 

Spinning Competition in Ramgarh „ 171 

The Eclipse of Faith — -II ... M. D. 174 

Curious Objections K. G. Mashruwala 179 

The Journey Back ... Pyarelal 226 

Our Textile Wants K. G. Mashruwala 228 

Spinning and Character ... M. K. Gandhi 231 
For Khadi Workers ... ,, 237 

Spinning Anniversary ... ,, 247 

How to Universalise Khadi ? ... „ 285 

One Aspect of the Cloth 

Industry ... K. C. Gandhi 288 

Khadi Patrikas ... M. K. Gandhi 295 

Khadi Week ... „ 298 

10 Relations of the Sexes 
What Is Womans Role ... M. K. Gandhi 12 

Question Box ... 29, 41, 145, 159, 176 

A Hideous Evil ... A. K. 135 

1 1. Non-violence 

Occasional Notes ... M. D, 2, 194, 309 

Question Box ... M. K. Gandhi 7, 

102, 129, 193, 215, 217, 234, 253, 268, 276, 283 
Gandhi Seva Sangh — ^I ... M. D. 17 

An Interlude at Santiniketan ... Pyarelal 3L 



6 


The London Assassination 
An Insane Act 
How to Evoke the Best 
Charkha — Swaraj — Ahimsa 
Two Questions from America 
Of What Avial Is Non-violence ? 
Non-violence and Khadi 
How to Combat Hitlerism 
Both Happy and Unhappy 
Non-violence cum Non- 
co-operation 
Gandhiji Absolved 
To Every Briton _ ... 

About Working Committee's 
Decision 

Non-violence and Panic 
What Led to the Decision 
“A Cry in the Wilderness” V 
The Delhi Resolution 
Congress Membership and 
Non-violence 

’‘For He Had Great Possessions” 
Some Misconceptions 
Unrepentant 
Khansaheb’s Ahimsa 
The Best Field for Ahimsa 
The Correspondence 
Open Letter 
Not Quite So Bad 
Two Just Complaints 
The Journey Back 
Impossible 

There Is Violence in It 
A Testimony from England 
A Hot Gospeller 
Woman’s Role 

War — a Stage Long Outgrown 
What of die “Weak Majority” ? 
Hopeful 

Drawbacks of Non-violence K 


M. K. Gandhi 56 
56 
72 
85 
9j 
114 
169 
172 
180 

K. N. Katju 18] 
182 

M. K. Gandhi 185 


M. 


M. D. 

K. Gandhi 


186 

192 

196 

200 

201 


203 

206 

209 


A. K. 

M. D. 

... M. K. Gandhi 212 

213 

214 

Gandhi-Linlithgow 214 
... R. T. Templin 220 
... M. K. Gandhi 222 
223 

... Pyarelal 
... M. K. Gandhi 


226 
228 
229 

231 

232 

236 

237 
241 
241 

Mashruvvala 242 


M. D. 

M. K. Gandhi 
M. D. 

M. K. Gandhi 


M 


M 


M. D. 

K. Gandhi 


M. K. Gandhi 244 

245 

246 

249 

250 
255 
259 

M. D. 261, 266 
K. Gandhi 265 


Is Non-violence Impossible ? , 

The Test of Non-violence 
The Live Issue 
Moral Support 
A Convincing Argument 
Nazism in Its Nakedness 
Asoka and Non-violence 
An Interesting Discourse I-II . 

My Idea of a Police Force 
Non-violence of the Brave 
Peaceful Methods ? 

Ahimsa in Daily Life 
How to Quench It ? 

“ A Seeker’s ” Question 
Congress Ahimsa 
Non-violence during Riots 
Not Quite New 
Seven Days in Bombay 
A. I. C. C. Resolution 
An American’s Questions 
Some Criticism Answered 
Gandhiji’s Speech at the A. 1. 

Sikhs and the Sword 
Correspondence 

Tarasingh-M. K. Gandhi 
Interesting Parallel ... M. K. Gandhi 311 

Viceroy — Gandhi Correspondence 313 

Physical Training and Ahimsa M. K. Gandhi 318 
A British Endorsement ... „ 328 

War Resisters ... M, D. 331 

1 2 , Prohibition 

A Bengal Grievance ... V. G. D. 16 

13. Hindustani 

Question Box ... M. K. Gandhi 41 

Rashtrabhasha Adhyapan 


M. D. 

M. K. Gandhi 
M. K. Gandhi 


M. D. 

!! M. D. 

.. M. K. Gandhi 
C C 

.. M. k. Gandhi 


268 

272 

273 
277 
280 
285 

285 

286 
289 
296 
298 

302 

303 

306 

307 


Mandir, Wardha 
Two Just Complaints 
Old Mind v. Old Age 
14. 

Question Box 
Planters’ Paradise 


... S. Agrawal 95 
... M. K. Gandhi 223 
... V. Bhave 287 
Labour 

... M. K. Gandbi 93 
... G. Bardoioi 162 


15. Ofeiiuarios 

The Deenabandhu ... M. D. 81 

A True Friend of the Poor ... M. K. Gandhi 84 

Andrews’ Legacy ... ,, 84 

A Humble Tribute A. K. 87 

C. F. A. — the Man ... Pyarelal 98 

Andrews’ Influence ... M. K. Gandhi 144 

Tribute from South Afria ... ,, 165 

Another Tribute ... 173 

The Late Changanacherry Pillai ,, 207 

16. Personal — by and about Gandhiji 

Non-resistance ... M. K. Gandhi 144 

Please Spare Me ... ,, 165 

Question Box ... 253 

Thanks ... 321 

Fasting in Satyagraha ... 322 

17. Economics — General 

In the V/ake of Mechanisation I-IV C. S. 102,117 
The Edipse of Faith-I ... M. D. 167* 
The Only Cure ... ,,, 177 

Equal Distribution ... M. K. Gandhi 269' 


1 8, Miscellaneous 


M. D. 6 

Gandhi 7, 73, 159, 
M. L\ 17, 25 
M. K. Gandhi 20 
28 
34 


Rediscovering Religion — 11 
Question Box M. K. 

Gandhi Seva Sangh I-lI 
The Right Step 
Segaon 13ccomes Sevagram 
The Santiniketan Pilgrimage ... 

A Visit to Deenabandhu 
A Very Useful Publication 
Occasional Notes 
An Unjudicial Dictum 
Our Castes 
Deenabandhu Memorial 

M. K. Gandhi and Othccs 


Pyarci \[ 

M. I<:'’G.indhi 
M. D. 

M. K. C;andhi 
M. D. 


Andrews Memorial 
Unworthy of Wardha ! 
Duty of Indians Overseas 
A Cry from South Orissa 
“ Sandhya Meditations ” 
Copyright 
A Valid Complaint 
On the Road to Simla 
‘ Copyright ’ 

Servants of India Society 
A Hot Gospeller 
Is it Proper? 

Improper Use 
Andrews Memorial Fund 
Andrews Memorial 
Disgraceful If True 
Illegal Levy ? 

Australian Soldiers 
Andrews Memorial Fund 
To the Reader 
Why Suspension 


40 

53 

54 
116 
122 

150 


M. K. Giadh iiuS 
M. D, L72 
M. K. Gandhi 172 
A. V. Tiaikkar 131 
M. D. V58 
M. K. Gandhi 164 
189 
1S9 
193 
217 
232 
236 
„ 264 

267 
270 

M. K. Gandhi 312 
316 
321 
326 

M, K. Gandhi 335 
334 


Pyarelal 
M. K. Gandhi 

m^’d. 

M. K. Gandhi 


Issues of Harijan liitherto published can be had at 
3 As. per issue per copy, including postage. MANAGER 
Home and Village Doctor 
By Satish Chandra Das^tipta 1440 pages, 18 
chapters. Copious Index of 32 pages. 216 illustratJcns - 
Price Rs. 5 cloth-bound; Rs. 6. By V. P. P. Rs.^„ 
leather -bound; Rs. 7. By V. P. P, Available at Harijan 
office — Poona 4. 


Printed and Published by Vithal Hari Barve at the Aryabhushan Press, 915/1 Fergusson College Road, Poona 4. 
Subscription Rates — INLAND; One year, Bs. 4, Six months, Rs. 2-8. Foreign : One year, Rs. 5-8 or, 8 sh. or 2 dollars 





PRESroENT’S 

SECRETARIAT 


LIBRARY